"J.R.R. Tolkien - The Silmarillion" - читать интересную книгу автора (Tolkien J.R.R)FOREWORD The Silmarillion, now published
four years after the death of its author, is an account of the Elder Days, or
the First Age of the World. In The Lord
of the Rings were narrated the great events at the end of the Third Age;
but the tales of The Silmarillion are
legends deriving from a much deeper past, when Morgoth, the first Dark Lord,
dwelt in Middle-earth, and the High Elves made war upon him for the recovery of
the Silmarils. Not only, however, does The
Silmarillion relate the events of a far earlier time than those of The Lord of the Rings; it is also, in
all the essentials of its conception, far the earlier work. Indeed, although it
was not then called The Silmarillion,
it was already in being half a century ago; and in battered notebooks extending
back to 1917 can still be read the earliest versions, often hastily pencilled,
of the central stories of the mythology. But it was never published (though
some indication of its content could be gleaned from The Lord of the Rings), and throughout my father's long life he
never abandoned it, nor ceased even in his last years to work on it. In all
that time The Silmarillion,
considered simply as a large narrative structure, underwent relatively little
radical change; it became long ago a fixed tradition, and background to later
writings. But it was far indeed from being a fixed text, and did not remain
unchanged even in certain fundamental ideas concerning the nature of the world
it portrays; while the same legends came to be retold in longer and shorter
forms, and in different styles. As the years passed the changes and variants,
both in detail and in larger perspectives, became so complex, so pervasive, and
so many-layered that a final and definitive version seemed unattainable.
Moreover the old legends ('old' now not only in their derivation from the
remote First Age, but also in terms of my father's life) became the vehicle and
depository of his profoundest reflections. In h is later writing mythology and
poetry sank down behind his theological and philosophical preoccupations: from
which arose incompatibilities of tone. On my father's death it fell to me to try to bring the work into
publishable form. It became clear to me that to attempt to present, within the
covers of a single book the diversity of the materials – to show The Silmarillion as in truth a
continuing and evolving creation extending over more than half a century –
would in fact lead only to confusion and the submerging of what is essential I
set myself therefore to work out a single text selecting and arranging in such
a way as seemed to me to produce the most coherent and internally
self-consistent narrative. In this work the concluding chapters (from the death
of Tъrin Turambar) introduced peculiar difficulties, in that they had remained
unchanged for many years, and were in some respects in serious disharmony with
more developed conceptions in other parts of the book. A complete consistency (either within the compass of The Silmarillion itself or between The Silmarillion and other published
writings of my father's) is not to be looked for, and could only be achieved,
if at all at heavy and needless cost. Moreover, my father came to conceive The Silmarillion as a compilation, a
compendious narrative, made long afterwards from sources of great diversity
(poems, and annals, and oral tales) that had survived in agelong tradition; and
this conception has indeed its parallel in the actual history of the book, for
a great deal of earlier prose and poetry does underlie it, and it is to some
extent a compendium in fact and not only in theory. To this may be ascribed the
varying speed of the narrative and fullness of detail in different parts, the
contrast (for example) of the precise recollections of place and motive in the
legend of Tъrin Turambar beside the high and remote account of the end of the
First Age, when Thangorodrim was broken and Morgoth overthrown; and also some
differences of tone and portrayal, some obscurities, and, here and there, some
lack of cohesion. In the case of the Valaquenta,
for instance, we have to assume that while it contains much that must go back
to the earliest days of the Eldar in Valinor, it was remodelled in later times;
and thus explain its continual shifting of tense and viewpoint, so that the
divine powers seem now present and active in the world, now remote, a vanished
order known only to memory. The book, though entitled as it must be The Silmarillion, contains not only the Quenta Silmarillion, or Silmarillion
proper, but also four other short works. The Ainulindalл and Valaquenta,
which are given at the beginning, are indeed closely related with The Silmarillion; but the Akallabкth and Of the Rings of Power, which appear at the end, are (it must to
emphasised) wholly separate and independent. They are included according to my
father's explicit intention; and by their inclusion is set forth the entire
history is set forth from the Music of the Ainur in which the world began to
the passing of the Ringbearers from the havens of Mithlond at the end of the
Third Age. The number of names that occur in the book is very large, and I have
provided a full index; but the number of persons (Elves and Men) who play an
important part in the narrative of the First Age is very much smaller, and all
of these will be found in the genealogical tables. In addition I have provided
a table setting out the rather complex naming of the different Elvish peoples;
a note on the pronunciation of Elvish names, and a list of some of the chief
elements found in these names; and a map. It may be noted that the great
mountain range in the east, Ered Luin or Ered Lindon, the Blue Mountains,
appears in the extreme west of the map in The
Lord of the Rings. In the body of the book there is a smaller map: the
intention of this is to make clear at a glance where lay the kingdoms of the
Elves after the return of the Noldor to Middle-earth. I have not burdened the
book further with any sort of commentary or annotation. There is indeed a
wealth of unpublished writing by my father concerning the Three Ages,
narrative, linguistic, historical, and philosophical, and I hope that it will
prove possible to publish some of this at a later date. In the difficult and
doubtful task of preparing the text of the book I was very greatly assisted by
Guy Kay, who worked with me in 1974-1975. Christopher Tolkien AINULINDALЛ The Music of the
Ainur There was Eru, the
One, who in Arda is called Ilъvatar; and he made first the Ainur, the Holy
Ones, that were the offspring of his thought, and they were with him before
aught else was made. And he spoke to them, propounding to them themes of music;
and they sang before him, and he was glad. But for a long while they sang only
each alone, or but few together, while the rest hearkened; for each
comprehended only that part of me mind of Ilъvatar from which he came, and in
the understanding of their brethren they grew but slowly. Yet ever as they
listened they came to deeper understanding, and increased in unison and
harmony. And it came to pass that Ilъvatar called
together all the Ainur and declared to them a mighty theme, unfolding to them
things greater and more wonderful than he had yet revealed; and the glory of
its beginning and the splendour of its end amazed the Ainur, so that they bowed
before Ilъvatar and were silent. Then Ilъvatar said to them: 'Of the theme
that I have declared to you, I will now that ye make in harmony together a
Great Music. And since I have kindled you with the Flame Imperishable, ye shall
show forth your powers in adorning this theme, each with his own thoughts and
devices, if he will. But I win sit and hearken, and be glad that through you
great beauty has been wakened into song.' Then the voices of the Ainur, like unto
harps and lutes, and pipes and trumpets, and viols and organs, and like unto
countless choirs singing with words, began to fashion the theme of Ilъvatar to
a great music; and a sound arose of endless interchanging melodies woven in
harmony that passed beyond hearing into the depths and into the heights, and
the places of the dwelling of Ilъvatar were filled to overflowing, and the
music and the echo of the music went out into the Void, and it was not void.
Never since have the Ainur made any music like to this music, though it has
been said that a greater still shall be made before Ilъvatar by the choirs of
the Ainur and the Children of Ilъvatar after the end of days. Then the themes
of Ilъvatar shall be played aright, and take Being in the moment of their
utterance, for all shall then understand fully his intent in their part, and each
shall know the comprehension of each, and Ilъvatar shall give to their thoughts
the secret fire, being well pleased. But now Ilъvatar sat and hearkened, and for
a great while it seemed good to him, for in the music there were no flaws. But
as the theme progressed, it came into the heart of Melkor to interweave matters
of his own imagining that were not in accord with the theme of Ilъvatar, for he
sought therein to increase the power and glory of the part assigned to himself.
To Melkor among the Ainur had been given the greatest gifts of power and
knowledge, and he had a share in all the gifts of his brethren. He had gone
often alone into the void places seeking the Imperishable Flame; for desire
grew hot within him to bring into Being things of his own, and it seemed to him
that Ilъvatar took no thought for the Void, and he was impatient of its
emptiness. Yet he found not the Fire, for it is with Ilъvatar. But being alone
he had begun to conceive thoughts of his own unlike those of his brethren. Some of these thoughts he now wove into his
music, and straightway discord arose about him, and many that sang nigh him
grew despondent, and their thought was disturbed and their music faltered; but
some began to attune their music to his rather than to the thought which they
had at first. Then the discord of Melkor spread ever wider, and the melodies
which had been heard before foundered in a sea of turbulent sound. But Ilъvatar
sat and hearkened until it seemed that about his throne there was a raging
storm, as of dark waters that made war one upon another in an endless wrath
that would not be assuaged. Then Ilъvatar arose, and the Ainur perceived
that he smiled; and he lifted up his left hand, and a new theme began amid the
storm, like and yet unlike to the former theme, and it gathered power and had
new beauty. But the discord of Melkor rose in uproar and contended with it, and
again there was a war of sound more violent than before, until many of the
Ainur were dismayed and sang no longer, and Melkor had the mastery. Then again
Ilъvatar arose, and the Ainur perceived that his countenance was stern; and he
lifted up his right hand, and behold! a third theme grew amid the confusion,
and it was unlike the others. For it seemed at first soft and sweet, a mere
rippling of gentle sounds in delicate melodies; but it could not be quenched,
and it took to itself power and profundity. And it seemed at last that there
were two musics progressing at one time before the seat of Ilъvatar, and they
were utterly at variance. The one was deep and wide and beautiful, but slow and
blended with an immeasurable sorrow, from which its beauty chiefly came. The
other had now achieved a unity of its own; but it was loud, and vain, and
endlessly repeated; and it had little harmony, but rather a clamorous unison as
of many trumpets braying upon a few notes. And it essayed to drown the other
music by the violence of its voice, but it seemed that its most triumphant
notes were taken by the other and woven into its own solemn pattern. In the midst of this strife, whereat the
halls of Ilъvatar shook and a tremor ran out into the silences yet unmoved,
Ilъvatar arose a third time, and his face was terrible to behold. Then he
raised up both his hands, and in one chord, deeper than the Abyss, higher than the
Firmament, piercing as the light of the eye of Ilъvatar, the Music ceased. Then Ilъvatar spoke, and he said: 'Mighty
are the Ainur, and mightiest among them is Melkor; but that he may know, and
all the Ainur, that I am Ilъvatar, those things that ye have sung, I will show
them forth, that ye may see what ye have done. And thou, Melkor, shalt see that
no theme may be played that hath not its uttermost source in me, nor can any
alter the music in my despite. For he that attempteth this shall prove but mine
instrument in the devising of things more wonderful, which he himself hath not
imagined.' Then the Ainur were afraid, and they did not
yet comprehend the words that were said to them; and Melkor was filled with
shame, of which came secret anger. But Ilъvatar arose in splendour, and he went
forth from the fair regions that he had made for the Ainur; and the Ainur
followed him. But when they were come into the Void,
Ilъvatar said to them: 'Behold your Music!' And he showed to them a vision,
giving to them sight where before was only hearing; arid they saw a new World
made visible before them, and it was globed amid the Void, and it was sustained
therein, but was not of it. And as they looked and wondered this World began to
unfold its history, and it seemed to them that it lived and grew. And when the
Ainur had gazed for a while and were silent, Ilъvatar said again: 'Behold your
Music! This is your minstrelsy; and each of you shall find contained herein,
amid the design that I set before you, all those things which it may seem that
he himself devised or added. And thou, Melkor, wilt discover all the secret
thoughts of thy mind, and wilt perceive that they are but a part of the whole
and tributary to its glory.' And many other things Ilъvatar spoke to the
Ainur at that time, and because of their memory of his words, and the knowledge
that each has of the music that he himself made, the Ainur know much of what
was, and is, and is to come, and few things are unseen by them. Yet some things
there are that they cannot see, neither alone nor taking counsel together; for
to none but himself has Ilъvatar revealed all that he has in store, and in
every age there come forth things that are new and have no foretelling, for
they do not proceed from the past. And so it was that as this vision of the
World was played before them, the Ainur saw that it contained things which they
had not thought. And they saw with amazement the coming of the Children of
Ilъvatar, and the habitation that was prepared for them; and they perceived
that they themselves in the labour of their music had been busy with the
preparation of this dwelling, and yet knew not that it had any purpose beyond
its own beauty. For the Children of Ilъvatar were conceived by him alone; and
they came with the third theme, and were not in the theme which Ilъvatar
propounded at the beginning, and none of the Ainur had part in their making.
Therefore when they beheld them, the more did they love them, being things
other than themselves, strange and free, wherein they saw the mind of Ilъvatar
reflected anew, and learned yet a little more of his wisdom, which otherwise
had been hidden even from the Ainur. Now the Children of Ilъvatar are Elves and
Men, the Firstborn and the Followers. And amid all the splendours of the World,
its vast halls and spaces, and its wheeling fires, Ilъvatar chose a place for
their habitation in the Deeps of Time and in the midst of the innumerable
stars. And this habitation might seem a little thing to those who consider only
the majesty of the Ainur, and not their terrible sharpness; as who should take
the whole field of Arda for the foundation of a pillar and so raise it until
the cone of its summit were more bitter than a needle; or who consider only the
immeasurable vastness of the World, which still the Ainur are shaping, and not
the minute precision to which they shape all things therein. But when the Ainur
had beheld this habitation in a vision and had seen the Children of Ilъvatar
arise therein, then many of the most mighty among them bent all their thought
and their desire towards that place. And of these Melkor was the chief, even as
he was in the beginning the greatest of the Ainur who took part in the Music.
And he feigned, even to himself at first, that he desired to go thither and order
all things for the good of the Children of Ilъvatar, controlling the turmoils
of the heat and the cold that had come to pass through him. But he desired
rather to subdue to his will both Elves and Men, envying the gifts with which
Ilъvatar promised to endow them; and he wished himself to have subject and
servants, and to be called Lord, and to be a master over other wills. But the other Ainur looked upon this
habitation set within the vast spaces of the World, which the Elves call Arda,
the Earth; and their hearts rejoiced in light, and their eyes beholding many
colours were filled with gladness; but because of the roaring of the sea they
felt a great unquiet. And they observed the winds and the air, and the matters
of which Arda was made, of iron and stone and silver and gold and many
substances: but of all these water they most greatly praised. And it is said by
the Eldar that in water there lives yet the echo of the Music of the Ainur more
than in any substance else that is in this Earth; and many of the Children of
Ilъvatar hearken still unsated to the voices of the Sea, and yet know not for
what they listen. Now to water had that Ainu whom the Elves
can Ulmo turned his thought, and of all most deeply was he instructed by
Ilъvatar in music. But of the airs and winds Manwл most had pondered, who is
the noblest of the Ainur. Of the fabric of Earth had Aulл thought, to whom
Ilъvatar had given skin and knowledge scarce less than to Melkor; but the
delight and pride of Aulл is in the deed of making, and in the thing made, and
neither m possession nor in his own mastery; wherefore he gives and hoards not,
and is free from care, passing ever on to some new work. And Ilъvatar spoke to Ulmo, and said: 'Seest
thou not how here in this little realm in the Deeps of Time Melkor hath made
war upon thy province? He hath bethought him of bitter cold immoderate, and yet
hath not destroyed the beauty of thy fountains, nor of my clear pools. Behold
the snow, and the cunning work of frost! Melkor hath devised heats and fire without
restraint, and hath not dried up thy desire nor utterly quelled the music of
the sea. Behold rather the height and glory of the clouds, and the everchanging
mists; and listen to the fall of rain upon the Earth! And in these clouds thou
art drawn nearer to Manwл, thy friend, whom thou lovest.' Then Ulmo answered: 'Truly, Water is become
now fairer than my heart imagined, neither had my secret thought conceived the
snowflake, nor in all my music was contained the falling of the rain. I will
seek Manwл, that he and I may make melodies for ever to my delight!' And Manwл
and Ulmo have from the beginning been allied, and in all things have served
most faithfully the purpose of Ilъvatar. But even as Ulmo spoke, and while the Ainur
were yet gazing upon this vision, it was taken away and hidden from their
sight; and it seemed to them that in that moment they perceived a new thing,
Darkness, which they had not known before except in thought. But they had
become enamoured of the beauty of the vision and engrossed in the unfolding of
the World which came there to being, and their minds were filled with it; for
the history was incomplete and the circles of time not full-wrought when the
vision was taken away. And some have said that the vision ceased ere the fulfilment
of the Dominion of Men and the fading of the Firstborn; wherefore, though the
Music is over all, the Valar have not seen as with sight the Later Ages or the
ending of the World. Then there was unrest among the Ainur; but
Ilъvatar called to them, and said: 'I know the desire of your minds that what
ye have seen should verily be, not only in your thought, but even as ye
yourselves are, and yet other. Therefore I say: Eд! Let these things Be! And I will send forth into the Void the
Flame Imperishable, and it shall be at the heart of the World, and the World
shall Be; and those of you that will may go down into it. And suddenly the
Ainur saw afar off a light, as it were a cloud with a living heart of flame;
and they knew that this was no vision only, but that Ilъvatar had made a new
thing: Eд, the World that Is. Thus it came to pass that of the Ainur some
abode still with Ilъvatar beyond the confines of the World; but others, and
among them many of the greatest and most fair, took the leave of Ilъvatar and
descended into it. But this condition Ilъvatar made, or it is the necessity of
their love, that their power should thenceforward be contained and bounded in
the World, to be within it for ever, until it is complete, so that they are its
life and it is theirs. And therefore they are named the Valar, the Powers of
the World. But when the Valar entered into Eд they were
at first astounded and at a loss, for it was as if naught was yet made which
they had seen in vision, and all was but on point to begin and yet unshaped,
and it was dark. For the Great Music had been but the growth and flowering of
thought in the Tuneless Halls, and the Vision only a foreshowing; but now they
had entered in at the beginning of Time, and the Valar perceived that the World
had been but foreshadowed and foresung, and they must achieve it. So began
their great labours in wastes unmeasured and unexplored, and in ages uncounted
and forgotten, until in the Deeps of Time and in the midst of the vast halls of
Eд there came to be that hour and that place where was made the habitation of
the Children of Ilъvatar. And in this work the chief part was taken by Manwл
and Aulл and Ulmo; but Melkor too was there from the first, and he meddled in
all that was done, turning it if he might to his own desires and purposes; and
he kindled great fires. When therefore Earth was yet young and full of flame
Melkor coveted it, and he said to the other Valar: 'This shall be my own
kingdom; and I name it unto myself!' But Manwл was the brother of Melkor in the mind
of Ilъvatar, and he was the chief instrument of the second theme that Ilъvatar
had raised up against the discord of Melkor; and he called unto himself many
spirits both greater and less, and they came down into the fields of Arda and
aided Manwл, lest Melkor should hinder the fulfilment of their labour for ever,
and Earth should wither ere it flowered. And Manwл said unto Melkor: 'This
kingdom thou shalt not take for thine own, wrongfully, for many others have
laboured here do less than thou.'
And there was strife between Melkor and the other Valar; and for that time
Melkor withdrew and departed to other regions and did there what he would; but
he did not put the desire of the Kingdom of Arda from his heart. Now the Valar took to themselves shape and
hue; and because they were drawn into the World by love of the Children of
Ilъvatar, for whom they hoped, they took shape after that manner which they had
beheld in the Vision of Ilъvatar, save only in majesty and splendour. Moreover
their shape comes of their knowledge of the visible World, rather than of the
World itself; and they need it not, save only as we use raiment, and yet we may
be naked and suffer no loss of our being. Therefore the Valar may walk, if they
will, unclad, and then even the Eldar cannot clearly perceive them, though they
be present. But when they desire to clothe themselves the Valar take upon them
forms some as of male and some as of female; for that difference of temper they
had even from their beginning, and it is but bodied forth in the choice of
each, not made by the choice, even as with us male and female may be shown by
the raiment but is not made thereby. But the shapes wherein the Great Ones
array themselves are not at all times like to the shapes of the kings and
queens of the Children of Ilъvatar; for at times they may clothe themselves in
their own thought, made visible in forms of majesty and dread. And the Valar drew unto them many
companions, some less, some well nigh as great as themselves, and they laboured
together in the ordering of the Earth and the curbing of its tumults. Then
Melkor saw what was done, and that the Valar walked on Earth as powers visible,
clad in the raiment of the World, and were lovely and glorious to see, and
blissful, and that the Earth was becoming as a garden for their delight, for
its turmoils were subdued. His envy grew then the greater within him; and he
also took visible form, but because of his mood and the malice that burned in
him that form was dark and terrible. And he descended upon Arda in power and
majesty greater than any other of the Valar, as a mountain that wades in the
sea and has its head above the clouds and is clad in ice and crowned with smoke
and fire; and the light of the eyes of Melkor was like a flame that withers
with heat and pierces with a deadly cold. Thus began the first battle of the Valar
with Melkor for the dominion of Arda; and of those tumults the Elves know but
little. For what has here been declared is come from the Valar themselves, with
whom the Eldaliл spoke in the land of Valinor, and by whom they were
instructed; but little would the Valar ever tell of the wars before the coming
of the Elves. Yet it is told among the Eldar that the Valar endeavoured ever,
in despite of Melkor, to rule the Earth and to prepare it for the coming of the
Firstborn; and they built lands and Melkor destroyed them; valleys they delved
and Melkor raised them up; mountains they carved and Melkor threw them down;
seas they hollowed and Melkor spilled them; and naught might have peace or come
to lasting growth, for as surely as the Valar began a labour so would Melkor
undo it or corrupt it. And yet their labour was not all in vain; and though
nowhere and in no work was their will and purpose wholly fulfilled, and all
things were in hue and shape other than the Valar had at first intended, slowly
nonetheless the Earth was fashioned and made firm. And thus was the habitation
of the Children of Ilъvatar established at the last in the Deeps of Time and
amidst the innumerable stars. VALAQUENTA Account of the Valar and Maiar according
to the lore of the Eldar In the beginning
Eru, the One, who in the Elvish tongue is named Ilъvatar, made the Ainur of his
thought; and they made a great Music before him. In this Music the World was
begun; for Ilъvatar made visible the song of the Ainur, and they beheld it as a
light in the darkness. And many among them became enamoured of its beauty, and
of its history which they saw beginning and unfolding as in a vision. Therefore
Ilъvatar gave to their vision Being, and set it amid the Void, and the Secret
Fire was sent to burn at the heart of the World; and it was called Eд. Then those of the Ainur who desired it arose
and entered into the World at the beginning of Time; and it was their task to
achieve it, and by their labours to fulfil the vision which they had seen. Long
they laboured in the regions of Eд, which are vast beyond the thought of Elves
and Men, until in the time appointed was made Arda, the Kingdom of Earth. Then
they put on the raiment of Earth and descended into it, and dwelt therein. Of the Valar The Great among
these spirits the Elves name the Valar, the Powers of Arda, and Men have often
called them gods. The Lords of the Valar are seven; and the Valier, the Queens
of the Valar, are seven also. These were their names in the Elvish tongue as it
was spoken in Valinor, though they have other names in the speech of the Elves
in Middle-earth, and their names among Men are manifold. The names of the Lords
in due order are: Manwл, Ulmo, Aulл, Oromл, Mandos, Lуrien, and Tulkas; and the
names of the Queens are: Varda, Yavanna, Nienna, Estл, Vairл, Vбna, and Nessa.
Melkor is counted no longer among the Valar, and his name is not spoken upon
Earth. Manwл and Melkor were brethren in the
thought of Ilъvatar. The mightiest of those Ainur who came into the World was
in his beginning Melkor; but Manwл is dearest to Ilъvatar and understands most
clearly his purposes. He was appointed to be, in the fullness of time, the
first of all Kings: lord of the realm of Arda and ruler of all that dwell
therein. In Arda his delight is in the winds and the clouds, and in all the
regions of the air, from the heights to the depths, from the utmost borders of
the Veil of Arda to the breezes that blow in the grass. Sъlimo he is surnamed,
Lord of the Breath of Arda. All swift birds, strong of wing, he loves, and they
come and go at his bidding. With Manwл dwells Varda, Lady of the Stars,
who knows all the regions of Eд. Too great is her beauty to be declared in the
words of Men or of Elves; for the light of Ilъvatar lives still in her face. In
light is her power and her joy. Out of the deeps of Eд she came to the aid of
Manwл; for Melkor she knew from before the making of the Music and rejected
him, and he hated her, and feared her more than all others whom Eru made. Manwл
and Varda are seldom parted, and they remain in Valinor. Their halls are above
the everlasting snow, upon Oiolossл, the uttermost tower of Taniquetil, tallest
of all the mountains upon Earth. When Manwл there ascends his throne and looks
forth, if Varda is beside him, he sees further than all other eyes, through
mist, and through darkness, and over the leagues of the sea. And if Manwл is
with her, Varda hears more clearly than all other ears the sound of voices that
cry from east to west, from the hills and the valleys, and from the dark places
that Melkor has made upon Earth. Of all the Great Ones who dwell in this world
the Elves hold Varda most in reverence and love. Elbereth they name her, and
they call upon her name out of the shadows of Middle-earth, and uplift it in
song at the rising of the stars. Ulmo is the Lord of Waters. He is alone. He
dwells nowhere long, but moves as he will in all the deep waters about the
Earth or under the Earth. He is next in might to Manwл, and before Valinor was
made he was closest to him in friendship; but thereafter he went seldom to the
councils of the Valar, unless great matters were in debate. For he kept all
Arda in thought, and he has no need of any resting-place. Moreover he does not
love to walk upon land, and will seldom clothe himself in a body after the
manner of his peers. If the Children of Eru beheld him they were filled with a
great dread; for the arising of the King of the Sea was terrible, as a mounting
wave that strides to the land, with dark helm foam-crested and raiment of mail
shimmering from silver down into shadows of green. The trumpets of Manwл are
loud, but Ulmo's voice is deep as the deeps of the ocean which he only has
seen. Nonetheless Ulmo loves both Elves and Men,
and never abandoned them, not even when they lay under the wrath of the Valar.
At times he win come unseen to the shores of Middle-earth, or pass far inland
up firths of the sea, and there make music upon his great horns, the Ulumъri,
that are wrought of white shell; and those to whom that music comes hear it
ever after in their hearts, and longing for the sea never leaves them again.
But mostly Ulmo speaks to those who dwell in Middle-earth with voices that are
heard only as the music of water. For all seas, lakes, rivers, fountains and
springs are in his government; so that the Elves say that the spirit of Ulmo
runs in all the veins of the world. Thus news comes to Ulmo, even in the deeps,
of all the needs and griefs of Arda, which otherwise would be hidden from
Manwл. Aulл has might little less than Ulmo. His
lordship is over all the substances of which Arda is made. In the beginning he
wrought much in fellowship with Manwл and Ulmo; and the fashioning of all lands
was his labour. He is a smith and a master of all crafts, and he delights in
works of skill, however small, as much as in the mighty building of old. His
are the gems that lie deep in the Earth and the gold that is fair in the hand,
no less than the walls of the mountains and the basins of the sea. The Noldor
learned most of him, and he was ever their friend. Melkor was jealous of him,
for Aulл was most like himself in thought and in powers; and there was long
strife between them, in which Melkor ever marred or undid the works of Aulл,
and Aulл grew weary in repairing the tumults and disorders of Melkor. Both,
also, desired to make things of their own that should be new and unthought of
by others, and delighted in the praise of their skill. But Aulл remained
faithful to Eru and submitted all that he did to his will; and he did not envy
the works of others, but sought and gave counsel. Whereas Melkor spent his
spirit in envy and hate, until at last he could make nothing save in mockery of
the thought of others, and all their works he destroyed if he could. The spouse of Aulл is Yavanna, the Giver of
Fruits. She is the lover of all things that grow in the earth, and all their
countless forms she holds in her mind, from the trees like towers in forests
long ago to the moss upon stones or the small and secret things in the mould.
In reverence Yavanna is next to Varda among the Queens of the Valar. In the
form of a woman she is tall, and robed in green; but at times she takes other
shapes. Some there are who have seen her standing like a tree under heaven,
crowned with the Sun; and from all its branches there spilled a golden dew upon
the barren earth, and it grew green with corn; but the roots of the tree were
in the waters of Ulmo, and the winds of Manwл spoke in its leaves. Kementбri,
Queen of the Earth, she is surnamed in the Eldarin tongue. The Fлanturi, masters of spirits, are
brethren, and they are called most often Mandos and Lуrien. Yet these are
rightly the names of the places of their dwelling, and their true names are
Nбmo and Irmo. Nбmo the elder dwells in Mandos, which is
westward in Valinor. He is the keeper of the Houses of the Dead, and the
summoner of the spirits of the slain. He forgets nothing; and he knows all
things that shall be, save only those that lie still in the freedom of
Ilъvatar. He is the Doomsman of the Valar; but he pronounces his dooms and his
Judgements only at the bidding of Manwл. Vairл the Weaver is his spouse, who
weaves all things that have ever been in Time into her storied webs, and the
halls of Mandos that ever widen as the ages pass are clothed with them. Irmo the younger is the master of visions
and dreams. In Lуrien are his gardens in the land of the Valar, and they are
the fairest of all places in the world, filled with many spirits. Estл the
gentle, healer of hurts and of weariness, is his spouse. Grey is her raiment;
and rest is her gift. She walks not by day, but sleeps upon an island in the
tree-shadowed lake of Lуrellin. From the fountains of Irmo and Estл all those
who dwell in Valinor draw refreshment; and often the Valar come themselves to
Lуrien and there find repose and easing of the burden of Arda. Mightier than Estл is Nienna, sister of the
Fлanturi; she dwells alone. She is acquainted with grief, and mourns for every
wound that Arda has suffered in the marring of Melkor. So great was her sorrow,
as the Music unfolded, that her song turned to lamentation long before its end,
and the sound of mourning was woven into the themes of the World before it
began. But she does not weep for herself; and those who hearken to her learn
pity, and endurance in hope. Her halls are west of West, upon the borders of
the world; and she comes seldom to the city of Valimar where all is glad. She
goes rather to the halls of Mandos, which are near to her own; and all those
who wait in Mandos cry to her, for she brings strength to the spirit and turns
sorrow to wisdom. The windows of her house look outward from the walls of the
world. Greatest in strength and deeds of prowess is
Tulkas, who is surnamed Astaldo, the Valiant. He came last to Arda, to aid the
Valar in the first battles with Melkor. He delights in wrestling and in
contests of strength; and he rides no steed, for he can outrun all things that
go on feet, and he is tireless. His hair and beard are golden, and his flesh
ruddy; his weapons are his hands. He has little heed for either the past or the
future, and is of no avail as a counsellor, but is a hardy friend. His spouse
is Nessa, the sister of Oromл, and she also is lithe and fleetfooted. Deer she loves,
and they follow her train whenever she goes in the wild; but she can outrun
them, swift as an arrow with the wind in her hair. In dancing she delights, and
she dances in Valimar on lawns of never-fading green. Oromл is a mighty lord. If he is less strong
than Tulkas, he is more dreadful in anger; whereas Tulkas laughs ever, in sport
or in war, and even in the face of Melkor he laughed in battles before the
Elves were born. Oromл loved the lands of Middle-earth, and he left them
unwillingly and came last to Valinor; and often of old he passed back east over
the mountains and returned with his host to the hills and the plains. He is a
hunter of monsters and fell beasts, and he delights in horses and in hounds;
and all trees he loves, for which reason he is called Aldaron, and by the
Sindar Tauron, the Lord of Forests. Nahar is the name of his horse, white in
the sun, and shining silver at night. The Valarуma is the name of his great
horn, the sound of which is like the upgoing of the Sun in scarlet, or the sheer
lightning cleaving the clouds. Above all the horns of his host it was heard in
the woods that Yavanna brought forth in Valinor; for there Oromл would train
his folk and his beasts for the pursuit of the evil creatures of. Melkor. The
spouse of Oromл is Vбna, the Ever-young; she is the younger sister of Yavanna.
All flowers spring as she passes and open if she glances upon them; and all
birds sing at her coming. These are the names of the Valar and the
Valier, and here is told in brief their likenesses, such as the Eldar beheld
them in Aman. But fair and noble as were the forms in which they were manifest
to the Children of Ilъvatar, they were but a veil upon their beauty and their
power. And if little is here said of all that the Eldar once knew, that is as
nothing compared with their true being, which goes back into regions and ages
far beyond our thought. Among them Nine were of chief power and reverence; but
one is removed from their number, and Eight remain, the Aratar, the High Ones
of Arda: Manwл and Varda, Ulmo, Yavanna and Aulл, Mandos, Nienna, and Oromл.
Though Manwл is their King and holds their allegiance under Eru, in majesty
they are peers, surpassing beyond compare all others, whether of the Valar and
the Maiar, or of any other order that Ilъvatar has sent into Eд. Of the Maiar With the Valar came
other spirits whose being also began before the World, of the same order as the
Valar but of less degree. These are the Maiar, the people of the Valar, and
their servants and helpers. Their number is not known to the Elves, and few
have names in any of the tongues of the Children of Ilъvatar; for though it is
otherwise in Aman, in Middle-earth the Maiar have seldom appeared in form
visible to Elves and Men. Chief among the Maiar of Valinor whose names
are remembered in the histories of the Elder Days are Ilmarл, the handmaid of
Varda, and Eцnwл, the banner-bearer and herald of Manwл, whose might in arms is
surpassed by none in Arda. But of all the Maiar Ossл and Uinen are best known
to the Children of Ilъvatar. Ossл is a vassal of Ulmo, and he is master
of the seas that wash the shores of Middle-earth. He does not go in the deeps,
but loves the coasts and the isles, and rejoices in the winds of Manwл; for in
storm he delights, and laughs amid the roaring of the waves. His spouse is
Uinen, the Lady of the Seas, whose hair lies spread through all waters under
sky. All creatures she loves that live in the salt streams, and all weeds that
grow there; to her mariners cry, for she can lay calm upon the waves,
restraining the wildness of Ossл. The Nъmenуreans lived long in her protection,
and held her in reverence equal to the Valar. Melkor hated the Sea, for he could not
subdue it. It is said that in the making of Arda he endeavoured to draw Ossл to
his allegiance, promising to him all the realm and power of Ulmo, if he would
serve him. So it was that long ago there arose great tumults in the sea that
wrought ruin to the lands. But Uinen, at the prayer of Aulл, restrained Ossл
and brought him before Ulmo; and he was pardoned and returned to his
allegiance, to which he has remained faithful. For the most part; for the
delight in violence has never wholly departed from him, and at times he will
rage in his wilfulness without any command from Ulmo his lord. Therefore those
who dwell by the sea or go up in ships may love him, but they do not trust him. Melian was the name of a Maia who served
both Vбna and Estл; she dwelt long in Lуrien, tending the trees that flower in
the gardens of Irmo, ere she came to Middle-earth. Nightingales sang about her
wherever she went. Wisest of the Maiar was Olуrin. He too dwelt
in Lуrien, but his ways took him often to the house of Nienna, and of her he
learned pity and patience. Of Melian much is told in the Quenta Silmarillion. But of Olуrin that
tale does not speak; for though he loved the Elves, he walked among them
unseen, or in form as one of them, and they did not know whence came the fair
visions or the promptings of wisdom that he put into their hearts. In later
days he was the friend of all the Children of Ilъvatar, and took pity on their
sorrows; and those who listened to him awoke from despair and put away the
imaginations of darkness. Of the Enemies Last of all is set
the name of Melkor, He who arises in Might. But that name he has forfeited; and
the Noldor, who among the Elves suffered most from his malice, will not utter
it, and they name him Morgoth, the Dark Enemy of the World. Great might was given
to him by Ilъvatar, and he was coeval with Manwл. In the powers and knowledge
of all the other Valar he had part, but he turned them to evil purposes, and
squandered his strength in violence and tyranny. For he coveted Arda and all
that was in it, desiring the kingship of Manwл and dominion over the realms of
his peers. From splendour he fell through arrogance to
contempt for all things save himself, a spirit wasteful and pitiless.
Understanding he turned to subtlety in perverting to his own will all that he
would use, until he became a liar without shame. He began with the desire of
Light, but when he could not possess it for himself alone, he descended through
fire and wrath into a great burning, down into Darkness. And darkness he used
most in his evil works upon Arda, and filled it with fear for all living
things. Yet so great was the power of his uprising
that in ages forgotten he contended with Manwл and all the Valar, and through
long years in Arda held dominion over most of the lands of the Earth. But he
was not alone. For of the Maiar many were drawn to his splendour in the days of
his greatness, and remained in that allegiance down into his darkness; and
others he corrupted afterwards to his service with lies and treacherous gifts.
Dreadful among these spirits were the Valaraukar, the scourges of fire that in
Middle-earth were called the Balrogs, demons of terror. Among those of his servants that have names
the greatest was that spirit whom the Eldar called Sauron, or Gorthaur the
Cruel. In his beginning he was of the Maiar of Aulл, and he remained mighty in
the lore of that people. In all the deeds of Melkor the Morgoth upon Arda, in
his vast works and in the deceits of his cunning, Sauron had a part, and was
only less evil than his master in that for long he served another and not
himself. But in after years he rose like a shadow of Morgoth and a ghost of his
malice, and walked behind him on the same ruinous path down into the Void. HERE ENDS THE VALAQUENTA QUENTA SILMARILLION The History of the
Chapter 1 Of the Beginning of Days It is told among the
wise that the First War began before Arda was full-shaped, and ere yet there
was any thing that grew or walked upon earth; and for long Melkor had the upper
hand. But in the midst of the war a spirit of great strength and hardihood came
to the aid of the Valar, hearing in the far heaven that there was battle in the
Little Kingdom; and Arda was filled with the sound of his laughter. So came
Tulkas the Strong, whose anger passes like a mighty wind, scattering cloud and
darkness before it; and Melkor fled before his wrath and his laughter, and
forsook Arda, and there was peace for a long age. And Tulkas remained and
became one of the Valar of the Kingdom of Arda; but Melkor brooded in the outer
darkness, and his hate was given to Tulkas for ever after. In that time the Valar brought order to the
seas and the lands and the mountains, and Yavanna planted at last the seeds
that she had long devised. And since, when the fires were subdued or buried
beneath the primeval hills, there was need of light, Aulл at the prayer of
Yavanna wrought two mighty lamps for the lighting of the Middle-earth which he
had built amid the encircling seas. Then Varda filled the lamps and Manwл
hallowed them, and the Valar set them upon high pillars, more lofty far than
are any mountains of the later days. One lamp they raised near to the north of
Middle-earth, and it was named Illuin; and the other was raised in the south,
and it was named Ormal; and the light of the Lamps of the Valar flowed out over
the Earth, so that all was lit as it were in a changeless day. Then the seeds that Yavanna had sown began
swiftly to sprout and to burgeon, and there arose a multitude of growing things
great and small, mosses and grasses and great ferns, and trees whose tops were
crowned with cloud as they were living mountains, but whose feet were wrapped
in a green twilight. And beasts came forth and dwelt in the grassy plains, or
in the rivers and the lakes, or walked in the shadows of the woods. As yet no
flower had bloomed nor any bird had sung, for these things waited still their
time in the bosom of Yavanna; but wealth there was of her imagining, and
nowhere more rich than in the midmost parts of the Earth, where the light of
both the Lamps met and blended. And there upon the Isle of Almaren in the Great
Lake was the first dwelling of the Valar when all things were young, and
new-made green was yet a marvel in the eyes of the makers; and they were long
content. Now it came to pass that while the Valar
rested from their labours, and watched the growth and unfolding of the things
that they had devised and begun, Manwл ordained a great feast; and the Valar
and an their host came at his bidding. But Aulл and Tulkas were weary; for the
craft of Aulл and the strength of Tulkas had been at the service of an without
ceasing fax the days of their labour. And Melkor knew of an that was done, for
even then he had secret friends and spies among the Maiar whom he had converted
to his cause; and far off in the darkness he was filled with hatred, being
jealous of the work of his peers, whom he desired to make subject to himself.
Therefore he gathered to himself spirits out of the halls of Eд that he had
perverted to his service, and he deemed himself strong. And seeing now his time
he drew near again to Arda, and looked down upon it, and the beauty of the
Earth in its Spring filled him the more with hate. Now therefore the Valar were gathered upon
Almaren, fearing no evil, and because of the light of Illuin they did not
perceive the shadow in the north that was cast from afar by Melkor; for he was
grown dark as the Night of the Void. And it is sung that in that feast of the
Spring of Arda Tulkas espoused Nessa the sister of Oromл, and she danced before
the Valar upon the green grass of Almaren. Then Tulkas slept, being weary and content,
and Melkor deemed that his hour had come. And he passed therefore over the
Walls of the Night with his host, and came to Middle-earth far in the north;
and the Valar were not aware of him. Now Melkor began the delving and building of
a vast fortress, deep under Earth, beneath dark mountains where the beams of
Illuin were cold and dim. That stronghold was named Utumno. And though the
Valar knew naught of it as yet, nonetheless the evil of Melkor and the blight
of his hatred flowed out thence, and the Spring of Arda was marred. Green
things fell sick and rotted, and rivers were choked with weeds and slime, and
fens were made, rank and poisonous, the breeding place of flies; and forests
grew dark and perilous, the haunts of fear; and beasts became monsters of horn
and ivory and dyed the earth with blood. Then the Valar knew indeed that Melkor
was at work again, and they sought for his hiding place. But Melkor, trusting
in the strength of Utumno and the might of his servants, came forth suddenly to
war, and struck the first blow, ere the Valar were prepared; and he assailed
the lights of Illuin and Ormal, and cast down their pillars and broke their
lamps. In the overthrow of the mighty pillars lands were broken and seas arose
in tumult; and when the lamps were spilled destroying flame was poured out over
the Earth. And the shape of Arda and the symmetry of its waters and its lands
was marred in that time, so that the first designs of the Valar were never
after restored. In the confusion and the darkness Melkor
escaped, though fear fell upon him; for above the roaring of the seas he heard
the voice of Manwл as a mighty wind, and the earth trembled beneath the feet of
Tulkas. But he came to Utumno ere Tulkas could overtake him; and there he lay
hid. And the Valar could not at that time overcome him, for the greater part of
their strength was needed to restrain the tumults of the Earth, and to save
from ruin all that could be saved of their labour; and afterwards they feared
to rend the Earth again, until they knew where the Children of Ilъvatar were
dwelling, who were yet to come in a time that was hidden from the Valar. Thus ended the Spring of Arda. The dwelling
of the Valar upon Almaren was utterly destroyed, and they had no abiding place
upon the face of the Earth. Therefore they departed from Middle-earth and went
to the Land of Aman, the westernmost of all lands upon the borders of the
world; for its west shores looked upon the Outer Sea, that is called by the
Elves Ekkaia, encircling the Kingdom of Arda. How wide is that sea none know
but the Valar; and beyond it are the Walls of the Night. But the east shores of
Aman were the uttermost end of Belegaer, the Great Sea at the West; and since
Melkor was returned to Middle-earth and they could not yet overcome him, the
Valar fortified their dwelling, and upon the shores of the sea they raised the
Pelуri, the Mountains of Aman, highest upon Earth. And above all the mountains
of the Pelуri was that height upon whose summit Manwл set his throne. Taniquetil
the Elves name that holy mountain, and Oiolossл Everlasting Whiteness, and
Elerrнna Crowned with Stars, and many names beside; but the Sindar spoke of it
in their later tongue as Amon Uilos. From their halls upon Taniquetil Manwл and
Varda could look out across the Earth even into the furthest East. Behind the walls of the Pelуri the Valar
established their domain in that region which is called Valinor, and there were
their houses, their gardens, and their towers. In that guarded land the Valar
gathered great store of light and an the fairest things that were saved from
the ruin; and many others yet fairer they made anew, and Valinor became more
beautiful even than Middle-earth in the Spring of Arda; and it was blessed, for
the Deathless dwelt there, and there naught faded nor withered, neither was
there any stain upon flower or leaf in that land, nor any corruption or
sickness in anything that lived; for the very stones and waters were hallowed. And when Valinor was full-wrought and the
mansions of the Valar were established, in the midst of the plain beyond the
mountains they built their city, Valmar of many bells. Before its western gate
there was a green mound, Ezellohar, that is named also Corollairл; and Yavanna
hallowed it, and she sat there long upon the green grass and sang a song of
power, in which was set all her thought of things that grow in the earth. But
Nienna thought in silence, and watered the mould with tears. In that time the
Valar were gathered together to hear the song of Yavanna, and they sat silent
upon their thrones of council in the Mбhanaxar, the Ring of Doom near to the
golden gates of Valmar, and Yavanna Kementбri sang before them and they
watched. And as they watched, upon the mound there
came forth two slender shoots; and silence was over all the world in that hour,
nor was there any other sound save the chanting of Yavanna. Under her song the
saplings grew and became fair and tail, and came to flower; and thus there
awoke in the world the Two Trees of Valinor. Of all things which Yavanna made
they have most renown, and about their fate all the tales of the Elder Days are
woven. The one had leaves of dark green that
beneath were as shining silver, and from each of his countless flowers a dew of
silver light was ever falling, and the earth beneath was dappled with the
shadow of his fluttering leaves. The other bore leaves of a young green like
the new-opened beech; their edges were of glittering gold. Flowers swung upon
her branches in clusters of yellow flame, formed each to a glowing horn that
spilled a golden rain upon the ground; and from the blossom of that tree there
came forth warmth and a great light. Telperion the one was called in Valinor,
and Silpion, and Ninquelуtл, and many other names; but Laurelin the other was,
and Malinalda, and Culъrien, and many names in song beside. In seven hours the glory of each tree waxed
to full and waned again to naught; and each awoke once more to life an hour
before the other ceased to shine. Thus in Valinor twice every day there came a
gentle hour of softer light when both trees were faint and their gold and
silver beams were mingled. Telperion was the elder of the trees and came first
to full stature and to bloom; and that first hour in which he shone, the white
glimmer of a silver dawn, the Valar reckoned not into the tale of hours, but
named it the Opening Hour, and counted from it the ages of their reign in
Valinor. Therefore at the sixth hour of the First Day, and of all the joyful
days thereafter, until the Darkening of Valinor, Telperion ceased his time of
flower; and at the twelfth hour Laurelin her blossoming. And each day of the
Valar in Aman contained twelve hours, and ended with the second mingling of the
lights, in which Laurelin was waning but Telperion was waxing. But the light that
was spilled from the trees endured long, ere it was taken up into the airs or
sank down into the earth; and the dews of Telperion and the rain that fell from
Laurelin Varda hoarded in great vats like shining lakes, that were to all the
land of the Valar as wells of water and of light. Thus began the Days of the
Bliss of Valinor; and thus began also the Count of Time. But as the ages drew on to the hour
appointed by Ilъvatar for the coming of the Firstborn, Middle-earth lay in a
twilight beneath the stars that Varda had wrought in the ages forgotten of her
labours in Eд. And in the darkness Melkor dwelt, and still often walked abroad,
in many shapes of power and fear, and he wielded cold and fire, from the tops
of the mountains to the deep furnaces that are beneath them; and whatsoever was
cruel or violent or deadly in those days is laid to his charge. From the beauty and bliss of Valinor the
Valar came seldom over the mountains to Middle-earth, but gave to the land
beyond the Pelуri their care and their love. And in the midst of the Blessed
Realm were the mansions of Aulл, and there he laboured long. For in the making
of all things in that land he had the chief part, and he wrought there many
beautiful and shapely works both openly and in secret. Of him comes the lore
and knowledge of the Earth and of an things that it contains: whether the lore
of those that make not, but seek only for the understanding of what is, or the
lore of an craftsmen: the weaver, the shaper of wood, and the worker in metals;
and the tiller and husbandman also, though these last and all that deal with
things that grow and bear fruit must look also to the spouse of Aulл, Yavanna
Kementбri. Aulл it is who is named the Friend of the Noldor, for of him they
learned much in after days, and they are the most skilled of the Elves; and in
their own fashion, according to the gifts which Ilъvatar gave to them, they
added much to his teaching, delighting to tongues and in scripts, and in the
figures of broidery, of drawing, and of carving. The Noldor also it was who
first achieved the making of gems; and the fairest of an gems were the
Silmarils, and they are lost. But Manwл Sъlimo, highest and holiest of the
Valar, sat upon the borders of Aman, forsaking not in his thought the Outer
Lands. For his throne was set in majesty upon the pinnacle of Taniquetil, the
highest of the mountains of the world, standing upon the margin of the sea.
Spirits in the shape of hawks and eagles flew ever to and from his halls; and
their eyes could see to the depths of the seas, and pierce the hidden caverns
beneath the world. Thus they brought word to him of well nigh all that passed
in Arda; yet some things were hidden even from the eyes of Manwл and the
servants of Manwл, for where Melkor sat in his dark thought impenetrable
shadows lay. Manwл has no thought for his own honour, and
is not jealous of his power, but rules all to peace. The Vanyar he loved best
of all the Elves, and of him they received song and poetry; for poetry is the
delight of Manwл, and the song of words is his music. His raiment is blue, and
blue is the fire of his eyes, and his sceptre is of sapphire, which the Noldor
wrought for him; and he was appointed to be the vicegerent of Ilъvatar, King of
the world of Valar and Elves and Men, and the chief defence against the evil of
Melkor. With Manwл dwelt Varda the most beautiful, she who in the Sindarin
tongue is named Elbereth, Queen of the Valar, maker of die stars; and with than
were a great host of spirits in blessedness. But Ulmo was alone, and he abode not in
Valinor, nor ever came thither unless there were need for a great council; he
dwelt from the beginning of Arda in the Outer Ocean, and still he dwells there.
Thence he governs the flowing of all waters, and the ebbing, the courses of an
rivers and the replenishment of Springs, the distilling of all dews and rain in
every land beneath the sky. In the deep places he gives thought to music great
and terrible; and the echo of that music runs through all the veins of the
world in sorrow and in joy; for it joyful is the fountain that rises in the
sun, its springs are in the wells of sorrow unfathomed at the foundations of
the Earth. The Teleri learned much of Ulmo, and for this reason their music has
both sadness and enchantment. Salmar came with him to Arda, he who made the
horns of Ulmo that none may ever forget who once has heard them; and Ossл and
Uinen also, to whom he gave the government of the waves and the movements of
the Inner Seas, and many other spirits beside. And thus it was by the power of
Ulmo that even under the darkness of Melkor life coursed still through many
secret lodes, and the Earth did not die; and to all who were lost in that
darkness or wandered far from the light of the Valar the ear of Ulmo was ever
open; nor has he ever forsaken Middle-earth, and whatsoever may since have
befallen of ruin or of change he has not ceased to take thought for it, and
will not until the end of days. And in that time of dark Yavanna also was
unwilling utterly to forsake the Outer Lands; for all things teat grow are dear
to her, and she mourned for the works that she had begun in Middle-earth but
Melkor had |marred. Therefore leaving the house of Aulл and the flowering meads
of Valinor she would come at times and heal the hurts of Melkor; and returning
she would ever urge the Valar to that war with his evil dominion that they must
surely wage ere the coming of die Firstborn. And Oromл tamer of beasts would
ride too at whiles in the darkness of the unlit forests; as a mighty hunter he
came with spear and bow, pursuing to the death the monsters and fell creatures
of the kingdom of Melkor, and his white horse Nahar shone like silver in the
shadows. Then the sleeping earth trembled at the beat of his golden hooves, and
in the twilight of the world Oromл would sound the Valarуma his great horn upon
the plains of Arda; whereat the mountains echoed, and the shadows of evil fled
away, and Melkor himself quailed in Utumno, foreboding the wrath to come. But
even as Oromл passed the servants of Melkor would gather again; and the lands
were filled with shadows and deceit. Now all is said concerning the manner of the
Earth and its rulers in the beginning of days, and ere the world became such as
the Children of Ilъvatar have known it. For Elves and Men are the Children of
Ilъvatar; and since they understood not fully that theme by which the Children
entered into the Music, none of the Ainur dared to add anything to their
fashion. For which reason the Valar are to these kindreds rather their elders
and their chieftains than their masters; and if ever in their dealings with
Elves and Men the Ainur have endeavoured to force them when they would not be
guided, seldom has this turned to good, howsoever good the intent. The dealings
of the Ainur have indeed been mostly with the Elves, for Ilъvatar made them
more like in nature to the Ainur, though less in might and stature; whereas to
Men he gave strange gifts. For it is said that after the departure of
the Valar there was silence, and for an age Ilъvatar sat alone in thought. Then
he spoke and said: 'Behold I love the Earth, which shall be a mansion for the
Quendi and the Atani! But the Quendi shall be the fairest of all earthly
creatures, and they shall have and shall conceive and bring forth more beauty
than all my Children; and they shall have the greater bliss in this world. But
to the Atani I will give a new gift.' Therefore to willed that the hearts of
Men should seek beyond the world and should find no rest therein; but they
should have a virtue to shape their life, amid the powers and chances of the
world, beyond the Music of the Ainur, which is as fate to all things else; and
of their operation everything should be, in form and deed, completed, and the
world fulfilled unto the last and smallest. But Ilъvatar knew that Men, being set amid
the turmoils of the powers of the world, would stray often, and would not use
their gifts in harmony; and he said: ''These too in their time shall find that
all that they do redounds at the end only to the glory of my work.' Yet the
Elves believe that Men are often a grief to Manwл, who knows most of the mind
of Ilъvatar; for it seems to the Elves that Men resemble Melkor most of all the
Ainur, although he has ever feared and hated them, even those that served him. It is one with this gift of freedom that the
children of Men dwell only a short space in the world alive, and are not bound
to it, and depart soon whither the Elves know not. Whereas the Elves remain
until the end of days, and their love of the Earth and all the world is more
single and more poignant therefore, and as the years lengthen ever more
sorrowful. For the Elves die not till tile world dies, unless they are slain or
waste in grief (and to both these seeming deaths they are subject); neither
does age subdue their strength, unless one grow weary of ten thousand
centuries; and dying they are gathered to the halls of Mandos in Valinor,
whence they may in time return. But the sons of Men die indeed, and leave the
world; wherefore they are called the Guests, or the Strangers. Death is their
fate, the gift of Ilъvatar, which as Time wears even the Powers shall envy. But
Melkor has cast his shadow upon it, and confounded it with darkness, and
brought forth evil out of good, and fear out of hope. Yet of old the Valar
declared to the Elves in Valinor that Men shall join in the Second Music of the
Ainur; whereas Ilъvatar has hot revealed what he purposes for the Elves after
the World's end, and Melkor has not discovered it. Chapter 2 Of Aulл and Yavanna It is told that in their beginning the
Dwarves were made by Aulл in the darkness of Middle-earth; for so greatly did
Aulл desire the coming of the Children, to have learners to whom he could teach
his lore and his crafts, that he was unwilling to await the fulfilment of the
designs of Ilъvatar. And Aulл made the Dwarves even as they still are, because
the forms of the Children who were to come were unclear to his mind, and
because the power of Melkor was yet over the Earth; and he wished therefore
that they should be strong and unyielding. But fearing that the other Valar
might blame his work, he wrought in secret: and he made first the Seven Fathers
of the Dwarves in a hall under the mountains in Middle-earth. Now Ilъvatar knew what was done, and in the
very hour that Aulл's work was complete, and he was pleased, and began to
instruct the Dwarves in the speech that he had devised for them, Ilъvatar spoke
to him; and Aulл heard his voice and was silent. And the voice of Ilъvatar said
to him: 'Why hast thou done this? Why dost thou attempt a thing which thou
knowest is beyond thy power and thy authority? For thou hast from me as a gift
thy own bring only, and no more; and therefore the creatures of thy hand and
mind can live only by that being, moving when thou thinkest to move them, and
if thy thought be elsewhere, standing idle. Is that thy desire?' Then Aulл answered: 'I did not desire such
lordship. I desired things other than I am, to love and to teach them, so that
they too might perceive the beauty of Eд, which thou hast caused to be. For it
seemed to me that there is great room in Arda for many things that might
rejoice in it, yet it is for the most part empty still, and dumb. And in my
impatience I have fallen into folly. Yet the making of thing is in my heart
from my own making by thee; and the child of little understanding that makes a
play of the deeds of his father may do so without thought of mockery, but
because he is the son of his father. But what shall I do now, so that thou be
not angry with me for ever? As a child to his father, I offer to thee these
things, the work of the hands which thou hast made. Do with them what thou
wilt. But should I not rather destroy the work of my presumption?' Then Aulл took up a great hammer to smite
the Dwarves; and he wept. But Ilъvatar had compassion upon Aulл and his desire,
because of his humility; and the Dwarves shrank from the hammer and wore
afraid, and they bowed down their heads and begged for mercy. And the voice of
Ilъvatar said to Aulл: 'Thy offer I accepted even as it was made. Dost thou not
see that these things have now a life of their own, and speak with their own
voices? Else they would not have flinched from thy blow, nor from any command
of thy will.' Then Aulл cast down his hammer and was glad, and he gave thanks
to Ilъvatar, saying: 'May Eru bless my work and amend it!' But Ilъvatar spoke again and said: 'Even as
I gave being to the thoughts of the Ainur at the beginning of the World, so now
I have taken up thy desire and given to it a place therein; but in no other way
will I amend thy handiwork, and as thou hast made it, so shall it be. But I
will not suffer this: that these should come before the Firstborn of my design,
nor that thy impatience should be rewarded. They shall sleep now in the
darkness under stone, and shall not come forth until the Firstborn have
awakened upon Earth; and until that time thou and they shall wait, though long
it seem. But when the time comes I will awaken them, and they shall be to thee
as children; and often strife shall arise between thine and mine, the children
of my adoption and the children of my choice.' Then Aulл took the Seven Fathers of the
Dwarves, and laid them to rest in far-sundered places; and he returned to
Valinor, and waited while the long years lengthened. Since they were to come in the days of the
power of Melkor, Aulл made the Dwarves strong to endure. Therefore they are
stone-hard, stubborn, fast in friendship and in enmity, and they suffer toil
and hanger and hurt of body more hardily than all other speaking peoples; and
they live long, far beyond the span of Men, yet not for ever. Aforetime it was
held among the Elves in Middle-earth that dying the Dwarves returned to the
earth and the stone of which they were made; yet that is not their own belief.
For they say that Aulл the Maker, whom they call Mahal, cares for them, and
gathers them to Mandos in halls set apart; and that he declared to their
Fathers of old that Ilъvatar will hallow them and give them a place among the
Children in the End. Then their part shall be to serve Aulл and to aid him in
the remaking of Arda after the Last Battle. They say also that the Seven
Fathers of the Dwarves return to live again in their own kin and to bear once
more their ancient names: of whom Durin was the most renowned in after ages,
father of that kindred most friendly to the Elves, whose mansions were at
Khazad-dыm. Now when Aulл laboured in the making of the
Dwarves he kept this work hidden from the other Valar; but at last he opened
his mind to Yavanna and told her of all that had come to pass. Then Yavanna
said to him: 'Eru is merciful. Now I see that thy heart rejoiceth, as indeed it
may; for thou hast received not only forgiveness but bounty. Yet because thou
hiddest this thought from me until its achievement, thy children will have
little love for the things of my love. They will love first the things made by
their own hands, as doth their father. They will delve in the earth, and the
things that grow and live upon the earth they will not heed. Many a tree shall
feel the bite of their iron without pity.' But Aulл answered: 'That shall also be true
of the Children of Ilъvatar; for they will eat and they will build. And though
the things of thy realm have worth in themselves, and would have worth if no
Children were to come, yet Eru will give them dominion, and they shall use all
that they find in Arda: though not, by the purpose of Eru, without respect or
without gratitude.' 'Not unless Melkor darken their hearts,'
said Yavanna. And she was not appeased, but grieved in heart, fearing what
might be done upon Middle-earth in days to come. Therefore she went before
Manwл, and she did not betray the counsel of Aulл, but she said: 'King of Arda,
is it true, as Aulл hath said to me, that the Children when they come shall
have dominion over all the things of my labour, to do as they will therewith?' 'It is true,' said Manwл. 'But why dost thou
ask, for thou hadst no need of the teaching of Aulл?' Then Yavanna was silent and looked into her
own thought. And she answered: 'Because my heart is anxious, thinking of the
days to come. All my works are dear to me. Is it not enough that Melkor should
have marred so many? Shall nothing that I have devised be free from the
dominion of others?' 'If thou hadst thy will what wouldst thou
reserve?' said Manwл. 'Of all thy realm what dost thou hold dearest?' 'All have their worth,' said Yavanna, 'and
each contributes to the worth of the others. But the kelvar can flee or defend themselves, whereas the olvar that grow cannot. And among these
I hold trees dear. Long in the growing, swift shall they be in the felling, and
unless they pay toll with fruit upon bough little mourned in their passing. So
I see in my thought. Would that the trees might speak on behalf of all things
that have roots, and punish those that wrong them!' 'This is a strange thought,' said Manwл. 'Yet it was in the Song,' said Yavanna. 'For
while thou wert in the heavens and with Ulmo built the clouds and poured out
the rains, I lifted up the branches of great trees to receive them, and some
sang to Ilъvatar amid the wind and the rain.' Then Manwл sat silent, and the thought of
Yavanna that she had put into his heart grew and unfolded; and it was beheld by
Ilъvatar. Then it seemed to Manwл that the Song rose once more about him, and
he heeded now many things therein that though he had heard them he had not
heeded before. And at last the Vision was renewed, but it was not now remote,
for he was himself within it, and yet he saw that all was upheld by the hand of
Ilъvatar; and the hand entered in, and from it came forth many wonders that had
until then been hidden from him in the hearts of the Ainur. Then Manwл awoke, and he went down to
Yavanna upon Ezellohar, and he sat beside her beneath the Two Trees. And Manwл
said: 'O Kementбri, Eru hath spoken, saying: "Do then any of the Valar
suppose that I did not hear all the Song, even the least sound of the least
voice? Behold! When the Children awake, then the thought of Yavanna will awake
also, and it will summon spirits from afar, and they will go among the kelvar and the olvar, and some will dwell therein, and be held in reverence, and
their just anger shall be feared. For a time: while the Firstborn are in their
power, and while the Secondborn are young." But dost them not now
remember, Kementбri, that thy thought sang not always alone? Did not thy
thought and mine meet also, so that we took wing together like great birds that
soar above the clouds? That also shall come to be by the heed of Ilъvatar, and
before the Children awake there shall go forth with wings like the wind the
Eagles of the Lords of the West.' Then Yavanna was glad, and she stood up,
reaching her arms towards the heavens, and she said: 'High shall climb the
trees of Kementбri, that the Eagles of the King may house therein!' But Manwл rose also, and it seemed that he
stood to such a height that his voice came down to Yavanna as from the paths of
the winds. 'Nay,' he said, 'only the trees of Aulл will
be tall enough. In the mountains the Eagles shall house, and hear the voices of
those who call upon us. But in the forests shall walk the Shepherds of the
Trees.' Then Manwл and Yavanna parted for that time,
and Yavanna returned to Aulл; and he was in his smithy, pouring molten metal
into a mould. 'Eru is bountiful,' she said. 'Now let thy children beware! For
there shall walk a power in the forests whose wrath they will arouse at their
peril.' 'Nonetheless they will have need of wood,'
said Aulл, and he went on with his smith-work. Chapter 3 Of the Coming of the Elves and the Captivity
of Melkor Through long ages
the Valar dwelt in bliss in the light of the Trees beyond. The Mountains of Aman, but all Middle-earth lay in a
twilight under the stars. While the Lamps had shone, growth began there which
now was checked, because all was again dark. But already the oldest living
things had arisen: in the seas the great weeds, and on earth the shadow of
great trees; and in the valleys of the night-clad hills there were dark
creatures old and strong. To those lands and forests the Valar seldom came,
save only Yavanna and Oromл; and Yavanna would walk there in the shadows,
grieving because the growth and promise of the Spring of Arda was stayed. And
she set a sleep upon many things that had arisen in the Spring, so that they
should not age, but should wait for a time of awakening that yet should be. But in the north Melkor built his strength,
and he slept not, but watched, and laboured; and the evil things that he had
perverted walked abroad, and the dark and slumbering woods were haunted by
monsters and shapes of dread. And in Utumno he gathered his demons about him,
those spirits who first adhered to him in the days of his splendour, and became
most like him in his corruption: their hearts were of fire, but they were
cloaked in darkness, and terror went before them; they had whips of flame.
Balrogs they were named in Middle-earth in later days. And in that dark time
Melkor bred many other monsters of divers shapes and kinds that long troubled
the world; and his realm spread now ever southward over Middle-earth. And Melkor made also a fortress and armoury
not far from the north-western shores of the sea, to resist any assault that
might come from Aman. That stronghold was commanded by Sauron, lieutenant of
Melkor; and it was named Angband. It came to pass that the Valar held council,
for they became troubled by the tidings that Yavanna and Oromл brought from the
Outer Lands; and Yavanna spoke before the Valar, saying: 'Ye mighty of Arda,
the Vision of Ilъvatar was brief and soon taken away, so that maybe we cannot
guess within a narrow count of days the hour appointed. Yet be sure of this:
the hour approaches, and within this age our hope shall be revealed, and the
Children shall awake. Shall we then leave the lands of their dwelling desolate
and full of evil? Shall they walk in darkness while we have light? Shall they
call Melkor lord while Manwл sits upon Taniquetil?' And Tulkas cried: 'Nay! Let us make war
swiftly! Have we not rested from strife overlong, and is not our strength now
renewed? Shall one alone contest with us for ever?' But at the bidding of Manwл Mandos spoke,
and he said: 'In this age the Children of Ilъvatar shall come indeed, but they
come not yet. Moreover it is doom that the Firstborn shall come in the
darkness, and shall look first upon the stars. Great light shall be for their
waning. To Varda ever shall they call at need.' Then Varda went forth from the council, and
she looked out from the height of Taniquetil, and beheld the darkness of
Middle-earth beneath the innumerable stars, faint and far. Then she began a
great labour, greatest of all the works of the Valar since their coming into
Arda. She took the silver dews from the vats of Telperion, and therewith she
made new stars and brighter against the coming of the Firstborn; wherefore she
whose name out of the deeps of time and the labours of Eд was Tintallл, the
Kindler, was called after by the Elves Elentбri, Queen of the Stars. Carnil and
Luinil, Nйnar and Lumbar, Alcarinquл and Elemmнrл she wrought in that time, and
many other of the ancient stars she gathered together and set as signs in the
heavens of Arda: Wilwarin, Telumendil, Soronъmл, and Anarrнma; and Menelmacar
with his shining belt, that forebodes the Last Battle that shall be at the end
of days. And high in the north as a challenge to Melkor she set the crown of
seven mighty stars to swing, Valacirca, the Sickle of the Valar and sign of
doom. It is told that even as Varda ended her
labours, and they were long, when first Menelmacar strode up the sky and the
blue fire of Helluin flickered in the mists above the borders of the world, in
that hour the Children of the Earth awoke, the Firstborn of Ilъvatar. By the
starlit mere of Cuiviйnen, Water of Awakening, they rose from the sleep of
Ilъvatar; and while they dwelt yet silent by Cuiviйnen their eyes beheld first
of all things the stars of heaven. Therefore they have ever loved the
starlight, and have revered Varda Elentбri above all the Valar. In the changes of the world the shapes of
lands and of seas have been broken and remade; rivers have not kept their
courses, neither have mountains remained steadfast; and to Cuiviйnen there is
no returning. But it is said among the Elves that it lay far off in the east of
Middle-earth, and northward, and it was a bay in the Inland Sea of Helcar; and
that sea stood where aforetime the roots of the mountain of Illuin had been
before Melkor overthrew it Many waters flowed down thither from heights in the
east, and the first sound that was heard by the Elves was the sound of water
flowing, and the sound of water falling over stone. Long they dwelt in their first home by the
water under stars, and they walked the Earth in wonder; and they began to make
speech and to give names to all things that they perceived. Themselves they
named the Quendi, signifying those that speak with voices; for as yet they had
met no other living things that spoke or sang. And on a time it chanced that Oromл rode
eastward in his hunting, and he turned north by the shores of Helcar and passed
under the shadows of the Orocarni, the Mountains of the East. Then on a sudden
Nahar set up a great neighing, and stood still. And Oromл wondered and sat
silent, and it seemed to him that in the quiet of the land under the stars he
heard afar off many voices singing. Thus it was that the Valar found at last, as
it were by chance, those whom they had so long awaited. And Oromл looking upon
the Elves was filled with wonder, as though they were beings sudden and
marvellous and unforeseen; for so it shall ever be with the Valar. From without
the World, though all things may be forethought in music or foreshown in vision
from afar, to those who enter verily into Eд each in its time shall be met at
unawares as something new and unforetold. In the beginning the Elder Children of
Ilъvatar were stronger and greater than they have since become; but not more
fair, for though the beauty of the Quendi in the days of their youth was beyond
all other beauty that Ilъvatar has caused to be, it has not perished, but lives
in the West, and sorrow and wisdom have enriched it. And Oromл loved the
Quendi, and named them in their own tongue Eldar, the people of the stars; but
that name was after borne only by those who followed him upon the westward
road. Yet many of the Quendi were filled with
dread at his coming; and this was the doing of Melkor. For by after-knowledge
the wise declare that Melkor, ever watchful, was first aware of the awakening
of the Quendi, and sent shadows and evil spirits to spy upon them and waylay
them. So it came to pass, some years ere the coming of Oromл, that if any of
the Elves strayed far abroad, alone or few together, they would often vanish,
and never return; and the Quendi said that the Hunter had caught them, and they
were afraid. And indeed the most ancient songs of the Elves, of which echoes
are remembered still in the West, tell of the shadow-shapes that walked in the
hills above Cuiviйnen, or would pass suddenly over the stars; and of the dark
Rider upon his wild horse that pursued those that wandered to take them and
devour them. Now Melkor greatly hated and feared the riding of Oromл, and
either he sent indeed his dark servants as riders, or he set lying whispers
abroad, for the purpose that the Quendi should shun Oromл, if ever they should
meet. Thus it was that when Nahar neighed and
Oromл indeed came among them, some of the Quendi hid themselves, and some fled
and were lost. But those that had courage, and stayed, perceived swiftly that
the Great Rider was no shape out of darkness; for the light of Aman was in his
face, and all the noblest of the Elves were drawn towards it. But of those unhappy ones who were ensnared
by Melkor little is known of a certainty. For who of the living has descended
into the pits of Utumno, or has explored the darkness of the counsels of
Melkor? Yet this is held true by the wise of Eressлa, that all those of the
Quendi who came into the hands of Melkor, ere Utumno was broken, were put there
in prison, and by slow arts of cruelty were corrupted and enslaved; and thus
did Melkor breed the hideous race of the Orcs in envy and mockery of the Elves,
of whom they were afterwards the bitterest foes. For the Orcs had life and
multiplied after the manner of the Children of Ilъvatar; and naught that had
life of its own, nor the semblance of life, could ever Melkor make since his
rebellion in the Ainulindalл before the Beginning: so say the wise. And deep in
their dark hearts the Orcs loathed the Master whom they served in fear, the
maker only of their misery. This it may be was the vilest deed of Melkor, and
the most hateful to Ilъvatar. Oromл tarried a while among the Quendi, and
then swiftly he rode back over land and sea to Valinor and brought the tidings
to Valmar; and he spoke of the shadows that troubled Cuiviйnen. Then the Valar
rejoiced, and yet they were in doubt amid their joy; and they debated long what
counsel it were best to take for the guarding of the Quendi from the shadow of
Melkor. But Oromл returned at once to Middle-earth and abode with the Elves. Manwл sat long in thought upon Taniquetil,
and he sought the counsel of Ilъvatar. And coming then down to Valmar he
summoned the Valar to the Ring of Doom, and thither came even Ulmo from the
Outer Sea. Then Manwл said to the Valar: 'This is the
counsel of Ilъvatar in my heart: that we should take up again the mastery of
Arda, at whatsoever cost, and deliver the Quendi from the shadow of Melkor.'
Then Tulkas was glad; but Aulл was grieved, foreboding the hurts of the world
that must come of that strife. But the Valar made ready and came forth from
Aman in strength of war, resolving to assault the fortresses of Melkor and make
an end. Never did Melkor forget that this war was made for the sake of the
Elves, and that they were the cause of his downfall. Yet they had no part in
those deeds, and they know little of the riding of the might of the West
against the North in the beginning of their days. Melkor met the onset of the Valar in the
North-west of Middle-earth, and all that region was much broken. But the first
victory of the hosts of the West was swift, and the servants of Melkor fled
before them to Utumno. Then the Valar passed over Middle-earth, and they set a
guard over Cuiviйnen; and thereafter the Quendi knew nothing of the great
Battle of the Powers, save that the Earth shook and groaned beneath them, and
the waters were moved, and in the north there were lights as of mighty fires.
Long and grievous was the siege of Utumno, and many battles were fought before
its gates of which naught but the rumour is known to the Elves. In that time
the shape of Middle-earth was changed, and the Great Sea that sundered it from
Aman grew wide and deep; and it broke in upon the coasts and made a deep gulf
to the southward. Many lesser bays were made between the Great Gulf and
Helcaraxл far in the north, where Middle-earth and Aman came nigh together. Of
these the Bay of Balar was the chief; and into it the mighty river Sirion
flowed down from the new-raised highlands northwards: Dorthonion, and the
mountains about Hithlum. The lands of the far north were all made desolate in
those days; for there Utumno was delved exceeding deep, and its pits were
filled with fires and with great hosts of the servants of Melkor. But at the last the gates of Utumno were
broken and the halls unroofed, and Melkor took refuge in the uttermost pit.
Then Tulkas stood forth as champion of the Valar and wrestled with him, and
cast him upon his face; and he was bound with the chain Angainor that Aulл had
wrought, and led captive; and the world had peace for a long age. Nonetheless the Valar did not discover all
the mighty vaults and caverns hidden with deceit far under the fortresses of
Angband and Utumno. Many evil things still lingered there, and others were
dispersed and fled into the dark and roamed in the waste places of the world,
awaiting a more evil hour; and Sauron they did not find. But when the Battle was ended and from the
ruin of the North great clouds arose and hid the stars, the Valar drew Melkor
back to Valinor, bound hand and foot, and blindfold; and he was brought to the
Ring of Doom. There he lay upon his face before the feet of Manwл and sued for
pardon; but his prayer was denied, and he was cast into prison in the fastness
of Mandos, whence none can escape, neither Vala, nor Elf, nor mortal Man. Vast
and strong are those halls, and they were built in the west of the land of
Aman. There was Melkor doomed to abide for three ages long, before his cause
should be tried anew, or he should plead again for pardon. Then again the Valar were gathered in
council, and they were divided in debate. For some, and of those Ulmo was the
chief, held that the Quendi should be left free to walk as they would in
Middle-earth, and with their gifts of skill to order all the lands and heal
their hurts. But the most part feared for the Quendi in the dangerous world
amid the deceits of the starlit dusk; and they were filled moreover with the
love of the beauty of the Elves and desired their fellowship. At the last,
therefore, the Valar summoned the Quendi to Valinor, there to be gathered at
the knees of the Powers in the light of the Trees for ever; and Mandos broke
his silence, saying: 'So it is doomed.' From this summons came many woes that
afterwards befell. But the Elves were at first unwilling to
hearken to the summons, for they had as yet seen the Valar only in their wrath
as they went to war, save Oromл alone; and they were filled with dread.
Therefore Oromл was sent again to them, and he chose from among them
ambassadors who should go to Valinor and speak for their people; and these were
Ingwл, Finwл and Elwл, who afterwards were kings. And coming they were filled
with awe by the glory and majesty of the Valar, and desired greatly the light
and splendour of the Trees. Then Oromл brought them back to Cuiviйnen, and they
spoke before their people, and counselled them to heed the summons of the Valar
and remove into the West Then befell the first sundering of the
Elves. For the kindred of Ingwл, and the most part of the kindreds of Finwл and
Elwл, were swayed by the words of their lords, and were willing to depart and
follow Oromл; and these were known ever after as the Eldar, by the name that
Oromл gave to the Elves in the beginning, in their own tongue. But many refused
the summons, preferring the starlight and the wide spaces of Middle-earth to
the rumour of the Trees; and these are the Avari, the Unwilling, and they were
sundered in that time from the Eldar, and met never again until many ages were
past. The Eldar prepared now a great march from
their first homes in the east; and they were arrayed in three hosts. The
smallest host and the first to set forth was led by Ingwл, the most high lord
of all the Elvish race. He entered into Valinor and sits at the feet of the
Powers, and all Elves revere his name; but he came never back, nor looked again
upon Middle-earth. The Vanyar were his people; they are the Fair Elves, the
beloved of Manwл and Varda, and few among Men have spoken with them. Next came the Noldor, a name of wisdom, the
people of Finwл. They are the Deep Elves, the friends of Aulл; and they are
renowned in song, for they fought and laboured long and grievously in the
northern lands of old. The greatest host came last, and they are
named the Teleri, for they tarried on the road, and were not wholly of a mind
to pass from the dusk to the light of Valinor. In water they had great delight,
and those that came at last to the western shores were enamoured of the sea.
The Sea-elves therefore they became in the land of Aman, the Falmari, for they
made music beside the breaking waves. Two lords they had, for their numbers
were great: Elwл Singollo (which signifies Greymantle) and Olwл his brother. These were the three kindreds of the
Eldaliл, who passing at length into the uttermost West in the days of the Trees
are called the Calaquendi, Elves of the Light. But others of the Eldar there
were who set out indeed upon the westward march, but became lost upon the long
road, or turned aside, or lingered on the shores of Middle-earth; and these
were for the most part of the kindred of the Teleri, as is told hereafter. They
dwelt by the sea or wandered in the woods and mountains of the world, yet their
hearts were turned towards the West. Those Elves the Calaquendi call the
Ъmanyar, since they came never to the land of Aman and the Blessed Realm; but
the Ъmanyar and the Avari alike they call the Moriquendi, Elves of the
Darkness, for they never beheld the Light that was before the Sun and Moon. It is told that when the hosts of the
Eldaliл departed from Cuiviйnen Oromл rode at their head upon Nahar, his white
horse shod with gold; and passing northward about the Sea of Helcar they turned
towards the west. Before them great clouds hung still black in the North above
the ruins of war, and the stars in that region were hidden. Then not a few grew
afraid and repented, and turned back, and are forgotten. Long and slow was the march of the Eldar
into the west, for the leagues of Middle-earth were uncounted, and weary and
pathless. Nor did the Eldar desire to hasten, for they were filled with wonder
at all that they saw, and by many lands and rivers they wished to abide; and
though all were yet willing to wander, many feared rather their journey's end
than hoped for it Therefore whenever Oromл departed, having at times other
matters to heed, they halted and went forward no more, until he returned to
guide them. And it came to pass after many years of journeying in this manner
that the Eldar took their course through a forest, and they came to a great
river, wider than any they had yet seen; and beyond it were mountains whose
sharp horns seemed to pierce the realm of the stars. This river, it is said,
was even the river which was after called Anduin the Great, and was ever the
frontier of the west-lands of Middle-earth. But me mountains were the Hithaeglir,
the Towers of Mist upon the borders of Eriador; yet they were taller and more
terrible in those days, and were reared by Melkor to hinder the riding of
Oromл. Now the Teleri abode long on the east bank of that river and wished to
remain there, but the Vanyar and me Noldor passed over it, and Oromл led them
into the passes of the mountains. And when Oromл was gone forward the Teleri
looked upon the shadowy heights and were afraid. Then one arose in the host of Olwл, which
was ever the hindmost on the road; Lenwл he was called. He forsook the westward
march, and led away a numerous people, southwards down the great river, and
they passed out of the knowledge of their kin until long years were past. Those
were the Nandor; and they became a people apart, unlike their kin, save that
they loved water, and dwelt most beside falls and running streams. Greater
knowledge they had of living things, tree and herb, bird and beast, than all
other Elves. In after years Denethor, son of Lenwл, turned again west at last,
and led a part of that people over the mountains into Beleriand ere the rising
of the Moon. At length the Vanyar and the Noldor came
over Ered Luin, the Blue Mountains, between Eriador and the westernmost land of
Middle-earth, which the Elves after named Beleriand; and the foremost companies
passed over the Vale of Sirion and came down to the shores of the Great Sea
between Drengist and the Bay of Balar. But when they beheld it great fear came
upon them, and many withdrew into the woods and highlands of Beleriand. Then
Oromл departed, and returned to Valinor to seek the counsel of Manwл, and left
them. And the host of the Teleri passed over the
Misty Mountains, and crossed the wide lands of Eriador, being urged on by Elwл
Singollo, for he was eager to return to Valinor and the Light that he had
beheld; and he wished not to be sundered from the Noldor, for he had great
friendship with Finwл their lord. Thus after many years the Teleri also came at
last over Ered Luin into the eastern regions of Beleriand. There they halted,
and dwelt a while beyond the River Gelion. Chapter 4 Of Thingol and Melian Melian was a Maia,
of the race of the Valar. She dwelt in the gardens of Lуrien, and among all his
people there were none more beautiful than Melian, nor more wise, nor more
skilled in songs of enchantment. It is told that the Valar would leave their
works, and the birds of Valinor their mirth, that the bells of Valmar were
silent and the fountains ceased to flow, when at the mingling of the lights
Melian sang in Lуrien. Nightingales went always with her, and she taught them
their song; and she loved the deep shadows of the great trees. She was akin
before the World was made to Yavanna herself; and in that time when the Quendi
awoke beside the waters of Cuiviйnen she departed from Valinor and came to the
Hither Lands, and there she filled the silence of Middle-earth before the dawn
with her voice and the voices of her birds. Now when their journey was near its end, as
has been told, the people of the Teleri rested long in East Beleriand, beyond
the River Gelion; and at that time many of the Noldor still lay to the
westward, in those forests that were afterwards named Neldoreth and Region.
Elwл, lord of the Teleri, went often through the great woods to seek out Finwл
his friend in the dwellings of the Noldor; and it chanced on a time that he
came alone to the starlit wood of Nan Elmoth, and there suddenly he heard the
song of nightingales. Then an enchantment fell on him, and he stood still; and
afar off beyond the voices of the lуmelindi
he heard the voice of Melian, and it filled all his heart with wonder and
desire. He forgot then utterly all his people and all the purposes of his mind,
and following the birds under the shadow of the trees he passed deep into Nan
Elmoth and was lost. But he came at last to a glade open to the stars, and
there Melian stood; and out of the darkness he looked at her, and the light of
Aman was in her face. She spoke no word; but being filled with
love Elwл came to her and took her hand, and straightway a spell was laid on
him, so that they stood thus while long years were measured by the wheeling
stars above them; and the trees of Nan Elmoth grew tall and dark before they
spoke any word. Thus Elwл's folk who sought him found him
not, and Olwл took the kingship of the Teleri and departed, as is told
hereafter. Elwл Singollo came never again across the sea to Valinor so long as
he lived, and Melian returned not thither while their realm together lasted;
but of her there came among both Elves and Men a strain of the Ainur who were
with Ilъvatar before Eд. In after days he became a king renowned, and his
people were all the Eldar of Beleriand; the Sindar they were named, the
Grey-elves, the Elves of the Twilight and King Greymantle was he, Elu Thingol
in the tongue of that land. And Melian was his Queen, wiser than any child of
Middle-earth; and their hidden halls were Menegroth, the Thousand Caves, in Doriath.
Great power Melian lent to Thingol, who was himself great among the Eldar; for
he alone of all the Sindar had seen with his own eyes the Trees in the day of
their flowering, and king though he was of Amanyar, he was not accounted among
the Moriquendi, but with the Elves of the Light, mighty upon Middle-earth. And
of the love of Thingol and Melian there came into the world the fairest of all
the Children of Ilъvatar that was or shall ever be. Chapter 5 Of Eldamar and the Princes of the Eldaliл In time the hosts of
the Vanyar and the Noldor came to the last western shores of the Hither Lands.
In the north these shores, in the ancient days after the Battle of the Powers,
bent ever westward, until in the northernmost parts of Arda only a narrow sea
divided Aman, upon which Valinor was built, from the Hither Lands; but this
narrow sea was filled with grinding ice, because of the violence of the frosts
of Melkor. Therefore Oromл did not lead the hosts of the Eldaliл into the far
north, but brought them to the fair lands about the River Sirion, that
afterwards were named Beleriand; and from those shores whence first the Eldar
looked in fear and wonder on the Sea there stretched an ocean, wide and dark
and deep, between them and the Mountains of Aman. Now Ulmo, by the counsel of the Valar, came
to the shores of Middle-earth and spoke with the Eldar who waited there, gazing
on the dark waves; and because of his words and the music which he made for
them on his horns of shell their fear of the sea was turned rather to desire.
Therefore Ulmo uprooted an island which long had stood alone amid the sea, far
from either shore, since the tumults of the fall of Illuin; and with the aid of
his servants he moved it, as it were a mighty ship, and anchored it in the Bay
of Balar, into which Sirion poured his water. Then the Vanyar and the Noldor
embarked upon that isle, and were drawn over the sea, and came at last to the
long shores beneath the Mountains of Aman; and they entered Valinor and were
welcomed to its bliss. But the eastern horn of the island, which was
deep-grounded in the shoals off the mouths of Sirion, was broken asunder and
remained behind and that, it is said, was the Isle of Balar, to which
afterwards Ossл often came. But the Teleri remained still in
Middle-earth, for they dwelt in East Beleriand far from the sea, and they heard
not the summons of Ulmo until too late; and many searched still for Elwл their
lord, and without him they were unwilling to depart. But when they learned that
Ingwл and Finwл and their peoples were gone, then many of the Teleri pressed on
to the shores of Beleriand, and dwelt thereafter near the Mouths of Sirion, in
longing for their friends that had departed; and they took Olwл, Elwл’s
brother, to be their king. Long they remained by the coasts of the western sea,
and Ossл and Uinen came to them and befriended them; and Ossл instructed them,
sitting upon a rock near to the margin of the land, and of him they learned all
manner of sea-lore and sea-music. Thus it came to be that the Teleri, who were
from the beginning lovers of water, and the fairest singers of all the Elves,
were after enamoured of the seas, and their songs were filled with the sound of
waves upon the shore. When many years had passed, Ulmo hearkened
to the prayers of the Noldor and of Finwл their king. Who grieved at their long
sundering from the Teleri, and besought him to bring them to Aman, if they
would come. And most of them proved now willing indeed; but great was the grief
of Ossл when Ulmo returned to the coasts of Beleriand, to bear them away to
Valinor; for his care was for the seas of Middle-earth and the shores of the
Hither Lands, and he was ill-pleased that the voices of the Teleri should be
heard no more in his domain. Some he persuaded to remain; and those were the
Falathrim, the Elves of the Falas, who in after days had dwellings at the
havens of Brithombar and Eglarest, the first mariners in Middle-earth and the
first makers of ships. Cнrdan the Shipwright was their lord. The kinsfolk and friends of Elwл Singollo
also remained in the Hither Lands, seeking him yet, though they would fain have
departed to Valinor and the light of the Trees, if Ulmo and Olwл had been
willing to tarry longer. But Olwл would be gone; and at last the main host of
the Teleri embarked upon the isle, and Ulmo drew them far away. Then the
friends of Elwл were left behind; and they called themselves Eglath, the
Forsaken People. They dwelt in the woods and hills of Beleriand, rather than by
the sea, which filled them with sorrow; but the desire of Aman was ever in
their hearts. But when Elwл awoke from his long trance, he
came forth from Nan Elmoth with Melian, and they dwelt thereafter in the woods
in the midst of the land. Greatly though he had desired to see again the light
of the Trees, in the face of Melian he beheld the light of Aman as in an
unclouded mirror, and in that light he was content. His people gathered about
him in joy, and they were amazed; for fair and noble as he had been, now he
appeared as it were a lord of the Maiar, his hair as grey silver, tallest of
all the Children of Ilъvatar; and a high doom was before him. Now Ossл followed after the host of Olwл,
and when they were come to the Bay of Eldamar (which is Elvenhome) he called to
them; and they knew his voice, and begged Ulmo to stay their voyage. And Ulmo
granted their request, and at his bidding Ossл made fast the island and rooted
it to the foundations of the sea. Ulmo did this the more readily, for he
understood the hearts of the Teleri, and in the council of the Valar he had
spoken against the summons, thinking that it were better for the Quendi to remain
in Middle-earth. The Valar were little pleased to learn what he had done; and
Finwл grieved when the Teleri came not, and yet more when he learned that Elwл
was forsaken, and knew that he should not see him again, unless it were in the
halls of Mandos. But the island was not moved again, and stood there alone in
the Bay of Eldamar; and it was called Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle. There the
Teleri abode as they wished under the stars of heaven, and yet within right of
Aman and the deathless shore; and by that long sojourn apart in the Lonely Isle
was caused the sundering of their speech from that of the Vanyar and the
Noldor. To these the Valar had given a land and a
dwelling-place. Even among the radiant flowers of the Tree-lit gardens of
Valinor they longed still at times to see the stars; and therefore a gap was
made in the great walls of the Pelуri, and there in a deep valley that ran down
to the sea the Eldar raised a high green hill: Tъna it was called. From the
west the light of the Trees fell upon it, and its shadow lay ever eastward; and
to the east it looked towards the Bay of Elvenhome, and the Lonely Isle, and
the Shadowy Seas. Then through Calacirya, the Pass of Light, the radiance of
the Blessed Realm streamed forth, kindling the dark waves to silver and gold,
and it touched the Lonely Isle, and its western shore grew green and fair.
There bloomed the first flowers that ever were east of the Mountains of Aman. Upon the crown of Tъna the city of the Elves
was built, the white walls and terraces of Tirion; and the highest of the
towers of that city was the Tower of Ingwл, Mindon Eldaliйva, whose silver lamp
shone far out into the mists of the sea. Few are the ships of mortal Men that
have seen its slender beam. In Tirion upon Tъna the Vanyar and the Noldor dwelt
long in fellowship. And since of all things in Valinor they loved most the
White Tree, Yavanna made for them a tree like to a lesser image of Telperion,
save that it did not give light of its own being; Galathilion it was named in
the Sindarin tongue. This tree was planted in the courts beneath the Mindon and
there flourished, and its seedlings were many in Eldamar. Of these one was
afterwards planted in Tol Eressлa, and it prospered there, and was named
Celeborn; thence came in me fullness of time as is elsewhere told, Nimloth, the
White Tree of Nъmenor. Manwл and Varda loved most the Vanyar, the
Fair Elves; but the Noldor were beloved of Aulл, and he and his people came
often among them. Great became their knowledge and their skill; yet even
greater was their thirst for more knowledge, and in many things they soon
surpassed their teachers. They were changeful in speech, for they had great
love of words, and sought ever to find names more fit for all things that they
knew or imagined. And it came to pass that the masons of the house of Finwл, quarrying in the hills
after stone (for they delighted in the building of high towers), first
discovered the earth-gems, and brought them forth in countless myriads; and
they devised tools for the cutting and shaping of gems, and carved them in many
forms. They hoarded them not, but gave them freely, and by their labour
enriched all Valinor. The Noldor afterwards came back to
Middle-earth, and this tale tells mostly of their deeds; therefore the names
and kinship of their princes may here be told, in that form which these names
later bore in the tongue of the Elves of Beleriand. Finwл was King of the Noldor. The sons of
Finwл were Fлanor, and Fingolfin, and Finarfin; but the mother of Fлanor was
Mнriel Serindл, whereas the mother of Fingolfin and Finarfin was Indis of the
Vanyar. Fлanor was the mightiest in skill of word and of hand, more learned
than his brothers; his spirit burned as a flame. Fingolfin was the strongest,
the most steadfast, and the most valiant. Finarfin was the fairest, and the
most wise of heart; and afterwards he was a friend of the sons of Olwл, lord of
the Teleri, and had to wife Eдrwen, the swan-maiden of Alqualondл, Olwл's
daughter. The seven sons of Fлanor were Maedhros the
tall; Maglor the mighty singer, whose voice was heard far over land and sea;
Celegorm the fair, and Caranthir the dark; Curufin the crafty, who inherited
most his father's skill of hand; and the youngest Amrod and Amras, who were
twin brothers, alike in mood and face. In later days they were great hunters in
the woods of Middle-earth; and a hunter also was Celegorm, who in Valinor was a
friend of Oromл, and often followed the Vala's horn. The sons of Fingolfin were Fingon, who was
afterwards King of the Noldor in the north of the world, and Turgon, lord of
Gondolin; their sister was Aredhel the White. She was younger in the years of
the Eldar than her brothers; and when she was grown to full stature and beauty
she was tall and strong, and loved much to ride and hunt in the forests. There
she was often in the company of the sons of Fлanor, her kin; but to none was
her heart's love given. Ar-Feiniel she was called, the White Lady of the
Noldor, for she was pale though her hair was dark, and she was never arrayed
but in silver and white. The sons of Finarfin were Finrod the
faithful (who was afterwards named Felagund, Lord of Caves), Orodreth, Angrod,
and Aegnor; these tour were as close in friendship with the sons of Fingolfin
as though they were all brothers. A sister they had, Galadriel, most beautiful
of all the house of Finwл; her hair was lit with gold as though it had caught
in a mesh the radiance of Laurelin. Here must be told how the Teleri came at
last to the land of Aman. Through a long age they dwelt in Tol Eressлa; but
slowly their hearts were changed, and were drawn towards the light that flowed
out over the sea to the Lonely Isle. They were torn between the love of the
music of the waves upon their shores, and the desire to see again their kindred
and to look upon the splendour of Valinor; but in the end desire of the light
was the stronger. Therefore Ulmo, submitting to the will of the Valar, sent to
them Ossл, their friend, and he though grieving taught them the craft of
ship-building; and when their ships were built he brought them as his parting
gift many strong-winged swans. Then the swans drew the white ships of the
Teleri over the windless sea; and thus at last and latest they came to Aman and
the shores of Eldamar. There they dwelt, and if they wished they
could see the light of the Trees, and could tread the golden streets of Valmar
and the crystal stairs of Tirion upon Tъna, the green hill; but most of all
they sailed in their swift ships on the waters of the Bay of Elvenhome, or
walked in the waves upon the shore with their hair gleaming in the light beyond
the hill. Many jewels the Noldor gave them, opals and diamonds and pale
crystals, which they strewed upon the shores and scattered in the pools;
marvellous were the beaches of Elendл in those days. And many pearls they won
for themselves from the sea, and their halls were of pearl, and of pearl were
the mansions of Olwл at Alqualondл, the Haven of the Swans, lit with many
lamps. For that was their city, and the haven of their ships; and those were made
in the likeness of swans, with beaks of gold and eyes of gold and jet. The gate
of that harbour was an arch of living rock sea-carved; and it lay upon the
confines of Eldamar, north of the Calacirya, where the light of the stars was
bright and clear. As the ages passed the Vanyar grew to love
the land of the Valar and the full light of the Trees, and they forsook the
city of Tirion upon Tъna, and dwelt thereafter upon the mountain of Manwл, or
about the plains and woods of Valinor, and became sundered from the Noldor. But
the memory of Middle-earth under the stars remained in the hearts of the
Noldor, and they abode in the Calacirya, and in the hills and valleys within
sound of the western sea; and though many of them went often about the land of
the Valar, making far journeys in search of the secrets of land and water and
all living things, yet the peoples of Tъna and Alqualondл drew together in
those days. Finwл was king in Tirion and Olwл in Alqualondл; but Ingwл was ever
held the High King of all the Elves. He abode thereafter at the feet of Manwл
upon Taniquetil. Fлanor and his sons abode seldom in one
place for long, but travelled far and wide upon the confines of Valinor, going
even to the borders of the Dark and the cold shores of the Outer Sea, seeking
the unknown. Often they were guests in the halls of Aulл; but Celegorm went
rather to the house of Oromл, and there he got great knowledge of birds and
beasts, and all their tongues he knew. For all living things that are or have
been in the Kingdom of Arda, save only the fell and evil creatures of Melkor,
lived then in the land of Aman; and there also were many other creatures that
have not been seen upon Middle-earth, and perhaps never now shall be, since the
fashion of the world was changed. Chapter 6 Of Fлanor and the Unchaining of Melkor Now the Three
Kindreds of the Eldar were gathered at last in Valinor, and Melkor was chained.
This was the Noontide of the Blessed Realm, the fullness of its glory and its
bliss, long in tale of years, but in memory too brief. In those days the Eldar
became full-grown in stature of body and of mind, and the Noldor advanced ever
in skill and knowledge; and the long years were filled with their joyful
labours, in which many new things fair and wonderful were devised. Then it was
that the Noldor first bethought them of letters, and Rъmil of Tirion was the
name of the loremaster who first achieved fitting signs for the recording of
speech and song, some for graving upon metal or in stone, others for drawing
with brush or with pen. In that time was born in Eldamar, in the
house of the King in Tirion upon the crown of Tъna, the eldest of the sons of
Finwл, and the most beloved. Curufinwл was his name, but by his mother he was
called Fлanor, Spirit of Fire; and thus he is remembered in all the tales of
the Noldor. Mнriel was the name of his mother, who was
called Serindл, because of her surpassing skill in weaving and needlework; for
her hands were more skilled to fineness than any hands even among the Noldor.
The love of Finwл and Mнriel was great and glad, for it began in the Blessed
Realm in the Days of Bliss. But in the bearing of her son Mнriel was consumed
in spirit and body; and after his birth she yearned for release from the
labours of living. Ana when she had named mm, she said to Finwл: 'Never again
shall I bear child; for strength that would have nourished the life of many has
gone forth into Fлanor.' Then Finwл was grieved, for the Noldor were
in me youth of their days, and he desired to bring forth many children into the
Miss of Aman; and he said: 'Surely there is healing in Aman? Here all weariness
can find rest.' But when Mнriel languished still, Finwл sought the counsel of
Manwл, and Manwл delivered her to the care of Irmo in Lуrien. At their parting
(for a little while as he thought) Finwл was sad, for it seemed an unhappy
chance that the mother should depart and miss the beginning at least of the
childhood days of her son. ‘It is indeed unhappy,’ said Mнriel, 'and I
would weep, if I were not so weary. But hold me blameless in this, and in all
that may come after.’ She went then to the gardens of Lуrien and
lay down to sleep; but though she seemed to sleep, her spirit indeed departed
from her body, and passed in silence to the halls of Mandos. The maidens of Estл
tended the body of Mнriel, and it remained unwithered; but she did not return.
Then Finwл lived in sorrow; and he went often to the gardens of Lуrien, and
sitting beneath the silver willows beside the body of his wife he called her by
her names. But it was unavailing; and alone in all the Blessed Realm he was
deprived of joy. After a while he went to Lуrien no more. An his love he gave thereafter to his son;
and Fлanor grew swiftly, as if a secret fire were kindled within him. He was
tall, and fair of face, and masterful, his eyes piercingly bright and his hair
raven-dark; in the pursuit of all his purposes eager and steadfast. Few ever
changed his courses by counsel, none by force. He became of all the Noldor,
then or after, the most subtle in mind and the most skilled in hand. In his
youth, bettering the work of Rъmil, he devised those letters which bear his
name, and which the Eldar used ever after; and he it was who, first of the
Noldor, discovered how gems greater and brighter than those of the earth might
be made with skill. The first gems that Fлanor made were white and colourless,
but being set under starlight they would blaze with blue and silver fires
brighter than Helluin; and other crystals he made also, wherein things far away
could be seen small but clear, as with the eyes of the eagles of Manwл. Seldom
were the hands and mind of Fлanor at rest. While still in his early youth he wedded
Nerdanel, the daughter of a great smith named Mahtan, among those of the Noldor
most dear to Aulл; and of Mahtan he learned much of the making of things in
metal and in stone. Nerdanel also was firm of will, but more patient than
Fлanor, desiring to understand minds rather than to master them, and at first
she restrained him when the fire of his heart grew too hot; but his later deeds
grieved her, and they became estranged. Seven sons she bore to Fлanor; her mood
she bequeathed in part to some of them, but not to all. Now it came to pass that Finwл took as his
second wife Indis the Fair. She was a Vanya, close kin of Ingwл the High King,
golden-haired and tall, and in all ways unlike Mнriel. Finwл loved her greatly,
and was glad again. But the shadow of Mнriel did not depart from the house of
Finwл, nor from his heart; and of all whom he loved Fлanor had ever the chief
share of his thought. The wedding of his father was not pleasing
to Fлanor; and he had no great love for Indis, nor for Fingolfin and Finarfin,
her sons. He lived apart from them, exploring the land of Aman, or busying
himself with the knowledge and the crafts in which he delighted. In those
unhappy things which later came to pass, and in which Fлanor was the leader,
many saw the effect of this breach within the house of Finwл, judging that if
Finwл had endured his loss and been content with the fathering of his mighty
son, the courses of Fлanor would have been otherwise, and great evil might have
been prevented; for the sorrow and the strife in the house of Finwл is graven
in the memory of the Noldorin Elves. But the children of Indis were great and glorious,
and their children also; and if they had not lived the history of the Eldar
would have been diminished. Now even while Fлanor and the craftsmen of
the Noldor worked with delight, foreseeing no end to their labours, and while
the sons of Indis grew to their full stature, the Noontide of Valinor was
drawing to its close. For it came to pass that Melkor, as the Valar had
decreed, completed the term of his bondage, dwelling for three ages in the
duress of Mandos, alone. At length, as Manwл had promised, he was brought again
before the thrones of the Valar. Then he looked upon their glory and their
bliss, and envy was in his heart; he looked upon the Children of Ilъvatar that
sat at the feet of the Mighty, and hatred filled him; he looked upon the wealth
of bright gems, and he lusted for them; but he hid his thoughts, and postponed
his vengeance. Before the gates of Valmar Melkor abased
himself at the feet of Manwл and sued for pardon, vowing that if he might be
made only the least of the free people of Valinor he would aid the Valar in all
their works, and most of all in the healing of the many hurts that he had done
to the world. And Nienna aided his prayer; but Mandos was silent Then Manwл granted him pardon; but the Valar
would not yet suffer him to depart beyond their sight and vigilance, and he was
constrained to dwell within the gates of Valmar. But fair-seeming were all the
words and deeds of Melkor in that time, and both the Valar and the Eldar had
profit from his aid and counsel, if they sought it; and therefore in a while he
was given leave to go freely about the land, and it seemed to Manwл that the
evil of Melkor was cured. For Manwл was free from evil and could not comprehend
it, and he knew that in the beginning, in the thought of Ilъvatar, Melkor had
been even as he; and he saw not to the depths of Melkor’s heart, and did not
perceive that all love had departed from him for ever. But Ulmo was not
deceived, and Tulkas clenched his hands whenever he saw Melkor his foe go by;
for if Tulkas is slow to wrath he is slow also to forget. But they obeyed the
judgement of Manwл; for those who will defend authority against rebellion must
not themselves rebel. Now in his heart Melkor most hated the
Eldar, both because they were fair and joyful and because in them he saw the
reason for the arising of the Valar, and his own downfall. Therefore all the
more did he feign love for them and seek their friendship, and he offered them
the service of his lore and labour in any great deed that they would do. The
Vanyar indeed held him in suspicion, for they dwelt in the light of the Trees
and were content; and to the Teleri he gave small heed, thinking them of little
worth, tools too weak for his designs. But the Noldor took delight in the
hidden knowledge that he could reveal to them; and some hearkened to words that
it would have been better for them never to have heard. Melkor indeed declared
afterwards that Fлanor had learned much art from him in secret, and had been
instructed by him in the greatest of all his works; but he lied in his lust and
his envy, for none of the Eldaliл ever hated Melkor more than Fлanor son of
Finwл, who first named him Morgoth; and snared though he was in the webs of
Melkor's malice against the Valar he held no converse with him and took no
counsel from him. For Fлanor was driven by the fire of his own heart only,
working ever swiftly and alone; and he asked the aid and sought the counsel of
none that dwelt in Aman, great or small, save only and for a little while of
Nerdanel the wise, his wife. Chapter 7 Of the Silmarils and the Unrest of the
Noldor In that time were
made those things that afterwards were most renowned of all the works of the
Elves. For Fлanor, being come to his full might, was filled with a new thought,
or it may be that some shadow of foreknowledge came to him of the doom that drew
near; and he pondered how the light of the Trees, the glory of the Blessed
Realm, might be preserved imperishable. Then he began a long and secret labour,
and he summoned all his lore, and his power, and his subtle skill; and at the
end of all he made the Silmarils. As three great Jewels they were in form. But
not until the End, when Fлanor shall return who perished ere the Sun was made,
and sits now in the Halls of Awaiting and comes no more among his kin; not
until the Sun passes and the Moon falls, shall it be known of what substance
they were made. Like the crystal of diamonds it appeared, and yet was more
strong than adamant, so that no violence could mar it or break it within the
Kingdom of Arda. Yet that crystal was to the Silmarils but as is the body to
the Children of Ilъvatar: the house of its inner fire, that is within it and
yet in all parts of it, and is its life. And the inner fire of the Silmarils
Fлanor made of the blended light of the Trees of Valinor, which lives in them
yet, though the Trees have long withered and shine no more. Therefore even in
the darkness of the deepest treasury the Silmarils of their own radiance shone
like the stars of Varda; and yet, as were they indeed living things, they
rejoiced in light and received it and gave it
back in hues more marvellous than before. All who dwelt in Aman were filled with
wonder and delight at the work of Fлanor. And Varda hallowed the Silmarils, so
that thereafter no mortal flesh, nor hands unclean, nor anything of evil will
might touch them, but it was scorched and withered; and Mandos foretold that
the fates of Arda, earth, sea, and air, lay locked within them. The heart of
Fлanor was fast bound to these things that he himself had made. Then Melkor lusted for the Silmarils, and
the very memory of their radiance was a gnawing fire in his heart. From that
time forth, inflamed by this desire, he sought ever more eagerly how he should
destroy Fлanor and end the friendship of the Valar and the Elves; but he
dissembled his purposes with cunning, and nothing of his malice could yet be
seen in the semblance that he wore. Long was he at work, and slow at first and
barren was his labour. But he that sows lies in the end shall not lack of a harvest,
and soon he may rest from toil indeed while others reap and sow in his stead.
Ever Melkor found some ears that would heed him, and some tongues that would
enlarge what they had heard; and his lies passed from friend to friend, as
secrets of which the knowledge proves the teller wise. Bitterly did the Noldor
atone for the folly of their open ears in the days that followed after. When he saw that many leaned towards him,
Melkor would often walk among them, and amid his fair words others were woven,
so subtly that many who heard them believed in recollection that they arose
from their own thought. Visions he would conjure in their hearts of the mighty
realms that they could have ruled at their own will, in power and freedom in
the East; and then whispers went abroad that the Valar had brought the Eldar to
Aman because of their jealousy, fearing that the beauty of the Quendi and the
makers' power that Ilъvatar had bequeathed to them would grow too great for the
Valar to govern, as the Elves waxed and spread over the wide lands of the
world. In those days, moreover, though the Valar
knew indeed of the coming of Men that were to be, the Elves as yet knew naught
of it; for Manwл had not revealed it to them. Bat Melkor spoke to them in
secret of Mortal Men, seeing how the silence of the Valar might be twisted to
evil. Little he knew yet concerning Men, for engrossed with his own thought in
the Music he had paid small heed to the Third Theme of Ilъvatar; but now the
whisper went among the Elves that Manwл held them captive, so that Men might
come and supplant them in the kingdoms of Middle-earth, for the Valar saw that
they might more easily sway this short-lived and weaker race, defrauding the
Elves of the inheritance of Ilъvatar. Small truth was there in this, and little
have the Valar ever prevailed to sway the wills of Men; but many of the Noldor
believed, or half believed, the evil words. Thus ere the Valar were aware, the peace of
Valinor was poisoned. The Noldor began to murmur against them, and many became filled
with pride, forgetting how much of what they had and knew came to them in gift
from the Valar. Fiercest burned the new flame of desire for freedom and wider
realms in the eager heart of Fлanor; and Melkor laughed in his secrecy, for to
that mark his lies had been addressed, hating Fлanor above all, and lusting
ever for the Silmarils. But these he was not suffered to approach; for though
at great feasts Fлanor would wear them, blazing on his brow, at other times
they were guarded close, locked in the deep chambers of his hoard in Tirion.
For Fлanor began to love the Silmarils with a greedy love, and grudged the
sight of them to all save to his father and his seven sons; he seldom
remembered now that the light within them was not his own. High princes were Fлanor and Fingolfin, the
elder sons of Finwл, honoured by all in Aman; but now they grew proud and
jealous each of his rights and his possessions. Then Melkor set new lies abroad
in Eldamar, and whispers came to Fлanor that Fingolfin and his sons were
plotting to usurp the leadership of Finwл and of the elder line of Fлanor, and
to supplant them by the leave of the Valar; for the Valar were ill-pleased that
the Silmarils lay in Tirion and were not committed to their keeping. But to
Fingolfin and Finarfin it was said: 'Beware! Small love has the proud son of
Mнriel ever had for the children of Indis. Now he has become great, and he has
his father in his hand. It will not be long before he drives you forth from
Tъna!' And when Melkor saw that these lies were
smouldering, and that pride and anger were awake among the Noldor, he spoke to
them concerning weapons; and in that time the Noldor began the smithying of
swords and axes and spears. Shields also they made displaying the tokens of
many houses and kindreds that vied one with another; and these only they wore
abroad, and of other weapons they did not speak, for each believed that he
alone had received the warning. And Fлanor made a secret forge, of which not
even Melkor was aware; and there he tempered fell swords for himself and for
his sons, and made tall helms with plumes of red. Bitterly did Mahtan rue the
day when he taught to the husband of Nerdanel all the lore of metalwork that he
had learned of Aulл. Thus with lies and evil whisperings and
false counsel Melkor kindled the hearts of the Noldor to strife; and of their
quarrels came at length the end of the high days of Valinor and the evening of
its ancient glory. For Fлanor now began openly to speak words of rebellion
against the Valar, crying aloud that he would depart from Valinor back to the
world without, and would deliver the Noldor from thraldom, if they would follow
him. Then there was great unrest in Tirion, and
Finwл was troubled; and he summoned all his lords to council. But Fingolfin
hastened to his halls and stood before him, saying: 'King and father, wilt thou
not restrain the pride of our brother, Curufinwл, who is called the Spirit of
Fire, all too truly? By what right does he speak for all our people, as if he
were King? Thou it was who long ago spoke before the Quendi, bidding them
accept the summons of the Valar to Aman. Thou it was that led the Noldor upon
the long road through the perils of Middle-earth to the light of Eldamar. If
thou dost not now repent of it, two sons at least thou hast to honour thy
words.' But even as Fingolfin spoke, Fлanor strode
into the chamber, and he was fully armed: his high helm upon his head, and at
his side a mighty sword. 'So it is, even as I guessed,' he said. 'My
half-brother would be before me with my father, in this as in all other
matters.' Then turning upon Fingolfin he drew his sword, crying: 'Get thee gone, and take thy due place!' Fingolfin bowed before Finwл, and without
word or glance to Fлanor he went from the chamber. But Fлanor followed him, and
at the door of the king's house he stayed him; and the point of his bright
sword he set against Fingolfin's breast 'See, half-brother!' he said. 'This is
sharper than thy tongue. Try but once more to usurp my place and the love of my
father, and maybe it will rid the Noldor of one who seeks to be the master of
thralls.' These words were heard by many, for the
house of Finwл was in the great square beneath the Mindon; but again Fingolfin
made no answer, and passing through the throng in silence he went to seek
Finarfin his brother. Now the unrest of the Noldor was not indeed
hidden from the Valar, but its seed had been sown in the dark; and therefore,
since Fлanor first spoke openly against them, they judged that he was the mover
of discontent, being eminent in self-will and arrogance, though all the Noldor
had become proud. And Manwл was grieved, but he watched and said no word. The
Valar had brought the Eldar to their land freely, to dwell or to depart; and
though they might judge departure to be folly, they might not restrain them
from it. But now the deeds of Fлanor could not be passed over, and the Valar
were angered and dismayed; and he was summoned to appear before them at the
gates of Valmar, to answer for all his words and deeds. There also were
summoned all others who had any part in this matter, or any knowledge of it;
and Fлanor standing before Mandos in the Ring of Doom was commanded to answer
all that was asked of him. Then at last the root was laid bare, and the malice
of Melkor revealed; and straightway Tulkas left the council to lay hands upon
him and bring him again to judgement. But Fлanor was not held guiltless, for he
it was that had broken the peace of Valinor and drawn his sword upon his
kinsman; and Mandos said to him: 'Thou speakest of thraldom. If thraldom it be,
thou canst not escape it; for Manwл is King of Arda, and not of Aman only. And
this deed was unlawful, whether in Aman or not in Aman. Therefore this doom is
now made: for twelve years thou shall leave Tirion where this threat was
uttered. In that time take counsel with thyself, and remember who and what thou
art. But after that time this matter shall be set in peace and held redressed,
if others will release thee.' Then Fingolfin said: 'I will release my
brother.' But Fлanor spoke no word in answer, standing silent before the Valar.
Then he turned and left the council, and departed from Valmar. With him into banishment went his seven
sons, and northward in Valinor they made a strong place and treasury in the
hills; and there at Formenos a multitude of gems were laid in hoard, and
weapons also, and the Silmarils were shut in a chamber of iron. Thither also
came Finwл the King, because of the love that he bore to Fлanor; and Fingolfin
ruled the Noldor in Tirion. Thus the lies of Melkor were made true in seeming,
though Fлanor by his own deeds had brought this thing to pass; and the
bitterness that Melkor had sown endured, and lived still long afterwards
between the sons of Fingolfin and Fлanor. Now Melkor, knowing that his devices had
been revealed, hid himself and passed from place to place as a cloud in the
hills; and Tulkas sought for him in vain. Then it seemed to the people of
Valinor that the light of the Trees was dimmed, and the shadows of all standing
things grew longer and darker in that time. It is told that for a time Melkor was not
seen again in Valinor, nor was any rumour heard of him, until suddenly he came
to Formenos, and spoke with Fлanor before his doors. Friendship he feigned with
cunning argument, urging him to his former thought of flight from the trammels
of the Valar; and he said: 'Behold the truth of all that I have spoken, and how
thou art banished unjustly. But if the heart of Fлanor is yet free and bold as
were his words in Tirion, then I will aid him, and bring him far from this
narrow land. For am I not Vala also? Yea, and more than those who sit in pride
in Valimar; and I have ever been a friend to the Noldor, most skilled and most
valiant of the people of Arda.' Now Fлanor's heart was still bitter at his
humiliation before Mandos, and he looked at Melkor in silence, pondering if
indeed he might yet trust him so far as to aid him in his flight. And Melkor,
seeing that Fлanor wavered, and knowing that the Silmarils held his heart in
thrall, said at the last: 'Here is a strong place, and well guarded; but think
not that the Silmarils will lie safe in any treasury within the realm of the
Valar!' But his cunning overreached his aim; his
words touched too deep, and awoke a fire more fierce than he designed; and
Fлanor looked upon Melkor with eyes that burned through his fair semblance and
pierced the cloaks of his mind, perceiving there his fierce lust for the
Silmarils. Then hate overcame Fлanor's fear, and he cursed Melkor and bade him
be gone, saying: 'Get thee gone from my gate, thou jail-crow of Mandos!' And he
shut the doors of his house in the face of the mightiest of all the dwellers in
Eд. Then Melkor departed in shame, for he was
himself in peril, and he saw not his time yet for revenge; but his heart was
black with anger. And Finwл was filled with great fear, and in haste he sent
messengers to Manwл in Valmar. Now the Valar were sitting in council before
their gates, fearing the lengthening of the shadows, when the messengers came
from Formenos. At once Oromл and Tulkas sprang up, but even as they set out in
pursuit messengers came from Eldamar, telling that Melkor had fled through the
Calacirya, and from the hill of Tъna the Elves had seen him pass in wrath as a
thundercloud. And they said that thence he had turned northward, for the Teleri
in Alqualondл had seen his shadow going by their haven towards Araman. Thus Melkor departed from Valinor, and for a
while the Two Trees shone again unshadowed, and the land was filled with light.
But the Valar sought in vain for tidings of their enemy; and as a cloud far off
that looms ever higher, borne upon a slow cold wind, a doubt now marred the joy
of all the dwellers in Aman, dreading they knew not what evil that yet might
come. Chapter 8 Of the Darkening of Valinor When Manwл heard of
the ways that Melkor had taken, it seemed plain to him that he purposed to
escape to his old strongholds in the north of Middle-earth; and Oromл and
Tulkas went with all speed northward, seeking to overtake him if they might, but
they found no trace or rumour of him beyond the shores of the Teleri, in the
unpeopled wastes that drew near to the Ice. Thereafter the watch was redoubled
along the northern fences of Aman; but to no purpose, for ere ever the pursuit
set out Melkor had turned back, and in secrecy passed away far to the south.
For he was yet as one of the Valar, and could change his form, or walk unclad,
as could his brethren; though that power he was soon to lose for ever. Thus unseen he came at last to the dark
region of Avathar. That narrow land lay south of the Bay of Eldamar, beneath
the eastern feet of the Pelуri, and its long and mournful shores stretched away
into the south, lightless and unexplored. There, beneath the sheer walls of the
mountains and the cold dark sea, the shadows were deepest and thickest in the
world; and there in Avathar, secret and unknown, Ungoliant had made her abode.
The Eldar knew not whence she came; but some have said that in ages long before
she descended from the darkness that lies about Arda, when Melkor first looked
down in envy upon the Kingdom of Manwл, and that in the beginning she was one
of those that he corrupted to his service. But she had disowned her Master,
desiring to be mistress of her own lust, taking all things to herself to feed
her emptiness; and she fled to the south, escaping the assaults of the Valar
and the hunters of Oromл, for their vigilance had ever been to the north, and
the south was long unheeded. Thence she had crept towards the light of the
Blessed Realm; for she hungered for
light and hated it. In a ravine she lived, and took shape as a
spider of monstrous form, weaving her black webs in a cleft of the mountains.
There she sucked up all light that she could find, and spun it forth again in
dark nets of strangling gloom, until no light more could come to her abode; and
she was famished. Now Melkor came to Avathar and sought her
out; and he put on again the form that he had worn as the tyrant of Utumno: a
dark Lord, tall and terrible. In that form he remained ever after. There in the
black shadows, beyond the sight even of Manwл in his highest halls, Melkor with
Ungoliant plotted his revenge. But when Ungoliant understood the purpose of
Melkor, she was torn between lust and great fear; for she was loath to dare the
perils of Aman and the power of the dreadful Lords, and she would not stir from
her hiding. Therefore Melkor said to her: 'Do as I bid; and if thou hunger
still when all is done, then I will give thee whatsoever thy lust may demand.
Yea, with both hands.' Lightly he made this vow, as he ever did; and he laughed
in his heart. Thus did the great thief set his lure for the lesser. A cloak of darkness she wove about them when
Melkor and Ungoliant set forth; an Unlight, in which things seemed to be no
more, and which eyes could not pierce, for it was void. Then slowly she wrought
her webs: rope by rope from cleft to cleft, from jutting rock to pinnacle of
stone, ever climbing upwards, crawling and clinging, until at last she reached
the very summit of Hyarmentir, the highest mountain in that region of the
world, far south of great Taniquetil. There the Valar were not vigilant; for
west of the Pelуri was an empty land in twilight, and eastward the mountains
looked out, save for forgotten Avathar, only upon the dim waters of the
pathless sea. But now upon the mountain-top dark Ungoliant lay; and she made a
ladder of woven ropes and cast it down, and Melkor climbed upon it and came to
that high place, and stood beside her, looking down upon the Guarded Realm. Below
them lay the woods of Oromл, and westward shimmered the fields and pastures of
Yavanna, gold beneath the tall wheat of the gods. Bat Melkor looked north, and
saw afar the shining plain, and the silver domes of Valmar gleaming in the
mingling of the lights of Telperion and Laurelin. Then Melkor laughed aloud,
and leapt swiftly down the long western slopes; and Ungoliant was at his side,
and her darkness covered them. Now it was a time of festival, as Melkor
knew well. Though all tides and seasons were at the will of the Valar, and in
Valinor there was no winter of death, nonetheless they dwelt then in the
Kingdom of Arda, and that was but a small realm in the halls of Eд, whose life
is Time, which flows ever from the first note to the last chord of Eru. And
even as it was then the delight of the Valar (as is told in the Ainulindalл) to clothe themselves as in
a vesture in the forms of the Children of Ilъvatar, so also did they eat and
drink, and gather the fruits of Yavanna from the Earth, which under Eru they
had made. Therefore Yavanna set times for the
flowering and the ripening of all things mat grew in Valinor; and at each first
gathering of fruits Manwл made a high feast for the praising of Eru, when all
the peoples of Valinor poured forth their joy in music and song upon
Taniquetil. This now was the hour, and Manwл decreed a feast more glorious than
any that had been held since the coming of the Eldar to Aman. For though the
escape of Melkor portended toils and sorrows to come, and indeed none could tell
what further hurts would be done to Arda ere he could be subdued again, at this
time Manwл designed to heal the evil that had arisen among the Noldor; and all
were bidden to come to his halls upon Taniquetil, there to put aside the griefs
that lay between their princes, and forget utterly the lies of their Enemy.
There came the Vanyar, and there came the Noldor of Tirion, and the Maiar were
gathered together, and the Valar were arrayed in their beauty and majesty; and
they sang before Manwл and Varda in their lofty halls, or danced upon the green
slopes of the Mountain that looked west towards the Trees. In that day the
streets of Valmar were empty, and the stairs of Tirion were silent; and all the
land lay sleeping in peace. Only the Teleri beyond the mountains still sang
upon the shores of the sea; for they
recked little of seasons or times, and gave no thought to the cares of the
Rulers of Arda, or the shadow that had fallen on Valinor, for it had not
touched them, as yet. One thing only marred the design of Manwл.
Fлanor came indeed, for him alone Manwл had commanded to come; but Finwл came
not, nor any others of the Noldor of Formenos. For said Finwл: 'While the ban
lasts upon Fлanor my son, that he may not go to Tirion, I hold myself unkinged,
and I will not meet my people.' And Fлanor came not in raiment of festival, and
he wore no ornament, neither silver nor gold nor any gem; and he denied the
sight of the Silmarils to the Valar and the Eldar, and left them locked in
Formenos in their chamber of iron. Nevertheless he met Fingolfin before the
throne of Manwл, and was reconciled, in word; and Fingolfin set at naught the
unsheathing of the sword. For Fingolfin held forth his hand, saying: 'As I
promised, I do now. I release thee, and remember no grievance.' Then Fлanor took his hand in silence; but
Fingolfin said: 'Half-brother in blood, full brother in heart will I be. Thou
shalt lead and I will follow. May no new grief divide as.' 'I hear thee,' said Fлanor. 'So be it.' But
they did not know the meaning that their words would bear. It is told that even as Fлanor and Fingolfin
stood before Manwл there came the mingling of the lights, when both Trees were
shining, and the silent city of Valmar was filled with a radiance of silver and
gold. And in that very hour Melkor and Ungoliant came hastening over the fields
of Valinor, as the shadow of a black cloud upon the wind fleets over the sunlit
earth; and they came before the green mound Ezellohar. Then the Unlight of
Ungoliant rose up even to the roots of the Trees, and Melkor sprang upon the
mound; and with his black spear he smote each Tree to its core, wounded them
deep, and their sap poured forth as it were their blood, and was spilled upon
the ground. But Ungoliant sucked it up, and going then from Tree to Tree she
set her black beak to their wounds, till they were drained; and the poison of
Death that was in her went into their tissues and withered them, root, branch,
and leaf; and they died. And still she thirsted, and going to the Wells of
Varda she drank them dry; but Ungoliant belched forth black vapours as she
drank, and swelled to a shape so vast and hideous that Melkor was afraid. So the great darkness fell upon Valinor. Of
the deeds of that day much is told in the Aldudйniл,
that Elemmнrл of the Vanyar made and is known to all the Eldar. Yet no song or
tale could contain all the grief and terror that then befell. The Light failed;
but the Darkness that followed was more than loss of light. In that hour was
made a Darkness that seemed not lack but a thing with being of its own: for it
was indeed made by malice out of Light, and it had power to pierce the eye, and
to enter heart and mind, and strangle the very will. Varda looked down from Taniquetil, and
beheld the Shadow soaring up in sudden towers of gloom; Valmar had foundered in
a deep sea of night. Soon the Holy Mountain stood alone, a last island in a
world that was drowned. All song ceased. There was silence in Valinor, and no
sound could be heard, save only from afar there came on the wind through the
pass of the mountains the wailing of the Teleri like the cold cry of gulls. For
it blew chill from the East in that hour, and the vast shadows of the sea were
rolled against the walls of the shore. But
Manwл from his high seat looked out, and his eyes alone pierced through the
night, until they saw a Darkness beyond dark which they could not penetrate,
huge but far away, moving now northward with great speed; and he knew that
Melkor had come and gone. Then the pursuit was begun; and the earth
shook beneath the horses of the host of Oromл, and the fire that was stricken
from the hooves of Nahar was the first light that returned to Valinor. But so
soon as any came up with the Cloud of Ungoliant the riders of the Valar were
blinded and dismayed, and they were scattered, and went they knew not whither;
and the sound of the Valarуma faltered and failed. And Tulkas was as one caught
in a black net at night, and he stood powerless and beat the air in vain. But
when the Darkness had passed, it was too late: Melkor had gone whither he
would, and his vengeance was achieved. Chapter 9 Of the Flight of the Noldor After a time a great
concourse gathered about the Ring of Doom; and the Valar sat in shadow, for it
was night. But the stars of Varda now glimmered overhead, and the air was
clear; for the winds of Manwл has driven away the vapours of death
and rolled back the shadows of the sea. Then Yavanna arose and stood upon
Ezellohar, the Green Mound, but it was bare now and black; and she laid her
hands upon the Trees, but they were dead and dark, and each branch that she
touched broke and fell lifeless at her feet. Then many voices were lifted in
lamentation; and it seemed to those that mourned that they had drained to the
dregs the cup of woe that Melkor had filled for them. But it was not so. Yavanna spoke before the Valar, saying:
"The Light of the Trees has passed away, and lives now only in the
Silmarils of Fлanor. Foresighted was he! Even for those who are mightiest under
Ilъvatar there is some work that they may accomplish once, and once only. The
Light of the Trees I brought into being, and within Eд I can do so never again.
Yet had I but a little of that light I could recall life to the Trees, ere
their roots decay; and then our hurt should be healed, and the malice of Melkor
be confounded.' Then Manwл spoke and said: 'Hearest thou,
Fлanor son of Finwл, the words of Yavanna? Wilt thou grant what she would ask?' There was long silence, but Fлanor answered
no word. Then Tulkas cried: 'Speak, O Noldo, yea or nay! But who shall deny
Yavanna? And did not the light of the Silmarils come from her work in the
beginning?' But Aulл the Maker said: 'Be not hasty! We
ask a greater thing than thou knowest. Let him have peace yet awhile.' But Fлanor spoke then, and cried bitterly:
'For the less even as for the greater there is some deed that he may accomplish
but once only; and in that deed his heart shall rest. It may be that I can
unlock my jewels, but never again shall I make their like; and if I must break
them, I shall break my heart, and I shall be slain; first of all the Eldar in
Aman.' 'Not the first,' said Mandos, but they did
not understand his word; and again there was silence, while Fлanor brooded in
the dark. It seemed to him that he was beset in a ring of enemies, and the
words of Melkor returned to him, saying that the Silmarils were not safe, if
the Valar would possess them. 'And is he not Vala as are they,' said his
thought, 'and does he not understand their hearts? Yea, a thief shall reveal
thieves!' Then he cried aloud: 'This thing I will not do of free will. But if
the Valar will constrain me, then shall I know indeed that Melkor is of their
kindred.' Then Mandos said: 'Thou hast spoken.' And
Nienna arose and went up onto Ezellohar, and cast back her grey hood, and with
her tears washed away the defilements of Ungoliant; and she sang in mourning
for the bitterness of the world and the Marring of Arda. But even as Nienna mourned, there came
messengers from Formenos, and they were Noldor and bore new tidings of evil.
For they told how a blind Darkness came northward, and in the midst walked some
power for which there was no name, and the Darkness issued from it. But Melkor
also was there, and he came to the house of Fлanor, and there he slew Finwл
King of the Noldor before his doors, and spilled the first blood in the Blessed
Realm; for Finwл alone had not fled from the horror of the Dark. And they told
that Melkor had broken the stronghold of Formenos, and taken all the Jewels of
the Noldor that were hoarded in that place; and the Silmarils were gone. Then Fлanor rose, and lifting up his hand
before Manwл he cursed Melkor, naming him Morgoth, the Black Foe of the World;
and by that name only was he known to the Eldar ever after. And he cursed also
the summons of Manwл and the hour in which he came to Taniquetil, thinking in
the madness of his rage and grief that had he been at Formenos his strength
would have availed more than to be slain also, as Melkor had purposed. Then
Fлanor ran from the Ring of Doom, and fled into the night; for his father was
dearer to him than the Light of Valinor or the peerless works of his hands; and
who among sons, of Elves or of Men, have held their fathers of greater worth? Many there grieved for the anguish of
Fлanor, but his loss was not his alone; and Yavanna wept by the mound, in fear
that the Darkness should swallow the last rays of the Light of Valinor for
ever. For though the Valar did not yet understand fully what had befallen, they
perceived that Melkor had called upon some aid that came from beyond Arda. The
Silmarils had passed away, and all one it may seem whether Fлanor had said yea
or nay to Yavanna; yet had he said yea at the first, before the tidings came
from Formenos, it may be that his after deeds would have been other than they
were. But now the doom of the Noldor drew near. Meanwhile Morgoth escaping from the pursuit
of the Valar came to the wastes of Araman. This land lay northward between the
Mountains of the Pelуri and the Great Sea, as Avathar lay to the south; but
Araman was a wider land, and between the shores and the mountains were barren
plains, ever colder as the Ice drew nearer. Through this region Morgoth and
Ungoliant passed in haste, and so came through the great mists of Oiomъrл to
the Helcaraxл, where the strait between Araman and Middle-earth was filled with
grinding ice; and he crossed over, and came back at last to the north of the
Outer Lands. Together they went on, for Morgoth could not elude Ungoliant, and
her cloud was still about him, and all her eyes were upon him; and they came to
those lands that lay north of the Firth of Drengist. Now Morgoth was drawing
near to the ruins of Angband, where his great western stronghold had been; and
Ungoliant perceived his hope, and knew that here he would seek to escape from
her, and she stayed him, demanding that he fulfil his promise. 'Blackheart!' she said. 'I have done thy
bidding. But I hunger still.' 'What wouldst thou have more?' said Morgoth.
'Dost thou desire all the world for thy belly? I did not vow to give thee that.
I am its Lord.' 'Not so much,' said Ungoliant. 'But thou
hast a great treasure from Formenos; I will have all that. Yea, with both hands
thou shalt give it'. Then perforce Morgoth surrendered to her the
gems that he bore with him, one by one and grudgingly; and she devoured them,
and their beauty perished from the world. Huger and darker yet grew Ungoliant,
but her lust was unsated. 'With one hand thou givest,' she said; 'with the left
only. Open thy right hand.' In his right hand Morgoth held close the
Silmarils, and though they were locked in a crystal casket, they had begun to
bum him, and his hand was clenched in pain; but he would not open it 'Nay!' he
said. 'Thou hast had thy doe. For with my power that I put into thee thy work was
accomplished. I need thee no more.
These things thou shalt not have, nor see. I name them unto myself for ever. ' But Ungoliant had grown great, and he less
by the power that had gone out of him; and she rose against him, and her cloud
closed about him, and she enmeshed him in a web of clinging thongs to strangle
him. Then Morgoth sent forth a terrible cry, that echoed in the mountains.
Therefore that region was called Lammoth; for the echoes of his voice dwelt
there ever after, so that any who cried aloud in that land awoke them, and all
the waste between the hills and the sea was filled with a clamour as of voices
in anguish. The cry of Morgoth in that hour was the greatest and most dreadful
that was ever heard in the northern world; the mountains shook, and the earth
trembled, and rocks were riven asunder. Deep in forgotten places that cry was
heard. Far beneath the rained halls of Angband, in vaults to which the Valar in
the haste of their assault had not descended, Balrogs lurked still, awaiting
ever the return of their Lord; and now swiftly they arose, and passing over
Hithlum they came to Lammoth as a tempest of fire. With their whips of flame
they smote asunder the webs of Ungoliant, and she quailed, and turned to
flight, belching black vapours to cover her; and fleeing from the north she
went down into Beleriand, and dwelt beneath Ered Gorgoroth, in that dark valley
that was after called Nan Dungortheb, the Valley of Dreadful Death, because of
the horror that she bred there. For other foul creatures of spider form had
dwelt there since the days of the delving of Angband, and she mated with them,
and devoured them; and even after Ungoliant herself departed, and went whither
she would into the forgotten south of the world, her offspring abode there and
wove their hideous webs. Of the fate of Ungoliant no tale tells. Yet some have
said that she ended long ago, when in her uttermost famine she devoured herself
at last. And thus the fear of Yavanna that the
Silmarils would be swallowed up and fall into nothingness did not come to pass;
but they remained in the power of Morgoth. And he being freed gathered again
all his servants that he could find, and came to the ruins of Angband. There he
delved anew his vast vaults and dungeons, and above their gates he reared the
threefold peaks of Thangorodrim, and a great reek of dark smoke was ever
wreathed about them. There countless became the hosts of his beasts and his
demons, and the race of the Orcs, bred long before, grew and multiplied in the
bowels of the earth. Dark now fell the shadow on Beleriand, as is told
hereafter, but in Angband Morgoth forged for himself a great crown of iron, and
he called himself King of the World. In token of this he set the Silmarils in
his crown. His hands were burned black by the touch of those hallowed jewels,
and black they remained ever after; nor was he ever free from the pain of the
burning, and the anger of the pain. That crown he never took from his head,
though its weight became a deadly weariness. Never but once only did he depart
for a while secretly from his domain in the North; seldom indeed did he leave
the deep places of his fortress, but governed his armies from his northern
throne. And once only also did he himself wield weapon, while his realm lasted. For now, more than in the days of Utumno ere
his pride was humbled, his hatred devoured him, and in the domination of his
servants and the inspiring of them with lust of evil he spent his spirit.
Nonetheless his majesty as one of the Valar long remained, though turned to
terror, and before his face all save the mightiest sank into a dark pit of
fear. Now when it was known that Morgoth had
escaped from Valinor and pursuit was unavailing, the Valar remained long seated
in darkness in the Ring of Doom, and the Maiar and the Vanyar stood beside them
and wept; but the Noldor for the most part returned to Tirion and mourned for
the darkening of their fair city. Through the dim ravine of the Calacirya fogs
drifted in from the shadowy seas and mantled its towers, and the lamp of the
Mindon burned pale in the gloom. Then suddenly Fлanor appeared in the city
and called on all to come to the high court of the King upon the summit of
Tъna; but the doom of banishment that had been laid upon him was not yet
lifted, and he rebelled against the Valar. A great multitude gathered swiftly,
therefore, to hear what he would say; and the hill and an the stairs and
streets that climbed upon it were lit with the light of many torches that each
one bore in hand. Fлanor was a master of words, and his tongue had great power
over hearts when he would use it; and that night he made a speech before the
Noldor which they ever remembered. Fierce and few were his words, and filled
with anger and pride; and hearing them the Noldor were stirred to madness. His
wrath and his hate were given most to Morgoth, and yet well nigh all that he
said came from the very lies of Morgoth himself; but he was distraught with
grief for the slaying of his father, and with anguish for the rape of the
Silmarils. He claimed now the kingship of all the Noldor, since Finwл was dead,
and he scorned the decrees of the Valar. 'Why, O people of the Noldor,' he cried,
'why should we longer serve the jealous Valar, who cannot keep us nor even
their own realm secure from their Enemy? And though he be now their foe, are
not they and he of one kin? Vengeance calls me hence, but even were it
otherwise I would not dwell longer in the same land with the kin of my father's
slayer and of the thief of my treasure. Yet I am not the only valiant in this
valiant people. And have ye not all lost your King? And what else have ye not
lost, cooped here in a narrow land between the mountains and the sea? 'Here once was light, that the Valar
begrudged to Middle-earth, but now dark levels all. Shall we mourn here
deedless for ever, a shadow-folk, mist-haunting, dropping vain tears in the
thankless sea? Or shall we return to our home? In Cuiviйnen sweet ran the
waters under unclouded stars, and wide lands lay about, where a free people
might walk. There they lie still and await us who in our folly forsook them.
Come away! Let the cowards keep this city!' Long he spoke, and ever he urged the Noldor
to follow him and by their own prowess to win freedom and great realms in the
lands of the East, before it was too late; for he echoed the lies of Melkor,
that the Valar had cozened them and would hold them captive so that Men might
rule in Middle-earth. Many of the Eldar heard then for the first time of the
Aftercomers. 'Fair shall the end be,' he cried, though long and hard shall be
the road! Say farewell to bondage! But say farewell also to ease! Say farewell
to the weak! Say farewell to your treasures! More still shall we make. Journey
light: but bring with you your swords! For we will go further than Oromл, endure
longer than Tulkas: we will never turn back from pursuit. After Morgoth to the
ends of the Earth! War shall he have and hatred undying. But when we have
conquered and have regained the Silmarils, then we and we alone shall be lords
of the unsullied Light, and masters of the bliss and beauty of Arda. No other
race shall oust us!' Then Fлanor swore a terrible oath. His seven
sons leapt straightway to his side and took the selfsame vow together, and red
as blood shone their drawn swords in the glare of the torches. They swore an
oath which none shall break, and none should take, by the name even of
Ilъvatar, calling the Everlasting Dark upon them if they kept it not; and Manwл
they named in witness, and Varda, and the hallowed mountain of Taniquetil,
vowing to pursue with vengeance and hatred to the ends of the World Vala,
Demon, Elf or Man as yet unborn, or any creature, great or small, good or evil,
that time should bring forth unto the end of days, whoso should hold or take or
keep a Silmaril from their possession. Thus spoke Maedhros and Maglor and Celegorm,
Curufin and Caranthir, Amrod and Amras, princes of the Noldor; and many quailed
to hear the dread words. For so sworn, good or evil, an oath may not be broken,
and it shall pursue oathkeeper and oathbreaker to the world's end. Fingolfin
and Turgon his son therefore spoke against Fлanor, and fierce words awoke, so
that once again wrath came near to the edge of swords. But Finarfin spoke
softly, as was his wont, and sought to calm the Noldor, persuading them to
pause and ponder ere deeds were done that could not be undone; and Orodreth,
alone of his sons, spoke in like manner. Finrod was with Turgon, his friend;
but Galadriel, the only woman of the Noldor to stand that day tall and valiant
among the contending princes, was eager to be gone. No oaths she swore, but the
words of Fлanor concerning Middle-earth had kindled in her heart, for she
yearned to see the wide unguarded lands and to rule there a realm at her own
will. Of like mind with Galadriel was Fingon Fingolfin's son, being moved also
by Fлanor’s words, though he loved him little; and with Fingon stood as they
ever did Angrod and Aegnor, sons of Finarfin. But these held their peace and
spoke not against their fathers. At length after long debate Fлanor
prevailed, and the greater part of the Noldor there assembled he set aflame
with the desire of new things and strange countries. Therefore when Finarfin
spoke yet again for heed and delay, a great shout went up: 'Nay, let us be
gone!' And straightway Fлanor and his sons began to prepare for the marching
forth. Little foresight could there be for those
who dared to take so dark a road. Yet all was done in over-haste; for Fлanor
drove them on, fearing lest in the cooling of their hearts his words should
wane and other counsels yet prevail; and for all his proud words he did not
forget the power of the Valar. But from Valmar no message came, and Manwл was
silent. He would not yet either forbid or hinder Fлanor's purpose; for the
Valar were aggrieved that they were charged with evil intent to the Eldar, or
that any were held captive by them against their will. Now they watched and
waited, for they did not yet believe that Fлanor could hold the host of the
Noldor to his will. And indeed when Fлanor began the marshalling
of the Noldor for their setting-out, then at once dissension arose. For though
he had brought the assembly in a mind to depart, by no means all were of a mind
to take Fлanor as King. Greater love was given to Fingolfin and his sons, and
his household and the most part of the dwellers in Tirion refused to renounce
him, if he would go with them; and thus at the last as two divided hosts the
Noldor set forth upon their bitter road. Fлanor and his following were in the
van, but the greater host came behind under Fingolfin; and he marched against
his wisdom, because Fingon his son so urged him, and because he would not be
sundered from his people that were eager to go, nor leave them to the rash
counsels of Fлanor. Nor did he forget his words before the throne of Manwл.
With Fingolfin went Finarfin also and for like reasons; but most loath was he
to depart. And of all the Noldor in Valinor, who were grown now to a great
people, but one tithe refused to take the road: some for the love that they
bore to the Valar (and to Aulл not least), some for the love of Tirion and the
many things that they had made; none for fear of peril by the way. But even as the trumpet sang and Fлanor
issued from the gates of Tirion a messenger came at last from Manwл, saying:
'Against the folly of Fлanor shall be set my counsel only. Go not forth! For
the hour is evil, and your road leads to sorrow that ye do not foresee. No aid
will the Valar lend you in this quest; but neither will they hinder you; for
this ye shall know: as ye came hither freely, freely shall ye depart. But thou
Fлanor Finwл's son, by thine oath art exiled. The lies of Melkor thou shalt
unlearn in bitterness. Vala he is, thou saist Then thou hast sworn in vain, for
none of the Valar canst thou overcome now or ever within the halls of Eд, not
though Eru whom thou namest had made thee thrice greater than thou art.' But Fлanor laughed, and spoke not to the
herald, but to the Noldor, saying: 'So! Then will this valiant people send
forth the heir of their King alone into banishment with his sons only, and
return to their bondage? But if any will come with me, I say to them: Is sorrow
foreboded to you? But in Aman we have seen it. In Aman we have come through
bliss to woe. The other now we will try: through sorrow to find joy; or
freedom, at the least.' Then turning to the herald he cried: 'Say
this to Manwл Sъlimo, High King of Arda: if Fлanor cannot overthrow Morgoth, at
least he delays not to assail him, and sits not idle in grief. And it may be
that Eru has set in me a fire greater than thou knowest. Such hurt at the least
will I do to the Foe of the Valar that even the mighty in the Ring of Doom
shall wonder to hear it. Yea, in the end they shall follow me. Farewell!' In that hour the voice of Fлanor grew so
great and so potent that even the herald of the Valar bowed before him as one
full-answered, and departed; and the Noldor were over-ruled. Therefore they
continued their march; and the House of Fлanor hastened before them along the
coasts of Elendл: not once did they turn their eyes back to Tirion on the green
hill of Tъna. Slower and less eagerly came the host of Fingolfin after them. Of
those Fingon was the foremost; but at the rear went Finarfin and Finrod, and
many of the noblest and wisest of the Noldor; and often they looked behind them
to see their fair city, until the lamp of the Mindon Eldaliйva was lost in the
night. More than any others of the Exiles they carried thence memories of the
bliss they had forsaken, and some even of the things that they had made there
they took with them: a solace and a burden on the road. Now Fлanor led the Noldor northward, because
his first purpose was to follow Morgoth. Moreover Tъna beneath Taniquetil was
set nigh to the girdle of Arda, and there the Great Sea was immeasurably wide,
whereas ever northward the sundering seas grew narrower, as the wasteland of
Araman and the coasts of Middle-earth drew together. But as the mind of Fлanor
cooled and took counsel he perceived overlate that all these great companies
would never overcome the long leagues to the north, nor cross the seas at the
last, save with the aid of ships; yet it would need long time and toil to build
so great a fleet, even were there any among the Noldor skilled in that craft.
He resolved now therefore to persuade the Teleri, ever friends to the Noldor,
to join with them; and in his rebellion he thought that thus the bliss of
Valinor might be further diminished and his power for war upon Morgoth be
increased. He hastened then to Alqualondл, and spoke to the Teleri as he had
spoken before in Tirion. But the Teleri were unmoved by aught that he
could say. They were grieved indeed at the going of their kinsfolk and long
friends, but would rather dissuade them than aid them; and no ship would they
lend, nor help in the building, against the will of the Valar. As for
themselves, they desired now no other home but the strands of Eldamar, and no
other lord than Olwл, prince of Alqualondл. And he had never lent ear to
Morgoth, nor welcomed him to his land, and he trusted still that Ulmo and the
other great among the Valar would redress the hurts of Morgoth, and that the
night would pass yet to a new dawn. Then Fлanor grew wrathful, for he still
feared delay; and hotly he spoke to Olwл. 'You renounce your friendship, even in
the hour of our need,' he said. 'Yet you were glad indeed to receive our aid
when you came at last to these shores, fainthearted loiterers, and wellnigh
emptyhanded. In huts on the beaches would yon be dwelling still, had not the
Noldor carved out your haven and toiled upon your walls.' But Olwл answered: 'We renounce no
friendship. But it may be the part of a friend to rebuke a friend's folly. And
when the Noldor welcomed us and gave us aid, otherwise then you spoke: in the
land of Aman we were to dwell for ever, as brothers whose houses stand side by
side. But as for our white ships: those you gave us not. We learned not that
craft from the Noldor, but from the Lords of the Sea; and the white timbers we
wrought with our own hands, and the white sails were woven by our wives and our
daughters. Therefore we will neither give them nor sell them for any league or
friendship. For I say to you, Fлanor son of Finwл, these are to us as are the
gems of the Noldor: the work of our hearts, whose like we shall not make
again.' Thereupon Fлanor left him, and sat in dark
thought beyond the walls of Alqualondл, until his host was assembled. When he
judged that his strength was enough, he went to the Haven of the Swans and
began to man the ships that were anchored there and to take them away by force.
But the Teleri withstood him, and cast many of the Noldor into the sea. Then
swords were drawn, and a bitter fight was fought upon the ships, and about the
lamplit quays and piers of the Haven, and even upon the great arch of its gate.
Thrice the people of Fлanor were driven back, and many were slain upon either
side; but the vanguard of the Noldor were succoured by Fingon with the foremost
of the host of Fingolfin, who coming up found a battle joined and their own kin
falling, and rushed in before they knew rightly the cause of the quarrel; some
thought indeed that the Teleri had sought to waylay the march of the Noldor at
the bidding of the Valar. Thus at last the Teleri were overcome, and a
great part of their mariners that dwelt in Alqualondл were wickedly slain. For
the Noldor were become fierce and desperate, and the Teleri had less strength,
and were armed for the most part but with slender bows. Then the Noldor drew
away their white ships and manned their oars as best they might, and rowed them
north along the coast. And Olwл called upon
Ossл, but he came not, for it
was not permitted by the Valar that the fight of the Noldor should be hindered
by force. But Uinen wept for the mariners of the Teleri; and the sea rose in wrath
against the slayers, so that many of the ships were wrecked and those in them
drowned. Of the enslaving at Alqualondл more is told in that lament which is
named Noldolantл, the Fall of the
Noldor, that Maglor made ere he was lost. Nonetheless the greater part of the Noldor
escaped, and when the storm was past they held on their course, some by ship
and some by land; but the way was long and ever more evil as they went forward.
After they had marched for a great while in the unmeasured night, they came at
length to the northern confines of the Guarded Realm, upon the borders of the
empty waste of Araman which were mountainous and cold. There they beheld
suddenly a dark figure standing high upon a rock that looked down upon the
shore. Some say that it was Mandos himself, and no lesser herald of Manwл. And
they heard a loud voice, solemn and terrible, that bade them stand and give
ear. Then all halted and stood still, and from end to end of the hosts of the
Noldor the voice was heard speaking the curse and prophecy which is called the
Prophecy of the North, and the Doom of the Noldor. Much it foretold in dark
words, which the Noldor understood not until the woes indeed after befell them;
but all heard the curse that was uttered upon those that would not stay nor
seek the doom and pardon of the Valar. 'Tears unnumbered ye shall shed; and the
Valar will fence Valinor against you, and shut you out, so that not even the
echo of your lamentation shall pass over the mountains. On the House of Fлanor
the wrath of the Valar lieth from the West unto the uttermost East, and upon
all that will follow them it shall be laid also. Their Oath shall drive them,
and yet betray them, and ever snatch away the very treasures that they have
sworn to pursue. To evil end shall all things turn that they begin well; and by
treason of kin unto kin, and the fear of treason, shall this come to pass. The
Dispossessed shall they be for ever. 'Ye have spilled the blood of your kindred
unrighteously and have stained the land of Aman. For blood ye shall render
blood, and beyond Aman ye shall dwell in Death's shadow. For though Eru
appointed to you to die not in Eд, and no sickness may assail you, yet slain ye
may be, and slain ye shall be: by weapon and by torment and by grief; and your
houseless spirits shall come then to Mandos. There long shall ye abide and
yearn for your bodies, and find little pity though all whom ye have slain
should entreat for you. And those that endure in Middle-earth and come not to
Mandos shall grow weary of the world as with a great burden, and shall wane,
and become as shadows of regret before the younger race that cometh after. The
Valar have spoken.' Then many quailed; but Fлanor hardened his
heart and said: 'We have sworn, and not lightly. This oath we will keep. We are
threatened with many evils, and treason not least; but one thing is not said:
that we shall suffer from cowardice, from cravens or the fear of cravens.
Therefore I say that we will go on, and this doom I add: the deeds that we
shall do shall be the matter of song until the last days of Arda.' But in that hour Finarfin forsook the march,
and turned back, being filled with grief, and with bitterness against the House
of Fлanor, because of his kinship with Olwл of Alqualondл; and many of his
people went with him, retracing their steps in sorrow, until they beheld once
more the far beam of the Mindon upon Tъna still shining in the night, and so
came at last to Valinor. There they received the pardon of the Valar, and
Finarfin was set to rule the remnant of the Noldor in the Blessed Realm. But
his sons were not with him, for they would not forsake the sons of Fingolfin;
and all Fingolfin's folk went forward still, feeling the constraint of their
kinship and the will of Fлanor, and fearing to face the doom of the Valar,
since not all of them had been guiltless of the Kinslaying at Alqualondл.
Moreover Fingon and Turgon were bold and fiery of heart, and loath to abandon
any task to which they had put their hands until the bitter end, if bitter it
must be. So the main host held on, and swiftly the evil that was foretold began
its work. The Noldor came at last far into the north
of Arda; and they saw the first teeth of the ice that floated in the sea, and
knew that they were drawing nigh to the Helcaraxл. For between the land of Aman
that in the north curved eastward, and the east-shores of Endor (which is
Middle-earth) that bore westward, there was a narrow strait, through which the
chill waters of the Encircling Sea and the waves of Belegaer flowed together,
and there were vast fogs and mists of deathly cold, and the sea-streams were
filled with clashing hills of ice and the grinding of ice deep-sunken. Such was
the Helcaraxл, and there none yet had dared to tread save the Valar only and
Ungoliant Therefore Fлanor halted and the Noldor
debated what course they should now take. But they began to suffer anguish from
the cold, and the clinging mists through which no gleam of star could pierce;
and many repented of the road and began to murmur, especially those that followed
Fingolfin, cursing Fлanor, and naming him as the cause of all the woes of the
Eldar. But Fлanor, knowing all that was said, took counsel with his sons; and
two courses only they saw to escape from Araman and come into Endor: by the
straits or by ship. But the Helcaraxл they deemed impassable, whereas the ships
were too few. Many had been lost upon their long journey, and there remained
now not enough to bear across all the great host together; yet none were
willing to abide upon the western coast while others were ferried first:
already the fear of treachery was awake among the Noldor. Therefore it came
into the hearts of Fлanor and his sons to seize all the ships and depart
suddenly; for they had retained the mastery of the fleet since the battle of
the Haven, and it was manned only by those who had fought there and were bound
to Fлanor. And as though it came at his call, there sprang up a wind from the
north-west, and Fлanor slipped away secretly with all whom he deemed true to
him, and went aboard, and put out to sea, and left Fingolfin in Araman. And
since the sea was there narrow, steering east and somewhat south he passed over
without loss, and first of all the Noldor set foot once more upon the shores of
Middle-earth; and the landing of Fлanor was at the mouth of the firth which was
called Drengist and ran into Dor-lуmin. But when they were landed, Maedhros the
eldest of his sons, and on a time the friend of Fingon ere Morgoth's lies came
between, spoke to Fлanor, saying: 'Now what ships and rowers will you spare to
return, and whom shall they bear hither first? Fingon the valiant?' Then Fлanor laughed as one fey, and he
cried: 'None and none! What I have left behind I count now no loss; needless
baggage on the road it has proved. Let those that cursed my name, curse me
still, and whine their way back to the cages of the Valar! Let the ships burn!'
Then Maedhros alone stood aside, but Fлanor caused fire to be set to the white
ships of the Teleri. So in that place which was called Losgar at the outlet of
the Firth of Drengist ended the fairest vessels that ever sailed the sea, in a
great burning, bright and terrible. And Fingolfin and his people saw the light
afar off, red beneath the clouds; and they knew that they were betrayed. This
was the firstfruits of the Kinslaying and the Doom of the Noldor. Then Fingolfin seeing that Fлanor had left
him to perish in Araman or return in shame to Valinor was filled with
bitterness; but he desired now as never before to come by some way to
Middle-earth, and meet Fлanor again. And he and his host wandered long in
misery, but their valour and endurance grew with hardship; for they were a
mighty people, the elder children undying of Elu Ilъvatar, but new-come from
the Blessed Realm, and not yet weary with the weariness of Earth. The fire of
their hearts was young, and led by Fingolfin and his sons, and by Finrod and
Galadriel, they dared to pass into the bitterest North; and finding no other
way they endured at last the terror of the Helcaraxл and the cruel hills of
ice. Few of the deeds of the Noldor thereafter surpassed that desperate
crossing in hardihood or woe. There Elenwл the wife of Turgon was lost, and
many others perished also; and it was with a lessened host that Fingolfin set
foot at last upon the Outer Lands. Small love for Fлanor or his sons had those
that marched at last behind him, and blew their trumpets in Middle-earth at the
first rising of the Moon. Chapter 10 Of the Sindar Now as has been told the power of Elwл and
Melian increased in Middle-earth, and all the Elves of Beleriand, from the
mariners of Cнrdan to the wandering hunters of the Blue Mountains beyond the
River Gelion, owned Elwл as their lord; Elu Thingol he was called, King
Greymantle, in the tongue of his people. They are called the Sindar, the
Grey-elves of starlit Beleriand; and although they were Moriquendi, under the
lordship of Thingol and the teaching of Melian they became the fairest and the
most wise and skilful of all the Elves of Middle-earth. And at the end of the
first age of the Chaining of Melkor, when all the Earth had peace and the glory
of Valinor was at its noon, there came into the world Lъthien, the only child
of Thingol and Melian. Though Middle-earth lay for the most part in the Sleep
of Yavanna, in Beleriand under the power of Melian there was life and joy, and
the bright stars shone as silver fires; and there in the forest of Neldoreth
Lъthien was born, and the white flowers of niphredil
came forth to greet her as stars from the earth. It came to pass during the second age of the
captivity of Melkor that Dwarves came over the Blue Mountains of Ered Luin into
Beleriand. Themselves they named Khazвd, but the Sindar called them Naugrim,
the Stunted People, and Gonnhirrim, Masters of Stone. Far to the east were the
most ancient dwellings of the Naugrim, but they had delved for themselves great
halls and mansions, after the manner of their kind, in the eastern side of Ered
Luin; and those cities were named in their own tongue Gabilgathol and
Tumunzahar. To the north of the great height of Mount Dolmed was Gabilgathol,
which the Elves interpreted in their tongue Belegost, that is Mickleburg; and
southward was delved Tumunzahar, by the Elves named Nogrod, the Hollowbold.
Greatest of all the mansions of the Dwarves was Khazвd-dыm, the Dwarrowdelf,
Hadhodrond in the Elvish tongue, that was afterwards in the days of its
darkness called Moria; but it was far off in the Mountains of Mist beyond the
wide leagues of Eriador, and to the Eldar came but as a name and a rumour from
the words of the Dwarves of the Blue Mountains. From Nogrod and Belegost the Naugrim came
forth into Beleriand; and the Elves were filled with amazement, for they had
believed themselves to be the only living things in Middle-earth that spoke
with words or wrought with hands, and that all others were but birds and
beasts. But they could understand no word of the tongue of the Naugrim, which
to their ears was cumbrous and unlovely; and few ever of the Eldar have
achieved the mastery of it But the Dwarves were swift to learn, and indeed were
more willing to learn the Elventongue than to teach their own to those of alien
race. Few of the Eldar went ever to Nogrod and Belegost, save Eцl of Nan Elmoth
and Maeglin his son; but the Dwarves trafficked into Beleriand, and they made a
great road that passed under the shoulders of Mount Dolmed and followed the
course of the River Ascar, crossing Gelion at Sarn Athrad, the Ford of Stones,
where battle after befell. Ever cool was the friendship between the Naugrim and
the Eldar, though much profit they had one of the other; but at that time those
griefs that lay between them had not yet come to pass, and King Thingol
welcomed them. But the Naugrim gave their friendship more readily to the Noldor
in after days than to any others of Elves and Men, because of their love and
reverence for Aulл; and the gems of the Noldor they praised above all other
wealth. In the darkness of Arda already the Dwarves wrought great works, for
even from the first days of their Fathers they had marvellous skill with metals
and with stone; but in that ancient time iron and copper they loved to work,
rather than silver or gold. Now Melian had much foresight, after the
manner of the Maiar; and when the second age of the captivity of Melkor had
passed, she counselled Thingol that the Peace of Arda would not last for ever.
He took thought therefore how he should make for himself a kingly dwelling, and
a place that should be strong, if evil were to awake again in Middle-earth; and
he sought aid and counsel of the Dwarves of Belegost They gave it willingly,
for they were unwearied in those days and eager for new works; and though the
Dwarves ever demanded a price for all that they did, whether with delight or
with toil, at this time they held themselves paid. For Melian taught them much
that they were eager to learn, and Thingol rewarded them with many fair pearls.
These Cнrdan gave to him, for they were got in great number in the shallow
waters about the Isle of Balar; but the Naugrim had not before seen their like,
and they held them dear. One there
was as great as a dove's egg, and its sheen was as starlight on the foam of the
sea; Nimphelos it was named, and the chieftain of the Dwarves of Belegost
prized it above a mountain of wealth. Therefore the Naugrim laboured long and
gladly for Thingol, and devised for him mansions after the fashion of their
people, delved deep in the earth. Where the Esgalduin flowed down, and parted
Neldoreth from Region, there rose in the midst of the forest a rocky hill, and
the river ran at its feet. There they made the gates of the hall of Thingol,
and they built a bridge of stone over the river, by which alone the gates could
be entered. Beyond the gates wide passages ran down to high halls and chambers
far below that were hewn in the living stone, so many and so great that that
dwelling was named Menegroth, the Thousand Caves. But the Elves also had part in that labour,
and Elves and Dwarves together, each with their own skill, there wrought out
the visions of Melian, images of the wonder and beauty of Valinor beyond the
Sea. The pillars of Menegroth were hewn in the likeness of the beeches of
Oromл, stock, bough, and leaf, and they were lit with lanterns of gold. The
nightingales sang there as in the gardens of Lуrien; and there were fountains
of silver, and basins of marble, and floors of many-coloured stones. Carven
figures of beasts and birds there ran upon the walls, or climbed upon the
pillars, or peered among the branches entwined with many flowers. And as the
years passed Melian and her maidens filled the halls with woven hangings
wherein could be read the deeds of the Valar, and many things that had befallen
in Arda since its beginning, and shadows of things that were yet to be. That
was the fairest dwelling of any king that has ever been east of the Sea. And when the building of Menegroth was
achieved, and there was peace in the realm of Thingol and Melian, the Naugrim
yet came ever and anon over the mountains and went in traffic about the lands;
but they went seldom to the Falas, for they hated the sound of the sea and
feared to look upon it. To Beleriand there came no other rumour or tidings of
the world without. But as the third age of the captivity of
Melkor drew on, the Dwarves became troubled, and they spoke to King Thingol,
saying that the Valar had not rooted out utterly the evils of the North, and
now the remnant, having long multiplied in the dark, were coming forth once
more and roaming far and wide. 'There are fell beasts,' they said, 'in the land
east of the mountains, and your ancient kindred that dwell there are flying
from the plains to the hills.' And ere long the evil creatures came even to
Beleriand, over passes in the mountains, or up from the south through the dark
forests. Wolves there were, or creatures that walked in wolf-shapes, and other
fell beings of shadow; and among them were the Orcs, who afterwards wrought
ruin in Beleriand: but they were yet few and wary, and did but smell out the
ways of the land, awaiting the return of their lord. Whence they came, or what
they were, the Elves knew not then, thinking them perhaps to be Avari who had
become evil and savage in the wild; in which they guessed all too near, it is
said. Therefore Thingol took thought for arms,
which before his people had not needed, and these at first the Naugrim smithied
for him; for they were greatly skilled in such work, though none among them
surpassed the craftsmen of Nogrod, of whom Telchar the smith was greatest in
renown. A warlike race of old were all the Naugrim, and they would fight
fiercely against whomsoever aggrieved them: servants of Melkor, or Eldar, or
Avari, or wild beasts, or not seldom their own kin, Dwarves of other mansions
and lordships. Their smithcraft indeed the Sindar soon learned of them; yet in
the tempering of steel alone of all crafts the Dwarves were never outmatched
even by the Noldor, and in the making of mail of linked rings, which was first
contrived by the smiths of Belegost, their work had no rival. At this time therefore the Sindar were
well-armed, and they drove off an creatures of evil, and had peace again; but
Thingol's armouries were stored with axes and with spears and swords, and tall
helms, and long coats of bright mail; for the hauberks of the Dwarves were so
fashioned that they rusted not but shone ever as if they were new-burnished.
And that proved well for Thingol in the time that was to come. Now as has been told, one Lenwл of the host
of Olwл forsook the march of the Eldar at that time when the Teleri were halted
by the shores of the Great River upon the borders of the westlands of
Middle-earth. Little is known of the wanderings of the Nandor, whom he led away
down Anduin: some, it is said, dwelt age-long in the woods of the Vale of the
Great River, some came at last to its mouths and there dwelt by the Sea, and
yet others passing by Ered Nimrais, the White Mountains, came north again and
entered the wilderness of Eriador between Ered Luin and the far Mountains of
Mist. Now these were a woodland people and had no weapons of steel, and the
coming of the fell beasts of the North filled them with great fear, as the
Naugrim declared to King Thingol in Menegroth. Therefore Denethor, the son of
Lenwл, hearing rumour of the might of Thingol and his majesty, and of the peace
of his realm, gathered such host of his scattered people as he could, and led
them over the mountains into Beleriand. There they were welcomed by Thingol, as
kin long lost that return, and they dwelt in Ossiriand, the Land of Seven
Rivers. Of the long years of peace that followed
after the coming of Denethor there is little tale. In those days, it is said,
Daeron the Minstrel, chief loremaster of the kingdom of Thingol, devised his
Runes; and the Naugrim that came to Thingol learned them, and were well-pleased
with the device, esteeming Daeron's skill higher than did the Sindar, his own
people. By the Naugrim the Cirth were
taken east over the mountains and passed into the knowledge of many peoples;
but they were little used by the Sindar for the keeping of records, until the days
of the War, and much that was held in memory perished in the ruins of Doriath.
But of bliss and glad life there is little to be said, before it ends; as works
fair and wonderful, while still they endure for eyes to see, are their own
record, and only when they are in peril or broken for ever do they pass into
song. In Beleriand in those days the Elves walked,
and the rivers flowed, and the stars shone, and the night-flowers gave forth
their scents; and the beauty of Melian was as the noon, and the beauty of
Lъthien was as the dawn in spring. In Beleriand King Thingol upon his throne
was as the lords of the Maiar, whose power is at rest, whose joy is as an air
that they breathe in all their days, whose thought flows in a tide untroubled
from the heights to the deeps. In Beleriand still at times rode Oromл the
great, passing like a wind over the mountains, and the sound of his horn came
down the leagues of the starlight, and the Elves feared him for the splendour
of his countenance and the great noise of the onrush of Nahar; but when the
Valarуma echoed in the hills, they knew well that all evil things were fled far
away. But it came to pass at last that the end of
bliss was at hand, and the noontide of Valinor was drawing to its twilight. For
as has been told and as is known to all, being written in lore and sung in many
songs, Melkor slew the Trees of the Valar with the aid of Ungoliant, and
escaped, and came back to Middle-earth. Far to the north befell the strife of
Morgoth and Ungoliant; but the great cry of Morgoth echoed through Beleriand,
and all its people shrank for fear; for though they knew not what it foreboded,
they heard then the herald of death. Soon afterwards Ungoliant fled from the
north and came into the realm of King Thingol, and a terror of darkness was
about her; but by the power of Melian she was stayed, and entered not into
Neldoreth, but abode long time under the shadow of the precipices in which
Dorthonion fell southward. And they became known as Ered Gorgoroth, the
Mountains of Terror, and none dared go thither, or pass nigh them; there life
and light were strangled, and there all waters were poisoned. But Morgoth, as
has before been told, returned to Angband, and built it anew, and above its
doors he reared the reeking towers of Thangorodrim; and the gates of Morgoth
were but one hundred and fifty leagues distant from the bridge of Menegroth:
far and yet all too near. Now the Orcs that multiplied in the darkness
of the earth grew strong and fell, and their dark lord filled them with a lust
of rain and death; and they issued from Angband's gates under the clouds that
Morgoth sent forth, and passed silently into the highlands of the north. Thence
on a sudden a great army came into Beleriand and assailed King Thingol. Now in
his wide realm many Elves wandered free in the wild, or dwelt at peace in small
kindreds far sundered; and only about Menegroth in the midst of the land, and
along the Falas in the country of the mariners, were there numerous peoples.
But the Orcs came down upon either side of Menegroth, and from camps in the
east between Celon and Gelion, and west in the plains between Sirion and Narog,
they plundered far and wide; and Thingol was cut on from Cнrdan at Eglarest.
Therefore he called upon Denethor; and the Elves came in force from Region
beyond Aros and from Ossiriand, and fought the first battle in the Wars of
Beleriand. And the eastern host of the Orcs was taken between the armies of the
Eldar, north of the Andram and midway between Aros and Gelion, and there they were
utterly defeated, and those that fled north from the great slaughter were
waylaid by the axes of the Naugrim that issued from Mount Dolmed: few indeed
returned to Angband. But the victory of the Elves was dear-bought
For those of Ossiriand were light-armed, and no match for the Orcs, who were shod with iron and
iron-shielded and bore great spears with broad blades; and Denethor was cut off
and surrounded upon the hill of Amon Ereb. There he fell and all his nearest
kin about him, before the host of Thingol could come to his aid. Bitterly
though his fall was avenged, when Thingol came upon the rear of the Orcs and
slew them in heaps, his people lamented him ever after and took no king again.
After the battle some returned to Ossiriand, and their tidings filled the
remnant of their people with great fear, so that thereafter they came never
forth in open war, but kept themselves by wariness and secrecy; and they were
called the Laiquendi, the Green-elves, because of their raiment of the colour
of leaves. But many went north and entered the guarded realm of Thingol, and
were merged with his people. And when Thingol came again to Menegroth he
learned that the Orc-host in the west was victorious, and had driven Cнrdan to
the rim of the sea. Therefore he withdrew all his people that his summons could
reach within the fastness of Neldoreth and Region, and Melian put forth her
power and fenced all that dominion round about with an unseen wail of shadow
and bewilderment: the Girdle of Melian, that none thereafter could pass against
her will or the will of King Thingol, unless one should come with a power
greater than that of Melian the Maia. And this inner land, which was long named
Eglador, was after called Doriath, the guarded kingdom, Land of the Girdle.
Within it there was yet a watchful peace; but without there was peril and great
fear, and the servants of Morgoth roamed at will, save in the walled havens of
the Falas. But new tidings were at hand, which none in
Middle-earth had foreseen, neither Morgoth in his pits nor Melian in Menegroth;
for no news came out of Aman whether by messenger, or by spirit, or by vision
in dream, after the death of the Trees. In this same time Fлanor came over the
Sea in the white ships of the Teleri and landed in the Firth of Drengist, and
there burned the ships at Losgar. Chapter 11 Of the Sun and Moon and the Hiding of
Valinor It is told that
after the flight of Melkor the Valar sat long unmoved upon their thrones in the
Ring of Doom; but they were not idle, as Fлanor declared in the folly of his
heart. For the Valar may work many things with thought rather than with hands,
and without voices in silence they may hold council one with another. Thus they
held vigil in the night of Valinor, and their thought passed back beyond Eд and
forth to the End; yet neither power nor wisdom assuaged their grief, and the
knowing of evil in the hour of its being. And they mourned not more for the
death of the Trees than for the marring of Fлanor: of the works of Melkor one
of the most evil. For Fлanor was made the mightiest in all parts of body and
mind, in valour, in endurance, in beauty, in understanding, in skill, in
strength and in subtlety alike, of all the Children of Ilъvatar, and a bright
flame was in him. The works of wonder for the glory of Arda that he might
otherwise have wrought only Manwл might in some measure conceive. And it was
told by the Vanyar who held vigil with the Valar that when the messengers
declared to Manwл the answers of Fлanor to his heralds, Manwл wept and bowed
his head. But at that last word of Fлanor: that at the least the Noldor should
do deeds to live in song for ever, he raised his head, as one that hears a
voice far off, and he said: 'So shall it be! Dear-bought those songs shall be
accounted, and yet shall be well-bought. For the price could be no other. Thus
even as Eru spoke to us shall beauty not before conceived be brought into Eд,
and evil yet be good to have been.' But Mandos said: 'And yet remain evil. To me
shall Fлanor come soon.' But when at last the Valar learned that the
Noldor had indeed passed out of Aman and were come back into Middle-earth, they
arose and began to set forth in deeds those counsels which they had taken in
thought for the redress of the evils of Melkor. Then Manwл bade Yavanna and
Nienna to put forth all their powers of growth and healing; and they put forth
all their powers upon the Trees. But the tears of Nienna availed not to heal
their mortal wounds; and for a long while Yavanna sang alone in the shadows.
Yet even as hope failed and her song faltered, Telperion bore at last upon a
leafless bough one great flower of silver, and Laurelin a single trait of gold. These Yavanna took; and then the Trees died,
and their lifeless stems stand yet in Valinor, a memorial of vanished joy. But
the flower and the fruit Yavanna gave to Aulл, and Manwл hallowed them, and
Aulл and his people made vessels to hold them and preserve their radiance: as
is said in the Narsilion, the Song of
the Sun and Moon. These vessels the Valar gave to Varda, that they might become
lamps of heaven, outshining the ancient stars, being nearer to Arda; and she
gave them power to traverse the lower regions of Ilmen, and set them to voyage
upon appointed courses above the girdle of the Earth from the West unto the
East and to return. These things the Valar did, recalling in
their twilight the darkness of the lands of Arda; and they resolved now to
illumine Middle-earth and with light to hinder the deeds of Melkor. For they
remembered the Avari that remained by the waters of their awakening, and they
did not utterly forsake the Noldor in exile; and Manwл knew also that the hour
of the coming of Men was drawn nigh. And it is said indeed that, even as the
Valar made war upon Melkor for the sake of the Quendi, so now for that time
they forbore for the sake of the Hildor, the Aftercomers, the younger Children
of Ilъvatar. For so grievous had been the hurts of Middle-earth in the war upon
Utumno that the Valar feared lest even worse should now befall; whereas the
Hildor should be mortal, and weaker than the Quendi to withstand fear and
tumult. Moreover it was not revealed to Manwл where the beginning of Men should
be, north, south, or east. Therefore the Valar sent forth light, but made
strong the land of their dwelling. Isil the Sheen the Vanyar of old named the
Moon, flower of Telperion in Valinor; and Anar the Fire-golden, fruit of
Laurelin, they named the Sun. But the Noldor named them also Rбna, the Wayward,
and Vбsa, the Heart of Fire, that awakens and consumes; for the Sun was set as
a sign for the awakening of Men and the waning of the Elves, but the Moon
cherishes their memory. The maiden whom the Valar chose from among
the Maiar to guide the vessel of the Sun was named Arien, and he that steered
the island of the Moon was Tilion. In the days of the Trees Arien had tended
the golden flowers in the gardens of Vбna, and watered them with the bright
dews of Laurelin; but Tilion was a hunter of the company of Oromл, and he had a
silver bow. He was a lover of silver, and when he would rest he forsook the
woods of Oromл, and going into Lуrien he lay hi dream by the pools of Estл, in
Telperion's flickering beams; and he begged to be given the task of tending for
ever the last Flower of Silver. Arien the maiden was mightier than he, and she
was chosen because she had not feared the heats of Laurelin, and was unhurt by
them, being from the beginning a spirit of fire, whom Melkor had not deceived
nor drawn to his service. Too bright were the eyes of Arien for even the Eldar
to look on, and leaving Valinor she forsook the form and raiment which like the
Valar she had worn there, and she was as a naked flame, terrible in the
fullness of her splendour. Isil was first wrought and made ready, and
first rose into the realm of the stars, and was the elder of the new lights, as
was Telperion of the Trees. Then for a while the world had moonlight, and many
things stirred and woke that had waited long in the sleep of Yavanna. The
servants of Morgoth were filled with amazement, but the Elves of the Outer Lands
looked up in delight; and even as the Moon rose above the darkness in the west,
Fingolfin let blow his silver trumpets and began his march into Middle-earth,
and the shadows of his host went long and black before them. Tilion had traversed the heaven seven times,
and thus was m the furthest east, when the vessel of Arien was made ready. Then
Anar arose in glory, and the first dawn of the Sun was like a great fire upon
the towers of the Pelуri: the clouds of Middle-earth were kindled, and there
was heard the sound of many waterfalls. Then indeed Morgoth was dismayed, and
he descended into the uttermost depths of Angband, and withdrew his servants,
sending forth great reek and dark cloud to hide his land from the light of the
Day-star. Now Varda purposed that the two vessels
should journey in Ilmen and ever be aloft, but not together; each should pass
from Valinor into the east and return, the one issuing from the west as the
other turned from the east. Thus the first of the new days were reckoned after
the manner of the Trees, from the mingling of the lights when Arien and Tilion
passed in then- courses, above the middle of the Earth. But Tilion was wayward
and uncertain in speed, and held not to his appointed path; and he sought to
come near to Arien, being drawn by her splendour, though the flame of Anar
scorched him, and the island of the Moon was darkened. Because of the waywardness of Tilion,
therefore, and yet more because of the prayers of Lуrien and Estл, who said
that sleep and rest had been banished from the Earth, and the stars were
hidden, Varda changed her counsel, and allowed a time wherein the world should
still have shadow and half-light. Anar rested therefore a while in Valinor,
lying upon the cool bosom of the Outer Sea; and Evening, the time of the
descent and resting of the Sun, was the hour of greatest light and joy in Aman.
But soon the Sun was drawn down by the servants of Ulmo, and went then in haste
under the Earth, and so came unseen to the east and there mounted the heaven
again, lest night be over-long and evil walk under the Moon. But by Anar the
waters of the Outer Sea were made hot and glowed with coloured fire, and
Valinor had light for a while after the passing of Arien. Yet as she journeyed
under the Earth and drew towards the east the glow faded and Valinor was dim,
and the Valar mourned then most for the death of Laurelin. At dawn the shadows
of the Mountains of Defence lay heavy on the Blessed Realm. Varda commanded the Moon to journey in like
manner, and passing under Earth to arise in the east, but only after the Sun
had descended from heaven. But Tilion went with uncertain pace, as yet he goes,
and was still drawn towards Arien, as he shall ever be; so that often both may
be seen above the Earth together, or at times it will chance that he comes so
nigh that his shadow cuts off her brightness and there is a darkness amid the
day. Therefore by the coming and going of Anar
the Valar reckoned the days thereafter until the Change of the World. For
Tilion tamed seldom in Valinor, but more often would pass swiftly over the
western land, over Avathar, or Araman, or Valinor, and plunge in the chasm
beyond the Outer Sea, pursuing his way alone amid the grots and caverns at the
roots of Arda. There he would often wander long, and late would return. Still therefore, after the Long Night, the
light of Valinor was greater and fairer than upon Middle-earth; for the Sun
rested there, and the lights of heaven drew nearer to Earth in that region. But
neither the Sun nor the Moon can recall the light that was of old, that came
from the Trees before they were touched by the poison of Ungoliant That light
lives now in the Silmarils alone. But Morgoth hated the new lights, and was
for a while confounded by this unlooked-for stroke of the Valar. Then he
assailed Tilion, sending spirits of shadow against him, and there was strife in
Ilmen beneath the paths of the stars; but Tilion was victorious. And Arien
Morgoth feared with a great fear, but dared not come nigh her, having indeed no
longer the power; for as he grew in malice, and sent forth from himself the
evil that he conceived in lies and creatures of wickedness, his might passed
into them and was dispersed, and he himself became ever more bound to the
earth, unwilling to issue from his dark strongholds. With shadows he hid
himself and his servants from Arien, the glance of whose eyes they could not
long endure; and the lands near his dwelling were shrouded in fumes and great
clouds. But seeing the assault upon Tilion the Valar
were in doubt, fearing what the malice and cunning of Morgoth might yet
contrive against them. Being unwilling to make war upon him in Middle-earth,
they remembered nonetheless the ruin of Almaren; and they resolved that the
like should not befall Valinor. Therefore at that time they fortified their
land anew, and they raised up the mountain-walls of the Pelуri to sheer and
dreadful heights, east, north, and south. Their outer sides were dark and
smooth, without foothold or ledge, and they fell in great precipices with faces
hard as glass, and rose up to towers with crowns of white ice. A sleepless
watch was set upon them, and no pass led through them, save only at the
Calacirya: but that pass the Valar did not close, because of the Eldar that
were faithful, and in the city of Tirion upon the green hill Finarfin yet ruled
the remnant of the Noldor in the deep cleft of the mountains. For all those of
elven-race, even the Vanyar and Ingwл their lord, must breathe at times the
outer air and the wind that comes over the sea from the lands of their birth;
and the Valar would not sunder the Teleri wholly from their kin. But in the
Calacirya they set strong towers and many sentinels, and at its issue upon the
plains of Valmar a host was encamped, so that neither bird nor beast nor elf
nor man, nor any creature beside that dwelt in Middle-earth, could pass that
leaguer. And in that time also, which songs call Nurtalл Valinуreva, the Hiding of
Valinor, the Enchanted Isles were set, and ail the seas about them were filled
with shadows and bewilderment. And these isles were strung as a net in the
Shadowy Seas from the north to the south, before Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle, is reached by one sailing west.
Hardly might any vessel pass between them, for in the dangerous sounds the
waves sighed for ever upon dark rocks shrouded in mist. And in the twilight a
great weariness came upon mariners and a loathing of the sea; but all that ever
set foot upon the islands were there entrapped, and slept until the Change of
the World. Thus it was that as Mandos foretold to them in Araman the Blessed
Realm was shut against the Noldor; and of the many messengers that in after
days sailed into the West none came ever to Valinor - save one only: the
mightiest mariner of song. Chapter 12 Of Men The Valar sat now
behind their mountains at peace; and having given light to Middle-earth they
left it for long untended, and the lordship of Morgoth was uncontested save by
the valour of the Noldor. Most in mind Ulmo kept the exiles, who gathered news
of the Earth through all the waters. From this time forth were reckoned the Years
of the Sun. Swifter and briefer are they than the long Years of the Trees in
Valinor. In that time the air of Middle-earth became heavy with the breath of
growth and mortality, and the changing and ageing of all things was hastened
exceedingly; life teemed upon the soil and in the waters in the Second Spring
of Arda, and the Eldar increased, and beneath the new Sun Beleriand grew green
and fair. At the first rising of the Sun the Younger
Children of Ilъvatar awoke in the land of Hildуrien in the eastward regions of
Middle-earth; but the first Sun arose in the West, and the opening eyes of Men
were turned towards it, and their feet as they wandered over the Earth for the
most part strayed that way. The Atani they were named by the Eldar, the Second
People; but they called them also Hildor, the Followers, and many other names:
Apanуnar, the After-born, Engwar, the Sickly, and Fнrimar, the Mortals; and
they named them the Usurpers, the Strangers, and the Inscrutable, the
Self-cursed, the Heavy-handed, the Night-fearers, the Children of the Sun. Of
Men little is told in these tales, which concern the Eldest Days before the
waxing of mortals and the waning of the Elves, save of those fathers of men,
the Atanatбri, who in the first years of the Sun and Moon wandered into the
North of the world. To Hildуrien there came no Vala to guide Men, or to summon
them to dwell in Valinor; and Men have feared the Valar, rather than loved
them, and have not understood the purposes of the Powers, being at variance
with them, and at strife with the world. Ulmo nonetheless took thought for them
aiding the counsel and will of Manwл; and his messages came often to them by
stream and flood. But they have not skill in such matters, and still less had
they in those days before they had mingled with the Elves. Therefore they loved
the waters, and their hearts were stirred, but they understood not the
messages. Yet it is told that ere long they met Dark Elves in many places, and
were befriended by them; and Men became the companions and disciples in their
childhood of these ancient folk, wanderers of the Elven-race who never set out
upon the paths to Valinor, and knew of the Valar only as a rumour and a distant
name. Morgoth had then not long come back into
Middle-earth, and his power went not far abroad, and was moreover checked by
the sudden coming of great light. There was little peril in the lands and
hills; and there new things, devised long ages before in the thought of Yavanna
and sown as seed in the dark, came at last to their budding and their bloom.
West, North, and South the children of Men spread and wandered, and their joy
was the joy of the morning before the dew is dry, when every leaf is green. But the dawn is brief and the day full often
belies its promise; and now the time drew on to the great wars of the powers of
the North, when Noldor and Sindar and Men strove against the hosts of Morgoth
Bauglir, and went down in ruin. To this end the cunning lies of Morgoth that he
sowed of old, and sowed ever anew among his foes, and the curse that came of
the slaying at Alqualondл, and the oath of Fлanor, were ever at work. Only a
part is here told of the deeds of those days, and most is said of the Noldor,
and the Silmarils, and the mortals that became entangled in their fate. In
those days Elves and Men were of like stature and strength of body, but the
Elves had greater wisdom, and skill, and beauty; and those who had dwelt in
Valinor and looked upon the Powers as much surpassed the Dark Elves in these
things as they in turn surpassed the people of mortal race. Only to the realm
of Doriath, whose queen Melian was of the kindred of Valar, did the Sindar come
near to match the Calaquendi of the Blessed Realm. Immortal were the Elves, and their wisdom
waxed from age to age, and no sickness nor pestilence brought death to them.
Their bodies indeed were of the stuff of Earth, and could be destroyed; and in
those days they were more like to the bodies of Men, since they had not so long
been inhabited by the fire of their spirit, which consumes them from within in
the courses of time. But Men were more frail, more easily slain by weapon or
mischance, and less easily healed; subject to sickness and many ills; and they
grew old and died. What may befall their spirits after death the Elves know
not. Some say that they too go to the halls of Mandos; but their place of
waiting there is not that of the Elves, and Mandos under Ilъvatar alone save
Manwл knows whither they go after the time of recollection in those silent
halls beside the Outer Sea. None have ever come back from the mansions of the
dead, save only Beren son of Barahir, whose hand had touched a Silmaril; but he
never spoke afterward to mortal Men. The fate of Men after death, maybe, is not
in the hands of the Valar, nor was all foretold in the Music of the Ainur. In after days, when because of the triumph
of Morgoth Elves and Men became estranged, as be most wished, those of the
Elven-race that lived still in Middle-earth waned and faded, and Men usurped
the sunlight. Then the Quendi wandered in the lonely places of the great lands
and the isles, and took to the moonlight and the starlight, and to the woods
and caves, becoming as shadows and memories, save those who ever and anon set
sail into the West and vanished from Middle-earth. But in the dawn of years
Elves and Men were allies and held themselves akin, and there were some among
Men that learned the wisdom of the Eldar, and became great and valiant among
the captains of the Noldor. And in the glory and beauty of the Elves, and in
their fate, full share had the offspring of elf and mortal, Eдrendil, and
Elwing, and Elrond their child. Chapter 13 Of the Return of the Noldor It has been told
that Fлanor and his sons came first of the Exiles to Middle-earth, and landed
in the waste of Lammoth, the Great Echo, upon the outer shores of the Firth of
Drengist And even as the Noldor set foot upon the strand their cries were taken
up into the hills and multiplied, so that a clamour as of countless mighty
voices filled all the coasts of the North; and the noise of the burning of the
ships at Losgar went down the winds of the sea as a tumult of great wrath, and
far away all who heard that sound were filled with wonder. Now the flames of that burning were seen not
only by Fingolfin, whom Fлanor had deserted in Araman, but also by the Orcs and
the watchers of Morgoth. No tale has told what Morgoth thought in his heart at
the tidings that Fлanor, his bitterest foe, had brought a host out of the West.
It may be that he feared him little, for he had as yet no proof of the swords
of the Noldor; and soon it was seen that he purposed to drive them back into
the sea. Under the cold stars before the rising of
the Moon the host of Fлanor went up the long Firth of Drengist that pierced the
Echoing Hills of Ered Lуmin, and passed thus from the shores into the great
land of Hithlum; and they came at length to the long lake of Mithrim, and upon
its northern shore made their encampment in the region that bore the same name.
But the host of Morgoth, aroused by the tumult of Lam-moth and the light of the
burning at Losgar, came through the passes of Ered Wethrin, the Mountains of
Shadow, and assailed Fлanor on a sudden, before his camp was full-wrought or put
in defence; and there on the grey fields of Mithrim was fought the Second
Battle in the Wars of Beleriand. Dagor-nuin-Giliath it is named, the
Battle-under-Stars, for the Moon had not yet risen; and it is renowned in song.
The Noldor, outnumbered and taken at unawares, were yet swiftly victorious; for
the light of Aman was not yet dimmed in their eyes, and they were strong and
swift, and deadly in anger, and their swords were long and terrible. The Orcs
fled before them, and they were driven forth from Mithrim with great slaughter,
and hunted over the Mountains of Shadow into the great plain of Ard-galen, that
lay northward of Dorthonion. There the armies of Morgoth that had passed south
into the Vale of Sirion and beleaguered Cнrdan in the Havens of the Falas came
up to their aid, and were caught in their ruin. For Celegorm, Fлanor's son,
having news of them, waylaid them with a part of the Elven-host, and coming
down upon them out of the hills near Eithel Sirion drove them into the Fen of
Serech. Evil indeed were the tidings that came at last to Angband, and Morgoth
was dismayed. Ten days that battle lasted, and from it returned of all the
hosts that he had prepared for the conquest of Beleriand no more than a handful
of leaves. Yet cause he had for great joy, though it
was hidden from him for a while. For Fлanor, in his wrath against the Enemy,
would not halt, but pressed on behind the remnant of the Orcs, thinking so to
come at Morgoth himself: and he laughed aloud as he wielded his sword,
rejoicing that he had dared the wrath of the Valar and the evils of the road,
that he might see the hour of his vengeance. Nothing did he know of Angband or
the great strength of defence that Morgoth had so swiftly prepared: but even
had he known it would not have deterred him, for he was fey, consumed by the
flame of his own wrath. Thus it was that he drew far ahead of the van of his
host; and seeing this the servants of Morgoth turned to bay, and there issued
from Angband Balrogs to aid them. There upon the confines of Dor Daedeloth, the
land of Morgoth, Fлanor was surrounded, with few friends about him. Long he
fought on, and undismayed, though he was wrapped in fire and wounded with many
wounds; but at the last he was smitten to the ground by Gothmog, Lord of Balrogs,
whom Ecthelion after slew in Gondolin. There he would have perished, had not
his sons in that moment come up with force to his aid; and the Balrogs left
him, and departed to Angband. Then his sons raised up their father and
bore him back towards Mithrim. But as they drew near to Eithel Sirion and were
upon the upward path to the pass over the mountains, Fлanor bade them halt; for
his wounds were mortal, and he knew that his hour was come. And looking out
from the slopes of Ered Wethrin with his last sight he beheld far off the peaks
of Thangorodrim, mightiest of the towers of Middle-earth, and knew with the
foreknowledge of death that no power of the Noldor would ever overthrow them;
but he cursed the name of Morgoth thrice, and laid it upon his sons to hold to
their oath, and to avenge their father. Then he died; but he had neither burial
nor tomb, for so fiery was his spirit that as it sped his body fell to ash, and
was borne away like smoke; and his likeness has never again appeared in Arda,
neither has his spirit left the halls of Mandos. Thus ended the mightiest of
the Noldor, of whose deeds came both their greatest renown and their most
grievous woe. Now in Mithrim there dwelt Grey-elves, folk
of Beleriand that had wandered north over the mountains, and the Noldor met
them with gladness, as kinsfolk long sundered; but speech at first was not easy
between them, for in their long severance the tongues of the Calaquendi in
Valinor and of the Moriquendi in Beleriand had drawn far apart. From the Elves
of Mithrim the Noldor learned of the power of Elu Thingol, King in Doriath, and
the girdle of enchantment that fenced his realm; and tidings of these great
deeds in the north came south to Menegroth, and to the havens of Brithombar and
Eglarest. Then all the Elves of Beleriand were filled with wonder and with hope
at the coming of their mighty kindred, who thus returned unlocked-for from the
West in the very hour of their need, believing indeed at first that they came
as emissaries of the Valar to deliver them. But even in the hour of the death of Fлanor
an embassy came to his sons from Morgoth, acknowledging defeat, and offering
terms, even to the surrender of a Silmaril. Then Maedhros the tall, the eldest
son, persuaded his brothers to feign to treat with Morgoth, and to meet his
emissaries at the place appointed; but the Noldor had as little thought of
faith as had he. Wherefore each embassy came with greater force than was
agreed; but Morgoth sent the more, and there were Balrogs. Maedhros was
ambushed, and all his company were slain; but he himself was taken alive by the
command of Morgoth, and brought to Angband. Then the brothers of Maedhros drew back, and
fortified a great camp in Hithlum; but Morgoth held Maedhros as hostage, and
sent word that he would not release him unless the Noldor would forsake their
war, returning into the West, or else departing far from Beleriand into the
South of the world. But the sons of Fлanor knew that Morgoth would betray them,
and would not release Maedhros, whatsoever they might do; and they were
constrained also by their oath, and might not for any cause forsake the war
against their Enemy. Therefore Morgoth took Maedhros and hung him from the face
of a precipice upon Thangorodrim, and he was caught to the rock by the wrist of
his right hand in a band of steel. Now rumour came to the camp in Hithlum of
the march of Fingolfin and those that followed him, who had crossed the
Grinding Ice; and all the world lay then in wonder at the coming of the Moon.
But as the host of Fingolfin marched into Mithrim the Sun rose flaming in the
West; and Fingolfin unfurled his blue and silver banners, and blew his horns,
and flowers sprang beneath his marching feet, and the ages of the stars were
ended. At the uprising of the great light the servants of Morgoth fled into
Angband, and Fingolfin passed unopposed through the fastness of Dor Daedeloth
while his foes hid beneath the earth. Then the Elves smote upon the gates of
Angband, and the challenge of their trumpets shook the towers of Thangorodrim;
and Maedhros heard them amid his torment and cried aloud, but his voice was
lost in the echoes of the stone. But Fingolfin, being of other temper than
Fлanor, and wary of the wiles of Morgoth, withdrew from Dor Daedeloth and
turned back towards Mithrim, for he had heard tidings that there he should find
the sons of Fлanor, and he desired also to have the shield of the Mountains of
Shadow while his people rested and grew strong; for he had seen the strength of
Angband, and thought not that it would fall to the sound of trumpets only.
Therefore coming at length to Hithlum he made his first camp and dwelling by
the northern shores of Lake Mithrim. No love was there in the hearts of those
that followed Fingolfin for the House of Fлanor, for the agony of those that
endured the crossing of the Ice had been great, and Fingolfin held the sons the
accomplices of their father. Then there was peril of strife between the hosts;
but grievous as were their losses upon the road, the people of Fingolfin and of
Finrod son of Finarfin were still more numerous than the followers of Fлanor,
and these now withdrew before them, and removed their dwelling to the southern
shore; and the lake lay between them. Many of Fлanor's people indeed repented
of the burning at Losgar, and were filled with amazement at the valour that had
brought the friends whom they had abandoned over the Ice of the North; and they
would have welcomed them, but they dared not, for shame. Thus because of the curse that lay upon them
the Noldor achieved nothing, while Morgoth hesitated, and the dread of light
was new and strong upon the Orcs. But Morgoth arose from thought, and seeing
the division of his foes he laughed. In the pits of Angband he caused vast
smokes and vapours to be made, and they came forth from the reeking tops of the
Iron Mountains, and afar off they could be seen in Mithrim, staining the bright
airs in the first mornings of the world. A wind came out of the east, and bore
them over Hithlum, darkening the new Sun; and they fell, and coiled about the
fields and hollows, and lay upon the waters of Mithrim, drear and poisonous. Then Fingon the valiant, son of Fingolfin,
resolved to heal the feud that divided the Noldor, before their Enemy should be
ready for war; for the earth trembled in the Northlands with the thunder of the
forges of Morgoth underground. Long before, in the bliss of Valinor, before
Melkor was unchained, or lies came between them, Fingon had been close in
friendship with Maedhros; and though he knew not yet that Maedhros had not
forgotten him at the burning of the ships, the thought of their ancient
friendship stung his heart. Therefore he dared a deed which is Justly renowned
among the feats of the princes of the Noldor: alone, and without the counsel of
any, he set forth m search of Maedhros; and aided by the very darkness that
Morgoth had made he came unseen into the fastness of his foes. High upon the
shoulders of Thangorodrim he climbed, and looked in despair upon the desolation
of the land; but no passage or crevice could he find through which he might
come within Morgoth's stronghold. Then in defiance of the Orcs, who cowered
still in the dark vaults beneath the earth, he took his harp and sang a song of
Valinor that the Noldor made of old, before strife was born among the sons of
Finwл; and his voice rang in the mournful hollows that had never heard before
aught save cries of fear and woe. Thus Fingon found what he sought. For
suddenly above him far and faint his song was taken up, and a voice answering
called to him. Maedhros it was that sang amid his torment. But Fingon climbed
to the foot of the precipice where his kinsman hung, and then could go no
further; and he wept when he saw the cruel device of Morgoth. Maedhros
therefore, being in anguish without hope, begged Fingon to shoot him with his
bow; and Fingon strung an arrow, and bent his bow. And seeing no better hope he
cried to Manwл, saying: 'O King to whom all birds are dear, speed now this
feathered shaft, and recall some pity for the Noldor in their need!' His prayer was answered swiftly. For Manwл
to whom all birds are dear, and to whom they bring news upon Taniquetil from
Middle-earth, had sent forth the race of Eagles, commanding them to dwell in
the crags of the North, and to keep watch upon Morgoth; for Manwл still had
pity for the exiled Elves. And the Eagles brought news of much that passed in
those days to the sad ears of Manwл. Now, even as Fingon bent his bow, there
flew down from the high airs Thorondor, King of Eagles, mightiest of all birds
that have ever been, whose outstretched wings spanned thirty fathoms; and
staying Fingon's hand he took him up, and bore him to the face of the rock
where Maedhros hung. But Fingon could not release the hell-wrought bond upon
his wrist, nor sever it, nor draw it from the stone. Again therefore in his
pain Maedhros begged that he would slay him; but Fingon cut off his hand above
the wrist, and Thorondor bore them back to Mithrim. There Maedhros in time was healed; for the
fire of life was hot within him, and his strength was of the ancient world,
such as those possessed who were nurtured in Valinor. His body recovered from
his torment and became hale, but the shadow of his pain was in his heart; and
he lived to wield his sword with left hand more deadly than his right had been.
By this deed Fingon won great renown, and all the Noldor praised him; and the
hatred between the houses of Fingolfin and Fлanor was assuaged. For Maedhros
begged forgiveness for the desertion in Araman; and he waived his claim to
kingship over all the Noldor, saying to Fingolfin: 'If there lay no grievance
between us, lord, still the kingship would rightly come to you, the eldest here
of the house of Finwл, and not the least wise.' But to this his brothers did
not all in their hearts agree. Therefore even as Mandos foretold the House
of Fлanor were called the Dispossessed, because the over-lordship passed from
it, the elder, to the house of Fingolfin, both in Elendл and in Beleriand, and
because also of the loss of the Silmarils. But the Noldor being again united
set a watch upon the borders of Dor Daedeloth, and Angband was beleaguered from
west, and south, and east; and they sent forth messengers far and wide to
explore the countries of Beleriand, and to treat with the people that dwelt
there. Now King Thingol welcomed not with a full
heart the coming of so many princes in might out of the West, eager for new
realms; and he would not open his kingdom, nor remove its girdle of
enchantment, for wise with the wisdom of Melian he trusted not that the restraint
of Morgoth would endure. Alone of the princes of the Noldor those of Finarfin's
house were suffered to pass within the confines of Doriath; for they could
claim close kinship with King Thingol himself, since their mother was Eдrwen of
Alqualondл, Olwл's daughter. Angrod son of Finarfin was the first of the
Exiles to come to Menegroth, as messenger of his brother Finrod, and he spoke
long with the King, telling him of the deeds of the Noldor in the north, and of
their numbers, and of the ordering of their force; but being true, and
wisehearted, and thinking all griefs now forgiven, he spoke no word concerning
the kinslaying, nor of the manner of the exile of the Noldor and the oath of
Fлanor. King Thingol hearkened to the words of Angrod; and ere he went he said
to him: 'Thus shall you speak for me to those that sent you. In Hithlum the
Noldor have leave to dwell, and in the highlands of Dorthonion, and in the
lands east of Doriath that are empty and wild; but elsewhere there are many of
my people, and I would not have them restrained of their freedom, still less
ousted from their homes. Beware therefore how you princes of the West bear
yourselves; for I am the Lord of Beleriand, and all who seek to dwell there
shall hear my word. Into Doriath none shall come to abide but only such as I
call as guests, or who seek me in great need.' Now the lords of the Noldor held council in
Mithrim, and thither came Angrod out of Doriath, bearing the message of King
Thingol. Cold seemed its welcome to the Noldor, and the sons of Fлanor were
angered at the words; but Maedhros laughed, saying: 'A king is he that can hold
his own, or eke his title is vain. Thingol does but grant us lands where his
power does not run. Indeed Doriath alone would be his realm this day, but for
the coming of the Noldor. Therefore in Doriath let him reign, and be glad that
he has the sons of Finwл for his neighbours, not the Orcs of Morgoth that we
found. Elsewhere it shall go as seems good to us." But Caranthir, who loved not the sons of
Finarfin, and was the harshest of the brothers and the most quick to anger,
cried aloud: 'Yea more! Let not the sons of Finarfin run hither and thither
with their tales to this Dark Elf in his caves! Who made them our spokesmen to
deal with him? And though they be come indeed to Beleriand, let them not so
swiftly forget that their father is a lord of the Noldor, though their mother
be of other kin.' Then Angrod was wrathful and went forth from
the council. Maedhros indeed rebuked Caranthir; but the greater part of the
Noldor, of both followings, hearing his words were troubled in heart, fearing
the fell spirit of the sons of Fлanor that it seemed would ever be like to
burst forth in rash word or violence. But Maedhros restrained his brothers, and
they departed from the council, and soon afterwards they left Mithrim and went
eastward beyond Aros to the wide lands about the Hill of Himring. That region
was named thereafter the March of Maedhros; for northwards there was little
defence of hill or river against assault from Angband. There Maedhros and his
brothers kept watch, gathering all such people as would come to them, and they
had few dealings with their kinsfolk westward, save at need. It is said indeed
that Maedhros himself devised this plan, to lessen the chances of strife, and
because he was very willing that the chief peril of assault should fall upon
himself; and he remained for his part in friendship with the houses of
Fingolfin and Finarfin, and would come among them at times for common counsel.
Yet he also was bound by the oath, though it slept now for a time. Now the people of Caranthir dwelt furthest
east beyond the upper waters of Gelion, about Lake Helevorn under Mount Rerir
and to the southward; and they climbed the heights of Ered Luin and looked
eastward in wonder, for wild and wide it seemed to them were the lands of
Middle-earth. And thus it was that Caranthir's people came upon the Dwarves,
who after the onslaught of Morgoth and the coming of the Noldor had ceased
their traffic into Beleriand. But though either people loved skill and were
eager to learn, no great love was there between them; for the Dwarves were
secret and quick to resentment, and Caranthir was haughty and scarce concealed
his scorn for the unloveliness of the Naugrim, and his people followed their
lord. Nevertheless since both peoples feared and hated Morgoth they made
alliance, and had of it great profit; for the Naugrim learned many secrets of
craft in those days, so that the smiths and masons of Nogrod and Belegost
became renowned among their kin, and when the Dwarves began again to journey
into Beleriand all the traffic of the dwarf-mines passed first through the
hands of Caranthir, and thus great riches came to him. When twenty years of the Sun had passed,
Fingolfin King of the Noldor made a great feast; and it was held in the spring
near to the pools of Ivrin, whence the swift river Narog rose, for there the
lands were green and fair at the feet of the Mountains of Shadow that shielded
them from the north. The joy of that feast was long remembered in later days of
sorrow; and it was called Mereth Aderthad, the Feast of Reuniting. Thither came
many of the chieftains and people of Fingolfin and Finrod; and of the sons of
Fлanor Maedhros and Maglor, with warriors of the eastern March; and there came
also great numbers of the Grey-elves, wanderers of the woods of Beleriand and
folk of the Havens, with Cнrdan their lord. There came even Green-elves from
Ossiriand, the Land of Seven Rivers, far off under the walls of the Blue Mountains;
but out of Doriath there came but two messengers, Mablung and Daeron, bearing
greetings from the King. At Mereth Aderthad many counsels were taken
in good will, and oaths were sworn of league and friendship; and it is told
that at this feast the tongue of the Grey-elves was most spoken even by the
Noldor, for they learned swiftly the speech of Beleriand, whereas the Sindar
were slow to master the tongue of Valinor. The hearts of the Noldor were high
and full of hope, and to many among them it seemed that the words of Fлanor had
been Justified, bidding them seek freedom and fair kingdoms in Middle-earth;
and indeed there followed after long years of peace, while their swords fenced
Beleriand from the ruin of Morgoth, and his power was shut behind his gates. In
those days there was joy beneath the new Sun and Moon, and all the land was
glad; but still the Shadow brooded in the north. And when again thirty years had passed,
Turgon son of Fingolfin left Nevrast where he dwelt and sought out Finrod his
friend upon the island of Tol Sirion, and they journeyed southward along the
river, being weary for a while of the northern mountains; and as they journeyed
night came upon them beyond the Meres of Twilight beside the waters of Sirion,
and they slept upon his banks beneath the summer stars. But Ulmo coming up the
river laid a deep sleep upon them and heavy dreams; and the trouble of the
dreams remained after they awoke, but neither said aught to the other, for
their memory was not clear, and each believed that Ulmo had sent a message to
him alone. But unquiet was upon them ever after, and doubt of what should
befall, and they wandered often alone in untrodden lands, seeking far and wide
for places of hidden strength; for it seemed to each that he was bidden to
prepare for a day of evil, and to establish a retreat, lest Morgoth should
burst from Angband and overthrow the armies of the North. Now on a time Finrod and Galadriel his
sister were the guests of Thingol their kinsman in Doriath. Then Finrod was
filled with wonder at the strength and majesty of Menegroth, its treasuries and
armouries and its many-pillared halls of stone; and it came into his heart that
he would build wide halls behind ever-guarded gates in some deep and secret
place beneath the hills. Therefore he opened his heart to Thingol, telling him
of his dreams; and Thingol spoke to him of the deep gorge of the River Narog,
and the caves under the High Faroth in its steep western shore, and when he
departed he gave him guides to lead him to that place of which few yet knew.
Thus Finrod came to the Caverns of Narog, and began to establish there deep
halls and armouries after the fashion of the mansions of Menegroth; and that
stronghold was called Nargothrond. In that labour Finrod was aided by the
Dwarves of the Blue Mountains; and they were rewarded well, for Finrod had
brought more treasures out of Tirion than any other of the princes of the
Noldor. And in that time was made for him the Nauglamнr, the Necklace of the
Dwarves, most renowned of their works in the Elder Days. It was a carcanet of
gold, and set therein were gems uncounted from Valinor; but it had a power
within it so that it rested lightly on its wearer as a strand of flax, and
whatsoever neck it clasped it sat always with grace and loveliness. There in Nargothrond Finrod made his home
with many of his people, and he was named in the tongue of the Dwarves
Felagund, Hewer of Caves; and that name he bore thereafter until his end. But
Finrod Felagund was not the first to dwell m the caves beside the River Narog. Galadriel his sister went not with him to
Nargothrond, for in Doriath dwelt Celeborn, kinsman of Thingol, and there was
great love between them. Therefore she remained in the Hidden Kingdom, and
abode with Melian, and of her learned great lore and wisdom concerning
Middle-earth. But Turgon remembered the city set upon a
hill, Tirion the fair with its tower and tree, and he found not what he sought,
but returned to Nevrast, and sat in peace in Vinyamar by the shores of the sea.
And in the next year Ulmo himself appeared to him, and bade him go forth again
alone into the Vale of Sirion; and Turgon went forth, and by the guidance of
Ulmo he discovered the hidden vale of Tumladen in the Encircling Mountains, in
the midst of which there was a hill of stone. Of this he spoke to none as yet,
but returned once more to Nevrast, and there began in his secret counsels to
devise the plan of a city after the manner of Tirion upon Tъna, for which his
heart yearned in exile. Now Morgoth, believing the report of his
spies that the lords of the Noldor were wandering abroad with little thought of
war, made trial of the strength and watchfulness of his enemies. Once more,
with little warning, his might was stirred, and suddenly there were earthquakes
in the north, and fire came from fissures in the earth, and the Iron Mountains
vomited flame; and Orcs poured forth across the plain of Ard-galen. Thence they
thrust down the Pass of Sirion in the west, and in the east they burst through
the land of Maglor, in the gap between the hills of Maedhros and the outliers
of the Blue Mountains. But Fingolfin and Maedhros were not sleeping, and while
others sought out the scattered bands of Orcs that strayed in Beleriand did
great evil they came upon the main host from either side as it was assaulting
Dorthonion; and they defeated the servants of Morgoth, and pursuing them across
Ard-galen destroyed them utterly, to the least and last, within sight of
Angband's gates. That was the third great battle of the Wars of Beleriand, and it
was named Dagor Aglareb, the Glorious Battle. A victory it was, and yet a warning; and the
princes took heed of it, and thereafter drew closer their leaguer, and
strengthened and ordered their watch, setting the Siege of Angband. which
lasted wellnigh four hundred years of the Sun. For a long time after Dagor
Aglareb no servant of Morgoth would venture from his gates, for they feared the
lords of the Noldor; and Fingolfin boasted that save by treason among
themselves Morgoth could never again burst from the leaguer of the Eldar, nor
come upon them at unawares. Yet the Noldor could not capture Angband, nor could
they regain the Silmarils; and war never wholly ceased in all that time of the
Siege, for Morgoth devised new evils, and ever and anon he would make trial of
his enemies. Nor could the stronghold of Morgoth be ever wholly encircled: for
the Iron Mountains, from whose great curving wall the towers of Thangorodrim
were thrust forward, defended it upon either side, and were impassable to the
Noldor, because of their snow and ice. Thus in his rear and to the north
Morgoth had no foes, and by that way his spies at times went out, and came by
devious routes into Beleriand. And desiring above all to sow fear and disunion
among the Eldar, he commanded the Orcs to take alive any of them that they
could and bring them bound to Angband; and some he so daunted by the terror of
his eyes that they needed no chains more, but walked ever in fear of him, doing
his will wherever they might be. Thus Morgoth learned much of all that had
befallen since the rebellion of Fлanor, and he rejoiced, seeing therein the
seed of many dissensions among his foes. When nearly one hundred years had run since
the Dagor Aglareb, Morgoth endeavoured to take Fingolfin at unawares (for he
knew of the vigilance of Maedhros); and he sent forth an army into the white
north, and they turned west and again south and came down the coasts to the
Firth of Drengist, by the route that Fingolfin followed from the Grinding Ice.
Thus they would enter into the realm of Hithlum from the west; but they were
espied in time, and Fingon fell upon them among the hills at the head of the
Firth, and most of the Orcs were driven into the sea. This was not reckoned
among the great battles, for the Orcs were not in great number, and only a part
of the people of Hithlum fought there. But thereafter there was peace for many
years, and no open assault from Angband, for Morgoth perceived now that the
Orcs unaided were no match for the Noldor; and he sought in his heart for new
counsel. Again after a hundred years Glaurung, the
first of the Urulуki, the fire-drakes of the North, issued from Angband's gates
by night. He was yet young and scarce half-grown, for long and slow is the life
of the dragons, but the Elves fled before him to Ered Wethrin and Dorthonion in
dismay; and he defiled the fields of Ard-galen. Then Fingon prince of Hithlum
rode against him with archers on horseback, and hemmed him round with a ring of
swift riders; and Glaurung could not endure their darts, being not yet come to
his full armoury, and he fled back to Angband, and came not forth again for
many years. Fingon won great praise, and the Noldor rejoiced; for few foresaw
the full meaning and threat of this new thing. But Morgoth was ill-pleased that
Glaurung had disclosed himself over-soon; and after his defeat there was the
Long Peace of wellnigh two hundred years. In all that time there were but
affrays on the marches, and all Beleriand prospered and grew rich. Behind the
guard of their armies in the north the Noldor built their dwellings and their
towers, and many fair things they made in those days, and poems and histories
and books of lore. In many parts of the land the Noldor and the Sindar became
welded into one people, and spoke the same tongue; though this difference
remained between them, that the Noldor had the greater power of mind and body.
and were the mightier warriors and sages, and they built with stone, and loved
the hill-slopes and open lands. But the Sindar had the fairer voices and were
more skilled in music, save only Maglor son of Fлanor, and they loved the woods
and the riversides; and some of the Grey-elves still wandered far and wide
without settled abode, and they sang as they went. Chapter 14 Of Beleriand and Its Realms This is the fashion
of the lands into which the Noldor came, in the north of the western regions of
Middle-earth, in the ancient days; and here also is told of the manner in which
the chieftains of the Eldar held their lands and the leaguer upon Morgoth after
the Dagor Aglareb, the third battle in the Wars of Beleriand. In the north of the world Melkor had in the
ages past reared Ered Engrin, the Iron Mountains, as a fence to his citadel of
Utumno; and they stood upon the borders of the regions of everlasting cold, in
a great curve from east to west. Behind the walls of Ered Engrin in the west,
where they bent back northwards, Melkor built another fortress, as a defence
against assault that might come from Valinor; and when he came back to
Middle-earth, as has been told, he took up his abode in the endless dungeons of
Angband, the Hells of Iron, for in the War of the Powers the Valar, in their
haste to overthrow him in his great stronghold of Utumno, did not wholly
destroy Angband nor search out all its deep places. Beneath Ered Engrin he made
a great tunnel, which issued south of the mountains; and there he made a mighty
gate. But above this gate, and behind it even to the mountains, he piled the
thunderous towers of Thangorodrim, that were made of the ash and slag of his
subterranean furnaces, and the vast refuse of his tunnellings. They were black
and desolate and exceedingly lofty; and smoke issued from their tops, dark and
foul upon the northern sky. Before the gates of Angband filth and desolation
spread southward for many miles over the wide plain of Ard-galen; but after the
coming of the Sun rich grass arose there, and while Angband was besieged and
its gates shut there were green things even among the pits and broken rocks
before the doors of hell. To the west of Thangorodrim lay Hisilуmл,
the Land of Mist, for so it was named by the Noldor in their own tongue because
of the clouds that Morgoth sent thither during their first encampment; Hithlum
it became in the tongue of the Sindar that dwelt in those regions. It was a
fair land while the Siege of Angband lasted, although its air was cool and
winter there was cold. In the west it was bounded by Ered Lуmin, the Echoing
Mountains that marched near the sea; and in the east and south by the great
curve of Ered Wethrin, the Shadowy Mountains, that looked across Ard-galen and
the Vale of Sirion. Fingolfin and Fingon his son held Hithlum,
and the most part of Fingolfin's folk dwelt in Mithrim about the shores of the
great lake; to Fingon was assigned Dor-lуmin, that lay to the west of the
Mountains of Mithrim. But their chief fortress was at Eithel Sirion in the east
of Ered Wethrin, whence they kept watch upon Ard-galen; and their cavalry rode
upon that plain even to the shadow of Thangorodrim, for from few their horses
had increased swiftly, and the grass of Ard-galen was rich and green. Of those
horses many of the sires came from Valinor, and they were given to Fingolfin by
Maedhros in atonement of his losses, for they had been carried by ship to
Losgar. West of Dor-lуmin, beyond the Echoing
Mountains, which south of the Firth of Drengist marched inland, lay Nevrast,
that signifies the Hither Shore in the Sindarin tongue. That name was given at
first to all the coast-lands south of the Firth, but afterwards only to the
land whose shores lay between Drengist and Mount Taras. There for many years
was the realm of Turgon the wise, son of Fingolfin, bounded by the sea, and by
Ered Lуmin, and by the hills which continued the walls of Ered Wethrin
westward, from Ivrin to Mount Taras, which stood upon a promontory. By some
Nevrast was held to belong rather to Beleriand than to Hithlum, for it was a
milder land, watered by the wet winds from the sea and sheltered from the cold
north winds that blew over Hithlum. It was a hollow land, surrounded by
mountains and great coast-cliffs higher than the plains behind, and no river
flowed thence; and there was a great mere in the midst of Nevrast, with no
certain shores, being encircled by wide marshes. Linaewen was the name of that
mere, because of the multitude of birds that dwelt there, of such as love tall
reeds and shallow pools. At the coming of the Noldor many of the Grey-elves
lived in Nevrast near to the coasts, and especially about Mount Taras in the
south-west; for to that place Ulmo and Ossл had been wont to come in days of
old. All that people took Turgon for their lord, and the mingling of the Noldor
and the Sindar came to pass soonest there; and Turgon dwelt long in those halls
that he named Vinyamar, under Mount Taras beside the sea. South of Ard-galen the great highland named
Dorthonion stretched for sixty leagues from west to east; great pine forests it
bore, especially on its northern and western sides. By gentle slopes from the
'plain it rose to a bleak and lofty land, where lay many tarns at the feet of
bare tors whose heads were higher than the peaks of Ered Wethrin; but southward
where it looked towards Doriath it fell suddenly in dreadful precipices. From
the northern slopes of Dorthonion Angrod and Aegnor, sons of Finarfin, looked
out over the fields of Ard-galen, and were the vassals of their brother Finrod,
lord of Nargothrond; their people were few, for the land was barren, and the
great highlands behind were deemed to be a bulwark that Morgoth would not lightly
seek to cross. Between Dorthonion and the Shadowy Mountains
there was a narrow vale, whose sheer walls were clad with pines; but the vale
itself was green, for the River Sirion flowed through it, hastening towards
Beleriand. Finrod held the Pass of Sirion, and upon the isle of Tol Sirion in
the midst of the river he built a mighty watch-tower, Minas Tirith; but after
Nargothrond was made he committed that fortress mostly to the keeping of
Orodreth his brother. Now the great and fair country of Beleriand
lay on either side of the mighty river Sirion, renowned in song, which rose at
Eithel Sirion and skirted the edge of Ard-galen ere he plunged through the
pass, becoming ever fuller with the streams of the mountains. Thence he flowed
south for one hundred and thirty leagues, gathering the waters of many
tributaries, until with a mighty flood he reached his many mouths and sandy
delta in the Bay of Balar. And following Sirion from north to south there lay
upon the right hand m West Beleriand the Forest of Brethil between Sirion and
Teiglin, and then the realm of Nargothrond, between Teiglin and Narog. And the
River Narog rose in the falls of Ivrin in the southern face of Dor-lуmin, and
flowed some eighty leagues ere he joined Sirion in Nan-tathren, the Land of
Willows. South of Nan-tathren was a region of meads filled with many flowers,
where few folk dwelt; and beyond lay the marshes and isles of reed about the
mouths of Sirion, and the sands of his delta empty of all living things save
birds of the sea.
But the realm of Nargothrond extended also
west of Narog to the River Nenning, that reached the sea at Eglarest; and
Finrod became the overlord of all the Elves of Beleriand between Sirion and the
sea, save only in the Falas. There dwelt those of the Sindar who still loved
ships, and Cнrdan the shipbuilder was their lord; but between Cнrdan and Finrod
there was friendship and alliance, and with the aid of the Noldor the havens of
Brithombar and Eglarest were built anew. Behind their great walls they became
fair towns and harbours with quays and piers of stone. Upon the cape west of
Eglarest Finrod raised the tower of Barad Nimras to watch the western sea,
though needlessly, as it proved; for at no time ever did Morgoth essay to build
ships or to make war by sea. Water all his servants shunned, and to the sea
none would willingly go nigh, save in dire need. With the aid of the Elves of
the Havens some of the folk of Nargothrond built new ships, and they went forth
and explored the great Isle of Balar, thinking there to prepare a last refuge,
if evil came; but it was not their fate that they should ever dwell there. Thus the realm of Finrod was the greatest by
far, though he was the youngest of the great lords of the Noldor, Fingolfin,
Fingon, and Maedhros, and Finrod Felagund. But Fingolfin was held overlord of
all the Noldor, and Fingon after him, though their own realm was but the
northern land of Hithlum; yet their people were the most hardy and valiant,
most feared by the Orcs and most hated by Morgoth. Upon the left hand of Sirion lay East
Beleriand, at its widest a hundred leagues from Sirion to Gelion and the
borders of Ossiriand; and first, between Sirion and Mindeb, lay the empty land
of Dimbar under the peaks of the Crissaegrim, abode of eagles. Between Mindeb
and the upper waters of Esgalduin lay the no-land of Nan Dungortheb; and that
region was filled with fear, for upon its one side the power of Melian fenced
the north march of Doriath, but upon the other side the sheer precipices of
Ered Gorgoroth, Mountains of Terror, fell down from high Dorthonion. Thither,
as was earlier told, Ungoliant had fled from the whips of the Balrogs, and
there she dwelt a while, filling the ravines with her deadly gloom, and there
still, when she had passed away, her foul offspring lurked and wove their evil
nets; and the thin waters that spilled from Ered Gorgoroth were defiled, and
perilous to drink, for the hearts of those that tasted them were filled with
shadows of madness and despair. All living things else shunned that land, and
the Noldor would pass through Nan Dungortheb only at great need, by paths near
to the borders of Doriath and furthest from the haunted hills. That way was
made long before, in the time ere Morgoth returned to Middle-earth; and if one
fared upon it he came eastwards to Esgalduin, where still there stood in the
days of the Siege the stone bridge of Iant Taur. Thence he passed through Dor
Dнnen, the Silent Land, and crossing the Arossiach (which signifies the Fords
of Aros) came to the north marches of Beleriand, where dwelt the sons of
Fлanor. Southward lay the guarded woods of Doriath,
abode of Thingol the Hidden King, into whose realm none passed save by his
will. Its northern and lesser part, the Forest of Neldoreth, was bounded east
and south by the dark river Esgalduin, which bent westward in the midst of the
land; and between Aros and Esgalduin lay the denser and greater woods of
Region. Upon the southern bank of Esgalduin, where it turned westward towards
Sirion, were the Caves of Menegroth; and all Doriath lay east of Sirion save
for a narrow region of woodland between the meeting of Teiglin and Sirion and
the Meres of Twilight. By the people of Doriath this wood was called Nivrim,
the West March; great oak-trees grew there, and it also was encompassed within
the Girdle of Melian, that so some portion of Sirion which she loved in
reverence of Ulmo should be wholly under the power of Thingol. In the south-west of Doriath, where Aros
flowed into Sirion, lay great pools and marshes on either side of the river,
which halted there in his course and strayed in many channels. That region was
named Aelin-uial, the Twilight Meres, for they were wrapped in mists, and the
enchantment of Doriath lay over them. Now all the northern part of Beleriand
sloped southward to this point and then for a while was plain, and the flood of
Sirion was stayed. But south of Aelin-uial the land fell suddenly and steeply;
and all the lower fields of Sirion were divided from the upper fields by this
fall, which to one looking from the south northward appeared as an endless
chain of hills running from Eglarest beyond Narog in the west to Amon Ereb in
the east, within far sight of Gelion. Narog came through these hills in a deep
gorge, and flowed over rapids bat had no fall, and on its western bank the land
rose into the great wooded highlands of Tauren-Faroth. On the west side of this
gorge, where the short and foaming stream Ringwil tumbled headlong into Narog
from the High Faroth, Finrod established Nargothrond. But some twenty-five
leagues east of the gorge of Nargothrond Sirion fell from the north in a mighty
fall below the Meres, and then he plunged suddenly underground into great
tunnels that the weight of his falling waters delved; and he issued again three
leagues southward with great noise and smoke through rocky arches at the foot
of the hills which were called the Gates of Sirion. This dividing fall was named Andram, the
Long Wall, from Nargothrond to Ramdal, the Wall's End, in East Beleriand. But
in the east it became ever less sheer, for the vale of Gelion sloped steadily
southward, and Gelion had neither fall nor rapids throughout his course, but
was ever swifter than was Sirion. Between Ramdal and Gelion there stood a
single hill of great extent and gentle slopes, but seeming mightier than it
was, for it stood alone; and that hill was named Amon Ereb. Upon Amon Ereb died
Denethor, lord of the Nandor that dwelt in Ossiriand, who marched to the aid of
Thingol against Morgoth in those days when the Orcs first came down in force,
and broke the starlit peace of Beleriand; and upon that hill Maedhros dwelt
after the great defeat. But south of the Andram, between Sirion and Gelion, was
a wild land of tangled forest in which no folk went, save here and there a few
Dark Elves wandering; Taur-im-Duinath it was named, the Forest between the
Rivers. Gelion was a great river; and he rose in two
sources and had at first two branches; Little Gelion that came from the Hill of
Himring, and Greater Gelion that came from Mount Rerir. From the meeting of his
arms he flowed south for forty leagues before he found his tributaries; and
before he found the sea he was twice as long as Sirion, though less wide and
full, for more rain fell in Hithlum and Dorthonion, whence Sirion drew his
waters, than in the east. From Ered Luin flowed the six tributaries of Gelion:
Ascar (that was after named Rathlуriel), Thalos, Legolin, Brilthor, Duilwen,
and Adurant, swift and turbulent streams, falling steeply from the mountains;
and between Ascar in the north and Adurant in the south, and between Gelion and
Ered Luin, lay the far green country of Ossiriand, the Land of Seven Rivers.
Now at a point nearly midway in its course the stream of Adurant divided and
then joined again; and the island that its waters enclosed was named Tol Galen,
the Green Isle. There Beren and Lъthien dwelt after their return. In Ossiriand dwelt the Green-elves, in the
protection of their rivers; for after Sirion Ulmo loved Gelion above all the
waters of the western world. The woodcraft of the Elves of Ossiriand was such
that a stranger might pass through their land from end to end and see none of
them. They were clad in green in spring and summer, and the sound of their
singing could be heard even across the waters of Gelion; wherefore the Noldor
named that country Lindon, the land of music, and the mountains beyond they
named Ered Lindon, for they first saw them from Ossiriand. East of Dorthonion the marches of Beleriand
were most open to attack, and only hills of no great height guarded the vale of
Gelion from the north. In that region, upon the March of Maedhros and in the
lands behind, dwelt the sons of Fлanor with many people; and their riders
passed often over the vast northern plain, Lothlann the wide and empty, east of
Ard-galen, lest Morgoth should attempt any sortie towards Bast Beleriand. The
chief citadel of Maedhros was upon the Hill of Himring, the Ever-cold; and that
was wide-shouldered, bare of trees, and flat upon its summit, surrounded by
many lesser hills. Between Himring and Dorthonion there was a pass, exceeding
steep upon the west, and that was the Pass of Aglon, and was a gate unto
Doriath; and a bitter wind blew ever through it from the north. But Celegorm
and Curufin fortified Aglon and held it with great strength, and all the land
of Himlad southward between the River Aros that rose in Dorthonion and his
tributary Celon that came from Himring. Between the arms of Gelion was the ward of
Maglor, and here in one place the hills failed altogether: there it was that
the Orcs came into East Beleriand before the Third Battle. Therefore the Noldor
held strength of cavalry In the plains at that place; and the people of
Caranthir fortified the mountains to the east of Maglor's Gap. There Mount
Rerir, and about it many lesser heights, stood out from the main range of Ered
Lindon westward; and in the angle between Rerir and Ered Lindon there was a
lake, shadowed by mountains on all sides save the south. That was Lake
Helevorn, deep and dark, and beside it Caranthir had his abode; but all the
great land between Gelion and the mountains, and between Rerir and the River
Ascar, was called by the Noldor Thargelion, which signifies the Land beyond
Gelion, or Dor Caranthir, the Land of Caranthir; and it was here that the
Noldor first met the Dwarves. But Thargelion was before called by the
Grey-elves Talath Rhъnen, the East Vale. Thus the sons of Fлanor under Maedhros were
the lords of East Beleriand, but their people were in that time mostly in the
north of the land, and southward they rode only to hunt in the greenwoods. But
there Amrod and Amras had their abode, and they came seldom northward while the
Siege lasted; and there also other of the Elf-lords would ride at times, even
from afar, for the land was wild but very fair. Of these Fin-rod Felagund came
most often, for he had great love of wandering and he came even into Ossiriand,
and won the friendship of the Green-elves. But none of the Noldor went ever
over Ered Lindon, while their realm lasted; and little news and late came into
Beleriand of what passed in the regions of the East. Chapter 15 Of the Noldor in Beleriand It has been told how
by the guidance of Ulmo Turgon of Nevrast discovered the hidden vale of
Tumladen; and that (as was after known) lay east of the upper waters of Sirion,
in a ring of mountains tall and sheer, and no living thing came there save the
eagles of Thorondor. But there was a deep way under the mountains delved in the
darkness of the world by waters that flowed out to join the streams of Sirion;
and this way Turgon found, and so came to the green plain amid the mountains,
and saw the island-hill that stood there of hard smooth stone; for the vale had
been a great lake in ancient days. Then Turgon knew that he had found the place
of his desire, and he resolved to build there a fair city, a memorial of Tirion
upon Tъna; but he returned to Nevrast, and remained there in peace, though he
pondered ever in his thought how he should accomplish his design. Now after the Dagor Aglareb the unquiet that
Ulmo set in his heart returned to him, and he summoned many of the hardiest and
most skilled of his people, and led them secretly to the hidden vale, and there
they began the building of the city that Turgon had devised; and they set a
watch all about it, that none might come upon their work from without, and the
power of Ulmo that ran in Sirion protected them. But Turgon dwelt still for the
most part in Nevrast, until it came to pass that at last the city was
full-wrought, after two and fifty years of secret toil. It is said that Turgon
appointed its name to be Ondolindл in the speech of the Elves of Valinor, the
Rock of the Music of Water, for there were fountains upon the hill; but in the
Sindarin tongue the name was changed, and it became Gondolin, the Hidden Rock.
Then Turgon prepared to depart from Nevrast and leave his halls in Vinyamar
beside the sea; and there Ulmo came to him once again, and spoke with him. And
he said: 'Now thou shalt go at last to Gondolin, Turgon; and I will maintain my
power in the Vale of Sirion, and in all the waters therein, so that none shall
mark thy going, nor shall any find there the hidden entrance against thy will.
Longest of all the realms of the Eldaliл shall Gondolin stand against Melkor.
But love not too well the work of thy hands and the devices of thy heart; and
remember that the true hope of the Noldor lieth in the West and cometh from the
Sea.' And Ulmo warned Turgon that he also lay
under the Doom of Mandos, which Ulmo had no power to remove. 'Thus it may come
to pass,' he said, 'that the curse of the Noldor shall find thee too ere the
end, and treason awake within thy walls. Then they shall be in peril of fire.
But if this peril draweth nigh indeed, then even from Nevrast one shall come to
warn thee, and from him beyond ruin and fire hope shall be born for Elves and
Men. Leave therefore in this house arms and a sword, that in years to come he
may find them, and thus shalt thou know him, and not be deceived.' And Ulmo
declared to Turgon of what kind and stature should be the helm and mail and
sword that he left behind. Then Ulmo returned to the sea, and Turgon
sent forth all his people, even to a third part of the Noldor of Fingolfin's
following, and a yet greater host of the Sindar; and they passed away, company
by company, secretly, under the shadows of Ered Wethrin, and they came unseen
to Gondolin, and none knew whither they had gone. And last of all Turgon arose,
and went with his household silently through the hills, and passed the gates in
the mountains, and they were shut behind him. Through many long years none passed inward
thereafter, save Hъrin and Huor only; and the host of Turgon came never forth
again until the Year of Lamentation after three hundred and fifty years and
more. But behind the circle of the mountains the people of Turgon grew and
throve, and they put forth their skill in labour unceasing, so that Gondolin
upon Amon Gwareth became fair indeed and fit to compare even with Elven Tirion
beyond the sea. High and white were its walls, and smooth its stairs, and tall
and strong was the Tower of the King. There shining fountains played, and in
the courts of Turgon stood images of the Trees of old, which Turgon himself
wrought with elven-craft; and the Tree which he made of gold was named Glingal,
and the Tree whose flowers he made of silver was named Belthil. But fairer than
all the wonders of Gondolin was Idril, Turgon's daughter, she that was called
Celebrindal, the Silver-foot, whose hair was as the gold of Laurelin before the
coming of Melkor. Thus Turgon lived long in bliss; but Nevrast was desolate,
and remained empty of living folk until the ruin of Beleriand. Now while the city of Gondolin was building
in secret, Finrod Felagund wrought in the deep places of Nargothrond; but
Galadriel his sister dwelt, as has been told, in Thingol's realm in Doriath.
And at times Melian and Galadriel would speak together of Valinor and the bliss
of old; but beyond the dark hour of the death of the Trees Galadriel would not
go, but ever fell silent. And on a time Melian said: 'There is some woe that
lies upon you and your kin. That I can see in you, but all else is hidden from
me; for by no vision or thought can I perceive anything that passed or passes
in the West: a shadow lies over all the land of Aman, and reaches far out over
the sea. Why will you not tell me more?' 'For that woe is past,' said Galadriel; 'and
I would take what joy is here left, untroubled by memory. And maybe there is
woe enough yet to come, though still hope may seem bright.' Then Melian looked in her eyes, and said: 'I
believe not that the Noldor came forth as messengers of the Valar, as was said
at first: not though they came in the very hour of our need. For they speak
never of the Valar, nor have their high lords brought any message to Thingol,
whether from Manwл, or Ulmo, or even from Olwл the King's brother, and his own
folk that went over the sea. For what cause, Galadriel, were the high people of
the Noldor driven forth as exiles from Aman? Or what evil lies on the sons of
Fлanor that they are so haughty and so fell? Do I not strike near the truth?' "Near,' said Galadriel; 'save that we
were not driven forth, but came of our own will, and against that of the Valar.
And through great peril and in despite of the Valar for this purpose we came:
to take vengeance upon Morgoth, and regain what he stole.' Then Galadriel spoke to Melian of the
Silmarils, and of the slaying of King Finwл at Formenos: but still she said no
word of the Oath, nor of the Kinslaying, nor of the burning of the ships at
Losgar. But Melian said: 'Now much you tell me, and yet more I perceive. A
darkness you would cast over the long road from Tirion, but I see evil there,
which Thingol should learn for his guidance.' 'Maybe,' said Galadriel; 'but not of me.' And Melian spoke then no more of these
matters with Galadriel; but she told to King Thingol all that she had heard of
the Silmarils. 'This is a great matter,' she said, 'greater indeed than the
Noldor themselves understand; for the Light of Aman and the fate of Arda lie
locked now in these things, the work of Fлanor, who is gone. They shall not be
recovered, I foretell, by any power of the Eldar; and the world shall be broken
in battles that are to come, ere they are wrested from Morgoth. See now! Fлanor
they have slain, and many another, as I guess; but first of all the deaths they
have brought and yet shall bring was Finwл your friend. Morgoth slew him, ere
he fled from Aman.' Then Thingol was silent, being filled with
grief and foreboding; but at length he said: 'Now at last I understand the
coming of the Noldor out of the West, at which I wondered much before. Not to
our aid did they come (save by chance); for those that remain in Middle-earth
the Valar will leave to their own devices, until the uttermost need. For
vengeance and redress of their loss the Noldor came. Yet all the more sure
shall they be as allies against Morgoth, with whom it is not now to be thought
that they shall ever make treaty.' But Melian said: 'Truly for these causes
they came; but for others also. Beware of the sons of Fлanor! The shadow of the
wrath of the Valar lies upon them; and they have done evil, I perceive, both in
Aman and to their own kin. A grief but lulled to sleep lies between the princes
of the Noldor.' And Thingol answered: 'What is that to me?
Of Fлanor I have heard but report, which makes him great indeed. Of his sons I
hear little to my pleasure; yet they are likely to prove the deadliest foes of
our foe.' Their swords and their counsels shall have
two edges,' I said Melian; and afterwards they spoke no more of this matter. It was not long before whispered tales began
to pass among the Sindar concerning the deeds of the Noldor ere they came to
Beleriand. Certain it is whence they came, and the evil truth was enhanced and
poisoned by lies; but the Sindar were yet unwary and trustful of words, and (as
may well be thought) Morgoth chose them for this first assault of his malice,
for they knew him not. And Cнrdan, hearing these dark tales, was troubled; for
he was wise, and perceived swiftly that true or false they were put about at
this time through malice, though the malice he deemed was that of the princes
of the Noldor, because of the jealousy of their houses. Therefore he sent
messengers to Thingol to tell all that he had heard. It chanced that at that time the sons of
Finarfin were again the guests of Thingol, for they wished to see their sister
Galadriel. Then Thingol, being greatly moved, spoke in anger to Finrod, saying:
'Ill have you done to me, kinsman, to conceal so great matters from me. For now
I have learned of all the evil deeds of the Noldor.' But Finrod answered: 'What ill have I done
yon, lord? Or what evil deed have the Noldor done in all your realm to grieve
you? Neither against your kinship nor against any of your people have they
thought evil or done evil.' 'I marvel at you, son of Eдrwen,' said
Thingol, 'that you would come to the board of your kinsman thus red-handed from
the slaying of your mothers kin, and yet say naught in defence, nor yet seek
any pardon!' Then Finrod was greatly troubled, but he was
silent, for he could not defend himself, save by bringing charges against the
other princes of the Noldor; and that he was loath to do before Thingol. But in
Angrod's heart the memory of the words of Caranthir welled up again in
bitterness, and he cried: 'Lord, I know not what lies you have heard, nor
whence; but we came not red-handed. Guiltless we came forth, save maybe of
folly, to listen to the words of fell Fлanor, and become as if besotted with
wine, and as briefly. No evil did we do on our road, but suffered ourselves
great wrong; and forgave it. For this we are named tale-bearers to you and
treasonable to the Noldor: untruly as you know, for we have of our loyalty been
silent before you, and thus earned your anger. But now these charges are no
longer to be borne, and the truth yon shall know.' Then Angrod spoke bitterly against the sons
of Fлanor, telling of the blood at Alqualondл, and the Doom of Mandos, and the
burning of the ships at Losgar. And he cried: 'Wherefore should we that endured
the Grinding Ice bear the name of kinslayers and traitors?' 'Yet the shadow of Mandos lies on you also,'
said Melian. But Thingol was long silent ere he spoke. 'Go now!' he said. 'For
my heart is hot within me. Later you may return, if you will; for I will not
shut my doors for ever against you, my kindred, that were ensnared in an evil
that you did not aid. With Fingolfin and his people also I will keep
friendship, for they have bitterly atoned for such ill as they did. And in our hatred
of the Power that wrought all this woe our griefs shall be lost. But hear my
words! Never again in my ears shall be heard the tongue of those who slew my
kin in Alqualondл! Nor in all my realm shall it be openly spoken, while my
power endures. All the Sindar shall hear my command that they shall neither
speak with the tongue of the Noldor nor answer to it. And all such as use it
shall be held slayers of kin and betrayers of kin unrepentant.' Then the sons of Finarfin departed from
Menegroth with heavy hearts, perceiving how the words of Mandos would ever be
made true, and that none of the Noldor that followed after Fлanor could escape
from the shadow that lay upon his house. And it came to pass even as Thingol
had spoken; for the Sindar heard his word, and thereafter throughout Beleriand
they refused the tongue of the Noldor, and shunned those that spoke it aloud;
but the Exiles took the Sindarin tongue in all their daily uses, and the High
Speech of the West was spoken only by the lords of the Noldor among themselves.
Yet that speech lived ever as a language of lore, wherever any of that people
dwelt. It came to pass that Nargothrond was
full-wrought (and yet Turgon still dwelt in the halls of Vinyamar), and the
sons of Finarfin were gathered there to a feast; and Galadriel came from
Doriath and dwelt a while in Nargothrond. Now King Finrod Felagund had no wife,
and Galadriel asked him why this should be; but foresight came upon Felagund as
she spoke, and he said: 'An oath I too shall swear, and must be free to fulfil
it, and go into darkness. Nor shall anything of my realm endure that a son
should inherit.' But it is said that not until that hour had
such cold thoughts ruled him; for indeed she whom he had loved was Amariл of
the Vanyar, and she went not with him into exile. Chapter 16 Of Maeglin Aredhel Ar-Feiniel,
the White Lady of the Noldor, daughter of Fingolfin, dwelt in Nevrast with
Turgon her brother, and she went with him to the Hidden Kingdom. But she
wearied of the guarded city of Gondolin, desiring ever the longer the more to
ride again in the wide lands and to walk in the forests, as had been her wont
in Valinor: and when two hundred years had passed since Gondolin was
full-wrought, she spoke to Turgon and asked leave to depart. Turgon was loath
to grant this, and long denied her; but at the last he yielded, saying: 'Go
then, if you will though it is against my wisdom, and I forebode that ill will
come of it both to you and to me. But you shall go only to seek Fingon, our
brother; and those that I send with you shall return hither to Gondolin as
swiftly as they may.' But Aredhel said: 'I am your sister and not
your servant, and beyond your bounds I will go as seems good to me. And if you
begrudge me an escort, then I will go alone.' Then Turgon answered: 'I grudge you nothing
that I have. Yet I desire that none shall dwell beyond my walls who know the
way hither: and if I trust you, my sister, others I trust less to keep guard on
their tongues.' And Turgon appointed three lords of his
household to ride with Aredhel, and he bade them lead her to Fingon in Hithlum,
if they might prevail upon her. 'And be wary,' he said; 'for though Morgoth be
yet hemmed in the North there are many perils in Middle-earth of which the Lady
knows nothing.' Then Aredhel departed from Gondolin, and Turgon's heart was
heavy at her going. But when she came to the Ford of Brithiach
in the River Sirion she said to her companions: 'Turn now south and not north,
for I will not ride to Hithlum; my heart desires rather to find the sons of
Fлanor, my friends of old.' And since she could not be dissuaded they turned
south as she commanded, and sought admittance into Doriath. But the
march-wardens denied them; for Thingol would suffer none of the Noldor to pass
the Girdle, save his kinsfolk of the house of Finarfin, and least of all those
that were friends of the sons of Fлanor. Therefore the march-wardens said to
Aredhel: 'To the land of Celegorm for which you seek, Lady, you may by no means
pass through the realm of King Thingol; you must ride beyond the Girdle of
Melian, to the south or to the north. The speediest way is by the paths that
lead east from the Brithiach through Dimbar and along the north-march of this
kingdom, until you pass the Bridge of Esgalduin and the Fords of Aros, and come
to the lands that lie behind the Hill of Himring. There dwell, as we believe,
Celegorm and Curufin, and it may be that you will find them; but the road is
perilous.' Then Aredhel turned back and sought the
dangerous road between the haunted valleys of Ered Gorgoroth and the north
fences of Doriath; and as they drew near to the evil region of Nan Dungortheb
the riders became enmeshed in shadows, and Aredhel strayed from her companions
and was lost. They sought long for her in vain, fearing that she had been
ensnared, or had drunk from the poisoned streams of that land; but the fell
creatures of Ungoliant that dwelt in the ravines were aroused and pursued them,
and they hardly escaped with their lives. When at last they returned and their
tale was told there was great sorrow in Gondolin; and Turgon sat long alone,
enduring grief and anger in silence. But Aredhel, having sought in vain for her
companions, rode on, for she was fearless and hardy of heart, as were all the
children of Finwл; and she held on her way, and crossing Esgalduin and Aros
came to the land of Himlad between Aros and Celon where Celegorm and Curufin
dwelt in those days, before the breaking of the Siege of Angband. At that time
they were from home, riding with Caranthir east in Thargelion; but the people
of Celegorm welcomed her and bade her stay among them with honour until their
lord's return. There for a while she was content, and had great Joy in
wandering free in the woodlands; but as the year lengthened and Celegorm did not
return, she became restless again, and took to riding alone ever further
abroad, seeking for new paths and untrodden glades. Thus it chanced in the
waning of the year that Aredhel came to the south of Himlad, and passed over
Celon; and before she was aware she was enmeshed in Nan Elmoth. In that wood in ages past Melian walked in
the twilight of Middle-earth when the trees were young, and enchantment lay
upon it still. But now the trees of Nan Elmoth were the tallest and darkest in
all Beleriand, and there the sun never came; and there Eцl dwelt, who was named
the Dark Elf. Of old he was of the kin of Thingol, but he was restless and ill
at ease in Doriath, and when the Girdle of Melian was set about the Forest of
Region where he dwelt he fled thence to Nan Elmoth. There he lived in deep
shadow, loving the night and the twilight under the stars. He shunned the
Noldor, holding them to blame for the return of Morgoth, to trouble the quiet
of Beleriand; but for the Dwarves he had more liking than any other of the
Elvenfolk of old. From him the Dwarves learned much of what passed in the lands
of the Eldar. Now the traffic of the Dwarves down from the
Blue Mountains followed two roads across East Beleriand, and the northern way,
going towards the Fords of Aros, passed nigh to Nan Elmoth; and there Eцl would
meet the Naugrim and hold converse with them. And as their friendship grew he
would at times go and dwell as guest in the deep mansions of Nogrod or Belegost
There he learned much of metalwork, and came to great skill therein; and he
devised a metal as hard as the steel of the Dwarves, but so malleable that he
could make it thin and supple; and yet it remained resistant to all blades and
darts. He named it galvorn, for it
was black and shining like jet, and he was clad in it whenever he went abroad.
But Eцl, though stooped by his smithwork, was no Dwarf, but a tall Elf of a
high kin of the Teleri, noble though grim of face; and his eyes could see deep
into shadows and dark places. And it came to pass that he saw Aredhel
Ar-Feiniel as she strayed among the tall trees near the borders of Nan Elmoth,
a gleam of white in the dim land. Very fair she seemed to him, and he desired
her; and he set his enchantments about her so that she could not find the ways
out, but drew ever nearer to his dwelling in the depths of the wood. There were
his smithy, and his dim halls, and such servants as he had, silent and secret
as their master. And when Aredhel, weary with wandering, came at last to his
doors, he revealed himself; and he welcomed her, and led her into his house.
And there she remained; for Eцl took her to wife, and it was long ere any of
her kin heard of her again. It is not said that Aredhel was wholly
unwilling, nor that her life in Nan Elmoth was hateful to her for many years.
For though at Eцl's command she must shun the sunlight, they wandered far
together under the stars or by the light of the sickle moon; or she might fare
alone as she would, save that Eцl forbade her to seek the sons of Fлanor, or
any others of the Noldor. And Aredhel bore to Eцl a son in the shadows of Nan
Elmoth, and in her heart she gave him a name in the forbidden tongue of the
Noldor, Lуmion, that signifies Child of the Twilight; but his father gave him
no name until he was twelve years old. Then he called him Maeglin, which is
Sharp Glance, for he perceived that the eyes of his son were more piercing than
his own, and his thought could read the secrets of hearts beyond the mist of
words. As Maeglin grew to full stature he resembled
in face and form rather his kindred of the Noldor, but in mood and mind he was
the son of his father. His words were few save in matters that touched him
near, and then his voice had a power to move those that heard him and to
overthrow those that withstood him. He was tall and black-haired; his eyes were
dark, yet bright and keen as the eyes of the Noldor, and his skin was white.
Often he went with Eцl to the cities of the Dwarves in the east of Ered Lindon,
and there he learned eagerly what they would teach, and above all the craft of
finding the ores of metals in the mountains. Yet it is said that Maeglin loved his mother
better, and if Eцl were abroad he would sit long beside her and listen to all
that she could tell him of her kin and their deeds in Eldamar, and of the might
and valour of the princes of the House of Fingolfin. All these things he laid
to heart, but most of all that which he heard of Turgon, and that he had no
heir; for Elenwл his wife perished in the crossing of the Helcaraxл, and his
daughter Idril Celebrindal was his only child. In the telling of these tales there was
awakened in Aredhel a desire to see her own kin again, and she marvelled that
she had grown weary of the light of Gondolin, and the fountains in the sun, and
the green sward of Tumladen under the windy skies of spring; moreover she was
often alone in the shadows when both her son and her husband were away. Of
these tales also grew the first quarrels of Maeglin and Eцl. For by no means
would his mother reveal to Maeglin where Turgon dwelt, nor by what means one
might come thither, and he bided his time, trusting yet to wheedle the secret
from her, or perhaps to read her unguarded mind; but ere that could be done he
desired to look on the Noldor and speak with the sons of Fлanor, his kin, that
dwelt not far away. But when he declared his purpose to Eцl, his father was
wrathful. 'You are of the house of Eцl, Maeglin, my son,' he said, 'and not of
the Golodhrim. All this land is the land of the Teleri, and I will not deal nor
have my son deal with the slayers of our kin, the invaders and usurpers of our
homes. In this you shall obey me, or I will set you in bonds.' And Maeglin did
not answer, but was cold and silent, and went abroad no more with Eцl; and Eцl
mistrusted him. It came to pass that at the midsummer the
Dwarves, as was their custom, bade Eцl to a feast in Nogrod; and he rode away.
Now Maeglin and his mother were free for a while to go where they wished, and
they rode often to the eaves of the wood, seeking the sunlight; and desire grew
hot in Maeglin's heart to leave Nan Elmoth for ever. Therefore he said to
Aredhel: 'Lady, let us depart while there is time? What hope is there in this
wood for you or for me? Here we are held in bondage, and no profit shall I find
here; for I have learned all that my father has to teach, or that the Naugrim
will reveal to me. Shall we not seek for Gondolin? You shall be my guide, and I
will be your guard!' Then Aredhel was glad, and looked with pride
upon her son; and telling the servants of Eцl that they went to seek the sons
of Fлanor they departed and rode away to the north eaves of Nan Elmoth. There
they crossed the slender stream of Celon into the land of Himlad and rode on to
the Fords of Aros, and so westward along the fences of Doriath. Now Eцl returned out of the east sooner than
Maeglin had foreseen, and found his wife and his son but two days gone; and so
great was his anger that he followed after them even by the light of day. As he
entered the Himlad he mastered his wrath and went warily, remembering his
danger, for Celegorm and Curufin were mighty lords who loved Eцl not at all,
and Curufin moreover was of perilous mood; but the scouts of Aglon had marked
the riding of Maeglin and Aredhel to the Fords of Aros, and Curufin perceiving
that strange deeds were afoot came south from the Pass and encamped near the
Fords. And before Eцl had ridden far across the Himlad he was waylaid by the
riders of Curufin, and taken to their lord. Then Curufin said to Eцl: 'What errand have
you, Dark Elf, in my lands? An urgent matter, perhaps, that keeps one so
sun-shy abroad by day.' And Eцl knowing his peril restrained the
bitter words that arose in his mind. 'I have learned. Lord Curufin,' he said.
'that my son and my wife, the White Lady of Gondolin, have ridden to visit you
while I was from home; and it seemed to me fitting that I should join them on
this errand.' Then Curufin laughed at Eцl, and he said:
'They might have found their welcome here less warm than they hoped, had you
accompanied them; but it is no matter, for that was not their errand. It is not
two days since they passed over the Arossiach, and thence rode swiftly
westward. It seems that you would deceive me; unless indeed you yourself have
been deceived.' And Eцl answered: 'Then, lord, perhaps you
will give me leave to go, and discover the truth of this matter.' 'You have my leave, but not my love,' said
Curufin. 'The sooner you depart from my land the better will it please me.' Then Eцl mounted his horse, saying: 'It is
good, Lord Curufin, to find a kinsman thus kindly at need. I will remember it
when I return.' Then Curufin looked darkly upon Eцl. 'Do not flaunt the title
of your wife before me,' he said. 'For those who steal the daughters of the
Noldor and wed them without gift or leave do not gain kinship with their kin. I
have given you leave to go. Take it, and be gone. By the laws of the Eldar I
may not slay you at this time. And this counsel I add: return now to your
dwelling in the darkness of Nan El-moth; for my heart warns me that if you now
pursue those who love you no more, never will you return thither.' Then Eцl rode off in haste, and he was
filled with hatred of all the Noldor; for he perceived now that Maeglin and
Aredhel were fleeing to Gondolin. And driven by anger and the shame of his
humiliation he crossed the Fords of Aros and rode hard upon the way that they
had gone before; but though they knew not that he followed them, and he had the
swiftest steed, he came never in sight of them until they reached the
Brithiach, and abandoned their horses. Then by ill fate they were betrayed; for
the horses neighed loudly, and Eцl's steed heard them, and sped towards them;
and Eцl saw from afar the white raiment of Aredhel, and marked which way she
went, seeking the secret path into the mountains. Now Aredhel and Maeglin came to the Outer
Gate of Gondolin and the Dark Guard under the mountains; and there she was
received with Joy, and passing through the Seven Gates she came with Maeglin to
Turgon upon Amon Gwareth. Then the King listened with wonder to all that
Aredhel had to tell; and he looked with liking upon Maeglin his sister-son,
seeing in him one worthy to be accounted among the princes of the Noldor. 'I rejoice indeed that Ar-Feiniel has
returned to Gondolin,' he said, 'and now more fair again shall my city seem
than in the days when I deemed her lost. And Maeglin shall have the highest
honour in my realm.' Then Maeglin bowed low and took Turgon for
lord and king, to do all his will; but thereafter he stood silent and watchful,
for the bliss and splendour of Gondolin surpassed all that he had imagined from
the tales of his mother, and he was amazed by the strength of the city and the
hosts of its people, and the many things strange and beautiful that he beheld.
Yet to none were his eyes more often drawn than to Idril the King's daughter,
who sat beside him; for she was golden as the Vanyar, her mother's kindred, and
she seemed to him as the sun from which all the King's hall drew its light But Eцl, following after Aredhel, found the
Dry River and the secret path, and so creeping in by stealth he came to the Guard, and was taken and
questioned. And when the Guard heard that he claimed Aredhel as wife they were
amazed, and sent a swift messenger to the City; and he came to the King's hall. 'Lord,' he cried, 'the Guard have taken
captive one that came by stealth to the Dark Gate. Eцl he names himself, and he
is a tall Elf, dark and grim, of the kindred of the Sindar; yet he claims the
Lady Aredhel as his wife, and demands to be brought before you. His wrath is
great and he is hard to restrain; but we have not slain him as your law
commands.' Then Aredhel said: 'Alas! Eцl has followed
us, even as I feared. But with great stealth was it done; for we saw and heard
no pursuit as we entered upon the Hidden Way.' Then she said to the messenger:
'He speaks but the truth. He is E6L and I am his wife, and he is the father of
my son. Slay him not, but lead him hither to the King's judgement, if the King
so wills.' And so it was done; and Eцl was brought to
Turgon's hall and stood before his high seat, proud and sullen. Though he was
amazed no less than his son at all that he saw, his heart was filled the more
with anger and with hate of the Noldor. But Turgon treated him with honour, and
rose up and would take his hand; and he said: "Welcome, kinsman, for so I
hold you. Here you shall dwell at your pleasure, save only that you must here
abide and depart not from my kingdom; for it is my law that none who finds the
way hither shall depart.' But Eцl withdrew his hand. 'I acknowledge
not your law,' he said. 'No right have you or any of your kin in this land to
seize realms or to set bounds, either here or there. This is the land of the
Teleri, to which you bring war and all unquiet, dealing ever proudly and
unjustly. I care nothing for your secrets and I came not to spy upon you, but
to claim my own: my wife and my son. Yet if in Aredhel your sister you have
some claim, then let her remain; let the bird go back to the cage, where soon
she will sicken again, as she sickened before. But not so Maeglin. My son you
shall not withhold from me. Come, Maeglin son of Eцl! Your father commands you.
Leave the house of his enemies and the slayers of his kin, or be accursed!' But
Maeglin answered nothing. Then Turgon sat in his high seat holding his
staff of doom, and in a stem voice spoke: 'I will not debate with you. Dark
Elf. By the swords of the Noldor alone are your sunless woods defended. Your
freedom to wander there wild you owe to my kin; and but for them long since you
would have laboured in thraldom in the pits of Angband. And here I am King; and
whether you will it or will it not, my doom is law. This choice only is given
to you: to abide here, or to die here; and so also for your son.' Then Eцl looked into the eyes of King
Turgon, and he was not daunted, but stood long without word or movement while a
still silence fell upon the hall; and Aredhel was afraid, knowing that he was
perilous. Suddenly, swift as serpent, he seized a javelin that he held hid
beneath his cloak and cast it at Maeglin, crying: 'The second choice I take and for my son
also! You shall not hold what is mine!' But Aredhel sprang before the dart, and it
smote her in the shoulder; and Eцl was overborne by many and set in bonds, and
led away, while others tended Aredhel. But Maeglin looking upon his father was
silent. It was appointed that Eцl should be brought
on the next day to the King's judgement; and Aredhel and Idril moved Turgon to
mercy. But in the evening Aredhel sickened, though the wound had seemed little,
and she fell into the darkness, and in the night she died; for the point of the
Javelin was poisoned, though none knew it until too late. Therefore when Eцl was brought before Turgon
he found no mercy; and they led him forth to the Caragdыr, a precipice of black
rock upon the north side of the hill of Gondolin, there to cast him down from
the sheer walls of the city. And Maeglin stood by and said nothing; but at the
last Eцl cried out: 'So you forsake your father and his kin, ill-gotten son!
Here shall you fail of all your hopes, and here may you yet die the same death
as I.' Then they cast Eцl over the Caragdыr, and so
he ended, and to all in Gondolin it seemed just; but Idril was troubled, and
from that day she mistrusted her kinsman. But Maeglin prospered and grew great
among the Gondolindrim, praised by all, and high in the favour of Turgon; for
if he would learn eagerly and swiftly all that he might, he had much also to
teach. And he gathered about him all such as had the most bent to smithcraft
and mining; and he sought in the Echoriath (which are the Encircling
Mountains), and found rich lodes of ore of divers metals. Most he prized the
hard iron of the mine of Anghabar in the north of the Echoriath, and thence he
got a wealth of forged metal and of steel, so that the arms of the Gondolindrim
were made ever stronger and more keen; and that stood them in good stead in the
days to come. Wise in counsel was Maeglin and wary, and yet hardy and valiant
at need. And that was seen in after days: for when in the dread year of the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad Turgon opened his leaguer and marched forth to the help of
Fingon in the north, Maeglin would not remain in Gondolin as regent of the
King, but went to the war and fought beside Turgon, and proved fell and
fearless in battle. Thus all seemed well with the fortunes of
Maeglin, who had risen to be mighty among the princes of the Noldor, and
greatest save one in the most renowned of their realms. Yet he did not reveal
his heart: and though not all things went as he would he endured it in silence,
hiding his mind so that few could read it, unless it were Idril Celebrindal.
For from his first days in Gondolin he had borne a grief, ever worsening, that
robbed him of all joy: he loved the beauty of Idril and desired her, without
hope. The Eldar wedded not with km so near, nor ever before had any desired to
do so. And however that might be, Idril loved Maeglin not at all; and knowing
his thought of her she loved him the less. For it seemed to her a thing strange
and crooked in him, as indeed the Eldar ever since have deemed it: an evil
fruit of the Kinslaying, whereby the shadow of the curse of Mandos fell upon
the last hope of the Noldor. But as the years passed still Maeglin watched
Idril, and waited, and his love turned to darkness in his heart. And he sought
the more to have his will in other matters, shirking no toil or burden, if he
might thereby have power. Thus it was in Gondolin; and amid all the
bliss of that realm, while its glory lasted, a dark seed of evil was sown. Chapter 17 Of the Coming of Men into the West When three hundred
years and more were gone since the Noldor came to Beleriand, in the days of the
Long Peace, Finrod Felagund lord of Nargothrond journeyed east of Sirion and
went hunting with Maglor and Maedhros, sons of Fлanor. But he wearied of the
chase and passed cm alone towards the mountains of Ered Lindon that he saw
shining afar; and taking the Dwarf-road he crossed Gelion at the ford of Sarn
Athrad, and taming south over the upper streams of Ascar, he came into the
north of Ossiriand. In a valley among the foothills of the
mountains, below the springs of Thalos, he saw lights in the evening, and far
off he heard the sound of song. At this he wondered much, for the Green-elves
of that land lit no fires, nor did they sing by night At first he feared that a
raid of Orcs had passed the leaguer of the North, but as he drew near he
perceived that it was not so; for the singers used a tongue that he had not
heard before, neither that of Dwarves nor of Orcs. Then Felagund, standing
silent hi the night-shadow of the trees, looked down into the camp, and there
he beheld a strange people. Now these were a part of the kindred and
following of Bлor the Old, as he was afterwards called, a chieftain among Men.
After many lives of wandering out of the East he had led them at last over the
Blue Mountains, the first of the race of Men to enter Beleriand; and they sang
because they were glad, and believed that they had escaped from all perils and
had come at last to a land without fear. Long Felagund watched them, and love for
them stirred in his heart; but he remained hidden in the trees until they had
all fallen asleep. Then he went among the sleeping people, and sat beside their
dying fire where none kept watch; and he took up a rude harp which Bлor had
laid aside, and he played music upon it such as the ears of Men had not heard;
for they had as yet no teachers in the art, save only the Dark Elves in the
wild lands. Now men awoke and listened to Felagund as he
harped and sang, and each thought that he was in some fair dream, until he saw
that his fellows were awake also beside him; but they did not speak or stir
while Felagund still played, because of the beauty of the music and the wonder
of the song. Wisdom was in the words of the Elven-king, and the hearts grew
wiser that hearkened to him; for the things of which he sang, of the making of
Arda, and the bliss of Aman beyond the shadows of the Sea, came as clear
visions before their eyes, and his Elvish speech was interpreted in each mind
according to its measure. Thus it was that Men called King Felagund,
whom they first met of all the Eldar, Nуm, that is Wisdom, in the language of
that people, and after him they named his folk Nуmin, the Wise. Indeed they
believed at first that Felagund was one of the Valar, of whom they had heard
rumour that they dwelt far in the West; and this was (some say) the cause of
their journeying. But Felagund dwelt among them and taught them true knowledge,
and they loved him, and took him for their lord, and were ever after loyal to
the house of Finarfin. Now the Eldar were beyond all other peoples
skilled in tongues; and Felagund discovered also that he could read in the
minds of Men such thoughts as they wished to reveal in speech, so that their
words were easily interpreted. It is said also that these Men had long had
dealings with the Dark Elves east of the mountains, and from them had learned
much of their speech; and since all the languages of the Quendi were of one origin,
the language of Bлor and his folk resembled the Elven-tongue in many words and
devices. It was not long therefore before Felagund could hold converse with
Bлor; and while he dwelt with him they spoke much together. But when he
questioned him concerning the arising of Men and their journeys, Bлor would say
little; and indeed he knew little, for the fathers of his people had told few
tales of their past and a silence had fallen upon their memory. 'A darkness
lies behind us,' Bлor said; 'and we have turned our backs upon it, and we do
not desire to return thither even in thought. Westwards our hearts have been
turned, and we believe that there we shall find Light.' But it was said afterwards among the Eldar
that when Men awoke in Hildуrien at the rising of the Sun the spies of Morgoth
were watchful, and tidings were soon brought to him; and this seemed to him so
great a matter that secretly under shadow he himself departed from Angband, and
went forth into Middle-earth, leaving to Sauron the command of the War. Of his
dealings with Men the Eldar indeed knew nothing, at that time, and learnt but
little afterwards; but that a darkness lay upon the hearts of Men (as the
shadow of the Kinslaying and the Doom of Mandos lay upon the Noldor) they
perceived clearly even in the people of the Elf-friends whom they first knew.
To corrupt or destroy whatsoever arose new and fair was ever the chief desire
of Morgoth; and doubtless he had this purpose also in his errand: by fear and
lies to make Men the foes of the Eldar, and bring them up out of the east
against Beleriand. But this design was slow to ripen, and was never wholly
achieved; for Men (it is said) were at first very few in number, whereas
Morgoth grew afraid of the growing power and union of the Eldar and came back
to Angband, leaving behind at that time but few servants, and those of less
might and cunning. Now Felagund learned from Bлor that there
were many other Men of like mind who were also journeying westward. 'Others of
my own kin have crossed the Mountains,' he said, 'and they are wandering not
far away; and the Haladin, a people from whom we are sundered in speech, are
still in the valleys on the eastern slopes, awaiting tidings before they
venture further. There are yet other Men, whose tongue is more like to ours,
with whom we have had dealings at times. They were before us on the westward
march, but we passed them; for they are a numerous people, and yet keep
together and move slowly, being all ruled by one chieftain whom they call
Marach.' Now the Green-elves of Ossiriand were
troubled by the coming of Men, and when they heard that a lord of the Eldar
from over the Sea was among them they sent messengers to Felagund. 'Lord,' they
said, 'if you have power over these newcomers, bid them return by the ways that
they came, or else to go forward. For we desire no strangers in this land to
break the peace m which we live. And these folk are hewers of trees and hunters
of beasts; therefore we are their unfriends, and if they will not depart we
shall afflict them in all ways that we can.' Then by the advice of Felagund Bлor gathered
all the wandering families and kindreds of his people, and they removed over
Gelion, and took up their abode in the lands of Amrod and Amras, upon the east
banks of the Celon south of Nan Elmoth, near to the borders of Doriath; and the
name of that land thereafter was Estolad, the Encampment. But when after a year
had passed Felagund wished to return to his own country, Bлor begged leave to
come with him; and he remained in the service of the King of Nargothrond while
his life lasted. In this way he got his name, Bлor, whereas his name before had
been Balan; for Bлor signified 'Vassal' in the tongue of his people. The rule
of his folk he committed to Baran his elder son; and he did not return again to
Estolad. Soon after the departure of Felagund the
other Men of whom Bлor had spoken came also into Beleriand. First came the
Haladin; but meeting the unfriendship of the Green-elves they turned north and
dwelt in Thargelion, in the country of Caranthir son of Fлanor; there for a
time they had peace, and the people of Caranthir paid little heed to them. In
the next year Marach led his people over the mountains; they were a tall and
warlike folk, marching in ordered companies, and the Elves of Ossiriand hid
themselves and did not waylay them. But Marach, hearing that the people of Bлor
were dwelling in a green and fertile land, came down the Dwarf-road, and
settled in the country south ; and east
of the dwellings of Baran son of Bлor; and there was great friendship between
those peoples. Felagund himself often returned to visit
Men; and many other Elves out of the west-lands, both Noldor and Sindar,
Journeyed to Estolad, being eager to see the Edain, whose coming had long been
foretold. Now Atani, the Second People, was the name given to Men in Valinor in
the lore that told of their coming; but in the speech of Beleriand that name
became Edain, and it was there used only of the three kindreds of the
Elf-friends. Fingolfin, as King of all the Noldor, sent
messengers of welcome to them; and then many young and eager men of the Edain
went away and took service with the . kings and lords of the Eldar. Among them
was Malach son of Marach, and he dwelt in Hithlum for fourteen years; and he
learned the Elven-tongue and was given the name of Aradan. The Edain did not long dwell content in
Estolad, for many still desired to go westward; but they did not know the way.
Before them lay the fences of Doriath, and southward lay Sirion and its
impassable fens. Therefore J the kings of the three houses of the Noldor,
seeing hope t of strength in the sons of Men, sent word that any of the Edain
that wished might remove and come to dwell among their people. In this way the
migration of the Edain began: at first little by little, but later in families
and kindreds, they arose and left Estolad, until after some fifty years many
thousands had entered the lands of the Kings. Most of these took the long road
northwards, until the ways became well known to them. The people of Bлor came
to Dorthonion and dwelt in lands ruled by the house of Finarfin. The people of
Aradan (for Marach his father remained in Estolad until his death) for the most
part went on westward; and some came to Hithlum, but Magor son of Aradan and many
of the people passed down Sirion into Beleriand and dwelt a while in the vales
of the southern slopes of Ered Wethrin. It is said that in all these matters none
save Finrod Felagund took counsel with King Thingol, and he was ill pleased,
both for that reason, and because he was troubled by dreams concerning the
coming of Men, ere ever the first tidings of them were heard. Therefore he
commanded that Men should take no lands to dwell in save in the north, and that
the princes whom they served should be answerable for all that they did; and he
said: 'Into Doriath shall no Man come while my realm lasts, not even those of
the house of Bлor who serve Finrod the beloved.' Melian said nothing to him at
that time, but afterwards she said to Galadriel: 'Now the world runs on swiftly
to great tidings. And one of Men, even of Bлor's house, shall indeed come, and
the Girdle of Melian shall not restrain him, for doom greater than my power
shall send him; and the songs that shall spring from that coming shall endure when
all Middle-earth is changed.' But many Men remained in Estolad, and there
was still a mingled people living there long years after, until in the ruin of
Beleriand they were overwhelmed or fled back into the East. For beside the old
who deemed that their wandering days were over there were not a few who desired
to go their own ways, and they feared the Eldar and the light of their eyes;
and then dissensions awoke among the Edain, in which the shadow of Morgoth may
be discerned, for certain it is that he knew of the coming of Men into
Beleriand and of their growing friendship with the Elves. The leaders of discontent were Bereg of the
house of Bлor, and Amlach, one of the grandsons of Marach; and they said
openly: 'We took long roads, desiring to escape the perils of Middle-earth and
the dark things that dwell there; for we heard that there was Light in the
West. But now we learn that the Light is beyond the Sea. Thither we cannot come
where the Gods dwell in bliss. Save one; for the Lord of the Dark is here before
us, and the Eldar, wise but fell, who make endless war upon him. In the North
he dwells, they say; and there is the pain and death from which we fled. We
will not go that way.' Then a council and assembly of Men was
called, and great numbers came together. And the Elf-friends answered Bereg,
saying: 'Truly from the Dark King come all the evils from which we fled; but he
seeks dominion over all Middle-earth, and whither now shall we turn and he will
not pursue us? Unless he be vanquished here, or at least held in leaguer. Only
by the valour of the Eldar is he restrained, and maybe it was for this purpose,
to aid them at need, that we were brought into this land.' To this Bereg answered: 'Let the Eldar look
to it! Our lives are short enough.' But there arose one who seemed to all to be
Amlach son of Imlach, speaking fell words that shook the hearts of all who
heard him: 'All this is but Elvish lore, tales to beguile newcomers that are
unwary. The Sea has no shore. There is no Light in the West. You have followed
a fool-fire of the Elves to the end of the world! Which of you has seen the
least of the Gods? Who has beheld the Dark King in the North? Those who seek
the dominion of Middle-earth are the Eldar. Greedy for wealth they have delved
in the earth for its secrets and have stirred to wrath the things that dwell
beneath it, as they have ever done and ever shall. Let the Orcs have the realm
that is theirs, and we will have ours. There is room in the world, if the Eldar
will let us be!' Then those that listened sat for a while
astounded, and a shadow of fear fell on their hearts; and they resolved to
depart far from the lands of the Eldar. But afterwards Amlach returned among
them, and denied that he had been present at their debate or had spoken such
words as they reported; and there was doubt and bewilderment among Men. Then
the Elf-friends said: 'You will now believe this at least: there is indeed a
Dark Lord, and his spies and emissaries are among us; for he fears us, and the
strength that we may give to his foes.' But some still answered: 'He hates us,
rather, and ever the more the longer we dwell here, meddling in his quarrel
with the Kings of the Eldar, to no gain of ours.' Many therefore of those that
yet remained in Estolad made ready to depart; and Bereg led a thousand of the
people of Bлor away southwards, and they passed out of the songs of those days.
But Amlach repented, saying: 'I have now a quarrel of my own with this Master
of Lies, which will last to my life's end'; and he went away north and entered
the service of Maedhros. But those of his people who were of like mind with
Bereg chose a new leader, and they went back over the mountains into Eriador,
and are forgotten. During this time the Haladin remained in
Thargelion and were content. But Morgoth, seeing that by lies and deceits he
could not yet wholly estrange Elves and Men, was filled with wrath, and
endeavoured to do Men what hurt he could. Therefore he sent out an Orc-raid,
and passing east it escaped the leaguer, and came in stealth back over Ered
Lindon by the passes of the Dwarf-road, and fell upon the Haladin in the
southern woods of the land of Caranthir. Now the Haladin did not live under the rule
of lords or many together, but each homestead was set apart and governed its
own affairs, and they were slow to unite. But there was among them a man named
Haldad, who was masterful and fearless; and he gathered all the brave men that
he could find, and retreated to the angle of land between Ascar and Gelion, and
in the utmost comer he built a stockade across from water to water; and behind
it they led all the women and children that they could save. There they were
besieged, until their food was gone. Haldad had twin children: Haleth his
daughter, and Haldar his son; and both were valiant in the defence, for Haleth
was a woman of great heart and strength. But at last Haldad was slain in a
sortie against the Orcs; and Haldar, who rushed out to save his father's body
from their butchery, was hewn down beside him. Then Haleth held the people together,
though they were without hope; and some cast themselves in the rivers and were
drowned. But seven days later, as the Orcs made their last assault and had
already broken through the stockade, there came suddenly a music of trumpets,
and Caranthir with his host came down from the north and drove the Orcs into
the rivers. Then Caranthir looked kindly upon Men and
did Haleth great honour; and he offered her recompense for her father and
brother. And seeing, over late, what valour there was in the Edain, he said to
her: 'If you will remove and dwell further north, there you shall have the
friendship and protection of the Eldar, and free lands of your own.' But Haleth was proud, and unwilling to be
guided or ruled, and most of the Haladin were of like mood. t Therefore she
thanked Caranthir, but answered: 'My mind is now set, lord, to leave the shadow
of the mountains, and go west, whither others of our kin have gone.' When
therefore the Haladin had gathered all whom they could find alive of their folk
who had fled wild into the woods before the Orcs, and had gleaned what remained
of their goods in their burned homesteads, they took Haleth for their chief;
and she led them at last to Estolad, and there dwelt for a time. But they
remained a people apart, and were ever after known to Elves and Men as the
People of Haleth. Haleth remained their chief while her days lasted, but she
did not wed, and the headship afterwards passed to Haldan son of Haldar her
brother. Soon however Haleth desired to move westward again; and though most of
her people were against this counsel, she led them forth once more; and they
went without help or guidance of the Eldar, and passing over Celon and Aros
they journeyed in the perilous land between the Mountains of Terror and the Girdle
of Melian. That land was even then not yet so evil as it after became, but it
was no road for mortal Men to take without aid, and Haleth only brought her
people through it with hardship and loss, constraining them to go forward by
the strength of her will. At last they crossed over the Brithiach, and many
bitterly repented of their journey; but there was now no returning. Therefore
in new lands they went back to their old life as best they could; and they
dwelt in free homesteads in the woods of Talath Dirnen beyond Teiglin, and some
wandered far into the realm of Nargothrond. But there were many who loved the
Lady Haleth and wished to go whither she would, and dwell under her rule; and
these she led into the Forest of Brethil, between Teiglin and Sirion. Thither
in the evil days that followed many of her scattered folk returned. Now Brethil was claimed as part of his realm
by King Thingol, though it was not within the Girdle of Melian, and he would
have denied it to Haleth; but Felagund, who had the friendship of Thingol,
hearing of all that had befallen the People of Haleth, obtained this grace for
her: that she should dwell free in Brethil, upon the condition only that her
people should guard the Crossings of Teiglin against all enemies of the Eldar,
and allow no Orcs to enter their woods. To this Haleth answered: 'Where are
Haldad my father, and Haldar my brother? If the King of Doriath fears a
friendship between Haleth and those who have devoured her kin, then the
thoughts of the Eldar are strange to Men.' And Haleth dwelt in Brethil until
she died; and her people raised a green mound over her in the heights of the
forest, Tыr Haretha, the Ladybarrow, Haudh-en-Arwen in the Sindarin tongue. In this way it came to pass that the Edain
dwelt in the lands of the Eldar, some here, some there, some wandering, some
settled in kindreds or small peoples; and the most part of them soon learned
the Grey-elven tongue, both as a common speech among themselves and because
many were eager to learn the lore of the Elves. But after a time the Elf-kings,
seeing that it was not good for Elves and Men to dwell mingled together without
order, and that Men needed lords of their own kind, set regions apart where Men
could live their own lives, and appointed chieftains to hold these lands
freely. They were the allies of the Eldar in war, but marched under their own
leaders. Yet many of the Edain had delight in the friendship of the Elves, and
dwelt among them for so long as they had leave; and the young men often took
service for a time in the hosts of the kings. Now Hador Lуrindol, son of Hathol, son of
Magor, son of Malach Aradan, entered the household of Fingolfin in his youth,
and was loved by the King. Fingolfin therefore gave to him the lordship of
Dor-lуmin, and into that land he gathered most of the people of his kin, and
became the mightiest of the chieftains of the Edain. In his house only the
Elven-tongue was spoken; but their own speech was not forgotten, and from it
came the common tongue of Nъmenor. But in Dorthonion the lordship of the people
of Bлor and the country of Ladros was given to Boromir, son of Boron, who was
the grandson of Bлor the Old. The sons of Hador were Galdor and Gundor;
and the sons of Galdor were Hъrin and Huor; and the son of Hъrin was Tъrin the Bane
of Glaurung; and the son of Huor was Tuor, father of Eдrendil the Blessed. The
son of Boromir was Bregor, whose sons were Bregolas and Barahir; and the sons
of Bregolas were Baragund and Belegund. The daughter of Baragund was Morwen,
the mother of Tъrin, and the daughter of Belegund was Rнan, the mother of Tuor.
But the son of Barahir was Beren One-hand, who won the love of Lъthien
Thingol's daughter, and returned from the Dead; from them came Elwing the wife
of Eдrendil, and all the Kings of Nъmenor after. All these were caught in the net of the Doom
of the Noldor; and they did great deeds which the Eldar remember still among
the histories of the Kings of old. And in those days the strength of Men was
added to the power of the Noldor, and their hope was high; and Morgoth was
straitly enclosed, for the people of Hador, being hardy to endure cold and long
wandering, feared sot at times to go far into the north and there keep watch
upon the movements of the Enemy. The Men of the Three Houses throve and multiplied,
but greatest among them was the house of Hador Goldenhead, peer of Elven-lords.
His people were of great strength and stature, ready in mind, bold and
steadfast, quick to anger and to laughter, mighty among the Children of
Ilъvatar in the youth of Mankind. Yellow-haired they were for the most part,
and blue-eyed; but not so was Tъrin, whose mother was Morwen of the house of
Bлor. The Men of that house were dark or brown of hair, with grey eyes; and of
all Men they were most like to the Noldor and most loved by them; for they were
eager of mind, cunning-handed, swift in understanding, long in memory, and they
were moved sooner to pity than to laughter. Like to them were the woodland folk
of Haleth, but they were of lesser stature, and less eager for lore. They used
few words, and did not love great concourse of men; and many among them
delighted in solitude, wandering free in the greenwoods while the wonder of the
lands of the Eldar was new upon them. But in the realms of the West their time
was brief and their days unhappy. The years of the Edain were lengthened,
according to the reckoning of Men, after their coming to Beleriand; but at last
Bлor the Old died when he had lived three and ninety years, for four and forty
of which he had served King Felagund. And when he lay dead, of no wound or
grief, but stricken by age, the Eldar saw for the first time the swift waning
of the life of Men, and the death of weariness which they knew not in
themselves; and they grieved greatly for the loss of their friends. But Bлor at
the last had relinquished his life willingly and passed in peace; and the Eldar
wondered much at the strange fate of Men, for in all their lore there was no
account of it, and its end was hidden from them. Nonetheless the Edain of old learned swiftly
of the Eldar all such art and knowledge as they could receive, and their sons
increased in wisdom and skill, until they far surpassed all others of Mankind,
who dwelt still east of the mountains and had not seen the Eldar, nor looked
upon the faces that had beheld the Light of Valinor. Chapter 18 Of the Ruin of Beleriand and the Fall of
Fingolfin Now Fingolfin, King
of the North, and High King of the Noldor, seeing that his people were become
numerous and strong, and that the Men allied to them were many and valiant,
pondered once more an assault upon Angband; for he knew that they lived in
danger while the circle of the siege was incomplete, and Morgoth was free to
labour in his deep mines, devising what evils none could foretell ere he should
reveal them. This counsel was wise according to the measure of his knowledge;
for the Noldor did not yet comprehend the fullness of the power of Morgoth, nor
understand that their unaided war upon him was without final hope, whether they
hasted or delayed. But because the land was fair and their kingdoms wide, most
of the Noldor were content with things as they were, trusting them to last, and
slow to begin an assault in which many must surely perish were it in victory or
in defeat Therefore they were little disposed to hearken to Fingolfin, and the
sons of Fлanor at that time least of all. Among the chieftains of the Noldor
Angrod and Aegnor alone were of like mind with the King; for they dwelt in
regions whence Thangorodrim could be descried, and the threat of Morgoth was
present to their thought. Thus the designs of Fingolfin came to naught, and the
land had peace yet for a while. But when the sixth generation of Men after
Bлor and Marach were not yet come to full manhood, it being then four hundred
years and five and fifty since the coming of Fingolfin, the evil befell that he
had long dreaded, and yet more dire and sudden than his darkest fear. For
Morgoth had long prepared his force in secret, while ever the malice of his
heart grew greater, and his hatred of the Noldor more bitter; and he desired
not only to end his foes but to destroy also and defile the lands that they had
taken and made fair. And it is said that his hate overcame his counsel, so that
if he had but endured to wait longer, until his designs were full, then the
Noldor would have perished utterly. But on his part he esteemed too lightly the
valour of the Elves, and of Men he took yet no account. There came a time of winter, when night was
dark and without moon; and the wide plain of Ard-galen stretched dim beneath
the cold stars, from the hill-forts of the Noldor to the feet of Thangorodrim.
The watch-fires burned low, and the guards were few; on the plain few were
waking in the camps of the horsemen of Hithlum. Then suddenly Morgoth sent forth
great rivers of flame that ran down swifter than Balrogs from Thangorodrim, and
poured over all the plain; and the Mountains of Iron belched forth fires of
many poisonous hues, and the fume of them stank upon the air, and was deadly.
Thus Ard-galen perished, and fire devoured its grasses; and it became a burned
and desolate waste, full of a choking dust, barren and lifeless. Thereafter its
name was changed, and it was called Anfauglith, the Gasping Dust Many charred
bones had there their roofless grave; for many of the Noldor perished in that
burning, who were caught by the running flame and could not fly to the hills.
The heights of Dorthonion and Ered Wethrin held back the fiery torrents, but
their woods upon the slopes that looked towards Angband were all kindled, and
the smoke wrought confusion among the defenders. Thus began the fourth of the
great battles, Dagor Bragollach, the Battle of Sudden Flame. In the front of that fire came Glaurung the
golden, father of dragons, in his full might; and in his train were Balrogs, and behind them came the black
armies of the Orcs in multitudes such as the Noldor had never before seen or
imagined. And they assaulted the fortresses of the Noldor, and broke the
leaguer about Angband, and slew wherever they found them the Noldor and their
allies. Grey-elves and Men. Many of the stoutest of the foes of Morgoth were
destroyed in the first days of that war, bewildered and dispersed and unable to
muster their strength. War ceased not wholly ever again in Beleriand; but the
Battle of Sudden Flame is held to have ended with the coming of spring, when
the onslaught of Morgoth grew less. Thus ended the Siege of Angband; and the
foes of Morgoth were scattered and sundered one from another. The most part of
the Grey-elves fled south and forsook the northern war; many were received into
Doriath, and the kingdom and strength of Thingol grew greater in that time, for
the power of Melian the queen was woven about his borders and evil could not
yet enter that hidden realm. Others took refuge in the fortresses by the sea,
and in Nargothrond; and some fled the land and hid themselves in Ossiriand, or
passing the mountains wandered homeless in the wild. And rumour of the war and
the breaking of the siege reached the ears of Men in the east of Middle-earth. The sons of Finarfin bore most heavily the
brunt of the assault, and Angrod and Aegnor were slain; beside them fell
Bregolas lord of the house of Bлor, and a great part of the warriors of that
people. But Barahir the brother of Bregolas was in the fighting farther
westward, near to the Pass of Sirion. There King Finrod Felagund, hastening
from the south, was cut off from his people and surrounded with small company
in the Pen of Serech; and he would have been slain or taken, but Barahir came
up with the bravest of his men and rescued him, and made a wall of spears about
him; and they cut their way out of the battle with great loss. Thus Felagund
escaped, and returned to his deep fortress of Nargothrond; but he swore an oath
of abiding friendship and aid in every need to Barahir and all his kin, and in
token of his vow he gave to Barahir his ring. Barahir was now by right lord of
the house of Bлor, and he returned to Dorthonion; but most of his people fled
from their homes and took refuge in the fastness of Hithlum. So great was the onslaught of Morgoth that
Fingolfin and Fingon could not come to the aid of the sons of Finarfin; and the
hosts of Hithlum were driven back with great loss to the fortresses of Ered
Wethrin, and these they hardly defended against the Orcs. Before the walls of
Eithel Sirion fell Hador the Golden-haired, defending the rearguard of his lord
Fingolfin, being then sixty and six years of age, and with him fell Gundor his
younger son, pierced with many arrows; and they were mourned by the Elves. Then
Galdor the Tall took the lordship of his father. And because of the strength
and height of the Shadowy Mountains, which withstood the torrent of fire, and
by the valour of the Elves and the Men of the North, which neither Orc nor
Balrog could yet overcome, Hithlum remained unconquered, a threat upon the
flank of Morgoth's attack; but Fingolfin was sundered from his kinsmen by a sea
of foes. For the war had gone ill with the sons of
Fлanor, and well nigh all the east marches were taken by assault The Pass of
Aglon was forced, though with great cost to the hosts of Morgoth; and Celegorm
and Curufin being defeated fled south and west by the marches of Doriath, and
coming at last to Nargothrond sought harbour with Finrod Felagund. Thus it came
to pass that their people swelled the strength of Nargothrond; but it would
have been better, as was after seen, if they had remained in the east among
their own kin. Maedhros did deeds of surpassing valour, and the Orcs fled
before his face; for since his torment upon Thangorodrim his spirit burned like
a white fire within, and he was as one that returns from the dead. Thus the
great fortress upon the Hill of Himring could not be taken, and many of the
most valiant that remained, both of the people of Dorthonion and of the east
marches, rallied there to Maedhros; and for a while he closed once more the
Pass of Aglon, so that the Orcs could not enter Beleriand by that road. But
they overwhelmed the riders of the people of Fлanor upon Lothlann, for Glaurung
came thither, and passed through Maglor's Gap, and destroyed all the land
between the arms of Gelion. And the Orcs took the fortress upon the west slopes
of Mount Rerir, and ravaged all Thargelion, the land of Caranthir; and they
defiled Lake Helevorn. Thence they passed over Gelion with fire and terror and
came far into East Beleriand. Maglor joined Maedhros upon Himring; but
Caranthir fled and joined the remnant of his people to the scattered folk of
the hunters, Amrod and Amras, and they retreated and passed Ramdal in the
south. Upon Amon Ereb they maintained a watch and some strength of war, and
they had aid of the Green-elves; and the Orcs came not into Ossiriand, nor to
Taur-im-Duinath and the wilds of the south. Now news came to Hithlum that Dorthonion was
lost and the sons of Finarfin overthrown, and that the sons of Fлanor were
driven from their lands. Then Fingolfin beheld (as it seemed to him) the utter
ruin of the Noldor, and the defeat beyond redress of all their houses; and
filled with wrath and despair he mounted upon Rochallor his great horse and
rode forth alone, and none might restrain him. He passed over Dor-nu-Fauglith
like a wind amid the dust, and all that beheld his onset fled in amaze,
thinking that Oromл himself was come: for a great madness of rage was upon him,
so that his eyes shone like the eyes of the Valar. Thus he came alone to
Angband's gates, and he sounded his horn, and smote once more upon the brazen
doors, and challenged Morgoth to come forth to single combat. And Morgoth came. That was the last time in those wars that he
passed the doors of his stronghold, and it is said that he took not the
challenge willingly; for though his might was greatest of all things in this
world, alone of the Valar he knew fear. But he could not now deny the challenge
before the face of his captains; for the rocks rang with the shrill music of
Fingolfin's horn, and his voice came keen and clear down into the depths of
Angband; and Fingolfin named Morgoth craven, and lord of slaves. Therefore
Morgoth came, climbing slowly from his subterranean throne, and the rumour of
his feet was like thunder underground. And he issued forth clad in black
armour; and he stood before the King like a tower, iron-crowned, and his vast
shield, sable on-blazoned, cast a shadow over him like a stormcloud. But
Fingolfin gleamed beneath it as a star; for his mail was overlaid with silver,
and his blue shield was set with crystals; and he drew his sword Ringil, that
glittered like ice. Then Morgoth hurled aloft Grond, the Hammer
of the Underworld, and swung it down like a bolt of thunder. But Fingolfin
sprang aside, and Grond rent a mighty pit in the earth, whence smoke and fire
darted. Many times Morgoth essayed to smite him, and each time Fingolfin leaped
away, as a 'lightning shoots from under a dark cloud; and he wounded Morgoth
with seven wounds, and seven times Morgoth gave a cry of anguish, whereat the
hosts of Angband fell upon their faces in dismay, and the cries echoed in the
Northlands. But at the last the King grew weary, and
Morgoth bore down his shield upon hint Thrice he was crushed to his knees, and
thrice arose again and bore up his broken shield and stricken helm. But the
earth was all rent and pitted about him, and he stumbled and fell backward before
the feet of Morgoth; and Morgoth set his left foot upon his neck, and the
weight of it was like a fallen hill. Yet with his last and desperate stroke
Fingolfin hewed the foot with Ringil, and the blood gashed forth black and
smoking and filled the pits of Grond. Thus died Fingolfin, High King of the
Noldor, most proud and valiant of the Elven-kings of old. The Orcs made no
boast of that duel at the gate; neither do the Elves sing of it, for their
sorrow is too deep. Yet the tale of it is remembered still, for Thorondor King
of Eagles brought the tidings to Gondolin, and to Hithlum afar off. And Morgoth
took the body of the Elven-king and broke it, and would cast it to his wolves;
but Thorondor came hasting from his eyrie among the peaks of the Crissaegrim,
and he stooped upon Morgoth and marred his face. The rushing of the wings of
Thorondor was like the noise of the winds of Manwл, and he seized the body in
his mighty talons, and soaring suddenly above the darts of the Orcs he bore the
King away. And he laid him upon a mountain-top that looked from the north upon
the hidden valley of Gondolin; and Turgon coming built a high cairn over his
father. No Orc dared ever after to pass over the mount of Fingolfin or draw
nigh his tomb, until the doom of Gondolin was come and treachery was born among
his kin. Morgoth went ever halt of one foot after that day, and the pain of his
wounds could not be healed; and in his face was the scar that Thorondor made. Great was the lamentation in Hithlum when
the fall of Fingolfin became known, and Fingon in sorrow took the lordship of
the house of Fingolfin and the kingdom of the Noldor; but his young son
Ereinion (who was after named Gil-galad) he sent to the Havens. Now Morgoth's power overshadowed the
Northlands; but Barahir would not flee from Dorthonion, and remained contesting
the land foot by foot with his enemies. Then Morgoth pursued his people to the
death, until few remained; and all the forest of the northward slopes of that
land was turned little by little into a region of such dread and dark
enchantment that even the Orcs would not enter it unless need drove them, and
it was called Deldъwath, and Taur-nu-Fuin, The Forest under Nightshade. The
trees that grew there after the burning were black and grim, and their roots
were tangled, groping in the dark like claws; and those who strayed among them
became lost and blind, and were strangled or pursued to madness by phantoms of
terror. At last so desperate was the case of Barahir that Emeldir the
Manhearted his wife (whose mind was rather to fight beside her son and her
husband than to flee) gathered together all the women and children that were
left, and gave arms to those that would bear them; and she led them into the
mountains that lay behind, and so by perilous paths, until they came at last
with loss and misery to Brethil. Some were there received among the Haladin,
but some passed on over the mountains to Dor-lуmin and the people of Galdor,
Hador's son; and among those were Rнan, daughter of Belegund, and Morwen, who
was named Eledhwen, that is Elf-sheen, daughter of Baragund. But none ever saw
again the men that they had left. For these were slain one by one, until at
last only twelve men remained to Barahir: Beren his son, and Baragund and
Belegund his nephews, the sons of Bregolas, and nine faithful servants of his
house whose names were long remembered in the songs of the Noldor: Radhruin and
Dairuin they were, Dagnir and Ragnor, Gildor and Gorlim the unhappy, Arthad and
Urthel, and Hathaldir the young. Outlaws without hope they became, a desperate
band that could not escape and would not yield, for their dwellings were
destroyed, and their wives and children captured, slain, or fled. From Hithlum
there came neither news nor help, and Barahir and his men were hunted like wild
beasts; and they retreated to the barren highland above the forest, and
wandered among the tarns and rocky moors of that region, furthest from the
spies and spells of Morgoth. Their bed was the heather and their roof the
cloudy sky. For nigh on two years after the Dagor
Bragollach the Noldor still defended the western pass about the sources of
Sirion, for the power of Ulmo was in that water, and Minas Tirith withstood the
Orcs. But at length, after the fall of Fingolfin, Sauron, greatest and most
terrible of the servants of Morgoth, who in the Sindarin tongue was named
Gorthaur, came against Orodreth, the warden of the tower upon Tol Sirion.
Sauron was become now a sorcerer of dreadful power, master of shadows and of
phantoms, foul in wisdom, cruel in strength, misshaping what he touched,
twisting what he ruled, lord of werewolves; his dominion was torment. He took
Minas Tirith by assault, for a dark cloud of fear fell upon those that defended
it; and Orodreth was driven out, and fled to Nargothrond. Then Sauron made it
into a watchtower for Morgoth, a stronghold of evil, and a menace; and the fair
isle of Tol Sirion became accursed, and it was called Tol-in-Gaurhoth, the Isle
of Werewolves. No living creature could pass through that vale that Sauron did
not espy from the tower where he sat. And Morgoth held now the western pass,
and his terror filled the fields and woods of Beleriand. Beyond Hithlum he
pursued his foes relentlessly, and he searched out their hiding-places and took
their strongholds one by one. The Orcs growing ever bolder wandered at will far
and wide, coming down Sirion in the west and Colon in the east, and they
encompassed Doriath; and they harried the lands so that beast and bird fled
before them, and silence and desolation spread steadily from the North. Many of
the Noldor and the Sindar they took captive and led to Angband, and made them
thralls, forcing them to use their skill and their knowledge in the service of
Morgoth. And Morgoth sent out his spies, and they were clad in false forms and
deceit was in their speech; they made lying promises of reward, and with
conning words sought to arouse fear and jealousy among the peoples, accusing
their kings and chieftains of greed, and of treachery one to another. And
because of the curse of the Kinslaying at Alqualondл these lies were often
believed; and indeed as the time darkened they had a measure of truth, for the
hearts and minds of the Elves of Beleriand became clouded with despair and
fear. But ever the Noldor feared most the treachery of those of their own kin,
who had been thralls in Angband; for Morgoth used some of these for his evil
purposes, and feigning to give them liberty sent them abroad, but their wills
were chained to his, and they strayed only to come back to him again. Therefore
if any of his captives escaped in truth, and returned to their own people, they
had little welcome, and wandered alone outlawed and desperate. To Men Morgoth feigned pity, if any would
hearken to his messages, saying that their woes came only of their servitude to
the rebel Noldor, but at the hands of the rightful Lord of Middle-earth they
would get honour and a just reward of valour, if they would leave rebellion.
But few men of the Three Houses of the Edain would give ear to him, not even
were they brought to the torment of Angband. Therefore Morgoth pursued them
with hatred; and he sent his messengers over the mountains. It is told that at this time the Swarthy Men
came first into Beleriand. Some were already secretly under the dominion of
Morgoth, and came at his call; but not all, for the rumour of Beleriand, of its
lands and waters, of its wars and riches, went now far and wide, and the
wandering feet of Men were ever set westward in those days. These Men were
short and broad, long and strong in the arm; their skins were swart or sallow,
and their hair was dark as were their eyes. Their houses were many, and some
had greater liking for the Dwarves of the mountains than for the Elves. But
Maedhros, knowing the weakness of the Noldor and the Edain, whereas the pits of
Angband seemed to hold store inexhaustible and ever-renewed, made alliance with
these new-come Men, and gave his friendship to the greatest of their
chieftains, Bуr and Ulfang. And Morgoth was well content; for this was as he
had designed. The sons of Bуr were Borlad, Borlach, and Borthand; and they
followed Maedhros and Maglor, and cheated the hope of Morgoth, and were
faithful. The sons of Ulfang the Black were Ulfast, and Ulwarth, and Uldor the
accursed; and they followed Caranthir and swore allegiance to him, and proved
faithless. There was small love between the Edain and
the Easterlings, and they met seldom; for the newcomers abode long in East
Beleriand, but Hador's folk were shut in Hithlum, and Beer's house was well-nigh
destroyed. The People of Haleth were at first untouched by the northern war,
for they dwelt to the southward in the Forest of Brethil; but now there was
battle between them and the invading Orcs, for they were stout-hearted men and
would not lightly forsake the woods that they loved. And amid the tale of
defeats of that time the deeds of the Haladin are remembered with honour: for
after the taking of Minas Tirith the Orcs came through the western pass, and
maybe would have ravaged even to the mouths of Sirion; but Halmir lord of the
Haladin sent swift word to Thingol, for he had friendship with the Elves that
guarded the borders of Doriath. Then Beleg Strongbow, chief of the
march-wardens of Thingol, brought great strength of the Sindar armed with axes
into Brethil; and issuing from the deeps of the forest Halmir and Beleg took an
Ore-legion at unawares and destroyed it. Thereafter the black tide out of the
North was stemmed in that region, and the Orcs dared not cross the Teiglin for
many years after. The People of Haleth dwelt yet in watchful peace in the
Forest of Brethil, and behind their guard the Kingdom of Nargothrond had
respite, and mustered its strength. At this time Hъrin and Huor, the sons of
Galdor of Dor-lуmin, were dwelling with the Haladin, for they were akin. In the
days before the Dagor Bragollach those two houses of the Edam were joined at a
great feast, when Galdor and Glуredhel the children of Hador Goldenhead were
wedded to Hareth and Haldir the children of Halmir lord of the Haladin. Thus it
was that the sons of Galdor were fostered in Brethil by Haldir their uncle,
according to the custom of Men in that time; and they went both to that battle
with the Orcs, even Huor, for he would not be restrained, though he was but
thirteen years old. But being with a company that was cut off from the rest
they were pursued to the Ford of Brithiach, and there they would have been
taken or slain but for the power of Ulmo, that was still strong in Sirion. A
mist arose from the river and hid them from their enemies, and they escaped
over the Brithiach into Dimbar, and wandered among the hills beneath the sheer
walls of the Crissaegrim, until they were bewildered in the deceits of that
land and knew not the way to go on or to return. There Thorondor espied them,
and he sent two of his eagles to their aid; and the eagles bore them up and
brought them beyond the Encircling Mountains to the secret vale of Tumladen and
the hidden city of Gondolin, which no Man yet had seen. There Turgon the King received them well,
when he learned of their kin; for messages and dreams had come to him up Sirion
from the sea, from Ulmo, Lord of Waters, warning him of woe to come and
counselling him to deal kindly with the sons of the house of Hador, from whom
help should come to him at need. Hъrin and Huor dwelt as guests in the King's
house for well nigh a year; and it is said that in this time Hъrin learned much
lore of the Elves, and understood also something of the counsels and purposes
of the King. For Turgon took great liking for the sons of Galdor, and spoke
much with them; and he wished indeed to keep them in Gondolin out of love, and
not only for his law that no stranger, be he Elf or Man, who found the way to
the secret kingdom and looked upon the city should ever depart again, until the
King should open the leaguer, and the hidden people should come forth. But Hъrin and Huor desired to return to
their own people and share in the wars and griefs that now beset them. And
Hъrin said to Turgon: "Lord, we are but mortal Men, and unlike the Eldar.
They may endure for long years awaiting battle with their enemies in some far
distant day; but for us the time is short, and our hope and strength soon
wither. Moreover we did not find the road to Gondolin, and indeed we do not
know surely where this city stands; for we were brought in fear and wonder by
the high ways of the air, and in mercy our eyes were veiled.' Then Turgon
granted his prayer, and he said: 'By the way that you came you have leave to
depart, if Thorondor is willing. I grieve at this parting; yet in a little
while, as the Eldar account it, we may meet again.' But Maeglin, the King's sister-son, who was
mighty in Gondolin, grieved not at all at their going, though he begrudged them
the favour of the King, for he had no love for any of the kindred of Men; and
he said to Hъrin: 'The King's grace is greater than you know, and the law is
become less stem than aforetime; or else no choice would be given you but to
abide here to your life's end.' Then Hъrin answered him: The King's grace is
great indeed; but if our word is not enough, then we will swear oaths to you.'
And the brothers swore never to reveal the counsels of Turgon, and to keep
secret an that they had seen in his realm. Then they took their leave, and the
eagles coming bore them away by night, and set them down in Dor-lуmin before
the dawn. Their kinsfolk rejoiced to see them, for messengers from Brethil had
reported that they were lost; but they would not declare even to their father
where they had been, save that they were rescued in the wilderness by the
eagles that brought them home. But Galdor said: Did you then dwell a year in
the wild? Or did the eagles house you in their eyries? But you found food and
fine raiment, and return as young princes, not as waifs of the wood.' And Hъrin
answered: 'Be content that we have returned; for only under an oath of silence
was this permitted.' Then Galdor questioned them no more, but he and many
others guessed at the truth; and in time the strange fortune of Hъrin and Huor
reached the ears of the servants of Morgoth. Now when Turgon learned of the breaking of
the leaguer of Angband he would not suffer any of his own people to issue forth
to war; for he deemed that Gondolin was strong, and the time not yet ripe for
its revealing. But he believed also that the ending of the Siege was the
beginning of the downfall of the Noldor, unless aid should come; and he sent
companies of the Gondolindrim in secret to the mouths of Sirion and the Isle of
Balar. There they built ships, and set sail into the uttermost West upon
Turgon's errand, seeking for Valinor, to ask for pardon and aid of the Valar;
and they besought the birds of the sea to guide them. But the seas were wild
and wide, and shadow and enchantment lay upon them; and Valinor was hidden.
Therefore none of the messengers of Turgon came into the West, and many were
lost and few returned; but the doom of Gondolin drew nearer. Rumour came to Morgoth of these things, and
he was unquiet amid his victories; and he desired greatly to learn tidings of
Felagund and Turgon. For they had vanished out of knowledge, and yet were not
dead; and he feared what they might yet accomplish against him. Of Nargothrond
he knew indeed the name, but neither its place nor its strength; and of
Gondolin he knew nothing, and the thought of Turgon troubled him the more.
Therefore he sent forth ever more spies into Beleriand; but he recalled the
main hosts of the Orcs to Angband, for he perceived that he could not yet make
a final and victorious battle until he had gathered new strength, and that he
had not measured rightly the valour of the Noldor nor the might in arms of the
Men that fought beside them. Great though his victory had been in the
Bragollach and in the years after, and grievous the harm that he had done to
his enemies, his own loss had been no less; and though he held Dorthonion and
the Pass of Sirion, the Eldar recovering from their first dismay began now to
regain what they had lost. Thus Beleriand in the south had a semblance of peace
again for a few brief years; but the forges of Angband were full of labour. When seven years had passed since the Fourth
Battle, Morgoth renewed his assault, and he sent a great force against Hithlum.
The attack on the passes of the Shadowy Mountains was bitter, and in the siege
of Eithel Sirion Galdor the tall. Lord of Dor-lуmin, was slain by an arrow.
That fortress he held on behalf of Fingon the High King; and in that same place
his father Hador Lуrindol died but a little time before. Hъrin his son was then
newly come to manhood, but he was great in strength both of mind and body; and
he drove the Orcs with heavy slaughter from Ered Wethrin, and pursued them far
across the sands of Anfauglith. But King Fingon was hard put to it to hold
back the army of Angband that came down from the north; and battle was Joined
upon the very plains of Hithlum. There Fingon was outnumbered; but the ships of
Cнrdan sailed in great strength up the Firth of Drengist, and in the hour of
need the Elves of the Falas came upon the host of Morgoth from the west. Then
the Orcs broke and fled, and the Eldar had the victory, and their horsed
archers pursued them even into the Iron Mountains. Thereafter Hъrin son of Galdor ruled the
house of Hador in Dor-lуmin, and served Fingon. Hъrin was of less stature than
his fathers, or his son after him; but he was tireless and enduring in body,
lithe and swift after the manner of his mothers kin, Hareth of the Haladin. His
wife was Morwen Eledhwen, daughter of Baragund of the house of Bлor, she who
fled from Dorthonion with Rнan daughter of Belegund and Emeldir the mother of
Beren. In that time also the outlaws of Dorthonion
were destroyed, as is told hereafter; and Beren son of Barahir alone escaping
came hardly into Doriath. Chapter 19 Of Beren and Lъthien Among the tales of
sorrow and of ruin that come down to us from the darkness of those days there
are yet some in which amid weeping there is joy and under the shadow of death
light that endures. And of these histories most fair still in the ears of the Elves
is the tale of Beren and Lъthien. Of their lives was made the Lay of Leithian,
Release from Bondage, which is the longest save one of the songs concerning the
world of old; but here is told in fewer words and without song. It has been told that Barahir would not for
sake Dorthonion, and there Morgoth pursued him to his death, until at last
there remained to him only twelve companions. Now the forest of Dorthonion rose
southward into mountainous moors; and in the east of those highlands there lay
a lake, Tarn Aeluin, with wild heaths about it, and all that land was pathless
and untamed, for even in the days of the Long Peace none had dwelt there. But
the waters of Tarn Aeluin were held in reverence, for they were clear and blue
by day and by night were a mirror for the stars; and it was said that Melian
herself had hollowed that water in the days of old. Thither Barahir and his
outlaws withdrew, and there made their lair, and Morgoth could not discover it.
But the rumour of the deeds of Barahir and his companions went far and wide;
and Morgoth commanded Sauron to find them and destroy them. Now among the companions of Barahir was
Gorlim son of Angrim. His wife was named Eilinel, and their love was great, ere
evil befell. But Gorlim returning from the war upon the marches found his house
plundered and forsaken, and his wife gone; whether slain or taken he knew not.
Then he fled to Barahir, and of companions his he was the most fierce and
desperate; but doubt gnawed his heart, thinking that perhaps Eilinel was not
dead. At times he would depart alone and secretly, and visit his house that
stood amid the fields and woods he had once possessed; and this became known to
the servants of Morgoth. On a time of autumn he came in the dusk of
evening, and drawing near he saw as he thought a light at the window; and
coming warily he looked within. There he saw Eilinel, and her face was worn
with grief and hunger, and it seemed to him that he heard her voice lamenting
that he had forsaken her. But even as he cried aloud the light was blown out in
the wind; wolves howled, and on his shoulders he felt suddenly the heavy hands
of Sauron's hunters. Thus Gorlim was ensnared; and taking him to their camp
they tormented, seeking to learn the hidings of Barahir and all his ways. But
nothing would Gorlim tell. Then they promised him that he should be released
and restored to Eilinel, if he would yield; and being at last worn with pain,
and yearning for his wife, he faltered. Then straightaway they brought him into
the dreadful presence of Sauron; and Sauron said: 'I hear now that thou wouldst
barter with me. What is thy price?' And Gorlim answered that he should find
Eilinel again, and with her be set free; for he thought Eilinel also had been
made captive. Than Sauron smiled, saying: 'That is a small
price for so great a treachery. So shall it surely be. Say on!' Now Gorlim would have drawn back, but
daunted by the eyes of Sauron he told at last all that he would know. Then
Sauron laughed; and he mocked Gorlim, and revealed to him that he had only seen
a phantom devised by wizardry to entrap him; for Eilinel was dead. 'Nonetheless
I will grant thy prayer,' said Sauron; 'and thou shalt go to Eilinel, and be
set free of my service.' Then he put him cruelly to death. In this way the hiding of Barahir was
revealed, and Morgoth drew his net about it; and the Orcs coming in the still
hours before dawn surprised the men of Dorthonion and slew them all, save one.
For Beren son of Barahir had been sent by his father on a perilous errand to spy
upon the ways of the Enemy, and he was far afield when the lair was taken. But
as he slept benighted in the forest he dreamed that carrion-birds sat thick as
leaves upon bare trees beside a mere, and blood dripped from their beaks. Then Beren was aware in his dream of a form
that came to him across the water, and it was a wraith of Gorlim; and it spoke
to him declaring his treachery and death, and bade him make haste to warn his
father. Then Beren awoke, and sped through the night, and came back to the lair
of the outlaws on the second morning. But as he drew near the carrion-birds
rose from the ground and sat in the alder-trees beside Tarn Aeluin, and croaked
in mockery. There Beren buried his fathers bones, and
raised a cairn of boulders above him, and swore upon it an oath of vengeance.
First there for he pursued the Orcs that had slain his father and his kinsmen,
and he found their camp by night at Rivil's Well above the Fen of Serech, and
because of his wood craft he came near to their fire unseen. There their
captain made boast of his deeds, and he held up the hand of Barahir that he had
cut off as a token for Sauron that their mission was fulfilled; and the ring of
Felagund was on that hand. Then Beren sprang from behind rock, and slew
captain, and taking the hand and the ring he escaped, being defended by fate
for the Orcs were dismayed, and their arrows wild. Thereafter for four years more Beren
wandered still upon Dorthonion, a solitary outlaw; but he became the friend of
birds and beasts, and they aided him, and did not betray him, and from that
time forth he ate no flesh nor slew any living thing that was not in the
service of Morgoth. He did not fear death, but only captivity, and being bold
and desperate he escaped both death and bonds; and the deeds of lonely daring
that he achieved were noised abroad throughout Beleriand, and the tail of them
came even into Doriath. At length Morgoth set a price upon his head no less
than the price upon the head of Fingon, High King of the Noldor; but the Orcs fled
rather at the rumour of his approach than sought him out. Therefore and army
was sent against him under the command of Sauron; and Sauron brought
werewolves, fell beasts inhabited by dreadful spirits that he had imprisoned in
their bodies. All that land was now become filled with
evil, and all clean things were departing from it; and Beren was pressed so
hard that at last he was forced to flee from Dorthonion. In time of winter and
snow he forsook the land and grave of his father, and climbing into the high
land of Doriath. There it was put into his heart that he would go down into the
Hidden Kingdom, where no mortal foot had trodden. Terrible was his southward
journey. Sheer were the precipices of Ered Gorgoroth, and beneath their feet
were shadows that were laid before the rising of the Moon. Beyond lay the
wilderness of Dungortheb, where the sorcery of Sauron and the power of Melian
came together, and horror and madness walked. There spiders of the fell race of
Ungoliant abode, spinning their unseen webs in which all living things were
snared; and monsters wandered there that were born in the long dark before the
Sun, hunting silently with many eyes. No food for Elves or Men was there in
that haunted land, but death only. That journey is not accounted least among
the great deeds of Beren, but he spoke of it to no one after, lest the horror
return into his mind; and none know how he found a way, and so came by paths
that no Man nor Elf else ever dared to tread to the borders of Doriath. And he
passed through the mazes that Melian wove about the kingdom of Thingol, even as
she had foretold; for a great doom lay upon him. It is told in the Lay of Leithian that Beren
came stumbling into Doriath grey and bowed as with many years of woe, so great
had been the torment of the road. But wandering in the summer in the woods of
Neldoreth he came upon Lъthien, daughter of Thingol and Melian, at a time of
evening under moonrise, as she danced upon the unfading grass in the glades
beside Esgalduin. Then all memory of his pain departed from him, and he fell
into an enchantment; for Lъthien was the most beautiful of all the Children of
Ilъvatar. Blue was her raiment as the unclouded heaven, but her eyes were grey
as the starlit evening; her mantle was sewn with golden flowers, but her hair
was dark as the shadows of twilight. As the light upon the leaves of trees, as
the voice of clear waters, as the stars above the mists of the world, such was
her glory and her loveliness; and in her face was a shining light. But she vanished from his sight; and he
became dumb, as one that is bound under a spell, and he strayed long in the
woods, wild and wary as a beast, seeking for her. In his heart he called her
Tinъviel, that signifies Nightingale, daughter of twilight, in the Grey-elven
tongue, for he knew no other name for her. And he saw her afar as leaves in the
winds of autumn, and in winter as a star upon a hill, but a chain was upon his
limbs.
There came a time near dawn on the eve of spring, and Lъthien danced
upon a green hill; and suddenly she began to sing. Keen, heart-piercing was her
song as the song of the lark that rises from the gates of night and pours its
voice among the dying stars, seeing the sun behind the walls of the world; and
the song of Lъthien released the behind the walls of the world; and the song of
Lъthien released the bonds of winter, and the frozen waters spoke, and flowers
sprang from the cold earth where her feet had passed.
Then the spell of silence fell from Beren, and he called to her, crying Tinъviel;
and the woods echoed the name. Then she halted in wonder, and fled no more, and
Beren came to her. But as she looked on him, doom fell upon her, and she loved
him; yet she slipped from his arms and vanished from his sight even as the day
was breaking. Then Beren lay upon the ground in a swoon, as one slain at once
by bliss and grief; and he fell into a sleep as it were into an abyss of
shadow, and waking he was cold as stone, and his heart barren and forsaken. And
wandering in mind he groped as one that is stricken with sudden blindness, and
seeks with hands to grasp the vanished light. Thus he began the payment of
anguish for the fate that was laid on him; and in his fate Lъthien was caught,
and being immortal she shared in his mortality, and being free received his
chain; and her anguish was greater than any other of the Eldaliл has known. Beyond his hope she returned to him where he
sat in darkness, and long ago in the Hidden Kingdom she laid her hand in his.
Thereafter often she came to him, and they went in secret through the woods
together from spring to summer; and no others of the Children of Ilъvatar have
had joy so great, though the time was brief. But Daeron the minstrel also loved Lъthien,
and he espied her meetings with Beren, and betrayed them to Thingol. Then the
King was filled with anger, for Lъthien he loved above all things, setting her
above all the princes of the Elves; whereas mortal Men he did not even take
into his service. Therefore he spoke in grief and amazement to Lъthien; but she
would reveal nothing, until he swore an oath to her that he would neither slay
Beren nor imprison him. But he sent his servants to lay hands on him and lead
him to Menegroth as a malefactor; and Lъthien forestalling them led Beren
herself before the throne of Thingol, as if he were an honoured guest. Then Thingol looked upon Beren in scorn and
anger; but Melian was silent. 'Who are you', said the King, 'that come hither
as a thief, and unbidden dare to approach my throne?' But Beren being filled with dread, for the
splendour of Menegroth and the majesty of Thingol were very great, answered
nothing. Therefore Lъthien spoke, and said: 'He is Beren son of Barahir, lord
of Men, mighty foe of Morgoth, the tale of whose deeds is become a song even
among the Elves.' 'Let Beren speak!' said Thingol. 'What would
you here, unhappy mortal, and for what cause have you left your own land to
enter this, which is forbidden to such as you? Can you show reason why my power
should not be laid on you in heavy punishment for you insolence and folly?' Then Beren looking up beheld the eyes of
Lъthien, and his glance went also to the face of Melian and it seemed to him
that words were put into his mouth. Fear left him, and the pride of the eldest
house of Men returned to him; and he said: 'My fate, O King, led me hither,
through perils such as few even of the Elves would dare. And here I have found
what I sought not indeed, but finding I would possess for ever. For it is above
all gold and silver, and beyond all jewels. Neither rock, nor steel, nor the
fires of Morgoth, nor all the powers of the Elf-kingdoms, shall keep from me
the treasure that I desire. For Lъthien your daughter is the fairest of all the
Children of the World.' Then silence fell upon the hall, for those
that stood there were astounded and afraid, and they thought that Beren would
be slain. But Thingol spoke slowly, saying: 'Death you have earned with these
words; and death you should find suddenly, had I not sworn an oath in haste; of
which I repent, baseborn mortal, who in the realm of Morgoth has learnt to
creep in secret as his spies and thralls.' Then Beren answered: 'Death you can give me
earned or unearned; but the names I will not take from you of baseborn, nor
spy, nor thrall. By the ring of Felagund, that he gave to Barahir my father on
the battle field of the North, my house has not earned such names from any Elf,
be he king or no.' His words were proud, and all eyes looked
upon the ring; for he held it now aloft, and the green jewels gleamed there that
the Noldor had devised in Valinor. For this ring was like to twin serpents,
whose eyes were emeralds, and their heads met beneath a crown of golden
flowers, that the one upheld and the other devoured; that was the badge of
Finarfin and his house; Then Melian leaned to Thingol's side, and in whispered
counsel bade him forgo his wrath. 'For not by you,' she said, 'shall Beren be
slain; and far and free does his fate led him in the end, yet it is wound with
yours. Take heed!' But Thingol looked in silence upon Lъthien;
and he thought in his heart: 'Unhappy Men, children of little lords and brief
kings, shall such as these lay hands on you, and yet live?' Then breaking the
silence he said: 'I see the ring, son of Barahir, and I perceive that you are
proud, and deem yourself mighty. But a father's deeds, even had his service
been rendered to me, avail not to win the daughter of Thingol and Melian. See
now! I too desire a treasure that is withheld. For rock and steel and the fires
of Morgoth keep the jewel that I would possess against all the powers of the
Elf-kingdoms. Yet I hear you say that bonds such as these do not daunt you. Go
your way therefore! Bring to me in your hand a Silmaril from Morgoth's crown;
and then, if she will, Lъthien may set her hand in yours. Then you shall have
my jewel; and though the fate of Arda lie within the Silmarils, yet you shall
hold me generous.' Thus he wrought the doom of Doriath, and was
ensnared within the curse of Mandos. And those that heard these words perceived
that Thingol would save his oath, and yet send Beren to his death; for they
know that not all the power of the Noldor, before the Siege was broken, had
availed even to see from afar the shining Silmarils of Fлanor. For they were
set in the Iron Crown, and treasured in Angband above all wealth; and Balrogs
were about them, and countless swords, and strong bars, and unassailable walls,
and the dark majesty of Morgoth. But Beren laughed. 'For little price,' he
said, 'do Elven-kings sell their daughters: for gems, and things made by craft.
But if this be your will, Thingol, I will perform it. And when we meet again my
hand shall hold a Silmaril from the Iron Crown; for you have not looked the
last upon Beren son of Barahir.' Then he looked in the eyes of Melian, who spoke
not; and he bade farewell to Lъthien Tinъviel, and bowing before Thingol and
Melian he put aside the guards about him, and departed from Menegroth alone. Then at last Melian spoke, and she said to
Thingol: 'O King, you have devised cunning counsel. But if my eyes have not
lost their sight, it is ill for you, whether Beren fail in his errand, or
achieve it. For you have doom either your daughter, or yourself. And now is
Doriath drawn within the fate of a mightier realm.' But Thingol answered: 'I
sell not to Elves or Men those whom I love and cherish above all treasure. And
if there were hope or fear that Beren should come ever back alive to Menegroth,
he should not have looked again upon the light of heaven, though I had sworn
it.' But Lъthien was silent, and from that hour
she sang not again in Doriath. A brooding silence fell upon the woods, and the
shadows lengthened in the kingdom of Thingol. It is told in the Lay of Leithian that Beren
passed through Doriath unhindered, and came at length to the region of the
Twilight Meres, and the Fens of Sirion; and leaving Thingol's land he climbed
the hills above the Falls of Sirion, where the river plunged underground with
great noise. Thence he looked westward, and through the mist and rains that lay
upon those hills he saw Talath Dirnen, the Guarded Plain, stretching between
Sirion and Narog; and beyond he descried afar the highlands of Taur-en-Faroth
that rose above Nargothrond. And being destitute, without hope or counsel, he
turned his feet thither. Upon all that plain the Elves of Nargothrond
kept unceasing watch; and every hill upon its borders was crowned with hidden
towers, and through all its woods and fields archers ranged secretly and with
great craft. Their arrows were sure and deadly, and nothing crept there against
their will. Therefore, ere Beren had come far upon his road, they were aware of
him, and his death was nigh. But knowing his danger he held ever aloft the ring
of Felagund; and though he saw no living thing, because of the stealth of the
hunters, he felt that he was watched, and cried often aloud: 'I am Beren son of
Barahir, friend of Felagund. Take me to the King!' Therefore the hunters slew
him not, but assembling they waylaid him, and commanded him to halt. But seeing
the ring they bowed before him, though he was in evil plight, wild and wayworn;
and they led hi northward and westward, going by night lest their paths should
be revealed. For at that time there was no ford or bridge over the torrent of
Narog before the gates of Nargothrond; but further to the north, where Ginglith
joined Narog, the flood was less, and crossing there and turning again
southward the Elves led Beren under the light of the moon to the dark gates of
their hidden halls. Thus Beren came before King Finrod Felagund;
and Felagund knew him, needing no ring to remind him of the kin of Bлor and of
Barahir. Behind closed doors they sat, and Beren told of the death of Barahir,
and of all that had befallen hi in Doriath; and he wept, recalling Lъthien and
their joy together. But Felagund heard his tale in wonder and disquiet; and he
knew that the oath he had sworn was come upon him for his death, as long before
he had foretold to Galadriel. He spoke then to Beren in heaviness of heart. 'It
is plain that Thingol desires your death; but it seems that this doom goes
beyond his purpose, and that the Oath of Fлanor is again at work. For the
Silmarils are cursed with an oath of hatred, and he that even names them in
desire moves a great power from slumber; and the sons of Fлanor would lay all
the Elf-kingdoms in ruin rather than suffer any other than themselves to win or
possess a Silmaril, for the Oath drives them. And now Celegorm and Curufin are
dwelling in my halls; and though I, Finarfin's son, am King, they have won a
strong power in the realm, and lead many of their own people. They have shown
friendship to me in every need, but I fear that they will show neither love nor
mercy to you, if your quest be told. Yet my own oath holds; and thus we are all
ensnared.' Then King Felagund spoke before his people,
recalling the deeds of Barahir, and his vow and he declared that it was laid
upon him to aid the son of Barahir in his need, and he sought the help of his
chieftains. Then Celegorm arose amid the throng, and drawing his sword he
cried: 'Be he friend or foe, whether demon of Morgoth, of Elf, or child of Men,
or any other living thing in Arda, neither law, nor love, nor league of hell,
nor might of the Valar, nor any power of wizardry, shall defend him from the
pursuing hate of Fлanor's sons, if he take or find a Silmaril and keep it. For
the Silmarils we alone claim, until the world ends.' Many other words he spoke, as potent as were
long before in Tirion the words of his father that first inflamed the Noldor to
rebellion. And after Celegorm Curufin spoke, more softly but with no less
power, conjuring in the minds of the Elves a vision of war and the ruin of
Nargothrond. So great a fear did he set in their hearts that never after until
the time of Tъrin would any Elf of that realm go into open battle; but with
stealth and ambush, with wizardry and venomed dart, they pursued all strangers,
forgetting the bonds of kinship. Thus they fell from the valour and freedom of
the Elves of old, and their land was darkened. And now they murmured that Finarfin's son
was not as a Vala to command them, and they turned their faces from him. But
the curse of Mandos came upon the brothers, and dark thoughts arose in their
hearts, thinking to send forth Felagund alone to his death, and to usurp, it might
be, the throne of Nargothrond; for they were of the eldest line of the princes
of the Noldor. And Felagund seeing that he was forsaken
took from his head the silver crown of Nargothrond and cast it at his feet,
saying: 'Your oaths of faith to me you may break, but I must hold my bond. Yet
if there be any on whom the shadow of out curse has not yet fallen, I should
find at least a few to follow me, and should not go hence as a beggar that is
thrust from the gates.' There were ten that stood by him; and the chief of
them, who was named Edrahil, stooping lifted the crown and asked that it be
given to a steward until Felagund's return. 'for you remain my king, and
theirs,' he said, 'whatever betide.' Then Felagund gave the crown of Nargothrond
to Orodreth his brother to govern in his stead; and Celegorm and Curufin said
nothing, but they smiled and went from the halls. On an evening of autumn Felagund and Beren
set out from Nargothrond with their ten companions; and they journeyed beside
Narog to his source in the Falls of Ivrin. Beneath the Shadowy Mountains they
came upon a company of Orcs, and slew them all in their camp by night; and they
took their gear and their weapons. By the arts of Felagund their own forms and
faces were changed into the likeness of Orcs; and thus disguised they came far
upon their northward road, and ventured into the western pass, between Ered
Wethrin and the highlands of Taur-nu-Fuin. But Sauron in his tower was ware of
them, and doubt took him; for they went in haste, and stayed not to report
their deeds, as was commanded to all the servants of Morgoth that passed that
way. Therefore he sent to waylay them, and bring them before him. Thus befell the contest of Sauron and
Felagund which is renowned. For Felagund strove with Sauron in songs of power,
ad the power of the King was very great; but Sauron had the mastery, as is told
in the Lay of Leithian: He
chanted a song of wizardry, Of
piercing, opening, of treachery, Revealing,
uncovering, betraying. Then
sudden Felagund there swaying, Sang
in a song of staying, Resisting,
battling against power, Of
secrets kept, strength like a tower, And
trust unbroken, freedom, escape; Of
changing and shifting shape, Of
snares eluded, broken traps, The
prison opening, the chain that snaps. Backwards
and forwards swayed their song. Reeling
foundering, as ever more strong The
chanting swelled, Felagund fought, And
all the magic and might he brought Of
Elvenesse into his words. Softly
in the gloom they heard the birds Singing
afar in Nargothrond, The
sighting of the Sea beyond, Beyond
the western world, on sand, On
sand of pearls on Elvenland. Then in the doom gathered; darkness growing In
Valinor, the red blood flowing Beside
the Sea, where the Noldor slew The
Foamriders, and stealing drew Their
white ships with their white sails From
lamplit havens. The wind wails, The
wolf howls. The ravens flee. The
ice mutters in the mouths of the Sea. The
captives sad in Angband mourn. Thunder
rumbles, the fires burn- And
Finrod fell before the throne. Then Sauron stripped from the their
disguise, and they stood before him naked and afraid. But though their kinds
were revealed, Sauron could not discover their names or their purposes. He cast them therefore into a deep pit, dark
and silent, and threatened to slay them cruel, unless one would betray the
truth to him. From time to time they saw two eyes kindled in the dark, and a
werewolf devoured one of the companions; but none betrayed their lord. *** In the time when Sauron cast Beren into the
pit a weight of horror came upon Lъthien's heart; and going to Melian for
counsel she learned that Beren lay in the dungeons of Tol-in-Gaurhoth without
hope of rescue. Then Lъthien, perceiving that no help would come from any other
on earth, resolved to fly from Doriath and come herself to him; but she sought
the aid of Daeron, and he betrayed her purpose because he would not deprive
Lъthien of the lights of heaven, lest she fail and fade, and yet would restrain
her, he caused a house to be built from which she should not escape. Not far
from the gates of Menegroth stood the greatest of all the trees in the Forest
of Neldoreth; and that was a beech-forest and the northern half of the kingdom.
This mighty beech was named Hнrilorn, and it had three trunks, equal in girth,
smooth in rind, and exceeding tall; no branches grew from them for a great
height above the ground. Far aloft between the shafts of Hнrilorn a wooden
house was built, and there Lъthien was made to dwell; and ladders were taken
away and guarded, save only when the servants of Thingol wrought her such
things as she needed. It is told in the Lay of Leithian how she
escaped from the house in Hнrilorn; for she put forth her arts of enchantment,
and caused her hair to grow to great length, and of it she wove a dark robe
that wrapped her beauty like a shadow, and it was laden with a spell of sleep.
Of the strands that remained she twined a rope, and she let it down from her
window; and as the end swayed above the guards that sat beneath the house they
fell into a deep slumber. Then Lъthien climbed from her prison, and shrouded in
her shadowy cloak she escaped from all eyes, and vanished out of Doriath. It chanced that Celegorm and Curufin went on
a hunt through the Guarded Plain; and this they did because Sauron, being filled
with suspicion, sent forth many wolves into the Elf-lands. Therefore they took
their hounds and rode forth; and they thought that ere they returned they might
also hear tidings concerning King Felagund. Now the chief of the wolf hounds
that followed Celegorm was named Huan. He was not born in Middle-earth, but
came from the Blessed Realm; for Oromл had given him to Celegorm long ago in
Valinor, and there he had followed the horn of his master, before evil came.
Huan followed Celegorm into exile, and was faithful; and thus he too came under
the doom of woe set upon the Noldor, and it was decreed that he should meet
death, but not until he encountered the mightiest wolf that would ever walk the
world. Huan it was that found Lъthien flying like a
shadow surprised by the daylight under the trees, when Celegorm and Curufin
rested a while near to the western eaves of Doriath; for nothing could escape
the sight and scent of Huan, nor could any enchantment stay him, and he slept
not, neither by night nor day. He brought her to Celegorm, and Lъthien,
learning that he was a prince of the Noldor and a foe of Morgoth, was glad; and
she declared herself, casting aside her cloak. So great was her sudden beauty
revealed beneath the sun that Celegorm became enamoured of her; but he spoke
her fair, and promised that she would find help in her need, if she returned
with him now to Nargothrond. By no sign did he reveal that he knew already of
Beren and the quest, of which she told, nor that it was a matter which touched him
near. Thus they broke off the hunt and returned to
Nargothrond, and Lъthien was betrayed; for they held her fast, and took away
her cloak, and she was not permitted to pass the gates or to speak with any
save the brothers, Celegorm and Curufin. For now, believing that Beren and
Felagund were prisoners beyond hope of aid, they purposed to let the King
perish, and to keep Lъthien , and force Thingol to give her the mightiest of
princes of the Noldor. And they did not purpose to seek the Silmarils by craft
or war, or to suffer any others to do so, until they had all the might of the
Elf-kingdoms under their hands. Orodreth had no power to withstand them, for
they swayed the hearts of the people of Nargothrond; and Celegorm sent
messengers to Thingol urging his suit. But Huan the hound was true of heart, and
the love of Lъthien had fallen upon him in the first hour of their meeting; and
he grieved at her captivity. Therefore he came often to her chamber; and at
night he lay before her door, for he felt that evil had come to Nargothrond.
Lъthien spoke often to Huan in her loneliness, telling of Beren, who was the
friend of all birds and beasts that did not serve Morgoth; ad Huan understood
all that was said. For he comprehended the speech of all things with voice; but
it was permitted to him thrice only ere his death to speak with words. Now Huan devised a plan for the aid of
Lъthien; and coming at a time of night he brought her cloak, and for the first
time he spoke, giving her counsel. Then he led her by secret ways out of
Nargothrond, and they fled north together; and he humbled his pride and
suffered her to ride upon him in the fashion of a steed, even as the Orcs did
at times upon great wolves. Thus they made great speed, for Huan was swift and
tireless. In the pits of Sauron Beren and Felagund
lay, and all their companions were now dead; but Sauron purposed to keep
Felagund to the last, for he perceived that he was a Noldo of great might and
wisdom, and he deemed that in him lay the secret of their errand. But when the
wolf came for Beren, Felagund put forth all his power, and burst his bonds; and
he wrestled with the werewolf, and slew it with his hands and teeth; yet he
himself was wounded to the death. Then he spoke to Beren, saying: 'I go now to
my long rest in the timeless halls beyond the seas and the Mountains of Aman.
It will be long ere I am seen among the Noldor again; and it may be that we
shall not meet a second time in death or life, for the fates of our kindreds
are apart. Farewell!' He died then in the dark, in Tol-in-Gaurhoth, whose great
tower he himself had built. Thus King Finrod Felagund, fairest and most beloved
of the house of Finwл, redeemed his oath; but Beren mourned beside him in
despair. In that hour Lъthien came, and standing upon
the bridge that led to Sauron's isle she sang a song that no walls of stone
could hinder. Beren heard, and he thought that he dreamed; for the stars shone
above him, and in the trees nightingales were singing. And in answer he sang a
song of challenge that he had made in praise of the Seven Stars, the Sickle of
the Valar that Varda hung above the North as a sign for the fall of Morgoth.
Then all strength left him and he fell down into darkness. But Lъthien heard his answering voice, and
she sang then a song of greater power. The wolves howled, and the isle
trembled. Sauron stood in the high tower, wrapped in his black thought ;but he
smiled hearing her voice, for he knew that it was the daughter of Melian. The
fame of the beauty of Lъthien and the wonder of her song had long gone forth
from Doriath; and he thought to make her captive and hand her over to the power
of Morgoth, for his reward would be great. Therefore he sent a wolf to the
bridge. But Huan slew it silently. Still Sauron sent others one by one; and one
by one Huan took them by the throat and slew them. Then Sauron sent Draugluin,
a dread beast, old in evil lord and sire of the werewolves of Angband. His
might was great; and the battle of Huan and Draugluin was long and fierce. Yet
at length Draugluin escaped, and fleeing back into the tower he died before
Sauron's feet; and as he died he told his master: 'Huan is there!' Now Sauron
knew well, as did all in that land, the fate that was decreed for the hound of
Valinor, and it came into his thought that he himself would accomplish it.
Therefore he took upon himself the form of a werewolf, and made himself the
mightiest that had yet walked the world; and he came forth to win the passage
of the bridge. So great was the horror of his approach that
Huan leaped aside. Then Sauron sprang upon Lъthien; and she swooned before the
menace of the fell spirit in his eyes and the foul vapour of his breath. But
even as he came, falling she cast a fold of her dark cloak before his eyes; and
he stumbled, for a fleeting drowsiness came upon him. Then Huan sprang. There
befell the battle of Huan and Wolf-Sauron, and howls and baying echoed in the
hills, and the watchers on the walls of Ered Wethrin across the valley heard it
afar and were dismayed. But no wizardry nor spell, neither fang nor
venom, nor devil's art nor beast-strength , could overthrow Huan without
forsaking his body utterly. Ere his foul spirit left its dark house, Lъthien
came to him, ghost be sent quaking back to Morgoth; and she said: 'There
everlastingly thy naked self shall endure the torment of his scorn, pierced by
his eyes, unless thou yield to me the mastery of thy tower.' Then Sauron yielded himself, and Lъthien
took the mastery of the isle and all that was there; and Huan released him. And
immediately he took the form of a vampire, great as a dark cloud across the
moon, and he fled, dripping blood from his throat upon the trees, and came to
Tar-nu-Fuin, and dwelt there, filling it with horror. Then Lъthien stood upon the bridge, and
declare her power: and the spell was loosed that bound stone to stone, and the
gates were thrown down, and the walls opened, and the pits laid bare; and many
thralls and captives came forth in wonder and dismay, shielding their eyes
against the pale moon light, for they had lain long in the darkness of Sauron.
But Beren came not. Therefore Huan and Lъthien sought him in the isle; and
Lъthien found him mourning by Felagund. So deep was his anguish that he lay
still, and did not hear her feet. Then thinking him already dead she put her
arms about him and fell into a dark forgetfulness. But Beren coming back to the
light out of the pits of despair lifted her up, and they looked again upon one
another; and the day rising over the dark hills shone upon them. They buried the body of Felagund upon the
hill-top of his own isle, and it was clean again; and the green grave of Finrod
Finarfin's son, fairest of all the princes of the Elves, remained inviolate,
until the land was changed and broken, and foundered under destroying seas. But
Finrod walks with Finarfin his father beneath the trees in Eldamar. Now Beren and Lъthien Tinъviel went free
again and together walked through the woods renewing for a time their joy; and
though winter came it hurt them not, for flowers lingered where Lъthien went,
and the birds sang beneath the snow clad hills. But Huan being faithful went
back to Celegorm his master; yet their love was less than before. There was tumult in Nargothrond. For thither
now returned many Elves that had been prisoners in the isle of Sauron; and a
clamour arose that no words of Celegorm could still. They lamented bitterly the
fall of Felagund their king, saying that a maiden had dared that which the sons
of Fлanor had not dared to do; but many perceived that it was treachery rather
than fear that had guided Celegorm and Curufin. There fore the hearts of the
people of Nargothrond were released from their dominion, and turned again to
the house of Finarfin; and they obeyed Orodreth. But he would not suffer them
to slay the brothers, as some desired, for the spilling of kindred blood by kin
would bind the cures of Mandos more closely upon them all. Yet neither bread
nor rest would he grant to Celegorm and Curufin within his realm, and he swore
that there should be little love between Nargothrond and the sons of Fлanor
there after. 'Let it be so!' said Celegorm, and there was
a light of menace in his eyes; but Curufin smiled. Ten they took horse and rode
away like fire, to find if they might their kindred in the east. But none would
go with them, not even those that were of their own people; for all perceived
that the curse lay heavily upon the brothers, and that evil followed them. In
that time Celebrimbor the son of Curufin repudiated the deeds of his father,
and remained in Nargothrond; yet Huan followed still the horse of Celegorm his
master. Northward they rode, for they intended in
their haste to pass through Dimbar, and along the north marches or Doriath,
seeking the swiftest road to Him ring, where Maedhros their brother dwelt; and
still they might hope with speed to traverse it, since it lay close to
Doriath's borders, shunning Nan Dungortheb and the distant menace of the
Mountains of Terror. Now it is told that Beren and Lъthien came
in their wandering into the Forests of Brethil, and drew near at last to the
borders of Doriath. Then Beren took thought of his vow; and against his heart
he resolved, when Lъthien was come again within the safety of her own land, to
set forth once more. But she was not willing to be parted form him again,
saying: 'You must choose, Beren, between these two: to relinquish the quest and
your oath and seek a life of wandering upon the face of the earth; or to hold
to your word and challenge the power of darkness upon its throne. But on either
road I shall go with you, and our doom shall be alike.' Even as they spoke together of these things,
walking without heed of aught else, Celegorm and Curufin rode up, hastening
through the forest; and the brothers espied them and knew them for afar. Then
Celegorm turned his horse, and spurred it upon Beren, purposing to ride him
down; but Curufin swerving stooped and lifted Lъthien to his saddle, for he was
a strong and cunning horseman. Then Beren sprang from before Celegorm full upon
the speeding horse of Curufin that had passed hi; and the Leap of Beren is
renowned among that had passed him; and the Leap of Beren is renowned among Men
and Elves. He took Curufin by the throat from behind, and hurled him backward,
and they fell to the ground together. The horse reared and fell, but Lъthien
was flung aside, and lay upon the grass. Then Beren throttled Curufin; but death was
near him, for Celegorm rode upon him with a spear. in that hour Huan forsook
the service or Celegorm, and sprang up[on him, so that his horse swerved aside,
and would not approach Beren because of the terror of the great hound. Celegorm
cursed both hound and horse, but Huan was unmoved. Then Lъthien rising forbade
the slaying of Curufin; but Beren despoiled him of his gear and weapons, and
took his knife, sheathless by his side; iron it would cleave as if it were
green wood. Then Beren lifting Curufin flung him from him, and bade him walk
now back to his noble kinsfolk, who might teach him to turn his valour to
worthier use. 'Your horse,' he said, 'I keep for the service of Lъthien, and it
may be accounted happy to be free of such a master.' Then Curufin cursed Beren under cloud and
sky. 'Go hence,' he said, 'unto a swift and bitter death.' Celegorm took him
beside him on his horse, and the brothers made then as if to ride away; and
Beren turned away and took no heed of their words. But Curufin, being filled
with shame and malice, took the bow of Celegorm and shot back as they went; and
the arrow was aimed at Lъthien. Huan leaping caught it in his mouth; but
Curufin shot again, and Beren sprang before Lъthien, and the dart smote him in
the breast. It is told that Huan pursued the sons of
Fлanor, and they fled in fear; and returning he brought to Lъthien a herb out
of the forest. With that leaf he staunched Beren's wound, and by her arts and
by her love she healed him; and thus at last they returned to Doriath. There
Beren, being torn between his oath and his love, and knowing Lъthien to be now
safe, arose one morning before the sun, and committed her to the care of Huan;
then in great anguish he departed while she yet slept upon the grass.
He rode northward again with all speed to the Pass of Sirion, and coming
to the skirts of Taur-nu-Fuin he looked out across the waste of Anfauglith and
saw afar the peaks of Thangorodrim. There he dismissed the horse of Curufin,
and bade it leave now dread and servitude and run free upon the green grass in
the lands of Sirion. Then being now alone and upon the threshold of the final
peril he made the Song of Parting, in praise of Lъthien and the lights of
heaven; for he believed that he must now say farewell to both love and light.
Of that song these words were part: Farewell
sweet earth and northern sky, for
ever blest, since here did lie and
here with lissom limbs did run beneath
the Moon, beneath the Sun, Lъthien
Tinъviel more
fair than mortal tongue can tell. Though
all to ruin fell the world and
were dissolved and backward hurled unmade
into the old abyss, yet
were its making good, for this- the
dusk, the dawn, the earth, the sea- that
Lъthien for a time should be. And he sang aloud, caring not what ear
should overhear him, for he was desperate and looked for no escape. But Lъthien heard his song, and she sang in
answer, as she came through the woods unlooked for. For Huan, consenting once
more to be her steed, had borne her swiftly hard upon Beren's trail. Long he
had pondered in his heart what counsel he could devise for the lightning of the
peril of these two whom he loved. He turned aside therefore at Sauron's isle,
as they ran northward again, and he took thence the ghastly wolf-hame of
Draugluin, and the bat-fell of? ThurIngwлthil. She was the messenger of Sauron,
and was wont to fly in vampire's form to Angband; and her greatfingered wings
were barbed at each joint's end with and iron claw. Clad in these dreadful
garments Huan and Lъthien ran through Taur-nu-Fuin, and all things fled before
them. Beren seeing their approach was dismayed;
and he wondered, for he had heard the voice of Tinъviel, and he thought it now
a phantom for his ensnaring. But they halted and cast aside their disguise, and
Lъthien ran towards him. Thus Beren and Lъthien met again between the desert
and the wood. For a while he was silent and was glad; but after a space he
strove once more to dissuade Lъthien from her journey. 'Thrice now I curse my oath to Thingol,' he
said, 'and I would that he had slain me in Menegroth, rather than I should
bring you under the shadow of Morgoth.' Then for the second time Huan spoke with
words; and he counselled Beren, saying: 'From the shadow of death you can no
longer save Lъthien, for by her love she is now subject to it. You can turn
from your fate and lead her into exile, seeking peace in vain while your life
lasts. But if you will not deny your doom, then either Lъthien, being forsaken,
must assuredly die alone, or she must with you challenge the fate that lies
before you--hopeless, yet not certain. Further counsel I cannot give, nor may I
go further on your road. But my heart forebodes that what you find at the Gate
I shall myself see. All else is dark to me; yet it may be that our three paths
lead back to Doriath, and we may meet before the end.' Then Beren perceived that Lъthien could not
be divided from the doom that lay upon them both, and he sought no longer to
dissuade her. By the counsel of Huan and the arts of Lъthien he was arrayed now
in the hame of Draugluin, and she in the winged fell of ThurIngwлthil. Beren
became in all things like a werewolf to look upon, save that in his eyes there
shone a spirit grim indeed but clean; and horror was in his glance as he saw
upon his flank a bat-like creature clinging with creased wings. Then howling
under the moon he leaped down the hill, and the bat wheeled and flittered above
him. They passed through all perils, until they
came with the dust of their long and weary road upon them to the drear dale
that lay before the Gate of Angband. Black chasms opened beside the road,
whence forms as of writhing serpents issued. On either hand the cliffs stood as
embattled walls, and upon them sat carrion fowl crying with fell voices. Before
them was the impregnable Gate, an arch wide and dark at the foot of the
mountain; above it reared a thousand feet of precipice. There dismay took them, for at the gate was
a guard of whom no tidings had yet gone forth. Rumour of he knew not what
designs abroad among the princes of the Elves had come to Morgoth, and ever
down the aisles of the forest was heard the baying of Huan, the great hound of
war, whom long ago the Valar unleashed. Then Morgoth recalled the doom of Huan,
and he chose one from among the whelps of the race of Draugluin; and he fed him
with his own hand upon living flesh, and put his power upon him. Swiftly the
wolf grew, until he could creep into no den, but lay huge and hungry before the
feet of Morgoth. There the fire and anguish of hell entered into him, and he
became filled with a devouring spirit, tormented, terrible, and strong.
Carcharoth, the Red Maw, he is named in the tales of those days, and Anfauglir,
the Jaws of Thirst. And Morgoth set him to lie unsleeping before the doors of
Angband, lest Huan come. Now Carcharoth espied them from afar, and he
was filled with doubt; for news had long been brought to Angband that Draugluin
was dead. Therefore when they approached he denied them entry, and bade them
stand; and he drew near with menace, scenting something strange in the air
about them. But suddenly some power, descended from of old from divine race,
possessed Lъthien, and casting back her foul raiment she stood forth, small
before the might of Carcharoth, but radiant and terrible. Lifting up her hand
she commanded him to sleep, saying: 'O woe-begotten spirit, fall now into dark
oblivion, and forget for a while the dreadful doom of life.' And Carcharoth was
felled, as though lightning had smitten him. Then Beren and Lъthien went through the
Gate, and down the labyrinthine stairs; and together wrought the greatest deed
that has been dared by Elves or Men. For they came to the seat of Morgoth in
his nethermost hall that was upheld by horror, lit by fire, and filled with
weapons of death and torment. There Beren slunk in wolf's form beneath his
throne; but Lъthien was stripped of her disguise by the will of Morgoth, and he
bent his gaze upon her. She was not daunted by his eyes; and she named her own
name, and offered her service to sing before him, after the manner of a
minstrel. Then Morgoth looking upon her beauty conceived in his thought an evil
lust, and a design more dark than any that had yet come into his heart since he
fled from Valinor. Thus he was beguiled by his own malice, for he watched her,
leaving her free for awhile, and taking secret pleasure in his thought. Then
suddenly she eluded his sight, and out of the shadows began a song of such
surpassing loveliness, and of such blinding power, that he listened perforce;
and a blindness came upon him, as his eyes roamed to and fro, seeking her. All his court were cast down in slumber, and
all the fires faded and were quenched; but the Silmarils in the crown on
Morgoth's head blazed forth suddenly with a radiance of white flame; and the
burden of that crown and of the jewels bowed down his head, as though the world
were set upon it, laden with a weight of care, of fear, and of desire, that
even the will of Morgoth could not support. Then Lъthien catching up her winged
robe sprang into the air, and her voice came dropping down like rain into
pools, profound and dark. She cast her cloak before his eyes, and set upon him
a dream, dark as the outer Void where once he walked alone. Suddenly he fell, as a hill sliding in
avalanche, and hurled like thunder from his throne lay prone upon the floors of
hell. The iron crown rolled echoing from his head. All things were still. As a dead beast Beren lay upon the ground;
but Lъthien touching him with her hand aroused him, and he cast aside the
wolf-hame. Then he drew forth the knife Angrist; and from the iron claws that
held it he cut a Silmaril. As he closed it in his hand, the radiance
welled through his living flesh, and his hand became as a shining lamp; but the
jewel suffered his touch and hurt him not. It came then into Beren's mind that
he would go beyond his vow, and bear out of Angband all three of the Jewels of
Fлanor; but such was not the doom of the Silmarils. The knife Angrist snapped,
and a shard of the blade flying smote the cheek of Morgoth. He groaned and
stirred, and all the host of Angband moved in sleep. Then terror fell upon Beren and Lъthien, and
they fled, heedless and without disguise, desiring only to see the light once
more. They were neither hindered nor pursued, but the Gate was held against
their going out; for Carcharoth had arisen from sleep, and stood now in wrath
upon the threshold of Angband. Before they were aware of him, he saw them, and sprang
upon them as they ran. Lъthien was spent, and she had not time nor
strength to quell the wolf. But Beren strode forth before her, and in his right
hand he held aloft the Silmaril. Carcharoth halted, and for a moment was
afraid. 'Get you gone, and fly!' cried Beren; 'for here is afire that shall
consume you, and all evil things.' And he thrust the Silmaril before the eyes
of the wolf. But Carcharoth looked upon that holy jewel
and was not daunted, and the devouring spirit within him awoke to sudden fire;
and gaping he took suddenly the hand within his jaws, and he bit it off at the
wrist. Then swiftly all his inwards were filled with a flame of anguish, and
the Silmaril seared his accursed flesh. Howling he led before them, and the
walls of the valley of the Gate echoes with the clamour of his torment. So
terrible did he become in his madness that all the creatures of Morgoth that
abode in that valley, or were upon any of the roads that led thither, fled far
away' for he slew all living things that stood in his path, and burst from the
North with ruin upon the world. Of all the terrors that came ever into
Beleriand ere Angband's fall the madness of Carcharoth was the most dreadful;
for the power of the Silmaril was hidden within him. Now Beren lay in a swoon within the perilous
Gate, and death drew nigh him for there was venom on the fangs of the wolf.
Lъthien with her lips drew out the venom, and she put forth her failing power
to staunch the hideous wound. But behind her in the depths of Angband the rumour
grew of great wrath aroused. The host of Morgoth were awakened. Thus the quest of the Silmaril was like to
have ended in ruin and despair; but in that hour above the wall of the valley
three mighty birds appeared, flying northward with wings swifter than the wind.
Among all birds and beasts the wandering and need of Beren had been noised, and
Huan himself had bidden all things watch, that they might bring him aid. High
above the realm of Morgoth Thorondor and his vassals soared, and seeing now the
madness of the Wolf and Beren's fall they came swiftly down, even as the powers
of Angband were released from the toils of sleep. Then they lifted up Lъthien and Beren from
the earth, and bore them aloft into the clouds. Below them suddenly thunder
rolled, lightnings leaped upward, and the mountains quaked. Fire and smoke
belched forth from Thangorodrim, and flaming bolts were hurled far abroad,
falling ruinous upon the lands; and the Noldor in Hithlum trembled. But
Thorondor took his way far above the earth, seeking the high roads of heaven,
where the sun daylong shines unveiled and the moon walks amid the cloudless
stars. Thus they passed swiftly over Dor-nu-Fauglith, and over Taur-nu-Fuin,
and came above the hidden valley of Tumladen. No cloud nor mist lay there, and
looking down Lъthien saw far below, as a white light starting from a green
jewel, the radiance of Gondolin the fair where Turgon dwelt. But she wept, for
she thought that Beren would surely die, he spoke no word, nor opened his eyes,
and knew thereafter nothing of his flight. And at the last the eagles set them
down upon the borders of Doriath; and they were come to that same dell whence
Beren had stolen in despair and left Lъthien asleep. There the eagles laid her at Beren's side
and returned to the peaks of Crissaegrim and their high eyries; but Huan came
to her, and together they tended Beren, even as before when she healed him of
the wound that Curufin gave to him. But this wound was fell and poisonous. Long
Beren lay, and his spirit wandered upon the dark borders of death, knowing
every an anguish that pursued him from dream to dream. Then suddenly, when her
hope was almost spent, he woke again, and looked up, seeing leaves against the
sky; and he heard beneath the leaves singing soft and slow beside him Lъthien
Tinъviel. And it was spring again. Thereafter Beren was named Erchamion, which
is the One-handed; and suffering was graven in his face. But at last he was
drawn back to life by the love of Lъthien, and he arose, and together they
walked in the woods once more. And they did not hasten from that place, for it
seemed fair to them. Lъthien indeed was willing to wander in the wild without
returning, forgetting house and people and all the glory of the Elf-kingdoms,
and for a time Beren was content; but he could not for long forget his oath to
return to Menegroth, nor would he withhold Lъthien from Thingol for ever. For
he held by the law of Men, deeming it perilous to set at naught the will of the
father, save at the last need; and is seemed also to him unfit that one so
royal and fair as Lъthien should live always in the woods, as the rude hunters
among Men, without home or honour or the fair things which are the delight of
the queens of the Eldaliл. Therefore after a while he persuaded her, and their
footsteps forsook the houseless lands; and he passed into Doriath, leading
Lъthien home. So their doom willed it. Upon Doriath evil days had fallen. Grief and
silence had come upon all its people when Lъthien was lost. Long they had
sought for her in vain. And it is told that in that time Daeron the minstrel of
Thingol strayed from the land, and was seen no more. He it was that made music
for the dance and song of Lъthien, before Beren came to Doriath; and he had
loved her, and set all his thought of her in his music. He became the greatest
of all the minstrels of the Elves east of the Sea, named even before Maglor son
of Fлanor. But seeking for Lъthien in despair he wandered upon strange paths,
and passing over the mountains he came into the East of Middle-earth, where for
many ages he made lament beside dark waters for Lъthien, daughter of Thingol,
most beautiful of all living things. In that time Thingol turned to Melian; but
now she withheld her counsel from him, saying that the doom that he had devised
must work to its appointed end, and that he must wait now upon time. But
Thingol learned that Lъthien had journeyed far from Doriath, for messages came
secretly from Celegorm, as has been told, saying that Felagund was dead, and
Beren was dead, but Lъthien was in Nargothrond, and that Celegorm would wed
her. Then Thingol was wrathful, and he sent forth spies, thinking to make war
upon Nargothrond; and thus he learned that Lъthien was again fled, and that
Celegorm and Curufin were driven from Nargothrond. Then his counsel was in
doubt, for he had not the strength to assail the seven sons of Fлanor; but he
sent messengers to Himring to summon their aid in seeking for Lъthien, since
Celegorm had not sent her to the house of her father, nor had he kept her safely. But in the north of his realm his messengers
met with a peril sudden and unlooked for: the onslaught of Carcharoth, the Wolf
of Angband. In his madness he had run ravening from the north, and passing at
length over Taur‑nu-Fuin upon its eastern side he came down from the
sources of Esgalduin like a destroying fire. Nothing hindered him, and the
might of Melian upon the borders of the land stayed him not; for fate drove
him, and the power of the Silmaril that he bore to his torment. Thus he burst
into the inviolate woods of Doriath, and all fled away in fear. Alone of the
messengers Mablung, chief captain of the King, escaped, and he brought the
dread tidings to Thingol. Even in that dark hour Beren and Lъthien
returned, hastening from the west, and the news of their coming went before
them like a sound of music borne by the wind into dark houses where men sit
sorrowful. They came at last to the gates of Menegroth, and a great host
followed them. Then Beren led Lъthien before the throne of Thingol her father;
and he looked in wonder upon Beren, whom he had thought dead; but he loved him
not, because of the woes that he had brought upon Doriath. But Beren knelt
before him, and said: 'I return according to my word. I am come now to claim my
own.' And Thingol answered: 'What of your quest,
and of your vow?' But Beren said: 'It is fulfilled. Even now a
Silmaril is in my hand.' Then Thingol said: 'Show it to me!' And Beren put forth his left hand, slowly
opening its fingers; but it was empty. Then he held up his right arm; and from
that hour he named himself Camlost, the Empty-handed. Then Thingol's mood was softened; and Beren
sat before his throne upon the left, and Lъthien upon the right, and they told
all the tale of the Quest, while all there listened and were filled with
amazement. And it seemed to Thingol that this Man was unlike all other mortal
Men, and among the great in Arda, and the love of Lъthien a thing new and
strange; and he perceived that their doom might not be withstood by any power
of the world. Therefore at the last he yielded his will, and Beren took the
hand of Lъthien before the throne of her father. But now a shadow fell upon the joy of
Doriath at the return of Lъthien the fair; for learning of the cause of the
madness of Carcharoth the people grew the more afraid, perceiving that his
danger was fraught with dreadful power because of the holy jewel, and hardly
might be overthrown. And Beren, hearing of the onslaught of the Wolf,
understood that the Quest was not yet fulfilled. Therefore, since daily Carcharoth drew
nearer to Menegroth, they prepared the Hunting of the Wolf; of all pursuits of
beasts whereof tales tell the most perilous. To that chase went Huan the Hound
of Valinor, and Mablung of the Heavy Hand, and Beleg Strongbow, and Beren
Erchamion, and Thingol King of Doriath. They rode forth in the morning and
passed over the River Esgalduin; but Lъthien remained behind at the gates of
Menegroth. A dark shadow fell upon her and it seemed to her that the sun had
sickened and turned black. The hunters turned east and north, and
following the course of the river they came at last upon Carcharoth the Wolf in
a dark valley, down the northern side whereof Esgalduin fell in a torrent over
steep falls. At the foot of the falls Carcharoth drank to ease his consuming
thirst, and he howled, and thus they were aware of him, But he, espying their
approach, rushed not suddenly to attack them. It may be that the devil's
cunning of his heart awoke, being for a moment eased of his pain by the sweet
waters of Esgalduin; and even as they rode towards him he slunk aside into a
deep brake, and there lay hid. But they set a guard about all that place, and
waited, and the shadows grew long in the forest. Beren stood beside Thingol, and suddenly
they were aware that Huan had left their side. Then a great baying awoke in the
thicket; for Huan becoming impatient and desiring to look upon this wolf had
gone in alone to dislodge him. But Carcharoth avoided him, and bursting form
the thorns leaped suddenly upon Thingol. Swiftly Beren strode before him with a
spear, but Carcharoth swept it aside and felled him, biting at his breast. In
that moment Huan leaped from the thicket upon the back of the Wolf, and they
fell together fighting bitterly; and no battle of wolf and hound has been like
to it, for in the baying of Huan was heard the voice of the horns of Oromл and
the wrath of the Valar, but in the howls of Carcharoth was the hate of Morgoth
and malice crueller than teeth of steel; and the rocks were rent by their clamour
and fell from on high and choked the falls of Esgalduin. There they fought to
the death; but Thingol gave no heed, for he knelt by Beren, seeing that he was
sorely hurt. Huan in that hour slew Carcharoth; but there
in the woven woods of Doriath his own doom long spoken was fulfilled, and he
was wounded mortally, and the venom of Morgoth entered into him. Then he came,
and falling beside Beren spoke for the third time with words; and he bade Beren
farewell before he died. Beren spoke not, but laid his hand upon the head of
the hound, and so they parted. Mablung and Beleg came hastening to the
King's aid, but when they looked upon what was done they cast aside their
spears and wept. Then Mablung took a knife and ripped up the belly of the Wolf;
and within he was well nigh all consumed as with a fire, but the hand of Beren
that held the jewel was yet incorrupt. But when Mablung reached forth to touch
it, the hand was no more, and the Silmaril lay there unveiled, and the light of
it filled the shadows of the forest all about hem. Then quickly and in fear
Mablung took it and set it in Beren's living hand; and Beren was aroused by the
touch of the Silmaril, and held it aloft, and bade Thingol receive it. 'Now is
the Quest achieved,' he said, 'and my doom full-wrought'; and he spoke no more. They bore back Beren Camlost son of Barahir
upon a bier of branches with Huan the wolfhound at his side; and night fell ere
they returned to Menegroth. At the feet of Hнrilorn the great beech Lъthien met
them walking slow, and some bore torches beside the bier. There she set her
arms about Beren, and kissed him bidding him await her beyond the Western Sea;
and he looked upon her eyes ere the spirit left him. But the starlight was
quenched and darkness had fallen even upon Lъthien Tinъviel. Thus ended the
Quest of the Silmaril; but the Lay of Leithian, Release form Bondage does not
end. For the spirit of Beren at her bidding
tarried in the halls of Mandos, unwilling to leave the world, until Lъthien
came to say her last farewell upon the dim shores of the Outer Sea, whence Men
that die set out never to return. But the spirit of Lъthien fell down into
darkness, and at the last it fled, and her body lay like a flower that is
suddenly cut off and lies for a while unwithered on the grass. Then a winter, as it were the hoar age of
mortal Men, fell upon Thingol. But Lъthien came to the halls of Mandos, where
are the appointed places of the Eldaliл, beyond the mansions of the West upon
the confines of the world. There those that wait sit in the shadow of their
thought. But her beauty was more than their beauty, and her sorrow deeper than
their sorrows; and she knelt before Mandos and sang to him. The song of Lъthien before Mandos was the
song most fair that ever in words was woven, and the song most sorrowful that
ever the world shall ever hear. Unchanged, imperishable, it is sung still in
Valinor beyond the hearing of the world, and the listening the Valar grieved.
For Lъthien wove two themes of words, of the sorrow of the Eldar and the grief
of Men, of the Two Kindreds that were made by Ilъvatar to dwell in Arda, the
Kingdom of Earth amid the innumerable stars. And as she knelt before him her
tears fell upon his feet like rain upon stones; and Mandos was moved to pity,
who never before was so moved, nor has been since. Therefore he summoned Beren, and even as
Lъthien had spoken in the hour of his death they met again beyond the Western
Sea. But Mandos had no power to withhold the spirits of Men that were dead
within the confines of the world, after their time of waiting; nor could he
change the fates of the Children of Ilъvatar. He went therefore to Manwл, Lord
of the Valar, who governed the world under the hand of Ilъvatar; and Manwл
sought counsel in his inmost thought, where the will of Ilъvatar was revealed. These were the choices that he gave to
Lъthien. Because of her labours and her sorrow, she should be released from
Mandos, and go to Valimar, there to dwell until the world's end among the
Valar, forgetting all griefs that her life had known. Thither Beren could not
come. For it was not permitted to the Valar to withhold Death from him, which
is the gift of Ilъvatar to Men. But the other choice was this: that she might
return to Middle-earth, and take with her Beren, there to dwell again, but
without certitude of life or joy. Then she would become mortal, land subject to
a second death, even as he; and ere long she would leave the world for ever,
and her beauty become only a memory in song. This doom she chose, forsaking the Blessed
Realm, and putting aside all claim to kinship with those that dwell there; that
thus whatever grief might lie in wait, the fates of Beren and Lъthien might be
joined, and their paths lead together beyond the confines of the world. So it
was that alone of the Eldaliл she has died indeed, and left the world long ago.
Yet in her choice the Two Kindreds have been joined; and she is the forerunner
of many in whom the Eldar see yet, thought all the world is changed, the
likeness of Lъthien the beloved, whom they have lost. Chapter 20 Of the Fifth Battle: Nirnaeth Arnoediad It is said that
Beren and Lъthien returned to the northern lands of Middle-earth, and dwelt
together for a time as living man and woman; and they took up again their
mortal form in Doriath. Those that saw them were both glad and fearful; and
Lъthien went to Menegroth and healed the winter of Thingol with the touch of
her hand. But Melian looked in her eyes and read the doom that was written
there, and turned away; for she knew that a parting beyond the end of the world
had come between them, and no grief of loss has been heavier than the grief of
Melian the Maia in that hour. Then Beren and Lъthien went forth alone, fearing
neither thirst nor hunger; and they passed beyond the River Gelion into Ossiriand,
and dwelt there in Tol Galen the green isle, in the midst of Adurant, until all
tidings of them ceased. The Eldar afterwards called that country Dor
Firn-i-Guinar, the Land of the Dead that Live; and there was born Dior Aranel
the beautiful, who was after known as Dior Eluchнl, which is Thingol's Heir. No
mortal man spoke ever again with Beren son of Barahir; and none saw Beren or
Lъthien leave the world, or marked where at last their bodies lay. In those days Maedhros son of Fлanor lifted
up his heart, perceiving that Morgoth was not unassailable; for the deeds of
Beren and Lъthien were sung in many songs throughout Beleriand. Yet Morgoth
would destroy them all, one by one, if they could not again unite, and make new
league and common council; and he began those counsels for the raising of the
fortunes of the Eldar that are called the Union of Maedhros. Yet the oath of Fлanor and the evil deeds
that it had wrought did injury to the design of Maedhros, and he had less aid
than should have been. Orodreth would not march forth at the word of any son of
Fлanor, because of the deeds of Celegorm and Curufin; and the Elves of
Nargothrond trusted still to defend their hidden stronghold by secrecy and
stealth. Thence came only a small company, following Gwindor son of Guilin, a
very valiant prince; and against the will of Orodreth he went to the northern
war, because he grieved for the loss of Gelmir his brother in the Dagor
Bragollach. They took the badge of the house of Fingolfin, and marched beneath
the banners of Fingon; and they came never back, save one. From Doriath came little help. For Maedhros
and his brothers, being constrained by their oath, had before sent to Thingol
and reminded him with haughty words of their claim, summoning him to yield the
Silmaril, or become their enemy. Melian counselled him to surrender it; but the
words of the sons of Fлanor were proud and threatening, and Thingol was filled
with anger, thinking of the anguish of Lъthien and the blood of Beren whereby
the jewel had been won, despite the malice of Celegorm and Curufin. And every
day that he looked upon the Silmaril the more he desired to keep it for ever;
for such was its power. Therefore he sent back the messengers with scornful
words. Maedhros made no answer, for he had now begun to devise the league and
union of the Elves; but Celegorm and Curufin vowed openly to slay Thingol and
destroy his people, if they came victorious from war, and the jewel were not
surrendered of free will. Then Thingol fortified the marches of his realm, and
went not to war, nor any out of Doriath save Mablung and Beleg, who were
unwilling to have no part in these great deeds. To them Thingol gave leave to
go, so long as they served not the sons of Fлanor; and they joined themselves
to the host of Fingon. But Maedhros had the help of the Naugrim,
both in armed force and in great store of weapons; and the smithies of Nogrod
and Belegost were busy in those days. And he gathered together again all his
brothers and all the people who would follow them; and the Men of Bуr and
Ulfang were marshalled and trained for war, and they summoned yet more of their
kinsfolk out of the East. Moreover in the west Fingon, ever the friend of
Maedhros, took counsel with Himring, and in Hithlum the Noldor and the Men of the
house of Hador prepared for war. In the forest of Brethil Halmir, lord of the
People of Haleth, gathered his men, and they whetted their axes; but Halmir
died ere the war came, and Haldir his son ruled that people. And to Gondolin
also the tidings came, to Turgon, the hidden king. But Maedhros made trial of his strength too
soon, ere his plans were full-wrought; and though the Orcs were driven out of
all the northward regions of Beleriand, and even Dorthonion was freed for a
while, Morgoth was warned of the uprising of the Eldar and the Elf-friends, and
took counsel against them. Many spies and workers of treason he sent forth
among them, as he was the better able now to do, for the faithless Men of his
secret allegiance were yet deep in the secrets of the sons of Fлanor. At length Maedhros, having gathered all the
strength that he could of Elves and Men and Dwarves, resolved to assault
Angband from east and west; and he purposed to march with banners displayed in
open force over Anfauglith. But when he had drawn forth, as he hoped, the
armies of Morgoth in answer, then Fingon should issue forth from the passes of
Hithlum; and thus they thought to take the might of Morgoth as between anvil
and hammer, and break it to pieces. And the signal for this was to be the
firing of a great beacon in Dorthonion. On the appointed day, on the morning of
Midsummer, the trumpets of the Eldar greeted the rising of the sun; and in the
east was raised the standard of the sons of Fлanor, and in the west the
standard of Fingon, High King of the Noldor. Then Fingon looked out from the
walls of Eithel Sirion, and his host was arrayed in the valleys and the woods
upon the east of Ered Wethrin, well hid from the eyes of the Enemy; but he knew
that it was very great. For there all the Noldor of Hithlum were assembled,
together with Elves of the Falas and Gwindor's company from Nargothrond, and he
had great strength of Men: upon the right were the host of Dor-lуmin and all
the valour of Hъrin and Huor his brother, and to them had come Haldir of
Brethil with many men of the woods. Then Fingon looked towards Thangorodrim, and
there was a dark cloud about it, and a black smoke went up; and he knew that
the wrath of Morgoth was aroused, and that their challenge was accepted. A
shadow of doubt fell upon Fingon's heart; and he looked eastwards, seeking if
he might see with elven-sight the dust of Anfauglith rising beneath the hosts
of Maedhros. He knew not that Maedhros was hindered in his setting-forth by the
guile of Uldor the accursed, who deceived him with false warnings of assault
from Angband. But now a cry went up, passing up the wind
from the south from vale to vale, and Elves and Men lifted their voices in
wonder and joy. For unsummoned and unlocked for Turgon had opened the leaguer
of Gondolin, and was come with an army ten thousand strong, with bright mail
and long swords and spears like a forest. Then when Fingon heard afar the great
trumpet of Turgon his brother, the shadow passed and his heart was uplifted,
and he shouted aloud: 'Utъlie'n aurл!
Aiya Eldaliл ar Atanatбri, utъlie'n aurл! The day has come! Behold, people
of the Eldar and Fathers of Men, the day has come!' And all those who heard his
great voice echo in the hills answered crying: 'Auta i lуmл! The night is passing!' Now Morgoth, who knew much of what was done
and designed by his enemies, chose his hour, and trusting in his treacherous
servants to hold back Maedhros and prevent the union of his foes he sent a
force seeming great (and yet but part of all that he had made ready) towards
Hithlum; and they were clad all in dun raiment and showed no naked steel, and
thus were already far over the sands of Anfauglith before their approach was
seen. Then the hearts of the Noldor grew hot, and
their captains wished to assail their foes upon the plain; but Hъrin spoke
against it, and bade them beware of the guile of Morgoth, whose strength was
always greater than it seemed, and his purpose other than he revealed. And
though the signal of the approach of Maedhros came not, and the host grew
impatient, Hъrin urged them still to await it, and to let the Orcs break
themselves in assault upon the hills. But the Captain of Morgoth in the west had
been commanded to draw out Fingon swiftly from his hills by whatever means he
could. He marched on therefore until the front of his battle was drawn up
before the stream of Sirion, from the walls of the fortress of Eithel Sirion to
the inflowing of Rivil at the Fen of Serech; and the outposts of Fingon could
see the eyes of their enemies. But there was no answer to his challenge, and
the taunts of the Orcs faltered as they looked upon the silent walls and the
hidden threat of the hills. Then the Captain of Morgoth sent out riders with
tokens of parley, and they rode up before the outworks of the Barad Eithel.
With them they brought Gelmir son of Guilin, that lord of Nargothrond whom they
had captured in the Bragollach; and they had blinded him. Then the heralds of
Angband showed him forth, crying: 'We have many more such at home, but you must
make haste if you would find them; for we shall deal with them all when we
return even so.' And they hewed off Gelmir's hands and feet, and his head last,
within sight of the Elves, and left him. By ill chance, at that place in the outworks
stood Gwindor of Nargothrond, the brother of Gelmir. Now his wrath was kindled
to madness, and he leapt forth on horseback, and many riders with him; and they
pursued the heralds and slew them, and drove on deep into the main host. And
seeing this all the host of the Noldor was set on fire, and Fingon put on his
white helm and sounded his trumpets, and all the host of Hithlum leapt forth
from the hills in sudden onslaught. The light of the drawing of the swords of
the Noldor was like a fire in a field of reeds; and so fell and swift was their
onset that almost the designs of Morgoth went astray. Before the army that he
sent westward could be strengthened it was swept away, and the banners of
Fingon passed over Anfauglith and were raised before the walls of Angband. Ever
in the forefront of that battle went Gwindor and the Elves of Nargothrond, and
even now they could not be restrained; and they burst through the Gate and slew
the guards upon the very stairs of Angband, and Morgoth trembled upon his deep
throne, hearing them beat upon his doors. But they were trapped there, and all
were slain save Gwindor only, whom they took alive; for Fingon could not come
to their aid. By many secret doors in Thangorodrim Morgoth had let issue forth
his main host that he held in waiting, and Fingon was beaten back with great
loss from the walls. Then in the plain of Anfauglith, on the
fourth day of the war, there began Nirnaeth Arnoediad, Unnumbered Tears, for no
song or tale can contain all its grief. The host of Fingon retreated over the
sands, and Haldir lord of the Haladin was slain in the rearguard; with him fell
most of the Men of Brethil, and came never back to their woods. But on the
fifth day as night fell, and they were still far from Ered Wethrin, the Orcs
surrounded the host of Hithlum, and they fought until day, pressed ever closer.
In the morning came hope, when the horns of Turgon were heard as he marched up
with the main host of Gondolin; for they had been stationed southward guarding
the Pass of Sirion, and Turgon restrained most of his people from the rash
onslaught. Now he hastened to the aid of his brother; and the Gondolindrim were
strong and clad in mail, and their ranks shone like a river of steel in the
sun. Now the phalanx of the guard of the King
broke through the ranks of the Orcs, and Turgon hewed his way to the side of
his brother; and it is told that the meeting of Turgon with Hъrin, who stood
beside Fingon, was glad in the midst of battle. Then hope was renewed in the
hearts of the Elves; and in that very time, at the third hour of morning, the
trumpets of Maedhros were heard at last coming up from the east, and the
banners of the sons of Fлanor assailed the enemy in the rear. Some have said
that even then the Eldar might have won the day, had all their hosts proved
faithful; for the Orcs wavered, and their onslaught was stayed, and already
some were turning to flight. But even as the vanguard of Maedhros came upon the
Orcs, Morgoth loosed his last strength, and Angband was emptied. There came
wolves, and wolfriders, and there came Balrogs, and dragons, and Glaurung
father of dragons. The strength and terror of the Great Worm were now great
indeed, and Elves and Men withered before him; and he came between the hosts of
Maedhros and Fingon and swept them apart. Yet neither by wolf, nor by Balrog, nor by
Dragon, would Morgoth have achieved his end, but for the treachery of Men. In
this hour the plots of Ulfang were revealed. Many of the Easterlings turned and
fled, their hearts being filled with lies and fear; but the sons of Ulfang went
over suddenly to Morgoth and drove in upon the rear of the sons of Fлanor, and
in the confusion that they wrought they came near to the standard of Maedhros.
They reaped not the reward that Morgoth promised them, for Maglor slew Uldor
the accursed, the leader in treason, and the sons of Bуr slew Ulfast and
Ulwarth ere they themselves were slain. But new strength of evil Men came up
that Uldor had summoned and kept hidden in the eastern hills, and the host of
Maedhros was assailed now on three sides, and it broke, and was scattered, and
fled this way and that. Yet fate saved the sons of Fлanor, and though all were
wounded none were slain, for they drew together, and gathering a remnant of the
Noldor and the Naugrim about them they hewed a way out of the battle and
escaped far away towards Mount Dolmed in the east. Last of all the eastern force to stand firm
were the Dwarves of Belegost, and thus they won renown. For the Naugrim
withstood fire more hardily than either Elves or Men, and it was their custom
moreover to wear great masks in battle hideous to look upon; and those stood
them in good stead against the dragons. And but for them Glaurung and his brood
would have withered all that was left of the Noldor. But the Naugrim made a
circle about him when he assailed them, and even his mighty armour was not full
proof against the blows of their great axes; and when in his rage Glaurung
turned and struck down Azaghвl, Lord of Belegost, and crawled over him, with
his last stroke Azaghвl drove a knife into his belly, and so wounded him that
he fled the field, and the beasts of Angband in dismay followed after him. Then
the Dwarves raised up the body of Azaghвl and bore it away; and with slow steps
they walked behind singing a dirge in deep voices, as it were a funeral pomp in
their country, and gave no heed more to their foes; and none dared to stay
them. But now in the western battle Fingon and
Turgon were assailed by a tide of foes thrice greater than all the force that
was left to them. Gothmog, Lord of Balrogs, high-captain of Angband, was come;
and he drove a dark wedge between the Elvenhosts, surrounding King Fingon, and
thrusting Turgon and Hъrin aside towards the Fen of Serech. Then he turned upon
Fingon. That was a grim meeting. At last Fingon stood alone with his guard dead
about him; and he fought with Gothmog, until another Balrog came behind and
cast a thong of fire about him. Then Gothmog hewed him with his black axe, and
a white flame sprang up from the helm of Fingon as it was cloven. Thus fell the
High King of the Noldor; and they beat him into the dust with their maces, and
his banner, blue and silver, they trod into the mire of his blood. The field was lost; but still Hъrin and Huor
and the remnant of the house of Hador stood firm with Turgon of Gondolin, and
the hosts of Morgoth could not yet win the Pass of Sirion. Then Hъrin spoke to
Turgon, saying: 'Go now, lord, while time is! For in you lives the last hope of
the Eldar, and while Gondolin stands Morgoth shall still know fear in his heart.' But Turgon answered: 'Not long now can
Gondolin be hidden; and being discovered it must fall.' Then Huor spoke and said: 'Yet if it stands
but a little while, then out of your house shall come the hope of Elves and
Men. This I say to you, lord, with the eyes of death: though we part here for
ever, and I shall not look on your white walls again, from you and from me a
new star shall arise. Farewell!' And Maeglin, Turgon's sister-son, who stood
by, heard these words, and did not forget them; but he said nothing. Then Turgon took the counsel of Hъrin and
Huor, and summoning all that remained of the host of Gondolin and such of
Fingon's people as could be gathered he retreated towards the Pass of Sirion;
and his captains Ecthelion and Glorfindel guarded the flanks to right and left,
so that none of the enemy should pass them by. But the Men of Dor-lуmin held
the rearguard, as Hъrin and Huor desired; for they did not wish in their hearts
to leave the Northlands, and if they could not win back to their homes, there
they would stand to the end. Thus was the treachery of Uldor redressed; and of
all the deeds of war that the fathers of Men wrought in behalf of the Eldar,
the last stand of the Men of Dor-lуmin is most renowned. So it was that Turgon fought his way
southward, until coming behind the guard of Hъrin and Huor he passed down
Sirion and escaped; and he vanished into the mountains and was hidden from the
eyes of Morgoth. But the brothers drew the remnant of the Men of the house of
Hador about them, and foot by foot they withdrew, until they came behind the
Fen of Serech, and had the stream of Rivil before them. There they stood and
gave way no more. Then all the hosts of Angband swarmed
against them, and they bridged the stream with their dead, and encircled the
remnant of Hithlum as a gathering tide about a rock. There as the sun westered
on the sixth day, and the shadow of Ered Wethrin grew dark, Huor fell pierced
with a venomed arrow in his eye, and all the valiant Men of Hador were slain
about him in a heap; and the Orcs hewed their heads and piled them as a mound
of gold in the sunset. Last of all Hъrin stood alone. Then he cast
aside his shield, and wielded an axe two-handed; and it is sung that the axe
smoked in the black blood of the troll-guard of Gothmog until it withered, and
each time that he slew Hъrin cried: 'Aurл
entuluva! Day shall come again!' Seventy times he uttered that cry; but
they took him at last alive, by the command of Morgoth, for the Orcs grappled
him with their hands, which clung to him still though he hewed off their arms;
and ever their numbers were renewed, until at last he fell buried beneath them.
Then Gothmog bound him and dragged him to Angband with mockery. Thus ended Nirnaeth Arnoediad, as the sun
went down beyond the sea. Night fell in Hithlum, and there came a great storm
of wind out of the West. Great was the triumph of Morgoth, and his
design was accomplished in a manner after his own heart; for Men took the lives
of Men, and betrayed the Eldar, and fear and hatred were aroused among those
that should have been united against him. From that day the hearts of the Elves
were estranged from Men, save only those of the Three Houses of the Edain. The realm of Fingon was no more; and the
sons of Fлanor wandered as leaves before the wind. Their arms were scattered,
and their league broken; and they took to a wild and woodland life beneath the
feet of Ered Lindon, mingling with the Green-elves of Ossiriand, bereft of
their power and glory of old. In Brethil some few of the Haladin yet dwelt in
the protection of their woods, and Handir son of Haldir was their lord; but to
Hithlum came back never one of Fingon's host, nor any of the Men of Hador's
house, nor any tidings of the battle and the fate of their lords. But Morgoth
sent thither the Easterlings that had served him, denying them the rich lands
of Beleriand which they coveted; and he shut them in Hithlum and forbade them
to leave it. Such was the reward he gave them for their treachery to Maedhros:
to plunder and harass the old and the women and the children of Hador's people.
The remnant of the Eldar of Hithlum were taken to the mines of the north and
laboured there as thralls, save some that eluded him and escaped into the wilds
and the mountains.' The Orcs and the wolves went freely through
all the North, and came ever further southward into Beleriand, even as far as
Nantathren, the Land of Willows, and the borders of Ossiriand, and none were
safe in field or wild. Doriath indeed remained, and the halls of Nargothrond
were hidden; but Morgoth gave small heed to them, either because he knew little
of them, or because their hour was not yet come in the deep purposes of his
malice. Many now fled to the Havens and took refuge behind Cнrdan's walls, and
the mariners passed up and down the coast and harried the enemy with swift
landings. But in the next year, ere the winter was come, Morgoth sent great
strength over Hithlum and Nevrast, and they came down the rivers Brithon and
Nenning and ravaged all the Falas, and besieged the walls of Brithombar and
Eglarest. Smiths and miners and makers of fire they brought with them, and they
set up great engines; and valiantly though they were resisted they broke the
walls at last. Then the Havens were laid in ruin, and the tower of Barad Nimras
cast down; and the most part of Cнrdan's people were slain or enslaved. But
some went aboard ship and escaped by sea; and among them was Ereinion
Gil-galad, the son of Fingon, whom his father had sent to the Havens after the
Dagor Bragollach. This remnant sailed with Cнrdan south to the Isle of Balar,
and they made a refuge for all that could come thither; for they kept a
foothold also at the Mouths of Sirion, and there many light and swift ships lay
hid in the creeks and waters where the reeds were dense as a forest. And when Turgon heard of this he sent again
his messengers to Sirion's mouths, and besought the aid of Cнrdan the
Shipwright. At the bidding of Turgon Cнrdan built seven swift ships, and they
sailed out into the West; but no tidings of them came ever back to Balar, save
of one, and the last. The mariners of that ship toiled long in the sea, and
returning at last in despair they foundered in a great storm within sight of
the coasts of Middle-earth; but one of them was saved by Ulmo from the wrath of
Ossл, and the waves bore him up, and cast him ashore in Nevrast. His name was
Voronwл; and he was one of those that Turgon sent forth as messengers from
Gondolin. Now the thought of Morgoth dwelt ever upon
Turgon; for Turgon had escaped him, of ail his foes that one whom he most
desired to take or to destroy. And that thought troubled him, and marred his
victory, for Turgon of the mighty house of Fingolfin was now by right King of
all the Noldor; and Morgoth feared and hated the house of Fingolfin, because
they had the friendship of Ulmo his foe, and because of the wounds that
Fingolfin gave him with his sword. And most of all his kin Morgoth feared
Turgon; for of old in Valinor his eye had lighted upon him, and whenever he
drew near a shadow had fallen on his spirit, foreboding that in some time that
yet lay hidden, from Turgon ruin should come to him. Therefore Hъrin was brought before Morgoth,
for Morgoth knew that he had the friendship of the King of Gondolin; but Hъrin
defied him, and mocked him. Then Morgoth cursed Hъrin and Morwen and their
offspring, and set a doom upon them of darkness and sorrow; and taking Hъrin
from prison he set him in a chair of stone upon a high place of Thangorodrim.
There he was bound by the power of Morgoth, and Morgoth standing beside him
cursed him again; and he said: 'Sit now there; and look out upon the lands
where evil and despair shall come upon those whom thou lovest. Thou hast dared
to mock me, and to question the power of Melkor, Master of the fates of Arda.
Therefore with my eyes thou shalt see, and with my ears thou shalt hear; and
never shalt thou move from this place until all is fulfilled unto its bitter
end.' And even so it came to pass; but it is not
said that Hъrin asked ever of Morgoth either mercy or death, for himself or for
any of his kin. By the command of Morgoth the Orcs with
great labour gathered all the bodies of those who had fallen in the great
battle, and all their harness and weapons, and piled them in a great mound in
the midst of Anfauglith; and it was like a hill that could be seen from afar.
Haudh-en-Ndengin the Elves named it, the Hill of Slain, and Haudh-en-Nirnaeth,
the Hill of Tears. But grass came there and grew again long and green upon that
hill, alone in all the desert that Morgoth made; and no creature of Morgoth
trod thereafter upon the earth beneath which the swords of the Eldar and the
Edain crumbled into rust. Chapter 21 Of Tъrin Turambar Rнan, daughter of
Belegund, was the wife of Huor, son of Galdor; and she was wedded to him two
months before he went with Hъrin his brother to the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. When no
tidings came of her lord she fled into the wild; but she was aided by the Grey-elves
of Mithrim, and when her son Tuor was born they fostered him. Then Rнan
departed from Hithlum, and going to the Haudh-en-Ndengin she laid herself down
upon it and died. Morwen, daughter of Baragund, was the wife
of Hъrin, Lord of Dor-lуmin; and their son was Tъrin, who was born in the year
that Beren Erchamion came upon Lъthien in the Forest of Neldoreth. A daughter
they had also who was called Lalaith, which is Laughter, and she was beloved by
Tъrin her brother; but when she was three years old there came a pestilence to
Hithlum, borne on an evil wind out of Angband, and she died. Now after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad Morwen
abode still in Dor-lуmin, for Tъrin was but eight years old, and she was again
with child. Those days were evil; for the Easterlings that came into Hithlum
despised the remnant of the people of Hador, and they oppressed them, and took
their lands and their goods, and enslaved their children. But so great was the
beauty and majesty of the Lady of Dor-lуmin that the Easterlings were afraid,
and dared not to lay hands upon her or her household; and they whispered among
themselves, saying that she was perilous, and a witch skilled in magic and in
league with the Elves. Yet she was now poor and without aid, save that she was
succoured secretly by a kinswoman of Hъrin named Aerin, whom Brodda, an
Easterling, had taken as his wife; and Morwen feared greatly that Tъrin would
be taken from her and enslaved. Therefore it came into her heart to send him
away in secret, and to beg King Thingol to harbour him, for Beren son of
Barahir was her father's kinsman, and he had been moreover a friend of Hъrin,
ere evil befell. Therefore in the autumn of the Year of Lamentation Morwen sent
Tъrin forth over the mountains with two aged servants, bidding them find entry,
if they could, into the kingdom of Doriath. Thus was the fate of Tъrin woven,
which is fulltold in that lay that is called Narn i Hоn Hъrin, the Tale of the
Children of Hъrin, and is the longest of all the lays that speak of those days.
Here that tale is told in brief, for it is woven with the fate of the Silmarils
and of the Elves; and it is called the Tale of Grief, for it is sorrowful, and
in it are revealed most evil works of Morgoth Bauglir. In the first beginning of the year Morwen
gave birth to her child, the daughter of Hъrin; and she named her Nienor, which
is Mourning. But Tъrin and his companions passing through great perils came at
last to the borders of Doriath; and there they were found by Beleg Strongbow,
chief of the marchwardens of King Thingol, who led them to Menegroth. Then
Thingol received Tъrin, and took him even to his own fostering, in honour of
Hъrin the Steadfast; for Thingol's mood was changed towards the houses of the
Elf-friends. Thereafter messengers went north to Hithlum, bidding Morwen leave
Dor-lуmin and return with them to Doriath; but still she would not leave the
house in which she had dwelt with Hъrin. And when the Elves departed she sent
with them the Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin, greatest of the heirlooms of the house
of Hador. Tъrin grew fair and strong in Doriath, but
he was marked with sorrow. For nine years he dwelt in Thingol's halls, and
during that time his grief grew less; for messengers went at times to Hithlum,
and returning they brought better tidings of Morwen and Nienor. But there came a day when the messengers did
not return out of die north, and Thingol would send no more. Then Tъrin was
filled with fear for his mother and his sister, and in grimness of heart he
went before the King and asked for mail and sword; and he put on the
Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin and went out to battle on the marches of Doriath, and
became the companion in arms of Beleg Cъthalion. And when three years had passed, Tъrin
returned again to Menegroth; but he came from the wild, and was unkempt, and
his gear and garments were way-worn. Now one there was in Doriath, of the
people of the Nandor, high in the counsels of the King; Saeros was his name. He
had long begrudged to Tъrin the honour he received as Thingol's fosterson; and
seated opposite to him at the board he taunted him, saying: 'If the Men of Hithlum are so wild and fell,
of what sort are the women of that land? Do they run like deer clad only in
their hair?' Then Tъrin in great anger took up a drinking-vessel, and cast it
at Saeros; and he was grievously hurt. On the next day Saeros waylaid Tъrin as he
set out from Menegroth to return to the marches; but Tъrin overcame him, and
set him to run naked as a hunted beast through the woods. Then Saeros fleeing
in terror before him fell into the chasm of a stream, and his body was broken
on a great rock in the water. But others coming saw what was done, and Mablung
was among them; and he bade Tъrin return with him to Menegroth and abide the
judgement of the King, seeking his pardon. But Tъrin, deeming himself now an
outlaw and fearing to be held captive, refused Mablung's bidding, and turned
swiftly away; and passing through the Girdle of Melian he came into the woods
west of Sirion. There he joined himself to a band of such houseless and
desperate men as could be found in those evil days lurking in the wild; and
their hands were turned against all who came in their path Elves and Men and
Orcs. But when all that had befallen was told and
searched out before Thingol, the King pardoned Tъrin, holding him wronged. In
that time Beleg Strongbow returned from the north marches and came to
Menegroth, seeking him; and Thingol spoke to Beleg, saying: 'I grieve,
Cъthalion; for I took Hъrin's son as my son, and so he shall remain, unless
Hъrin himself should return out of the shadows to claim his own. I would not
have any say that Tъrin was driven forth unjustly into the wild, and gladly
would I welcome him back; for I loved him well.' And Beleg answered: 'I will seek Tъrin until
I find him, and I will bring him back to Menegroth, if I can; for I love him
also.' Then Beleg departed from Menegroth, and far
across Beleriand he sought in vain for tidings of Tъrin through many perils. But Tъrin abode long among the outlaws, and
became their captain; and he named himself Neithan, the Wronged. Very warily
they dwelt in the wooded lands south of Teiglin; but when a year had passed
since Tъrin fled from Doriath, Beleg came upon their lair by night. It chanced
that at that time Tъrin was gone from the camp; and the outlaws seized Beleg
and bound him, and treated him cruelly, for they feared him as a spy of the
King of Doriath. But Tъrin returning and seeing what was done, was stricken
with remorse for all their evil and lawless deeds; and he released Beleg, and
they renewed their friendship, and Tъrin foreswore thenceforward war or plunder
against all save the servants of Angband. Then Beleg told Tъrin of King Thingol's
pardon; and he sought to persuade him by all means that he might to return with
him to Doriath, saying that there was great need of his strength and valour on
the north marches of the realm. 'Of late the Orcs have found a way down out of
Taur-nu-Fuin,' he said; 'they have made a road through the Pass of Anach.' 'I do not remember it,' said Tъrin. 'Never did we go so far from the borders,'
said Beleg. 'But you have seen the peaks of the Crissaegrim far off, and to the
east the dark walls of the Gorgoroth. Anach lies between, above the high
springs of Mindeb, a hard and dangerous road; yet many come by it now, and
Dimbar which used to be in peace is falling under the Black Hand, and the Men of
Brethil are troubled. We are needed there.' But in the pride of his heart Tъrin refused
the pardon of the King, and the words of Beleg were of no avail to change his
mood. And he for his part urged Beleg to remain with him in the lands west of
Sirion; but that Beleg would not do, and he said: 'Hard you are, Tъrin, and
stubborn. Now the turn is mine. If you wish indeed to have the Strongbow beside
you, look for me in Dimbar; for thither I shall return.' On the next day Beleg set out, and Tъrin
went with him a bowshot from the camp; but he said nothing. 'Is it farewell,
then, son of Hъrin?' said Beleg. Then Tъrin looked out westward, and he saw far
off the great height of Amon Rыdh; and unwitting of what lay before him he
answered: 'You have said, seek me in Dimbar. But I say, seek for me on Amon
Rыdh! Else, this is our last farewell.' Then they parted, in friendship, yet in
sadness. Now Beleg returned to the Thousand Caves,
and coming before Thingol and Melian he told them of all that had befallen,
save only of his evil handling by Tъrin's companions. Then Thingol sighed, and
he said: 'What more would Tъrin have me do?' 'Give me leave, lord,' said Beleg, 'and I
will guard him and guide him as I may; then no man shall say that elven-words
are lightly spoken. Nor would I wish to see so great a good run to nothing in
the wild.' Then Thingol gave Beleg leave to do as he
would; and he said: 'Beleg Cъthalion! For many deeds you have earned my thanks;
but not the least is the finding of my fosterson. At this parting ask for any
gift, and I will not deny it to you.' 'I ask then for a sword of worth,' said
Beleg; 'for the Orcs come now too thick and close for a bow only, and such
blade as I have is no match for their armour.' 'Choose from all that I have,' said Thingol,
'save only Aranrъth, my own.' Then Beleg chose Anglachel; and that was a
sword of great worth, and it was so named because it was made of iron that fell
from heaven as a blazing star; it would cleave all earth-delved iron. One other
sword only in Middle-earth was like to it. That sword does not enter into this
tale, though it was made of the same ore by the same smith; and that smith was
Eцl the Dark Elf, who took Aredhel Turgon's sister to wife. He gave Anglachel
to Thingol as fee, which he begrudged, for leave to dwell in Nan Elmoth; but
its mate Anguirel he kept, until it was stolen from him by Maeglin, his son. But as Thingol turned the hilt of Anglachel
towards Beleg, Melian looked at the blade; and she said: 'There is malice in
this sword. The dark heart of the smith still dwells in it. It will not love
the hand it serves; neither will it abide with you long.' 'Nonetheless I will wield it while I may,'
said Beleg. 'Another gift I will give to you,
Cъthalion,' said Melian, 'that shall be your help in the wild, and the help
also of those whom you choose.' And she gave him store of lembas, the waybread of the Elves, wrapped in leaves of silver, and
the threads that bound it were sealed at the knots with the seal of the Queen,
a wafer of white wax shaped as a single flower of Telperion; for according to
the customs of the Eldaliл the keeping and giving of lembas belonged to the Queen alone. In nothing did Melian show
greater favour to Tъrin than in this gift; for the Eldar had never before
allowed Men to use this waybread, and seldom did so again. Then Beleg departed with these gifts from
Menegroth and went back to the north marches, where he had his lodges, and many
friends. Then in Dimbar the Orcs were driven back, and Anglachel rejoiced to be
unsheathed; but when the winter came, and war was stilled, suddenly his
companions missed Beleg, and he returned to them no more. Now when Beleg parted from the outlaws and
returned into Doriath, Tъrin led them away westward out of Sirion's vale; for
they grew weary of their life without rest, ever watchful and in fear of
pursuit, and they sought for a safer lair. And it chanced at a time of evening
that they came upon three Dwarves, who fled before them; but one that lagged
behind was seized and thrown down, and a man of the company took his bow and
let fly an arrow at the others as they vanished in the dusk. Now the dwarf that
they had taken was named Mоm; and he pleaded for his life before Tъrin, and
offered as ransom to lead them to his hidden halls which none might find
without his aid. Then Tъrin pitied Mоm, and spared him; and he said: 'Where is
your house?' Then Mоm answered: 'High above the lands
lies the house of Mоm, upon the great hill; Amon Rыdh is that hill called now,
since the Elves changed all the names.' Then Tъrin was silent, and he looked long
upon the dwarf; and at last he said: 'You shall bring us to that place.' On the next day they set out thither,
following Mоm to Amon Rыdh. Now that hill stood upon the edge of the moorlands
that rose between the vales of Sirion and Narog, and high above the stony heath
it reared its crown; but its steep grey head was bare, save for the red seregon that mantled the stone. And as
the men of Tъrin's band drew near, the sun westering broke through the clouds,
and fell upon the crown; and the seregon
was all in flower. Then one among them said: 'There is blood on the hill-top.' But Mоm led them by secret paths up the
steep slopes of Amon Rыdh; and at the mouth of his cave he bowed to Tъrin,
saying: 'Enter into Bar-en-Danwedh, the House of Ransom; for so it shall be
called.' And now there came another dwarf bearing
light to greet him, and they spoke together, and passed swiftly down into the
darkness of the cave; but Tъrin followed after, and came at length to a chamber
far within, lit by dim lamps hanging upon chains. There he found Mоm kneeling
at a stone couch beside the wall, and he tore his beard, and wailed, crying one
name unceasingly; and on the couch there lay a third. But Tъrin entering stood
beside Mоm, and offered him aid. Then Mоm looked up at him, and said: 'You can
give no aid. For this is Khоm, my son; and he is dead, pierced by an arrow. He
died at sunset. Ibun my son has told me.' Then pity rose in Tъrin's heart, and he said
to Mоm: 'Alas! I would recall that shaft, if I could. Now Bar-en-Danwedh this
house shall be called in truth; and if ever I come to any wealth, I will pay
you a ransom of gold for your son, in token of sorrow, though it gladden your
heart no more.' Then Mоm rose, and looked long at Tъrin. 'I
hear you,' he said. 'You speak like a dwarf-lord of old; and at that I marvel.
Now my heart is cooled, though it is not glad; and hi this house you may dwell,
if you will; for I will pay my ransom.' So began the abiding of Tъrin in the hidden
house of Mоm upon Amon Rыdh; and he walked on the greensward before the mouth
of the cave, and looked out east, and west, and north. Northward he looked, and
descried the Forest of Brethil climbing green about Amon Obel in its midst, and
thither his eyes were drawn ever and again, he knew not why; for his heart was
set rather to the north-west, where league upon league away on the skirts of
the sky it seemed to him that he could glimpse the Mountains of Shadow, the
walls of his home. But at evening Tъrin looked west into the sunset, as the sun
rode down red into the hazes above the distant coasts, and the Vale of Narog
lay deep in the shadows between. In the time that followed Tъrin spoke much
with Mоm, and sitting with him alone he listened to his lore and the tale of
his life. For Mоm came of Dwarves that were banished in ancient days from the
great Dwarf-cities of the east, and long before the return of Morgoth they
wandered westward into Beleriand; but they became diminished in stature and in
smith-craft, and they took to lives of stealth, walking with bowed shoulders
and furtive steps. Before the Dwarves of Nogrod and Belegost came west over the
mountains the Elves of Beleriand knew not what these others were, and they
hunted them, and slew them; but afterwards they let them alone, and they were
called Noegyth Nibin, the Petty-Dwarves, in the Sindarin tongue. They loved
none but themselves, and if they feared and hated the Orcs, they hated the
Eldar no less, and the Exiles most of all; for the Noldor, they said, had
stolen their lands and their homes. Long ere King Finrod Felagund came over the
Sea, the caves of Nargothrond were discovered by them, and by them its delving
was begun; and beneath the crown of Amon Rыdh, the Bald Hill, the slow hands of
the Petty-Dwarves had bored and deepened the caves through the long years that
they dwelt there, untroubled by the Grey-elves of the woods. But now at last
they had dwindled and died out of Middle-earth, all save Mоm and his two sons;
and Mоm was old even in the reckoning of Dwarves, old and forgotten. And in his
halls the smithies were idle, and the axes rusted, and their name was
remembered only in ancient tales of Doriath and Nargothrond. But when the year drew on to midwinter, snow
came down from the north heavier than they had known it in the river-vales, and
Amon Rыdh was covered deep; and they said that the winters worsened in
Beleriand as the power of Angband grew. Then only the hardiest dared stir
abroad; and some fell sick, and all were pinched with hunger. But in the dim
dusk of a winter's day there appeared suddenly among them a man, as it seemed,
of great bulk and girth, cloaked and hooded in white; and he walked up to the
fire without a word. And when men sprang up in fear, he laughed, and threw back
his hood, and beneath his wide cloak he bore a great pack; and in the light of
the fire Tъrin looked again on the face of Beleg Cъthalion. Thus Beleg returned once more to Tъrin, and
their meeting was glad; and with him he brought out of Dimbar the Dragon-helm
of Dor-lуmin, thinking that it might lift Tъrin's thought again above his life
in the wilderness as the leader of a petty company. But still Tъrin would not
return to Doriath; and Beleg yielding to his love against his wisdom remained
with him, and did not depart, and in that time he laboured much for the good of
Tъrin's company. Those that were hurt or sick he tended, and gave to them the lembas of Melian; and they were quickly
healed, for though the Grey-elves were less in skill and knowledge than the
Exiles from Valinor, in the ways of the life of Middle-earth they had a wisdom
beyond the reach of Men. And because Beleg was strong and enduring, farsighted
in mind as in eye, he came to be held in honour among the outlaws; but the
hatred of Mоm for the Elf that had come into Bar-en-Danwedh grew ever greater,
and he sat with Ibun his son in the deepest shadows of his house, speaking to
none. But Tъrin paid now little heed to the Dwarf; and when winter passed, and
spring came, they had sterner work to do. Who knows now the counsels of Morgoth? Who
can measure the reach of his thought, who had been Melkor, mighty among the
Ainur of the Great Song, and sat now, a dark lord upon a dark throne in the
North, weighing in his malice all the tidings that came to him, and perceiving
more of the deeds and purposes of his enemies than even the wisest of them
feared, save only Melian the Queen? To her often the thought of Morgoth reached
out, and there was foiled. And now again the might of Angband was
moved; and as the long fingers of a groping hand the forerunners of his armies
probed the ways into Beleriand. Through Anach they came, and Dimbar was taken,
and all the north marches of Doriath. Down the ancient road they came that led
through the long defile of Sirion, past the isle where Minas Tirith of Finrod
had stood, and so through the land between Malduin and Sirion, and on through
the eaves of Brethil to the Crossings of Teiglin. Thence the road went on into
the Guarded Plain; but the Orcs did not go far upon it, as yet, for there dwelt
now in the wild a terror that was hidden, and upon the red hill were watchful
eyes of which they had not been warned. For Tъrin put on again the Helm of
Hador; and far and wide in Beleriand the whisper went, under wood and over
stream and through the passes of the hills, saying that the Helm and Bow that
had fallen in Dimbar had arisen again beyond hope. Then many who went
leaderless, dispossessed but undaunted, took heart again, and came to seek the
Two Captains. Dor-Cъarthol, the Land of Bow and Helm, was in that time named
all the region between Teiglin and the west march of Doriath; and Tъrin named
himself anew, Gorthol, the Dread Helm, and his heart was high again. In
Menegroth, and in the deep halls of Nargothrond, and even in the hidden realm
of Gondolin, the fame of the deeds of the Two Captains was heard; and in
Angband also they were known. Then Morgoth laughed, for now by the Dragon-helm
was Hъrin's son revealed to him again; and ere long Amon Rыdh was ringed with
spies. In the waning of the year Mоm the Dwarf and
Ibun his son went out from Bar-en-Danwedh to gather roots in the wild for their
winter store; and they were taken captive by Orcs. Then for a second time Mоm
promised to guide his enemies by the secret paths to his home on Amon Rыdh; but
yet he sought to delay the fulfilment of his promise, and demanded that Gorthol
should not be slain. Then the Ore-captain laughed, and he said to Mоm:
'Assuredly Tъrin son of Hъrin shall not be slain.' Thus was Bar-en-Danwedh betrayed, for the
Orcs came upon it by night at unawares, guided by Mоm. There many of Tъrin's
company were slain as they slept; but some fleeing by an inner stair came out
upon the hill-top, and there they fought until they fell, and their blood
flowed out upon the seregon that mantled the stone. But a net was cast over
Tъrin as he fought, and he was enmeshed in it, and overcome, and led away. And at length when all was silent again Mоm
crept out of the shadows of his house; and as the sun rose over the mists of
Sirion he stood beside the dead men on the hill-top. But he perceived that not
all those that lay there were dead; for by one his gaze was returned, and he
looked in the eyes of Beleg the Elf. Then with hatred long-stored Mоm stepped
up to Beleg, and drew forth the sword Anglachel that lay beneath the body of
one that had fallen beside him; but Beleg stumbling up seized back the sword
and thrust it at the Dwarf, and Mоm in terror fled wailing from the hill-top.
And Beleg cried after him: 'The vengeance of the house of Hador will find you
yet!' Now Beleg was sorely wounded, but he was
mighty among the Elves of Middle-earth, and he was moreover a master of
healing. Therefore he did not die, and slowly his strength returned; and he
sought in vain among the dead for Tъrin, to bury him. But he found him not; and
then he knew that Hъrin's son was yet alive, and taken to Angband. With little hope Beleg departed from Amon
Rыdh and set out northward, towards the Crossings of Teiglin, following in the
track of the Orcs; and he crossed over the Brithiach and journeyed through
Dimbar towards the Pass of Anach. And now he was not far behind them, for he
went without sleeping, whereas they had tarried on their road, hunting in the
lands and fearing no pursuit as they came northward; and not even in the
dreadful woods of Taur-nu-Fuin did he swerve from the trail, for the skill of
Beleg was greater than any that have been in Middle-earth. But as he passed by
night through that evil land he came upon one lying asleep at the foot of a great
dead tree; and Beleg staying his steps beside the sleeper saw that it was an
Elf. Then he spoke to him, and gave him lembas, and asked him what fate had
brought him to that terrible place; and he named himself Gwindor, son of
Guilin. Grieving Beleg looked upon him; for Gwindor
was now but a bent and fearful shadow of his former shape and mood, when in the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad that lord of Nargothrond rode with rash courage to the very
doors of Angband, and there was taken. For few of the Noldor whom Morgoth
captured were put to death, because of their skill in forging and in mining for
metals and gems; and Gwindor was not slain, but put to labour in the mines of
the North. By secret tunnels known only to themselves the mining Elves might
sometimes escape; and thus it came to pass that Beleg found him, spent and
bewildered in the mazes of Taur-nu-Fuin.' And Gwindor told him that as he lay and
lurked among the trees he saw a great company of Orcs passing northwards, and
wolves went with them; and among them was a Man, whose hands were chained, and
they drove him onward with whips. 'Very tall he was', said Gwindor, 'as tall as
are the Men from the misty hills of Hithlum.' Then Beleg told him of his own
errand in Taur-nu-Fuin; and Gwindor sought to dissuade him from his quest,
saying that he would but join Tъrin in the anguish that awaited him. But Beleg
would not abandon Tъrin, and despairing himself he aroused hope again in
Gwindor's heart; and together they went on, following the Orcs until they came
out of the forest on the high slopes that ran down to the barren dunes of
Anfauglith. There within sight of the peaks of Thangorodrim the Orcs made their
encampment in a bare dell as the light of day was failing, and setting
wolf-sentinels all about they fell to carousing. A great storm rode up out of
the west, and lightning glittered on the Shadowy Mountains far away, as Beleg
and Gwindor crept towards the dell. When all in the camp were sleeping Beleg
took his bow, and in the darkness shot the wolf-sentinels, one by one and
silently. Then in great peril they entered in, and they found Tъrin fettered
hand and foot and tied to a withered tree; and all about him knives that had
been cast at him were embedded in the trunk, and he was senseless in a sleep of
great weariness. But Beleg and Gwindor cut the bonds that held him, and lifting
him they carried him out of the dell; yet they could bear him no further than
to a thicket of thorn-trees a little way above. There they laid him down; and
now the storm drew very near. Beleg drew his sword Anglachel, and with it he
cut the fetters that bound Tъrin; but fate was that day more strong, for the
blade slipped as he cut the shackles, and Tъrin's foot was pricked. Then he was
aroused into a sudden wakefulness of rage and fear, and seeing one bending over
him with naked blade he leapt up with a great cry, believing that Orcs were
come again to torment him; and grappling with him in the darkness he seized
Anglachel, and slew Beleg Cъthalion thinking him a foe. But as he stood, finding himself free, and
ready to sell his life dearly against imagined foes, there came a great flash
of lightning above them; and in its light he looked down on Beleg's face. Then
Tъrin stood stone-still and silent, staring on that dreadful death, knowing what
he had done; and so terrible was his face, lit by the lightning that flickered
all about them, that Gwindor cowered down upon the ground and dared not raise
his eyes.' But now in the dell beneath the Orcs were
aroused, and all the camp was in a tumult; for they feared the thunder that
came out of the west, believing that it was sent against them by the great
Enemies beyond the Sea. Then a wind arose, and great rains fell, and torrents
swept down from the heights of Taur-nu-Fuin; and though Gwindor cried out to
Tъrin, warning him of their utmost peril, he made no answer, but sat unmoving
and unweeping in the tempest beside the body of Beleg Cъthalion. When morning came the storm was passed away
eastward over Lothlann, and the sun of autumn rose hot and bright; but
believing that Tъrin would have fled far away from that place and all trace of
his flight be washed away, the Orcs departed in haste without longer search,
and far off Gwindor saw them marching away over the steaming sands of
Anfauglith. Thus it came to pass that they returned to Morgoth empty-handed,
and left behind them the son of Hъrin, who sat crazed and unwitting on the
slopes of Taur-nu-Fuin, bearing a burden heavier than their bonds. Then Gwindor roused Tъrin to aid him in the
burial of Beleg, and he rose as one that walked in sleep; and together they
laid Beleg in a shallow grave, and placed beside him Belthronding his great
bow, that was made of black yew-wood. But the dread sword Anglachel Gwindor
took, saying that it were better that it should take vengeance on the servants
of Morgoth than lie useless in the earth; and he took also the lembas of Melian
to strengthen them in the wild. Thus ended Beleg Strongbow, truest of
friends, greatest in skill of all that harboured in the woods of Beleriand in
the Elder Days, at the hand of him whom he most loved; and that grief was
graven on the face of Tъrin and never faded. But courage and strength were
renewed in the Elf of Nargothrond, and departing from Taur-nu-Fuin he led Tъrin
far away. Never once as they wandered together on long and grievous paths did
Tъrin speak, and he walked as one without wish or purpose, while the year waned
and winter drew on over the northern lands. But Gwindor was ever beside him to
guard him and guide him; and thus they passed westward over Sirion and came at
length to Eithel Ivrin, the springs whence Narog rose beneath the Mountains of
Shadow. There Gwindor spoke to Tъrin, saying: 'Awake, Tъrin son of Hъrin
Thalion! On Ivrin's lake is endless laughter. She is fed from crystal fountains
unfailing, and guarded from defilement by Ulmo, Lord of Waters, who wrought her
beauty in ancient days.' Then Tъrin knelt and drank from that water; and
suddenly he cast himself down, and his tears were unloosed at last, and he was
healed of his madness. There he made a song for Beleg, and he named
it Laer Cъ Beleg, the Song of the
Great Bow, singing it aloud heedless of peril. And Gwindor gave the sword
Anglachel into his hands, and Tъrin knew that it was heavy and strong and had
great power; but its blade was black and dull and its edges blunt. Then Gwindor
said: 'This is a strange blade, and unlike any that I have seen in
Middle-earth. It mourns for Beleg even as you do. But be comforted; for I
return to Nargothrond of the house of Finarfin, and you shall come with me, and
be healed and renewed.' 'Who are you?' said Tъrin. 'A wandering Elf, a thrall escaped, whom
Beleg met and comforted,' said Gwindor. 'Yet once I was Gwindor son of Guilin,
a lord of Nargothrond, until I went to the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, and was enslaved
in Angband.' 'Then have you seen Hъrin son of Galdor, the
warrior of Dor-lуmin?' said Tъrin. 'I have not seen him,' said Gwindor. 'But
rumour of him runs through Angband that he still defies Morgoth; and Morgoth
has laid a curse upon turn and all his kin.' 'That I do believe,' said Tъrin. And now they arose, and departing from
Eithel Ivrin they journeyed southward along the banks of Narog, until they were
taken by scouts of the Elves and brought as prisoners to the hidden stronghold.
Thus did Tъrin come to Nargothrond. At first his own people did not know
Gwindor, who went out young and strong, and returned now seeming as one of the
aged among mortal Men, because of his torments and his labours; but Finduilas
daughter of Orodreth the King knew him and welcomed him, for she had loved him
before the Nirnaeth, and so greatly did Gwindor love her beauty that he named
her Faelivrin, which is the gleam of the sun on the pools of Ivrin. For
Gwindor's sake Tъrin was admitted with him into Nargothrond, and he dwelt there
in honour. But when Gwindor would tell his name, Tъrin checked him, saying: 'I
am Agarwaen the son of Ъmarth (which is the Bloodstained, son of Ill-fate), a
hunter in the woods'; and the Elves of Nargothrond questioned him no more. In the time that followed Tъrin grew high in
favour with Orodreth, and well-nigh all hearts were turned to him in
Nargothrond. For he was young, and only now reached his full manhood; and he
was in truth the son of Morwen Eledhwen to look upon: dark-haired and
pale-skinned, with grey eyes, and his face more beautiful than any other among
mortal Men, in the Elder Days. His speech and bearing were that of the ancient
kingdom of Doriath, and even among the Elves he might be taken for one from the
great houses of the Noldor; therefore many called him Adanedhel, the Elf-Man.
The sword Anglachel was forged anew for him by cunning smiths of Nargothrond,
and though ever black its edges shone with pale fire; and he named it Gurthang,
Iron of Death. So great was his prowess and skill in warfare on the confines of
the Guarded Plain that he himself became known as Mormegil, the Black Sword;
and the Elves said: 'The Mormegil cannot be slain, save by mischance, or an
evil arrow from afar.' Therefore they gave him dwarf-mail, to guard him; and in
a grim mood he found also in the armouries a dwarf-mask all gilded, and he put
it on before battle, and his enemies fled before his face. Then the heart of Finduilas was turned from
Gwindor and against her will her love was given to Tъrin; but Tъrin did not
perceive what had befallen. And being torn in heart Finduilas became sorrowful;
and she grew wan and silent. But Gwindor sat in dark thought; and on a time he
spoke to Finduilas, saying: 'Daughter of the house of Finarfin, let no grief
lie between us; for though Morgoth has laid my life in ruin, you still I love.
Go whither love leads you; yet beware! It is not fitting that the Elder
Children of Ilъvatar should wed with the Younger; nor is it wise, for they are
brief, and soon pass, to leave us in widowhood while the world lasts. Neither
will fate suffer it, unless it be once or twice only, for some high cause of
doom that we do not perceive. But this Man is not Beren. A doom indeed lies on
him, as seeing eyes may well read in him, but a dark doom. Enter not into it!
And if you will, your love shall betray you to bitterness and death. For
hearken to me! Though he be indeed agarwaen
son of ъmarth, his right name is
Tъrin son of Hъrin, whom Morgoth holds in Angband, and whose kin he has cursed.
Doubt not the power of Morgoth Bauglir! Is it not written in me?' Then Finduilas sat long in thought; but at
the last she said only: 'Tъrin son of Hъrin loves me not; nor will.' Now when Tъrin learnt from Finduilas of what
had passed, he was wrathful, and he said to Gwindor: 'In love I hold you for
rescue and safe-keeping. But now you have done ill to me, friend, to betray my
right name, and call my doom upon me, from which I would lie hid.' But Gwindor answered: 'The doom lies in yourself,
not in your name.' When it became known to Orodreth that the
Mormegil was in truth the son of Hъrin Thalion he gave him great honour, and
Tъrin became mighty among the people of Nargothrond. But he had no liking for
their manner of warfare, of ambush and stealth and secret arrow, and he yearned
for brave strokes and battle in the open; and his counsels weighed with the
King ever the longer the more. In those days the Elves of Nargothrond forsook
their secrecy and went openly to battle, and great store of weapons were made;
and by the counsel of Tъrin the Noldor built a mighty bridge over the Narog
from the Doors of Felagund, for the swifter passage of their arms. Then the
servants of Angband were driven out of all the land between Narog and Sirion eastward,
and westward to the Nenning and the desolate Falas; and though Gwindor spoke
ever against Tъrin in the council of the King, holding it an ill policy, he
fell into dishonour and none heeded him, for his strength was small and he was
no longer forward in arms. Thus Nargothrond was revealed to the wrath and
hatred of Morgoth; but still at Tъrin's prayer his true name was not spoken,
and though the fame of his deeds came into Doriath and to the ears of Thingol,
rumour spoke only of the Black Sword of Nargothrond. *** In that time of respite and hope, when
because of the deeds of the Mormegil the power of Morgoth was stemmed west of
Sirion, Morwen fled at last from Dor-lуmin with Nienor her daughter, and
adventured the long journey to Thingol's halls. There new grief awaited her,
for she found Tъrin gone, and to Doriath there had come no tidings since the
Dragon-helm had vanished from the lands west of Sirion; but Morwen remained in
Doriath with Nienor as guests of Thingol and Melian, and were treated with
honour. Now it came to pass, when four hundred and
ninety-five years had passed since the rising of the Moon, in the spring of the
year, there came to Nargothrond two Elves, named Gelmir and Arminas; they were
of Angrod's people, but since the Dagor Bragollach they dwelt in the south with
Cнrdan the Shipwright. From their far journeys they brought tidings of a great
mustering of Orcs and evil creatures under the eaves of Ered Wethrin and in the
Pass of Sirion; and they told also that Ulmo had come to Cнrdan, giving warning
that great peril drew nigh to Nargothrond. 'Hear the words of the Lord of Waters!' said
they to the King. 'Thus he spoke to Cнrdan the Shipwright: 'The Evil of the
North has defiled the springs of Sirion, and my power withdraws from the fingers
of the flowing waters. But a worse thing is yet to come forth. Say therefore to
the Lord of Nargothrond: Shut the doors of the fortress and go not abroad. Cast
the stones of your pride into the loud river, that the creeping evil may not
find the gate."' Orodreth was troubled by the dark words of
the messengers, but Tъrin would by no means hearken to these counsels, and
least of all would he suffer the great bridge to be cast down; for he was
become proud and stern, and would order all things as he wished. Soon afterwards Handir Lord of Brethil was
slain, for the Orcs invaded his land, and Handir gave them battle; but the Men
of Brethil were worsted, and driven back into their woods. And in the autumn of
the year, biding his hour, Morgoth loosed upon the people of Narog the great
host that he had long prepared; and Glaurung the Ъrulуki passed over
Anfauglith, and came thence into the north vales of Sirion and there did great
evil. Under the shadows of Ered Wethrin he defiled the Eithel Ivrin, and thence
he passed into the realm of Nargothrond, and burned the Talath Dirnen, the
Guarded Plain, between Narog and Teiglin. Then the warriors of Nargothrond went forth,
and tall and terrible on that day looked Tъrin, and the heart of the host was
upheld, as he rode on the right hand of Orodreth. But greater far was the host
of Morgoth than any scouts had told, and none but Tъrin defended by his
dwarf-mask could withstand the approach of Glaurung; and the Elves were driven
back and pressed by the Orcs into the field of Tumhalad, between Ginglith and
Narog, and there they were penned. On that day all the pride and host of
Nargothrond withered away; and Orodreth was slain in the forefront of the
battle, and Gwindor son of Guilin was wounded to the death. But Tъrin came to
his aid, and all fled before him; and he bore Gwindor out of the rout, and
escaping into a wood there laid him on the grass. Then Gwindor said to Tъrin: 'Let bearing pay
for bearing! But ill-fated was mine, and vain is thine; for my body is marred beyond
healing, and I must leave Middle-earth. And though I love thee, son of Hъrin,
yet I rue the day that I took thee from the Orcs. But for thy prowess and thy
pride, still I should have love and life, and Nargothrond should yet stand a
while.' Now if thou love me, leave me! Haste thee to Nargothrond, and save
Finduilas. And this last I say to thee: she alone stands between thee and thy
doom. If thou fail her, it shall not fail to find thee. Farewell!' Then Tъrin sped back to Nargothrond,
mustering such of the rout as he met with on the way; and the leaves fell from
the trees in a great wind as they went, for the autumn was passing to a dire
winter. But the host of the Orcs and Glaurung the Dragon were there before him,
and they came suddenly, ere those that were left on guard were aware of what
had befallen on the field of Tumhalad. In that day the bridge over Narog proved
an evil; for it was great and mightily made and could not swiftly be destroyed,
and the enemy came readily over the deep river, and Glaurung came in full fire
against the Doors of Felagund, and overthrew them, and passed within. And even as Tъrin came up the dreadful sack
of Nargothrond was well nigh achieved. The Orcs had slain or driven off all
that remained in arms, and were even then ransacking the great halls and
chambers, plundering and destroying; but those of the women and maidens that
were not burned or slain they had herded on the terraces before the doors, as
slaves to be taken into Morgoth's thraldom. Upon this ruin and woe Tъrin came,
and none could withstand him; or would not, though he struck down all before
him, and passed over the bridge, and hewed his way towards the captives. And now he stood alone, for the few that
followed him had fled. But in that moment Glaurung issued from the gaping
doors, and lay behind, between Tъrin and the bridge. Then suddenly he spoke, by
the evil spirit that was in him, saying: 'Hail, son of Hъrin. Well met!' Then Tъrin sprang about, and strode against
him, and the edges of Gurthang shone as with flame; but Glaurung withheld his
blast, and opened wide his serpent-eyes and gazed upon Tъrin. Without fear
Tъrin looked into them as he raised up the sword; and straightway he fell under
the binding spell of the lidless eyes of the dragon, and was halted moveless.
Then for a long time he stood as one graven of stone; and they two were alone,
silent before the doors of Nargothrond. But Glaurung spoke again, taunting
Tъrin, and he said: 'Evil have been all thy ways, son of Hъrin. Thankless
fosterling, outlaw, slayer of thy friend, thief of love, usurper of
Nargothrond, captain foolhardy, and deserter of thy kin. As thralls thy mother
and thy sister live in Dor-lуmin, in misery and want. Thou art arrayed as a
prince, but they go in rags; and for thee they yearn, but thou carest not for
that. Glad may thy father be to learn that he hath such a son; as learn he
shall.' And Tъrin being under the spell of Glaurung hearkened to his words, and
he saw himself as in a mirror misshapen by malice, and loathed that which he
saw. And while he was yet held by the eyes of the
dragon in torment of mind, and could not stir, the Orcs drove away the herded
captives, and they passed nigh to Tъrin and crossed over the bridge. Among them
was Finduilas, and she cried out to Tъrin as she went; but not until her cries
and the wailing of the captives was lost upon the northward road did Claiming
release Tъrin, and he might not stop his ears against that voice that haunted
him after. Then suddenly Glaurung withdrew his glance,
and waited; and Tъrin stirred slowly, as one waking from a hideous dream. Then
coming to himself he sprang upon the dragon with a cry. But Glaurung laughed,
saying: 'If thou wilt be slain, I will slay thee gladly. But small help will
that be to Morwen and Nienor. No heed didst thou give to the cries of the
Elf-woman. Wilt thou deny also the bond of thy blood?' But Tъrin drawing back his sword stabbed at
the dragon's eyes; and Glaurung coiling back swiftly towered above him, and
said: 'Nay! At least thou art valiant; beyond all whom I have met And they lie
who say that we of our part do not honour the valour of foes. See now! I offer
thee freedom. Go to thy kin, if thou canst. Get thee gone! And if Elf or Man be
left to make tale of these days, then surely in scorn they will name thee, if
thou spurnest this gift.' Then Tъrin, being yet bemused by the eyes of
the dragon, as were he treating with a foe that could know pity, believed the
words of Glaurung and fuming away he sped over the bridge. But as he went
Glaurung spoke behind him, saying in a fell voice: 'Haste thee now, son of
Hъrin, to Dor-lуmin! Or perhaps the Orcs shall come before thee, once again.
And if thou tarry for Finduilas, then never shalt thou see Morwen again, and
never at all shalt thou see Nienor thy sister; and they will curse thee.' But Tъrin passed away on the northward road,
and Claiming laughed once more, for he had accomplished the errand of his
Master. Then he turned to his own pleasure, and sent forth his blast, and
burned all about him. But all the Orcs that were busy in the sack he routed
forth, and drove them away, and denied them their plunder even to the last
thing of worth. The bridge then he broke down and cast into the foam of Narog;
and being thus secure he gathered all the hoard and riches of Felagund and
heaped them, and lay upon them in the innermost hall, and rested a while. And Tъrin hastened along the ways to the
north, through the lands now desolate between Narog and Teiglin, and the Fell
Winter came down to meet him; for in that year snow fell ere autumn was passed,
and spring came late and cold. Ever it seemed to him as he went that he heard
the cries of Finduilas, calling his name by wood and hill, and great was his
anguish; but his heart being hot with the lies of Glaurung, and seeing ever in
his mind the Orcs burning the house of Hъrin or putting Morwen and Nienor to
torment, he held on his way, and turned never aside. At last worn by haste and the long road (for
forty leagues and more had he journeyed without rest) he came with the first
ice of winter to the pools of Ivrin, where before he had been healed. But they
were now but a frozen mire, and he could drink there no more.' Thus he came hardly by the passes of
Dor-lуmin, through bitter snows from the north, and found again the land of his
childhood. Bare and bleak it was; and Morwen was gone. Her house stood empty,
broken and cold; and no living thing dwelt nigh. Therefore Tъrin departed, and
came to the house of Brodda the Easterling, he that had to wife Aerin, Hъrin's
kinswoman; and there he learned of an old servant that Morwen was long gone,
for she had fled with Nienor out of Dor-Lуmin, none but Aerin knew where. Then Tъrin strode to Brodda's table, and
seizing him he drew his sword, and demanded that he be told whither Morwen had
gone; and Aerin declared to him that she went to Doriath to seek her son. 'For
the lands were freed then from evil,' she said, 'by the Black Sword of the
south, who now has fallen, they say.' Then Tъrin's eyes were opened, and the
last threads of Glaurung's spell were loosed; and for anguish, and wrath at the
lies that had deluded him, and hatred of the oppressors of Morwen, a black rage
seized him, and he slew Brodda in his hall, and other Easterlings that were his
guests. Thereafter he fled out into the winter, a hunted man; but he was aided
by some that remained of Hador's people and knew the ways of the wild, and with
them he escaped through the falling snow and came to an outlaws' refuge in the
southern mountains of Dor-lуmin. Thence Tъrin passed again from the land of his
childhood, and returned to Sirion's vale. His heart was bitter, for to
Dor-lуmin he had brought only greater woe upon the remnant of his people, and
they were glad of his going; and this comfort alone he had: that by the prowess
of the Black Sword the ways to Doriath had been laid open to Morwen. And he
said in his thought: 'Then those deeds wrought not evil to all. And where else
might I have better bestowed my kin, even had I come sooner? For if the Girdle
of Melian be broken, then last hope is ended. Nay, it is better indeed as
things be; for a shadow I cast wheresoever I come. Let Melian keep them! And I
will leave them in peace unshadowed for a while.' Now Tъrin coming down from Ered Wethrin
sought for Finduilas in vain, roaming the woods beneath the mountains, wild and
wary as a beast; and he waylaid all the roads that went north to the Pass of
Sirion. But he was too late; for all the trails had grown old, or were washed
away by the winter. Yet thus it was that passing southwards down Teiglin Tъrin
came upon some of the Men of Brethil that were surrounded by Orcs; and he
delivered them, for the Orcs fled from Gurthang. He named himself Wildman of
the Woods, and they besought him to come and dwell with them; but he said that
he had an errand yet unachieved, to seek Finduilas, Orodreth's daughter of
Nargothrond. Then Dorlas, the leader of those woodmen, told the grievous
tidings of her death. For the Men of Brethil had waylaid at the Crossings of
Teiglin the Ore-host that led the captives of Nargothrond, hoping to rescue
them; but the Orcs had at once cruelly slain their prisoners, and Finduilas
they pinned to a tree with a spear. So she died, saying at the last: 'Tell the
Mormegil that Finduilas is here.' Therefore they had laid her in a mound near
that place, and named it Haudh-en-Elleth, the Mound of the Elf-maid. Tъrin bade them lead him thither, and there
he fell down into a darkness of grief that was near death. Then Dorlas by his
black sword, the fame whereof had come even inter the deeps of Brethil, and by
his quest of the King's daughter, knew that this Wildman was indeed the
Mormegil of Nargothrond, whom rumour said was the son of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin.
Therefore the woodmen lifted him up, and bore him away to their homes. Now
those were set in a stockade upon a high place in the forest, Ephel Brandir
upon Amon Obel; for the People of Haleth were now dwindled by war, and Brandir
son of Handir who ruled them was a man of gentle mood, and lame also from
childhood, and he trusted rather in secrecy than in deeds of war to save them
from the power of the North. Therefore he feared the tidings that Dorlas
brought, and when he beheld the face of Tъrin as he lay on the bier a cloud of
foreboding lay on his heart Nonetheless being moved by his woe he took him into
his own house and tended him, for he had skill in healing. And with the
beginning of spring Tъrin cast off his darkness, and grew hale again; and he
arose, and he thought that he would remain in Brethil hidden, and put his
shadow behind him, forsaking the past. He took therefore a new name, Turambar,
which in the High-elven speech signified Master of Doom; and he besought the
woodmen to forget that he was a stranger among them or ever bore any other
name. Nonetheless he would not wholly leave deeds of war; for he could not
endure that the Orcs should come to the Crossings of Teiglin or draw nigh to
Haudh-en-Elleth, and he made that a place of dread for them, so that they
shunned it. But he laid his black sword by, and wielded rather the bow and the
spear. Now new tidings came to Doriath concerning
Nargothrond, for some that had escaped from the defeat and the sack, and had
survived the Fell Winter in the wild, came at last to Thingol seeking refuge;
and the march-wardens brought them to the King. And some said that all the
enemy had withdrawn northwards, and others that Glaurung abode still in the
halls of Felagund; and some said that the Mormegil was slain, and others that
he was cast under a spell by the dragon and dwelt there yet, as one changed to
stone. But all declared that it was known to many in Nargothrond ere the end
that the Mormegil was none other than Tъrin son of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin. Then Morwen was distraught, and refusing the
counsel of Melian she rode forth alone into the wild to seek her son, or some
true tidings of him. Thingol therefore sent Mablung after her, with many hardy
march-wards, to find her and guard her, and to learn what news they might; but
Nienor was bidden to remain behind. Yet the fearlessness of her house was hers;
and in an evil hour, in hope that Morwen would return when she saw that her
daughter would go with her into peril, Nienor disguised herself as one of
Thingol's people, and went with that ill-fated riding. They came upon Morwen by the banks of
Sirion, and Mablung besought her to return to Menegroth; but she was fey, and
would not be persuaded. Then also the coming of Nienor was revealed, and
despite Morwen's command she would not go back; and Mablung perforce brought
them to the hidden ferries at the Meres of Twilight, and they passed over
Sirion. And after three days' journeying they came to Amon Ethir, the Hill of
Spies, that long ago Felagund had caused to be raised with great labour, a
league before the doors of Nargothrond. There Mablung set a guard of riders
about Morwen and her daughter, and forbade them to go further. But he, seeing
from the hill no sign of any enemy, went down with his scouts to the Narog, as
stealthily as they could go. But Glaurung was aware of all that they did,
and he came forth in heat of wrath, and lay into the river; and a vast vapour
and foul reek went up, in which Mablung and his company were blinded and lost
Then Glaurung passed east over Narog. Seeing the onset of the dragon the guards
upon Amon Ethir sought to lead Morwen and Nienor away, and fly with them with
all speed back eastwards; but the wind bore the blank mists upon them, and
their horses were maddened by the dragon-stench, and were ungovernable, and ran
this way and that, so that some were dashed against trees and were slain, and
others were borne far away. Thus the ladies were lost, and of Morwen indeed no
sure tidings came ever to Doriath after. But Nienor, being thrown by her steed,
yet unhurt, made her way back to Amon Ethir, there to await Mablung, and came
thus above the reek into the sunlight; and looking westward she stared straight
into the eyes of Glaurung, whose head lay upon the hill-top. Her will strove with him for a while, but he
put forth his power, and having learned who she was he constrained her to gaze
into his eyes, and he laid a spell of utter darkness and forgetfulness upon
her, so that she could remember nothing that had ever befallen her, nor her own
name, nor the name of any other thing; and for many days she could neither
hear, nor see, nor stir by her own will. Then Glaurung left her standing alone
upon Amon Ethir, and went back to Nargothrond. Now Mablung, who greatly daring had explored
the halls of Felagund when Glaurung left them, fled from them at the approach of
the dragon, and returned to Amon Ethir. The sun sank and night fell as he
climbed the hill, and he found none there save Nienor, standing alone under the
stars as an image of stone. No word she spoke or heard, but would follow, if he
took up her hand. Therefore in great grief he led her away, though it seemed to
him vain; for they were both like to perish, succourless in the wild. But they were found by three of Mablung's
companions, and slowly they journeyed northward and eastward towards the fences
of the land of Doriath beyond Sirion, and the guarded bridge nigh to the
inflowing of Esgalduin. Slowly the strength of Nienor returned as they drew
nearer to Doriath; but still she could not speak or hear, and walked blindly as
she was led. But even as they drew near the fences at last she closed her
staring eyes, and would sleep; and they laid her down, and rested also,
unheedfully, for they were utterly outworn. There they were assailed by an
Orc-band, such as now roamed often as nigh the fences of Doriath as they dared.
But Nienor in that hour recovered hearing and sight, and being awakened by the
cries of the Orcs she sprang up in terror, and fled ere they could come to her. Then the Orcs gave chase, and the Elves
after; and they overtook the Orcs and slew them ere they could harm her, but
Nienor escaped them. For she fled as in a madness of fear, swifter than a deer,
and tore off all her clothing as she ran, until she was naked; and she passed
out of their sight, running northward, and though they sought her long they
found her not, nor any trace of her. And at last Mablung in despair returned to
Menegroth and told the tidings. Then Thingol and Melian were filled with grief;
but Mablung went forth, and sought long in vain for tidings of Morwen and
Nienor. But Nienor ran on into the woods until she
was spent, and then fell, and slept, and awoke; and it was a sunlit morning,
and she rejoiced in light as it were a new thing, and all things else that she
saw seemed new and strange, for she had no names for them. Nothing did she
remember save a darkness that lay behind her, and a shadow of fear; therefore
she went warily as a hunted beast, and became famished, for she had no food and
knew not how to seek it But coming at last to the Crossings of Teiglin she passed
over, seeking the shelter of the great trees of Brethil, for she was afraid,
and it seemed to her that the darkness was overtaking her again from which she
had fled. But it was a great storm of thunder that
came up from the south, and in terror she cast herself down upon the mound of
Haudh-en-Elleth, stopping her ears from the thunder; but the rain smote her and
drenched her, and she lay like a wild beast that is dying. There Turambar found
her, as he came to the Crossings of Teiglin, having heard rumour of Orcs that
roamed near; and seeing in a flare of lightning the body as it seemed of a
slain maiden lying upon the mound of Finduilas he was stricken to the heart.
But the woodmen lifted her up, and Turambar cast his cloak about her, and they
took her to a lodge nearby, and warmed her, and gave her food. And as soon as
she looked upon Turambar she was comforted, for it seemed to her that she had
found at last something that she had sought in her darkness; and she would not
be parted from him. But when he asked her concerning her name and her kin and
her misadventure, then she became troubled as a child that perceives that
something is demanded but cannot understand what it may be; and she wept.
Therefore Turambar said: 'Do not be troubled. The tale shall wait. But I will
give you a name, and I will call you Nнniel, Tear-maiden.' And at that name she
shook her head, but said: Nнniel. That was the first word she spoke after her
darkness, and it remained her name among the woodmen ever after. On the next day they bore her towards Ephel
Brandir; but when they came to Dimrost, the Rainy Stair, where the tumbling
stream of Celebros fell towards Teiglin, a great shuddering came upon her,
wherefore afterwards that place was called Nen Girith, the Shuddering Water.
Ere she came to the home of the woodmen upon Amon Obel she was sick of a fever;
and long she lay thus, tended by the women of Brethil, and they taught her
language as to an infant. But ere the autumn came by the skill of Brandir she
was healed of her sickness, and she could speak; but nothing did she remember
of the time before she was found by Turambar on the mound of Haudh-en-Elleth.
And Brandir loved her; but all her heart was given to Turambar. In that time the woodmen were not troubled
by the Orcs, and Turambar went not to war, and there was peace in Brethil. His
heart turned to Nнniel, and he asked her m marriage; but for that time she
delayed in spite of her love. For Brandir foreboded he knew not what, and
sought to restrain her, rather for her sake than his own or rivalry with
Turambar; and he revealed to her that Turambar was Tъrin son of Hъrin, and
though she knew not the name a shadow fell upon her mind. But when three years were passed since the
sack of Nargothrond Turambar asked Nнniel again, and vowed that now he would
wed her, or else go back to war in the wild. And Nнniel took him with joy, and
they were wedded at the midsummer, and the woodmen of Brethil made a great
feast. But ere the end of the year Glaurung sent Orcs of his dominion against
Brethil; and Turambar sat at home deedless, for he had promised to Nнniel that
he would go to battle only if their homes were assailed. But the woodmen were
worsted, and Dorlas upbraided him that he would not aid the people that he had
taken for his own. Then Turambar arose and brought forth again his black sword,
and he gathered a great company of the Men of Brethil, and they defeated the
Orcs utterly. But Glaurung heard tidings that the Black Sword was in Brethil,
and he pondered what he heard, devising new evil. In the spring of the year after Nнniel
conceived, and she became wan and sad; and at the same time there came to Ephel
Brandir the first rumours that Glaurung had issued from Nargothrond. Then
Turambar sent out scouts far afield, for now he ordered things as he would, and
few gave heed to Brandir. As it drew near to summer Glaurung came to the
borders of Brethil, and lay near the west shores of Teiglin; and then there was
great fear among the woodfolk, for it was now plain that the Great Worm would
assail them and ravage their land, and not pass by, returning to Angband, as
they had hoped. They sought therefore the counsel of Turambar; and he
counselled them that it was vain to go against Glaurung with all their force,
for only by cunning and good fortune could they defeat him. He offered
therefore himself to seek the dragon on the borders of the land, and bade the
rest of the people to remain at Ephel Brandir, but to prepare for flight. For
if Glaurung had the victory, he would come first to the woodmen's homes to
destroy them, and they could not hope to withstand him; but if they then
scattered far and wide, then many might escape, for Glaurung would not take up
his dwelling in Brethil, and would return soon to Nargothrond. Then Turambar asked for companions willing
to aid him in his peril; and Dorlas stood forth, but no others. Therefore
Dorlas upbraided the people, and spoke scorn of Brandir, who could not play the
part of the heir of the house of Haleth; and Brandir was shamed before his
people, and was bitter at heart. But Hunthor, kinsman of Brandir, asked his
leave to go in his stead. Then Turambar said farewell to Nнniel, and she was
filled with fear and foreboding, and their parting was sorrowful; but Turambar
set out with his two companions and went to Nen Girith. Then Nнniel being unable to endure her fear,
and unwilling to wait in the Ephel tidings of Turambar's fortune, set forth
after him, and a great company went with her. At this Brandir was filled all
the more with dread, and he sought to dissuade her and the people that would go
with her from this rashness, but they heeded him not. Therefore he renounced
his lordship, and all love for the people that had scorned him, and having
naught left but his love for Nнniel he girt himself with a sword and went after
her; but being lame he fell far behind. Now Turambar came to Nen Girith at sundown,
and there he learned that Glaurung lay on the brink of the high shores of
Teiglin, and was like to move when night fell. Then he called those tidings
good; for the dragon lay at Cabed-en-Aras, where the river ran in a deep and
narrow gorge that a hunted deer might overleap, and Turambar thought that he
would seek no further, but would attempt to pass over the gorge. Therefore he
purposed to creep down at dusk, and descend into the ravine under night, and
cross over the wild water; and then to climb up the further cliff, and so come
to the dragon beneath his guard. This counsel he took, but the heart of
Dorlas failed when they came to the races of Teiglin in the dark, and he dared
not attempt the perilous crossing, but drew back and lurked in the woods,
burdened with shame. Turambar and Hunthor, nonetheless, crossed over in safety,
for the loud roaring of the water drowned all other sounds, and Glaurung slept.
But ere the middle-night the dragon roused, and with a great noise and blast
cast his forward part across the chasm, and began to draw his bulk after.
Turambar and Hunthor were well-nigh overcome by the heat and the stench, as
they sought in haste for a way up to come at Glaurung; and Hunthor was slain by
a great stone that was dislodged from on high by the passage of the dragon, and
smote him on the head and cast him into the river. So he ended, of the house of
Haleth not the least valiant Then Turambar summoned all his will and
courage and climbed the cliff alone, and came beneath the dragon. Then he drew
Gurthang, and with all the might of his arm, and of his hate, he thrust it into
the soft belly of the Worm, even up to the hilts. But when Glaurung felt his
death-pang, he screamed, and in his dreadful throe he heaved up his bulk and
hurled himself across the chasm, and there lay lashing and coiling in his
agony. And he set all in a blaze about him, and beat all to ruin, until at last
his fires died, and he lay still. Now Gurthang had been wrested from
Turambar's hand in the throe of Glaurung, and it clave to the belly of the
dragon. Turambar therefore crossed the water once more, desiring to recover his
sword and to look upon his foe; and he found him stretched at his length, and
rolled upon one side, and the hilts of Gurthang stood in his belly. Then
Turambar seized the hilts and set his foot upon the belly, and cried in mockery
of the dragon and his words at Nargothrond: 'Hail, Worm of Morgoth! Well met
again! Die now and the darkness have thee! Thus is Tъrin son of Hъrin avenged.' Then he wrenched out the sword, but a spout
of black blood followed it, and fell on his hand, and the venom burned it. And
thereupon Glaurung opened his eyes and looked upon Turambar with such malice
that it smote him as a blow; and by that stroke and the anguish of the venom he
fell into a dark swoon, and lay as one dead, and his sword was beneath him. The screams of Glaurung rang in the woods,
and came to the people that waited at Nen Girith; and when those that looked
forth heard them, and saw afar the ruin and burning that the dragon made, they
deemed that he had triumphed and was destroying those that assailed him. And
Nнniel sat and shuddered beside the falling water, and at the voice of Glaurung
her darkness crept upon her again, so that she could not stir from that place
of her own will. Even so Brandir found her, for he came to
Nen Girith at last, limping wearily; and when he heard that the dragon had
crossed the river and had beaten down his foes, his heart yearned towards
Nнniel in pity. Yet he thought also: 'Turambar is dead, but Nнniel lives. Now
it may be that she will come with me, and I will lead her away, and so we shall
escape from the dragon together.' After a while therefore he stood by Nнniel,
and he said: 'Come! It is time to go. If you will, I will lead you.' And he
took her hand, and she arose silently, and followed him; and in the darkness
none saw them go. But as they went down the path to the
Crossings the moon rose, and cast a grey light on the land, and Nнniel said:
'Is this the way?' And Brandir answered that he knew no way, save to flee as
they might from Glaurung, and escape into the wild. But Nнniel said: 'The Black
Sword was my beloved and my husband. To seek him only do I go. What else could
you think?' And she sped on before him. Thus she came towards the Crossings of
Teiglin and beheld Haudh-en-Elleth in the white moonlight, and great dread came
on her. Then with a cry she turned away, casting off her cloak, and fled
southward along the river, and her white raiment shone in the moon. Thus Brandir saw her from the hill-side, and
turned to cross her path, but he was still behind her when she came to the ruin
of Glaurung nigh the brink of Cabed-en-Aras. There she saw the dragon lying,
but she heeded him not, for a man lay beside him; and she ran to Turambar, and
called his name in vain. Then finding that his hand was burned she washed it
with tears and bound it about with a strip of her raiment, and she kissed him
and cried on him again to awake. Thereat Glaurung stirred for the last time ere
he died, and he spoke with his last breath, saying: 'Hail, Nienor, daughter of
Hъrin. We meet again ere the end. I give thee joy that thou hast found thy
brother at last. And now thou shalt know him: a stabber in the dark,
treacherous to foes, faithless to friends, and a curse unto his kin, Tъrin son
of Hъrin! But the worst of all his deeds thou shalt feel in thyself.' Then Glaurung died, and the veil of his
malice was taken from her, and she remembered all the days of her life. Looking
down upon Tъrin she cried: 'Farewell, O twice beloved! A Tъrin Turambar turun ambartanen: master of doom by doom mastered!
O happy to be dead!' Then Brandir who had heard all, standing stricken upon the
edge of ruin, hastened towards her; but she ran from him distraught with horror
and anguish, and coming to the brink of Cabed-en-Aras she cast herself over,
and was lost in the wild water. Then Brandir came and looked down, and
turned away in horror; and though he no longer desired life, he could not seek
death in that roaring water. And thereafter no man looked again upon
Cabed-en-Aras, nor would any beast or bird come there, nor any tree grow; and
it was named Cabed Naeramarth, the Leap of Dreadful Doom. But Brandir made his way back to Nen Girith,
to bring tidings to the people; and he met Dorlas in the woods, and slew him:
the first blood that ever he had spilled, and the last. And he came to Nen
Girith, and men cried to him: 'Have you seen her? For Nнniel is gone.' And he answered: 'Nнniel is gone for ever.
The Dragon is dead, and Turambar is dead; and those tidings are good.' The
people murmured at these words, saying that he was crazed; but Brandir said:
'Hear me to the end! Nнniel the beloved is also dead. She cast herself into
Teiglin, desiring life no more; for she learned that she was none other than
Nienor daughter of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin, ere her forgetfulness came upon her, and
that Turambar was her brother, Tъrin son of Hъrin. ' But even as he ceased, and the people wept,
Tъrin himself came before them. For when the dragon died, his swoon left him,
and he fell into a deep sleep of weariness. But the cold of the night troubled
him, and the hilts of Gurthang drove into his side, and he awoke. Then he saw
that one had tended his hand, and he wondered much that he was left nonetheless
to lie upon the cold ground; and he called, and hearing no answer he went in
search of aid, for he was weary and sick. But when the people saw him they drew back
in fear, thinking that it was his unquiet spirit; and he said: 'Nay, be glad;
for the Dragon is dead, and I live. But wherefore have you scorned my counsel,
and come into peril? And where is Nнniel? For her I would see. And surely you
did not bring her from her home?' Then Brandir told him that it was so, and
Nнniel was dead. But the wife of Dorlas cried out: 'Nay, lord, he is crazed.
For he came here saying that you were dead, and he called it good tidings. But
you live.' Then Turambar was wrathful, and believed
that all Brandir said or did was done in malice towards himself and Nнniel,
begrudging their love; and he spoke evilly to Brandir, calling him Club-foot.
Then Brandir reported all that he had heard, and named Nнniel Nienor daughter
of Hъrin, and he cried out upon Turambar with the last words of Glaurung, that
he was a curse unto his kin and to all that harboured him. Then Turambar fell into a fury, for in those
words he heard the feet of his doom overtaking him; and he charged Brandir with
leading Nнniel to her death, and publishing with delight the lies of Glaurung,
if indeed be devised them not himself. Then he cursed Brandir, and slew him;
and he fled from the people into the woods. But after a while his madness left
him, and he came to Haudh-en-Elleth, and there sat, and pondered all his deeds.
And he cried upon Finduilas to bring him counsel; for he knew not whether he
would do now more ill to go to Doriath to seek his kin, or to forsake them for
ever and seek death in battle. And even as he sat there Mablung with a
company of Grey-elves came over the Crossings of Teiglin, and he knew Tъrin,
and hailed him, and was glad indeed to find him yet living; for he had learned
of the coming forth of Glaurung and that his path led to Brethil, and also he
had heard report that the Black Sword of Nargothrond now dwelt there. Therefore
he came to give warning to Tъrin, and help if need be; but Tъrin said: 'You
come too late. The Dragon is dead.' Then they marvelled, and gave him great
praise; but he cared nothing for it, and said: 'This only I ask: give me news
of my kin, for in Dor-lуmin I learned that they had gone to the Hidden
Kingdom.' Then Mablung was dismayed, but needs must
tell to Tъrin how Morwen was lost, and Nienor cast into a spell of dumb
forgetfulness, and how she escaped them upon the borders of Doriath and fled
northwards. Then at last Tъrin knew that doom had overtaken him, and that he
had slain Brandir unjustly; so that the words of Glaurung were fulfilled in
him. And he laughed as one fey, crying: 'This is a bitter jest indeed!' But he
bade Mablung go, and return to Doriath, with curses upon it. 'And a curse too
upon your errand!' he cried. 'This only was wanting. Now comes the night.' Then he fled from them like the wind, and
they were amazed, wondering what madness had seized him; and they followed
after him. But Tъrin far out-ran them; and he came to Cabed-en-Aras, and heard
the roaring of the water, and saw that all the leaves fell sere from the trees,
as though winter had come. There he drew forth his sword, that now alone
remained to him of all his possessions, and he said: 'Hail Gurthang! No lord or
loyalty dost thou know, save the hand that wieldeth thee. From no blood wilt
thou shrink. Wilt thou therefore take Tъrin Turambar, wilt thou slay me
swiftly?' And from the blade rang a cold voice in
answer: 'Yea, I will drink thy blood gladly, that so I may forget the blood of
Beleg my master, and the blood of Brandir slain unjustly. I will slay thee
swiftly.' Then Tъrin set the hilts upon the ground,
and cast himself upon the point of Gurthang, and the black blade took his life.
But Mablung and the Elves came and looked on the shape of Glaurung lying dead,
and upon the body of Tъrin, and they grieved; and when Men of Brethil came thither,
and they learned the reasons of Tъrin's madness and death, they were aghast;
and Mablung said bitterly: 'I also have been meshed in the doom of the Children
of Hъrin, and thus with my tidings have slain one that I loved.' Then they lifted up Tъrin, and found that
Gurthang had broken asunder. But Elves and Men gathered there great store of
wood, and they made a mighty burning, and the Dragon was consumed to ashes.
Tъrin they laid in a high mound where he had fallen, and the shards of Gurthang
were laid beside him. And when all was done, the Elves sang a lament for the
Children of Hъrin, and a great grey stone was set upon the mound, and thereon
was carven in runes of Doriath: TЪRIN
TURAMBAR DAGNIR GLAURUNGA and beneath they wrote also: NIENOR
N1NIEL But she was not there, nor was it ever known
whither the cold waters of Teiglin had taken her. Chapter 22 Of the Ruin of Doriath So ended the tale of
Tъrin Turambar; but Morgoth did not sleep nor rest from evil, and his dealings
with the house of Hador were not yet ended. Against them his malice was
unsated, though Hъrin was under his eye, and Morwen wandered distraught in the
wild. Unhappy was the lot of Hъrin; for all that
Morgoth knew of the working of his malice Hъrin knew also, but lies were
mingled with the truth, and aught that was good was hidden or distorted. In all
ways Morgoth sought most to cast an evil light on those things that Thingol and
Melian had done, for he hated them, and feared them. When therefore he judged
the time to be ripe, he released Hъrin from his bondage, bidding him go whither
he would; and he feigned that in this he was moved by pity as for an enemy
utterly defeated. But he lied, for his purpose was that Hъrin should still
further his hatred for Elves and Men, ere he died. Then little though he trusted the words of
Morgoth, knowing indeed that he was without pity, Hъrin took his freedom, and
went forth in grief, embittered by the words of the Dark Lord; and a year was
now gone since the death of Tъrin his son. For twenty-eight years he had been
captive in Angband, and he was grown grim to look upon. His hair and beard were
white and long, but he walked unbowed, bearing a great black staff; and he was
girt with a sword. Thus he passed into Hithlum, and tidings came to the chieftains
of the Easterlings that there was a great riding of captains and black soldiers
of Angband over the sands of Anfauglith, and with them came an old man, as one
that was held in high honour. Therefore they did not lay hands on Hъrin, but
let him walk at will in those lands; in which they were wise, for the remnant
of his own people shunned him, because of his coming from Angband as one in
league and honour with Morgoth. Thus his freedom did but increase the
bitterness of Hъrin's heart; and he departed from the land of Hithlum and went
up into the mountains. Thence he descried far off. amid the clouds the peaks of
the Crissaegrim, and he remembered Turgon; and he desired to come again to the
hidden realm of Gondolin. He went down therefore from Ered Wethrin, and he knew
not that the creatures of Morgoth watched all his steps; and crossing over the
Brithiach he passed into Dimbar, and came to the dark feet of the Echoriath.
All the land was cold and desolate, and he looked about him with little hope,
standing at the foot of a great fall of stones beneath a sheer rock-wall; and
he knew not that this was all that was now left to see of the old Way of
Escape: the Dry River was blocked, and the arched gate was buried. Then Hъrin
looked up to the grey sky, thinking that he might once more descry the eagles,
as he had done long ago in his youth; but he saw only the shadows blown from
the east, and clouds swirling about the inaccessible peaks, and he heard only
the wind hissing over the stones. But the watch of the great eagles was now
redoubled, and they marked Hъrin well, far below, forlorn in the fading light;
and straightway Thorondor himself, since the tidings seemed great, brought word
to Turgon. But Turgon said: 'Does Morgoth sleep? You were mistaken.' 'Not so,' said Thorondor. 'If the Eagles of
Manwл were wont to err thus, then long ago, lord, your hiding would have been
in vain.' 'Then your words bode ill,' said Turgon;
'for they can bear but one meaning. Even Hъrin Thalion has surrendered to the
will of Morgoth. My heart is shut.' But when Thorondor was gone, Turgon sat long
in thought, and he was troubled, remembering the deeds of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin;
and he opened his heart, and sent to the eagles to seek for Hъrin, and to bring
him if they might to Gondolin. But it was too late, and they never saw him
again in light or in shadow. For Hъrin stood in despair before the silent
cliffs of the Echoriath, and the westering sun, piercing the clouds, stained
his white hair with red. Then he cried aloud in the wilderness, heedless of any
ears, and he cursed the pitiless land; and standing at last upon a high rock he
looked towards Gondolin and called in a great voice: 'Turgon, Turgon, remember
the Fen of Serech! O Turgon, will you not hear in your hidden halls?' But there
was no sound save the wind in the dry grasses. 'Even so they hissed in Serech
at the sunset,' he said; and as he spoke the sun went behind the Mountains of
Shadow, and a darkness fell about him, and the wind ceased, and there was
silence in the waste. Yet there were ears that heard the words
that Hъrin spoke, and report of all came soon to the Dark Throne in the north;
and Morgoth smiled, for he knew now clearly in what region Turgon dwelt, though
because of the eagles no spy of his could yet come within sight of the land
behind the Encircling Mountains. This was the first evil that the freedom of
Hъrin achieved. As darkness fell Hъrin stumbled from the
rock, and fell into a heavy sleep of grief. But in his sleep he heard the voice
of Morwen lamenting, and often she spoke his name; and it seemed to him that
her voice came out of Brethil. Therefore when he awoke with the coming of day
he arose, and went back to the Brithiach; and passing along the eaves of
Brethil he came at a time of night to the Crossings of Teiglin. The
night-sentinels saw him, but they were filled with dread, for they thought that
they saw a ghost out of some ancient battle-mound that walked with darkness
about it; and therefore Hъrin was not stayed, and he came at last to the place
of the burning of Glaurung, and saw the tall stone standing near the brink of
Cabed Naeramarth. But Hъrin did not look at the stone, for he
knew what was written there; and his eyes had seen that he was not alone.
Sitting in the shadow of the stone there was a woman, bent over her knees; and
as Hъrin stood there silent she cast back her tattered hood and lifted her
face. Grey she was and old, but suddenly her eyes looked into his, and he knew
her; for though they were wild and full of fear, that light still gleamed in
them that long ago had earned for her the name Eledhwen, proudest and most
beautiful of mortal women in the days of old. 'You come at last,' she said. 'I have waited
too long.' 'It was a dark road. I have come as I
could,' he answered. 'But you are too late,' said Morwen. 'They
are lost.' 'I know it,' he said. 'But you are not.' But Morwen said: 'Almost. I am spent I shall
go with the sun. Now little time is left: if you know, tell me! How did she
find him?' But Hъrin did not answer, and they sat beside
the stone, and did not speak again; and when the sun went down Morwen sighed
and clasped his hand, and was still; and Hъrin knew that she had died. He
looked down at her in the twilight and it seemed to him that the lines of grief
and cruel hardship were smoothed away. 'She was not conquered,' he said; and he
closed her eyes, and sat unmoving beside her as the night drew down. The waters
of Cabed Naeramarth roared on, but he heard no sound, and he saw nothing, and
felt nothing, for his heart was stone within him. But there came a chill wind
that drove sharp rain into his face; and he was roused, and anger rose in him
like smoke, mastering reason, so that all his desire was to seek vengeance for
his wrongs and for the wrongs of his kin, accusing in his anguish all those who
ever had dealings with them. Then he rose up, and he made a grave for Morwen
above Cabed Naeramarth on the west side of the stone; and upon it he cut these
words: Here lies also Morwen Eledhwen. It is told that a seer and harp-player of
Brethil named Glirhuin made a song, saying that the Stone of the Hapless should
not be defiled by Morgoth nor ever thrown down, not though the sea should drown
all the land; as after indeed befell, and still Tol Morwen stands alone in the
water beyond the new coasts that were made in the days of the wrath of the
Valar. But Hъrin does not lie there, for his doom drove him on, and the Shadow
still followed him. Now Hъrin crossed over Teiglin and passed
southwards down the ancient road that led to Nargothrond; and he saw far off to
the eastward the lonely height of Amon Rыdh, and knew what had befallen there.
At length he came to the banks of Narog, and ventured the passage of the wild
river upon the fallen stones of the bridge, as Mablung of Doriath had ventured
it before him; and he stood before the broken Doors of Felagund, leaning upon
his staff. Here it must be told that after the
departure of Glaurung Mоm the Petty-Dwarf had found his way to Nargothrond, and
crept within the ruined halls; and he took possession of them, and sat there
fingering the gold and the gems, letting them run ever through his hands, for
none came nigh to despoil him, from dread of the spirit of Glaurung and his
very memory. But now one had come, and stood upon the threshold; and Mоm came
forth, and demanded to know his purpose. But Hъrin said: 'Who are you, that
would hinder me from entering the house of Finrod Felagund?' Then the Dwarf answered: 'I am Mоm; and
before the proud ones came from over the Sea, Dwarves delved the halls of
Nulukkizdоn. I have but returned to take what is mine; for I am the last of my
people.' 'Then you shall enjoy your inheritance no
longer,' said Hъrin; 'for I am Hъrin son of Galdor, returned out of Angband,
and my son was Tъrin Turambar, whom you have not forgotten; and he it was that
slew Glaurung the Dragon, who wasted these halls where now you sit; and not
unknown is it to me by whom the Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin was betrayed.' Then Mоm in great fear besought Hъrin to
take what he would, but to spare his life; but Hъrin gave no heed to his
prayer, and slew him there before the doors of Nargothrond. Then he entered in,
and stayed a while in that dreadful place, where the treasures of Valinor lay
strewn upon the floors in darkness and decay; but it is told that when Hъrin
came forth from the wreck of Nargothrond and stood again beneath the sky he
bore with him out of all that great hoard but one thing only. Now Hъrin journeyed eastward, and he came to
the Meres of Twilight above the Falls of Sirion; and there he was taken by the
Elves that guarded the western marches of Doriath, and brought before King
Thingol in the Thousand Caves. Then Thingol was filled with wonder and grief
when he looked on him, and knew that grim and aged man for Hъrin Thalion, the
captive of Morgoth; but he greeted him fairly and showed him honour. Hъrin made
no answer to the King, but drew forth from beneath his cloak that one thing
which he had taken with him out of Nargothrond; and that was no lesser treasure
than the Nauglamнr, the Necklace of the Dwarves, that was made for Finrod
Felagund long years before by the craftsmen of Nogrod and Belegost, most famed
of all their works in the Elder Days, and prized by Finrod while he lived above
all the treasures of Nargothrond. And Hъrin cast it at the feet of Thingol with
wild and bitter words. 'Receive thou thy fee,' he cried, 'for thy
fair keeping of my children and my wife! For this is the Nauglamнr, whose name
is known to many among Elves and Men; and I bring it to thee out of the darkness
of Nargothrond, where Finrod thy kinsman left it behind him when he set forth
with Beren son of Barahir to fulfil the errand of Thingol of Doriath!' Then Thingol looked upon the great treasure,
and knew it for the Nauglamнr, and well did he understand Hъrin's intent; but
being filled with pity he restrained his wrath, and endured Hъrin's scorn. And
at the last Melian spoke, and said: 'Hъrin Thalion, Morgoth hath bewitched
thee; for he that seeth through Morgoth's eyes, willing or unwilling, seeth all
things crooked. Long was Tъrin thy son fostered in the halls of Menegroth, and
shown love and honour as the son of the King; and it was not by the King's will
nor by mine that he came never back to Doriath. And afterwards thy wife and thy
daughter were harboured here with honour and goodwill; and we sought by all
means that we might to dissuade Morwen from the road to Nargothrond. With the
voice of Morgoth thou dost now upbraid thy friends.' And hearing the words of Melian Hъrin stood
moveless, and he gazed long into the eyes of the Queen; and there in Menegroth,
defended still by the Girdle of Melian from the darkness of the Enemy, he read
the truth of all that was done, and tasted at last the fullness of woe that was
measured for him by Morgoth Bauglir. And he spoke no more of what was past, but
stooping lifted up the Nauglamнr from where it lay before Thingol's chair, and
he gave it to him, saying: 'Receive now, lord, the Necklace of the Dwarves, as
a gift from one who has nothing, and as a memorial of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin. For
now my fate is fulfilled, and the purpose of Morgoth achieved; but I am his
thrall no longer.' Then he turned away, and passed out from the
Thousand Caves, and all that saw him fell back before his face; and none sought
to withstand his going, nor did any know whither he went. But it is said that
Hъrin would not live thereafter, being bereft of all purpose and desire, and
cast himself at last into the western sea; and so ended the mightiest of the
warriors of mortal Men. But when Hъrin was gone from Menegroth,
Thingol sat long in silence, gazing upon the great treasure that lay upon his
knees; and it came into his mind that it should be remade, and in it should be
set the Silmaril. For as the years passed Thingol's thought turned unceasingly
to the jewel of Fлanor, and became bound to it, and he liked not to let it rest
even behind the doors of his inmost treasury; and he was minded now to bear it
with him always, waking and sleeping. In those days the Dwarves still came on
their journeys into Beleriand from their mansions m Ered Lindon, and passing
over Gelion at Sam Athrad, the Ford of Stones, they travelled the ancient road
to Doriath; for their skill in the working of metal and stone was very great,
and there was much need of their craft in the halls of Menegroth. But they came
now no longer in small parties as aforetime, but in great companies well armed
for their protection in the perilous lands between Aros and Gelion; and they
dwelt in Menegroth at such times in chambers and smithies set apart for them.
At that very time great craftsmen of Nogrod were lately come into Doriath; and
the King therefore summoning them declared his desire, that if their skill were
great enough they should remake the Nauglamнr, and in it set the Silmaril. Then
the Dwarves looked upon the work of their fathers, and they beheld with wonder
the shining jewel of Fлanor; and they were filled with a great lust to possess
them, and carry them off to their far homes in the mountains. But they
dissembled their mind, and consented to the task. Long was their labour; and Thingol went down
alone to their deep smithies, and sat ever among them as they worked. In time
his desire was achieved, and the greatest of the works of Elves and Dwarves
were brought together and made one; and its beauty was very great, for now the
countless jewels of the Nauglamнr did reflect and cast abroad in marvellous
hues the light of the Silmaril amidmost. Then Thingol, being alone among them,
made to take it up and clasp it about his neck; but the Dwarves m that moment
withheld it from him, and demanded that he yield it up to them, saying: 'By
what right does the Elvenking lay claim to the Nauglamнr, that was made by our
fathers for Finrod Felagund who is dead? It has come to him but by the hand of
Hъrin the Man of Dor-lуmin, who took it as a thief out of the darkness of
Nargothrond.' But Thingol perceived their hearts, and saw well that desiring
the Silmaril they sought but a pretext and fair cloak for their true intent;
and in his wrath and pride he gave no heed to his peril, but spoke to them in
scorn, saying: 'How do ye of uncouth race dare to demand aught of me, Elu
Thingol, Lord of Beleriand, whose life began by the waters of Cuiviйnen years
uncounted ere the fathers of the stunted people awoke?' And standing tall and
proud among them he bade them with shameful words be gone unrequited out of
Doriath. Then the lust of the Dwarves was kindled to
rage by the words of the King; and they rose up about him, and laid hands on
him, and slew him as he stood. So died in the deep places of Menegroth Elwл
Singollo, King of Doriath, who alone of all the Children of Ilъvatar was joined
with one of the Ainur; and he who, alone of the Forsaken Elves, had seen the
light of the Trees of Valinor, with his last sight gazed upon the Silmaril. Then the Dwarves taking the Nauglamнr passed
out of Menegroth and fled eastwards through Region. But tidings went swiftly
through the forest, and few of that company came over Aros, for they were
pursued to the death as they sought the eastward road; and the Nauglamнr was
retaken, and brought back in bitter grief to Melian the Queen. Yet two there
were of the slayers of Thingol who escaped from the pursuit on the eastern
marches, and returned at last to their city far off in the Blue Mountains; and
there in Nogrod they told somewhat of all that had befallen, saying that the
Dwarves were slain in Doriath by command of the Elvenking, who thus would cheat
them of their reward. Then great was the wrath and lamentation of
the Dwarves of Nogrod for the death of their kin and their great craftsmen, and
they tore their beards, and wailed; and long they sat taking thought for
vengeance. It is told that they asked aid from Belegost, but it was denied
them, and the Dwarves of Belegost sought to dissuade them from their purpose;
but their counsel was unavailing, and ere long a great host came forth from
Nogrod, and crossing over Gelion marched westward through Beleriand. *** Upon Doriath a heavy change had fallen.
Melian sat long in silence beside Thingol the King, and her thought passed back
into the starlit years and to their first meeting among the nightingales of Nan
Elmoth in ages past; and she knew that her parting from Thingol was the
forerunner of a greater parting, and that the doom of Doriath was drawing nigh.
For Melian was of the divine race of the Valar, and she was a Maia of great
power and wisdom; but for love of Elwл Singollo she took upon herself the form
of the Elder Children of Ilъvatar, and in that union she became bound by the
chain and trammels of the flesh of Arda. In that form she bore to him Lъthien
Tinъviel; and in that form she gained a power over the substance of Arda, and
by the Girdle of Melian was Doriath defended through long ages from the evils
without. But now Thingol lay dead, and his spirit had passed to the halls of
Mandos; and with his death a change came also upon Melian. Thus it came to pass
that her power was withdrawn in that time from the forests of Neldoreth and
Region, and Esgalduin the enchanted river spoke with a different voice, and
Doriath lay open to its enemies. Thereafter Melian spoke to none save to
Mablung only, bidding him take heed to the Silmaril, and to send word speedily
to Beren and Lъthien in Ossiriand; and she vanished out of Middle-earth, and
passed to the land of the Valar beyond the western sea, to muse upon her
sorrows in the gardens of Lуrien, whence she came, and this tale speaks of her
no more. Thus it was that the host of the Naugrim
crossing over Aros passed unhindered into the woods of Doriath; and none
withstood them, for they were many and fierce, and the captains of the
Grey-elves were cast into doubt and despair, and went hither and thither
purposeless. But the Dwarves held on their way, and passed over the great bridge,
and entered into Menegroth; and there befell a thing most grievous among the
sorrowful deeds of the Elder Days. For there was battle in the Thousand Caves,
and many Elves and Dwarves were slain; and it has not been forgotten. But the
Dwarves were victorious, and the halls of Thingol were ransacked and plundered.
There fell Mablung of the Heavy Hand before the doors of the treasury wherein
lay the Nauglamнr; and the Silmaril was taken. At that time Beren and Lъthien yet dwelt in
Tol Galen, the Green Isle, in the River Adurant, southernmost of the streams
that falling from Ered Lindon flowed down to join with Gelion; and their son
Dior Eluchнl had to wife Nimloth, kinswoman of Celeborn, prince of Doriath, who
was wedded to the Lady Galadriel. The sons of Dior and Nimloth were Elurйd and
Elurнn; and a daughter also was born to them, and she was named Elwing, which
is Star-spray, for she was born on a night of stars, whose light glittered in
the spray of the waterfall of Lanthir Lamath beside her father's house. Now word went swiftly among the Elves of
Ossiriand that a great host of Dwarves bearing gear of war had come down out of
the mountains and passed over Gelion at the Ford of Stones. These tidings came
soon to Beren and Lъthien; and in that time also a messenger came to them out
of Doriath telling of what had befallen there. Then Beren arose and left Tol
Galen, and summoning to him Dior his son they went north to the River Ascar;
and with them went many of the Green-elves of Ossiriand. Thus it came to .pass that when the Dwarves
of Nogrod, returning from Menegroth with diminished host, came again to Sarn
Athrad, they were assailed by unseen enemies; for as they climbed up Gelion's
banks burdened with the spoils of Doriath, suddenly all the woods were filled with
the sound of elven-horns, and shafts sped upon them from every side. There very
many of the Dwarves were slain in the first onset; but some escaping from the
ambush held together, and fled eastwards towards the mountains. And as they
climbed the long slopes beneath Mount Dolmed there came forth the Shepherds of
the Trees, and they drove the Dwarves into the shadowy woods of Ered Lindon:
whence, it is said, came never one to climb the high passes that led to their
homes. In that battle by Sarn Athrad Beren fought
his last fight, and himself slew the Lord of Nogrod, and wrested from him the
Necklace of the Dwarves; but he dying laid his curse upon all the treasure.
Then Beren gazed in wonder on the selfsame jewel of Fлanor that he had cut from
Morgoth's iron crown, now shining set amid gold and gems by the cunning of the
Dwarves; and he washed it clean of blood in the waters of the river. And when
all was finished the treasure of Doriath was drowned in the River Ascar, and
from that time the river was named anew, Rathlуriel, the Goldenbed; but Beren
took the Nauglamнr and returned to Tol Galen. Little did it ease the grief of
Lъthien to learn that the Lord of Nogrod was slain and many Dwarves beside; but
it is said and sung that Lъthien wearing that necklace and that immortal jewel
was the vision of greatest beauty and glory that has ever been outside the
realm of Valinor; and for a little while the Land of the Dead that Live became
like a vision of the land of the Valar, and no place has been since so fair, so
fruitful, or so filled with light. Now Dior Thingol's heir bade farewell to
Beren and Lъthien, and departing from Lanthir Lamath with Nimloth his wife he
came to Menegroth, and abode there; and with them went their young sons Elurйd
and Elurнn, and Elwing their daughter. Then the Sindar received them with joy,
and they arose from the darkness of their grief for fallen kin and King and for
the departure of Melian; and Dior Eluchнl set himself to raise anew the glory
of the kingdom of Doriath. There came a night of autumn, and when it
grew late, one came and smote upon the doors of Menegroth, demanding admittance
to the King. He was a lord of the Green-elves hastening from Ossiriand, and the
door-wards brought him to where Dior sat alone in his chamber; and there in
silence he gave to the King a coffer, and took his leave. But in that coffer
lay the Necklace of the Dwarves, wherein was set the Silmaril; and Dior looking
upon it knew it for a sign that Beren Erchamion and Lъthien Tinъviel had died
indeed, and gone where go the race of Men to a fate beyond the world. Long did Dior gaze upon the Silmaril, which
his father and mother had brought beyond hope out of the terror of Morgoth; and
his grief was great that death had come upon them so soon. But the wise have
said that the Silmaril hastened their end; for the flame of the beauty of
Lъthien as she wore it was too bright for mortal lands. Then Dior arose, and about his neck he
clasped the Nauglamнr; and now he appeared as the fairest of all the children
of the world, of threefold race: of the Edain, and of the Eldar, and of the
Maiar of the Blessed Realm. But now the rumour ran among the scattered
Elves of Beleriand that Dior Thingol's heir wore the Nauglamнr, and they said:
'A Silmaril of Fлanor burns again in the woods of Doriath'; and the oath of the
sons of Fлanor was waked again from sleep. For while Lъthien wore the Necklace
of the Dwarves no Elf would dare to assail her; but now hearing of the renewal
of Doriath and of Dior's pride the seven gathered again from wandering, and
they sent to him to claim their own. But Dior returned no answer to the sons of
Fлanor; and Celegorm stirred up his brothers to prepare an assault upon
Doriath. They came at unawares in the middle of winter, and fought with Dior in
the Thousand Caves; and so befell the second slaying of Elf by Elf. There fell
Celegorm by Dior's hand, and there fell Curufin, and dark Caranthir; but Dior
was slain also, and Nimloth his wife, and the cruel servants of Celegorm seized
his young sons and left them to starve in the forest. Of this Maedhros indeed
repented, and sought for them long in the woods of Doriath; but his search was
unavailing, and of the fate of Elurйd and Elurнn no tale tells. Thus Doriath was destroyed, and never rose
again. But the sons of Fлanor gained not what they
sought; for a remnant of the people fled before them, and with them was Elwing
Dior's daughter, and they escaped, and bearing with them the Silmaril they came
in time to the mouths of the River Sirion by the sea. Chapter 23 Of Tuor and the Fall of Gondolin It has been told
that Huor the brother of Hъrin was slain in the Battle of Unnumbered Tears; and
in the winter of that year Rнan his wife bore a child in the wilds of Mithrim,
and he was named Tuor, and was taken to foster by Annael of the Grey-elves, who
yet lived in those hills. Now when Tuor was sixteen years old the Elves were
minded to leave the caves of Androth where they dwelt, and to make their way
secretly to the Havens of Sirion in the distant south; but they were assailed
by Orcs and Easterlings before they made good their escape, and Tuor was taken
captive and enslaved by Lorgan, chief of the Easterlings of Hithlum. For three
years he endured that thraldom, but at the end of that time he escaped; and returning
to the caves of Androth he dwelt there alone, and did such great hurt to the
Easterlings that Lorgan set a price upon his head. But when Tuor had lived thus in solitude as
an outlaw for four years, Ulmo set it in his heart to depart from the land of
his fathers, for he had chosen Tuor as the instrument of his designs; and
leaving once more the caves of Androth he went westwards across Dor-lуmin, and
found Annon-in-Gelydh, the Gate of the Noldor, which the people of Turgon built
when they dwelt in Nevrast long years before. Thence a dark tunnel led beneath
the mountains, and issued into Cirith Ninniach, the Rainbow Cleft, through
which a turbulent water ran towards the western sea. Thus it was that Tuor's
flight from Hithlum was marked by neither Man nor Orc, and no knowledge of it
came to the ears of Morgoth. And Tuor came into Nevrast, and looking upon
Belegaer the Great Sea he was enamoured of it, and the sound of it and the
longing for it were ever in his heart and ear, and an unquiet was on him that
took him at last into the depths of the realms of Ulmo. Then he dwelt in
Nevrast alone, and the summer of that year passed, and the doom of Nargothrond
drew near; but when the autumn came he saw seven great swans flying south, and
he knew them for a sign that he had tarried overlong, and he followed their
flight along the shores of the sea. Thus he came at length to the deserted
halls of Vinyamar beneath Mount Taras, and he entered in, and found there the
shield and hauberk, and the sword and helm, that Turgon had left there by the
command of Ulmo long before; and he arrayed himself in those arms, and went
down to the shore. But there came a great storm out of the west, and out of
that storm Ulmo the Lord of Waters arose in majesty and spoke to Tuor as he stood
beside the sea. And Ulmo bade him depart from that place and seek out the
hidden kingdom of Gondolin; and he gave Tuor a great cloak, to mantle him in
shadow from the eyes of his enemies. But in the morning when the storm was
passed, Tuor came upon an Elf standing beside the walls of Vinyamar; and he was
Voronwл, son of Aranwл, of Gondolin, who sailed in the last ship that Turgon
sent into the West. But when that ship returning at last out of the deep ocean
foundered in the great storm within sight of the coasts of Middle-earth, Ulmo
took him up, alone of all its mariners, and cast him onto the land near
Vinyamar; and learning of the command laid upon Tuor by the Lord of Waters
Voronwл was filled with wonder, and did not refuse him his guidance to the
hidden door of Gondolin. Therefore they set out together from that place, and
as the Fell Winter of that year came down upon them out of the north they went
warily eastward under the eaves of the Mountains of Shadow/ At length they came in their journeying to
the Pools of Ivrin, and looked with grief on the defilement wrought there by
the passage of Glaurung the Dragon; but even as they gazed upon it they saw one
going northward in haste, and he was a tall Man, clad in black, and bearing a
black sword. But they knew not who he was, nor anything of what had befallen in
the south; and he passed them by, and they said no word. And at the last by the power that Ulmo set
upon them they came to the hidden door of Gondolin, and passing down the tunnel
they reached the inner gate, and were taken by the guard as prisoners. Then
they were led up the mighty ravine of Orfalch Echor, barred by seven gates, and
brought before Ecthelion of the Fountain, the warden of the great gate at the
end of the climbing road; and there Tuor cast aside his cloak, and from the
arms that he bore from Vinyamar it was seen that he was in truth one sent by
Ulmo. Then Tuor looked down upon the fair vale of Tumladen, set as a green
jewel amid the encircling hills; and he saw far off upon the rocky height of
Amon Gwareth Gondolin the great, city of seven names, whose fame and glory is
mightiest in song of all dwellings of the Elves in the Hither Lands. At the
bidding of Ecthelion trumpets were blown on the towers of the great gate, and
they echoed in the hills; and far off but clear there came a sound of answering
trumpets blown upon the white walls of the city, flushed with the rose of dawn
upon the plain. Thus it was that the son of Huor rode across
Tumladen, and came to the gate of Gondolin; and passing up the wide stairways
of the city he was brought at last to the Tower of the King, and looked upon
the images of the Trees of Valinor. Then Tuor stood before Turgon son of
Fingolfin, High King of the Noldor, and upon the King's right hand there stood
Maeglin his sister-son, but upon his left hand sat Idril Celebrindal his
daughter; and all that heard the voice of Tuor marvelled, doubting that this
were in truth a Man of mortal race, for his words were the words of the Lord of
Waters that came to him in that hour. And he gave warning to Turgon that the
Curse of Mandos now hastened to its fulfilment, when all the works of the
Noldor should perish; and he bade him depart, and abandon the fair and mighty
city that he had built, and go down Sirion to the sea. Then Turgon pondered long the counsel of
Ulmo, and there came into his mind the words that were spoken to him in
Vinyamar: 'Love not too well the work of thy hands and the devices of thy
heart; and remember that the true hope of the Noldor lieth in the West, and
cometh from the Sea.' But Turgon was become proud, and Gondolin as beautiful as
a memory of Elven Tirion, and he trusted still in its secret and impregnable
strength, though even a Vala should gainsay it; and after the Nirnaeth
Arnoediad the people of that city desired never again to mingle in the woes of
Elves and Men without, nor to return through dread and danger into the West.
Shut behind their pathless and enchanted hills they suffered none to enter,
though he fled from Morgoth hate-pursued; and tidings of the lands beyond came
to them faint and far, and they heeded them little. The spies of Angband sought
for them in vain; and their dwelling was as a rumour, and a secret that none
could find. Maeglin spoke ever against Tuor in the councils of the King, and
his words seemed the more weighty in that they went with Turgon's heart; and at
the last he rejected the bidding of Ulmo and refused his counsel. But in the
warning of the Vala he heard again the words that were spoken before the departing
Noldor on the coast of Araman long ago; and the fear of treason was wakened in
Turgon's heart. Therefore in that time the very entrance to the hidden door in
the Encircling Mountains was caused to be blocked up; and thereafter none went
ever forth from Gondolin on any errand of peace or war, while that city stood.
Tidings were brought by Thorondor Lord of Eagles of the fall of Nargothrond,
and after of the slaying of Thingol and of Dior his heir, and of the ruin of
Doriath; but Turgon shut his ear to word of the woes without, and vowed to
march never at the side of any son of Fлanor; and his people he forbade ever to
pass the leaguer of the hills. And Tuor remained in Gondolin, for its bliss
and its beauty and the wisdom of its people held mm enthralled; and he became
mighty in stature and in mind, and learned deeply of the lore of the exiled
Elves. Then the heart of Idril was turned to him, and his to her; and Maeglin's
secret hatred grew ever greater, for he desired above all things to possess
her, the only heir of the King of Gondolin. But so high did Tuor stand in the
favour of the King that when he had dwelt there for seven years Turgon did not
refuse him even the hand of his daughter; for though he would not heed the
bidding of Ulmo, he perceived that the fate of the Noldor was wound with the
one whom Ulmo had sent; and he did not forget the words that Huor spoke to him
before the host of Gondolin departed from the Battle of Unnumbered Tears. Then there was made a great and joyful
feast, for Tuor had won the hearts of all that people, save only of Maeglin and
his secret following; and thus there came to pass the second union of Elves and
Men. In the spring of the year after was born in
Gondolin Eдrendil Halfelven, the son of Tuor and Idril Celebrindal; and that
was five hundred years and three since the coming of the Noldor to
Middle-earth. Of surpassing beauty was Eдrendil, for a light was in his face as
the light of heaven, and he had the beauty and the wisdom of the Eldar and the
strength and hardihood of the Men of old; and the Sea spoke ever in his ear and
heart, even as with Tuor his father. Then the days of Gondolin were yet full of
joy and peace; and none knew that the region wherein the Hidden Kingdom lay had
been at last revealed to Morgoth by the cries of Hъrin, when standing in the
wilderness beyond the Encircling Mountains and finding no entrance he called on
Turgon in despair. Thereafter the thought of Morgoth was bent unceasing on the
mountainous land between Anach and the upper waters of Sirion, whither his
servants had never passed; yet still no spy or creature out of Angband could
come there because of the vigilance of the eagles, and Morgoth was thwarted in
the fulfilment of his designs. But Idril Celebrindal was wise and far-seeing, and
her heart misgave her, and foreboding crept upon her spirit as a cloud.
Therefore in that time she let prepare a secret way, that should lead down from
the city and passing out beneath the surface of the plain issue far beyond the
walls, northward of Amon Gwareth; and she contrived it that the work was known
but to few, and no whisper of it came to Maeglin's ears. Now on a time, when Eдrendil was yet young,
Maeglin was lost. For he, as has been told, loved mining and quarrying after
metals above all other craft; and he was master and leader of the Elves who
worked in the mountains distant from the city, seeking after metals for their
smithying of things both of peace and war. But often Maeglin went with few of
his folk beyond the leaguer of the hills, and the King knew not that his
bidding was defied; and thus it came to pass, as fate willed, that Maeglin was
taken prisoner by Orcs, and brought to Angband, Maeglin was no weakling or
craven, but the torment wherewith he was threatened cowed his spirit, and he
purchased his life and freedom by revealing to Morgoth the very place of
Gondolin and the ways whereby it might be found and assailed. Great indeed was
the Joy of Morgoth, and to Maeglin he promised the lordship of Gondolin as his
vassal, and the possession of Idril Celebrindal, when the city should be taken;
and indeed desire for Idril and hatred for Tuor led Maeglin the easier to his
treachery, most infamous in all the histories of the Elder Days. But Morgoth
sent him back to Gondolin, lest any should suspect the betrayal, and so that
Maeglin should aid the assault from within, when the hour came; and he abode in
the halls of the King with smiling face and evil in his heart, while the
darkness gathered ever deeper upon Idril. At last, in the year when Eдrendil was seven
years old, Morgoth was ready, and he loosed upon Gondolin his Balrogs, and his
Orcs, and his wolves; and with them came dragons of the brood of Glaurung, and
they were become now many and terrible. The host of Morgoth came over the
northern hills where the height was greatest and the watch least vigilant, and
it came at night upon a time of festival, when all the people of Gondolin were
upon the walls to await the rising sun, and sing their songs at its uplifting;
for the morrow was the great feast that they named the Gates of Summer. But the
red light mounted the hills in the north and not in the east; and there was no
stay in the advance of the foe until they were beneath the very walls of
Gondolin, and the city was beleaguered without hope. Of the deeds of desperate
valour there done, by the chieftains of the noble houses and their warriors,
and not least by Tuor, much is told in The Fall of Gondolin: of the battle of
Ecthelion of the Fountain with Gothmog Lord of Balrogs in the very square of
the King, where each slew the other, and of the defence of the tower of Turgon
by the people of his household, until the tower was overthrown; and mighty was
its fall and the fall of Turgon in its ruin. Tuor sought to rescue Idril from the sack of
the city, but Maeglin had laid hands on her, and on Eдrendil; and Tuor fought
with Maeglin on the walls, and cast him far out, and his body as it fell smote
the rocky slopes of Amon Gwareth thrice ere it pitched into the flames below.
Then Tuor and Idril led such remnants of the people of Gondolin as they could
gather in the confusion of the burning down the secret way which Idril had
prepared; and of that passage the captains of Angband knew nothing, and thought
not that any fugitives would take a path towards the north and the highest
parts of the mountains and the nighest to Angband. The fume of the burning, and
the steam of the fair fountains of Gondolin withering in the flame of the
dragons of the north, fell upon the vale of Tumladen in mournful mists; and
thus was the escape of Tuor and his company aided, for there was still a long
and open road to follow from the tunnel's mouth to the foothills of the
mountains. Nonetheless they came thither, and beyond hope they climbed, in woe
and misery, for the high places were cold and terrible, and they had among them
many that were wounded, and women and children. There was a dreadful pass, Cirith Thoronath
it was named, the Eagles' Cleft, where beneath the shadow of the highest peaks
a narrow path wound its way; on the right hand it was walled by a precipice,
and on the left a dreadful fall leapt into emptiness. Along that narrow way
their march was strung, when they were ambushed by Orcs, for Morgoth had set
watchers all about the encircling hills; and a Balrog was with them. Then
dreadful was their plight, and hardly would they have been saved by the valour
of yellow-haired Glorfindel, chief of the House of the Golden Flower of
Gondolin, had not Thorondor come timely to their aid. Many are the songs that have been sung of
the duel of Glorfindel with the Balrog upon a pinnacle of rock in that high
place; and both fell to ruin in the abyss. But the eagles coming stooped upon
the Orcs, and drove them shrieking back; and all were slain or cast into the
deeps, so that rumour of the escape from Gondolin came not until long after to
Morgoth's ears. Then Thorondor bore up Glorfindel's body out of the abyss, and
they buried him in a mound of stones beside the pass; and a green turf came
there, and yellow flowers bloomed upon it amid the barrenness of stone, until
the world was changed. Thus led by Tuor son of Huor the remnant of
Gondolin passed over the mountains, and came down into the Vale of Sirion; and
fleeing southward by weary and dangerous marches they came at length to
Nan-tathren, the Land of Willows, for the power of Ulmo yet ran in the great
river, and it was about them. There they rested a while, and were healed of
their hurts and weariness; but their sorrow could not be healed. And they made
a feast in memory of Gondolin and of the Elves that had perished there, the
maidens, and the wives, and the warriors of the King; and for Glorfindel the
beloved many were the songs they sang, under the willows of Nan-tathren in the
waning of the year. There Tuor made a song for Eдrendil his son, concerning the
coming of Ulmo the Lord of Waters to the shores of Nevrast aforetime; and the
sea-longing woke in his heart, and in his son's also. Therefore Idril and Tuor
departed from Nan-tathren, and went southwards down the river to the sea; and
they dwelt there by the mouths of Sirion, and joined their people to the
company of Elwing Dior's daughter, that had fled thither but a little while
before. And when the tidings came to Balar of the fall of Gondolin and the
death of Turgon, Ereinion Gil-galad son of Fingon was named High King of the
Noldor in Middle-earth. But Morgoth thought that his triumph was
fulfilled, recking little of the sons of Fлanor, and of their oath, which had
harmed him never and turned always to his mightiest aid; and in his black
thought he laughed, regretting not the one Silmaril that he had lost, for by it
as he deemed the last shred of the people of the Eldar should vanish from
Middle-earth and trouble it no more. If he knew of the dwelling by the waters
of Sirion, he gave no sign, biding his time, and waiting upon the working of
oath and lie. Yet by Sirion and the sea there grew up an Elven-folk, the
gleanings of Doriath and Gondolin; and from Balar the mariners of Cнrdan came
among them, and they took to the waves and the building of ships, dwelling ever
nigh to the coasts of Arvernien, under the shadow of Ulmo's hand. And it is said that in that time Ulmo came
to Valinor out of the deep waters, and spoke there to the Valar of the need of
the Elves; and he called on them to forgive them, and rescue them from the
overmastering might of Morgoth, and win back the Silmarils, wherein alone now
bloomed the light of the Days of Bliss when the Two Trees still shone in
Valinor. But Manwл moved not; and of the counsels of his heart what tale shall
tell? The wise have said that the hour was not yet
come, and that only one speaking in person for the cause of both Elves and Men,
pleading for pardon on their misdeeds and pity on their woes, might move the
counsels of the Powers; and the oath of Fлanor perhaps even Manwл could not
loose, until it found its end, and the sons of Fлanor relinquished the
.Silmarils, upon which they had laid their ruthless claim. For the light which
lit the Silmarils the Valar themselves had made. In those days Tuor felt old age creep upon
him, and ever a longing for the deeps of the Sea grew stronger in his heart.
Therefore he built a great ship, and he named it Eдrrбmл, which is Sea-Wing;
and with Idril Celebrindal he set sail into the sunset and the West, and came
no more into any tale or song. But in after days it was sung that Tuor alone of
mortal Men was numbered among the elder race, and was joined with the Noldor,
whom he loved; and his fate is sundered from the fate of Men. Chapter 24 Of the Voyage of Eдrendil and the War of Wrath Bright Eдrendil was
then lord of the people that dwelt nigh to Sirion's mouths; and he took to wife
Elwing the fair, and she bore to him Elrond and Elros, who are called the
Half-elven. Yet Eдrendil could not rest, and his voyages about the shores of
the Hither Lands eased not his unquiet. Two purposes grew in his heart, blended
as one in longing for the wide Sea: he sought to sail thereon, seeking after
Tuor and Idril who returned not; and he thought to find perhaps the last shore,
and bring ere he died the message of Elves and Men to the Valar in the West,
that should move their hearts to pity for the sorrows of Middle-earth. Now Eдrendil became fast in friendship with
Cнrdan the Shipwright, who dwelt on the Isle of Balar with those of his people
who escaped from the sack of the Havens of Brithombar and Eglarest. With the
aid of Cнrdan Eдrendil built Vingilot, the Foam-flower, fairest of the ships of
song; golden were its oars and white its timbers, hewn in the birchwoods of
Nimbrethil, and its sails were as the argent moon. In the Lay of Eдrendil is
many a thing sung of his adventures in the deep and in lands untrodden, and in
many seas and in many isles; but Elwing was not with him, and she sat in sorrow
by the mouths of Sirion. Eдrendil found not Tuor nor Idril, nor came
he ever on that journey to the shores of Valinor, defeated by shadows and
enchantment, driven by repelling winds, until in longing for Elwing he turned
homeward towards the coast of Beleriand. And his heart bade him haste, for a
sudden fear had fallen on him out of dreams; and the winds that before he had
striven with might not now bear him back as swift as his desire. Now when first the tidings came to Maedhros
that Elwing yet lived, and dwelt in possession of the Silmaril by the mouths of
Sirion, he repenting of the deeds in Doriath withheld his hand. But in time the
knowledge of their oath unfulfilled returned to torment him and his brothers,
and gathering from their wandering hunting-paths they sent messages to the
Havens of friendship and yet of stern demand. Then Elwing and the people of
Sirion would not yield the jewel which Beren had won and Lъthien had worn, and
for which Dior the fair was slain; and least of all while Eдrendil their lord
was on the sea, for it seemed to them that in the Silmaril lay the healing and
the blessing that had come upon their houses and their ships. And so there came
to pass the last and cruellest of the slayings of Elf by Elf; and that was the
third of the great wrongs achieved by the accursed oath. For the sons of Fлanor that yet lived came
down suddenly upon the exiles of Gondolin and the remnant of Doriath, and
destroyed them. In that battle some of their people stood aside, and some few
rebelled and were slain upon the other part aiding Elwing against their own
lords (for such was the sorrow and confusion in the hearts of the Eldar in
those days); but Maedhros and Maglor won the day, though they alone remained
thereafter of the sons of Fлanor, for both Amrod and Amras were slain. Too late
the ships of Cнrdan and Gil-galad the High King came hasting to the aid of the
Elves of Sirion; and Elwing was gone, and her sons. Then such few of that
people as did not perish in the assault joined themselves to Gil-galad, and
went with him to Balar; and they told that Elros and Elrond were taken captive,
but Elwing with the Silmaril upon her breast had cast herself into the sea. Thus Maedhros and Maglor gained not the
jewel; but it was not lost. For Ulmo bore up Elwing out of the waves, and he
gave her the likeness of a great white bird, and upon her breast there shone as
a star the Silmaril, as she flew over the water to seek Eдrendil her beloved.
On a time of night Eдrendil at the helm of his ship saw her come towards him,
as a white cloud exceeding swift beneath the moon, as a star over the sea
moving in strange course, a pale flame on wings of storm. And it is sung that
she fell from the air upon the timbers of Vingilot, in a swoon, nigh unto death
for the urgency of her speed, and Eдrendil took her to his bosom; but in the
morning with marvelling eyes he beheld his wife in her own form beside him with
her hair upon his face, and she slept. Great was the sorrow of Eдrendil and Elwing
for the ruin of the havens of Sirion, and the captivity of their sons, and they
feared that they would be slain; but it was not so. For Maglor took pity upon
Elros and Elrond, and he cherished them, and love grew after between them, as
little might be thought; but Maglor's heart was sick and weary with the burden
of the dreadful oath. Yet Eдrendil saw now no hope left in the
lands of Middle-earth, and he turned again in despair and came not home, but
sought back once more to Valinor with Elwing at his side. He stood now most
often at the prow of Vingilot, and the Silmaril was bound upon his brow; and
ever its light grew greater as they drew into the West. And the wise have said
that it was by reason of the power of that holy jewel that they came in time to
waters that no vessels save those of the Teleri had known; and they came to the
Enchanted Isles and escaped their enchantment; and they came into the Shadowy
Seas and passed their shadows, and they looked upon Tol Eressлa the Lonely
Isle, but tarried not; and at the last they cast anchor in the Bay of Eldamar,
and the Teleri saw the coming of that ship out of the East and they were
amazed, gazing from afar upon the light of the Silmaril, and it was very great.
Then Eдrendil, first of living Men, landed on the immortal shores; and he spoke
there to Elwing and to those that were with him, and they were three mariners
who had sailed all the seas besides him: Falathar, Erellont, and Aerandir were
their names. And Eдrendil said to them: 'Here none but myself shall set foot,
lest you fall under the wrath of the Valar. But that peril I will take on
myself alone, for the sake of the Two Kindreds.' But Elwing answered: 'Then would our paths
be sundered for ever; but all thy perils I will take on myself also.' And she
leaped into the white foam and ran towards him; but Eдrendil was sorrowful, for
he feared the anger of the Lords of the West upon any of Middle-earth that
should dare to pass the leaguer of Aman. And there they bade farewell to the
companions of their voyage, and were taken from them for ever. Then Eдrendil said to Elwing: 'Await me
here; for one only may bring the message that it is my fate to bear.' And he
went up alone into the land, and came into the Calacirya, and it seemed to him
empty and silent; for even as Morgoth and Ungoliant came in ages past, so now
Eдrendil had come at a time of festival, and wellnigh all the Elvenfolk were
gone to Valimar, or were gathered in the halls of Manwл upon Taniquetil, and
few were left to keep watch upon the walls of Tirion. But some there were who saw him from afar,
and the great light that he bore; and they went in haste to Valimar. But
Eдrendil climbed the green hill of Tъna and found it bare; and he entered into
the streets of Tirion, and they were empty; and his heart was heavy, for he
feared that some evil had come even to the Blessed Realm. He walked in the
deserted ways of Tirion, and the dust upon his raiment and his shoes was a dust
of diamonds, and he shone and glistened as he climbed the long white stairs.
And he called aloud in many tongues, both of Elves and Men, but there were none
to answer him. Therefore he turned back at last towards the sea; but even as he
took the shoreward road one stood upon the hill and called to him in a great
voice, crying: 'Hail Eдrendil, of mariners most renowned,
the looked for that cometh at unawares, the longed for that cometh beyond hope!
Hail Eдrendil, bearer of light before the Sun and Moon! Splendour of the
Children of Earth, star in the darkness, jewel in the sunset, radiant in the
morning!' That voice was the voice of Eцnwл, herald of
Manwл, and he came from Valimar, and summoned Eдrendil to come before the
Powers of Arda. And Eдrendil went into Valinor and to the halls of Valimar, and
never again set foot upon the lands of Men. Then the Valar took counsel together,
and they summoned Ulmo from the deeps of the sea; and Eдrendil stood before
their faces, and delivered the errand of the Two Kindreds. Pardon he asked for
the Noldor and pity for their great sorrows, and mercy upon Men and Elves and
succour in their need. And his prayer was granted. It is told among the Elves that after
Eдrendil had departed, seeking Elwing his wife, Mandos spoke concerning his
fate; and he said: 'Shall mortal Man step living upon the undying lands, and
yet live?' But Ulmo said: 'For this he was born into the world. And say unto
me: whether is he Eдrendil Tuor's son of the line of Hador, or the son of
Idril, Turgon's daughter, of the Elven-house of Finwл?' And Mandos answered:
'Equally the Noldor, who went wilfully into exile, may not return hither.' But when all was spoken, Manwл gave
judgement, and he said: 'In this matter the power of doom is given to me. The
peril that he ventured for love of the Two Kindreds shall not fall upon
Eдrendil, nor shall it fall upon Elwing his wife, who entered into peril for
love of him; but they shall not walk again ever among Elves or Men in the Outer
Lands. And this is my decree concerning them: to Eдrendil and to Elwing, and to
their sons, shall be given leave each to choose freely to which kindred their
fates shall be joined, and under which kindred they shall be judged.' Now when Eдrendil was long time gone Elwing
became lonely and afraid; and wandering by the margin of the sea she came near
to Alqualondл, where lay the Telerin fleets. There the Teleri befriended her,
and they listened to her tales of Doriath and Gondolin and the griefs of
Beleriand, and they were filled with pity and wonder; and there Eдrendil
returning found her, at the Haven of the Swans. But ere long they were summoned
to Valimar; and there the decree of the Elder King was declared to them. Then Eдrendil said to Elwing: 'Choose thou,
for now I am weary of the world.' And Elwing chose to be judged among the
Firstborn Children of Ilъvatar, because of Lъthien; and for her sake Eдrendil chose
alike, though his heart was rather with the kindred of Men and the people of
his father. Then at the bidding of the Valar Eцnwл went to the shore of Aman,
where the companions of Eдrendil still remained, awaiting tidings; and he took
a boat, and the three mariners were set therein, and the Valar drove them away
into the East with a great wind. But they took Vingilot, and hallowed it, and
bore it away through Valinor to the uttermost rim of the world; and there it
passed through the Door of Night and was lifted up even into the oceans of
heaven. Now fair and marvellous was that vessel
made, and it was filled with a wavering flame, pure and bright; and Eдrendil
the Mariner sat at the helm, glistening with dust of elven-gems, and the
Silmaril was bound upon his brow. Far he journeyed in that ship, even into the
starless voids; but most often was he seen at morning or at evening, glimmering
in sunrise or sunset, as he came back to Valinor from voyages beyond the
confines of the world. On those journeys Elwing did not go, for she
might not endure the cold and the pathless voids, and she loved rather the
earth and the sweet winds that blow on sea and hill. Therefore there was built
for her a white tower northward upon the borders of the Sundering Seas; and thither
at times all the sea-birds of the earth repaired. And it is said that Elwing
learned the tongues of birds, who herself had once worn their shape; and they
taught her the craft of flight, and her wings were of white and silver-grey.
And at times, when Eдrendil returning drew near again to Arda, she would fly to
meet him, even as she had flown long ago, when she was rescued from the sea.
Then the far-sighted among the Elves that dwelt in the Lonely Isle would see
her like a white bird, shining, rose-stained in the sunset, as she soared in
joy to greet the coming of Vingilot to haven. Now when first Vingilot was set to sail in
the seas of heaven, it rose unlocked for, glittering and bright; and the people
of Middle-earth beheld it from afar and wondered, and they took it for a sign,
and called it Gil-Estel, the Star of High Hope. And when this new star was seen
at evening, Maedhros spoke to Maglor his brother, and he said: 'Surely that is
a Silmaril that shines now in the West?' And Maglor answered: 'If it be truly the
Silmaril which we saw cast into the sea that rises again by the power of the
Valar, then let us be glad; for its glory is seen now by many, and is yet
secure from all evil.' Then the Elves looked up, and despaired no longer; but
Morgoth was filled with doubt. Yet it is said that Morgoth looked not for
the assault that came upon him from the West; for so great was his pride become
that he deemed that none would ever again come with open war against him.
Moreover he thought that he had for ever estranged the Noldor from the Lords of
the West, and that content in their blissful realm the Valar would heed no more
his kingdom in the world without; for to him that is pitiless the deeds of pity
are ever strange and beyond reckoning. But the host of the Valar prepared for
battle; and beneath their white banners marched the Vanyar, the people of
Ingwл, and those also of the Noldor who never departed from Valinor, whose
leader was Finarfin the son of Finwл. Few of the Teleri were willing to go
forth to war, for they remembered the slaying at the Swan-haven, and the rape
of their ships; but they hearkened to Elwing, who was the daughter of Dior
Eluchнl and come of their own kindred, and they sent mariners enough to sail
the ships that bore the host of Valinor east over the sea. Yet they stayed
aboard their vessels, and none of them set foot upon the Hither Lands. Of the march of the host of the Valar to the
north of Middle-earth little is said in any tale; for among them went none of
those Elves who had dwelt and suffered in the Hither Lands, and who made the
histories of those days that still are known; and tidings of these things they
only learned long afterwards from their kinsfolk in Aman. But at the last the
might of Valinor came up out of the West, and the challenge of the trumpets of
Eцnwл filled the sky; and Beleriand was ablaze with the glory of their arms,
for the host of the Valar were arrayed in forms young and fair and terrible,
and the mountains rang beneath their feet. The meeting of the hosts of the West and of
the North is named the Great Battle, and the War of Wrath. There was marshalled
the whole power of the Throne of Morgoth, and it had become great beyond count,
so that Anfauglith could not contain it; and all the North was aflame with war. But it availed him not. The Balrogs were
destroyed, save some few that fled and hid themselves in caverns inaccessible
at the roots of the earth; and the uncounted legions of the Ores perished like
straw in a great fire, or were swept like shrivelled leaves before a burning
wind. Few remained to trouble the world for long years after. And such few as
were left of the three houses of the Elf-friends, Fathers of Men, fought upon
the part of the Valar; and they were avenged in those days for Baragund and Barahir,
Galdor and Gundor, Huor and Hъrin, and many others of their lords. But a great
part of the sons of Men, whether of the people of Uldor or others new-come out
of the east, marched with the Enemy; and the Elves do not forget it. Then, seeing that his hosts were overthrown
and his power dispersed, Morgoth quailed, and he dared not to come forth
himself. But he loosed upon his foes the last desperate assault that he had
prepared, and out of the pits of Angband there issued the winged dragons, that
had not before been seen; and so sudden and ruinous was the onset of that
dreadful fleet that the host of the Valar was driven back, for the coming of
the dragons was with great thunder, and lightning, and a tempest of fire. But Eдrendil came, shining with white flame,
and about Vingilot were gathered all the great birds of heaven and Thorondor
was their captain, and there was battle in the air all the day and through a
dark night of doubt. Before the rising of the sun Eдrendil slew Ancalagon the
Black, the mightiest of the dragon-host, and cast him from the sky; and he fell
upon the towers of Thangorodrim, and they were broken in his ruin. Then the sun
rose, and the host of the Valar prevailed, and well-nigh all the dragons were
destroyed; and all the pits of Morgoth were broken and unroofed, and the might
of the Valar descended into the deeps of the earth. There Morgoth stood at last
at bay, and yet unvaliant. He fled into the deepest of his mines, and sued for
peace and pardon; but his feet were hewn from under him, and he was hurled upon
his face. Then he was bound with the chain Angainor which he had worn
aforetime, and his iron crown they beat into a collar for his neck, and his
head was bowed upon his knees. And the two Silmarils which remained to Morgoth
were taken from his crown, and they shone unsullied beneath the sky; and Eцnwл
took them, and guarded them. Thus an end was made of the power of Angband
in the North, and' the evil realm was brought to naught; and out of the deep
prisons a multitude of slaves came forth beyond all hope into the light of day,
and they looked upon a world that was changed. For so great was the fury of
those adversaries that the northern regions of the western world were rent
asunder, and the sea roared in through many chasms, and there was confusion and
great noise; and rivers perished or found new paths, and the valleys were
upheaved and the hills trod down; and Sirion was no more. Then Eцnwл as herald of the Elder King
summoned the Elves of Beleriand to depart from Middle-earth. But Maedhros and
Maglor would not hearken, and they prepared, though now with weariness and
loathing, to attempt in despair the fulfilment of their oath; for they would
have given battle for the Silmarils, were they withheld, even against the
victorious host of Valinor, even though they stood alone against all the world.
And they sent a message therefore to Eцnwл, bidding him yield up now those
jewels which of old Fлanor their father made and Morgoth stole from him. But Eцnwл answered that the right to the
work of their father, which the sons of Fлanor formerly possessed, had now
perished, because of their many and merciless deeds, being blinded by their
oath, and most of all because of their slaying of Dior and the assault upon the
Havens. The light of the Silmarils should go now into the West, whence it came
in the beginning; and to Valinor must Maedhros and Maglor return, and there
abide the judgement of the Valar, by whose decree alone would Eцnwл yield the
jewels from his charge. Then Maglor desired indeed to submit, for his heart was
sorrowful, and he said: The oath says not that we may not bide our time, and it
may be that in Valinor all shall be forgiven and forgot, and we shall come into
our own in peace. But Maedhros answered that if they returned
to Aman but the favour of the Valar were withheld from them, then their oath
would still remain, but its fulfilment be beyond all hope; and he said: 'Who
can tell to what dreadful doom we shall come, if we disobey the Powers in their
own land, or purpose ever to bring war again into their holy realm?' Yet Maglor still held back, saying: 'If
Manwл and Varda themselves deny the fulfilment of an oath to which we named
them in witness, is it not made void?' And Maedhros answered: 'But how shall our
voices reach to Ilъvatar beyond the Circles of the World? And by Ilъvatar we
swore in our madness, and called the Everlasting Darkness upon us, if we kept
not our word. Who shall release us?' 'If none can release us,' said Maglor, 'then
indeed the Everlasting Darkness shall be our lot, whether we keep our oath or
break it; but less evil shall we do in the breaking.' Yet he yielded at last to the will of
Maedhros, and they took counsel together how they should lay hands on the
Silmarils. And they disguised themselves, and came in the night to the camp of
Eцnwл, and crept into the place where the Silmarils were guarded; and they slew
the guards, and laid hands on the jewels. Then all the camp was raised against
them, and they prepared to die, defending themselves until the last. But Eцnwл
would not permit the slaying of the sons of Fлanor; and departing unfought they
fled far away. Each of them took to himself a Silmaril, for they said: 'Since
one is lost to us, and but two remain, and we two alone of our brothers, so is it
plain that fate would have us share the heirlooms of our father.' But the jewel burned the hand of Maedhros in
pain unbearable; and he perceived that it was as Eцnwл had said, and that his
right thereto had become void, and that the oath was vain. And being in anguish
and despair he cast himself into a gaping chasm filled with fire, and so ended;
and the Silmaril that he bore was taken into the bosom of the Earth, And it is told of Maglor that he could not
endure the pain with which the Silmaril tormented him; and he cast it at last
into the Sea, and thereafter he wandered ever upon the shores, singing in pain
and regret beside the waves. For Maglor was mighty among the singers of old,
named only after Daeron of Doriath; but he came never back among the people of
the Elves. And thus it came to pass that the Silmarils found their long homes:
one in the airs of heaven, and one in the fires of the heart of the world, and
one in the deep waters. In those days there was a great building of
ships upon the shores of the Western Sea; and thence in many a fleet the Eldar
set sail into the West, and came never back to the lands of weeping and of war.
And the Vanyar returned beneath their white banners, and were borne in triumph
to Valinor; but their joy in victory was diminished, for they returned without
the Silmarils from Morgoth's crown, and they knew that those jewels could not
be found or brought together again unless the world be broken and remade. And when they came into the West the Elves
of Beleriand dwelt upon Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle, that looks both west and
east; whence they might come even to Valinor. They were admitted again to the
love of Manwл and the pardon of the Valar; and the Teleri forgave their ancient
grief, and the curse was laid to rest. Yet not all the Eldaliл were willing to
forsake the Hither Lands where they had long suffered and long dwelt; and some
lingered many an age in Middle-earth. Among those were Cнrdan the Shipwright,
and Celeborn of Doriath, with Galadriel his wife, who alone remained of those
who led the Noldor to exile in Beleriand. In Middle-earth dwelt also Gil-galad
the High King, and with him was Elrond Half-elven, who chose, as was granted to
him, to be numbered among the Eldar; but Elros his brother chose to abide with
Men. And from these brethren alone has come among Men the blood of the
Firstborn and a strain of the spirits divine that were before Arda; for they
were the sons of Elwing, Dior's daughter, Lъthien's son, child of Thingol and
Melian; and Eдrendil their father was the son of Idril Celebrindal, Turgon's
daughter of Gondolin. But Morgoth himself the Valar thrust through
the Door of Night beyond the Walls of the World, into the Timeless Void; and a
guard is set for ever on those walls, and Eдrendil keeps watch upon the
ramparts of the sky. Yet the lies that Melkor, the mighty and accursed, Morgoth
Bauglir, the Power of Terror and of Hate, sowed in the hearts of Elves and Men
are a seed that does not die and cannot be destroyed; and ever and anon it
sprouts anew, and will bear dark fruit even unto the latest days. Here
ends the SILMARILLION. If it has passed from the high and the beautiful to
darkness and ruin, that was of old the fate of Arda Marred; and if any change
shall come and the Marring be amended, Manwл and Varda may know; but they have
not revealed it, and it is not declared in the dooms of Mandos. AKALLABКTH The Downfall of
Nъmenor It is said by the
Eldar that Men came into the world in the time of the Shadow of Morgoth, and
they fell swiftly under his dominion; for he sent his emissaries among them,
and they listened to his evil and cunning words, and they worshipped the
Darkness and yet feared it. But there were some that turned from evil and left
the lands of their kindred, and wandered ever westward; for they had heard a
rumour that in the West there was a light which the Shadow could not dim. The
servants of Morgoth pursued them with hatred, and their ways were long and
hard; yet they came at last to the lands that look upon the Sea, and they entered
Beleriand in the days of the War of the Jewels. The Edain these were named in
the Sindarin tongue; and they became friends and allies of the Eldar, and did
deeds of great valour in the war against Morgoth. Of them was sprung, upon the side of his
fathers, Bright Eдrendil; and in the Lay
of Eдrendil it is told how at the last, when the victory of Morgoth was
almost complete, he built his ship Vingilot, that Men called Rothinzil, and
voyaged upon the unsailed seas, seeking ever for Valinor; for he desired to
speak before the Powers on behalf of the Two Kindreds, that the Valar might
have pity on them and send them help in their uttermost need. Therefore by
Elves and Men he is called Eдrendil the Blessed, for he achieved his quest
after long labours and many perils, and from Valinor there came the host of the
Lords of the West. But Eдrendil came never back to the lands that he had loved. In the Great Battle when at last Morgoth was
overthrown and Thangorodrim was broken, the Edain alone of the kindreds of Men
fought for the Valar, whereas many others fought for Morgoth. And after the
victory of the Lords of the West those of the evil Men who were not destroyed
fled back into the east, where many of their race were still wandering in the
unharvested lands, wild and lawless, refusing alike the summons of the Valar
and of Morgoth. And the evil Men came among them, and cast over them a shadow
of fear, and they took them for kings. Then the Valar forsook for a time the
Men of Middle-earth who had refused their summons and had taken the friends of
Morgoth to be their masters; and Men dwelt in darkness and were troubled by
many evil things that Morgoth had devised in the days of his dominion: demons,
and dragons, and misshapen beasts, and the unclean Orcs that are mockeries of
the Children of Ilъvatar. And the lot of Men was unhappy. But Manwл put forth Morgoth and shut him
beyond the World in the Void that is without; and he cannot himself return
again into the World, present and visible, while the Lords of the West are
still enthroned. Yet the seeds that he had planted still grew and sprouted,
bearing evil fruit, if any would tend them. For his will remained and guided
his servants, moving them ever to thwart the will of the Valar and to destroy
those that obeyed them. This the Lords of the West knew full well. When
therefore Morgoth had been thrust forth, they held council concerning the ages
that should come after. The Eldar they summoned to return into the West, and
those that hearkened to the summons dwelt in the Isle of Eressлa; and there is
in that land a haven that is named Avallуnл, for it is of all cities the
nearest to Valinor, and the tower of Avallуnл is the first sight that the
mariner beholds when at last he draws nigh to the Undying Lands over the leagues
of the Sea. To the Fathers of Men of the three faithful houses rich reward also
was given. Eцnwл came among them and taught them; and they were given wisdom
and power and life more enduring than any others of mortal race have possessed.
A land was made for the Edain to dwell in, neither part of Middle-earth nor of
Valinor, for it was sundered from either by a wide sea; yet it was nearer to
Valinor. It was raised by Ossл out of the depths of the Great Water, and it was
established by Aulл and enriched by Yavanna; and the Eldar brought thither
flowers and fountains out of Tol Eressлa. That land the Valar called Andor, the
Land of Gift; and the Star of Eдrendil shone bright in the West as a token that
all was made ready, and as a guide over the sea; and Men marvelled to see that
silver flame in the paths of the Sun. Then the Edain set sail upon the deep
waters, following the Star; and the Valar laid a peace upon the sea for many
days, and sent sunlight and a sailing wind, so that the waters glittered before
the eyes of the Edain like rippling glass, and the foam flew like snow before
the stems of their ships. But so bright was Rothinzil that even at morning Men
could see it glimmering in the West, and in the cloudless night it shone alone,
for no other star could stand beside it. And setting their course towards it
the Edain came at last over leagues of sea and saw afar the land that was
prepared for them, Andor, the Land of Gift, shimmering in a golden haze. Then
they went up out of the sea and found a country fair and fruitful, and they
were glad. And they called that land Elenna, which is Starwards; but also
Anadыnл, which is Westernesse, Nъmenуrл in the High Eldarin tongue. This was the beginning of that people that
in the Grey-elven speech are called the Dъnedain: the Nъmenуreans, Kings among
Men. But they did not thus escape from the doom of death that Ilъvatar had set
upon all Mankind, and they were mortal still, though their years were long, and
they knew no sickness, ere the shadow fell upon them. Therefore they grew wise
and glorious, and in all things more like to the Firstborn than any other of
the kindreds of Men; and they were tall, taller than the tallest of the sons of
Middle-earth; and the light of their eyes was like the bright stars. But their
numbers increased only slowly in the land, for though daughters and sons were
born to them, fairer than their fathers, yet their children were few. Of old the chief city and haven of Nъmenor
was in the midst of its western coasts, and it was called Andъniл because it
faced the sunset. But in the midst of the land was a mountain tall and steep,
and it was named the Meneltarma, the Pillar of Heaven, and upon it was a high
place that was hallowed to Eru Ilъvatar, and it was open and unroofed, and no
other temple or fane was there in the land of the Nъmenуreans. At the feet of
the mountain were built the tombs of the Kings, and hard by upon a hill was
Armenelos, fairest of cities, and there stood the tower and the citadel that
was raised by Elros son of Eдrendil, whom the Valar appointed to be the first
King of the Dъnedain. Now Elros and Elrond his brother were
descended from the Three Houses of the Edain, but in part also both from the
Eldar and the Maiar; for Idril of Gondolin and Lъthien daughter of Melian were
their fore-mothers. The Valar indeed may not withdraw the gift of death, which
comes to Men from Ilъvatar, but in the matter of the Half-elven Ilъvatar gave
to them the judgement; and they judged that to the sons of Eдrendil should be
given choice of their own destiny. And Elrond chose to remain with the
Firstborn, and to him the life of the Firstborn was granted. But to Elros, who
chose to be a king of Men, still a great span of years was allotted, many times
that of the Men of Middle-earth; and all his line, the kings and lords of the
royal house, had long life even according to the measure of the Nъmenуreans.
But Elros lived five hundred years, and ruled the Nъmenуreans four hundred
years and ten. Thus the years passed, and while
Middle-earth went backward and light and wisdom faded, the Dъnedain dwelt under
the protection of the Valar and in the friendship of the Eldar, and they
increased in stature both of mind and body. For though this people used still
their own speech, their kings and lords knew and spoke also the Elven tongue,
which they had learned in the days of their alliance, and thus they held
converse still with the Eldar, whether of Eressлa or of the west-lands of
Middle-earth. And the loremasters among them learned also the High Eldarin tongue
of the Blessed Realm, in which much story and song was preserved from the
beginning of the world; and they made letters and scrolls and books, and wrote
in them many things of wisdom and wonder in the high tide of their realm, of
which all is now forgot. So it came to pass that, beside their own names, all
the lords of the Nъmenуreans had also Eldarin names; and the like with the
cities and fair places that they founded in Nъmenor and on the shores of the
Hither Lands. For the Dъnedain became mighty in crafts, so
that if they had had the mind they could easily have surpassed the evil kings
of Middle-earth in the making of war and the forging of weapons; but they were
become men of peace. Above all arts they nourished shipbuilding and sea-craft,
and they became mariners whose like shall never be again since the world was
diminished; and voyaging upon the wide seas was the chief feat and adventure of
their hardy men in the gallant days of their youth. But the Lords of Valinor forbade them to
sail so far westward that the coasts of Nъmenor could no longer be seen; and
for long the Dъnedain were content, though they did not fully understand the
purpose of this ban. But the design of Manwл was that the Nъmenуreans should
not be tempted to seek for the Blessed Realm, nor desire to overpass the limits
set to their bliss, becoming enamoured of the immortality of the Valar and the
Eldar and the lands where all things endure. For in those days Valinor still remained in
the world visible, and there Ilъvatar permitted the Valar to maintain upon
Earth an abiding place, a memorial of that which might have been if Morgoth had
not cast his shadow on the world. This the Nъmenуreans knew full well; and at
times, when all the air was clear and the sun was in the east, they would look
out and descry far off in the west a city white-shining on a distant shore, and
a great harbour and a tower. For in those days the Nъmenуreans were
far-sighted; yet even so it was only the keenest eyes among them that could see
this vision, from the Meneltarma, maybe, or from some tall ship that lay off
their western coast as far as it was lawful for them to go. For they did not
dare to break the Ban of the Lords of the West. But the wise among them knew
that this distant land was not indeed the Blessed Realm of Valinor, but was
Avallуnл, the haven of the Eldar upon Eressлa, easternmost of the Undying
Lands. And thence at times the Firstborn still would come sailing to Nъmenor in
oarless boats, as white birds flying from the sunset. And they brought to Nъmenor
many gifts: birds of song, and fragrant flowers, and herbs of great virtue. And
a seedling they brought of Celeborn, the White Tree that grew in the midst of
Eressлa; and that was in its turn a seedling of Galathilion the Tree of Tъna,
the image of Telperion that Yavanna gave to the Eldar in the Blessed Realm. And
the tree grew and blossomed in the courts of the King in Armenelos; Nimloth it
was named, and flowered in the evening, and the shadows of night it filled with
its fragrance. Thus it was that because of the Ban of the
Valar the voyages of the Dъnedain in those days went ever eastward and not
westward, from the darkness of the North to the heats of the South, and beyond
the South to the Nether Darkness; and they came even into the inner seas, and
sailed about Middle-earth and glimpsed from their high prows the Gates of
Morning in the East. And the Dъnedain came at times to the shores of the Great
Lands, and they took pity on the forsaken world of Middle-earth; and the Lords
of Nъmenor set foot again upon the western shores in the Dark Years of Men, and
none yet dared to withstand them. For most of the Men of that age that sat
under the Shadow were now grown weak and fearful. And coming among them the
Nъmenуreans taught them many things. Corn and wine they brought, and they
instructed Men in the sowing of seed and the grinding of grain, in the hewing
of wood and the shaping of stone, and in the ordering of their life, such as it
might be in the lands of swift death and little bliss. Then the Men of Middle-earth were comforted,
and here and there upon the western shores the houseless woods drew back, and
Men shook off the yoke of the offspring of Morgoth, and unlearned their terror
of the dark. And they revered the memory of the tall Sea-kings, and when they
had departed they called them gods, hoping for their return; for at that time
the Nъmenуreans dwelt never long in Middle-earth, nor made there as yet any
habitation of their own. Eastward they must sail, but ever west their hearts
returned. Now this yearning grew ever greater with the
years; and the Nъmenуreans began to hunger for the undying city that they saw
from afar, and the desire of everlasting life, to escape from death and the
ending of delight, grew strong upon them; and ever as their power and glory
grew greater their unquiet increased. For though the Valar had rewarded the
Dъnedain with long life, they could not take from them the weariness of the
world that comes at last, and they died, even their kings of the seed of
Eдrendil; and the span of their lives was brief in the eyes of the Eldar. Thus
it was that a shadow fell upon them: in which maybe the will of Morgoth was at
work that still moved in the world. And the Nъmenуreans began to murmur, at
first in their hearts, and then in open words, against the doom of Men, and
most of all against the Ban which forbade them to sail into the West. And they said among themselves: 'Why do the
Lords of the West sit there in peace unending, while we must die and go we know
not whither, leaving our home and all that we have made? And the Eldar die not,
even those that rebelled against the Lords. And since we have mastered all
seas, and no water is so wild or so wide that our ships cannot overcome it, why
should we not go to Avallуnл and greet there our friends?' And some there were who said: 'Why should we
not go even to Aman, and taste there, were it but for a day, the bliss of the
Powers? Have we not become mighty among the people of Arda?' The Eldar reported these words to the Valar,
and Manwл was grieved, seeing a cloud gather on the noontide of Nъmenor. And he
sent messengers to the Dъnedain, who spoke earnestly to the King, and to all
who would listen, concerning the fate and fashion of the world. 'The Doom of the World,' they said, 'One
alone can change who made it. And were you so to voyage that escaping all
deceits and snares you came indeed to Aman, the Blessed Realm, little would it
profit you. For it is not the land of Manwл that makes its people deathless,
but the Deathless that dwell therein have hallowed the land; and there you
would but wither and grow weary the sooner, as moths in a light too strong and
steadfast.' But the King said: 'And does not Eдrendil,
my forefather, live? Or is he not in the land of Aman?' To which they answered: 'You know that he
has a fate apart, and was adjudged to the Firstborn who die not; yet this also
is his doom that he can never return again to mortal lands. Whereas you and
your people are not of the Firstborn, but are mortal Men as Ilъvatar made you.
Yet it seems that you desire now to have the good of both kindreds, to sail to
Valinor when you will, and to return when you please to your homes. That cannot
be. Nor can the Valar take away the gifts of Ilъvatar. The Eldar, you say, are
unpunished, and even those who rebelled do not die. Yet that is to them neither
reward nor punishment, but the fulfilment of their being. They cannot escape,
and are bound to this world, never to leave it so long as it lasts, for its
life is theirs. And you are punished for the rebellion of Men, you say, in
which you had small part, and so it is that you die. But that was not at first
appointed for a punishment. Thus you escape, and leave the world, and are not
bound to it, in hope or in weariness. Which of us therefore should envy the
others?" And the Nъmenуreans answered: 'Why should we
not envy the Valar, or even the least of the Deathless? For of us is required a
blind trust, and a hope without assurance, knowing not what lies before us in a
little while. And yet we also love the Earth and would not lose it.' Then the Messengers said: 'Indeed the mind
of Ilъvatar concerning you is not known to the Valar, and he has not revealed
all things that are to come. But this we hold to be true, that your home is not
here, neither in the Land of Aman nor anywhere within the Circles of the World.
And the Doom of Men, that they should depart, was at first a gift of Ilъvatar.
It became a grief to them only because coming under the shadow of Morgoth it
seemed to them that they were surrounded by a great darkness, of which they
were afraid; and some grew wilful and proud and would not yield, until life was
reft from them. We who bear the ever-mounting burden of the years do not
clearly understand this; but if that grief has returned to trouble you, as you
say, then we fear that the Shadow arises once more and grows again in your
hearts. Therefore, though you be the Dъnedain, fairest of Men, who escaped from
the Shadow of old and fought valiantly against it, we say to you: Beware! The
will of Eru may not be gainsaid; and the Valar bid you earnestly not to
withhold the trust to which you are called, lest soon it become again a bond by
which you are constrained. Hope rather that in the end even the least of your
desires shall have fruit. The love of Arda was set in your hearts by Ilъvatar,
and he does not plant to no purpose. Nonetheless, many ages of Men unborn may
pass ere that purpose is made known; and to you it will be revealed and not to
the Valar.' These things took place in the days of
Tar-Ciryatan the Shipbuilder, and of Tar-Atanamir his son; and they were proud
men, eager for wealth, and they laid the men of Middle-earth under tribute,
taking now rather than giving. It was to Tar-Atanamir that the Messengers came;
and he was the thirteenth King, and in his day the Realm of Nъmenor had endured
for more than two thousand years, and was come to the zenith of its bliss, if
not yet of its power. But Atanamir was ill pleased with the counsel of the
Messengers and gave little heed to it, and the greater part of his people
followed him; for they wished still to escape death in their own day, not
waiting upon hope. And Atanamir lived to a great age, clinging to his life
beyond the end of all joy; and he was the first of the Nъmenуreans to do this,
refusing to depart until he was witless and unmanned, and denying to his son
the kingship at the height of his days. For the Lords of Nъmenor had been wont
to wed late in their long lives and to depart and leave the mastery to their
sons when these were come to full stature of body and mind. Then Tar-Ancalimon, son of Atanamir, became
King, and he was of like mind; and in his day the people of Nъmenor became
divided. On the one hand was the greater party, and they were called the King's
Men, and they grew proud and were estranged from the Eldar and the Valar. And
on the other hand was the lesser party, and they were called the Elendili, the
Elf-friends; for though they remained loyal indeed to the King and the House of
Elros, they wished to keep the friendship of the Eldar, and they hearkened to
the counsel of the Lords of the West. Nonetheless even they, who named
themselves the Faithful, did not wholly escape from the affliction of their
people, and they were troubled by the thought of death. Thus the bliss of Westernesse became
diminished; but still its might and splendour increased. For the kings and
their people had not yet abandoned wisdom, and if they loved the Valar no
longer at least they still feared them. They did not dare openly to break the
Ban or to sail beyond the limits that had been appointed. Eastwards still they
steered their tall ships. But the fear of death grew ever darker upon them, and
they delayed it by all means that they could; and they began to build great
houses for their dead, while their wise men laboured unceasingly to discover if
they might the secret of recalling life, or at the least of the prolonging of
Men's days. Yet they achieved only the art of preserving incorrupt the dead
flesh of Men, and they filled all the land with silent tombs in which the
thought of death was enshrined in the darkness. But those that lived turned the
more eagerly to pleasure and revelry, desiring ever more goods and more riches;
and after the days of Tar-Ancalimon the offering of the first fruits to Eru was
neglected, and men went seldom any more to the Hallow upon the heights of
Meneltarma in the midst of the land. Thus it came to pass in that time that the
Nъmenуreans first made great settlements upon the west shores of the ancient
lands; for their own land seemed to them shrunken, and they had no rest or
content therein, and they desired now wealth and dominion in Middle-earth,
since the West was denied. Great harbours and strong towers they made, and
there many of them took up their abode; but they appeared now rather as lords
and masters and gatherers of tribute than as helpers and teachers. And the
great ships of the Nъmenуreans were borne east on the winds and returned ever
laden, and the power and majesty of their kings were increased; and they drank
and they feasted and they clad themselves in silver and gold. In all this the Elf-friends had small part
They alone came now ever to the north and the land of Gil-galad, keeping their
friendship with the Elves and lending them aid against Sauron; and their haven
was Pelargir above the mouths of Anduin the Great. But the King's Men sailed
far away to the south; and the lordships and strongholds that they made have
left many rumours in the legends of Men. In this Age, as is elsewhere told, Sauron
arose again in Middle-earth, and grew, and turned back to the evil in which he
was nurtured by Morgoth, becoming mighty in his service. Already in the days of
Tar-Minastir, the eleventh King of Nъmenor, he had fortified the land of Mordor
and had built there the Tower of Barad-dыr, and thereafter he strove ever for
the dominion of Middle-earth, to become a king over all kings and as a god unto
Men. And Sauron hated the Nъmenуreans, because of the deeds of their fathers
and their ancient alliance with the Elves and allegiance to the Valar; nor did
he forget the aid that Tar-Minastir had rendered to Gil-galad of old, in that
time when the One Ring was forged and there was war between Sauron and the
Elves in Eriador. Now he learned that the kings of Nъmenor had increased hi
power and splendour, and he hated them the more; and he feared them, lest they
should invade his lands and wrest from him the dominion of the East. But for a
long time he did not dare to challenge the Lords of the Sea, and he withdrew
from the coasts. Yet Sauron was ever guileful, and it is said
that among those whom he ensnared with the Nine Rings three were great lords of
Nъmenуrean race. And when the Ъlairi arose that were the Ring-wraiths, his
servants, and the strength of his terror and mastery over Men had grown
exceedingly great, he began to assail the strong places of the Nъmenуreans upon
the shores of the sea. In those days the Shadow grew deeper upon
Nъmenor; and the lives of the Kings of the House of Elros waned because of
their rebellion, but they hardened their hearts the more against the Valar. And
the nineteenth king took the sceptre of his fathers, and he ascended the throne
in the name of Adunakhфr, Lord of the West, forsaking the Elven-tongues and
forbidding their use in his hearing. Yet hi the Scroll of Kings the name
Herunъmen was inscribed in the High-elven speech, because of ancient custom,
which the kings feared to break utterly, lest evil befall Now this title seemed
to the Faithful over-proud, being the title of the Valar; and their hearts were
sorely tried between their loyalty to the House of Elros and their reverence of
the appointed Powers. But worse was yet to come. For Ar-Gimilzфr the
twenty-second king was the greatest enemy of the Faithful. In his day the White
Tree was untended and began to decline; and he forbade utterly the use of the
Elven-tongues, and punished those that welcomed the ships of Eressлa, that
still came secretly to the west-shores of the land. Now the Elendili dwelt mostly in the western
regions of Nъmenor; but Ar-Gimilzфr commanded all that he could discover to be
of this party to remove from the west and dwell in the east of the land; and
there they were watched. And the chief dwelling of the Faithful in the later
days was thus nigh to the harbour of Romenna; thence many set sail to
Middle-earth, seeking the northern coasts where they might speak still with the
Eldar in the kingdom of Gil-galad. This was known to the kings, but they
hindered it not, so long as the Elendili departed from their land and did not
return; for they desired to end all friendship between then: people and the
Eldar of Eressлa, whom they named the Spies of the Valar, hoping to keep their
deeds and their counsels hidden from the Lords of the West. But all that they
did was known to Manwл, and the Valar were wroth with the Kings of Nъmenor, and
gave them counsel and protection no more; and the ships of Eressлa came never
again out of the sunset, and the havens of Andъniл were forlorn. Highest in honour after the house of the
kings were the Lords of Andъniл; for they were of the line of Elros, being
descended from Silmarien, daughter of Tar-Elendil the fourth king of Nъmenor.
And these lords were loyal to the kings, and revered them; and the Lord of
Andъniл was ever among the chief councillors of the Sceptre. Yet also from the
beginning they bore especial love to the Eldar and reverence for the Valar; and
as the Shadow grew they aided the Faithful as they could. But for long they did
not declare themselves openly, and sought rather to amend the hearts of the
lords of the Sceptre with wiser counsels. There was a lady Inzilbкth, renowned for her
beauty, and her mother was Lindуriл, sister of Eдrendur, the Lord of Andъniл in
the days of Ar-Sakalthфr father of Ar-Gimilzфr. Gimilzфr took her to wife,
though this was little to her liking, for she was in heart one of the Faithful,
being taught by her mother; but the kings and their sons were grown proud and
not to be gainsaid in their wishes. No love was there between Ar-Gimilzфr and
his queen, or between their sons. Inziladыn, the elder, was like his mother in
mind as in body; but Gimilkhвd, the younger, went with his father, unless he
were yet prouder and more wilful. To him Ar-Gimilzфr would have yielded the
sceptre rather than to the elder son, if the laws had allowed. But when Inziladыn acceded to the sceptre,
he took again a title in the Elven-tongue as of old, calling himself
Tar-Palantir, for he was far-sighted both in eye and in mind, and even those
that hated him feared his words as those of a true-seer. He gave peace for a
while to the Faithful; and he went once more at due seasons to the Hallow of
Eru upon the Meneltarma, which Ar-Gimilzфr had forsaken. The White Tree he
tended again with honour; and he prophesied, saying that when the Tree
perished, then also would the line of the Kings come to its end. But his
repentance was too late to appease the anger of the Valar with the insolence of
his fathers, of which the greater part of his people did not repent. And
Gimilkhвd was strong and ungentle, and he took the leadership of those that had
been called the King's Men and opposed the will of his brother as openly as he
dared, and yet more in secret. Thus the days of Tar-Palantir became darkened
with grief; and he would spend much of his time in the west, and there ascended
often the ancient tower of King Minastir upon the hill of Oromлt nigh to
Andъniл, whence he gazed westward in yearning, hoping to see, maybe, some sail
upon the sea. But no ship came ever again from the West to Nъmenor, and Avallуnл
was veiled in cloud. Now Gimilkhвd died two years before his two
hundredth year (which was accounted an early death for one of Elros' line even
in its waning), but this brought no peace to the King. For Pharazфn son of
Gimilkhвd had become a man yet more restless and eager for wealth and power
than his father. He had fared often abroad, as a leader in the wars that the
Nъmenуreans made then in the coastlands of Middle-earth, seeking to extend
their dominion over Men; and thus he had won great renown as a captain both by
land and by sea. Therefore when he came back to Nъmenor, hearing of his
father's death, the hearts of the people were turned to him; for he brought
with him great wealth, and was for the time free in his giving. And it came to pass that Tar-Palantir grew
weary of grief and died. He had no son, but a daughter only, whom he named
Mнriel in the Elven-tongue; and to her now by right and the laws of the
Nъmenуreans came the sceptre. But Pharazфn took her to wife against her will,
doing evil in this and evil also in that the laws of Nъmenor did not permit the
marriage, even in the royal house, of those more nearly akin than cousins m the
second degree. And when they were wedded, he seized the sceptre into his own
hand, taking the title of Ar-Pharazфn (Tar-Calion in the Elven-tongue); and the
name of his queen he changed to Ar-Zimraphel. The mightiest and proudest was Ar-Pharazфn
the Golden of all those that had wielded the Sceptre of the Sea-Kings since the
foundation of Nъmenor; and three and twenty Kings and Queens had ruled the
Nъmenуreans before, and slept now in their deep tombs under the mount of
Meneltarma, lying upon beds of gold. And sitting upon his carven throne in the
city of Armenelos in the glory of his power, he brooded darkly, thinking of
war. For he had learned in Middle-earth of the strength of the realm of Sauron,
and of his hatred of Westernesse. And now there came to him the masters of
ships and captains returning out of the East, and they reported that Sauron was
putting forth his might, since Ar-Pharazфn had gone back from Middle-earth, and
he was pressing down upon the cities by the coasts; and he had taken now the
title of King of Men, and declared his purpose to drive the Nъmenуreans into
the sea, and destroy even Nъmenor, if that might be. Great was the anger of Ar-Pharazфn at these
tidings, and as he pondered long in secret, his heart was filled with the
desire of power unbounded and the sole dominion of his will. And he determined
without counsel of the Valar, or the aid of any wisdom but his own, that the
title of King of Men he would himself claim, and would compel Sauron to become
his vassal and his servant; for in his pride he deemed that no king should ever
arise so mighty as to vie with the Heir of Eдrendil. Therefore he began in that
time to smithy great hoard of weapons, and many ships of war he built and
stored them with his arms; and when all was made ready he himself set sail with
his host into the East. And men saw his sails coming up out of the
sunset, dyed as with scarlet and gleaming with red and gold, and fear fell upon
the dwellers by the coasts, and they fled far away. But the fleet came at last
to that place that was called Umbar, where was the mighty haven of the
Nъmenуreans that no hand had wrought. Empty and silent were all the lands about
when the King of the Sea marched upon Middle-earth. For seven days he journeyed
with banner and trumpet, and he came to a hill, and he went up, and he set
there his pavilion and his throne; and he sat him down in the midst of the
land, and the tents of his host were ranged all about him, blue, golden, and
white, as a field of tall flowers. Then he sent forth heralds, and he commanded
Sauron to come before him and swear to him fealty. And Sauron came. Even from his mighty tower
of Barad-dыr he came, and made no offer of battle. For he perceived that the
power and majesty of the Kings of the Sea surpassed all rumour of them, so that
he could not trust even the greatest of his servants to withstand them; and he
saw not his time yet to work his will with the Dъnedain. And he was crafty,
well skilled to gain what he would by subtlety when force might not avail.
Therefore he humbled himself before Ar-Pharazфn and smoothed his tongue; and
men wondered, for all that he said seemed fair and wise. But Ar-Pharazфn was not yet deceived, and it
came into his mind that, for the better keeping of Sauron and of his oaths of
fealty, he should be brought to Nъmenor, there to dwell as a hostage for
himself and all his servants in Middle-earth. To this Sauron assented as one
constrained, yet in his secret thought he received it gladly, for it chimed
indeed with his desire. And Sauron passed over the sea and looked upon the land
of Nъmenor, and on the city of Armenelos in the days of its glory, and he was
astounded; but his heart within was filled the more with envy and hate. Yet such was the cunning of his mind and
mouth, and the strength of his hidden will, that ere three years had passed he
had become closest to the secret counsels of the King; for flattery sweet as
honey was ever on his tongue, and knowledge he had of many things yet
unrevealed to Men. And seeing the favour that he had of their lord all the
councillors began to fawn upon him, save one alone, Amandil lord of Andъniл.
Then slowly a change came over the land, and the hearts of the Elf-friends were
sorely troubled, and many fell away out of fear; and although those that
remained still called themselves the Faithful, their enemies named them rebels.
For now, having the ears of men, Sauron with many arguments gainsaid all that
the Valar had taught; and he bade men think that in the world, in the east and
even hi the west, there lay yet many seas and many lands for their winning,
wherein was wealth uncounted. And still, if they should at the last come to the
end of those lands and seas, beyond all lay the Ancient Darkness. 'And out of
it the world was made. For Darkness alone is worshipful, and the Lord thereof
may yet make other worlds to be gifts to those that serve him, so that the
increase of their power shall find no end.' And Ar-Pharazфn said: 'Who is the Lord of
the Darkness?' Then behind locked doors Sauron spoke to the
King, and he lied, saying: 'It is he whose name is not now spoken; for the
Valar have deceived you concerning him, putting forward the name of Eru, a
phantom devised in the folly of their hearts, seeking to enchain Men in
servitude to themselves. For they are the oracle of this Eru, which speaks only
what they will. But he that is their master shall yet prevail, and he will
deliver you from this phantom; and his name is Melkor, Lord of All, Giver of
Freedom, and he shall make you stronger than they.' Then Ar-Pharazфn the King turned back to the
worship of the Dark, and of Melkor the Lord thereof, at first in secret, but
ere long openly and in the face of his people; and they for the most part
followed him. Yet there dwelt still a remnant of the Faithful, as has been
told, at Romenna and in the country near, and other few there were here and
there in the land. The chief among them, to whom they looked for leading and
courage in evil days, was Amandil, councillor of the King, and his son Elendil,
whose sons were Isildur and Anбrion, then young men by the reckoning of
Nъmenor. Amandil and Elendil were great ship-captains; and they were of the
line of Elros Tar-Minyatur, though not of the ruling house to whom belonged the
crown and the throne in the city of Armenelos. In the days of their youth
together Amandil had been dear to Pharazфn, and though he was of the Elf-friends
he remained in his council until the coming of Sauron. Now he was dismissed,
for Sauron hated him above all others in Nъmenor. But he was so noble, and had
been so mighty a captain of the sea, that he was still held in honour by many
of the people, and neither the King nor Sauron dared to lay hands on him as
yet. Therefore Amandil withdrew to Romenna, and
all that he trusted still to be faithful he summoned to come thither in secret;
for he feared that evil would now grow apace, and all the Elf-friends were in
peril. And so it soon came to pass. For the Meneltarma was utterly deserted in
those days; and though not even Sauron dared to defile the high place, yet the
King would let no man, upon pain of death, ascend to it, not even those of the
Faithful who kept Ilъvatar in their hearts. And Sauron urged the King to cut
down the White Tree, Nimloth the Fair, that grew in his courts, for it was a
memorial of the Eldar and of the light of Valinor. At the first the King would not assent to
this, since be believed that the fortunes of his house were bound up with the
Tree, as was forespoken by Tar-Palantir. Thus in his folly he who now hated the
Eldar and the Valar vainly clung to the shadow of the old allegiance of
Nъmenor. But when Amandil heard rumour of the evil purpose of Sauron he was
grieved to the heart, knowing that in the end Sauron would surely have his
will. Then he spoke to Elendil and the sons of Elendil, recalling the tale of
the Trees of Valinor; and Isildur said no word, but went out by night and did a
deed for which he was afterwards renowned. For he passed alone in disguise to
Armenelos and to the courts of the King, which were now forbidden to the
Faithful; and he came to the place of the Tree, which was forbidden to all by
the orders of Sauron, and the Tree was watched day and night by guards in his
service. At that time Nimloth was dark and bore no bloom, for it was late in
the autumn, and its winter was nigh; and Isildur passed through the guards and
took from the Tree a fruit that hung upon it, and turned to go. But the guard
was aroused, and he was assailed, and fought his way out, receiving many
wounds; and he escaped, and because he was disguised it was not discovered who
had laid hands on the Tree. But Isildur came at last hardly back to Rуmenna and
delivered the fruit to the hands of Amandil, ere his strength failed him. Then
the fruit was planted in secret, and it was blessed by Amandil; and a shoot
arose from it and sprouted in the spring. But when its first leaf opened then
Isildur, who had lain long and come near to death, arose and was troubled no
more by his wounds. None too soon was this done; for after the
assault the King yielded to Sauron and felled the White Tree, and turned then
wholly away from the allegiance of his fathers. But Sauron caused to be built
upon the hill in the midst of the city of the Nъmenуreans, Armenelos the
Golden, a mighty temple; and it was in the form of a circle at the base, and
there the walls were fifty feet in thickness, and the width of the base was
five hundred feet across the centre, and the walls rose from the ground five
hundred feet, and they were crowned with a mighty dome. And that dome was
roofed all with silver, and rose glittering in the sun, so that the light of it
could be seen afar off; but soon the light was darkened, and the silver became
black. For there was an altar of fire in the midst of the temple, and in the
topmost of the dome there was a louver, whence there issued a great smoke. And
the first fire upon the altar Sauron kindled with the hewn wood of Nimloth, and
it crackled and was consumed; but men marvelled at the reek that went up from
it, so that the land lay under a cloud for seven days, until slowly it passed
into the west. Thereafter the fire and smoke went up
without ceasing; for the power of Sauron daily increased, and in that temple,
with spilling of blood and torment and great wickedness, men made sacrifice to
Melkor that he should release them from Death. And most often from among the
Faithful they chose their victims; yet never openly on the charge that they
would not worship Melkor, the Giver of Freedom, rather was cause sought against
them that they hated the King and were his rebels, or that they plotted against
their kin, devising lies and poisons. These charges were for the most part
false; yet those were bitter days, and hate brings forth hate. But for all this Death did not depart from
the land, rather it came sooner and more often, and in many dreadful guises.
For whereas aforetime men had grown slowly old, and had laid them down in the
end to sleep, when they were weary at last of the world, now madness and
sickness assailed them; and yet they were afraid to die and go out into the
dark, the realm of the lord that they had taken; and they cursed themselves in
their agony. And men took weapons in those days and slew one another for little
cause; for they were become quick to anger, and Sauron, or those whom he had
bound to himself, went about the land setting man against man, so that the
people murmured against the King and the lords, or against any that had aught
that they had not; and the men of power took cruel revenge. Nonetheless for long it seemed to the
Nъmenуreans that they prospered, and if they were not increased in happiness,
yet they grew more strong, and their rich men ever richer. For with the aid and
counsel of Sauron they multiplied then: possessions, and they devised engines,
and they built ever greater ships. And they sailed now with power and armoury
to Middle-earth, and they came no longer as bringers of gifts, nor even as
rulers, but as fierce men of war. And they hunted the men of Middle-earth and
took their goods and enslaved them, and many they slew cruelly upon their
altars. For they built in their fortresses temples and great tombs in those
days; and men feared them, and the memory of the kindly kings of the ancient
days faded from the world and was darkened by many a tale of dread. Thus Ar-Pharazфn, King of the Land of the
Star, grew to the mightiest tyrant that had yet been in the world since the
reign of Morgoth, though in truth Sauron ruled all from behind the throne. But
the years passed, and the King felt the shadow of death approach, as his days
lengthened; and he was filled with fear and wrath. Now came the hour that
Sauron had prepared and long had awaited. And Sauron spoke to the King, saying
that his strength was now so great that he might think to have his will in all
things, and be subject to no command or ban. And he said: 'The Valar have possessed
themselves of the land where there is no death; and they lie to you concerning
it, hiding it as best they may, because of their avarice, and their fear lest
the Kings of Men should wrest from them the deathless realm and rule the world
in their stead. And though, doubtless, the gift of life unending is not for
all, but only for such as are worthy, being men of might and pride and great
lineage, yet against all Justice is it done that this gift, which is his due,
should be withheld from the King of Bangs, Ar-Pharazфn, mightiest of the sons
of Earth, to whom Manwл alone can be compared, if even he. But great kings do
not brook denials, and take what is their due.' Then Ar-Pharazфn, being besotted, and
walking under the shadow of death, for his span was drawing towards its end,
hearkened to Sauron; and he began to ponder in his heart how he might make war
upon the Valar. He was long preparing this design, and he spoke not openly of
it, yet it could not be hidden from all. And Amandil, becoming aware of the
purposes of the King, was dismayed and filled with a great dread, for he knew
that Men could not vanquish the Valar in war, and that ruin must come upon the
world, if this war were not stayed. Therefore he called his son, Elendil, and
he said to him: 'The days are dark, and there is no hope for
Men, for the Faithful are few. Therefore I am minded to try that counsel which
our forefather Eдrendil took of old, to sail into the West, be there ban or no,
and to speak to the Valar, even to Manwл himself, if may be, and beseech his
aid ere all is lost.' 'Would you then betray the King?' said
Elendil. 'For you know well the charge that they make against us, that we are
traitors and spies, and that until this day it has been false.' 'If I thought that Manwл needed such a
messenger,' said Amandil, I would betray the King. For there is but one loyalty
from which no man can be absolved in heart for any cause. But it is for mercy
upon Men and their deliverance from Sauron the Deceiver that I would plead,
since some at least have remained faithful. And as for the Ban, I will suffer
in myself the penalty, lest all my people should become guilty.' 'But what think you, my father, is like to
befall those of your house whom you leave behind, when your deed becomes
known?' 'It must not become known,' said Amandil. 'I
will prepare my going in secret, and I will set sail into the east, whither
daily the ships depart from our havens; and thereafter, as wind and chance may
allow, I will go about, through south or north, back into the west, and seek
what I may find. But for you and your folk, my son, I counsel that you should
prepare yourselves other ships, and put aboard all such things as your hearts
cannot bear to part with; and when the ships are ready, you should lie in the
haven of Romenna, and give out among men that you purpose, when you see your
time, to follow me into the east. Amandil is no longer so dear to our kinsman
upon the throne that he will grieve over much, if we seek to depart, for a
season or for good. But let it not be seen that you intend to take many men, or
he will be troubled, because of the war that he now plots, for which he will
need all the force that he may gather. Seek out the Faithful that are known
still to be true, and let them join you in secret, if they are willing to go
with you, and share in your design.' 'And what shall that design be?' said
Elendil. 'To meddle not in the war, and to watch,'
answered Amandil. 'Until I return I can say no more. But it is most like that
you shall fly from the Land of the Star with no star to guide you; for that
land is defiled. Then you shall lose all that you have loved, foretasting death
in life, seeking a land of exile elsewhere. But east or west the Valar alone
can say.' Then Amandil said farewell to all his
household, as one that is about to die. 'For,' said he, 'it may well prove that
you will see me never again; and that I shall show you no such sign as Eдrendil
showed long ago. But hold you ever in readiness, for the end of the world that
we have known is now at hand.' It is said that Amandil set sail in a small
ship at night, and steered first eastward, and then went about and passed into
the west. And he took with him three servants, dear to his heart, and never
again were they heard of by word or sign in this world, nor is there any tale
or guess of their fate. Men could not a second time be saved by any such
embassy, and for the treason of Nъmenor there was no easy absolving. But Elendil did all that his father had
bidden, and his ships lay off the east coast of the land; and the Faithful put aboard
their wives and their children, and their heirlooms, and great store of goods.
Many things there were of beauty and power, such as the Nъmenуreans had
contrived in the days of their wisdom, vessels and jewels, and scrolls of lore
written in scarlet and black. And Seven Stones they had, the gift of the Eldar;
but in the ship of Isildur was guarded the young tree, the scion of Nimloth the
Fair. Thus Elendil held himself in readiness, and did not meddle in the evil
deeds of those days; and ever he looked for a sign that did not come. Then he
journeyed in secret to the western shores and gazed out over the sea, for
sorrow and yearning were upon him, and he greatly loved his father. But naught
could he descry save the fleets of Ar-Pharazфn gathering in the havens of the
west. Now aforetime in the isle of Nъmenor the
weather was ever apt to the needs and liking of Men: rain in due season and
ever in measure; and sunshine, now warmer, now cooler, and winds from the sea.
And when the wind was in the west, it seemed to many that it was filled with a
fragrance, fleeting but sweet, heart-stirring, as of flowers that bloom for
ever in undying meads and have no names on mortal shores. But all this was now
changed; for the sky itself was darkened, and there were storms of rain and
hail in those days, and violent winds; and ever and anon a great ship of the
Nъmenуreans would founder and return not to haven, though such a grief had not
till then befallen them since the rising of the Star. And out of the west there
would come at times a great cloud in the evening, shaped as it were an eagle,
with pinions spread to the north and the south; and slowly it would loom up,
blotting out the sunset, and then uttermost night would fall upon Nъmenor. And
some of the eagles bore lightning beneath their wings, and thunder echoed
between sea and cloud. Then men grew afraid. 'Behold the Eagles of
the Lords of the West!' they cried. 'The Eagles of Manwл are come upon
Nъmenor!' And they fell upon their faces. Then some few would repent for a season, but
others hardened their hearts, and they shook their fists at heaven, saying:
'The Lords of the West have plotted against us. They strike first. The next
blow shall be ours!' These words the King himself spoke, but they were devised
by Sauron. Now the lightnings increased and slew men
upon the hills, and in the fields, and in the streets of the city; and a fiery
bolt smote the dome of the Temple and shore it asunder, and it was wreathed in
flame. But the Temple itself was unshaken, and Sauron stood there upon the
pinnacle and defied the lightning and was unharmed; and in that hour men called
him a god and did all that he would. When therefore the last portent came they
heeded it little. For the land shook under them, and a groaning as of thunder
underground was mingled with the roaring of the sea, and smoke issued from the
peak of the Meneltarma. But all the more did Ar-Pharazфn press on with his
armament. In that time the fleets of the Nъmenуreans
darkened the sea upon the west of the land, and they were like an archipelago
of a thousand isles; their masts were as a forest upon the mountains, and their
sails like a brooding cloud; and their banners were golden and black. And all
things waited upon the word of Ar-Pharazфn; and Sauron withdrew into the inmost
circle of the Temple, and men brought him victims to be burned. Then the Eagles of the Lords of the West
came up out of the dayfall, and they were arrayed as for battle, advancing in a
line the end of which diminished beyond sight; and as they came their wings
spread ever wider, grasping the sky. But the West burned red behind them, and
they glowed beneath, as though they were lit with a flame of great anger, so
that all Nъmenor was illumined as with a smouldering fire; and men looked upon
the faces of their fellows, and it seemed to them that they were red with
wrath. Then Ar-Pharazфn hardened his heart, and he
went aboard his mighty ship, Alcarondas, Castle of the Sea. Many-oared it was
and many-masted, golden and sable; and upon it the throne of Ar-Pharazфn was
set. Then he did on his panoply and his crown, and let raise his standard, and
he gave the signal for the raising of the anchors; and in that hour the
trumpets of Nъmenor outrang the thunder. Thus the fleets of the Nъmenуreans moved
against the menace of the West; and there was little wind, but they had many
oars and many strong slaves to row beneath the lash. The sun went down, and
there came a great silence. Darkness fell upon the land, and the sea was still,
while the world waited for what should betide. Slowly the fleets passed out of
the sight of the watchers in the havens, and their lights faded, and night took
them; and in the morning they were gone. For a wind arose in the east and it
wafted them away; and they broke the Ban of the Valar, and sailed into
forbidden seas, going up with war against the Deathless, to wrest from them
everlasting life within the Circles of the World. But the fleets of Ar-Pharazфn came up out of
the deeps of the sea and encompassed Avallуnл and all the isle of Eressлa, and
the Eldar mourned, for the light of the setting sun was cut off by the cloud of
the Nъmenуreans. And at last Ar-Pharazфn came even to Aman, the Blessed Realm,
and the coasts of Valinor; and still all was silent, and doom hung by a thread.
For Ar-Pharazфn wavered at the end, and almost he turned back. His heart
misgave him when he looked upon the soundless shores and saw Taniquetil
shining, whiter than snow, colder than death, silent, immutable, terrible as
the shadow of the light of Ilъvatar. But pride was now his master, and at last
he left his ship and strode upon the shore, claiming the land for his own, if
none should do battle for it. And a host of the Nъmenуreans encamped in might
about Tъna, whence all the Eldar had fled. Then Manwл upon the Mountain called upon
Ilъvatar, and for that time the Valar laid down their government of Arda. But
Ilъvatar showed forth his power, and he changed the fashion of the world; and a
great chasm opened in the sea between Nъmenor and the Deathless Lands, and the
waters flowed down into it, and the noise and smoke of the cataracts went up to
heaven, and the world was shaken. And all the fleets of the Nъmenуreans were
drawn down into the abyss, and they were drowned and swallowed up for ever. But
Ar-Pharazфn the King and the mortal warriors that had set foot upon the land of
Aman were buried under falling hills: there it is said that they lie imprisoned
in the Caves of the Forgotten, until the Last Battle and the Day of Doom. But the land of Aman and Eressлa of the
Eldar were taken away and removed beyond the reach of Men for ever. And Andor,
the Land of Gift, Nъmenor of the Kings, Elenna of the Star of Eдrendil, was
utterly destroyed. For it was nigh to the east of the great rift, and its
foundations were overturned, and it fell and went down into darkness, and is no
more. And there is not now upon Earth any place abiding where the memory of a
time without evil is preserved. For Ilъvatar cast back the Great Seas west of
Middle-earth, and the Empty Lands east of it, and new lands and new seas were
made; and the world was diminished, for Valinor and Eressлa were taken from it
into the realm of hidden things. In an hour unlocked for by Men this doom
befell, on the nine and thirtieth day since the passing of the fleets. Then
suddenly fire burst from the Meneltarma, and there came a mighty wind and a
tumult of the earth, and the sky reeled, and the hills slid, and Nъmenor went
down into the sea, with all its children and its wives and its maidens and its
ladies proud; and all its gardens and its balls and its towers, its tombs and
its riches, and its jewels and its webs and its things painted and carven, and
its lore: they vanished for ever. And last of all the mounting wave, green and
cold and plumed with foam, climbing over the land, took to its bosom Tar-Mнriel
the Queen, fairer than silver or ivory or pearls. Too late she strove to ascend
the steep ways of the Meneltarma to the holy place; for the waters overtook
her, and her cry was lost in the roaring of the wind. But whether or no it were that Amandil came
indeed to Valinor and Manwл hearkened to his prayer, by grace of the Valar
Elendil and his sons and their people were spared from the ruin of that day.
For Elendil had remained in Romenna, refusing the summons of the King when he
set forth to war; and avoiding the soldiers of Sauron that came to seize him
and drag him to the fires of the Temple, he went aboard his ship and stood off
from the shore, waiting on the time. There he was protected by the land from
the great draught of the sea that drew all towards the abyss, and afterwards he
was sheltered from the first fury of the storm. But when the devouring wave
rolled over the land and Nъmenor toppled to its fall, then he would have been
overwhelmed and would have deemed it the lesser grief to perish, for no wrench
of death could be more bitter than the loss and agony of that day; but the
great wind took him, wilder than any wind that Men had known, roaring from the
west, and it swept his ships far away; and it rent their sails and snapped
their masts, hunting the unhappy men like straws upon the water. Nine ships there were: four for Elendil, and
for Isildur three, and for Anбrion two; and they fled before the black gale out
of the twilight of doom into the darkness of the world. And the deeps rose
beneath them in towering anger, and waves like unto mountains moving with great
caps of writhen snow bore them up amid the wreckage of the clouds, and after
many days cast them away upon the shores of Middle-earth. And all the coasts
and seaward regions of the western world suffered great change and ruin in that
time; for the seas invaded the lands, and shores foundered, and ancient isles
were drowned, and new isles were uplifted; and hills crumbled and rivers were
turned into strange courses. Elendil and his sons after founded kingdoms
in Middle-earth; and though their lore and craft was but an echo of that which
had been ere Sauron came to Nъmenor, yet very great it seemed to the wild men
of the world. And much is said in other lore of the deeds of the heirs of
Elendil in the age that came after, and of their strife with Sauron that not
yet was ended. For Sauron himself was filled with great
fear at the wrath of the Valar, and the doom that Eru laid upon sea and land.
It was greater far than aught he had looked for, hoping only for the death of
the Nъmenуreans and the defeat of their proud king. And Sauron, sitting in his
black seat in the midst of the Temple, had laughed when he heard the trumpets
of Ar-Pharazфn sounding for battle; and again he had laughed when he heard the
thunder of the storm; and a third time, even as he laughed at his own thought,
thinking what he would do now in the world, being rid of the Edain for ever, he
was taken in the midst of his mirth, and his seat and his temple fell into the
abyss. But Sauron was not of mortal flesh, and though he was robbed now of that
shape in which he had wrought so great an evil, so that he could never again
appear fair to the eyes of Men, yet his spirit arose out of the deep and passed
as a shadow and a black wind over the sea, and came back to Middle-earth and to
Mordor that was his home. There he took up again his great Ring in Barad-dыr,
and dwelt there, dark and silent, until he wrought himself a new guise, an
image of malice and hatred made visible; and the Eye of Sauron the Terrible few
could endure. But these things come not into the tale of
the Drowning of Nъmenor, of which now all is told. And even the name of that
land perished, and Men spoke thereafter not of Elenna, nor of Andor the Gift
that was taken away, nor of Nъmenуrл on the confines of the world; but the
exiles on the shores of the sea, if they turned towards the West in the desire
of their hearts, spoke of Mar-nu-Falmar that was whelmed in the waves,
Akallabкth the Downfallen, Atalantл in the Eldarin tongue. * * * Among the Exiles many believed that the
summit of the Meneltarma, the Pillar of Heaven, was not drowned for ever, but
rose again above the waves, a lonely island lost in the great waters; for it
had been a hallowed place, and even in the days of Sauron none had defiled it
And some there were of the seed of Eдrendil that afterwards sought for it,
because it was said among loremasters that the far-sighted men of old could see
from the Meneltarma a glimmer of the Deathless Land. For even after the ruin
the hearts of the Dъnedain were still set westwards; and though they knew
indeed that the world was changed, they said: 'Avallуnл is vanished from the
Earth and the Land of Aman is taken away, and in the world of this present
darkness they cannot be found. Yet once they were, and therefore they still
are, in true being and in the whole shape of the world as at first it was
devised.' For the Dъnedain held that even mortal Men,
if so blessed, might look upon other times than those of their bodies' life;
and they longed ever to escape from the shadows of their exile and to see in
some fashion fee light that dies not; for the sorrow of the thought of death
had pursued them over the deeps of the sea. Thus it was that great mariners
among them would still search the empty seas, hoping to come upon the Isle of
Meneltarma, and there to see a vision of things that were. But they found it
not. And those that sailed far came only to the new lands, and found them like
to the old lands, and subject to death. And those that sailed furthest set but
a girdle about the Earth and returned weary at last to the place of their
beginning; and they said: 'All roads are now bent.' Thus in after days, what by the voyages of
ships, what by lore and star-craft, the kings of Men knew that the world was
indeed made round, and yet the Eldar were permitted still to depart and to come
to the Ancient West and to Avallуnл, if they would. Therefore the loremasters
of Men said that a Straight Road must still be, for those that were permitted
to find it. And they taught that, while the new world fell away, the old road
and the path of the memory of the West still went on, as it were a mighty
bridge invisible that passed through the air of breath and of flight (which
were bent now as the world was bent), and traversed Ilmen which flesh unaided
cannot endure, until it came to Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle, and maybe even
beyond, to Valinor, where the Valar still dwell and watch the unfolding of the
story of the world. And tales and rumours arose along the shores of the sea
concerning mariners and men forlorn upon the water who, by some fate or grace
or favour of the Valar, had entered in upon the Straight Way and seen the face
of the world sink below them, and so had come to the lamplit quays of Avallуnл,
or verily to the last beaches on the margin of Aman, and there had looked upon
the White Mountain, dreadful and beautiful, before they died. OF THE RINGS OF POWER AND THE THIRD AGE in which these
tales come to their end Of old there was
Sauron the Maia, whom the Sindar in Beleriand named Gorthaur. In the beginning
of Arda Melkor seduced him to his allegiance, and he became the greatest and
most trusted of the servants of the Enemy, and the most perilous, for he could
assume many forms, and for long if he willed he could still appear noble and
beautiful, so as to deceive all but the most wary. When Thangorodrim was broken and Morgoth
overthrown, Sauron put on his fair hue again and did obeisance to Eцnwл the
herald of Manwл, and abjured all his evil deeds. And some hold that this was
not at first falsely done, but that Sauron in truth repented, if only out of
fear, being dismayed by the fall of Morgoth and the great wrath of the Lords of
the West. But it was not within the power of Eцnwл to pardon those of his own
order, and he commanded Sauron to return to Aman and there receive the
judgement of Manwл. Then Sauron was ashamed, and he was unwilling to return in
humiliation and to receive from the Valar a sentence, it might be, of long
servitude in proof of his good faith; for under Morgoth his power had been
great. Therefore when Eцnwл departed he hid himself in Middle-earth; and he
fell back into evil, for the bonds that Morgoth bad laid upon him were very
strong. * * * In the Great Battle and the tumults of the
fall of Thangorodrim there were mighty convulsions in the earth, and Beleriand
was broken and laid waste; and northward and westward many lands sank beneath
the waters of the Great Sea. In the east, in Ossiriand, the walls of Ered Luin
were broken, and a great gap was made in them towards the south, and a gulf of
the sea flowed in. Into that gulf the River Lhыn fell by a new course, and it
was called therefore the Gulf of Lhыn. That country had of old been named
Lindon by the Noldor, and this name it bore thereafter; and many of the Eldar
still dwelt there, lingering, unwilling yet to forsake Beleriand where they had
fought and laboured long. Gil-galad son of Fingon was their king, and with him
was Elrond Half-elven, son of Eдrendil the Mariner and brother of Elros first
king of Nъmenor. Upon the shores of the Gulf of Lhыn the
Elves built their havens, and named them Mithlond; and there they held many
ships, for the harbourage was good. From the Grey Havens the Eldar ever and
anon set sail, fleeing from the darkness of the days of Earth; for by the mercy
of the Valar the Firstborn could still follow the Straight Road and return, if
they would, to their kindred in Eressлa and Valinor beyond the encircling seas. Others of the Eldar there were who crossed
the mountains of Ered Luin in that age and passed into the inner lands. Many of
these were Teleri, survivors of Doriath and Ossiriand; and they established
realms among the Silvan Elves in woods and mountains far from the sea, for
which nonetheless they ever yearned in their hearts. Only in Eregion, which Men
called Hollin, did Elves of Noldorin race establish a lasting realm beyond the
Ered Luin. Eregion was nigh to the great mansions of the Dwarves that were
named Khazad-dыm, but by the Elves Hadhodrond, and afterwards Moria. From
Ost-in-Edhil, the city of the Elves, the highroad ran to the west gate of
Khazad-dыm, for a friendship arose between Dwarves and Elves, such as has never
elsewhere been, to the enrichment of both those peoples. In Eregion the
craftsmen of the Gwaith-i-Mнrdain, the People of the Jewel-smiths, surpassed in
cunning all that have ever wrought, save only Fлanor himself; and indeed
greatest in skill among them was Celebrimbor, son of Curufin, who was estranged
from his father and remained in Nargothrond when Celegorm and Curufin were
driven forth, as is told in the Quenta Silmarillion. Elsewhere in Middle-earth there was peace
for many years; yet the lands were for the most part savage and desolate, save
only where the people of Beleriand came. Many Elves dwelt there indeed, as they
had dwelt through the countless years, wandering free in the wide lands far
from the Sea; but they were Avari, to whom the deeds of Beleriand were but a
rumour and Valinor only a distant name. And in the south and in the further
east Men multiplied; and most of them turned to evil, for Sauron was at work. Seeing the desolation of the world, Sauron
said in his heart that the Valar, having overthrown Morgoth, had again
forgotten Middle-earth; and his pride grew apace. He looked with hatred on the
Eldar, and he feared the Men of Nъmenor who came back at whiles in their ships
to the shores of Middle-earth; but for long he dissembled his mind and concealed
the dark designs that he shaped in his heart. Men he found the easiest to sway of all the
peoples of the Earth; but long he sought to persuade the Elves to his service,
for he knew that the Firstborn had the greater power; and he went far and wide among
them, and his hue was still that of one both fair and wise. Only to Lindon he
did not come, for Gil-galad and Elrond doubted him and his fair-seeming, and
though they knew not who in truth he was they would not admit him to that land.
But elsewhere the Elves received him gladly, and few among them hearkened to
the messengers from Lindon bidding them beware; for Sauron took to himself the
name of Annatar, the Lord of Gifts, and they had at first much profit from his
friendship. And he said to them: "Alas, for the weakness of the great! For
a mighty king is Gil-galad, and wise in all lore is Master Elrond, and yet they
will not aid me in my labours. Can it be that they do not desire to see other
lands become as blissful as their own? But wherefore should Middle-earth remain
for ever desolate and dark, whereas the Elves could make it as fair as Eressлa,
nay even as Valinor? And since you have not returned thither, as you might, I
perceive that you love this Middle-earth, as do I. Is it not then our task to
labour together for its enrichment, and for the raising of all the
Elven-kindreds that wander here untaught to the height of that power and
knowledge which those have who are beyond the Sea?' It was in Eregion that the counsels of
Sauron were most gladly received, for in that land the Noldor desired ever to
increase the skill and subtlety of their works. Moreover they were not at peace
in their hearts, since they had refused to return into the West, and they
desired both to stay in Middle-earth, which indeed they loved, and yet to enjoy
the bliss of those that had departed. Therefore they hearkened to Sauron, and
they learned of him many things, for his knowledge was great. In those days the
smiths of Ost-in-Edhil surpassed all that they had contrived before; and they
took thought, and they made Rings of Power. But Sauron guided their labours,
and he was aware of all that they did; for his desire was to set a bond upon
the Elves and to bring them under his vigilance. Now the Elves made many rings; but secretly
Sauron made One Ring to rule all the others, and their power was bound up with
it, to be subject wholly to it and to last only so long as it too should last.
And much of the strength and will of Sauron passed into that One Ring; for the
power of the Elven-rings was very great, and that which should govern them must
be a thing of surpassing potency; and Sauron forged it in the Mountain of Fire
in the Land of Shadow. And while he wore the One Ring he could perceive all the
things that were done by means of the lesser rings, and he could see and govern
the very thoughts of those that wore them. But the Elves were not so lightly to be
caught. As soon as Sauron set the One Ring upon his finger they were aware of
him; and they knew him, and perceived that he would be master of them, and of
an that they wrought. Then in anger and fear they took off their rings. But he,
finding that he was betrayed and that the Elves were not deceived, was filled
with wrath; and he came against them with open war, demanding that all the
rings should be delivered to him, since the Elven-smiths could not have
attained to their making without his lore and counsel. But the Elves fled from
him; and three of their rings they saved, and bore them away, and hid them. Now these were the Three that had last been
made, and they possessed the greatest powers. Narya, Nenya, and Vilya, they
were named, the Rings of Fire, and of Water, and of Air, set with ruby and
adamant and sapphire; and of all the Elven-rings Sauron most desired to possess
them, for those who had them in their keeping could ward off the decays of time
and postpone the weariness of the world. But Sauron could not discover them,
for they were given into the hands of the Wise, who concealed them and never
again used them openly while Sauron kept the Ruling Ring. Therefore the Three
remained unsullied, for they were forged by Celebrimbor alone, and the hand of
Sauron had never touched them; yet they also were subject to the One. From that time war never ceased between
Sauron and the Elves; and Eregion was laid waste, and Celebrimbor slain, and
the doors of Moria were shut. In that time the stronghold and refuge of
Imladris, that Men called Rivendell, was founded by Elrond Half-elven; and long
it endured. But Sauron gathered into his hands all the remaining Rings of
Power; and he dealt them out to the other peoples of Middle-earth, hoping thus
to bring under his sway all those that desired secret power beyond the measure
of their kind. Seven Rings he gave to the Dwarves; but to Men he gave nine, for
Men proved in this matter as in others the readiest to his will. And all those
rings that he governed he perverted, the more easily since he had a part in
their making, and they were accursed, and they betrayed in the end all those
that used them. The Dwarves indeed proved tough and hard to tame; they ill
endure the domination of others, and the thoughts of their hearts are hard to
fathom, nor can they be turned to shadows. They used their rings only for the
getting of wealth; but wrath and an over-mastering greed of gold were kindled
in their hearts, of which evil enough after came to the profit of Sauron. It is
said that the foundation of each of the Seven Hoards of the Dwarf-kings of old
was a golden ring; but all those hoards long ago were plundered and the Dragons
devoured them, and of the Seven Rings some were consumed in fire and some
Sauron recovered. Men proved easier to ensnare. Those who used
the Nine Rings became mighty in their day, kings, sorcerers, and warriors of
old. They obtained glory and great wealth, yet it turned to their undoing. They
had, as it seemed, unending life, yet life became unendurable to them. They
could walk, if they would, unseen by all eyes in this world beneath the sun,
and they could see things in worlds invisible to mortal men; but too often they
beheld only the phantoms and delusions of Sauron. And one by one, sooner or
later, according to their native strength and to the good or evil of their
wills in the beginning, they fell under the thraldom of the ring that they bore
and under the domination of the One, which was Sauron's. And they became for
ever invisible save to him that wore the Ruling Ring, and they entered into the
realm of shadows. The Nazgыl were they, the Ringwraiths, the Enemy's most
terrible servants; darkness went with them, and they cried with the voices of
death. Now Sauron's lust and pride increased, until
he knew no bounds, and he determined to make himself master of all things in
Middle-earth, and to destroy the Elves, and to compass, if he might, the
downfall of Nъmenor. He brooked no freedom nor any rivalry, and he named
himself Lord of the Earth. A mask he still could wear so that if he wished he
might deceive the eyes of Men, seeming to them wise and fair. But he ruled
rather by force and fear, if they might avail; and those who perceived his
shadow spreading over the world called him the Dark Lord and named him the
Enemy; and he gathered again under his government all the evil things of the
days of Morgoth that remained on earth or beneath it, and the Orcs were at his
command and multiplied like flies. Thus the Black Years began, which the Elves
call the Days of Flight. In that time many of the Elves of Middle-earth fled to
Lindon and thence over the seas never to return; and many were destroyed by
Sauron and his servants. But in Lindon Gil-galad still maintained his power,
and Sauron dared not as yet to pass the Mountains of Ered Luin nor to assail
the Havens; and Gil-galad was aided by the Nъmenуreans. Elsewhere Sauron
reigned, and those who would be free took refuge in the fastnesses of wood and
mountain, and ever fear pursued them. In the east and south well nigh all Men
were under his dominion, and they grew strong in those days and built many
towns and walls of stone, and they were numerous and fierce in war and aimed
with iron. To them Sauron was both king and god; and they feared him
exceedingly, for he surrounded his abode with fire. Yet there came at length a stay in the
onslaught of Sauron upon the westlands. For, as is told in tile Akallabкth, he was challenged by the
might of Nъmenor. So great was the power and splendour of the Nъmenуreans in
the noontide of their realm that the servants of Sauron would not withstand
them, and hoping to accomplish by cunning what he could not achieve by force,
he left Middle-earth for a while and went to Nъmenor as a hostage of Tar-Calion
the King. And there he abode, until at the last by his craft he had corrupted
the hearts of most of that people, and set them at war with the Valar, and so compassed
their ruin, as he had long desired. But that ruin was more terrible than Sauron
had foreseen, for he had forgotten the might of the Lords of the West in their
anger. The world was broken, and the land was swallowed up, and the seas rose
over it, and Sauron himself went down into the abyss. But his spirit arose and
fled back on a dark wind to Middle-earth, seeking a home. There he found that
the power of Gil-galad had grown great in the years of his absence, and it was
spread now over wide regions of the north and west, and had passed beyond the
Misty Mountains and the Great River even to the borders of Greenwood the Great,
and was drawing nigh to the strong places where once he had dwelt secure. Then
Sauron withdrew to his fortress in the Black Land and meditated war. In that time those of the Nъmenуreans who
were saved from destruction fled eastward, as is told in the Akallabкth. The chief of these were
Elendil the Tall and his sons, Isildur and Anбrion. Kinsmen of the King they
were, descendants of Elros, but they had been unwilling to listen to Sauron,
and had refused to make war on the Lords of the West. Manning their ships with
all who remained faithful they forsook the land of Nъmenor ere ruin came upon
it. They were mighty men and their ships were strong and tall, but the tempests
overtook them, and they were borne aloft on hills of water even to the clouds,
and they descended upon Middle-earth like birds of the storm. Elendil was cast up by the waves in the land
of Lindon, and he was befriended by Gil-galad. Thence he passed up the River
Lhыn, and beyond Ered Luin he established his realm, and his people dwelt in
many places in Eriador about the courses of the Lhыn and the Baranduin; but his
chief city was at Annъminas beside the water of Lake Nenuial. At Fornost upon
the North Downs also the Nъmenуreans dwelt, and in Cardolan, and in the hills
of Rhudaur; and towers they raised upon Emyn Beraid and upon Amon Sыl; and
there remain many barrows and ruined works in those places, but the towers of Emyn
Beraid still look towards the sea. Isildur and Anбrion were borne away
southwards, and at the last they brought their ships up the Great River Anduin,
that flows out of Rhovanion into the western sea in the Bay of Belfalas; and
they established a realm in those lands that were after called Gondor, whereas
the Northern Kingdom was named Arnor. Long before in the days of their power
the mariners of Nъmenor had established a haven and strong places about the
mouths of Anduin, in despite of Sauron in the Black Land that lay nigh upon the
east. In the later days to this haven came only the Faithful of Nъmenor, and
many therefore of the folk of the coastlands in that region were in whole or in
part akin to the Elf-friends and the people of Elendil, and they welcomed his
sons. The chief city of this southern realm was Osgiliath, through the midst of
which the Great River flowed; and the Nъmenуreans built there a great bridge,
upon which there were towers and houses of stone wonderful to behold, and tall
ships came up out of the sea to the quays of the city. Other strong places they
built also upon either hand: Minas Ithil, the Tower of the Rising Moon,
eastward upon a shoulder of the Mountains of Shadow as a threat to Mordor; and
to the westward Minas Anor, the Tower of the Setting Sun, at the feet of Mount
Mindolluin, as a shield against the wild men of the dales. In Minas Ithil was
the house of Isildur, and in Minas Anor the house of Anбrion, but they shared
the realm between them and their thrones were set side by side in the Great
Hall of Osgiliath. These were the chief dwellings of the Nъmenуreans in Gondor,
but other works marvellous and strong they built in the land in the days of
their power, at the Argonath, and at Aglarond, and at Erech; and in the circle
of Angrenost, which Men called Isengard, they made the Pinnacle of Orthanc of
unbreakable stone. Many treasures and great heirlooms of virtue
and wonder the Exiles had brought from Nъmenor; and of these the most renowned
were the Seven Stones and the White Tree. The White Tree was grown from the
fruit of Nimloth the Fair that stood in the courts of the Bang at Armenelos in
Nъmenor, ere Sauron burned it; and Nimloth was in its turn descended from the
Tree of Tirion, that was an image of the Eldest of Trees, White Telperion which
Yavanna caused to grow in the land of the Valar. The Tree, memorial of the
Eldar and of the light of Valinor, was planted in Minas Ithil before the house
of Isildur, since he it was that had saved the fruit from destruction; but the Stones
were divided. Three Elendil took, and his sons each two.
Those of Elendil were set in towers upon Emyn Beraid, and upon Amon Sыl, and in
the city of Annъminas. But those of his sons were at Minas Ithil and Minas
Anor, and at Orthanc and in Osgiliath. Now these Stones had this virtue that
those who looked therein might perceive in them things far off, whether in
place or in time. For the most part they revealed only things near to another
kindred Stone, for the Stones each called to each; but those who possessed
great strength of will and of mind might learn to direct their gaze whither
they would. Thus the Nъmenуreans were aware of many things that their enemies
wished to conceal, and little escaped their vigilance in the days of their
might. It is said that the towers of Emyn Beraid
were not built indeed by the Exiles of Nъmenor, but were raised by Gil-galad
for Elendil, his friend; and the Seeing Stone of Emyn Beraid was set in
Elostirion, the tallest of the towers. Thither Elendil would repair, and thence
he would gaze out over the sundering seas, when the yearning of exile was upon
him; and it is believed that thus he would at whiles see far away even the
Tower of Avallуnл upon Eressлa, where the Masterstone abode, and yet abides.
These stones were gifts of the Eldar to Amandil, father of Elendil, for the
comfort of the Faithful of Nъmenor in their dark days, when the Elves might
come no longer to that land under the shadow of Sauron. They were called the
Palantнri, those that watch from afar; but all those that were brought to
Middle-earth long ago were lost. Thus the Exiles of Nъmenor established their
realms in Arnor and in Gondor; but ere many years had passed it became manifest
that their enemy, Sauron, had also returned. He came in secret, as has been
told, to his ancient kingdom of Mordor beyond the Ephel Dъath, the Mountains of
Shadow, and that country marched with Gondor upon the east. There above the
valley of Gorgoroth was built his fortress vast and strong, Barad-dыr, the Dark
Tower; and there was a fiery mountain in that land that the Elves named
Orodruin. Indeed for that reason Sauron had set there his dwelling long before,
for he used the fire that welled there from the heart of the earth in his
sorceries and in his forging; and in the midst of the Land of Mordor he had
fashioned the Ruling Ring. There now he brooded in the dark, until he had
wrought for himself a new shape; and it was terrible, for his fair semblance
had departed for ever when he was cast into the abyss at the drowning of
Nъmenor. He took up again the great Ring and clothed himself in power; and the
malice of the Eye of Sauron few even of the great among Elves and Men could
endure. Now Sauron prepared war against the Eldar
and the Men of Westernesse, and the fires of the Mountain were wakened again.
Wherefore seeing the smoke of Orodruin from afar, and perceiving that Sauron
had returned, the Nъmenуreans named that mountain anew Amon Amarth, which is
Mount Doom. And Sauron gathered to him great strength of his servants out of
the east and the south; and among them were not a few of the high race of
Nъmenor. For in the days of the sojourn of Sauron in that land the hearts of
well nigh all its people had been turned towards darkness. Therefore many of
those who sailed east in that time and made fortresses and dwellings upon the
coasts were already bent to his will, and they served him still gladly in
Middle-earth. But because of the power of Gil-galad these renegades, lords both
mighty and evil, for the most part took up their abodes in the southlands far
away; yet two there were, Herumor and Fuinur, who rose to power among the
Haradrim, a great and cruel people that dwelt in the wide lands south of Mordor
beyond the mouths of Anduin. When therefore Sauron saw his time he came
with great force against the new realm of Gondor, and he took Minas Ithil, and
he destroyed the White Tree of Isildur that grew there. But Isildur escaped,
and taking with him a seedling of the Tree he went with his wife and his sons
by ship down the River, and they sailed from the mouths of Anduin seeking
Elendil. Meanwhile Anбrion held Osgiliath against the Enemy, and for that time
drove him back to the mountains; but Sauron gathered his strength again, and
Anбrion knew that unless help should come his kingdom would not long stand. Now Elendil and Gil-galad took counsel
together, for they perceived that Sauron would grow too strong and would
overcome all his enemies one by one, if they did not unite against him.
Therefore they made that League which is called the Last Alliance, and they
marched east into Middle-earth gathering a great host of Elves and Men; and
they halted for a while at Imladris. It is said that the host that was there
assembled was fairer and more splendid in arms than any that has since been
seen in Middle-earth, and none greater has been mustered since the host of the
Valar went against Thangorodrim. From Imladris they crossed the Misty
Mountains by many passes and marched down the River Anduin, and so came at last
upon the host of Sauron on Dagorlad, the Battle Plain, which lies before the
gate of the Black Land. All living things were divided in that day, and some of
every kind, even of beasts and birds, were found in either host, save the Elves
only. They alone were undivided and followed Gil-galad. Of the Dwarves few
fought upon either side; but the kindred of Durin of Moria fought against
Sauron. The host of Gil-galad and Elendil had the
victory, for the might of the Elves was still great in those days, and the
Nъmenуreans were strong and tall, and terrible in their wrath. Against Aeglos
the spear of Gil-galad none could stand; and the sword of Elendil filled Orcs
and Men with fear, for it shone with the light of the sun and of the moon, and
it was named Narsil. Then Gil-galad and Elendil passed into
Mordor and encompassed the stronghold of Sauron; and they laid siege to it for
seven years, and suffered grievous loss by fire and by the darts and bolts of
the Enemy, and Sauron sent many sorties against them. There in the valley of
Gorgoroth Anбrion son of Elendil was slain, and many others. But at the last
the siege was so strait that Sauron himself came forth; and he wrestled with
Gil-galad and Elendil, and they both were slain, and the sword of Elendil broke
under him as he fell. But Sauron also was thrown down, and with the hilt-shard
of Narsil Isildur cut the Ruling Ring from the hand of Sauron and took it for
his own. Then Sauron was for that time vanquished, and he forsook his body, and
his spirit fled far away and hid in waste places; and he took no visible shape
again for many long years. Thus began the Third Age of the World, after
the Eldest Days and the Black Years; and there was still hope in that time and
the memory of mirth, and for long the White Tree of the Eldar flowered in the
courts of the Kings of Men, for the seedling which he had saved Isildur planted
in the citadel of Anor in memory of his brother, ere he departed from Gondor.
The servants of Sauron were routed and dispersed, yet they were not wholly
destroyed; and though many Men turned now from evil and became subject to the
heirs of Elendil, yet many more remembered Sauron in their hearts and hated the
kingdoms of the West. The Dark Tower was levelled to the ground, yet its
foundations remained, and it was not forgotten. The Nъmenуreans indeed set a
guard upon the land of Mordor, but none dared dwell there because of the terror
of the memory of Sauron, and because of the Mountain of Fire that stood nigh to
Barad-dыr; and the valley of Gorgoroth was filled with ash. Many of the Elves
and many of the Nъmenуreans and of Men who were their allies had perished in
the Battle and the Siege; and Elendil the Tall and Gil-galad the High King were
no more. Never again was such a host assembled, nor was there any such league
of Elves and Men; for after Elendil’s day the two kindreds became estranged. The Ruling Ring passed out of the knowledge
even of the Wise in that age; yet it was not unmade. For Isildur would not
surrender it to Elrond and Cнrdan who stood by. They counselled him to cast it
into the fire of Orodruin nigh at hand, in which it had been forged, so that it
should perish, and the power of Sauron be for ever diminished, and he should
remain only as a shadow of malice in the wilderness. But Isildur refused this
counsel, saying: ‘This I will have as were-gild for my father's death, and my
brothers. Was it not I that dealt the Enemy his death-blow?' And the Ring that
he held seemed to him exceedingly fair to look on; and he would not suffer it
to be destroyed. Taking it therefore he returned at first to Minas Anor, and
there planted the White Tree in memory of his brother Anбrion. But soon he
departed, and after he had given counsel to Meneldil, his brother's son, and
had committed to him the realm of the south, he bore away the Ring, to be an
heirloom of his house, and marched north from Gondor by the way that Elendil
had come; and he forsook the South Kingdom, for he purposed to take up his
father's realm in Eriador, far from the shadow of the Black Land. But Isildur was overwhelmed by a host of
Orcs that lay in wait in the Misty Mountains; and they descended upon him at
unawares in his camp between the Greenwood and the Great River, nigh to Loeg
Ningloron, the Gladden Fields, for he was heedless and set no guard, deeming
that all his foes were overthrown. There well nigh all his people were slain,
and among them were his three elder sons, Elendur, Aratan, and Ciryon; but his
wife and his youngest son, Valandil, he had left in Imladris when he went to
the war. Isildur himself escaped by means of the Ring, for when he wore it he
was invisible to all eyes; but the Orcs hunted him by scent and slot, until he
came to the River and plunged in. There the Ring betrayed him and avenged its
maker, for it slipped from his finger as he swam, and it was lost in the water.
Then the Orcs saw him as he laboured in the stream, and they shot him with many
arrows, and that was his end. Only three of his people came ever back over the
mountains after long wandering; and of these one was Ohtar his esquire, to
whose keeping he had given the shards of the sword of Elendil. Thus Narsil came in due time to the hand of
Valandil, Isildur's heir, in Imladris; but the blade was broken and its light
was extinguished, and it was not forged anew. And Master Elrond foretold that
this would not be done until the Ruling Ring should be found again and Sauron
should return; but the hope of Elves and Men was that these things might never
come to pass. Valandil took up his abode in Annъminas, but
his folk were diminished, and of the Nъmenуreans and of the Men of Eriador
there remained now too few to people the land or to maintain all the places
that Elendil had built; in Dagorlad, and in Mordor, and upon the Gladden Fields
many had fallen. And it came to pass after the days of Eдrendur, the seventh
king that followed Valandil, that the Men of Westernesse, the Dъnedain of the
North, became divided into petty realms and lordships, and their foes devoured
them one by one. Ever they dwindled with the years, until their glory passed,
leaving only green mounds in the grass. At length naught was left of them but a
strange people wandering secretly in the wild, and other men knew not their
homes nor the purpose of their journeys, and save in Imladris, in the house of
Elrond, their ancestry was forgotten. Yet the shards of the sword were
cherished during many lives of Men by the heirs of Isildur; and their line,
from father to son, remained unbroken. In the south the realm of Gondor endured,
and for a time its splendour grew, until it recalled the wealth and majesty of
Nъmenor ere it fell High towers the people of Gondor built, and strong places,
and havens of many ships; and the Winged Crown of the Kings of Men was held in
awe by people of many lands and tongues. For many a year the White Tree grew
before the King's house in Minas Anor, the seed of that tree which Isildur
brought out of the deeps of the sea from Nъmenor; and the seed before that came
from Avallуnл, and before that from Valinor in the Day before days when the world
was young. Yet at the last, in the wearing of the swift
years of Middle-earth, Gondor waned, and the line of Meneldil son of Anбrion
failed. For the blood of the Nъmenуreans became much mingled with that of other
men, and their power and wisdom was diminished, and their life-span was
shortened, and the watch upon Mordor slumbered. And in the days of Telemnar,
the third and twentieth of the line of Meneldil, a plague came upon dark winds
out of the east, and it smote the King and his children, and many of the people
of Gondor perished. Then the forts on the borders of Mordor were deserted, and
Minas Ithil was emptied of its people; and evil entered again into the Black
Land secretly, and the ashes of Gorgoroth were stirred as by a cold wind, for
dark shapes gathered there. It is said that these were indeed the Ъlairi, whom
Sauron called the Nazgыl, the Nine Ringwraiths that had long remained hidden,
but returned now to prepare the ways of their Master, for he had begun to grow
again. And in the days of Eдrnil they made their
first stroke, and they came by night out of Mordor over the passes of the
Mountains of Shadow, and took Minas Ithil for their abode; and they made it a
place of such dread that none dared to look upon it. Thereafter it was called
Minas Morgul, the Tower of Sorcery; and Minas Morgul was ever at war with Minas
Anor in the west. Then Osgiliath, which in the waning of the people had long
been deserted, became a place of ruins and a city of ghosts. But Minas Anor
endured, and it was named anew Minas Tirith, the Tower of Guard; for there the
kings caused to be built in the citadel a white tower, very tall and fair, and
its eye was upon many lands. Proud still and strong was that city, and in it
the White Tree still flowered for a while before the house of the Kings; and
there the remnant of the Nъmenуreans still defended the passage of the River
against the terrors of Minas Morgul and against all the enemies of the West,
Orcs and monsters and evil Men; and thus the lands behind them, west of Anduin,
were protected from war and destruction. Still Minas Tirith endured after the days of
Eдrnur, son of Eдrnil, and the last King of Gondor. He it was that rode alone
to the gates of Minas Morgul to meet the challenge of the Morgul-lord; and he
met him in single combat, but he was betrayed by the Nazgыl and taken alive
into the city of torment, and no living man saw him ever again. Now Eдrnur left
no heir, but when the line of the Kings failed the Stewards of the house of
Mardil the Faithful ruled the city and its ever-shrinking realm; and the
Rohirrim, the Horsemen of the North, came and dwelt in the green land of Rohan,
which before was named Calenardhon and was a part of the kingdom of Condor; and
the Rohirrim aided the Lords of the City in their wars. And northward, beyond
the Falls of Rauros and the Gates of Argonath, there were as yet other
defences, powers more ancient of which Men knew little, against whom the things
of evil did not dare to move, until in the ripening of time their dark lord, Sauron,
should come forth again. And until that time was come, never again after the
days of Eдrnil did the Nazgыl dare to cross the River or to come forth from
their city in shape visible to Men. In all the days of the Third Age, after the
fall of Gil-galad, Master Elrond abode in Imladris, and he gathered there many
Elves, and other folk of wisdom and power from among all the kindreds of
Middle-earth, and he preserved through many lives of Men the memory of all that
had been fair; and the house of Elrond was a refuge for the weary and the
oppressed, and a treasury of good counsel and wise lore. In that house were
harboured the Heirs of Isildur, in childhood and old age, because of the
kinship of their blood with Elrond himself, and because he knew in his wisdom
that one should come of their line to whom a great part was appointed in the
last deeds of that Age. And until that time came the shards of Elendil’s sword
were given into the keeping of Elrond, when the days of the Dъnedain darkened
and they became a wandering people. In Eriador Imladris was the chief dwelling
of the High Elves; but at the Grey Havens of Lindon there abode also a remnant
of the people of Gil-galad the Elvenking. At times they would wander into the
lands of Eriador, but for the most part they dwelt near the shores of the sea,
building and tending the elven-ships wherein those of the Firstborn who grew
weary of the world set sail into the uttermost West Cнrdan the Shipwright was
lord of the Havens and mighty among the Wise. Of the Three Rings that the Elves had
preserved unsullied no open word was ever spoken among the Wise, and few even
of the Eldar knew where they were bestowed. Yet after the fall of Sauron their
power was ever at work, and where they abode there mirth also dwelt and all things
were unstained by the griefs of time. Therefore ere the Third Age was ended the
Elves perceived that the Ring of Sapphire was with Elrond, in the fair valley
of Rivendell, upon whose house the stars of heaven most brightly shone; whereas
the Ring of Adamant was in the Land of Lуrien where dwelt the Lady Galadriel. A
queen she was of the woodland Elves, the wife of Celeborn of Doriath, yet she
herself was of the Noldor and remembered the Day before days in Valinor, and
she was the mightiest and fairest of all the Elves that remained in
Middle-earth. But the Red Ring remained hidden until the end, and none save
Elrond and Galadriel and Cнrdan knew to whom it had been committed. Thus it was that in two domains the bliss
and beauty of the Elves remained still undiminished while that Age endured: in
Imladris; and in Lothlуrien, the hidden land between Celebrant and Anduin,
where the trees bore flowers of gold and no Orc or evil thing dared ever come.
Yet many voices were heard among the Elves foreboding that, if Sauron should
come again, then either he would find the Ruling Ring that was lost, or at the
best his enemies would discover it and destroy it; but in either chance the
powers of the Three must then fail and all things maintained by them must fade,
and so the Elves should pass into the twilight and the Dominion of Men begin. And so indeed it has since befallen: the One
and the Seven and the Nine are destroyed; and the Three have passed away, and
with them the Third Age is ended, and the Tales of the Eldar in Middle-earth
draw to then-close. Those were the Fading Years, and in them the last flowering
of the Elves east of the Sea came to its winter. In that time the Noldor walked
still in the Hither Lands, mightiest and fairest of the children of the world,
and their tongues were still heard by mortal ears. Many things of beauty and
wonder remained on earth in that time, and many things also of evil and dread:
Orcs there were and trolls and dragons and fell beasts, and strange creatures
old and wise in the woods whose names are forgotten; Dwarves still laboured in
the hills and wrought with patient craft works of metal and stone that none now
can rival. But the Dominion of Men was preparing and all things were changing,
until at last the Dark Lord arose in Mirkwood again. Now of old the name of that forest was
Greenwood the Great, and its wide halls and aisles were the haunt of many
beasts and of birds of bright song; and there was the realm of King Thranduil
under the oak and the beech. But after many years, when well nigh a third of
that age of the world had passed, a darkness crept slowly through the wood from
the southward, and fear walked there in shadowy glades; fell beasts came
hunting, and cruel and evil creatures laid there their snares. Then the name of the forest was changed and
Mirkwood it was called, for the nightshade lay deep there, and few dared to
pass through, save only in the north where Thranduil’s people still held the
evil at bay. Whence it came few could tell, and it was long ere even the Wise
could discover it. It was the Shadow of Sauron and the sign of his return. For
coming out of the wastes of the East he took up his abode in the south of the
forest, and slowly he grew and took shape there again; in a dark hill he made
his dwelling and wrought there his sorcery, and all folk feared the Sorcerer of
Dol Guldur, and yet they knew not at first how great was their peril. Even as the first shadows were felt in
Mirkwood there appeared in the west of Middle-earth the Istari, whom Men called
the Wizards. None knew at that time whence they were, save Cнrdan of the
Havens, and only to Elrond and to Galadriel did he reveal that they came over
the Sea. But afterwards it was said among the Elves that they were messengers
sent by the Lords of the West to contest the power of Sauron, if he should
arise again, and to move Elves and Men and all living things of good will to
valiant deeds. In the likeness of Men they appeared, old but vigorous, and they
changed little with the years, and aged but slowly, though great cares lay on
them; great wisdom they had, and many powers of mind and hand. Long they
journeyed far and wide among Elves and Men, and held converse also with beasts
and with birds; and the peoples of Middle-earth gave to them many names, for their
true names they did not reveal. Chief among them were those whom the Elves
called Mithrandir and Curunнr, but Men in the North named Gandalf and Saruman.
Of these Curunнr was the eldest and came first, and after him came Mithrandir
and Radagast, and others of the Istari who went into the east of Middle-earth,
and do not come into these tales. Radagast was the friend of all beasts and
birds; but Curunнr went most among Men, and he was subtle in speech and skilled
in all the devices of smith-craft. Mithrandir was closest in counsel with
Elrond and the Elves. He wandered far in the North and West and made never in
any land any lasting abode; but Curunнr journeyed into the East, and when he
returned he dwelt at Orthanc in the Ring of Isengard, which the Nъmenуreans
made in the days of their power. Ever most vigilant was Mithrandir, and he it
was that most doubted the darkness in Mirkwood, for though many deemed that it
was wrought by the Ringwraiths, he feared that it was indeed the first shadow
of Sauron returning; and he went to Dol Guldur, and the Sorcerer fled from him,
and there was a watchful peace for a long while. But at length the Shadow
returned and its power increased; and in that time was first made the Council
of the Wise that is called the White Council, and therein were Elrond and
Galadriel and Cнrdan, and other lords of the Eldar, and with them were
Mithrandir and Curunнr. And Curunнr (that was Saruman the White) was chosen to
be their chief, for he had most studied the devices of Sauron of old. Galadriel
indeed had wished that Mithrandir should be the Lead of the Council, and
Saruman begrudged them that, for his pride and desire of mastery was grown
great; but Mithrandir refused the office, since he would have no ties and no
allegiance, save to those who sent him, and he would abide in no place nor be
subject to any summons. But Saruman now began to study the lore of the Rings of
Power, their making and their history. Now the Shadow grew ever greater, and the
hearts of Elrond and Mithrandir darkened. Therefore on a time Mithrandir at
great peril went again to Dol Guldur and the pits of the Sorcerer, and he
discovered the truth of his fears, and escaped. And returning to Elrond he
said: ‘True, alas, is our guess. This is not one
of the Ъlairi, as many have long supposed. It is Sauron himself who has taken
shape again and now grows apace; and he is gathering again all the Rings to his
hand; and he seeks ever for news of the One, and of the Heirs of Isildur, if
they live still on earth.’ And Elrond answered: ‘In the hour that
Isildur took the Ring and would not surrender it, this doom was wrought, that
Sauron should return.’ ‘Yet the One was lost,' said Mithrandir,
‘and while it still lies hid, we can master the Enemy, if we gather our
strength and tarry not too long.' Then the White Council was summoned; and
Mithrandir urged them to swift deeds, but Curunнr spoke against him, and
counselled them to wait yet and to watch. ‘For I believe not,’ said he, ‘that the One
will ever be found again in Middle-earth. Into Anduin it fell, and long ago, I
deem, it was rolled to the Sea. There it shall lie until the end, when all this
world is broken and the deeps are removed.' Therefore naught was done at that time,
though Elrond's heart misgave him, and he said to Mithrandir: 'Nonetheless I forbode that the One will yet
be found, and then war will arise again, and in that war this Age will be
ended. Indeed in a second darkness it will end, unless some strange chance
deliver us that my eyes cannot see.’ 'Many are the strange chances of fee world,’
said Mithrandir, 'and help oft shall come from the hands of the weak when the
Wise falter.' Thus the Wise were troubled, but none as yet
perceived that Curunнr had turned to dark thoughts and was already a traitor in
heart: for he desired that he and no other should find the Great Ring, so that
he might wield it himself and order all the world to his will Too long he had
studied the ways of. Sauron in hope to defeat him, and now he envied him as a
rival rather than hated his works. And he deemed that the Ring, which was
Sauron's, would seek for its master as he became manifest once more; but if he
were driven out again, then it would lie hid. Therefore he was willing to play
with peril and let Sauron be for a time, hoping by his craft to forestall both
his friends and the Enemy, when the Ring should appear. He set a watch upon the Gladden Fields; but
soon he discovered that the servants of Dol Guldur were searching all the ways
of the River in that region. Then he perceived that Sauron also had learned of
the manner of Isildur's end, and he grew afraid and withdrew to Isengard and
fortified it; and ever he probed deeper into the lore of the Rings of Power and
the art of their forging. But he spoke of none of this to the Council, hoping
still that he might be the first to hear news of the Ring. He gathered a great
host of spies, and many of these were birds; for Radagast lent him his aid,
divining naught of his treachery, and deeming that this was but part of the
watch upon the Enemy. But ever the shadow in Mirkwood grew deeper,
and to Dol Guldur evil things repaired out of all the dark places of the world;
and they were united again under one will, and their malice was directed
against the Elves and the survivors of Nъmenor. Therefore at last the Council
was again summoned and the lore of the Rings was much debated; but Mithrandir
spoke to the Council, saying: ‘It is not needed that the Ring should be
found, for while it abides on earth and is not unmade, still the power that it
holds will live, and Sauron will grow and have hope. The might of the Elves and
the Elf-friends is less now than of old. Soon he will be too strong for you,
even without the Great Ring; for he rules the Nine, and of the Seven he has
recovered three. We must strike.' To this Curunнr now assented, desiring that
Sauron should be thrust from Dol Guldur, which was nigh to the River, and
should have leisure to search there no longer. Therefore, for the last time, he
aided the Council, and they put forth their strength; and they assailed Dol
Guldur, and drove Sauron from his hold, and Mirkwood for a brief while was made
wholesome again. But their stroke was too late. For the Dark
Lord had foreseen it, and he had long prepared all his movements; and the
Ъlairi, his Nine Servants, had gone before him to make ready for his coming.
Therefore his flight was but a feint, and he soon returned, and ere the Wise
could prevent him he re-entered his kingdom in Mordor and reared once again the
dark towers of Barad-dыr. And in that year the White Council met for the last
time, and Curunнr withdrew to Isengard, and took counsel with none save
himself. Orcs were mustering, and far to the east and
the south the wild peoples were arming. Then in the midst of gathering fear and
the rumour of war the foreboding of Elrond was proved true, and the One Ring
was indeed found again, by a chance more strange than even Mithrandir had
foreseen; and it was hidden from Curunнr and from Sauron. For it had been taken
from Anduin long ere they sought for it, being found by one of the small
fisher-folk that dwelt by the River, ere the Kings failed in Condor; and by its
finder it was brought beyond search into dark hiding under the roots of the
mountains. There it dwelt, until even in the year of the assault upon Dol
Guldur it was found again, by a wayfarer, fleeing into the depths of the earth
from the pursuit of the Orcs, and passed into a far distant country, even to
the land of the Periannath, the Little People, the Halflings, who dwelt in the
west of Eriador. And ere that day they had been held of small account by Elves
and by Men, and neither Sauron nor any of the Wise save Mithrandir had in all
their counsels given thought to them. Now by fortune and his vigilance Mithrandir
first learned of the Ring, ere Sauron had news of it; yet he was dismayed and
in doubt. For too great was the evil power of this thing for any of the Wise to
wield, unless like Curunнr he wished himself to become a tyrant and a dark lord
in his turn; but neither could it be concealed from Sauron for ever, nor could
it be unmade by the craft of the Elves. Therefore with the help of the Dъnedain
of the North Mithrandir set a watch upon the land of the Periannath and bided
his time. But Sauron had many ears, and soon he heard rumour of the One Ring,
which above all things he desired, and he sent forth the Nazgыl to take it.
Then war was kindled, and in battle with Sauron the Third Age ended even as it
had begun. But those who saw the things that were done
in that time, deeds of valour and wonder, have elsewhere told the tale of the
War of the Ring, and how it ended both in victory unlocked for and in sorrow
long foreseen. Here let it be said that in those days the Heir of Isildur arose
in the North, and he took the shards of the sword of Elendil, and in Imladris
they were reforged; and he went then to war, a great captain of Men. He was
Aragorn son of Arathorn, the nine and thirtieth heir in the right line from
Isildur, and yet more like to Elendil than any before him. Battle there was in
Rohan, and Curunнr the traitor was thrown down and Isengard broken; and before
the City of Gondor a great field was fought, and the Lord of Morgul, Captain of
Sauron, there passed into darkness; and the Heir of Isildur led the host of the
West to the Black Gates of Mordor. In that last battle were Mithrandir, and the
sons of Elrond, and the King of Rohan, and lords of Gondor, and the Heir of
Isildur with the Dъnedain of the North. There at the last they looked upon
death and defeat, and all their valour was in vain; for Sauron was too strong.
Yet in that hour was put to the proof that which Mithrandir had spoken, and
help came from the hands of the weak when the Wise faltered. For, as many songs
have since sung, it was the Periannath, the Little People, dwellers in
hillsides and meadows, that brought them deliverance. For Frodo the Halfling, it is said, at the
bidding of Mithrandir took on himself the burden, and alone with his servant he
passed through peril and darkness and came at last in Sauron's despite even to
Mount Doom; and there into the Fire where it was wrought he cast the Great Ring
of Power, and so at last it was unmade and its evil consumed. Then Sauron failed, and he was utterly
vanquished and passed away like a shadow of malice; and the towers of Barad-dыr
crumbled in ruin, and at the rumour of their fall many lands trembled. Thus
peace came again, and a new Spring opened on earth; and the Heir of Isildur was
crowned King of Gondor and Arnor, and the might of the Dъnedain was lifted up
and their glory renewed. In the courts of Minas Anor the White Tree flowered
again, for a seedling was found by Mithrandir in the snows of Mindolluin that
rose tall and white above the City of Gondor; and while it still grew there the
Elder Days were not wholly forgotten in the hearts of the Kings. Now all these things were achieved for the
most part by the counsel and vigilance of Mithrandir, and in the last few days
he was revealed as a lord of great reverence, and clad in white he rode into
battle; but not until the time came for him to depart was it known that he had
long guarded the Red Ring of Fire. At the first that Ring had been entrusted to
Cнrdan, Lord of the Havens; but he had surrendered it to Mithrandir, for he
knew whence he came and whither at last he would return. ‘Take now this Ring,’ he said; 'for thy
labours and thy cares will be heavy, but in all it will support thee and defend
thee from weariness. For this is the Ring of Fire, and herewith, maybe, thou
shalt rekindle hearts to the valour of old in a world that grows chill. But as
for me, my heart is with the Sea, and I will dwell by the grey shores, guarding
the Havens until the last ship sails. Then I shall await thee.’ White was that ship and long was it
a-building, and long it awaited the end of which Cнrdan had spoken. But when
all these things were done, and the Heir of Isildur had taken up the lordship
of Men, and the dominion of the West had passed to him, then it was made plain
that the power of the Three Rings also was ended, and to the Firstborn the
world grew old and grey. In that time the last of the Noldor set sail from the
Havens and left Middle-earth for ever. And latest of all the Keepers of the
Three Rings rode to the Sea, and Master Elrond took there the ship that Cнrdan
had made ready. In the twilight of autumn it sailed out of Mithlond, until the
seas of the Bent World fell away beneath it, and the winds of the round sky
troubled it no more, and borne upon the high airs above the mists of the world
it passed into the Ancient West, and an end was come for the Eldar of story and
of song. NOTE ON PRONUNCIATION The following
note is intended simply to clarify a few main features in the pronunciation of
names in the Elvish languages, and is by no means exhaustive. For full
information on the subject see The Lord
of the Rings Appendix E. CONSONANTS
C always
has the value of k, never of s; thus Celeborn is 'Keleborn'
not 'Seleborn'. In a few cases, as Tulkas, Kementбri a k has been used in the spelling in this book. CH always
has the value of ch in Scotch loch or German buch, never that of ch in
English church. Examples are Carcharoth. Erchamion. DH is
always used to represent the sound of a voiced ('soft') th in English, that is the th
in then, not the th in thin. Examples are Maedhros, Aredhel, Haudh-en-Arwen. G always
has the sound of English g in get; thus Region, Eregion are not pronounced like English region, and the first syllable of Ginglith is as in English begin not as in gin. Consonants written twice are pronounced long; thus Yavanna has the long n heard in English unnamed, penknife, not the short n in unaimed, penny. VOWELS
AI has the sound of
English eye; thus the second syllable
of Edain is like English dine,
not Dane. AU has
the value of English ow in town; thus the first syllable of Aulл is like English owl, and the first syllable of Sauron is like English sour, not sore. EI as
in Teiglin has the sound of English grey. IE should
not be pronounced as in English piece, but
with both the vowels i and e sounded, and run together; thus Ni-enna, not 'Neena'. UI as
in Uinen has the sound of English ruin. AE as
in Aegnor, Nirnaeth, and OE as in Noegyth, Loeg, are combinations of the
individual vowels, a–e, o–e, but ae may be pronounced in the same way as ai, and oe as in English toy EA and EO are not run together, but constitute two syllables; these
combinations are written ea and eo (or, when they begin names, Eд and Eo: Eдrendil, Eцnwл). U in
names like Hъrin, Tъrin, Tъna should
be pronounced oo; thus 'Toorin' not 'Tyoorin'. ER, IR, UR before a consonant (as in Nerdanel, Cнrdan, Gurthang) or at the end of a word (as in Ainur) should not be pronounced as in
English fern, fir, fur, but as in
English air, eer, oor. E at
the end of words is always pronounced as a distinct vowel, and in this position
is written e. It is likewise always
pronounced in the middle of words like Celeborn,
Menegroth. A circumflex accent in stressed monosyllables in Sindarin denotes the
particularly long vowel heard in such words (thus Hоn Hъrin); but in Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean) and Khuzdul (Dwarvish)
names the circumflex is simply used to denote long vowels. INDEX
OF NAMES Since the number of names in the book is very
large, this index provides, in addition to page-references, a short statement
concerning each person and place. These statements are not epitomes of all that
is said in the text, and for most of the central figures in the narrative are
kept extremely brief; but such an index is inevitably bulky, and I have reduced
its size in various ways. The chief of these concerns the fact
that very often the English translation of an Elvish name is also used as the
name independently; thus for example the dwelling of King Thingol is called
both Menegroth and 'The Thousand
Caves' (and also both together). In most such cases I have combined the Elvish
name and its translated meaning under one entry, with the result that the
page-references are not restricted to the name that appears as the heading
(e.g., those under Echoriath include
those to 'Encircling Mountains'). The English renderings are given separate
headings, but only with a simple direction to the main entry, and only if they
occur independently. Words in inverted commas are translations; many of these
occur in the text (as Tol Eressлa
'the Lonely Isle'), but I have added a great many others. Information about
some names that are not translated is contained in the Appendix. With the many titles and formal
expressions in English whose Elvish originals are not given, such as 'the Elder
King' and 'the Two Kindreds', I have been selective, but the great majority are
registered. The references are in intention complete (and sometimes include
pages where the subject of the entry occurs but is not actually mentioned by
name) except in a very few cases where the name occurs very frequently indeed,
as Beleriand, Valar. Here the word passim is used, but selected references
are given to important passages; and in the entries for some of the Noldorin
princes the many occurrences of the name that relate only to their sons or
their houses have been eliminated. References to The Lord of the Rings are by title of the volume, book, and
chapter. Adanedhel 'Elf-Man', name given to Tъrin in
Nargothrond. 258 Adunakhфr 'Lord of the West', name taken by the
nineteenth King of Nъmenor, the first to do so in the Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean)
tongue; his name in Quenya was Herunъmen. 330 Adurant The sixth and most southerly of the
tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand. The name means 'double stream', referring
to its divided course about the island of Tol Galen. 147, 229, 290 Aeglos 'Snow-point', the spear of Gil-galad.
364 Aegnor The fourth son of Finarfin,
who with his brother Angrod held the northern slopes of Dorthonion; slain in
the Dagor Bragollach. The name means 'Fell Fire', 64,94, 141, 180-82 Aelin-uial 'Meres of Twilight', where Aros
flowed into Sirion. 133,145, 203, 267, 285 Aerandir 'Sea-wanderer', one of the three
mariners who accompanied Eдrendil on his voyages. 307 Aerin A kinswoman of Hъrin in
Dor-lуmin; taken as wife by Brodda the Easterling; aided Morwen after the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 243, 264 Aftercomers The Younger Children of Ilъvatar,
Men; translation of Hildor, 92-3, 114 Agarwaen 'Blood-stained', name given to
himself by Tъrin when he came to Nargothrond. 257 Aglarond 'The Glittering Cavern' of Helm's
Deep in Ered Nimrais (see The Two Towers III
8). 361 Aglon 'The Narrow Pass', between Dorthonion
and the heights to the west of Himring. 147, 161, 183-4 Ainulindalл 'The Music of the Ainur', also called The (Great) Music, The (Great) Song.
3-9, 18, 21, 37-8, 43-4, 50, 74, 121, 251. Also the name of the account of
Creation said to have been composed by Rъmil of Tirion in the Elder Days. 82 Ainur 'The Holy Ones' (singular Ainu)', the first beings created by
Ilъvatar, the 'order' of the Valar and Maiar, made before Eд. 3-9, 18, 21, 41,
44, 58, 121, 251, 288 Akallabкth 'The Downfallen', Adыnaic
(Nъmenуrean) word equivalent in meaning to Quenya Atalantл. 347 Also the title of the account of the Downfall of
Nъmenor. 359,360 Alcarinquл 'The Glorious', name of a star. 48 Alcarondas The great ship of Ar-Pharazфn in
which he sailed to Aman. 343 Aldaron 'Lord of Trees', a Quenya name
of the Vala Oromл; cf. Tauron. 22 Aldudйniл 'Lament for the Two Trees', made by
a Vanyarin Elf named Elemmнrл. 84 Almaren The first abode of the Valar in Arda, before
the second onslaught of Melkor: an isle in a great lake in the midst of
Middle-earth. 30-1, 117 Alqualondл 'Haven of the Swans', the chief city
and haven of the Teleri on the shores of Aman. 63-5, 79, 97, 100, 120, 130,
154, 188, 309, 311 Aman 'Blessed, free from evil',
the name of the land in the West, beyond the Great Sea, in which the Valar
dwelt after they had left the Isle of Almaren. Often referred to as the Blessed Realm. Passim; see
especially 32, 66, 326 Amandil 'Lover of Aman'; the last lord of Andъniл in
Nъmenor, descendant of Elros and father of Elendil; set out on a voyage to
Valinor and did not return. 335-7, 340-1, 346, 362 Amariл Vanyarin Elf, beloved of
Finrod Felagund, who remained in Valinor. 155 Amlach Son of Imlach son of Marach; a
leader of dissension among the Men of Estolad who, repenting, took service with
Maedhros. 173-4 Amon Amarth 'Mount Doom', the name given to Orodruin
when its fires awoke again after Sauron's return from Nъmenor. 363, 377 Amon Ereb 'The Lonely Hill' (also simply Ereb), between Ramdal and the river
Gelion in East Beleriand. 110, 146, 184 Amon Ethir 'The Hill of Spies', raised by Finrod
Felagund to the east of the doors of Nargothrond. 267-8 Amon Gwareth The hill upon which Gondolin was built, in
the midst of the plain of Tumladen. 151, 163, 296, 299 Amon Obel A hill in the midst of the Forest of
Brethil, on which was built Ephel Brandir. 249, 266, 270 Amon Rыdh 'The Bald Hill', a lonely height in
the lands south of Brethil; abode of Mоm, and lair of Tъrin's outlaw band.
246-52, 284 Amon Sыl 'Hill of the Wind', in the Kingdom
of Arnor ('Weathertop' in The Lord of the
Rings). 362 Amon Uilos Sindarin name of Oiolossл. 32 Amras Twin-brother of Amrod,
youngest of the sons of Fлanor; slain with Amrod in the attack on Eдrendil's
people at the Mouths of Sirion. 63, 93, 148, 170, 184, 305 Amrod See Amras. Anach Pass leading down from
Taur-nu-Fuin (Dorthonion) at the western end of Ered Gorgoroth. 245-6, 251-2,
299 Anadыnл 'Westernesse': name of Nъmenor
in the Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean) tongue (see
Nъmenor). 322 Anar Quenya name of the Sun.
114-6 Anбrion Younger son of Elendil, who
with his father and his brother Isildur escaped from the Drowning of Nъmenor
and founded in Middle-earth the Nъmenуrean realms in exile; lord of Minas Anor;
slain in the siege of Barad-dыr. 336, 346, 360-8 Anarrнma Name of a constellation. 48 Ancalagon Greatest of the winged dragons of
Morgoth, destroyed by Eдrendil. 312 Andor 'The Land of Gift':
Nъmenor. 321, 345, 347 Andram 'The Long Wall', name of the
dividing fall running across Beleriand. 109, 146 Androth Caves in the bills of Mithrim
where Tuor was fostered by the Grey-elves. 294 Anduin 'The Long River', east of the
Misty Mountains; referred to also as the
Great River and the River. 55,107,
329, 360-1, 364, 366, 369, 374-5 Andъniл City and haven on the west coast of Nъmenor.
322, 331-2, 335. For the Lords of Andъniл see 331 Anfauglir A name of the wolf Carcharoth,
translated in the text as 'Jaws of Thirst'. 218 Anfauglith Name of the plain of Ard-galen
after its desolation by Morgoth in the Battle of Sudden Flame; translated in
the text as 'the Gasping Dust'. Cf. Dor-nu-Fauglith.
181, 194, 215, 232-4, 241, 254-5, 261, 280, 311 Angainor The chain wrought by Aulл with
which Melkor was twice bound. 52, 312 Angband 'Iron Prison, Hell of Iron', the
great dungeon-fortress of Morgoth in the Northwest of Middle-earth. Passim; see especially 47, 90, 109, 139,
217. The Siege of Angband 36, 139-40,
144, 148, 158, 182, 192, 202 Anghabar 'Iron-delvings', a mine in the
Encircling Mountains about the plain of Gondolin. 166 Anglachel The sword made from meteoric iron
that Thingol received from Eцl and which he gave to Beleg; after its reforging
for Tъrin named Gurthang. 247, 253-57 Angrenost 'Iron Fortress', Nъmenуrean
fortress on the west borders of Gondor, afterwards inhabited by the wizard
Curunнr (Saruman); see Isengard. 361 Angrim Father of Gorlim the Unhappy.
195 Angrist 'Iron-cleaver', the knife
made by Telchar of Nogrod, taken from Curufin by Beren and used by him to cut
the Silmaril from Morgoth's crown. 215, 219 Angrod The third son of Finarfin, who
with his brother Aegnor held the northern slopes of Dorthonion; slain in the
Dagor Bragollach. 64, 94, 130-1, 141, 154, 180-2, 260 Anguirel Eцl's sword,
made of the same metal as Anglachel. 247 Annael Grey-elf of Mithrim,
fosterfather of Tuor. 294 Annatar 'Lord of Gifts', name given to
himself by Sauron in the Second Age, in that time when he appeared in a fair
form among the Eldar who remained in Middle-earth. 355 Annon-in-Gelydh 'Gate of the Noldor', entrance to a
subterranean watercourse in the western hills of Dor-lуmin, leading to Cirith
Ninniach. 294 Annъminas 'Tower of the West' (i.e. of
Westernesse, Nъmenor); city of the Kings of Arnor beside Lake Nenuial. 360,
362, 367 Anor See Minas Anor. Apanуnar 'The Afterborn', an Elvish name
for Men. 119 Aradan Sindarin name of Malach, son
of Marach. 172, 177 Aragorn The thirty-ninth Heir of Isildur in the direct
line; King of the reunited realms of Arnor and Gondor after the War of the
Ring; wedded Arwen, daughter of Elrond. 377. Called the Heir of Isildur 377 Araman Barren wasteland on the coast
of Aman, between the Pelуri and the Sea, extending northward to the Helcaraxл.
79, 88, 97,101, 116-7,123, 129, 297 Aranel Name of Dior Thingol's Heir.
229 Aranrъth 'King's Ire', the name of
Thingol's sword. Aranrъth survived the ruin of Doriath and was possessed by the
Kings of Nъmenor. 247 Aranwл Elf of Gondolin, father of
Voronwл. 295 Aratan Second son of Isildur, slain
with him at the Gladden Fields. 366 Aratar 'The Exalted', the eight
Valar of greatest power. 23 Arathorn Father of Aragorn. 377 Arda 'The Realm', name of the
Earth as the Kingdom of Manwл. Passim;
see especially 8, 12 Ard-galen The great grassy plain north of
Dorthonion, called after its desolation Anfauglith
and Dor-nu-Fauglith. The name means
'the Green Region'; cf. Calenardhon
(Rohan). 124, 135-6, 144, 181 Aredhel 'Noble Elf', the sister of
Turgon of Gondolin, who was ensnared by Eцl in Nan Elmoth and bore to him
Maeglin; called also Ar-Feiniel, the
White Lady of the Noldor, the White Lady of Gondolin. 64, 156-65, 247 Ar-Feiniel See Aredhel. Ar-Gimilzфr Twenty-second King of Nъmenor,
persecutor of the Elendili. 331-2 Argonath 'King-stones', the Pillars of the
Kings, great carvings of Isildur and Anбrion on the Anduin at the entrance to
the northern bounds of Gondor (see The
Fellowship of the Ring II 9). 361, 369 Arien A Maia, chosen by the
Valar to guide the vessel of the Sun. 114-7 Armenelos City of the Kings in Nъmenor. 322,
324, 333-7, 361 Arminas See Gelmir
(2). Arnor 'Land of the King', the
northern realm of the Nъmenуreans in Middle-earth, established by Elendil after
his escape from the Drowning of Nъmenor. 361-2, 377 Aros The southern river of
Doriath. 109, 131, 145, 147-8, 157, 158, 176, 287-9 Arossiach The Fords of Aros, near the
north-eastern edge of Doriath. 145, 158, 162 Ar-Pharazфn 'The Golden', twenty-fourth and last
King of Nъmenor; named in Quenya Tar-Calion;
captor of Sauron, by whom he was seduced; commander of the great fleet that
went against Aman. 333-47 Ar-Sakalthфr Father of Ar-Gimilzфr. 331 Arthad One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Arvernien The coastlands of Middle-earth
west of Sirion's mouths. Cf. Bilbo's song at Rivendell: 'Eдrendil was a mariner
that tarried in Arvernien…' (The
Fellowship of the Ring II 1). 302 Ar-Zimraphel See Mнriel (2). Ascar The most northerly of the
tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand (afterwards called Rathlуriel). The name means 'rushing, impetuous'. 104, 146-8, 167,
174, 291 Astaldo 'The Valiant', name of the
Vala Tulkas. 22 Atalantл 'The Downfallen'. Quenya word
equivalent in meaning to Akallabкth,
347 Atanamir See Tar-Atanamir. Atanatбri 'Fathers of Men'; see Atani. 120, 232 Atani 'The Second People', Men
(singular Atan). For the origin of
the name see 171; since in Beleriand for a long time the only Men known to the
Noldor and Sindar were those of the Three Houses of the Elf-friends, this name
(in the Sindarin form Adan, plural Edain) became specially associated with
them, so that it was seldom applied to other Men who came later to Beleriand,
or who were reported to be dwelling beyond the Mountains. But in the speech of
Ilъvatar (41) the meaning is 'Men (in general)'. 38, 119, 171; Edain, 171-2, 176-9, 189-90, 238, 241,
292, 319-21, 347 Aulл A Vala, one of the
Aratar, the smith and master of crafts, spouse of Yavanna; see especially 20,
23, and for his making of the Dwarves 40 ff., 8-9, 18, 20, 23-4, 26, 30, 35,
37, 40-5, 51, 54, 62, 65, 69, 75, 87, 95, 104, 113, 321 Avallуnл Haven and city of the Eldar on
Tol Eressлa, so named, according to the Akallabкth,
'for it is of all cities the nearest to Valinor'. 320, 325, 332, 344, 348-9,
362, 368 Avari 'The Unwilling, the
Refusers', the name given to all those Elves who refused to join the westward
march from Cuiviйnen. See Eldar and Dark Elves. 53, 107, 113,355 Avathar 'The Shadows', the forsaken
land on the coast of Aman south of the Bay of Eldamar, between the Pelуri and
the Sea, where Melkor met Ungoliant 80-1, 88,116 Azaghвl Lord of the Dwarves of
Belegost; wounded Glaurung in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, and was killed by him.
236 Balan The name of Bлor the Old
before he took service with Finrod. 170 Balar The great bay to the south
of Beleriand into which the river Sirion flowed. 52, 56, 59, 60, 142. Also the
isle in the bay, said to have been the eastern horn of Tol Eressлa that broke
away, where Cнrdan and Gil-galad dwelt after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 59, 105,
144, 192, 239, 302, 304-5 Balrog 'Demon of Might', Sindarin
form (Quenya Valarauko) of the name
of the demons of fire that served Morgoth. 26, 46, 90, 125, 144, 182, 202, 235,
300-1 Barad-dыr 'The Dark Tower' of Sauron in
Mordor. 329, 334, 347, 363, 365, 375, 377 Barad Eithel 'Tower of the Well', the fortress of
the Noldor at Eithel Sirion. 233 Barad Nimras 'White Horn Tower', raised by Finrod
Felagund on the cape west of Eglarest, 142, 239 Baragund Father of Morwen the wife of
Hъrin; nephew of Barahir and one of his twelve companions on Dorthonion. 177,
187, 194, 242, 311 Barahir Father of Beren; rescued
Finrod Felagund in the Dagor Bragollach, and received from him his ring; slain
on Dorthonion. For the later history of the ring of Barahir, which became an
heirloom of the House of Isildur, see The
Lord of the Rings Appendix A (I, iii). 121, 177, 182-3, 186-7, 194-7,
201-5, 226, 229, 243. 285, 311 Baran Elder son of Bлor the Old.
170-1 Baranduin 'The Brown River' in Eriador,
flowing into the Sea south of the Blue Mountains; the Brandywine of the Shire
in The Lord of the Rings. 360 Bar-en-Danwedh 'House of Ransom', the name that Mоm the Dwarf
gave to his dwelling on Amon Rыdh when he yielded it to Tъrin. 248, 252 Battles of Beleriand The first battle: 96.
The second battle (the Battle-under-Stars): see Dagor-nuin-Giliath. The third battle (the Glorious Battle): see Dagor Aglareb. The fourth battle (the
Battle of Sudden Flame): see Dagor
Bragollach. The fifth battle (Unnumbered Tears): see Nirnaeth Arnoediad. The Great Battle: 311-2 Bauglir A name of Morgoth: 'the
Constrainer'. 120, 243, 259, 286, 315 Beleg A great archer and chief
of the marchwardens of Doriath; called Cъthalion
'Strongbow'; friend and companion of Tъrin, by whom he was slain. 190, 225-6,
230, 243-8, 251-7, 278 Belegaer 'The Great Sea' of the West,
between Middle-earth and Aman. Named Belegaer
32, 100, 295; but very frequently called the
(Great) Sea, also the Western Sea
and the Great Water. Belegost 'Great Fortress', one of the two
cities of the Dwarves in the Blue Mountains; translation into Sindarin of
Dwarvish Gabilgathol. See Mickleburg. 104, 107, 132, 158, 231,
236, 250, 285, 288 Belegund Father of Rнan the wife of Huor;
nephew of Barahir and one of his twelve companions on Dorthonion. 177, 187,
194, 242 Beleriand The name was said to have
signified 'the country of Balar', and to have been given at first to the lands
about the mouths of Sirion that faced the Isle of Balar. Later the name spread
to include all the ancient coast of the Northwest of Middle-earth south of the
Firth of Drengist, and all the inner lands south of Hithlum and eastwards to
the feet of the Blue Mountains, divided by the river Sirion into East and West
Beleriand. Beleriand was broken in the turmoils at the end of the First Age,
and invaded by the sea, so that only Ossiriand (Lindon) remained. Passim; see especially 142-8, 313, 354-5 Belfalas Region on the southern coast of
Gondor looking on to the great bay of the same name; Bay of Belfalas 361 Belthil 'Divine radiance', the image
of Telperion made by Turgon in Gondolin. 151 Belthronding The bow of Beleg Cъthalion, which was
buried with him. 256 Bлor Called the Old; leader of
the first Men to enter Beleriand; vassal of Finrod Felagund; progenitor of the
House of Bлor (called also the Eldest
House of Men and the First House of
the Edain); see Balan. 167-72,
177-80, 204. House of, People of, Bлor
172-4, 177, 183, 189-90, 194 Bereg Grandson of Baran son of
Bлor the Old (this is not stated in the text); a leader of dissension among the
Men of Estolad; went back over the mountains into Eriador. 173-4 Beren Son of Barahir; cut a
Silmaril from Morgoth's crown to be the bride-price of Lъthien Thingol's
daughter, and was slain by Carcharoth the wolf of Angband; but returning from
the dead, alone of mortal Men, lived afterwards with Lъthien on Tol Galen in
Ossiriand, and fought with the Dwarves at Sarn Athrad. Great-grandfather of
Elrond and Elros and ancestor of the Nъmenуrean Kings. Called also Camlost, Erchamion, and One-hand. 121, 147, 177, 187, 194-206,
208-30, 242, 258, 285, 290-1, 305 Black Land See Mordor. Black Sword See Mormegil. Black Years See 359, 365 Blessed Realm See Aman. Blue Mountains See Ered
Luin and Ered Lindon. Bor A chieftain of the Easterlings,
follower with his three sons of Maedhros and Maglor. 189, 231. Sons of Bor 235 Borlach One of the three sons of Bor;
slain with his brothers in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189 Borlad One of the three sons of Bor;
see Borlach. Boromir Great-grandson of Bлor the Old,
grandfather of Barahir father of Beren; first lord of Ladros. 177 Boron Father of Boromir. 177 Borthand One of the three sons of Bor; see
Borlach. Bragollach See Dagor Bragollach. Brandir Called the Lame; ruler of the
People of Haleth after the death of Handir his father; enamoured of Nienor;
slain by Tъrin. 266, 271-7 Bregolas Father of Baragund and Belegund;
slain in the Dagor Bragollach. 177,182, 187 Bregor Father of Barahir and
Bregolas. 177 Brethil The forest between the rivers
Teiglin and Sirion, dwelling-place of the Haladin (the People of Haleth). 142,
176, 187, 190-2, 214, 231, 234, 238, 246, 249, 251, 260, 266, 269-72, 277-8,
282-3 Bridge of Esgalduin See Iant Iaur. Brilthor 'Glittering Torrent', the
fourth of the tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand. 147 Brithiach The ford over Sirion north of the
Forest of Brethil. 157, 163, 176, 190, 253, 281, 282 Brithombar The northern of the Havens of the
Falas on the coast of Beleriand. 60, 125, 142, 239, 304 Brithon The river that flowed into the
Great Sea at Brithombar. 239 Brodda An Easterling in Hithlum after
the Nirnaeth Arnoediad who took as wife Aerin, kinswoman of Hъrin; slain by
Tъrin. 243, 264 Cabed-en-Aras Deep gorge in the river Teiglin, where
Tъrin slew Glaurung, and where Nienor leapt to her death; see Cabed Naeramarth. 272, 275, 278 Cabed Naeramarth 'Leap of Dreadful
Doom', name given to Cabed-en-Aras
after Nienor leapt from its cliffs. 276, 282 Calacirya 'Cleft of Light', the pass made in
the mountains of the Pelуri, in which was raised the green hill of Tъna. 62,
65, 79, 101, 117-8, 307 Calaquendi 'Elves of the Light', those Elves who
lived or had lived in Aman (the High Elves). See Moriquendi and Dark Elves,
54, 58, 121, 125 Calenardhon 'The Green Province', name of Rohan when
it was the northern part of Gondor; cf. Ard-galen.
369 Camlost 'Empty-handed', name taken by
Beren after his return to King Thingol without the Silmaril. 221, 226 Caragdыr The precipice on the north side of
Amon Gwareth (the hill of Gondolin) from which Eцl was cast to his death. 165 Caranthir The fourth son of Fлanor, called
the Dark; 'the harshest of the brothers and the most quick to anger'; ruled in
Thargelion; slain in the assault on Doriath. 63, 93, 131-2, 148, 154, 158, 171,
184, 189, 292 Carcharoth The great wolf of Angband that bit
off the hand of Beren bearing the Silmaril; slain by Huan in Doriath. The name
is translated in the text as 'the Red Maw'. Called also Anfauglir. 218-20, 223-6 Cardolan Region in the south of Eriador, a
part of the Kingdom of Arnor. 360 Carnil Name of a (red) star. 48 Celeborn (1) 'Tree of Silver', name of the Tree of
Tol Eressлa, a scion of Galathilion. 62,
324 Celeborn (2) Elf of Doriath, kinsman of Thingol;
wedded Galadriel and with her remained in Middle-earth after the end of the
First Age. 134-5, 290, 315, 370 Celebrant 'Silver Lode', river running from
Mirrormere through Lothlуrien to join the Anduin. 370 Celebrimbor 'Hand of Silver', son of Curufin, who
remained in Nargothrond when his father was expelled. In the Second Age
greatest of the smiths of Eregion; maker of the Three Rings of the Elves; slain
by Sauron. 214, 355, 357 Celebrindal 'Silverfoof'; see Idril. Celebros 'Silver Foam' or 'Silver Rain',
a stream in Brethil falling down to Teiglin near the Crossings. 270 Celegorm The third son of Fлanor, called
the Fair; until the Dagor Bragollach lord of the region of Himlad with Curufin
his brother; dwelt in Nargothrond and imprisoned Lъthien; master of Huan the
wolfhound; slain by Dior in Menegroth. 63, 65-6, 93, 124, 147, 157-8, 161, 183,
204-6, 208-9, 213-5, 223, 230, 292, 355 Celon River flowing southwest
from the Hill of Himring, a tributary of Aros. The name means 'stream flowing
down from heights'. 109, 148, 158, 161, 170, 176, 188 Children of Ilъvatar Also Children of Eru: translations of Hini Ilъvataro, Eruhini; the Firstborn
and the Followers, Elves and Men. Also The
Children, Children of the Earth, Children of the World. Passim; see
especially 7-8, 37-8 Cнrdan 'The Shipwright'; Telerin
Elf, lord of the Falas (coasts of West Beleriand); at the destruction of the
Havens after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad escaped with Gil-galad to the Isle of
Balar; during the Second and Third Ages keeper of the Grey Havens in the Gulf
of Lhыn; at the coming of Mithrandir entrusted to him Narya, the Ring of Fire.
60, 103-4, 110, 124, 133, 142, 153, 194, 239-40, 260, 302, 304-5, 315, 366,
370-3, 378 Cirith Ninniach 'Rainbow Cleft', by which Tuor came to the
Western Sea; see Annon-in-Gelydh. 294 Cirith Thoronath 'Eagles' Cleft', a high pass in
the mountains north of Gondolin, where Glorfindel fought with a Balrog and fell
into the abyss. 301 Cirth The Runes, first devised
by Daeron of Doriath. 108 Ciryon Third son of Isildur, slain
with him at the Gladden Fields. 366 Corollaнrл 'The Green Mound' of the Two Trees
in Valinor; also called Ezellohar. 33 Crissaegrim The mountain-peaks south of Gondolin,
where were the eyries of Thorondor. 144, 186, 191, 221, 246, 281 Crossings of Teiglin In the southwest of the
Forest of Brethil, where the old road southward from the Pass of Sirion crossed
the Teiglin. 176, 252, 267, 269, 275, 277, 282 Cuiviйnen 'Water of Awakening', the lake in
Middle-earth where the first Elves awoke, and where they were found by Oromл.
48, 50-4, 57, 92, 114, 288 Culъrien A name of Laurelin. 33 Curufin The fifth son of Fлanor,
called the Crafty; father of Celebrimbor. For the origin of his name see Fлanor; and for his history see Celegorm. 63, 93, 147, 157, 161-2, 183,
204-5, 208-9, 213-5, 222-3, 230,292, 355 Curufinwл See Fлanor. 67, 75 Curunнr 'The one of cunning devices'.
Elvish name of Saruman, one of the Istari (Wizards). 372-7 Cъthalion 'Strongbow'; see Beleg. Daeron Minstrel and chief loremaster
of King Thingol; deviser of the Cirth (Runes); enamoured of Lъthien and twice
betrayed her. 108, 133, 200, 208, 222, 314 Dagnir One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Dagnir Glaurunga 'Glaurung's Bane',
Tъrin. 177, 278 Dagor Aglareb 'The Glorious Battle', third of the great
battles in the Wars of Beleriand. 135-6, 139, 149 Dagor Bragollach 'The Battle of
Sudden Flame' (also simply the Bragollach),
fourth of the great battles in the Wars of Beleriand. 181, 187, 190, 193, 230,
233, 239, 260 Dagorlad 'Battle Plain', the place of the
great battle north of Mordor between Sauron and the Last Alliance of Elves and
Men at the end of the Second Age. 364, 367 Dagor-nuin-Giliath 'The
Battle-under-Stars', the second battle in the Wars of Beleriand, fought in
Mithrim after the coming of Fлanor to Middle-earth. 124 Dairuin One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Dark Elves In the language of Aman all Elves
that did not cross the Great Sea were Dark Elves (Moriquendi), and the term
is sometimes used thus, 121, 131; when Caranthir called Thingol a Dark Elf it
was intended opprobriously, and was especially so, since Thingol had been to
Aman 'and was not accounted among the Moriquendi' (56). But in the period of
the Exile of the Noldor it was often used of the Elves of Middle-earth other
than the Noldor and the Sindar, and is then virtually equivalent to Avari (120,
146, 168). Different again is the title Dark Elf of the Sindarin Elf Eцl, 158,
162, 247; but at 164 Turgon no doubt meant that Eцl was of the Moriquendi. Dark Lord, The The term is used of Morgoth, 280, and of
Sauron, 359, 371, 375 Day of Flight See 359 Deathless Lands See Undying
Lands. Deldъwath One of the later names of Dorthonion
(Taur-nu-Fuin), meaning 'Horror of Night-shadow'. 186 Denethor Son of Lenwл; leader of the
Nandorin Elves that came at last over the Blue Mountains and dwelt in
Ossiriand; slain on Amon Ereb in the First Battle of Beleriand. 56, 108-9,146 Dimbar The land between the rivers
Sirion and Mindeb. 144, 157, 191, 214, 246-7, 251-3, 281 Dimrost The falls of Celebros in the
Forest of Brethil; translated in the text as 'the Rainy Stair'. Afterwards
called Nen Girith. 270 Dior Called Aranel, and also Eluchнl 'Thingol's Heir'; son of Beren and Lъthien and father of
Elwing, Elrond's mother; came to Doriath from Ossiriand after the death of
Thingol, and received the Silmaril after the death of Beren and Lъthien; slain
in Menegroth by the sons of Fлanor. 229, 290-3, 297, 302, 305, 310, 314 Dispossessed, The The House of
Fлanor. 99, 130 Del Guldur 'Hill of Sorcery', fastness of the
Necromancer (Sauron) in southern Mirkwood in the Third Age. 372-5 Dolmed 'Wet Head' a great mountain in
the Ered Luin, near the Dwarf-cities of Nogrod and Belegost 104, 110, 236, 290 Dor Caranthir 'Land of Caranthir'; see Thargelion. 148, 174, 184 Dor-Cъarthol 'Land of Bow and Helm', name of the
country defended by Beleg and Tъrin from their lair on Amon Rыdh. 252 Dor Daedeloth 'Land of the Shadow of Horror', the land of
Morgoth in the north. 124, 127, 130 Dor Dнnen 'The Silent Land', where nothing
dwelt, between the upper waters of Esgalduin and Aros. 145 Dor Firn-i-Guinar 'Land of the Dead
that Live', name of that region in Ossiriand where Beren and Lъthien dwelt
after their return. 229, 291 Doriath 'Land of the Pence' (Dor Iath), referring to the Girdle of Melian, earlier called Eglador; the
kingdom of Thingol and Melian in the forests of Neldoreth and Region, ruled
from Menegroth on the river Esgalduin. Also called the Hidden Kingdom. Passim; see especially 111, 144-5 Dorlas A Man of the Haladin in Brethil; went
with Tъrin and Hunthor to the attack on Glaurung, but withdrew in fear; slain
by Brandir the Lame. 266, 271-2, 276. The wife of Dorlas, not named, 276. Dor-lуmin Region in the south of Hithlum, the
territory of Fingon, given as a fief to the House of Hador; the home of Hъrin
and Morwen. 101, 140-2, 177, 187, 191-3, 232, 237, 242-4, 251, 257, 260, 263-7,
276-7, 282, 284, 286, 294. The Lady of
Dor-lуmin: Morwen. 242 Dor-nu-Fauglith 'Land under Choking Ash'; see Anfauglith. 184, 221 Dorthonion 'Land of Pines', the great forested
highlands on the northern borders of Beleriand, afterwards called Taur-nu-Fuin.
Cf. Tree-beard's song in The Two Towers III
4: 'To the pine-trees upon the highland of Dorthonion I climbed in the Winter…'
52, 109, 124, 130, 135-7, 141-4, 146-8, 172, 177, 181-4, 186, 194-7, 231 Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin Heirloom of the
House of Hador, worn by Tъrin; also called the
Helm of Hador. 114, 251, 260, 284 Dragons 235, 300, 312, 320, 358, 371 Draugluin The great werewolf slain by Huan at
Tol-in-Gaurhoth, and in whose form Beren entered Angband. 211, 216-18 Drengist The long firth that pierced Ered
Lуmin, the west-fence of Hithlum. 56, 89, 101, 111, 115, 136, 140, 194 Dry River The river that once flowed out
under the Encircling Mountains from the primeval lake where was afterwards
Tumladen, the plain of Gondolin. 163, 281 Duilwen The fifth of the tributaries of Gelion in
Ossiriand. 147 Dъnedain 'The Edain of the West'; see Nъmenуreans. Dungartheb See Nan Dungortheb. Durin Lord of the Dwarves of
Khazad-dыm (Moria), 42, 364 Dwarf-road Road leading down into Beleriand from
the cities of Nogrod and Belegost, and crossing Gelion at the ford of Sarn
Athrad. 167, 171, 174 Dwarrowdelf 'Delving of the Dwarves': translation of
Khazad-dыm (Hadhodrond). 104 Dwarves 40-2, 103-7, 132-4, 148, 158-61,
167, 189, 231, 236, 250, 258, 287-91, 354, 357-8, 364, 371. Referring to the Petty-Dwarves: 248-53, 261, 284. Seven Fathers of the Dwarves: 40-2, 104.
For the Necklace of the Dwarves see Nauglamнr. For the Seven Rings of the Dwarves see Rings
of Power. See also Naugrim. Eд The World, the
material Universe; Eд, meaning in
Elvish 'It is' or 'Let it be', was the word of Ilъvatar when the World began
its existence. 10, 17-8, 23, 30, 34, 40, 48-9, 58, 78, 82, 86, 95, 99, 112 Eagles 44-5, 129, 144, 149, 221,
281, 299, 343 Eдrendil Called 'Halfelven', 'the
Blessed', 'the Bright', and 'the Mariner'; son of Tuor and Idril Turgon's
daughter; escaped from the sack of Gondolin and wedded Elwing daughter of Dior
at the Mouths of Sirion; sailed with her to Aman and pleaded for help against
Morgoth; set to sail the skies in his ship Vingilot bearing the Silmaril that
Beren and Lъthien brought out of Angband. The name means 'Lover of the Sea'.
122, 177, 298-300, 302, 304-9, 312, 315, 319-22, 325, 334, 341, 345, 348, 354. Lay of Eдrendil 304, 319 Eдrendur (1) A lord of Andъniл in Nъmenor. 331 Eдrendur (2) Tenth King of Arnor. 367 Eдrnil Thirty-second King of
Gondor. 369 Eдrnur Son of Eдrnil; last King of
Gondor, in whom the line of Anбrion came to its end. 369 Eдrrбmл 'Sea-wing', the name of Tuor's
ship. 303 Eдrwen Daughter of Olwл of
Alqualondл, Thingol's brother; wedded Finarfin of the Noldor. From Eдrwen
Finrod, Orodreth, Angrod, Aegnor and Galadriel had Telerin blood and were
therefore allowed entry into Doriath. 63, 130, 154 Easterlings Also called Swarthy Men; entered Beleriand from the East in the time after the
Dagor Bragollach, and fought on both sides in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad; given
Hithlum as a dwelling-place by Morgoth, where they oppressed the remnant of the
People of Hador. 189, 235, 239, 242, 264, 265, 280, 294 Echoing Mountains See Ered Lуmin. Echoriath 'The Encircling Mountains' about
the plain of Gondolin. 135, 166, 191, 281, 297-8 Echtelion Elf-lord of Gondolin, who in the
sack of the city slew and was slain by Gothmog Lord of Balrogs. 125, 237, 296,
300 Edain See Atani. Edrahil Chief of the Elves of
Nargothrond who accompanied Finrod and Beren on their quest, and died in the
dungeons of Tol-in-Gaurhoth. 206 Eglador The former name of Doriath,
before it was encompassed by the Girdle of Melian; probably connected with the
name Eglath. 111 Eglarest The southern of the Havens of the Falas on the
coast of Beleriand. 60, 109, 125, 142, 145, 239, 304 Eglath 'The Forsaken People', name
given to themselves by the Telerin Elves who remained in Beleriand seeking for
Elwл (Thingol) when the main host of the Teleri departed to Aman. 60, 288 Eilinel The wife of Gorlim the
Unhappy. 165-6 Eithel Ivrin 'Ivrin's Well', the source of the
river Narog beneath Ered Wethrin. 256, 261 Eithel Sirion 'Sirion's Well', in the eastern face of
Ered Wethrin, where was the great fortress of Fingolfin and Fingon (see Barad Eithel). 124, 140-1, 183, 193,
232-3 Ekkaia Elvish name of the Outer Sea,
encircling Arda; referred to also as the
Outer Ocean and the Encircling Sea.
32,40, 51, 65, 115-6, 121, 227 Elbereth The usual name of Varda in
Sindarin, 'Star-Queen'; cf. Elentбri.
19, 36 Eldaliл 'The Elven-folk', used as
equivalent to Eldar. 12, 54, 59,
71,150, 200, 222, 227-8, 232, 247, 315 Eldamar 'Elvenhome', the region of Aman in
which the Elves dwelt; also the great Bay of the same name. 61, 65, 67, 75-6,
79-80, 97, 160, 213, 306 Eldar According to Elvish legend
the name Eldar 'People of the Stars'
was given to all the Elves by the Vala Oromл (49). It came however to be used
to refer only to the Elves of the Three Kindreds (Vanyar, Noldor, and Teleri)
who set out on the great westward march from Cuiviйnen (whether or not they
remained in Middle-earth), and to exclude the Avari. The Elves of Aman, and all
Elves who ever dwelt in Aman, were called the High Elves (Tareldar) and Elves of the Light (Calaquendi); see Dark Elves, Ъmanyar. Passim; see entry Elves. Eldarin Of the Eldar; used in
reference to the language(s) of the Eldar. The occurrences of the term in fact
refer to Quenya, also called High Eldarin
and High-elven; see Quenya. Elder Days The First Age; also called the Eldest Days. 24, 33, 119, 134, 256,
258, 285, 289, 299, 365, 377-8 Elder King Manwл. 309, 312 Eledhwen See Morwen. Elemmнrл (1) Name of a star. 48 Elemmнrл (2) Vanyarin Elf, maker of the Aldudйniл, the Lament for the Two Trees.
84 Elendл A name of Eldamar. 65, 96,
130 Elendil Called the Tall; son of
Amandil, last lord of Andъniл in Nъmenor, descended from Eдrendil and Elwing
but not of the direct line of the Kings; escaped with his sons Isildur and
Anбrion from the Drowning of Nъmenor and founded the Nъmenуrean realms in
Middle-earth; slain with Gil-galad in the overthrow of Sauron at the end of the
Second Age. The name may be interpreted either as 'Elf-friend' (cf. Elendili) or as 'Star-lover'. 337,
340-2, 360-7, 370, 377. Heirs of Elendil
365 Elendili 'Elf-friends', name given to
those Nъmenуreans who were not estranged from the Eldar in the days of
Tar-Ancalimon and later kings; also called the
Faithful. 328-32, 335-7, 340-1, 361-2 Elendur Eldest son of Isildur, slain
with him at the Gladden Fields. 366 Elenna A (Quenya) name of Nъmenor,
'Starwards', from the guidance of the Edain by Eдrendil on their voyage to
Nъmenor at the beginning of the Second Age. 321, 345, 347 Elentбri 'Star-Queen', a name of Varda
as maker of the Stars. She is called thus in Galadriel's lament in Lуrien, The Fellowship of the Ring II 8. Cf. Elbereth, Tintallл. 48 Elenwл Wife of Turgon; perished in
the crossing of the Helcaraxл. 102, 160 Elerrнna 'Crowned with Stars', a name of Taniquetil. 32 Elf-friends The Men of the Three Houses of Bлor,
Haleth, and Hador, the Edain. 169, 172-4, 231, 243, 311. In the Akallabкth and in Of the Rings of Power used of those Nъmenуreans who were not
estranged from the Eldar; see Elendili.
At 375 the reference is no doubt to the Men of Gondor and the Dъnedain of the
North. Elostirion Tallest of the towers upon Emyn
Beraid, in which the palantir was
placed. 362 Elrond Son of Eдrendil and Elwing,
who at the end of the First Age chose to belong to the Firstborn, and remained
in Middle-earth until the end of the Third Age; master of Imladris (Rivendell)
and keeper of Vilya, the Ring of Air, which he had received from Gil-galad.
Called Master Elrond and Elrond Half-elven. The name means
'Star-dome'. 122, 306, 315, 322, 354-6, 366-75, 37S, Sons of Elrond 377 Elros Son of Eдrendil and
Elwing, who at the end of the First Age chose to be numbered among Men, and
became the first King of Nъmenor (called Tar-Minyatur),
living to a very great age. The name means 'Star-foam'. 305, 315, 322, 328-32,
336, 354, 360 Elu Sindarin form of Elwл.
58,103, 125, 288 Eluchнl 'Heir of Elu (Thingol)', name
of Dior, son of Beren and Lъthien. See Dior. Elurйd Elder son of Dior; perished
in the attack on Doriath by the sons of Fлanor. The name means the same as Eluchнl. 290, 292 Elurнn Younger son of Dior;
perished with his brother Elurйd. The name means 'Remembrance of Elu
(Thingol)'. 290,292 Elvenhome See Eldamar. Elves See especially 37-9,
48-51, 53, 99, 121, 326-7; and see also Children
of Ilъvatar, Eldar; Dark Elves. Elves of the Light: see Calaquendi. Elwл Surnamed Singollo 'Greymantle'; leader with his brother Olwл of the hosts of
the Teleri on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, until he was lost in Nan
Elmoth; afterwards Lord of the Sindar, ruling in Doriath with Melian; received
the Silmaril from Beren; slain in Menegroth by the Dwarves. Called (Elu)
Thingol in Sindarin. See Dark Elves,
Thingol. 53-8, 60-1, 103, 289 Elwing Daughter of Dior, who
escaping from Doriath with the Silmaril wedded Eдrendil at the Mouths of Sirion
and went with him to Valinor; mother of Elrond and Elros. The name means
'Star-spray'; see Lanlhir Lamath. 122,
178, 291-3, 302, 304-10, 315 Emeldir Called the Man-hearted; wife
of Barahir and mother of Beren; led the women and children of the House of Bлor
from Dorthonion after the Dagor Bragollach. (She was herself also a descendant
of Bлor the Old, and her father's name was Beren; this is not stated in the
text.) 187, 194 Emyn Beraid The Tower Hills' in the west of
Eriador; see Elostirion. 360-2 Enchanted Isles The islands set by the Valar in the Great Sea
eastwards of Tol Eressлa at the time of the Hiding of Valinor. 118, 306 Encircling Mountains See Echoriath. Encircling Sea See Ekkaia. Endor 'Middle Land',
Middle-earth. 101 Engwar 'The Sickly', one of the
Elvish names for Men, 119 Eцl Called the Dark Elf;
the great smith who dwelt in Nan Elmoth, and took Aredhel Turgon's sister to
wife; friend of the Dwarves; maker of the sword Anglachel (Gurthang); father of
Maeglin; put to death in Gondolin. 104,158-65, 247 Eцnwл One of the mightiest of the
Maiar; called the Herald of Manwл; leader of the host of the Valar in the
attack on Morgoth at the end of the First Age. 24, 309-14, 321, 353 Ephel Brandir 'The encircling fence of Brandir',
dwellings of the Men of Brethil upon Amon Obel; also called the Ephel. 266, 270-2 Ephel Dъath 'Fence of Shadow', the mountain-range
between Gondor and Mordor; also called the
Mountains of Shadow. 361-2, 368 Erchamion 'One-handed', the name of Beren
after his escape from Angband. 222, 225, 242, 292 Erech A hill in the west of
Gondor, where was the Stone of Isildur (see The
Return of the King V 2). 361 Ered Engrin 'The Iron Mountains' in the far north.
128, 135-6, 139, 181, 193 Ered Gorgoroth 'The Mountains of Terror', northward of Nan
Dungortheb; also called the Gorgoroth.
90, 109, 144, 157, 176, 198, 214, 246 Ered Lindon 'The Mountains of Linden', another name
for Ered Luin, the Blue Mountains.
147-8, 160, 167, 174, 238, 287, 290 Ered Lуmin 'The Echoing Mountains', forming the
west-fence of Hithlum. 123, 140 Ered Luin 'The Blue Mountains', also called Ered Lindon. After the destruction at
the end of the First Age Ered Luin formed the north-western coastal range of
Middle-earth. 56, 103, 107, 132-5, 147, 159, 167, 288, 354, 359 Ered Nimrais The White Mountains (nimrais 'white horns'), the great range
from east to west south of the Misty Mountains. 107 Ered Wethrin 'The Mountains of Shadow', 'The Shadowy
Mountains', the great curving range bordering Dor-nu-Fauglith (Ard-galen) on the
west and forming the barrier between Hithlum and West Beleriand. 123-5, 127,
133, 137, 140-1, 150, 171, 182-3, 193, 206, 212, 232, 234, 238, 249, 254, 256,
261, 278, 281, 295 Eregion 'Land of Holly' (called by Men Hollin); Noldorin realm in the Second
Age at the western feet of the Misty Mountains, where the Elven Rings were
made. 355-7 Ereinion 'Scion of Kings', the son of
Fingon, known always by his surname Gil-galad.
186, 239, 302 Erellont One of the three mariners who
accompanied Eдrendil on his voyages. 307 Eressлa See Tol Eressлa. Eriador The land between the Misty
Mountains and the Blue, in which lay the Kingdom of Arnor (and also the Shire
of the Hobbits). 55, 56, 104, 174, 330, 360, 366-7, 370, 376 Eru 'The One', 'He that is
Alone': Ilъvatar. 3, 4, 17-9, 23, 41-4, 82, 95, 99, 102, 112-3, 322, 327-8,
332, 335, 347; also in Children of Eru. Esgalduin The river of Doriath, dividing the
forests of Neldoreth and Region, and flowing into Sirion. The name means 'River
under Veil'. 105, 144, 157, 199, 225, 269, 289 Estл One of the Valier, the
spouse of Irmo (Lуrien); her name means 'Rest'. 18, 21,24, 68, 114 Estolad The land south of Nan Elmoth
where the Men of the followings of Bлor and Marach dwelt after they crossed the
Blue Mountains into Beleriand; translated in the text as 'the Encampment'.
171-5 Ezellohar The Green Mound of the Two Trees
of Valinor; also called Corollairл.
33,44, 84, 86 Faelivrin Name given to Finduilas by
Gwindor. 257 Faithful, The See Elendili. Falas The western coasts of Beleriand,
south of Nevrast. 60, 106, 111, 124, 142, 194, 232, 239, 259 Falathar One of the three mariners who
accompanied Eдrendil on his voyages. 307 Falathrim The Telerin Elves of the Falas,
whose lord was Cнrdan. 60 Falmari The Sea-elves; name of the
Teleri who departed from Middle-earth and went into the West. 54 Fлanor Eldest son of Finwл (the only
child of Finwл and Mнriel), half-brother of Fingolfin and Finarfin; greatest of
the Noldor, and leader in their rebellion; deviser of the Fлanorian script;
maker of the Silmarils; slain in Mithrim in the Dagor-nuin-Giliath. His name
was Curufinwл (curu 'skill'), and he gave this name to his fifth son, Curufin; but
he was himself known always by his mother's name for him, Fлanбro 'Spirit of Fire', which was given the Sindarin form Fлanor Chapters V-IX and XIII passim; see especially 63, 67-9, 71,
112. Elsewhere his name occurs chiefly in the
sons of Fлanor. Fлanturi 'Masters of Spirits', the Valar
Nбmo (Mandos) and Irmo (Lуrien). 21 Felagund The name by which King Finrod was
known after the establishment of Nargothrond; it was Dwarvish in origin (felak-gundu 'cave-hewer', but translated
in the text as 'Lord of Caves', 61). For references see Finrod. Finarfin The third son of Finwл, the younger of Fлanor's
half-brothers; remained in Aman after the Exile of the Noldor and ruled the
remnant of his people in Tirion. Alone among the Noldorin princes he and his
descendants had golden hair, derived from his mother Indis, who was a Vanyarin
Elf (see Vanyar). 63, 69, 75. 93-6,
100, 117, 202, 213, 310. Many other occurrences of the name of Finarfin relate
to his sons or his people. Finduilas Daughter of Orodreth, loved by
Gwindor; captured in the sack of Nargothrond, and killed by Orcs at the
Crossings of Teiglin. 257-9, 261-6,277 Fingolfin The second son of Finwл, the
elder of Fлanor's half-brothers; High King of the Noldor in Beleriand, dwelling
in Hithlum; slain by Morgoth in single combat, 63, 69, 74-7, 83, 93-5,v100-2,
115, 123, 126-8, 129, 133, 135-6, 140, 144, 154, 171, 177, 180-1, 183-7, 240.
Many other occurrences of the name of Fingolfin relate to his sons or his
people. Fingon The eldest son of Fingolfin,
called the Valiant; rescued Maedhros from Thangorodrim; High King of the Noldor
after the death of his father; slain by Gothmog in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 64,
94-6, 98, 101, 128-9, 137, 140, 144, 156, 166, 183, 186, 194, 198, 231-9, 302,
354 Finrod The eldest son of Finarfin,
called 'the Faithful' and 'the Friend of Men'. Founder and King of Nargothrond,
whence his name Felagund; encountered
in. Ossiriand the first Men to cross the Blue Mountains; rescued by Barahir in
the Dagor Bragollach; redeemed his oath to Barahir by accompanying Beren on his
quest; slain in defence of Beren in the dungeons of Tol-in-Gaurhoth. The
following references include those to Felagund
used alone: 64, 93, 96, 102, 127, 130, 133-4, 142-6, 148, 151, 154-5, 167-72,
176, 178, 182-3, 193, 197, 201-13, 223, 250, 259, 261, 264, 267-8, 284-5, 287 Finwл Leader of the Noldor on the
westward journey from Cuiviйnen; King of the Noldor in Aman; father of Fлanor,
Fingolfin, and Finarfin, slain by Morgoth at Formenos. 53-6, 60-71, 75-8, 83,
87, 92, 152; other references are to his sons or his house. Fнrimar 'Mortals', one of the Elvish
names for Men. 119 Firstborn, The The Elder Children of Ilъvatar, the Elves.
7, 9, 13, 34, 37-8, 41-2, 44, 48, 309, 315, 321, 325, 355, 370, 378 Followers, The The Younger Children of Ilъvatar, Men;
translation of Hildor. 7 Ford of Stones See Sarn
Athrad. Fords of Aros See Arossiach. Formenos 'Northern Fortress', the
stronghold of Fлanor and his sons in the north of Valinor, built after the
banishment of Fлanor from Tirion. 79, 83, 88, 152 Fornost 'Northern Fortress'.
Nъmenуrean city on the North Downs in Eriador. 361 Forsaken Elves See Eglath. Frodo The Ringbearer. 377 Fuinur A renegade Nъmenуrean who
became mighty among the Haradrim at the end of the Second Age, 363 Gabilgathol See Belegost. 104 Galadriel Daughter of Finarfin and sister of
Finrod Felagund; one of the leaders of the Noldorin rebellion against the
Valar; wedded Celeborn of Doriath and with him remained in Middle-earth after
the end of the First Age; keeper of Nenya, the Ring of Water, m Lothlуrien. 64,
93-4, 102, 134-5, 151-3, 155, 172, 204, 290, 315, 370-3 Galathilion 'The White Tree of Tirion, the image
of Telperion made by Yavanna for the Vanyar and the Noldor' 62, 324, 361 Galdor Called the Tall; son of Hador
Lуrindol and lord of Dor-lуmin after him; father of Hъrin and Huor; slain at
Eithel Sirion. 177, 183, 187, 190-3, 242, 257, 284, 311 galvorn The metal devised by Eцl. 159 Gandalf The name among Men of
Mithrandir, (the of the Istari (Wizards); see Olуrin. 372 Gates of Summer A great festival of Gondolin, on the eve of
which the city was assaulted 'by the forces of Morgoth. 300 Gelion The great river of East
Beleriand, rising in Himring and Mount Rerir and fed by the rivers of Ossiriand
flowing down from the Blue Mountains. 56-7, 103-4, 109, 132, 144-8, 167, 170,
174, 184, 229, 287-90 Gelmir (I) Elf of Nargothrond, brother of
Gwindor, captured in the Dagor Bragollach and afterwards put to death in front
of Eithel Sirion, as a provocation to its defenders, before the Nirnaeth
Arnoediad. 230, 233 Gelmir (2) Elf of the people of Angrod, who
with Arminas came to Nargothrond to warn Orodreth of its peril. 260 Gildor One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Gil-Estel 'Star of Hope', Sindarin name
for Eдrendil bearing the Silmaril in his ship Vingilot. 310 Gil-galad 'Star of Radiance', the name by
which Ereinion son of Fingon was afterwards known. After the death of Turgon he
became the last High King of the Noldor in Middle-earth, and remained in Lindon
after the end of the First Age; leader with Elendil of the Last Alliance of Men
and Elves and slain with him in combat with Sauron. 186, 239, 302, 305, 315,
330-1, 335, 359-60, 362-5, 369-70 Gimilkhвd Younger son of Ar-Gimilzфr and
Inzilbкth and father of Ar-Pharazфn, the last King of Nъmenor. 332 Gimilzфr See Ar-Gimilzфr. Ginglith River in West Beleriand flowing into the Narog
above Nargothrond. 204, 261 Gladden Fields Partial translation of Loeg Ningloron; the great stretches of reeds and iris (gladden) in
and about the Anduin, where Isildur was slain and the One Ring lost 367, 374 Glaurung The first of the Dragons of
Morgoth, called the Father of Dragons;
in the Dagor Bragollach, the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, and the Sack of Nargothrond;
cast his spell upon Tъrin and upon Nienor; slain by Tъrin at Cabed-en-Aras.
Called also the Great Worm and the Worm of Morgoth. 137, 177, 181-2,
184, 235-6, 261-5, 268, 271-9, 283-4, 296, 300 Glingal 'Hanging Flame', the image of
Laurelin made by Turgon in Gondolin. 151 Glirhuin A minstrel of Brethil. 283-4 Glуredhel Daughter of Hador Lуrindol of
Dor-lуmin and sister of Galdor; wedded Haldir of Brethil. 190 Glorfindel Elf of Gondolin, who fell to his
death in Cirith Thoronath in combat with a Balrog after the escape from the
sack of the city. The name means 'Golden-haired'. 237, 301-2 Golodhrim The Noldor. Golodh was the Sindarin form of Quenya Noldo, and -rim a
collective plural ending; cf. Annon-in-Gelydh,
the Gate of the Noldor. 160 Gondolin 'The Hidden Rock' (see Ondolindл), secret city of King Turgon
surrounded by the Encircling Mountains (Echoriath). 64, 125, 150-1, 157, 186,
191-3, 221, 231-2, 234, 237, 240, 252, 281-2, 295-302, 305, 315, 322 Gondolindrim The people of Gondolin. 166, 192, 234 Gondor 'Land of Stone', name of the
southern Nъmenуrean kingdom in Middle-earth, established by Isildur and Anбrion.
361-9, 376-7. City of Gondor: Minas
Tirith. 377 Gonnhirrim 'Masters of Stone', a Sindarin name
for the Dwarves. 103 Gorgoroth (1) See Ered
Gorgoroth. Gorgoroth (2) A plateau in Mordor, between the
converging Mountains of Shadow and Mountains of Ash. 363, 365, 368 Gorlim Called the Unhappy; one of
the twelve companions of Barahir on Dorthonion, who was ensnared by a phantom
of his wife Eilinel and revealed to Sauron the hiding-place of Barahir. 187,
195-7 Gorthaur The name of Sauron in Sindarin.
26,187, 353 Gorthol 'Dread Helm', the name that
Tъrin took as one of the Two Captains in the land of Dor-Cъarthol. 252 Gothmog Lord of Balrogs, high-captain of
Angband, slayer of Fлanor, Fingon, and Ecthelion. (The same name was borne in
the Third Age by the Lieutenant of Minas Morgul, The Return of the King V 6.) 125, 236, 238, 300 Greater Gelion One of the two tributary branches of
the river Gelion in the north, rising in Mount Rerir. 146 Great Lands Middle-earth. 324 Great River See Anduin. Green-elves Translation of Laiquendi; the Nandorin Elves of Ossiriand. For their origin see
107, and for the name 110, 133, 147-8, 167,170, 184, 238, 291 Greenwood the Great The great forest east of
the Misty Mountains, afterwards named Mirkwood. 360, 366, 371-2, 375 Grey-elven tongue See Sindarin. Grey-elves See Sindar. Grey Havens See (The)
Havens, Mithlond. Greymantle See Singollo, Thingol. Grinding Ice See Helcaraxл. Grond The great mace of Morgoth,
with which he fought Fingolfin; called the Hammer of the Underworld. The
battering-ram used against the Gate of Minas Tirith was named after it (The Return of the King V 4). 185 Guarded Plain See Talath
Dirnen. Guarded Realm See Valinor.
82, 98 Guilin Father of Gelmir and
Gwindor, Elves of Nargothrond. 230, 233, 253, 256, 261 Gundor Younger son of Hador Lуrindol,
lord of Dor-lуmin; slain with his father at Eithel Sirion in the Dagor
Bragollach. 177, 183, 311 Gurthang 'Iron of Death', name of Beleg's
sword Anglachel after it was reforged for Tъrin in Nargothrond, and from which
he was named Mormegil. 258, 262,
265-6, 273, 276-8 Gwaith-i-Mнrdain 'People of the Jewel-smiths', name of the fellowship of craftsmen in
Eregion, greatest of whom was Celebrimbor son of Curufin. 354-5 Gwindor Elf of Nargothrond, brother of
Gelmir; enslaved in Angband, but escaped and aided Beleg in the rescue of
Tъrin; brought Tъrin to Nargothrond; loved Finduilas Orodreth's daughter; slain
in the Battle or Tumhalad. 230, 232-4, 254-61 Hadhodrond The Sindarin name of Khazad-dыm
(Moria). 104,354 Hador Called Lуrindol 'Goldenhead', also Hador
the Golden-haired; lord of Dor-lуmin, vassal of Fingolfin; father of Galdor
father of Hъrin; slain at Eithel Sirion in the Dagor Bragollach. The House of
Hador was called the Third House of the
Edain. 177-8, 183, 187, 190, 193. House
of, People of, Hador 177, 189-90, 194, 231, 237-9, 243, 253, 265, 280, 308.
Helm of Hador: see Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin. Haladin The second people of Men to
enter Beleriand; afterwards called the
People of Haleth, dwelling in the Forest of Brethil, also the Men of Brethil. 171, 174-5, 187,
190, 194, 234,238 Haldad Leader of the Haladin in their
defence against the attack on them by Orcs in Thargelion, and slain there;
father of the Lady Haleth. 174-6 Haldan Son of Haldar; leader of the
Haladin after the death of the Lady Haleth. 175 Haldar Son of Haldad of the Haladin,
and brother of the Lady Haleth; slain with his father in the Orc-raid on
Thargelion. 175-6 Haldir Son of Halmir of Brethil;
wedded Gidredhel, daughter of Hador of Dor-lуmin; slain in the Nirnaeth
Arnoediad. 190, 231-2, 234, 238 Haleth Called the Lady Haleth;
leader of the Haladin (who were named from her the People of Haleth) from
Thargelion to the lands west of Sirion. 175-6. House of, People of, Haleth 175-8, 190, 231, 266, 272-3 Half-elven Translation of Sindarin Peredhel, plural Peredhil, applied to Elrond and Elros, 304, 315, 322, 354, 357; and
to Eдrendil, 298 Halflings Translation of Periannath (Hobbits). 377 Halls of Awaiting The Halls of Mandos. 72 Halmir Lord of the Haladin, son of
Haldan; with Beleg of Doriath defeated the Orcs that came south from the Pass
of Sirion after the Dagor Bragollach. 190, 231 Handir Son of Haldir and Glуredhel,
father of Brandir the Lame; lord of the Haladin after Haldir's death; slain in
Brethil in battle with Orcs. 238, 260, 266 Haradrim The Men of Harad ('the South'),
the lands south of Mordor. 363 Hareth Daughter of Helmir of
Brethil; wedded Galdor of Dor-lуmin; mother of Hъrin and Huor. 190, 194 Hathaldir Called the Young; one of the
twelve companions of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Hathol Father of Hador Lуrindol. 177 Haudh-en-Arwen 'The Ladybarrow', the burial-mound of Haleth in
the Forest of Brethil. 176 Haudh-en-Elleth The mound in which Finduilas was buried, near
the Crossings of Teiglin. 267, 270-1, 275, 277 Haudh-en-Ndengin 'The Mound of Slain'
in the desert of Anfauglith, where were piled the bodies of the Elves and Men
that died in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 241-2 Haudh-en-Nirnaeth 'The Mound of Tears',
another name of Haudh-en-Ndengin. 241 Havens, The Brithombar and Eglarest on the coast
of Beleriand: 124, 133, 144, 186, 239. The Havens of Sirion at the end of the
First Age: 294, 305, 313. The Grey Havens (Mithlond)
in the Gulf of Lhыn: 359, 370-1, 378. Alqualondл, the Haven of the Swans or
Swanhaven, is also called simply The
Haven: 97, 101 Helcar The Inland Sea in the
northeast of Middle-earth, where once stood the mountain of the lamp of Illuin;
the mere of Cuiviйnen where the first Elves awoke is described as a bay in this
sea. 48, 54 Helcaraxл The strait between Araman and
Middle-earth; also referred to as the
Grinding Ice. 51-2, 60, 88, 100-1, 126, 136, 154, 160 Helevorn 'Black Glass', a lake in the
north of Thargelion, below Mount Rerir, where Caranthir dwelt. 132, 148, 184 Helluin The star Sirius. 48, 69 Herumor A renegade Nъmenуrean who became
mighty among the Haradrim at the end of the Second Age. 363 Herunъmen 'Lord of the West', Quenya name of
Ar-Adunakhфr. 330 Hidden Kingdom Name given both to Doriath, 135, 198, 200,277,
and to Gondolin, 156,298 High-elven See Quenya. High Elves See Eldar. 370 High Faroth See Taur-en-Faroth. Hildor 'The Followers', 'The
Aftercomers', Elvish name for Men, as the Younger Children of Ilъvatar. 114,
119 Hildуrien The land in the east of
Middle-earth where the first Men (Hildor)
awoke. 120, 169 Himlad 'Cool Plain', the region
where Celegorm and Curufin dwelt south of the Pass of Aglon. 147, 158, 161 Himring The great hill west of Maglor's Gap on which
was the stronghold of Maedhros; translated in the text as 'Ever-cold'.
131,147-8,157, 183-4, 214, 223, 231 Hнrilorn The great beech-tree in Doriath with three
trunks, in which Lъthien was imprisoned. The name means 'Tree of the Lady'.
208, 226 Hнsilуmл 'Land of Mist', Quenya name of
Hithlum. 140 Hithaeglir 'Line of Misty Peaks': the Misty
Mountains, or Mountains of Mist. (The form Hithaeglin
on the map to The Lord of the Rings
is an error.) 55, 104, 107, 360, 364, 366 Hither Lands Middle-earth (also called the Outer Lands). 57, 59-61, 296, 304,
311, 315, 323, 371 Hithlum 'Land of Mist' (see 140), the
region bounded on the east and south by Ered Wethrin and on the west by Ered
Lуmin; see Hнsilуmл. 52, 90, 123,
126-8, 130, 137, 140-1, 144, 146, 157, 171, 181-9, 193, 221, 231-4, 238-9,
242-4,254, 280, 281, 294-5 Hollin See Eregion. 354 Hollowbold Translation of Nogrod: 'hollow dwelling' (early English bold, noun related to the verb build).
104 Huan The great wolfhound of
Valinor that Oromл gave to Celegorm; friend and helper of Beren and Lъthien;
slew and slain by Carcharoth. The name means 'great dog, hound'. 209-18, 222,
225-6 Hunthor A Man of the Haladin in Brethil who accompanied
Tъrin in his attack on Glaurung at Cabed-en-Aras and was killed there by a
falling stone. 273 Huor Son of Galdor of
Dor-lуmin, husband of Rнan and father of Tuor; went to Gondolin with Hъrin his
brother; slain in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 150, 177, 190, 232, 236, 237, 242,
294, 296, 298, 301, 311 Hъrin Called Thalion 'the Steadfast', 'the Strong'; son of Galdor of Dor-lуmin,
husband of Morwen and father of Tъrin and Nienor; lord of Dor-lуmin, vassal of
Fingon. Went with Huor his brother to Gondolin; captured by Morgoth in the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad and set upon Thangorodrim for many years; after his release
slew Mоm in Nargothrond and brought the Nauglamнr to King Thingol. 150, 177,
191-4, 232-46, 252, 255-9, 261-7, 271, 274-6, 278-87, 294, 298, 311 Hyarmentir The highest mountain in the regions
south of Valinor. 81 Iant Iaur 'The Old Bridge' over the
Esgalduin on the northern borders of Doriath; also called the Bridge of Esgalduin, 144-5, 157 Ibun One of the sons of Mоm
the Petty-dwarf. 249, 251-2 Idril Called Celebrindal 'Silverfoot'; the daughter
(and only child) of Turgon and Elenwл; wife of Tuor, mother of Eдrendil, with
whom she escaped from Gondolin to the Mouths of Sirion; departed thence with
Tuor into the West 151, 160, 163, 165-6, 296-300, 303-4, 308, 315,322 Illuin One of the Lamps of the
Valar made by Aulл. Illuin stood in the northern part of Middle-earth, and
after the overthrow of the mountain by Melkor the Inland Sea of Helcar was
formed there. 30-1, 48, 59 Ilmarл A Maia, the handmaid of
Varda, 24 Ilmen The region above the air
where the stars are. 116-9, 349 Ilъvatar 'Father of All, Eru. 3-11,
17-8, 23, 25, 34-42, 46-50, 58, 70, 73, 74, 86, 93, 102, 121, 227, 313, 322-3,
326-7, 336, 344-5 Imlach Father of Amlach. 173 Imladris 'Rivendell' (literally, 'Deep Dale of the
Cleft'), Elrond's dwelling in a valley of the Misty Mountains. 282, 364,
367-70, 377 Indis Vanyarin Elf, close kin
of Ingwл; second wife of Finwл, mother of Fingolfin and Finarfin. 63, 69-70, 75 Ingwл Leader of the Vanyar, the
first of the three hosts of the Eldar on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen.
In Aman he dwelt upon Taniquetil, and was held High King of all the Elves.
53-4, 60, 62, 65, 69, 117, 310 Inziladыn Elder son of Ar-Gimilzфr and
Inzilbкth; afterwards named Tar-Palantir.
332 Inzilbкth Queen of
Ar-Gimilzфr; of the house of the lords of Andъniл. 331 Irmo The Vala usually named
Lуrien, the place of his dwelling. Irmo
means 'Desirer' or 'Master of Desire'. 21, 24, 68 Iron Mountains See Ered
Engrin. Isengard Translation (to represent the
language of Rohan) of the Elvish name Angrenost.
361, 373-7 Isil Quenya name of the
Moon. 114-5 Isildur Elder son of Elendil, who
with his father and his brother Anбrion escaped from the Drowning of Nъmenor
and founded m Middle-earth the Nъmenуrean realms in exile; lord of Minas Ithil;
cut the Ruling Ring from Sauron's hand; slain by Orcs in the Anduin when the
Ring slipped from his finger. 337, 342, 346, 360-8, 374. Heirs of Isildur 369, 373. Heir
of Isildur=Aragorn 377 Istari The Wizards. See Curunнr, Saruman; Mithrandir, Gandalf,
Olуrin; Radagast. 372 Ivrin The lake and falls
beneath Ered Wethrin where the river Narog rose. 140, 257. Pools of Ivrin 132, 257, 264, 296. Falls of Ivrin 142, 206. See Eithel
Ivrin. kelvar An Elvish word retained in
the speeches of Yavanna and Manwл in Chapter II: 'animals, living things that
move'. 43-4 Kementбri 'Queen of the Earth', a title of
Yavanna. 21, 33-5, 44 Khazвd The name of the Dwarves in
their own language (Khuzdul). 103 Khazad-dыm The great mansions of the Dwarves of
Durin's race in the Misty Mountains (Hadhodrond,
Moria). See Khazвd; dыm is probably a plural or collective, meaning
'excavations, halls, mansions'. 42, 104, 354 Khоm Son of Mоm the
Petty-dwarf, slam by one of Tъrin's outlaw band. 249 King's Men Nъmenуreans hostile to the Eldar and
the Elendili. 328-9, 332 Kinslaying, The The slaying of the Teleri by the Noldor at
Alqualondл. 98, 100-1, 120, 130, 152, 154, 166, 169, 188 Ladros The lands to the northeast of
Dorthonion that were granted by the Noldorin Kings to the Men of the House of
Bлor. 177 Laer Cъ Beleg 'The Song of the Great Bow', made by Tъrin
at Eithel Ivrin in memory of Beleg Cъthalion. 256 Laiquendi 'The Green-elves' of Ossiriand. 110 Lalaith 'Laughter', daughter of Hъrin
and Morwen who died in childhood. 242 Lammoth 'The Great Echo', region north of
the Firth of Drengist, named from the echoes of Morgoth's cry in his struggle
with Ungoliant. 89-90, 123 Land of Shadow See Mordor. Land of the Dead that Live See
Dor Firn-i-Guinar. Land of the Star Nъmenor. 339, 341 Lanthir Lamath 'Waterfall of Echoing Voices', where Dior
had his house in Ossiriand, and after which his daughter Elwing ('Star-spray')
was named. 289 Last Alliance The league made at the end of the Second
Age between Elendil and Gil-galad to defeat Sauron. 364 Laurelin 'Song of Gold',
the younger of the Two Trees of Valinor. 34, 64, 82, 114-6, 151 Lay of Leithian The long poem concerning the lives of Beren
and Lъthien from which the prose account in The
Silmarillion was derived. Leithian
is translated 'Release from Bondage'. 195, 198, 203, 206-8, 226 Legolin The third of the tributaries
of Gelion in Ossiriand. 147 lembas Sindarin name of the waybread
of the Eldar (from earlier lennmbass
'journey-bread'; in Quenya coimas
'life-bread'). 247, 251, 256 Lenwл The leader of the Elves from
the host of the Teleri who refused to cross the Misty Mountains on the
west-ward journey from Cuiviйnen (the Nandor); father of Denethor. 56, 108 Lhыn River in Eriador flowing
into the sea in the Gulf of Lhыn.354, 360 Linaewen 'Lake of birds', the great mere in
Nevrast. 141 Lindon A name of Ossiriand in the First Age;
see 147. After the tumults at the end of the First Age the name Lindon was
retained for the lands west of the Blue Mountains that still remained above the
Sea: 354, 355, 359, 370 Lindуriл Mother of Inzilbкth. 331 Little Gelion One of the two tributary branches of
the river Gelion in the north, rising in the Hill of Himring. 146 Loeg Ningloron 'Pools of the golden water-flowers'; see Gladden Fields. lуmelindi Quenya word meaning
'dusk-singers', nightingales. 57 Lуmion 'Son of Twilight', the Quenya
name that Aredhel gave to Maeglin. 159 Lonely Isle See Tol Eressлa. Lord of Waters See Ulmo. Lords of the West See Valar. Lorellin The lake in Lуrien in Valinor
where the Vala Estл sleeps by day. 21 Lorgan Chief of the Easterling Men
in Hithlum after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, by whom Tuor was enslaved. 294 Lуrien (1) The name of the gardens and
dwelling-place of the Vala Irmo, who was himself usually called Lуrien. 18, 21,
24, 57, 68, 106, 114, 289 Lуrien (2) The land ruled by Celeborn and
Galadriel between the rivers Celebrant and Anduin. Probably the original name
of this land was altered to the form of the Quenya name Lуrien of the gardens
of the Vala Irmo in Valinor. In Lothlуrien the Sindarin word loth 'flower' is prefixed. 370 Lуrindol 'Goldenhead';
see Hador. Losgar The place of the burning of
the ships of the Teleri by Fлanor, at the mouth of the Firth of Drengist, 101,
111, 123, 127, 140, 152, 154 Lothlann 'The wide and empty', the great
plain north of the March of Maedhros. 147, 184, 255 Lothlуrien 'Lуrien of the Blossom'; see Lуrien (2). 370 Luinil Name of a star (one shining
with a blue light). 48 Lumbar Name of a star. 48 Lъthien The daughter of King Thingol
and Melian the Maia, who after the fulfilment of the Quest of the Silmaril and
the death of Beren chose to become mortal and to share his fate. See Tinъviel. 103, 108, 147, 177, 195,
199-203, 208-30, 242, 290-2, 305, 309, 315, 322 Mablung Elf of Doriath, chief captain of
Thingol, friend of Tъrin; called 'of the Heavy Hand' (which is the meaning of
the name Mablung); slain in Menegroth
by the Dwarves. 133, 224-6, 230, 244, 267-9, 277-8, 284, 289-90 Maedhros The eldest son of Fлanor, called
the Tall; rescued by Fingon from Thangorodrim; held the Hill of Himring and the
lands about; formed the Union of Maedhros that ended in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad;
bore one of the Silmarils with him to his death at the end of the First Age.
63, 93, 126-32, 135-6, 140, 144-8, 167, 171, 184, 189, 214, 229-35, 239, 292,
305, 310, 313-4 Maeglin 'Sharp Glance', son of Eцl and Aredhel Turgon's
sister, born in Nan Elmoth; became mighty in Gondolin, and betrayed it to
Morgoth; slain in the sack of the city by Tuor. See Lуmion. 104, 159-66, 192, 237, 247, 297-9 Maglor The second son of Fлanor, a
great singer and minstrel; held the lands called Maglor's Gap; at the end of
the First Age seized with Maedhros the two Silmarils that remained in
Middle-earth, and cast the one that he took into the Sea. 63, 93, 98, 133, 135,
138, 148, 167, 184, 222, 236, 305-6, 310, 313-4 Maglor's Gap The region between the northern arms of
Gelion where there were no hills of defence against the North. 135,148,184 Magor Son of Malach Aradan; leader
of the Men of the following of Marach who entered West Beleriand. 172, 177 Mahal The name given to Aulл by
the Dwarves. 42 Mбhanaxar The Ring of Doom outside the gates of
Valmar, in which were set the thrones of the Valar where they sat in council.
33, 50, 52, 77, 86-8, 91, 95, 112 Mahtan A great smith of the Noldor,
father of Nerdanel the wife of Fлanor. 69, 75 Maiar Ainur of lesser degree than
the Valar (singular Maia). 11, 23-6,
30, 57, 61, 83, 91, 105, 108, 111, 114, 229, 289, 292, 322, 353 Malach Son of Marach; given the
Elvish name Aradan. 171, 177 Malduin A tributary of the Teiglin; the
name probably means 'Yellow River'. 251 Malinalda 'Tree of Gold', a name of Laurelin.
33 Mandos The place of the dwelling in
Aman of the Vala properly called Nбmo, the Judge, though this name was seldom
used, and he himself was usually referred to as Mandos. Named as Vala: 18,
21-3,47, 52, 70, 73, 77-8, 87, 98, 113, 118, 121, 129-30, 154, 227, 308, 316.
Named as the place of his dwelling (including Halls of Mandos; also Halls
of Awaiting, Houses of the Dead):
22, 38, 42, 52, 61, 68-9, 73, 99, 121, 125, 227, 289. With reference to the
Doom of the Noldor and the Curse of Mandos: 150, 154-5, 166, 169, 201, 205,
213, 297 Manwл The chief of the Valar,
called also Sъlimo, the Elder King, the
Ruler of Arda. Passim; see especially 11, 18-9, 35, 70, 129 Marach Leader of the third host of
Men to enter Beleriand, ancestor of Hador Lуrindol. 171-2, 180 March of Maedhros The open lands to the
north of the headwaters of the river Gelion, held by Maedhros and his brothers
against attack on East Beleriand; also called the eastern March. 131-2, 147 Mardil Called the Faithful; the
first Ruling Steward of Gondor. 369 Mar-nu-Falmar 'The Land under the Waves', name of
Nъmenor after the Downfall. 347 Melian A Maia, who left Valinor and
came to Middle-earth; afterwards the Queen of King Thingol in Doriath, about
which she set a girdle of enchantment, the Girdle of Melian; mother of Lъthien,
and foremother of Elrond and Elros. 24-5, 57-8, 61, 103-6, 109, 110-1, 121,
130, 135, 144-5, 151-4, 158, 172, 176, 182, Chapter XIX passim, 229-30, Chapters XXI, XXII passim, 315, 322 Melkor The Quenya name for the great
rebellious Vala, the beginning of evil, in his origin the mightiest of the
Ainur; afterwards named Morgoth, Bauglir,
the Dark Lord, the Enemy, etc. The meaning of Melkor was 'He who arises in Might'; the Sindarin form was Belegur, but it was never used, save in
a deliberately altered form Belegurth
'Great Death'. Passim (after the rape
of the Silmarils usually called Morgoth);
see especially 4-5, 8, 25, 50, 51, 70-1, 90-2, 117, 251, 320 Men See especially 37-8,
74,119-21,167-70, 178, 319-20, 326-7; and see also Atani, Children of Ilъvatar, Easterlings. Menegroth 'The Thousand Caves', the hidden
halls of Thingol and Melian on the river Esgalduin m Doriath; see especially
58, 106-8, 111-2, 125, 130, 134, 145, 155, 200, 203, 208, 217, 222-6, 229,
243-7, 252, 267, 269, 286-91 Meneldil Son of Anбrion, King of Gondor.
368 Menelmacar 'Swordsman of the Sky', the
constellation Orion. 48 Meneltarma 'Pillar of Heaven', the mountain in
the midst of Nъmenor, upon whose summit was the Hallow of Eru Ilъvatar. 322-4,
329, 332-3, 336, 343, 345, 348 Meres of Twilight See Aelin-uial. Mereth Aderthad The 'Feast of Reuniting' held by Fingolfin near
the Pools of Ivrin. 132-3 Mickleburg Translation of Belegost: 'great fortress'. 104 Middle-earth The lands to the east of the Great Sea;
also called the Hither Lands, the Outer
Lands, the Great Lands, and Endor.
Passim. Mоm The Petty-dwarf, in
whose house (Bar-en-Danwedh) on Amon Rыdh Tъrin dwelt with the
outlaw band, and by whom their lair was betrayed to the Orcs; slain by Hъrin in
Nargothrond. 248-53, 284 Minas Anor 'Tower of the Sun' (also simply Anor), afterwards called Minas Tirith;
the city of Anбrion, at the feet of Mount Mindolluin. 361-2, 365-8, 377 Minas Ithil 'Tower of the Moon' afterwards
called Minas Morgul; the city of Isildur, built on a shoulder of the Ephel
Dъath. 361-2, 368 Minas Morgul 'Tower of Sorcery' (also simply Morgul), name of Minas Ithil after its
capture by the Ringwraiths. 368-9, 377 Minastir See Tar-Minastir. Minas Tirith (1) 'Tower of Watch', built by
Finrod Felagund on Tol Sirion; see Tol-in-Gaurhoth.
142, 187-9, 251 Minas Tirith (2) Later name of Minas Anor. 297.
Called the City of Gondor. 377 Mindeb A tributary of Sirion, between
Dimbar and the Forest of Neldoreth. 144, 246 Mindolluin 'Towering Blue-head', the great
mountain behind Minas Anor. 361, 377 Mindon Eldalieva 'Lofty
Tower of the Eldaliл', the tower of Ingwл in the city of Tirion; also simply the Mindon. 62,76,91,96,100 Mнriel (1) The first wife of Finwл, mother of
Fлanor; died after Fлanor's birth. Called Serindл 'the Broideress', 63, 67-8,
75 Mнriel (2) Daughter of Tar-Palantir, forced
into marriage by Ar-Pharazфn, and as his queen named Ar-Zimraphel; also called Tar-Mнriel.
345-6 Mirkwood See Greenwood the Great. Misty Mountains See Hithaeglir. Mithlond The Grey Havens', harbours of the
Elves on the Gulf of Lhыn; also referred to as the Havens. 354, 359, 371, 378 Mithrandir 'The Grey Pilgrim', Elvish name of
Gandalf (Olуrin), one of the Istari (Wizards). 373-7 Mithrim The name of the great lake in
the east of Hithlum, and also of the region about it and of the mountains to
the west, separating Mithrim from Dor-lуmin. The name was originally that of
the Sindarin Elves who dwelt there. 124-8, 131, 242, 294 Mordor The Black Land', also called the Land of Shadow; Sauron's realm east
of the mountains of the Ephel Dъath. 330, 347, 357, 360-8, 376 Morgoth The Black
Enemy', name of Melkor, first given to him by Fлanor after the rape of the
Silmarils. 26, 71, 88 and thereafter passim.
See Melkor. Morgul See Minas Morgul Moria 'The
Black Chasm', later name for Khazad-dыm (Hadhodrond). 104, 354, 357, 364 Moriquendi 'Elves of the Darkness'; see Dark Elves. 54, 58, 103, 125 Mormegil 'The Black Sword', name given to
Tъrin as captain of the host of Nargothrond; see Gurthang. 258-9, 265-7, 271, 275, 278 Morwen Daughter of Baragund (nephew of
Barahir, the father of Beren); wife of Hъrin and mother of Tъrin and Nienor;
called Eledhwen (translated in the
text as 'Elfsheen') and the Lady of
Dor-lуmin. 178, 187, 194, 241-3, 258-60, 264-5, 267-9, 277, 280, 283, 285 Mountain of Fire See Orodruin. Mountains: of Aman, of
Defence, see Pelуri; of the East, see Orocarni; of Iron, see Ered Engrin; of Mist, see Hithaeglir; of Mithrim, see Mithrim; of Shadow, see Ered Wethrin and Ephel Dъath; of Terror, see Ered
Gorgoroth. Mount Doom See Amon
Amarth. Music of the Ainur See Ainulindalл. Nahar The horse of the Vala Oromл,
said by the Eldar to be so named on account of his voice. 22, 37, 49-50, 54,
85, 108 Nбmo A Vala, one of the Aratar;
usually named Mandos, the place of
his dwelling. Nбmo means 'Ordainer,
Judge'. 21 Nandor Said to mean 'Those who turn
back': the Nandor were those Elves from the host of the Teleri who refused to
cross the Misty Mountains on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, but of whom a
part, led by Denethor, came long afterwards over the Blue Mountains and dwelt
in Ossiriand (the Green-elves). 55, 107, 146, 244 Nan Dungortheb Also Dungortheb;
translated in the text as 'Valley of Dreadful Death'. The valley between the
precipices of Ered Gorgoroth and the Girdle of Melian. 90, 144, 157, 198, 214 Nan Elmoth The forest east of the river Celon
where Elwл (Thingol) was enchanted by Melian and lost; afterwards the
dwelling-place of Eцl. 58, 61, 104, 158-62, 170, 247,289 Nan-tathren 'Willow-vale', translated as 'the Land
of Willows', where the river Narog flowed into Sirion. In Treebeard's song in The Two Towers III 4 Quenya forms of the
name are used: in the willow-meads of
Tasarinan; Nan-tasarion. 142, 239, 301-2 Nargothrond 'The great underground fortress on the
river Narog', founded by Finrod Felagund and destroyed by Glaurung; also the
realm of Nargothrond extending east and west of the Narog. 134-5, 142-6, 151,
155, 167, 170, 176, 182-3, 188-9, 193, 203-7, 210, 214, 223, 230, 232-4, 239,
Chapter XXI passim, 284-5, 287, 295,
297, 354 Narn i Hоn Hъrin 'The Tale of the Children of
Hъrin', the long lay from which Chapter XXI was derived; ascribed to the poet
Dirhavel, a Man who lived at the Havens of Sirion in the days of Eдrendil and
perished in the attack of the sons of Fлanor. Narn signifies a tale made in verse, but to be spoken and not sung,
243 Narog The chief river of West
Beleriand, rising at Ivrin under Ered Wethrin and flowing into Sirion in
Nan-tathren. 109, 133-4, 142, 145, 203-6, 268, 284 Narsil The sword of Elendil, made
by Telchar of Nogrod, that was broken when Elendil died in combat with Sauron;
from the shards it was reforged for Aragorn and named Anduril. 364-5 Narsilion The Song of the Sun and Moon. 113 Narya One of the Three Rings of
the Elves, the Ring of Fire or the Red Ring; borne by Cнrdan and
afterwards by Mithrandir. 357, 370, 378 Nauglamнr 'The Necklace of the Dwarves', made
for Finrod Felagund by the Dwarves, brought by Hъrin out of Nargothrond to
Thingol, and the cause of his death. 134, 285-7, 291 Naugrim 'The Stunted People', Sindarin
name for the Dwarves. 103-5, 107-9, 132, 159, 161, 231, 236, 289 Nazgыl See Ring-wraiths. Necklace of the Dwarves See Nauglamнr. Neithan Name given to himself by Tъrin
among the outlaws, translated as 'The Wronged' (literally 'one who is
deprived'). 245 Neldoreth The great beech-forest forming the
northern part of Doriath; called Taur-na-Neldor
in Treebeard's song in The Two Towers
HI 4. 57, 103, 105, 109, 145, 199, 208, 242, 289 Nйnar Name of a star. 48 Nen Girith 'Shuddering Water', name given to
Dimrost, the falls of Celebros in the Forest of Brethil. 270-4, 276 Nenning River in West Beleriand,
reaching the sea at the Haven of Eglarest. 142, 239, 259 Nenuial 'Lake of Twilight', in Eriador,
where the river Baranduin rose, and beside which the city of Annъminas was
built. 361 Nenya One of the Three Rings of
the Elves, the Ring of Water, borne by Galadriel; also called the Ring of Adamant, 357, 370 Nerdanel Called the Wise; daughter of
Mahtan the smith, wife of Fлanor. 69, 71, 75 Nessa One of the Valier, the
sister of Oromл and spouse of Tulkas. 18, 22, 31 Nevrast The region west of Dor-lуmin,
beyond Ered Lуmin, where Turgon dwelt before his departure to Gondolin. The
name, meaning 'Hither Shore', was originally that of all the northwestern coast
of Middle-earth (the opposite being Haerast
'the Far Shore', the coast of Aman). 133-5, 141, 149-50, 156, 239, 240, 295,
302 Nienna One of the Valier, numbered
among the Aratar; Lady of pity and mourning, the sister of Mandos and Lуrien;
see especially 21-2. 18, 21-2, 25, 33, 70, 87, 113 Nienor 'Mourning', the daughter of
Hъrin and Morwen and sister of Tъrin; spell-bound by Glaurung at Nargothrond
and in ignorance of her past wedded Tъrin in Brethil in her name Nнniel; cast
herself into the Teiglin. 243, 260, 263-4, 267-79 Nimbrethil Birch-woods in Arvernien in the
south of Beleriand. Cf. Bilbo's song at Rivendell: 'He built a boat of timber
felled in Nimbrethil to journey in …' (The
Fellowship of the Ring II 1). 304 Nimloth (1) The White Tree of Nъmenor, of which a
fruit taken by Isildur before it was felled grew into the White Tree of Minas
Ithil. Nimloth 'White Blossom' is the
Sindarin form of Quenya Ninquelуtл,
one of the names of Telperion. 62, 324, 331-2, 336-8, 342, 361-2 Nimloth (2) Elf of Doriath who wedded Dior
Thingol's Heir; mother of Elwing; slain in Menegroth in the attack by the sons
of Fлanor. 290-1 Nimphelos The great pearl given by Thingol to
the lord of the Dwarves of Belegost. 105 Nнniel 'Tear-maiden', the name
that Tъrin, ignorant of their relationship, gave to his sister; see Nienor. Ninquelуtл 'White Blossom', a name of
Telperion; see Nimloth (1). 33 niphredil A white flower that bloomed in
Doriath in starlight when Lъthien was born. It grew also on Cerin Amroth in
Lothlуrien (The Fellowship of the Ring
II 6, 8). 103 Nirnaeth Arnoediad 'Tears Unnumbered' (also
simply the Nirnaeth), the name given to the ruinous fifth
battle in the Wars of Beleriand. 166, 234-8, 242, 254, 257, 294, 297-8 Nivrim That part of Doriath that
lay on the west bank of Sirion. 145 Noegyth Nibin 'Petty-dwarves' (see also under Dwarves). 250, 284 Nogrod One of the two cities of the
Dwarves in the Blue Mountains; translation into Sindarin of Dwarvish Tumunzahar. See Hollowbold. 104, 107, 132, 158, 161, 215, 231, 250, 285-8, 291 Noldolantл 'The Fall of the Noldor', a lament
made by Maglor son of Fлanor. 98 Noldor The Deep Elves, the second
host of the Eldar on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, led by Finwл. The
name (Quenya Noldo, Sindarin Golodh) meant 'the Wise' (but wise in
the sense of possessing knowledge, not in the sense of possessing sagacity,
sound judgement). For the language of the Noldor see Quenya, Passim; see especially 35, 54, 63-8, 137, 356 Nуm, Nуmin 'Wisdom' and 'the Wise', the names
that the Men of Bлor's following gave to Finrod and his people in their own
tongue. 168 North Downs In Eriador, where was built the
Nъmenуrean city of Fornost 360 Nulukkizdоn Dwarvish name of Nargothrond. 284 Nъmenor (In full Quenya form Nъmenуrл, 321-2, 347.) 'Westernesse',
'Westland', the great island prepared by the Valar as a dwelling-place for the
Edain after the ending of the First Age. Called also Anadыnл, Andor, Elenna, the Land of the Star, and after its
downfall Akallabкth, Atalantл, and Mar-nu-Falmar. 62, 177, 321-37, 341-7,
354, 358-63, 368, 375 Nъmenуreans The Men of Nъmenor, called also Dъnedain. 24, 321-35, 337-9, 342-7, 355,
359-65,367-70,372,376-7 Nurtalл Valinуreva 'The Hiding of Valinor'. 118 Ohtar 'Warrior', esquire of
Isildur, who brought the shards of Elendil's sword to Imladris. 367 Oiolossл 'Ever-snow-white', the most
common name among the Eldar for Taniquetil, rendered into Sindarin as Amon Uilos; but according to the Valaquenta it was the uttermost tower of
Taniquetil.. 19, 32 Oiomъrл A region of mists near to the
Helcaraxл. 88 Olуrin A Maia, one of the Istari (Wizards);
see Mithrandir, Gandalf, and cf. The Two
Towers IV 5: 'Olуrin I was in my youth in the West that is forgotten'. 25-6 olvar An Elvish word retained in
the speeches of Yavanna and Manwл in Chapter II, meaning 'growing things with
roots in the earth', 43-4 Olwл Leader together with his
brother Elwл (Thingol) of the hosts of the Teleri on the westward journey from
Cuiviйnen; lord of the Teleri of Alqualondл in Aman. 54-8, 60-1, 63-5, 97-100,
107, 130, 152 Ondolindл 'Stone Song', the original Quenya
name of Gondolin. 149 Orcs Creatures of Morgoth. Passim; for their origin see 50, 106 Orfalch Echor The great ravine through the Encircling
Mountains by which Gondolin was approached. 296 Ormal One of the Lamps of the
Valar made by Aulл, Ormal stood in the south of Middle-earth. 29-30 Orocarni The Mountains of the East of
Middle-earth (the name means "the Red Mountains'). 49 Orodreth The second son of Finarfin;
warden of the tower of Minas Tirith on Tol Sirion; King of Nargothrond after
the death of Finrod his brother; father of Finduilas; slain in the Battle of
Tumhalad. 64, 93, 142, 187-8, 206, 209, 213, 230, 257-61, 266 Orodruin 'Mountain of Blazing Fire' in
Mordor, in which Sauron forged the Ruling Ring; called also Amon Amarth 'Mount Doom'. 357, 363-6 Oromл A Vala, one of the Aratar; the great
hunter, leader of the Elves from Cuiviйnen, spouse of Vana. The name means
'Horn-blowing' or 'Sound of Horns', cf. Valarуma;
in The Lord of the Rings it appears
in the Sindarin form Araw. See
especially 22-3. 18, 22-3, 31. 37, 47, 49-51, 53-5, 59, 63, 65, 79-82, 85, 93,
106, 108, 114, 184, 209, 225 Oromлt A hill pear the haven of Andъniл in
the west of Nъmenor, on which was built the tower of Tar-Minastir. 332 Orthanc 'Forked Height', the Nъmenуrean
tower in the Circle of Isengard. 361-2, 372 Osgiliath 'Fortress of the Stars', the
chief city of ancient Gondor, on either side of the river Anduin. 361-4, 368 Ossл A Maia, vassal of Ulmo, with whom he
entered the waters of Arda; lover and instructor of the Teleri. 24, 36, 60-1,
64, 98, 141, 240, 321 Ossiriand 'Land of Seven Rivers' (these
being Gelion and its tributaries flowing down from the Blue Mountains), the
land of the Green-elves. Cf. Treebeard's song in The Two Towers III 4: 'I wandered in Summer in the elm-woods of
Ossiriand. Ah! the light and the music in the Summer by the Seven Rivers of
Ossir!' See Lindon. 108, 110, 133,
144-8, 167, 170-1, 182, 184, 229, 239, 289-91, 354 Ost-in-Edhil 'Fortress of the Eldar', the city of
the Elves in Eregion. 354-6 Outer Lands Middle-earth (also called the Hither Lands). 35, 36, 47, 88, 102,
115, 308 Outer Sea See Ekkaia. Palantнri 'Those that watch from afar', the
seven Seeing Stones brought by Elendil and his sons from Nъmenor; made by
Fлanor in Aman (see 69, and The Two
Towers III 11). 342, 362 Pelargir 'Garth of Royal Ships,' the Nъmenуrean haven
above the delta of Anduin. 329 Pelуri 'The fencing or defensive
heights', called also the Mountains of
Aman and the Mountains of Defence, raised
by the Valar after the destruction of their dwelling on Almaren; ranging in a
crescent from north to south, close to the eastern shores of Aman. 32, 34, 46,
59, 62, 80-1, 88, 115-7, 210 People of Haleth See Haladin and Haleth. Periannath The Halflings (Hobbits). 316 Petty-dwarves Translation of Noegyth Nibin. See also under Dwarves. Pharazфn See Ar-Pharazфn. Prophecy of the North The Doom of the Noldor,
uttered by Mandos on the coast of Araman. 98 Quendi Original Elvish name for
Elves (of every kind, including the Avari), meaning 'Those that speak with
voices'. 37-8, 48-53, 57, 61, 73, 76, 114, 121-2, 169 Quenta Silmarillion 'The History of the
Silmarils.' 355 Quenya The ancient tongue, common to
all Elves, in the form that it took in Valinor; brought to Middle-earth by the
Noldorin exiles, but abandoned by them as a daily speech, especially after the
edict of King Thingol against its use; see especially 133, 155. Not named as
such in this book, but referred to as Eldarin,
21, 323, 347; High Eldarin, 322-3; High-elven, 266, 330; the tongue of Valinor, 133; the speech of the Elves of Valinor, 149;
the tongue of the Noldor, 155, 159; the High Speech of the West, 155 Radagast One of the Istari (Wizards). 372,
375 Radhruin One of the twelve companions of
Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Ragnor One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Ramdal 'Wall's End' (see Andram), where the dividing fall across
Beleriand ceased' 146,184 Rбna 'The Wanderer', a name of
the Moon among the Noldor. 114 Rathlуriel 'Golden-bed', later name for the
river Ascar, after the treasure of Doriath was sunk in it 147, 291 Rauros 'Roaring Spray', the great
falls in the river Anduin. 369 Red Ring, The See Narya. Region The dense forest forming the
southern part of Doriath. 57, 105, 110, 145, 158, 288-9 Rerir Mountain to the north of
Lake Helevorn, where rose the greater of the two tributary branches of Gelion.
132,146-8,184 Rhovanion 'Wilderland', the wide region east
of the Misty Mountains. 360-1 Rhudaur Region in the north-east of
Eriador. 360 Rнan Daughter of Belegund
(nephew of Barahir, the father of Beren); wife of Huor and mother of Tuor;
after Huor's death died of grief on the Haudh-en-Ndengin. 177, 187, 194, 242,
294 Ringil The sword of Fingolfin. 185 Ring of Doom See Mбhanaxar. Rings of Power 356-7, 373-5; The One Ring, Great Ring, or Ruling
Ring: 330, 347, 356-8, 363, 365-6, 370-1, 374-7; Three Rings of the Elves: 357, 370-1, 378 (see also Narya, the Ring of Fire, Nenya, the Ring of Adamant, and Vilya, the Ring of Sapphire). Seven Rings of the Dwarves 357-8, 371,
375. Nine Rings of Men 330, 357-8,
371, 375 Ringwil The stream that flowed into
the river Narog at Nargothrond. 146 Ring-wraiths The slaves of the Nine Rings of Men and
chief servants of Sauron; also called Nazgыl
and Ъlairi. 330, 361, 368, 372, 376 Rivendell Translation of Imladris. Rivil Stream falling northwards
from Dorthonion and flowing into Sirion in the Fen of Serech. 233, 237. Rivil's Well 197 Rochallor The horse of Fingolfin. 184 Rohan 'The Horse-country', later
name in Condor for the great grassy plain formerly called Calenardhon. 369, 377 Rohirrim 'The Horse-lords' of Rohan. 369 Romenna 'Haven on the east coast of
Nъmenor. 331, 336-7, 341, 346 Rothinzil Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean) name of
Eдrendil's ship Vingilot, with the same meaning, 'Foam-flower'. 319-21 Rъmil A Noldorin sage of Tirion,
the first deviser of written characters (cf. The Lord of the Rings Appendix E II); to him is attributed the Ainulindalл. 67-8 Saeros Nandorin Elf, one of the
chief counsellors of Thingol in Doriath; insulted Tъrin in Menegroth, and by
him pursued to his death. 244 Salmar A Maia who entered Arda with Ulmo;
maker of Ulmo's great horns, the Ulumъri.
36 Sarn Athrad 'Ford of Stones', where the Dwarf-road
from Nogrod and Belegost crossed the river Gelion. 104, 167, 287, 291 Saruman 'Man of Skill', the name among
Men of Curunнr (which it translates),
one of the Istari (Wizards). 372‑3 Sauron 'The Abhorred' (in Sindarin
called Gorthaur); greatest of the servants of Melkor, in his origin a Maia of Aulл.
26, 47, 52, 169, 187-8, 195-8, 206-8, 210-3, 216, 330, 333-40, 343, 346-8,
353-77 Secondborn, The The Younger Children of Ilъvatar, Men. 44 Seeing Stones See Palantнri. Serech The great fen north of the
Pass of Sirion, where the river Rivil flowed in from Dorthonion. 124, 182, 197,
233, 236, 282 seregon 'Blood of Stone', a plant with
deep red flowers that grew on Amon Rыdh. 248, 252 Serindл 'The Broideress'; see Mнriel (I). Seven Fathers of the Dwarves See
Dwarves. Seven Stones See Palantнri. Shadowy Mountains See Ered Wethrin. Shepherds of the Trees Ents. 45, 290 Sickle of the Valor See Valacirca. Silmarien Daughter of Tar-Elendil, the
fourth King of Nъmenor; mother of the first lord of Andъniл and ancestress of
Elendil and his sons Isildur and Anбrion. 331 Silmarils The three jewels made by Fлanor
before the destruction of the Two Trees of Valinor, and filled with their
light; see especially 72-3. 35, 72-5, 78, 83, 86-93, 116. 121-2, 126, 130, 136,
152, 202-5, 209, 219-21, 224-6, 230, 243, 286-93, 302-3, 305-6, 310, 313-4 Silpion A name of Telperion. 33 Silvan Elves Also called Woodland Elves. They appear to have been in origin those Nandorin
Elves who never passed west of the Misty Mountains, but remained in the Vale of
Anduin and in Greenwood the Great; see Nandor
354, 370 Sindar The Grey-elves. The name was
applied to all the Elves of Telerin origin whom the returning Noldor found in
Beleriand, save for the Green-elves of Ossiriand. The Noldor may have devised
this name because the first Elves of this origin whom they met with were in the
north, under the grey skies and mists about Lake Mithrim (see Mithrim); or perhaps because the
Grey-elves were not of the Light (of Valinor) nor yet of the Dark (Avari), but
were Elves of the Twilight (58). But
it was held to refer to Elwл's name Thingol
(Quenya Sindacollo, Singollo
'Grey-cloak'), since he was acknowledged high king of all the land and its
peoples. The Sindar called themselves Edhil,
plural Edhel. 22, 32, 58, 103, 108,
120, 125, 133, 137-42, 148, 150, 153-5, 164, 171, 182,188-90, 242, 277, 289,
291, 294, 353 Sindarin The Elvish tongue of Beleriand,
derived from the common Elvish speech but greatly changed through long ages
from Quenya of Valinor; acquired by the Noldorin exiles in Beleriand (see 133,
155). Called also the Grey-elven tongue,
the tongue of the Elves of Beleriand, etc. 36, 62-3, 133, 140, 149, 155,
177, 187, 199, 250, 319, 322 Singollo 'Grey-cloak', 'Grey-mantle'; see Sindar, Thingol, Sirion 'The Great River' flowing
from north to south and dividing West from East Beleriand. Passim; see especially 52, 141-2, 145. Falls of Sirion 203, 285. Fens
of Sirion 203. Gates of Sirion
146. Havens of Sirion 294, 304-5,
313. Mouths of Sirion 60, 142, 190,
192, 239, 293, 302, 304. Pass of Sirion
135, 141, 182, 193, 215, 234, 237, 260, 265. Vale of Sirion 56, 124, 135, 140, 149, 248, 265, 301 Sons of Fлanor See Maedhros,
Maglor, Celegorm, Caranthir, Curufin, Amrod, Amras, Often referred to as a
group, especially after the death of their father: 69, 74-5, 77, 93, 126-7,
131-3, 144, 147-8, 152-4, 157, 159-61, 180, 183-4, 204, 213-4, 223, 230-1, 235,
238-9, 292-3, 302,305,313-4 Soronъmл Name of a constellation. 48 Stone of the Hapless Memorial stone of Tъrin
and Nienor by Cabed Naeramarth in the river Teiglin. 283-4 Straight Road, Straight Way The path over the Sea
into the Ancient or True West, on which the ships of the Elves might still sail
after the Downfall of Nъmenor and the Changing of the World. 348-9 Strongbow Translation of Cъthalion, name of Beleg. Sъlimo Name of Manwл, rendered in
the Valaquenta as 'Lord of the Breath
of Arda' (literally 'the Breather'). 18, 35, 95 Swanhaven See Alqualondл. Swarthy Men See Easterlings. 189 Talath Dirnen The Guarded Plain, north of Nargothrond.
176, 203, 208, 252, 258, 261 Talath Rhunen 'The East Vale', earlier name of
Thargelion. 148 Taniquetil 'High White Peak', highest of the
mountains of the Pelуri and the highest mountain of Arda, upon whose summit are
Ilmarin, the mansions of Manwл and Varda; also called the White Mountain, the Holy Mountain, and the Mountain of Manwл. See Oiolossл,
19, 32, 35, 47, 51, 65, 81-4, 88, 93, 96, 129, 307, 344, 348 Tar-Ancalimon Fourteenth King of Nъmenor, in whose time
the Nъmenуreans became divided into opposed parties. 328 Taras Mountain on a promontory
of Nevrast; beneath it was Vinyamar, the dwelling of Turgon before he went to
Gondolin. 140, 295 Tar-Atanamir Thirteenth King of Nъmenor, to whom the
Messengers of the Valar came. 327-8 Tar-Calion Quenya name of Ar-Pharazфn. 333, 359 Tar-Ciryatan Twelfth King of Nъmenor 'the
Shipbuilder'. 327 Tar-Elendil Fourth King of Nъmenor, father of
Silmarien, from whom Elendil was descended. 331 Tar-Minastir Eleventh King of Nъmenor, who aided
Gil-galad against Sauron. 329-30, 332 Tar-Minyatur Name of Elros Half-elven as first King
of Nъmenor. 336 Tar-Mнriel See Mнriel (2). Tarn Aeluin The lake on Dorthonion where Barahir
and his companions made their lair, and where they were slain. 195-6 Tar-Palantir Twenty-third King of Nъmenor, who
repented of the ways of the Kings, and took his name in Quenya: 'He who looks
afar'. See Inziladыn. 332, 337 Taur-en-Faroth The wooded highlands to the west of the
river Narog above Nargothrond; also called the
High Faroth. 134, 145, 203 Taur-im-Duinath 'The Forest between Rivers', name of the wild
country south of the Andram between Sirion and Gelion. 147, 184 Taur-nu-Fuin Later name of Dorthonion: 'the Forest
under Night'. Cf. Deldъwath. 186,
206, 212, 215-6, 221, 223, 245, 253-6 Tauron 'The Forester' (translated in
the Valaquenta 'Lord of Forests'), a
name of Oromл among the Sindar. Cf. Aldaron.
22 Teiglin A tributary of Sirion, rising
in Ered Wethrin and bounding the Forest of Brethil on the south; see also Crossings of Teiglin. 142, 145, 176,
190, 245, 251, 261, 265, 271, 273,279, 284 Telchar The most renowned of the
smiths of Nogrod, the maker of Angrist and (according to Aragorn in The Two Towers III 6) of Narsil. 107,
215 Telemnar Twenty-sixth King of Gondor. 368 Teleri The third and greatest of
the three hosts of the Eldar on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, led by
Elwл (Thingol) and Olwл. Their own name for themselves was Lindar the Singers; the name Teleri
the Last-comers, the Hindmost, was given to them by those before them on the
march. Many of the Teleri did not leave Middle-earth; the Sindar and the Nandor
were Telerin Elves in origin. 36, 54-7, 60-4, 71, 79-80, 83, 96-8, 101, 107,
111,117, 159‑60, 164, 306-9, 310, 315, 354 Telperion The elder of the Two Trees of
Valinor. 34, 47, 62, 82, 114-5, 247, 324, 361-2. Called the White Tree 62 Telumendil Name of a constellation. 48 Thalion 'Steadfast, Strong'; see Hъrin. Thalos The second of the
tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand. 147, 167 Thangorodrim 'Mountains of Tyranny', reared by Morgoth
above Angband; broken down in the Great Battle at the end of the First Age. 90,
109, 125-8, 136,139-40, 180-3, 215, 221, 232, 234, 240, 254, 312, 320, 353-4,
364 Thargelion 'The Land beyond Gelion', between
Mount Rerir and the river Ascar, where Caranthir dwelt; called also Dor Caranthir and Talath Rhunen. 148, 158, 171, 174, 184 Thingol 'Grey-cloak', 'Grey-mantle'
(in Quenya Sindacollo, Singollo), the
name by which Elwл, leader with his brother Olwл of the host of the Teleri from
Cuiviйnen and afterwards King of Doriath, was known in Beleriand; also called the Hidden King. See Elwл. 58, 103-10, 125, 130-1, 134, 145,
151-5, 157, 172, 176-7, 182, 190, 199-204, 208-9, 217, 222-7, 229-30, 243-7,
260, 267,269,280, 285-92, 297, 315 Thorondor 'King of Eagles'. Cf. The Return of the King VI 4: 'Old
Thorondor, who built his eyries in the inaccessible peaks of the Encircling
Mountains when Middle-earth was young'. See Crissaegrim.
129, 149, 186, 191, 221, 281, 297, 301, 312 Thousand Caves See Menegroth. Thranduil Sindarin Elf, King of the Silvan
Elves in the north of Greenwood the Great (Mirkwood); father of Legolas, who
was of the Fellowship of the Ring. 371 ThurIngwлthil 'Woman of Secret Shadow', the messenger of
Sauron from Tol-in-Gaurhoth who took the form of a great bat, and in whose
shape Lъthien entered Angband. 216 Tilion A Maia, steersman of the
Moon. 114-7 Tintallл 'The Kindler', a name of Varda
as maker of the Stars. She is called thus in Galadriel's lament in Lуrien, The Fellowship of the Ring II 8. Cf. Elbereth, Elentбri. 48 Tinъviel The name that Beren gave to
Lъthien: a poetic word for the nightingale, 'Daughter of Twilight'. See Lъthien. Tirion 'Great Watch-tower', the
city of the Elves on the hill of Tъna in Aman. 62, 65-7, 74-5, 77-8, 83, 91,
94-6, 117, 134-5, 149-52, 205, 297, 307, 361 Tol Eressлa 'The Lonely Isle' (also simply Eressлa), on which the Vanyar and the
Noldor and afterwards the Teleri were drawn across the ocean by Ulmo, and which
was at last rooted in the Bay of Eldamar near to the coasts of Aman. On Eressлa
the Teleri long remained before they went to Alqualondл; and there dwelt many
of the Noldor and the Sindar after the ending of the First Age. 50, 60-2, 64,
118, 306, 310, 315, 321, 324, 331, 345, 349, 355, 362 Tol Galen 'The Green Isle' in the river
Adurant in Ossiriand, where Beren and Lъthien dwelt after their return. 147,
229, 290 Tol-in-Gaurhoth 'Isle of Werewolves', name of Tol Sirion after
its capture by Sauron. 188, 208, 210 Tol Morwen Island in the sea after the drowning
of Beleriand on which stood the memorial stone of Tъrin, Nienor, and Morwen.
284 Tol Sirion Island in the river in the Pass of
Sirion on which Finrod built the tower of Minas Tirith; after its capture by
Sauron named Tol-in-Gaurhoth. 133, 142, 188 Tulkas A Vala, the 'greatest in
strength and deeds of prowess', who came last to Arda; also called Astaldo. 18, 22, 29-31, 47, 51, 52,
70-1, 77-80, 85-7 Tumhalad Valley in the land between the
rivers Ginglith and Narog, where the host of Nargothrond was defeated. 261 Tumladen 'The Wide Valley', the hidden vale
in the Encircling Mountains in the midst of which stood the city of Gondolin. (Tumladen was afterwards the name of a
valley in Gondor: The Return of the King
V 1). 135, 149, 160, 191, 221, 296, 301 Tumunzahar See Nogrod. 104 Tъna The green hill in the
Calacirya on which Tirion, the city of the Elves, was built. 62, 65-7, 75, 79,
91, 96, 100,117, 135, 149, 307, 324, 344 Tuor Son of Huor and Rнan,
fostered by the Grey-elves of Mithrim; entered Gondolin bearing the message of
Ulmo; wedded Idril Turgon's daughter, and with her and their son Eдrendil
escaped from the destruction of the City; in his ship Eдrrбmл set sail into the
West. 177, 242, 294-304, 308 Turambar 'Master of Doom', the last name
taken by Tъrin, during his days in the Forest of Brethil. 266, 270-80, 284 Turgon Called the Wise; the second
son of Fingolfin; dwelt at Vinyamar in Nevrast before he departed in secret to
Gondolin, which he ruled until his death in the sack of the city; father of
Idril the mother of Eдrendil 64, 93, 100-2, 133, 135, 140-1, 149-51,155-7, 160,
163-5, 186, 191-3, 221, 231-2, 234-7, 240, 247, 281-2, 294-300, 302, 308, 315 Tыr Haretha The burial-mound of the Lady Haleth in
the Forest of Brethil (see Haudh-en-Arwen).
176 Tъrin Son of Hъrin and Morwen;
chief subject of the lay named Narn i Hоn Hъrin from which Chapter XXI was
derived. For his other names see Neithan,
Gorthol, Agarwaen, Mormegil, Wildman of the Woods, Turambar. 177, 178, 205,
242-66, 271, 274-80, 284 Twilight Meres See Aelin-uial. Two Kindreds Elves and Men. 307-8, 319, 366 Two Trees of Valinor 33-4, 45-6, 53-4, 58,
61-2, 65, 71-2, 78, 83-4, 86, 109, 111-6, 119, 151, 288, 296, 302, 336-7 Uinen A Maia, the Lady of the
Seas, spouse of Ossл. 24, 36, 60, 98 Ъlairi See Ring-wraiths. Uldor Called the Accursed; son of
Ulfang the Black; slain by Maglor in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 232, 235-7,
311 Ulfang Called the Black; a
chieftain of the Easterlings, who with his three sons followed Caranthir, and
proved faithless in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 231, 235 Ulfast Son of Ulfang the Black,
slain by the sons of Bor in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 235 Ulmo A Vala, one of the Aratar,
called Lord of Waters and King of the
Sea, The name was interpreted by the Eldar to mean 'The Pourer' or 'The
Rainer'. See especially 19-20, 36. 8-10, 18-24, 36, 44, 51, 52, 59-61, 64, 70,
97, 116, 120, 133-5, 141, 146, 149-52, 187, 190, 240, 256, 260, 294-8, 301-2,
305-6, 308 Ulumъri The great horns of Ulmo made by the Maia Salmar.
19, 36, 59 Ulwarth Son of Ulfang the Black, slain
by the sons of Bor in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 235 Ъmanyar Name given to those Elves who
went on the westward Journey from Cuiviйnen but did not reach Aman: 'Those not
of Aman', beside Amanyar 'Those of
Aman'. 54, 58 Ъmarth 'Ill-fate', a fictitious name
for his father given out by Tъrin in Nargothrond. 257 Umbar Great natural haven and
fortress of the Nъmenуreans south of the Bay of Belfalas. 334 Undying Lands Aman and Eressлa; also called the Deathless Lands. 308, 320, 324, 345,
348 Ungoliant The great spider, destroyer with
Melkor of the Trees of Valinor. Shelob in The
Lord of the Rings was 'the last child of Ungoliant to trouble the unhappy
world' (The Two Towers IV 9). 79-80,
84, 85, 88-90, 100, 109, 116, 144, 157,198,307 Union of Maedhros The league formed by
Maedhros to defeat Morgoth that ended in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad 230 Urthel One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Urulуki Quenya word meaning
'fire-serpent', dragon. 137, 294-304, 308 Utumno The first great stronghold of
Melkor, in the north of Middle-earth, destroyed by the Valar. 31, 37, 46, 51-2,
81, 91, 114, 139 Vairл 'The Weaver', one of the
Valier, the spouse of Nбmo Mandos. 18, 21 Valacirca 'The Sickle of the Valar', name of
the constellation of the Great Bear. 48, 211 Valandil Youngest son of Isildur; third
King of Arnor. 367 Valaquenta 'Account of the Valar', a short work
treated as a separate entity from The
Silmarillion proper. Valar 'Those with Power', 'The
Powers' (singular Vala); name given
to those great Ainur who entered into Eд at the beginning of Time, and assumed
the function of guarding and governing Arda. Called also the Great Ones, the Rulers of Arda, the Lords of the West, the Lords of
Valinor. Passim; see especially 10-12, 37, 81-2, and see also Ainur, Aratar. Valaraukar 'Demons of Might' (singular Valarauko), Quenya form corresponding to
Sindarin Balrog. 26 Valarуma The horn of the Vala Oromл. 22,
37, 85, 108-9 Valier 'The Queens of the Valar'
(singular Valie); a term used only in
the Valaquenta. 18, 20, 23 Valimar See Valmar. Valinor The land of the Valar in Aman,
beyond the mountains of the Pelуri; also called the Guarded Realm. Passim; see especially 32-3, 117 Valmar The city of the Valar in
Valinor; the name also occurs in the form Valimar.
In Galadriel's lament in Lуrien (The
Fellowship of the Ring II 8) Valimar is made equivalent to Valinor. 21-3,
33, 51, 57, 64, 70, 76-9, 82-4, 94, 117, 227-8, 307-8 Vбna One of the Valier, the
sister of Yavanna and spouse of Oromл; called the Ever-young. 18, 23, 114 Vanyar The first host of the Eldar
on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, led by Ingwл. The name (singular Vanya) means 'the Fair', referring to
the golden hair of the Vanyar; see Finarfin.
35, 55, 59, 62-5, 69, 71, 83-4, 91, 112-4, 117, 155, 163, 310,315 Varda 'The Exalted', 'The Lofty';
also called the Lady of the Stars.
Greatest of the Valier, the spouse of Manwл, dwelling with him on Taniquetil.
Other names of Varda, as maker of the Stars, were Elbereth, Elentбri, Tintallл. See especially 18-9, 18-9, 23-4, 29,
32, 34-6, 47-8, 54, 62, 73, 83-4, 86, 93, 113-6, 211, 313-6 Vбsa 'The Consumer', a name of
the Sun among the Noldor. 114 Vilya One of the Three Rings of
the Elves, the Ring of Air, borne by Gil-galad and afterwards by Elrond; also
called The Ring of Sapphire. 357, 370 Vingilot (In full Quenya form Vingilуtл). 'Foam-flower', the name of Eдrendil's ship; see Rothinzil. 305, 310, 312, 319 Vinyamar The house of Turgon in Nevrast under
Mount Taras. The meaning is probably 'New Dwelling'. 135, 141, 150, 155, 295-7 Voronwл 'The Steadfast', Elf of
Gondolin, the only mariner to survive from the seven ships sent into the West
after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad; met with Tuor at Vinyamar and guided him to
Gondolin. 240, 295 Westernesse See Anadыnл, Nъmenor. White Council The Council of the Wise in the Third Age
formed to oppose Sauron. 373-5 White Mountain See Taniquetil. White Tree See Telperion, Galathilion, Nimhth (1). The White Trees of Minas Ithil
and Minas Anor: 337, 342, 361, 364-8, 378 Wildman of the Woods Name adopted by Tъrin when
he first came among the Men of Brethil. 265 Wilwarin Name of a constellation. The
word meant 'butterfly' in Quenya, and the constellation was perhaps Cassiopeia.
48 Wizards See Istari. 372 Woodland Elves See Silvan
Elves. Yavanna 'Giver of fruits'; one of the
Valier, numbered among the Aratar; the spouse of Aulл; called also Kementбri See especially 20-1. 18, 20-3,
29-30, 33-5, 43-7, 57, 62, 82, 86-8, 90, 103, 113-4, 120, 321, 324, 362 Year of Lamentation The year of the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 151, 243 APPENDIX Elements in Quenya and Sindarin NamesThese notes have been compiled for those who take an interest in the
Eldarin languages, and The Lord of the
Rings is extensively drawn upon for illustration. They are necessarily very
compressed, giving an air of certainty and finality that is not altogether
justified; and they are very selective, this depending both on considerations
of length and the limitations of the editor's knowledge. The headings are not
arranged systematically by roots or in Quenya or Sindarin forms, but somewhat
arbitrarily, the aim being to make the component elements of names as readily
identifiable as possible. adan (plural
Edain) in Adanedhel, Aradan, Dъnedain. For its meaning and history see Atani in the Index. aelin 'lake, pool' in Aelin-uial; cf. lin (2). aglar 'glory, brilliance' in Dagor Aglareb, Aglarond. The form m
Quenya, alkar, has transposition of
the consonants: to Sindarin aglareb
corresponds Alkarinquл. The root is kal- 'shine', q.v. aina 'holy' in Ainur, Ainulindalл. alda 'tree' (Quenya) in Aldaron, Aldudйniл, Malinalda, corresponding to Sindarin galadh (seen in Caras Galadon and the Galadrim
of Lothlуrien). alqua 'swan' (Sindarin alph) in Alqualondл; from a root alak-
'rushing' occurring also in Ancalagon. amarth 'doom' in Amon Amarth, Cabed Naeramarth, Ъmarth,
and in the Sindarin form of Tъrin's name 'Master of Doom', Turamarth. The Quenya form of the word appears in Turambar. amon 'hill', a Sindarin word
occurring as the first element of many names; plural emyn in Emyn Beraid. 445 anca 'jaws' in Ancalagon (for the second element in
this name see alqua). an(d) 'long' in Andram, Anduin; also in Anfalas ('Lang-strand') in Gondor, Cair Andros ('ship of long-foam') an
island in Anduin, and Angerthas 'long
rune-rows'. andъnл 'sunset, west' in Andъniл, to which corresponds in
Sindarin annun, cf. Annъminas, and Henneth Annun 'window of the sunset' in Ithilien. The ancient root of
these words, ndu, meaning 'down, from
on high', appears also in Quenya numen
'the way of the sunset, west' and in Sindarin dun 'west', cf. Dъnedain,
Adыnaic adun in Adunakhфr, Anadыnл was a loan from Eldarin speech. anga 'iron', Sindarin ang, in Angainor, Angband, Anghabar, Anglachel, Angrist, Angrod, Anguirel,
Gurthang; angren 'of iron' in Angrenost,
plural engrin in Ered Engrin. anna 'gift' in Annatar, Melian, Yavanna; the same stem
m Andor 'Land of Gift'. annon 'great door or gate', plural
ennyn, in Annon-in-Gelydh; cf. Morannon
the 'Black Gate' of Mordor and Sirannon
the 'Gate-stream' of Moria. ar- 'beside, outside'
(whence Quenya ar 'and', Sindarin a), probably in Araman 'outside Aman'; cf. also (Nirnaeth) Arnoediad
'(Tears) without reckoning'. ar(a)- 'high, noble, royal'
appears in a great many names, as Aradan,
Aredhel, Argonath, Arnor, etc.; extended stem arat- appearing in Aratar,
and in arato 'champion, eminent man',
e.g. Angrod from Angarбto and Finrod from Findarбto; also aran 'king' in Aranrъth.
Ereinion 'scion of kings' (name of Gil-galad) has the plural of aran; cf. Fornost Erain 'Norbury of the Kings' in Arnor. The prefix Ar- of the Adыnaic names of the Kings of
Nъmenor was derived from this. arien (the Maia of the Sun) is
derived from a root as- seen also in
Quenya бrл 'sunlight'. atar 'father' in Atanatбri (see Atani in Index), Ilъvatar. band 'prison, duress' m Angband; from original mbando, of which the Quenya form appears
in Mandos (Sindarin Angband=Quenya Angamando). bar 'dwelling' in Bar-en-Danwedh. The ancient word mbar (Quenya mar, Sindarin bar) meant
the 'home' both of persons and of peoples, and thus appears in many
place-names, as Brithombar, Dimbar
(the first element of which means 'sad, gloomy'), Eldamar, Val(i)mar, Vinyamar, Mar-nu-Falmar. Mardil, name of the
first of the Ruling Stewards of Gondor, means 'devoted to the house' (i.e. of
the Kings). barad 'tower' in Barad-dыr, Barad Either Barad Nimras; the
plural in Emyn Beraid. beleg 'mighty' in Beleg, Belegaer, Belegost, Laer Cъ Beleg. brago 'sudden' in Dagor Bragollach. brethil probably means 'silver
birch'; cf. Nimbrethil the birchwoods
in Arvernien, and Fimbrethil, one of
the Entwives. brith 'gravel' m Brithiach, Brithombar, Brithon. (For many names
beginning with C see entries under K) calen (galen) the usual Sindarin word for 'green', in Ard-galen, Tol Galen, Calenardhon; also
in Parth Galen ('Green Sward') beside
Anduin and Pinnath Gelin ('Green
Ridges') in Gondor. See kal-. cam (from kamba) 'hand', but specifically of the
hand held cupped in the attitude of receiving or holding, in Camlost, Erchamion. carak- This root is seen in Quenya carca 'fang', of which the Sindarin form
carch occurs in Carcharoth, and also in Carchost
('Fang Fort', one of the Towers of the Teeth at the entrance to Mordor). Cf. Caragdыr, Carach Angren ('Iron Jaws',
the rampart and dike guarding the entrance to Udun in Mordor), and Helcaraxл. caran 'red', Quenya carnл, in Caranthir, Carnil, Orocarni; also in Caradhras, from caran-rass,
the 'Red-horn' in the Misty Mountains, and Carnimirie
'red-jewelled', the rowan-tree m Treebeard's song. The translation of Carcharoth in the text as 'Red Maw' must
depend on association with this word; see carak-. celeb 'silver' (Quenya telep, telpл, as in Telperion) in Celeborn,
Celebrant, Celebros. Celebrimbor means 'silver-fist', from the adjective celebrin 'silver' (meaning not 'made of
silver' but 'like silver, in hue or worth') and paur (Quenya quare)
'fist' often used to mean 'hand'; the Quenya form of the name was Telperinquar. Celebrindal has celebrin and tal, dal 'foot'. coron 'mound' in Corollairл (also called Coron Oiolairл, which latter word
appears to mean 'Ever-summer', cf. Oiolossл);
cf. Cerin Amroth, the great mound in
Lothlуrien. cъ 'bow' in Cъthalion, Dor Cъarthol, Laer Cъ Beleg. cuiviл 'awakening' in Cuiviйnen (Sindarin Nen Echui). Other
derivatives of the same root are Dor Firn‑i‑Guinar;
coire, the first beginning of Spring, Sindarin echuir. The Lord of the Rings Appendix D; and coimas 'life-bread', Quenya name of lembas. cul- 'golden-red' in Culъrien. curu 'skill' in Curuftn(we), Curunнr. dae 'shadow' in Dor Daedeloth, and perhaps m Daeron. dagor 'battle'; the root is ndak-, cf. Haudh-en-Ndengin. Another derivative is Dagnir (Dagnir Glaurunga
'Glaurung's Bane'). del 'horror* in Deldъwath; deloth 'abhorrence' in Dor Daedeloth. dоn 'silent' in Dor Dнnen; cf. Rath Dнnen, the Silent Street in Minas Tirith, and Amon Dоn, one of the beacon-hills of
Gondor. dol 'head' in Lуrindol; often applied to hills and
mountains, as in Dol Guldur, Dolmed,
Mindolluin (also Nardol, one of
the beacon-hills of Gondor, and Fanuidhol,
one of the Mountains of Moria). dфr 'land' (i.e. dry land
as opposed to sea) was derived from ndor;
it occurs in many Sindarin names, as Doriath,
Dorthonion, Eriador, Gondor, Mordor, etc. In Quenya the stem was blended
and confused with a quite distinct word nуrл
meaning 'people'; in origin Valinуrл
was strictly 'the people of the Valar', but Valandor
'the land of the Valar', and similarly Nъmen(n)уrл
'people of the West', but Nъmendor
'land of the West'. Quenya Endor 'Middle-earth'
was from ened 'middle' and ndor; this in Sindarin became Ennor (cf. ennorath 'middle lands' in the chant A Elbereth Gilthoniel). draug 'wolf' in Draugluin. dъ 'night, dimness' in Deldъwath, Ephel Dъath. Derived from
earlier dцmл, whence Quenya lуmл; thus Sindarin dъlin 'nightingale' corresponds to lуmelindл. duin '(long) river' in Anduin, Baranduin, Esgalduin, Malduin,
Taur-im-Duinath. dыr 'dark' in Barad-dыr, Caragdыr, Dol Guldur; also in
Durthang (a castle in Mordor). лar 'sea' (Quenya) in Eдrendil, Eдrrбmл, and many other names.
The Sindarin word gaer (in Belegaer) is apparently derived from the
same original stem. echor in Echoriath 'Encircling Mountains' and Orfalch Echor; cf. Rammas
Echor 'the great wall of the outer circle' about the Pelennor Fields at
Minas Tirith. edhel 'elf (Sindarin) in Adanedhel, Aredhel, Glуredhel, Ost-in-Edhil;
also in Peredhil 'Half-elven'. eithel 'well' m Eithel Ivrin, Eithel Sirion, Barad Eithel; also
in Mitheithel, the river Hoarwell in
Eriador (named from its source). See kel-. кl, elen 'star'. According to Elvish
legend, ele was a primitive
exclamation 'behold!' made by the Elves when they first saw the stars. From
this origin derived the ancient words кl
and elen, meaning 'star', and the
adjectives elda and elena, meaning 'of the stars'. These
elements appear in a great many names. For the later use of the name Eldar see the Index. The Sindarin
equivalent of Elda was Edhel (plural Edhil), q.v.; 'but the
strictly corresponding form was Eledh,
which occurs in Eledhwen. er 'one, alone', in Amon Ereb (cf, Erebor, the Lonely Mountain), Erchamion,
Eressлa, Eru. ereg 'thorn, holly' in Eregion, Region. esgal 'screen, hiding' in Esgalduin. falas 'shore, line of surf'
(Quenya falassл) in Falas, Belfalas; also Anfalas in
Gondor. Cf. Falathar, Falathrim. Another
derivative from the root was Quenya falma
'(crested) wave', whence Falmari,
Mar-nu-Falmar. faroth is derived from a root
meaning 'hunt, pursue'; in the Lay of Leithian the Taur-en-Faroth above Nargothrond are called 'the Hills of the
Hunters'. faug- 'gape' in Anfauglir, Anfauglith, Dor-nu-Fauglith. fea 'spirit' in Fлanor, Fлanturi. fin- 'hair' in Finduilas, Fingon, Finrod, Glorftndel. formen 'north' (Quenya) in Formenos; Sindarin forn (also for, forod) in Fornost. fuin 'gloom, darkness' (Quenya huine) in Fuinur, Taur-nu-Fuin. gaer 'sea' in Belegaer (and in Gaerys, Sindarin name of Ossл). Said to derive from the stem gaya 'awe, dread', and to have been the
name made for the vast and terrifying Great Sea when the Eldar first came to
its shores. gaur 'werewolf (from a root ngwaw- 'howl') m Tol-in-Gaurhoth. gil 'star' in Dagor-nuin-Giliath, Osgiliath (giliath 'host of stars'); Gil-Estel, Gil-galad. girith 'shuddering' in Nen Girith; cf. also Girithron, name of the last month of the
year in Sindarin (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix D). glin 'gleam' (particularly
applied to the eyes) in Maeglin. golodh is the Sindarin form of
Quenya Noldo; see gul Plural Golodhrim, and Gelydh (in
Annon-in-Gelydh). gond 'stone' in Gondolin, Gondor, Gonnhirrim, Argonath,
seregon. The name of the hidden city of King Turgon was devised by him in
Quenya as Ondolindл (Quenya ondo= Sindarin gond, and lindл 'singing,
song'); but it was known always in legend in the Sindarin form Gondolin, which was probably interpreted
as gond-dolen 'Hidden Rock'. gor 'horror, dread' in Gorthaur, Gorthol; goroth of the same
meaning, with reduplicated gor, in Gorgoroth, Ered Gorgoroth. groth (grod) 'delving, underground dwelling' m Menegroth, Nogrod (probably also in Nimrodel, 'lady of the white cave'). Nogrod was originally Novrod 'hollow delving' (hence the
translation Hollowbold), but was altered under the influence of
naug 'dwarf'. gul 'sorcery'
in Dol Guldur, Minas Morgul. This
word was derived from the same ancient stem ngol-
that appears in Noldor; cf. Quenya nуlл 'long study, lore, knowledge'. But
the Sindarin word was darkened in sense by its frequent use in the compound morgul 'black arts'. gurth 'death' in Gurthang (see also Melkor in the Index). gwaith 'people' in Gwaith-i-Mнrdain; cf. Enedwaith 'Middle-folk', name of the
land between the Greyflood and the Isen. gwalh, wath 'shadow' in Deldъwath, Ephel Dъath; also in Gwathlo,
the river Greyflood in Eriador. Related forms in Ered Wethrin, ThurIngwлthil. (This Sindarin word referred to dim
light, not to the shadows of objects cast by light: these were called morchaint 'dark shapes'.) hadhod in Hadhodrond (translation of Khazad-dыm)
was a rendering of Khazвd into
Sindarin sounds. haudh 'mound' in Haudh-en-Arwen, Haudh-en-Elleth, etc. heru 'lord' in Herumor, Herunъmen; Sindarin hir in Gonnhirrim, Rohirrim, Barahir; hнril
'lady' in Hнrilorn. him 'cool' in Himlad (and Himring?). hоn 'children' in Eruhini 'Children of Eru'; Narn
i Hоn Hъrin. hith 'mist' in Hithaeglir, Hithlum (also in Nen Hithoel, a lake in Anduin). Hithlum is Sindarin in form, adapted
from the Quenya name Hнsilуmл given
by the Noldorin exiles (Quenya hнsiл
'mist', cf. Hнsimл, the name of the
eleventh month of the year. The Lord of
the Rings Appendix D). hoth 'host, horde' (nearly
always in a bad sense) in Tol-in-Gaurhoth;
also in Loss(h)oth, the Snowmen of
Forochel (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix A [I, iii]) and Glamhoth
'din-horde', a name for Orcs. hyarmen 'south' (Quenya) in Hyarmentir; Sindarin har-, harn, harad. ia 'void, abyss' m Moria. iant 'bridge' in Iant Iaur. iвth 'fence' in Doriath. iaur 'old' in Iant Iaur; cf. the Elvish name of
Bombadil, Iarwain. ilm- This stem appears in Ilmen, Ilmarл, and also in Ilmarin ('mansion of the high airs', the
dwelling of Manwл and Varda upon Oiolossл). ilъvл 'the whole, the all' in Ilъvatar. kal' (gal-) This root, meaning 'shine', appears
in Calacirya, Calaquendi, Tar-Calion;
galvorn, Gil-galad, Galadriel. The last two names have no connexion with
Sindarin galadh tree', although in
the case of Galadriel such a connexion was often made, and the name altered to Galadhriel. In the High-elven speech her
name was Al(a)tбriel, derived from alata 'radiance' (Sindarin galad) and riel 'garlanded maiden'
(from a root rig- 'twine, wreathe'):
the whole meaning 'maiden crowned with a radiant garland', referring to her
hair. calen (galen) 'green' is
etymologically 'bright', and derives from this root; see also aglar. kбno 'commander': this Quenya
word is the origin of the second element m Fingon
and Turgon. kel- 'go away', of water
'flow away, flow down', in Celon; from
et-kele 'issue of water, spring' was
derived, with transposition of the consonants, Quenya ehtele, Sindarin eithel. kemen 'earth' in Kementбri; a Quenya word referring to
the earth as a flat floor beneath menel,
the heavens. kheliek- 'ice' in Helcar, Helcaraxл (Quenya helka
'icy, ice-cold'). But in Helevorn the
first element is Sindarin heledh
'glass', taken from Khuzdul kheled
(cf. Kheled-zaram 'Mirrormere'); Helevorn means 'black glass' (cf. galvorn). khil- 'follow' in Hildor, Hildуrien, Eluchнl. kir- 'cut, cleave' in Calacirya, Cirth, Angerthas, Cirith (Ninniach, Thoronath). From the sense 'pass swiftly through' was derived Quenya cнrya 'sharp-prowed ship' (cf. English cutter), and this meaning appears also
in Cнrdan, Tar-Ciryatan, and no doubt
in the name of Isildur's son Cнryon. lad 'plain, valley' in Dagorlad, Himlad; imlad a narrow valley
with steep sides, in Imladris (cf.
also Imlad Morgul in the Ephel
Dъath). laure 'gold' (but of light and
colour, not of the metal) in Laurelin;
the Sindarin forms in Glуredhel,
Glorfindel, Loeg Ningloron, Lуrindol, Rathlуriel. lhach 'leaping flame' m Dagor Bragollach, and probably in Anglachel (the sword made by Eцl of
meteoric iron). lin (1) 'pool, mere' in Linaewen (which contains aew [Quenya aiwe] 'small bird'), Teiglin;
cf. aelin. lin- (2) This root, meaning 'sing,
make a musical sound', occurs in Ainulindalл,
Laurelin, Lindar, Lindon, Ered Lindon, lуmelindi. lith 'ash' in Anfauglith, Dor-nu-Fauglith; also in Ered Lithui, the Ashen Mountains,
forming the northern border of Mordor, and Lithlad
'Plain of Ashes* at the feet of Ered Lithui. lok- 'bend,
loop' in Urulуki (Quenya [h]lуkл
'snake, serpent', Sindarin Ihыg). lуm 'echo' in Dor-lуmin, Ered Lуmin; related are Lammoth, Lanthir Lamath. lуmл 'dusk' m Lуmion, lуmelindi; see dъ. londл 'land-locked haven' in Alqualondл; the Sindarin form lond (lonn) in Mithlond. los 'snow' in Oiolossл (Quenya oio 'ever' and losse
'snow, snow-white'); Sindarin loss in
Amon Uilos and Aeglos. loth 'flower' in Lothlуrien, Nimloth; Quenya lуtл in Ninquelуtл, Vingilуtл. luin 'blue' in Ered Luin, Helluin, Luinil, Mindolluin. maeg 'sharp, piercing' (Quenya maika) in Maeglin. mal- 'gold' in Malduin, Malinalda; also m mallorn, and in the Field of Cormallen, which means 'golden circle'
and was named from the culumalda
trees that grew there (see cul-). man- 'good, blessed, unmarred'
in Aman, Manwл; derivatives of Aman in Amandil, Araman, Ъmanyar. mel- 'love' in Melian (from Melyanna 'dear gift'); this stem is seen also in the Sindarin word mellon 'friend' m the inscription on the
West-gate of Moria. men 'way' in Nъmen, Hyarmen, Rуmen, Formen. menel 'the heavens' m Meneldil, Menelmacar, Meneltarma. mereth 'feast' in Mereth Aderthad; also in Merethrond, the Hall of Feasts in Minas
Tirith. minas 'tower' in Annъminas, Minas Anor, Minas Tirith, etc.
The same stem. occurs in other words referring to isolated, prominent, things,
e.g. Mindolluin, Mindon; probably
related is Quenya minya 'first' (cf. Tar-Minyatur, the name of Elros as first
King of Nъmenor). mоr 'jewel' (Quenya mоrл) m Elemmнrл, Gwaith-i-Mнrdain, Mнriel, Nauglamнr, Tar-Atanamir. mith 'grey' in Mithlond, Mithrandir, Mithrim; also hi Mitheithel, the river Hoarwell in
Eriador. mor 'dark' in Mordor, Morgoth, Moria, Moriquendi,
Mormegil, Morwen, etc. moth 'dusk' in Nan Elmoth. nan(d) 'valley' m Nan Dungortheb, Nan Elmoth, Nan Tathren. nбr 'fire' in Narsil, Narya; present also in the
original forms of Aegnor (Aikanбro
'Sharp Flame' or 'Fell Fire') and Fлanor
(Feanaro 'Spirit of Fire'). The Sindarin form was naur, as in Sammath Naur,
the Chambers of Fire in Orodruin. Derived from the same ancient root (a)nar was the name of the Sun, Quenya Anar (also in Anбrion), Sindarin Anor
(cf. Minas Anor, Anorien). naug 'dwarf' in Naugrim; see also Nogrod in entry groth. Related
is another Sindarin word for 'dwarf', nogoth,
plural noegyth (Noegyth Nibin 'Petty-dwarves') and nogothrim. -(n)dil is a very frequent ending of
personal names, Amandil, Eдrendil
(shortened Eдrnil), Elendil, Mardil, etc.; it implies
'devotion', 'disinterested love' (see Mardil
in entry bar). -{n)dur in names such as Eдrendur (shortened Eдrnur) is similar in meaning to -(n)dil. neldor 'beech' in Neldoreth; but it seems that this was
properly the name of Hнrilorn, the great beech-tree with three trunks (nelde 'three' and orn). nen 'water', used of lakes,
pools, and lesser rivers, in Nen Girith,
Nenning, Nenuial, Nenya; Cuiviйnen, Uinen; also in many names in The Lord of the Rings, as Nen Hithoel, Bruinen, Emyn Arnen, Nъrnen.
Nоn 'wet' in Loeg Ningloron; also
in Nindalf. nim 'white' (from earlier nimf, nimp) in Nimbrethil, Nimloth, Nimphelos, niphredil (niphred 'pallor'), Barad
Nimras, Ered Nimrais. The Quenya form was ninque; thus Ninquelуtл=Nimloth.
Cf. also Taniquetil. orn 'tree' in Celeborn, Hнrilorn; cf. Fangorn 'Treebeard' and mallorn, plural mellyrn, the trees of Lothlуrien. orod 'mountain' in Orodruin, Thangorodrim; Orocarni, Oromлt.
Plural ered in Ered Engrin, Ered Linden, etc. os(t) 'fortress' in Angrenost, Belegost, Formenos, Fornost,
Mandos, Nargothrond (from Narog-ost-rond), Os(t)giliaih, Ost-in-Edhil. palan (Quenya) 'far and wide' in Palantнri, Tar-Palantir. pel- 'go round, encircle' in
Pelargir, Pelуri, and in the Pelennor, the 'fenced land' of Minas
Tirith; also in Ephel Brandir, Ephel
Dъath (ephel from et-pel 'outer
fence'). quen- (quet-) 'say, speak' in Quendi (Calaquendi,
Laiquendi, Moriquendi), Quenya,
Valaquenta, Quenta Silmarillion. The Sindarin forms have p (or b) for qu; e.g. pedo 'speak' in the inscription on the
West-gate of Moria, corresponding to the Quenya stem quet; and Gandalf's words before the gate, lasto beth lammen 'listen to the words of my tongue', where beth 'word' corresponds to Quenya quetta. ram 'wall' (Quenya ramba) in Andram, Ramdal; also in Rammas Echor, the wall about the
Pelennor Fields at Minas Tirith. ran- 'wander, stray' in Rбna, the Moon, and in Mithrandir, Aerandir; also in the river Gilraen in Gondor. rant 'course' in the
river-names Adurant (with adu 'double') and Celebrant ('Silverlode'). ras 'horn' in Barad Nimras, also in Caradhras
('Redhorn') and Methedras ('Last
Peak') in the Misty Mountains; plural rais
in Ered Nimrais. rauko 'demon' in Valaraukar; Sindarin raug, rog in Balrog. ril 'brilliance' in Idril, Silmaril; also in Anduril
(the sword of Aragorn) and in mithril
(Moria-silver). Idril's name in Quenya form was Itarillл (or Itarildл), from a stem ita- 'sparkle'. rim 'great
number, host' (Quenya rimbe) was
commonly used to form collective plurals, as Golodhrim, Mithrim (see the Index), Naugrim, Thangorodrim, etc. ring 'cold, chill' in Ringil, Ringwil, Himring; also in the
river Ringlу in Gondor, and in Ringarл, Quenya name of the last month
of the year (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix D). ris 'cleave' appears to
have blended with the stem kris- of
similar meaning (a derivative of the root kir-
'cleave, cut', q.v.); hence Angrist
(also Orcrist 'Orc-cleaver', the
sword of Thorin Oakenshield), Crissaegrim,
Imladris. roch 'horse' (Quenya rokko) in Rochallor, Rohan (from Rochand
'land of horses'), Rohirrim; also in Roheryn 'horse of the lady' (cf. heru),
Aragorn's horse, which was so called because given to him by Arwen (The Return of the King V 2). rom- A stem used of the sound of trumpets
and horns which appears in Oromл and Valarуma; cf. Bema, the name of this Vala in the language of Rohan as translated
into Anglo-Saxon in The Lord of the Rings
Appendix A (II): Anglo-Saxon bлme
'trumpet'. romen 'uprising, sunrise, east'
(Quenya) in Romenna. The Sindarin
words for 'east', rhыn (in Talath Rhunen) and amrыn, were of the same origin. rond meant a vaulted or arched
roof, or a large hall or chamber so roofed; so Nargothrond (see ost), Hadhodrond, Aglarond. It could be
applied to the heavens, hence the name Elrond
'star-dome'. ros 'foam, spindrift,
spray' in Celebros, Elros, Rauros; also
in Cair Andros, an island in the
river Anduin. ruin 'red flame' (Quenya runya) in Orodruin. ruth 'anger' in Aranrъth. sarn '(small) stone' in Sarn Athrad (Sarn Ford on the Brandywine is a half-translation of this); also in
Sarn Gebir ('stone-spikes': ceber, plural cebir 'stakes'), rapids in the river Anduin. A derivative is Serni, a river m Gondor. sereg 'blood' (Quenya serke) in seregon. sil- (and variant thil-) 'shine (with white or silver light)' in Belthil, Galathilion, Silpion, and in Quenya Isil, Sindarin Ithil, the
Moon (whence Isildur, Narsil; Minas
Ithil, Ithilien). The Quenya word
Silmarilli is said to derive from the
name silima that Fлanor gave to the
substance from which they were made. sоr 'river', from root sir- 'flow', in Ossiriand (the first element is from the stem of the numeral
'seven', Quenya otso, Sindarin odo),
Sirion; also in Sirannon (the
'Gate-stream' of Moria) and Sirith
('a flowing', as tirith 'watching'
from tir), a river in Gondor. With change of s to h in the middle of
words it is present in Minhiriath
'between the rivers', the region between the Brandywine and the Greyflood; in Nanduhirion 'vale of dim streams', the
Dimrill Dale (see nan[d] and dъ), and in Ethir Anduin,
the outflow or delta of Anduin (from et-sir). sыl 'wind' in Amon Sыl, Sъlimo; cf. sъlimл, Quenya name of the third month
of the year (The Lord of the Rings Appendix
D). tal (dal) 'foot' in Celebrindal, and with the meaning 'end' in Ramdal. talath 'flat lands, plain' in Talath Dirnen, Talath Rhunen. tar- 'high' (Quenya tara 'lofty'), prefix of the Quenya
names of the Nъmenуrean Kings; also in Annatar.
Feminine tari 'she that is high,
Queen' in Elentбri, Kementбri. Cf. tarma 'pillar' in Meneltarma. tathar 'willow'; adjective tathren m Nan-tathren; Quenya tasare
in Tasarinan, Nan-tasarion (see Nan-tathren in the Index). taur 'wood, forest' (Quenya taure) in Tauron, Taur-im-Duinath, Taur-nu-Fuin. tel- 'finish, end, be last'
in Teleri. thalion 'strong, dauntless' m Cъthalion, Thalion. thong 'oppression' in Thangorodrim, also in Durthang (a castle in Mordor). Quenya sanga meant 'press, throng', whence Sangahyando 'Throng-cleaver', name of a
man in Gondor (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix A [I, iv]). thar- 'athwart, across' in Sarn Athrad, Thargelion; also in Tharbad (from thara-pata 'crossway*) where the ancient road from Arnor and Gondor
crossed the Grey-flood. thaur 'abominable, abhorrent' in
Sauron (from Thauron), Gorthaur. thin(d) 'grey' in Thingol; Quenya sinda in Sindar, Singollo (Sindacollo: collo 'cloak'). thфl 'helm' in Dor Cъarthol, Gorthol. thon 'pine-tree' in Dorthonion. thoron 'eagle' in Thorondor (Quenya Sorontar), Cirith Thoronath.
The Quenya form is perhaps present in the constellation-name Soronъmл. til 'point, horn' in Taniquetil, Tilion ('the Horned'); also
in Celebdil 'Silvertine', one of the
Mountains of Moria. tin- 'sparkle' (Quenya tinta 'cause to sparkle', tinwe 'spark') in Tintallл; also in tindуmл
'starry twilight' (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix D), whence tindуmerel 'daughter
of the twilight', a poetic name for the nightingale (Sindarin Tinъviel). It appears also in Sindarin ithildin
'starmoon', the substance of which the devices on the West-gate of Moria were
made. tir 'watch, watch over'
in Minas Tirith, palantнri, Tar-Palantir,
Tirion. tol 'isle' (rising with
sheer sides from the sea or from a river) in Tol Eressлa, Tol Galen, etc. turn 'valley' in Tumhalad, Tumladen; Quenya tumbo (cf. Treebeard's tumbalemorna 'lack deep valley'. The Two Towers III 4). Cf. Utumno, Sindarin Udыn (Gandalf in Mordor named the Balrog 'Flame of Udыn'), a name
afterwards used of the deep dale in Moria between the Morannon and the
Isenmouths. tur 'power, mastery' in Turambar, Turgon, Tъrin, Fлanturi,
Tar-'Minyatur. uial 'twilight' in Aelin-uial, Nenuial. ur- 'heat, be hot' in Urulуki; cf. Urimл and Urui, Quenya
and Sindarin names of the eighth month of the year (The Lord of the Rings Appendix D). Related is the Quenya word aure 'sunlight, day' (cf. Fingon's cry
'before the Nirnaeth Arnoediad), Sindarin aur,
which in the form Or- is prefixed to
the names of the days of the week. val- 'power' in Valar, Valacirca, Valaquenta, Valaraukar,
Val(i)mar, Valinor. The original stem was bal-, preserved in Sindarin Balan,
plural Belain, the Valar, and in Balrog. wen 'maiden' is a frequent
ending, as in Eдrwen, Morwen. wing 'foam, spray' in Elwing, Vingilot (and only in these two
names). yave 'fruit' (Quenya) in Yavanna; cf. Yavannie, Quenya name of the ninth month of the year, and yavie 'autumn' (The Lord of the Rings Appendix D). FOREWORD The Silmarillion, now published
four years after the death of its author, is an account of the Elder Days, or
the First Age of the World. In The Lord
of the Rings were narrated the great events at the end of the Third Age;
but the tales of The Silmarillion are
legends deriving from a much deeper past, when Morgoth, the first Dark Lord,
dwelt in Middle-earth, and the High Elves made war upon him for the recovery of
the Silmarils. Not only, however, does The
Silmarillion relate the events of a far earlier time than those of The Lord of the Rings; it is also, in
all the essentials of its conception, far the earlier work. Indeed, although it
was not then called The Silmarillion,
it was already in being half a century ago; and in battered notebooks extending
back to 1917 can still be read the earliest versions, often hastily pencilled,
of the central stories of the mythology. But it was never published (though
some indication of its content could be gleaned from The Lord of the Rings), and throughout my father's long life he
never abandoned it, nor ceased even in his last years to work on it. In all
that time The Silmarillion,
considered simply as a large narrative structure, underwent relatively little
radical change; it became long ago a fixed tradition, and background to later
writings. But it was far indeed from being a fixed text, and did not remain
unchanged even in certain fundamental ideas concerning the nature of the world
it portrays; while the same legends came to be retold in longer and shorter
forms, and in different styles. As the years passed the changes and variants,
both in detail and in larger perspectives, became so complex, so pervasive, and
so many-layered that a final and definitive version seemed unattainable.
Moreover the old legends ('old' now not only in their derivation from the
remote First Age, but also in terms of my father's life) became the vehicle and
depository of his profoundest reflections. In h is later writing mythology and
poetry sank down behind his theological and philosophical preoccupations: from
which arose incompatibilities of tone. On my father's death it fell to me to try to bring the work into
publishable form. It became clear to me that to attempt to present, within the
covers of a single book the diversity of the materials – to show The Silmarillion as in truth a
continuing and evolving creation extending over more than half a century –
would in fact lead only to confusion and the submerging of what is essential I
set myself therefore to work out a single text selecting and arranging in such
a way as seemed to me to produce the most coherent and internally
self-consistent narrative. In this work the concluding chapters (from the death
of Tъrin Turambar) introduced peculiar difficulties, in that they had remained
unchanged for many years, and were in some respects in serious disharmony with
more developed conceptions in other parts of the book. A complete consistency (either within the compass of The Silmarillion itself or between The Silmarillion and other published
writings of my father's) is not to be looked for, and could only be achieved,
if at all at heavy and needless cost. Moreover, my father came to conceive The Silmarillion as a compilation, a
compendious narrative, made long afterwards from sources of great diversity
(poems, and annals, and oral tales) that had survived in agelong tradition; and
this conception has indeed its parallel in the actual history of the book, for
a great deal of earlier prose and poetry does underlie it, and it is to some
extent a compendium in fact and not only in theory. To this may be ascribed the
varying speed of the narrative and fullness of detail in different parts, the
contrast (for example) of the precise recollections of place and motive in the
legend of Tъrin Turambar beside the high and remote account of the end of the
First Age, when Thangorodrim was broken and Morgoth overthrown; and also some
differences of tone and portrayal, some obscurities, and, here and there, some
lack of cohesion. In the case of the Valaquenta,
for instance, we have to assume that while it contains much that must go back
to the earliest days of the Eldar in Valinor, it was remodelled in later times;
and thus explain its continual shifting of tense and viewpoint, so that the
divine powers seem now present and active in the world, now remote, a vanished
order known only to memory. The book, though entitled as it must be The Silmarillion, contains not only the Quenta Silmarillion, or Silmarillion
proper, but also four other short works. The Ainulindalл and Valaquenta,
which are given at the beginning, are indeed closely related with The Silmarillion; but the Akallabкth and Of the Rings of Power, which appear at the end, are (it must to
emphasised) wholly separate and independent. They are included according to my
father's explicit intention; and by their inclusion is set forth the entire
history is set forth from the Music of the Ainur in which the world began to
the passing of the Ringbearers from the havens of Mithlond at the end of the
Third Age. The number of names that occur in the book is very large, and I have
provided a full index; but the number of persons (Elves and Men) who play an
important part in the narrative of the First Age is very much smaller, and all
of these will be found in the genealogical tables. In addition I have provided
a table setting out the rather complex naming of the different Elvish peoples;
a note on the pronunciation of Elvish names, and a list of some of the chief
elements found in these names; and a map. It may be noted that the great
mountain range in the east, Ered Luin or Ered Lindon, the Blue Mountains,
appears in the extreme west of the map in The
Lord of the Rings. In the body of the book there is a smaller map: the
intention of this is to make clear at a glance where lay the kingdoms of the
Elves after the return of the Noldor to Middle-earth. I have not burdened the
book further with any sort of commentary or annotation. There is indeed a
wealth of unpublished writing by my father concerning the Three Ages,
narrative, linguistic, historical, and philosophical, and I hope that it will
prove possible to publish some of this at a later date. In the difficult and
doubtful task of preparing the text of the book I was very greatly assisted by
Guy Kay, who worked with me in 1974-1975. Christopher Tolkien AINULINDALЛ The Music of the
Ainur There was Eru, the
One, who in Arda is called Ilъvatar; and he made first the Ainur, the Holy
Ones, that were the offspring of his thought, and they were with him before
aught else was made. And he spoke to them, propounding to them themes of music;
and they sang before him, and he was glad. But for a long while they sang only
each alone, or but few together, while the rest hearkened; for each
comprehended only that part of me mind of Ilъvatar from which he came, and in
the understanding of their brethren they grew but slowly. Yet ever as they
listened they came to deeper understanding, and increased in unison and
harmony. And it came to pass that Ilъvatar called
together all the Ainur and declared to them a mighty theme, unfolding to them
things greater and more wonderful than he had yet revealed; and the glory of
its beginning and the splendour of its end amazed the Ainur, so that they bowed
before Ilъvatar and were silent. Then Ilъvatar said to them: 'Of the theme
that I have declared to you, I will now that ye make in harmony together a
Great Music. And since I have kindled you with the Flame Imperishable, ye shall
show forth your powers in adorning this theme, each with his own thoughts and
devices, if he will. But I win sit and hearken, and be glad that through you
great beauty has been wakened into song.' Then the voices of the Ainur, like unto
harps and lutes, and pipes and trumpets, and viols and organs, and like unto
countless choirs singing with words, began to fashion the theme of Ilъvatar to
a great music; and a sound arose of endless interchanging melodies woven in
harmony that passed beyond hearing into the depths and into the heights, and
the places of the dwelling of Ilъvatar were filled to overflowing, and the
music and the echo of the music went out into the Void, and it was not void.
Never since have the Ainur made any music like to this music, though it has
been said that a greater still shall be made before Ilъvatar by the choirs of
the Ainur and the Children of Ilъvatar after the end of days. Then the themes
of Ilъvatar shall be played aright, and take Being in the moment of their
utterance, for all shall then understand fully his intent in their part, and each
shall know the comprehension of each, and Ilъvatar shall give to their thoughts
the secret fire, being well pleased. But now Ilъvatar sat and hearkened, and for
a great while it seemed good to him, for in the music there were no flaws. But
as the theme progressed, it came into the heart of Melkor to interweave matters
of his own imagining that were not in accord with the theme of Ilъvatar, for he
sought therein to increase the power and glory of the part assigned to himself.
To Melkor among the Ainur had been given the greatest gifts of power and
knowledge, and he had a share in all the gifts of his brethren. He had gone
often alone into the void places seeking the Imperishable Flame; for desire
grew hot within him to bring into Being things of his own, and it seemed to him
that Ilъvatar took no thought for the Void, and he was impatient of its
emptiness. Yet he found not the Fire, for it is with Ilъvatar. But being alone
he had begun to conceive thoughts of his own unlike those of his brethren. Some of these thoughts he now wove into his
music, and straightway discord arose about him, and many that sang nigh him
grew despondent, and their thought was disturbed and their music faltered; but
some began to attune their music to his rather than to the thought which they
had at first. Then the discord of Melkor spread ever wider, and the melodies
which had been heard before foundered in a sea of turbulent sound. But Ilъvatar
sat and hearkened until it seemed that about his throne there was a raging
storm, as of dark waters that made war one upon another in an endless wrath
that would not be assuaged. Then Ilъvatar arose, and the Ainur perceived
that he smiled; and he lifted up his left hand, and a new theme began amid the
storm, like and yet unlike to the former theme, and it gathered power and had
new beauty. But the discord of Melkor rose in uproar and contended with it, and
again there was a war of sound more violent than before, until many of the
Ainur were dismayed and sang no longer, and Melkor had the mastery. Then again
Ilъvatar arose, and the Ainur perceived that his countenance was stern; and he
lifted up his right hand, and behold! a third theme grew amid the confusion,
and it was unlike the others. For it seemed at first soft and sweet, a mere
rippling of gentle sounds in delicate melodies; but it could not be quenched,
and it took to itself power and profundity. And it seemed at last that there
were two musics progressing at one time before the seat of Ilъvatar, and they
were utterly at variance. The one was deep and wide and beautiful, but slow and
blended with an immeasurable sorrow, from which its beauty chiefly came. The
other had now achieved a unity of its own; but it was loud, and vain, and
endlessly repeated; and it had little harmony, but rather a clamorous unison as
of many trumpets braying upon a few notes. And it essayed to drown the other
music by the violence of its voice, but it seemed that its most triumphant
notes were taken by the other and woven into its own solemn pattern. In the midst of this strife, whereat the
halls of Ilъvatar shook and a tremor ran out into the silences yet unmoved,
Ilъvatar arose a third time, and his face was terrible to behold. Then he
raised up both his hands, and in one chord, deeper than the Abyss, higher than the
Firmament, piercing as the light of the eye of Ilъvatar, the Music ceased. Then Ilъvatar spoke, and he said: 'Mighty
are the Ainur, and mightiest among them is Melkor; but that he may know, and
all the Ainur, that I am Ilъvatar, those things that ye have sung, I will show
them forth, that ye may see what ye have done. And thou, Melkor, shalt see that
no theme may be played that hath not its uttermost source in me, nor can any
alter the music in my despite. For he that attempteth this shall prove but mine
instrument in the devising of things more wonderful, which he himself hath not
imagined.' Then the Ainur were afraid, and they did not
yet comprehend the words that were said to them; and Melkor was filled with
shame, of which came secret anger. But Ilъvatar arose in splendour, and he went
forth from the fair regions that he had made for the Ainur; and the Ainur
followed him. But when they were come into the Void,
Ilъvatar said to them: 'Behold your Music!' And he showed to them a vision,
giving to them sight where before was only hearing; arid they saw a new World
made visible before them, and it was globed amid the Void, and it was sustained
therein, but was not of it. And as they looked and wondered this World began to
unfold its history, and it seemed to them that it lived and grew. And when the
Ainur had gazed for a while and were silent, Ilъvatar said again: 'Behold your
Music! This is your minstrelsy; and each of you shall find contained herein,
amid the design that I set before you, all those things which it may seem that
he himself devised or added. And thou, Melkor, wilt discover all the secret
thoughts of thy mind, and wilt perceive that they are but a part of the whole
and tributary to its glory.' And many other things Ilъvatar spoke to the
Ainur at that time, and because of their memory of his words, and the knowledge
that each has of the music that he himself made, the Ainur know much of what
was, and is, and is to come, and few things are unseen by them. Yet some things
there are that they cannot see, neither alone nor taking counsel together; for
to none but himself has Ilъvatar revealed all that he has in store, and in
every age there come forth things that are new and have no foretelling, for
they do not proceed from the past. And so it was that as this vision of the
World was played before them, the Ainur saw that it contained things which they
had not thought. And they saw with amazement the coming of the Children of
Ilъvatar, and the habitation that was prepared for them; and they perceived
that they themselves in the labour of their music had been busy with the
preparation of this dwelling, and yet knew not that it had any purpose beyond
its own beauty. For the Children of Ilъvatar were conceived by him alone; and
they came with the third theme, and were not in the theme which Ilъvatar
propounded at the beginning, and none of the Ainur had part in their making.
Therefore when they beheld them, the more did they love them, being things
other than themselves, strange and free, wherein they saw the mind of Ilъvatar
reflected anew, and learned yet a little more of his wisdom, which otherwise
had been hidden even from the Ainur. Now the Children of Ilъvatar are Elves and
Men, the Firstborn and the Followers. And amid all the splendours of the World,
its vast halls and spaces, and its wheeling fires, Ilъvatar chose a place for
their habitation in the Deeps of Time and in the midst of the innumerable
stars. And this habitation might seem a little thing to those who consider only
the majesty of the Ainur, and not their terrible sharpness; as who should take
the whole field of Arda for the foundation of a pillar and so raise it until
the cone of its summit were more bitter than a needle; or who consider only the
immeasurable vastness of the World, which still the Ainur are shaping, and not
the minute precision to which they shape all things therein. But when the Ainur
had beheld this habitation in a vision and had seen the Children of Ilъvatar
arise therein, then many of the most mighty among them bent all their thought
and their desire towards that place. And of these Melkor was the chief, even as
he was in the beginning the greatest of the Ainur who took part in the Music.
And he feigned, even to himself at first, that he desired to go thither and order
all things for the good of the Children of Ilъvatar, controlling the turmoils
of the heat and the cold that had come to pass through him. But he desired
rather to subdue to his will both Elves and Men, envying the gifts with which
Ilъvatar promised to endow them; and he wished himself to have subject and
servants, and to be called Lord, and to be a master over other wills. But the other Ainur looked upon this
habitation set within the vast spaces of the World, which the Elves call Arda,
the Earth; and their hearts rejoiced in light, and their eyes beholding many
colours were filled with gladness; but because of the roaring of the sea they
felt a great unquiet. And they observed the winds and the air, and the matters
of which Arda was made, of iron and stone and silver and gold and many
substances: but of all these water they most greatly praised. And it is said by
the Eldar that in water there lives yet the echo of the Music of the Ainur more
than in any substance else that is in this Earth; and many of the Children of
Ilъvatar hearken still unsated to the voices of the Sea, and yet know not for
what they listen. Now to water had that Ainu whom the Elves
can Ulmo turned his thought, and of all most deeply was he instructed by
Ilъvatar in music. But of the airs and winds Manwл most had pondered, who is
the noblest of the Ainur. Of the fabric of Earth had Aulл thought, to whom
Ilъvatar had given skin and knowledge scarce less than to Melkor; but the
delight and pride of Aulл is in the deed of making, and in the thing made, and
neither m possession nor in his own mastery; wherefore he gives and hoards not,
and is free from care, passing ever on to some new work. And Ilъvatar spoke to Ulmo, and said: 'Seest
thou not how here in this little realm in the Deeps of Time Melkor hath made
war upon thy province? He hath bethought him of bitter cold immoderate, and yet
hath not destroyed the beauty of thy fountains, nor of my clear pools. Behold
the snow, and the cunning work of frost! Melkor hath devised heats and fire without
restraint, and hath not dried up thy desire nor utterly quelled the music of
the sea. Behold rather the height and glory of the clouds, and the everchanging
mists; and listen to the fall of rain upon the Earth! And in these clouds thou
art drawn nearer to Manwл, thy friend, whom thou lovest.' Then Ulmo answered: 'Truly, Water is become
now fairer than my heart imagined, neither had my secret thought conceived the
snowflake, nor in all my music was contained the falling of the rain. I will
seek Manwл, that he and I may make melodies for ever to my delight!' And Manwл
and Ulmo have from the beginning been allied, and in all things have served
most faithfully the purpose of Ilъvatar. But even as Ulmo spoke, and while the Ainur
were yet gazing upon this vision, it was taken away and hidden from their
sight; and it seemed to them that in that moment they perceived a new thing,
Darkness, which they had not known before except in thought. But they had
become enamoured of the beauty of the vision and engrossed in the unfolding of
the World which came there to being, and their minds were filled with it; for
the history was incomplete and the circles of time not full-wrought when the
vision was taken away. And some have said that the vision ceased ere the fulfilment
of the Dominion of Men and the fading of the Firstborn; wherefore, though the
Music is over all, the Valar have not seen as with sight the Later Ages or the
ending of the World. Then there was unrest among the Ainur; but
Ilъvatar called to them, and said: 'I know the desire of your minds that what
ye have seen should verily be, not only in your thought, but even as ye
yourselves are, and yet other. Therefore I say: Eд! Let these things Be! And I will send forth into the Void the
Flame Imperishable, and it shall be at the heart of the World, and the World
shall Be; and those of you that will may go down into it. And suddenly the
Ainur saw afar off a light, as it were a cloud with a living heart of flame;
and they knew that this was no vision only, but that Ilъvatar had made a new
thing: Eд, the World that Is. Thus it came to pass that of the Ainur some
abode still with Ilъvatar beyond the confines of the World; but others, and
among them many of the greatest and most fair, took the leave of Ilъvatar and
descended into it. But this condition Ilъvatar made, or it is the necessity of
their love, that their power should thenceforward be contained and bounded in
the World, to be within it for ever, until it is complete, so that they are its
life and it is theirs. And therefore they are named the Valar, the Powers of
the World. But when the Valar entered into Eд they were
at first astounded and at a loss, for it was as if naught was yet made which
they had seen in vision, and all was but on point to begin and yet unshaped,
and it was dark. For the Great Music had been but the growth and flowering of
thought in the Tuneless Halls, and the Vision only a foreshowing; but now they
had entered in at the beginning of Time, and the Valar perceived that the World
had been but foreshadowed and foresung, and they must achieve it. So began
their great labours in wastes unmeasured and unexplored, and in ages uncounted
and forgotten, until in the Deeps of Time and in the midst of the vast halls of
Eд there came to be that hour and that place where was made the habitation of
the Children of Ilъvatar. And in this work the chief part was taken by Manwл
and Aulл and Ulmo; but Melkor too was there from the first, and he meddled in
all that was done, turning it if he might to his own desires and purposes; and
he kindled great fires. When therefore Earth was yet young and full of flame
Melkor coveted it, and he said to the other Valar: 'This shall be my own
kingdom; and I name it unto myself!' But Manwл was the brother of Melkor in the mind
of Ilъvatar, and he was the chief instrument of the second theme that Ilъvatar
had raised up against the discord of Melkor; and he called unto himself many
spirits both greater and less, and they came down into the fields of Arda and
aided Manwл, lest Melkor should hinder the fulfilment of their labour for ever,
and Earth should wither ere it flowered. And Manwл said unto Melkor: 'This
kingdom thou shalt not take for thine own, wrongfully, for many others have
laboured here do less than thou.'
And there was strife between Melkor and the other Valar; and for that time
Melkor withdrew and departed to other regions and did there what he would; but
he did not put the desire of the Kingdom of Arda from his heart. Now the Valar took to themselves shape and
hue; and because they were drawn into the World by love of the Children of
Ilъvatar, for whom they hoped, they took shape after that manner which they had
beheld in the Vision of Ilъvatar, save only in majesty and splendour. Moreover
their shape comes of their knowledge of the visible World, rather than of the
World itself; and they need it not, save only as we use raiment, and yet we may
be naked and suffer no loss of our being. Therefore the Valar may walk, if they
will, unclad, and then even the Eldar cannot clearly perceive them, though they
be present. But when they desire to clothe themselves the Valar take upon them
forms some as of male and some as of female; for that difference of temper they
had even from their beginning, and it is but bodied forth in the choice of
each, not made by the choice, even as with us male and female may be shown by
the raiment but is not made thereby. But the shapes wherein the Great Ones
array themselves are not at all times like to the shapes of the kings and
queens of the Children of Ilъvatar; for at times they may clothe themselves in
their own thought, made visible in forms of majesty and dread. And the Valar drew unto them many
companions, some less, some well nigh as great as themselves, and they laboured
together in the ordering of the Earth and the curbing of its tumults. Then
Melkor saw what was done, and that the Valar walked on Earth as powers visible,
clad in the raiment of the World, and were lovely and glorious to see, and
blissful, and that the Earth was becoming as a garden for their delight, for
its turmoils were subdued. His envy grew then the greater within him; and he
also took visible form, but because of his mood and the malice that burned in
him that form was dark and terrible. And he descended upon Arda in power and
majesty greater than any other of the Valar, as a mountain that wades in the
sea and has its head above the clouds and is clad in ice and crowned with smoke
and fire; and the light of the eyes of Melkor was like a flame that withers
with heat and pierces with a deadly cold. Thus began the first battle of the Valar
with Melkor for the dominion of Arda; and of those tumults the Elves know but
little. For what has here been declared is come from the Valar themselves, with
whom the Eldaliл spoke in the land of Valinor, and by whom they were
instructed; but little would the Valar ever tell of the wars before the coming
of the Elves. Yet it is told among the Eldar that the Valar endeavoured ever,
in despite of Melkor, to rule the Earth and to prepare it for the coming of the
Firstborn; and they built lands and Melkor destroyed them; valleys they delved
and Melkor raised them up; mountains they carved and Melkor threw them down;
seas they hollowed and Melkor spilled them; and naught might have peace or come
to lasting growth, for as surely as the Valar began a labour so would Melkor
undo it or corrupt it. And yet their labour was not all in vain; and though
nowhere and in no work was their will and purpose wholly fulfilled, and all
things were in hue and shape other than the Valar had at first intended, slowly
nonetheless the Earth was fashioned and made firm. And thus was the habitation
of the Children of Ilъvatar established at the last in the Deeps of Time and
amidst the innumerable stars. VALAQUENTA Account of the Valar and Maiar according
to the lore of the Eldar In the beginning
Eru, the One, who in the Elvish tongue is named Ilъvatar, made the Ainur of his
thought; and they made a great Music before him. In this Music the World was
begun; for Ilъvatar made visible the song of the Ainur, and they beheld it as a
light in the darkness. And many among them became enamoured of its beauty, and
of its history which they saw beginning and unfolding as in a vision. Therefore
Ilъvatar gave to their vision Being, and set it amid the Void, and the Secret
Fire was sent to burn at the heart of the World; and it was called Eд. Then those of the Ainur who desired it arose
and entered into the World at the beginning of Time; and it was their task to
achieve it, and by their labours to fulfil the vision which they had seen. Long
they laboured in the regions of Eд, which are vast beyond the thought of Elves
and Men, until in the time appointed was made Arda, the Kingdom of Earth. Then
they put on the raiment of Earth and descended into it, and dwelt therein. Of the Valar The Great among
these spirits the Elves name the Valar, the Powers of Arda, and Men have often
called them gods. The Lords of the Valar are seven; and the Valier, the Queens
of the Valar, are seven also. These were their names in the Elvish tongue as it
was spoken in Valinor, though they have other names in the speech of the Elves
in Middle-earth, and their names among Men are manifold. The names of the Lords
in due order are: Manwл, Ulmo, Aulл, Oromл, Mandos, Lуrien, and Tulkas; and the
names of the Queens are: Varda, Yavanna, Nienna, Estл, Vairл, Vбna, and Nessa.
Melkor is counted no longer among the Valar, and his name is not spoken upon
Earth. Manwл and Melkor were brethren in the
thought of Ilъvatar. The mightiest of those Ainur who came into the World was
in his beginning Melkor; but Manwл is dearest to Ilъvatar and understands most
clearly his purposes. He was appointed to be, in the fullness of time, the
first of all Kings: lord of the realm of Arda and ruler of all that dwell
therein. In Arda his delight is in the winds and the clouds, and in all the
regions of the air, from the heights to the depths, from the utmost borders of
the Veil of Arda to the breezes that blow in the grass. Sъlimo he is surnamed,
Lord of the Breath of Arda. All swift birds, strong of wing, he loves, and they
come and go at his bidding. With Manwл dwells Varda, Lady of the Stars,
who knows all the regions of Eд. Too great is her beauty to be declared in the
words of Men or of Elves; for the light of Ilъvatar lives still in her face. In
light is her power and her joy. Out of the deeps of Eд she came to the aid of
Manwл; for Melkor she knew from before the making of the Music and rejected
him, and he hated her, and feared her more than all others whom Eru made. Manwл
and Varda are seldom parted, and they remain in Valinor. Their halls are above
the everlasting snow, upon Oiolossл, the uttermost tower of Taniquetil, tallest
of all the mountains upon Earth. When Manwл there ascends his throne and looks
forth, if Varda is beside him, he sees further than all other eyes, through
mist, and through darkness, and over the leagues of the sea. And if Manwл is
with her, Varda hears more clearly than all other ears the sound of voices that
cry from east to west, from the hills and the valleys, and from the dark places
that Melkor has made upon Earth. Of all the Great Ones who dwell in this world
the Elves hold Varda most in reverence and love. Elbereth they name her, and
they call upon her name out of the shadows of Middle-earth, and uplift it in
song at the rising of the stars. Ulmo is the Lord of Waters. He is alone. He
dwells nowhere long, but moves as he will in all the deep waters about the
Earth or under the Earth. He is next in might to Manwл, and before Valinor was
made he was closest to him in friendship; but thereafter he went seldom to the
councils of the Valar, unless great matters were in debate. For he kept all
Arda in thought, and he has no need of any resting-place. Moreover he does not
love to walk upon land, and will seldom clothe himself in a body after the
manner of his peers. If the Children of Eru beheld him they were filled with a
great dread; for the arising of the King of the Sea was terrible, as a mounting
wave that strides to the land, with dark helm foam-crested and raiment of mail
shimmering from silver down into shadows of green. The trumpets of Manwл are
loud, but Ulmo's voice is deep as the deeps of the ocean which he only has
seen. Nonetheless Ulmo loves both Elves and Men,
and never abandoned them, not even when they lay under the wrath of the Valar.
At times he win come unseen to the shores of Middle-earth, or pass far inland
up firths of the sea, and there make music upon his great horns, the Ulumъri,
that are wrought of white shell; and those to whom that music comes hear it
ever after in their hearts, and longing for the sea never leaves them again.
But mostly Ulmo speaks to those who dwell in Middle-earth with voices that are
heard only as the music of water. For all seas, lakes, rivers, fountains and
springs are in his government; so that the Elves say that the spirit of Ulmo
runs in all the veins of the world. Thus news comes to Ulmo, even in the deeps,
of all the needs and griefs of Arda, which otherwise would be hidden from
Manwл. Aulл has might little less than Ulmo. His
lordship is over all the substances of which Arda is made. In the beginning he
wrought much in fellowship with Manwл and Ulmo; and the fashioning of all lands
was his labour. He is a smith and a master of all crafts, and he delights in
works of skill, however small, as much as in the mighty building of old. His
are the gems that lie deep in the Earth and the gold that is fair in the hand,
no less than the walls of the mountains and the basins of the sea. The Noldor
learned most of him, and he was ever their friend. Melkor was jealous of him,
for Aulл was most like himself in thought and in powers; and there was long
strife between them, in which Melkor ever marred or undid the works of Aulл,
and Aulл grew weary in repairing the tumults and disorders of Melkor. Both,
also, desired to make things of their own that should be new and unthought of
by others, and delighted in the praise of their skill. But Aulл remained
faithful to Eru and submitted all that he did to his will; and he did not envy
the works of others, but sought and gave counsel. Whereas Melkor spent his
spirit in envy and hate, until at last he could make nothing save in mockery of
the thought of others, and all their works he destroyed if he could. The spouse of Aulл is Yavanna, the Giver of
Fruits. She is the lover of all things that grow in the earth, and all their
countless forms she holds in her mind, from the trees like towers in forests
long ago to the moss upon stones or the small and secret things in the mould.
In reverence Yavanna is next to Varda among the Queens of the Valar. In the
form of a woman she is tall, and robed in green; but at times she takes other
shapes. Some there are who have seen her standing like a tree under heaven,
crowned with the Sun; and from all its branches there spilled a golden dew upon
the barren earth, and it grew green with corn; but the roots of the tree were
in the waters of Ulmo, and the winds of Manwл spoke in its leaves. Kementбri,
Queen of the Earth, she is surnamed in the Eldarin tongue. The Fлanturi, masters of spirits, are
brethren, and they are called most often Mandos and Lуrien. Yet these are
rightly the names of the places of their dwelling, and their true names are
Nбmo and Irmo. Nбmo the elder dwells in Mandos, which is
westward in Valinor. He is the keeper of the Houses of the Dead, and the
summoner of the spirits of the slain. He forgets nothing; and he knows all
things that shall be, save only those that lie still in the freedom of
Ilъvatar. He is the Doomsman of the Valar; but he pronounces his dooms and his
Judgements only at the bidding of Manwл. Vairл the Weaver is his spouse, who
weaves all things that have ever been in Time into her storied webs, and the
halls of Mandos that ever widen as the ages pass are clothed with them. Irmo the younger is the master of visions
and dreams. In Lуrien are his gardens in the land of the Valar, and they are
the fairest of all places in the world, filled with many spirits. Estл the
gentle, healer of hurts and of weariness, is his spouse. Grey is her raiment;
and rest is her gift. She walks not by day, but sleeps upon an island in the
tree-shadowed lake of Lуrellin. From the fountains of Irmo and Estл all those
who dwell in Valinor draw refreshment; and often the Valar come themselves to
Lуrien and there find repose and easing of the burden of Arda. Mightier than Estл is Nienna, sister of the
Fлanturi; she dwells alone. She is acquainted with grief, and mourns for every
wound that Arda has suffered in the marring of Melkor. So great was her sorrow,
as the Music unfolded, that her song turned to lamentation long before its end,
and the sound of mourning was woven into the themes of the World before it
began. But she does not weep for herself; and those who hearken to her learn
pity, and endurance in hope. Her halls are west of West, upon the borders of
the world; and she comes seldom to the city of Valimar where all is glad. She
goes rather to the halls of Mandos, which are near to her own; and all those
who wait in Mandos cry to her, for she brings strength to the spirit and turns
sorrow to wisdom. The windows of her house look outward from the walls of the
world. Greatest in strength and deeds of prowess is
Tulkas, who is surnamed Astaldo, the Valiant. He came last to Arda, to aid the
Valar in the first battles with Melkor. He delights in wrestling and in
contests of strength; and he rides no steed, for he can outrun all things that
go on feet, and he is tireless. His hair and beard are golden, and his flesh
ruddy; his weapons are his hands. He has little heed for either the past or the
future, and is of no avail as a counsellor, but is a hardy friend. His spouse
is Nessa, the sister of Oromл, and she also is lithe and fleetfooted. Deer she loves,
and they follow her train whenever she goes in the wild; but she can outrun
them, swift as an arrow with the wind in her hair. In dancing she delights, and
she dances in Valimar on lawns of never-fading green. Oromл is a mighty lord. If he is less strong
than Tulkas, he is more dreadful in anger; whereas Tulkas laughs ever, in sport
or in war, and even in the face of Melkor he laughed in battles before the
Elves were born. Oromл loved the lands of Middle-earth, and he left them
unwillingly and came last to Valinor; and often of old he passed back east over
the mountains and returned with his host to the hills and the plains. He is a
hunter of monsters and fell beasts, and he delights in horses and in hounds;
and all trees he loves, for which reason he is called Aldaron, and by the
Sindar Tauron, the Lord of Forests. Nahar is the name of his horse, white in
the sun, and shining silver at night. The Valarуma is the name of his great
horn, the sound of which is like the upgoing of the Sun in scarlet, or the sheer
lightning cleaving the clouds. Above all the horns of his host it was heard in
the woods that Yavanna brought forth in Valinor; for there Oromл would train
his folk and his beasts for the pursuit of the evil creatures of. Melkor. The
spouse of Oromл is Vбna, the Ever-young; she is the younger sister of Yavanna.
All flowers spring as she passes and open if she glances upon them; and all
birds sing at her coming. These are the names of the Valar and the
Valier, and here is told in brief their likenesses, such as the Eldar beheld
them in Aman. But fair and noble as were the forms in which they were manifest
to the Children of Ilъvatar, they were but a veil upon their beauty and their
power. And if little is here said of all that the Eldar once knew, that is as
nothing compared with their true being, which goes back into regions and ages
far beyond our thought. Among them Nine were of chief power and reverence; but
one is removed from their number, and Eight remain, the Aratar, the High Ones
of Arda: Manwл and Varda, Ulmo, Yavanna and Aulл, Mandos, Nienna, and Oromл.
Though Manwл is their King and holds their allegiance under Eru, in majesty
they are peers, surpassing beyond compare all others, whether of the Valar and
the Maiar, or of any other order that Ilъvatar has sent into Eд. Of the Maiar With the Valar came
other spirits whose being also began before the World, of the same order as the
Valar but of less degree. These are the Maiar, the people of the Valar, and
their servants and helpers. Their number is not known to the Elves, and few
have names in any of the tongues of the Children of Ilъvatar; for though it is
otherwise in Aman, in Middle-earth the Maiar have seldom appeared in form
visible to Elves and Men. Chief among the Maiar of Valinor whose names
are remembered in the histories of the Elder Days are Ilmarл, the handmaid of
Varda, and Eцnwл, the banner-bearer and herald of Manwл, whose might in arms is
surpassed by none in Arda. But of all the Maiar Ossл and Uinen are best known
to the Children of Ilъvatar. Ossл is a vassal of Ulmo, and he is master
of the seas that wash the shores of Middle-earth. He does not go in the deeps,
but loves the coasts and the isles, and rejoices in the winds of Manwл; for in
storm he delights, and laughs amid the roaring of the waves. His spouse is
Uinen, the Lady of the Seas, whose hair lies spread through all waters under
sky. All creatures she loves that live in the salt streams, and all weeds that
grow there; to her mariners cry, for she can lay calm upon the waves,
restraining the wildness of Ossл. The Nъmenуreans lived long in her protection,
and held her in reverence equal to the Valar. Melkor hated the Sea, for he could not
subdue it. It is said that in the making of Arda he endeavoured to draw Ossл to
his allegiance, promising to him all the realm and power of Ulmo, if he would
serve him. So it was that long ago there arose great tumults in the sea that
wrought ruin to the lands. But Uinen, at the prayer of Aulл, restrained Ossл
and brought him before Ulmo; and he was pardoned and returned to his
allegiance, to which he has remained faithful. For the most part; for the
delight in violence has never wholly departed from him, and at times he will
rage in his wilfulness without any command from Ulmo his lord. Therefore those
who dwell by the sea or go up in ships may love him, but they do not trust him. Melian was the name of a Maia who served
both Vбna and Estл; she dwelt long in Lуrien, tending the trees that flower in
the gardens of Irmo, ere she came to Middle-earth. Nightingales sang about her
wherever she went. Wisest of the Maiar was Olуrin. He too dwelt
in Lуrien, but his ways took him often to the house of Nienna, and of her he
learned pity and patience. Of Melian much is told in the Quenta Silmarillion. But of Olуrin that
tale does not speak; for though he loved the Elves, he walked among them
unseen, or in form as one of them, and they did not know whence came the fair
visions or the promptings of wisdom that he put into their hearts. In later
days he was the friend of all the Children of Ilъvatar, and took pity on their
sorrows; and those who listened to him awoke from despair and put away the
imaginations of darkness. Of the Enemies Last of all is set
the name of Melkor, He who arises in Might. But that name he has forfeited; and
the Noldor, who among the Elves suffered most from his malice, will not utter
it, and they name him Morgoth, the Dark Enemy of the World. Great might was given
to him by Ilъvatar, and he was coeval with Manwл. In the powers and knowledge
of all the other Valar he had part, but he turned them to evil purposes, and
squandered his strength in violence and tyranny. For he coveted Arda and all
that was in it, desiring the kingship of Manwл and dominion over the realms of
his peers. From splendour he fell through arrogance to
contempt for all things save himself, a spirit wasteful and pitiless.
Understanding he turned to subtlety in perverting to his own will all that he
would use, until he became a liar without shame. He began with the desire of
Light, but when he could not possess it for himself alone, he descended through
fire and wrath into a great burning, down into Darkness. And darkness he used
most in his evil works upon Arda, and filled it with fear for all living
things. Yet so great was the power of his uprising
that in ages forgotten he contended with Manwл and all the Valar, and through
long years in Arda held dominion over most of the lands of the Earth. But he
was not alone. For of the Maiar many were drawn to his splendour in the days of
his greatness, and remained in that allegiance down into his darkness; and
others he corrupted afterwards to his service with lies and treacherous gifts.
Dreadful among these spirits were the Valaraukar, the scourges of fire that in
Middle-earth were called the Balrogs, demons of terror. Among those of his servants that have names
the greatest was that spirit whom the Eldar called Sauron, or Gorthaur the
Cruel. In his beginning he was of the Maiar of Aulл, and he remained mighty in
the lore of that people. In all the deeds of Melkor the Morgoth upon Arda, in
his vast works and in the deceits of his cunning, Sauron had a part, and was
only less evil than his master in that for long he served another and not
himself. But in after years he rose like a shadow of Morgoth and a ghost of his
malice, and walked behind him on the same ruinous path down into the Void. HERE ENDS THE VALAQUENTA QUENTA SILMARILLION The History of the
Chapter 1 Of the Beginning of Days It is told among the
wise that the First War began before Arda was full-shaped, and ere yet there
was any thing that grew or walked upon earth; and for long Melkor had the upper
hand. But in the midst of the war a spirit of great strength and hardihood came
to the aid of the Valar, hearing in the far heaven that there was battle in the
Little Kingdom; and Arda was filled with the sound of his laughter. So came
Tulkas the Strong, whose anger passes like a mighty wind, scattering cloud and
darkness before it; and Melkor fled before his wrath and his laughter, and
forsook Arda, and there was peace for a long age. And Tulkas remained and
became one of the Valar of the Kingdom of Arda; but Melkor brooded in the outer
darkness, and his hate was given to Tulkas for ever after. In that time the Valar brought order to the
seas and the lands and the mountains, and Yavanna planted at last the seeds
that she had long devised. And since, when the fires were subdued or buried
beneath the primeval hills, there was need of light, Aulл at the prayer of
Yavanna wrought two mighty lamps for the lighting of the Middle-earth which he
had built amid the encircling seas. Then Varda filled the lamps and Manwл
hallowed them, and the Valar set them upon high pillars, more lofty far than
are any mountains of the later days. One lamp they raised near to the north of
Middle-earth, and it was named Illuin; and the other was raised in the south,
and it was named Ormal; and the light of the Lamps of the Valar flowed out over
the Earth, so that all was lit as it were in a changeless day. Then the seeds that Yavanna had sown began
swiftly to sprout and to burgeon, and there arose a multitude of growing things
great and small, mosses and grasses and great ferns, and trees whose tops were
crowned with cloud as they were living mountains, but whose feet were wrapped
in a green twilight. And beasts came forth and dwelt in the grassy plains, or
in the rivers and the lakes, or walked in the shadows of the woods. As yet no
flower had bloomed nor any bird had sung, for these things waited still their
time in the bosom of Yavanna; but wealth there was of her imagining, and
nowhere more rich than in the midmost parts of the Earth, where the light of
both the Lamps met and blended. And there upon the Isle of Almaren in the Great
Lake was the first dwelling of the Valar when all things were young, and
new-made green was yet a marvel in the eyes of the makers; and they were long
content. Now it came to pass that while the Valar
rested from their labours, and watched the growth and unfolding of the things
that they had devised and begun, Manwл ordained a great feast; and the Valar
and an their host came at his bidding. But Aulл and Tulkas were weary; for the
craft of Aulл and the strength of Tulkas had been at the service of an without
ceasing fax the days of their labour. And Melkor knew of an that was done, for
even then he had secret friends and spies among the Maiar whom he had converted
to his cause; and far off in the darkness he was filled with hatred, being
jealous of the work of his peers, whom he desired to make subject to himself.
Therefore he gathered to himself spirits out of the halls of Eд that he had
perverted to his service, and he deemed himself strong. And seeing now his time
he drew near again to Arda, and looked down upon it, and the beauty of the
Earth in its Spring filled him the more with hate. Now therefore the Valar were gathered upon
Almaren, fearing no evil, and because of the light of Illuin they did not
perceive the shadow in the north that was cast from afar by Melkor; for he was
grown dark as the Night of the Void. And it is sung that in that feast of the
Spring of Arda Tulkas espoused Nessa the sister of Oromл, and she danced before
the Valar upon the green grass of Almaren. Then Tulkas slept, being weary and content,
and Melkor deemed that his hour had come. And he passed therefore over the
Walls of the Night with his host, and came to Middle-earth far in the north;
and the Valar were not aware of him. Now Melkor began the delving and building of
a vast fortress, deep under Earth, beneath dark mountains where the beams of
Illuin were cold and dim. That stronghold was named Utumno. And though the
Valar knew naught of it as yet, nonetheless the evil of Melkor and the blight
of his hatred flowed out thence, and the Spring of Arda was marred. Green
things fell sick and rotted, and rivers were choked with weeds and slime, and
fens were made, rank and poisonous, the breeding place of flies; and forests
grew dark and perilous, the haunts of fear; and beasts became monsters of horn
and ivory and dyed the earth with blood. Then the Valar knew indeed that Melkor
was at work again, and they sought for his hiding place. But Melkor, trusting
in the strength of Utumno and the might of his servants, came forth suddenly to
war, and struck the first blow, ere the Valar were prepared; and he assailed
the lights of Illuin and Ormal, and cast down their pillars and broke their
lamps. In the overthrow of the mighty pillars lands were broken and seas arose
in tumult; and when the lamps were spilled destroying flame was poured out over
the Earth. And the shape of Arda and the symmetry of its waters and its lands
was marred in that time, so that the first designs of the Valar were never
after restored. In the confusion and the darkness Melkor
escaped, though fear fell upon him; for above the roaring of the seas he heard
the voice of Manwл as a mighty wind, and the earth trembled beneath the feet of
Tulkas. But he came to Utumno ere Tulkas could overtake him; and there he lay
hid. And the Valar could not at that time overcome him, for the greater part of
their strength was needed to restrain the tumults of the Earth, and to save
from ruin all that could be saved of their labour; and afterwards they feared
to rend the Earth again, until they knew where the Children of Ilъvatar were
dwelling, who were yet to come in a time that was hidden from the Valar. Thus ended the Spring of Arda. The dwelling
of the Valar upon Almaren was utterly destroyed, and they had no abiding place
upon the face of the Earth. Therefore they departed from Middle-earth and went
to the Land of Aman, the westernmost of all lands upon the borders of the
world; for its west shores looked upon the Outer Sea, that is called by the
Elves Ekkaia, encircling the Kingdom of Arda. How wide is that sea none know
but the Valar; and beyond it are the Walls of the Night. But the east shores of
Aman were the uttermost end of Belegaer, the Great Sea at the West; and since
Melkor was returned to Middle-earth and they could not yet overcome him, the
Valar fortified their dwelling, and upon the shores of the sea they raised the
Pelуri, the Mountains of Aman, highest upon Earth. And above all the mountains
of the Pelуri was that height upon whose summit Manwл set his throne. Taniquetil
the Elves name that holy mountain, and Oiolossл Everlasting Whiteness, and
Elerrнna Crowned with Stars, and many names beside; but the Sindar spoke of it
in their later tongue as Amon Uilos. From their halls upon Taniquetil Manwл and
Varda could look out across the Earth even into the furthest East. Behind the walls of the Pelуri the Valar
established their domain in that region which is called Valinor, and there were
their houses, their gardens, and their towers. In that guarded land the Valar
gathered great store of light and an the fairest things that were saved from
the ruin; and many others yet fairer they made anew, and Valinor became more
beautiful even than Middle-earth in the Spring of Arda; and it was blessed, for
the Deathless dwelt there, and there naught faded nor withered, neither was
there any stain upon flower or leaf in that land, nor any corruption or
sickness in anything that lived; for the very stones and waters were hallowed. And when Valinor was full-wrought and the
mansions of the Valar were established, in the midst of the plain beyond the
mountains they built their city, Valmar of many bells. Before its western gate
there was a green mound, Ezellohar, that is named also Corollairл; and Yavanna
hallowed it, and she sat there long upon the green grass and sang a song of
power, in which was set all her thought of things that grow in the earth. But
Nienna thought in silence, and watered the mould with tears. In that time the
Valar were gathered together to hear the song of Yavanna, and they sat silent
upon their thrones of council in the Mбhanaxar, the Ring of Doom near to the
golden gates of Valmar, and Yavanna Kementбri sang before them and they
watched. And as they watched, upon the mound there
came forth two slender shoots; and silence was over all the world in that hour,
nor was there any other sound save the chanting of Yavanna. Under her song the
saplings grew and became fair and tail, and came to flower; and thus there
awoke in the world the Two Trees of Valinor. Of all things which Yavanna made
they have most renown, and about their fate all the tales of the Elder Days are
woven. The one had leaves of dark green that
beneath were as shining silver, and from each of his countless flowers a dew of
silver light was ever falling, and the earth beneath was dappled with the
shadow of his fluttering leaves. The other bore leaves of a young green like
the new-opened beech; their edges were of glittering gold. Flowers swung upon
her branches in clusters of yellow flame, formed each to a glowing horn that
spilled a golden rain upon the ground; and from the blossom of that tree there
came forth warmth and a great light. Telperion the one was called in Valinor,
and Silpion, and Ninquelуtл, and many other names; but Laurelin the other was,
and Malinalda, and Culъrien, and many names in song beside. In seven hours the glory of each tree waxed
to full and waned again to naught; and each awoke once more to life an hour
before the other ceased to shine. Thus in Valinor twice every day there came a
gentle hour of softer light when both trees were faint and their gold and
silver beams were mingled. Telperion was the elder of the trees and came first
to full stature and to bloom; and that first hour in which he shone, the white
glimmer of a silver dawn, the Valar reckoned not into the tale of hours, but
named it the Opening Hour, and counted from it the ages of their reign in
Valinor. Therefore at the sixth hour of the First Day, and of all the joyful
days thereafter, until the Darkening of Valinor, Telperion ceased his time of
flower; and at the twelfth hour Laurelin her blossoming. And each day of the
Valar in Aman contained twelve hours, and ended with the second mingling of the
lights, in which Laurelin was waning but Telperion was waxing. But the light that
was spilled from the trees endured long, ere it was taken up into the airs or
sank down into the earth; and the dews of Telperion and the rain that fell from
Laurelin Varda hoarded in great vats like shining lakes, that were to all the
land of the Valar as wells of water and of light. Thus began the Days of the
Bliss of Valinor; and thus began also the Count of Time. But as the ages drew on to the hour
appointed by Ilъvatar for the coming of the Firstborn, Middle-earth lay in a
twilight beneath the stars that Varda had wrought in the ages forgotten of her
labours in Eд. And in the darkness Melkor dwelt, and still often walked abroad,
in many shapes of power and fear, and he wielded cold and fire, from the tops
of the mountains to the deep furnaces that are beneath them; and whatsoever was
cruel or violent or deadly in those days is laid to his charge. From the beauty and bliss of Valinor the
Valar came seldom over the mountains to Middle-earth, but gave to the land
beyond the Pelуri their care and their love. And in the midst of the Blessed
Realm were the mansions of Aulл, and there he laboured long. For in the making
of all things in that land he had the chief part, and he wrought there many
beautiful and shapely works both openly and in secret. Of him comes the lore
and knowledge of the Earth and of an things that it contains: whether the lore
of those that make not, but seek only for the understanding of what is, or the
lore of an craftsmen: the weaver, the shaper of wood, and the worker in metals;
and the tiller and husbandman also, though these last and all that deal with
things that grow and bear fruit must look also to the spouse of Aulл, Yavanna
Kementбri. Aulл it is who is named the Friend of the Noldor, for of him they
learned much in after days, and they are the most skilled of the Elves; and in
their own fashion, according to the gifts which Ilъvatar gave to them, they
added much to his teaching, delighting to tongues and in scripts, and in the
figures of broidery, of drawing, and of carving. The Noldor also it was who
first achieved the making of gems; and the fairest of an gems were the
Silmarils, and they are lost. But Manwл Sъlimo, highest and holiest of the
Valar, sat upon the borders of Aman, forsaking not in his thought the Outer
Lands. For his throne was set in majesty upon the pinnacle of Taniquetil, the
highest of the mountains of the world, standing upon the margin of the sea.
Spirits in the shape of hawks and eagles flew ever to and from his halls; and
their eyes could see to the depths of the seas, and pierce the hidden caverns
beneath the world. Thus they brought word to him of well nigh all that passed
in Arda; yet some things were hidden even from the eyes of Manwл and the
servants of Manwл, for where Melkor sat in his dark thought impenetrable
shadows lay. Manwл has no thought for his own honour, and
is not jealous of his power, but rules all to peace. The Vanyar he loved best
of all the Elves, and of him they received song and poetry; for poetry is the
delight of Manwл, and the song of words is his music. His raiment is blue, and
blue is the fire of his eyes, and his sceptre is of sapphire, which the Noldor
wrought for him; and he was appointed to be the vicegerent of Ilъvatar, King of
the world of Valar and Elves and Men, and the chief defence against the evil of
Melkor. With Manwл dwelt Varda the most beautiful, she who in the Sindarin
tongue is named Elbereth, Queen of the Valar, maker of die stars; and with than
were a great host of spirits in blessedness. But Ulmo was alone, and he abode not in
Valinor, nor ever came thither unless there were need for a great council; he
dwelt from the beginning of Arda in the Outer Ocean, and still he dwells there.
Thence he governs the flowing of all waters, and the ebbing, the courses of an
rivers and the replenishment of Springs, the distilling of all dews and rain in
every land beneath the sky. In the deep places he gives thought to music great
and terrible; and the echo of that music runs through all the veins of the
world in sorrow and in joy; for it joyful is the fountain that rises in the
sun, its springs are in the wells of sorrow unfathomed at the foundations of
the Earth. The Teleri learned much of Ulmo, and for this reason their music has
both sadness and enchantment. Salmar came with him to Arda, he who made the
horns of Ulmo that none may ever forget who once has heard them; and Ossл and
Uinen also, to whom he gave the government of the waves and the movements of
the Inner Seas, and many other spirits beside. And thus it was by the power of
Ulmo that even under the darkness of Melkor life coursed still through many
secret lodes, and the Earth did not die; and to all who were lost in that
darkness or wandered far from the light of the Valar the ear of Ulmo was ever
open; nor has he ever forsaken Middle-earth, and whatsoever may since have
befallen of ruin or of change he has not ceased to take thought for it, and
will not until the end of days. And in that time of dark Yavanna also was
unwilling utterly to forsake the Outer Lands; for all things teat grow are dear
to her, and she mourned for the works that she had begun in Middle-earth but
Melkor had |marred. Therefore leaving the house of Aulл and the flowering meads
of Valinor she would come at times and heal the hurts of Melkor; and returning
she would ever urge the Valar to that war with his evil dominion that they must
surely wage ere the coming of die Firstborn. And Oromл tamer of beasts would
ride too at whiles in the darkness of the unlit forests; as a mighty hunter he
came with spear and bow, pursuing to the death the monsters and fell creatures
of the kingdom of Melkor, and his white horse Nahar shone like silver in the
shadows. Then the sleeping earth trembled at the beat of his golden hooves, and
in the twilight of the world Oromл would sound the Valarуma his great horn upon
the plains of Arda; whereat the mountains echoed, and the shadows of evil fled
away, and Melkor himself quailed in Utumno, foreboding the wrath to come. But
even as Oromл passed the servants of Melkor would gather again; and the lands
were filled with shadows and deceit. Now all is said concerning the manner of the
Earth and its rulers in the beginning of days, and ere the world became such as
the Children of Ilъvatar have known it. For Elves and Men are the Children of
Ilъvatar; and since they understood not fully that theme by which the Children
entered into the Music, none of the Ainur dared to add anything to their
fashion. For which reason the Valar are to these kindreds rather their elders
and their chieftains than their masters; and if ever in their dealings with
Elves and Men the Ainur have endeavoured to force them when they would not be
guided, seldom has this turned to good, howsoever good the intent. The dealings
of the Ainur have indeed been mostly with the Elves, for Ilъvatar made them
more like in nature to the Ainur, though less in might and stature; whereas to
Men he gave strange gifts. For it is said that after the departure of
the Valar there was silence, and for an age Ilъvatar sat alone in thought. Then
he spoke and said: 'Behold I love the Earth, which shall be a mansion for the
Quendi and the Atani! But the Quendi shall be the fairest of all earthly
creatures, and they shall have and shall conceive and bring forth more beauty
than all my Children; and they shall have the greater bliss in this world. But
to the Atani I will give a new gift.' Therefore to willed that the hearts of
Men should seek beyond the world and should find no rest therein; but they
should have a virtue to shape their life, amid the powers and chances of the
world, beyond the Music of the Ainur, which is as fate to all things else; and
of their operation everything should be, in form and deed, completed, and the
world fulfilled unto the last and smallest. But Ilъvatar knew that Men, being set amid
the turmoils of the powers of the world, would stray often, and would not use
their gifts in harmony; and he said: ''These too in their time shall find that
all that they do redounds at the end only to the glory of my work.' Yet the
Elves believe that Men are often a grief to Manwл, who knows most of the mind
of Ilъvatar; for it seems to the Elves that Men resemble Melkor most of all the
Ainur, although he has ever feared and hated them, even those that served him. It is one with this gift of freedom that the
children of Men dwell only a short space in the world alive, and are not bound
to it, and depart soon whither the Elves know not. Whereas the Elves remain
until the end of days, and their love of the Earth and all the world is more
single and more poignant therefore, and as the years lengthen ever more
sorrowful. For the Elves die not till tile world dies, unless they are slain or
waste in grief (and to both these seeming deaths they are subject); neither
does age subdue their strength, unless one grow weary of ten thousand
centuries; and dying they are gathered to the halls of Mandos in Valinor,
whence they may in time return. But the sons of Men die indeed, and leave the
world; wherefore they are called the Guests, or the Strangers. Death is their
fate, the gift of Ilъvatar, which as Time wears even the Powers shall envy. But
Melkor has cast his shadow upon it, and confounded it with darkness, and
brought forth evil out of good, and fear out of hope. Yet of old the Valar
declared to the Elves in Valinor that Men shall join in the Second Music of the
Ainur; whereas Ilъvatar has hot revealed what he purposes for the Elves after
the World's end, and Melkor has not discovered it. Chapter 2 Of Aulл and Yavanna It is told that in their beginning the
Dwarves were made by Aulл in the darkness of Middle-earth; for so greatly did
Aulл desire the coming of the Children, to have learners to whom he could teach
his lore and his crafts, that he was unwilling to await the fulfilment of the
designs of Ilъvatar. And Aulл made the Dwarves even as they still are, because
the forms of the Children who were to come were unclear to his mind, and
because the power of Melkor was yet over the Earth; and he wished therefore
that they should be strong and unyielding. But fearing that the other Valar
might blame his work, he wrought in secret: and he made first the Seven Fathers
of the Dwarves in a hall under the mountains in Middle-earth. Now Ilъvatar knew what was done, and in the
very hour that Aulл's work was complete, and he was pleased, and began to
instruct the Dwarves in the speech that he had devised for them, Ilъvatar spoke
to him; and Aulл heard his voice and was silent. And the voice of Ilъvatar said
to him: 'Why hast thou done this? Why dost thou attempt a thing which thou
knowest is beyond thy power and thy authority? For thou hast from me as a gift
thy own bring only, and no more; and therefore the creatures of thy hand and
mind can live only by that being, moving when thou thinkest to move them, and
if thy thought be elsewhere, standing idle. Is that thy desire?' Then Aulл answered: 'I did not desire such
lordship. I desired things other than I am, to love and to teach them, so that
they too might perceive the beauty of Eд, which thou hast caused to be. For it
seemed to me that there is great room in Arda for many things that might
rejoice in it, yet it is for the most part empty still, and dumb. And in my
impatience I have fallen into folly. Yet the making of thing is in my heart
from my own making by thee; and the child of little understanding that makes a
play of the deeds of his father may do so without thought of mockery, but
because he is the son of his father. But what shall I do now, so that thou be
not angry with me for ever? As a child to his father, I offer to thee these
things, the work of the hands which thou hast made. Do with them what thou
wilt. But should I not rather destroy the work of my presumption?' Then Aulл took up a great hammer to smite
the Dwarves; and he wept. But Ilъvatar had compassion upon Aulл and his desire,
because of his humility; and the Dwarves shrank from the hammer and wore
afraid, and they bowed down their heads and begged for mercy. And the voice of
Ilъvatar said to Aulл: 'Thy offer I accepted even as it was made. Dost thou not
see that these things have now a life of their own, and speak with their own
voices? Else they would not have flinched from thy blow, nor from any command
of thy will.' Then Aulл cast down his hammer and was glad, and he gave thanks
to Ilъvatar, saying: 'May Eru bless my work and amend it!' But Ilъvatar spoke again and said: 'Even as
I gave being to the thoughts of the Ainur at the beginning of the World, so now
I have taken up thy desire and given to it a place therein; but in no other way
will I amend thy handiwork, and as thou hast made it, so shall it be. But I
will not suffer this: that these should come before the Firstborn of my design,
nor that thy impatience should be rewarded. They shall sleep now in the
darkness under stone, and shall not come forth until the Firstborn have
awakened upon Earth; and until that time thou and they shall wait, though long
it seem. But when the time comes I will awaken them, and they shall be to thee
as children; and often strife shall arise between thine and mine, the children
of my adoption and the children of my choice.' Then Aulл took the Seven Fathers of the
Dwarves, and laid them to rest in far-sundered places; and he returned to
Valinor, and waited while the long years lengthened. Since they were to come in the days of the
power of Melkor, Aulл made the Dwarves strong to endure. Therefore they are
stone-hard, stubborn, fast in friendship and in enmity, and they suffer toil
and hanger and hurt of body more hardily than all other speaking peoples; and
they live long, far beyond the span of Men, yet not for ever. Aforetime it was
held among the Elves in Middle-earth that dying the Dwarves returned to the
earth and the stone of which they were made; yet that is not their own belief.
For they say that Aulл the Maker, whom they call Mahal, cares for them, and
gathers them to Mandos in halls set apart; and that he declared to their
Fathers of old that Ilъvatar will hallow them and give them a place among the
Children in the End. Then their part shall be to serve Aulл and to aid him in
the remaking of Arda after the Last Battle. They say also that the Seven
Fathers of the Dwarves return to live again in their own kin and to bear once
more their ancient names: of whom Durin was the most renowned in after ages,
father of that kindred most friendly to the Elves, whose mansions were at
Khazad-dыm. Now when Aulл laboured in the making of the
Dwarves he kept this work hidden from the other Valar; but at last he opened
his mind to Yavanna and told her of all that had come to pass. Then Yavanna
said to him: 'Eru is merciful. Now I see that thy heart rejoiceth, as indeed it
may; for thou hast received not only forgiveness but bounty. Yet because thou
hiddest this thought from me until its achievement, thy children will have
little love for the things of my love. They will love first the things made by
their own hands, as doth their father. They will delve in the earth, and the
things that grow and live upon the earth they will not heed. Many a tree shall
feel the bite of their iron without pity.' But Aulл answered: 'That shall also be true
of the Children of Ilъvatar; for they will eat and they will build. And though
the things of thy realm have worth in themselves, and would have worth if no
Children were to come, yet Eru will give them dominion, and they shall use all
that they find in Arda: though not, by the purpose of Eru, without respect or
without gratitude.' 'Not unless Melkor darken their hearts,'
said Yavanna. And she was not appeased, but grieved in heart, fearing what
might be done upon Middle-earth in days to come. Therefore she went before
Manwл, and she did not betray the counsel of Aulл, but she said: 'King of Arda,
is it true, as Aulл hath said to me, that the Children when they come shall
have dominion over all the things of my labour, to do as they will therewith?' 'It is true,' said Manwл. 'But why dost thou
ask, for thou hadst no need of the teaching of Aulл?' Then Yavanna was silent and looked into her
own thought. And she answered: 'Because my heart is anxious, thinking of the
days to come. All my works are dear to me. Is it not enough that Melkor should
have marred so many? Shall nothing that I have devised be free from the
dominion of others?' 'If thou hadst thy will what wouldst thou
reserve?' said Manwл. 'Of all thy realm what dost thou hold dearest?' 'All have their worth,' said Yavanna, 'and
each contributes to the worth of the others. But the kelvar can flee or defend themselves, whereas the olvar that grow cannot. And among these
I hold trees dear. Long in the growing, swift shall they be in the felling, and
unless they pay toll with fruit upon bough little mourned in their passing. So
I see in my thought. Would that the trees might speak on behalf of all things
that have roots, and punish those that wrong them!' 'This is a strange thought,' said Manwл. 'Yet it was in the Song,' said Yavanna. 'For
while thou wert in the heavens and with Ulmo built the clouds and poured out
the rains, I lifted up the branches of great trees to receive them, and some
sang to Ilъvatar amid the wind and the rain.' Then Manwл sat silent, and the thought of
Yavanna that she had put into his heart grew and unfolded; and it was beheld by
Ilъvatar. Then it seemed to Manwл that the Song rose once more about him, and
he heeded now many things therein that though he had heard them he had not
heeded before. And at last the Vision was renewed, but it was not now remote,
for he was himself within it, and yet he saw that all was upheld by the hand of
Ilъvatar; and the hand entered in, and from it came forth many wonders that had
until then been hidden from him in the hearts of the Ainur. Then Manwл awoke, and he went down to
Yavanna upon Ezellohar, and he sat beside her beneath the Two Trees. And Manwл
said: 'O Kementбri, Eru hath spoken, saying: "Do then any of the Valar
suppose that I did not hear all the Song, even the least sound of the least
voice? Behold! When the Children awake, then the thought of Yavanna will awake
also, and it will summon spirits from afar, and they will go among the kelvar and the olvar, and some will dwell therein, and be held in reverence, and
their just anger shall be feared. For a time: while the Firstborn are in their
power, and while the Secondborn are young." But dost them not now
remember, Kementбri, that thy thought sang not always alone? Did not thy
thought and mine meet also, so that we took wing together like great birds that
soar above the clouds? That also shall come to be by the heed of Ilъvatar, and
before the Children awake there shall go forth with wings like the wind the
Eagles of the Lords of the West.' Then Yavanna was glad, and she stood up,
reaching her arms towards the heavens, and she said: 'High shall climb the
trees of Kementбri, that the Eagles of the King may house therein!' But Manwл rose also, and it seemed that he
stood to such a height that his voice came down to Yavanna as from the paths of
the winds. 'Nay,' he said, 'only the trees of Aulл will
be tall enough. In the mountains the Eagles shall house, and hear the voices of
those who call upon us. But in the forests shall walk the Shepherds of the
Trees.' Then Manwл and Yavanna parted for that time,
and Yavanna returned to Aulл; and he was in his smithy, pouring molten metal
into a mould. 'Eru is bountiful,' she said. 'Now let thy children beware! For
there shall walk a power in the forests whose wrath they will arouse at their
peril.' 'Nonetheless they will have need of wood,'
said Aulл, and he went on with his smith-work. Chapter 3 Of the Coming of the Elves and the Captivity
of Melkor Through long ages
the Valar dwelt in bliss in the light of the Trees beyond. The Mountains of Aman, but all Middle-earth lay in a
twilight under the stars. While the Lamps had shone, growth began there which
now was checked, because all was again dark. But already the oldest living
things had arisen: in the seas the great weeds, and on earth the shadow of
great trees; and in the valleys of the night-clad hills there were dark
creatures old and strong. To those lands and forests the Valar seldom came,
save only Yavanna and Oromл; and Yavanna would walk there in the shadows,
grieving because the growth and promise of the Spring of Arda was stayed. And
she set a sleep upon many things that had arisen in the Spring, so that they
should not age, but should wait for a time of awakening that yet should be. But in the north Melkor built his strength,
and he slept not, but watched, and laboured; and the evil things that he had
perverted walked abroad, and the dark and slumbering woods were haunted by
monsters and shapes of dread. And in Utumno he gathered his demons about him,
those spirits who first adhered to him in the days of his splendour, and became
most like him in his corruption: their hearts were of fire, but they were
cloaked in darkness, and terror went before them; they had whips of flame.
Balrogs they were named in Middle-earth in later days. And in that dark time
Melkor bred many other monsters of divers shapes and kinds that long troubled
the world; and his realm spread now ever southward over Middle-earth. And Melkor made also a fortress and armoury
not far from the north-western shores of the sea, to resist any assault that
might come from Aman. That stronghold was commanded by Sauron, lieutenant of
Melkor; and it was named Angband. It came to pass that the Valar held council,
for they became troubled by the tidings that Yavanna and Oromл brought from the
Outer Lands; and Yavanna spoke before the Valar, saying: 'Ye mighty of Arda,
the Vision of Ilъvatar was brief and soon taken away, so that maybe we cannot
guess within a narrow count of days the hour appointed. Yet be sure of this:
the hour approaches, and within this age our hope shall be revealed, and the
Children shall awake. Shall we then leave the lands of their dwelling desolate
and full of evil? Shall they walk in darkness while we have light? Shall they
call Melkor lord while Manwл sits upon Taniquetil?' And Tulkas cried: 'Nay! Let us make war
swiftly! Have we not rested from strife overlong, and is not our strength now
renewed? Shall one alone contest with us for ever?' But at the bidding of Manwл Mandos spoke,
and he said: 'In this age the Children of Ilъvatar shall come indeed, but they
come not yet. Moreover it is doom that the Firstborn shall come in the
darkness, and shall look first upon the stars. Great light shall be for their
waning. To Varda ever shall they call at need.' Then Varda went forth from the council, and
she looked out from the height of Taniquetil, and beheld the darkness of
Middle-earth beneath the innumerable stars, faint and far. Then she began a
great labour, greatest of all the works of the Valar since their coming into
Arda. She took the silver dews from the vats of Telperion, and therewith she
made new stars and brighter against the coming of the Firstborn; wherefore she
whose name out of the deeps of time and the labours of Eд was Tintallл, the
Kindler, was called after by the Elves Elentбri, Queen of the Stars. Carnil and
Luinil, Nйnar and Lumbar, Alcarinquл and Elemmнrл she wrought in that time, and
many other of the ancient stars she gathered together and set as signs in the
heavens of Arda: Wilwarin, Telumendil, Soronъmл, and Anarrнma; and Menelmacar
with his shining belt, that forebodes the Last Battle that shall be at the end
of days. And high in the north as a challenge to Melkor she set the crown of
seven mighty stars to swing, Valacirca, the Sickle of the Valar and sign of
doom. It is told that even as Varda ended her
labours, and they were long, when first Menelmacar strode up the sky and the
blue fire of Helluin flickered in the mists above the borders of the world, in
that hour the Children of the Earth awoke, the Firstborn of Ilъvatar. By the
starlit mere of Cuiviйnen, Water of Awakening, they rose from the sleep of
Ilъvatar; and while they dwelt yet silent by Cuiviйnen their eyes beheld first
of all things the stars of heaven. Therefore they have ever loved the
starlight, and have revered Varda Elentбri above all the Valar. In the changes of the world the shapes of
lands and of seas have been broken and remade; rivers have not kept their
courses, neither have mountains remained steadfast; and to Cuiviйnen there is
no returning. But it is said among the Elves that it lay far off in the east of
Middle-earth, and northward, and it was a bay in the Inland Sea of Helcar; and
that sea stood where aforetime the roots of the mountain of Illuin had been
before Melkor overthrew it Many waters flowed down thither from heights in the
east, and the first sound that was heard by the Elves was the sound of water
flowing, and the sound of water falling over stone. Long they dwelt in their first home by the
water under stars, and they walked the Earth in wonder; and they began to make
speech and to give names to all things that they perceived. Themselves they
named the Quendi, signifying those that speak with voices; for as yet they had
met no other living things that spoke or sang. And on a time it chanced that Oromл rode
eastward in his hunting, and he turned north by the shores of Helcar and passed
under the shadows of the Orocarni, the Mountains of the East. Then on a sudden
Nahar set up a great neighing, and stood still. And Oromл wondered and sat
silent, and it seemed to him that in the quiet of the land under the stars he
heard afar off many voices singing. Thus it was that the Valar found at last, as
it were by chance, those whom they had so long awaited. And Oromл looking upon
the Elves was filled with wonder, as though they were beings sudden and
marvellous and unforeseen; for so it shall ever be with the Valar. From without
the World, though all things may be forethought in music or foreshown in vision
from afar, to those who enter verily into Eд each in its time shall be met at
unawares as something new and unforetold. In the beginning the Elder Children of
Ilъvatar were stronger and greater than they have since become; but not more
fair, for though the beauty of the Quendi in the days of their youth was beyond
all other beauty that Ilъvatar has caused to be, it has not perished, but lives
in the West, and sorrow and wisdom have enriched it. And Oromл loved the
Quendi, and named them in their own tongue Eldar, the people of the stars; but
that name was after borne only by those who followed him upon the westward
road. Yet many of the Quendi were filled with
dread at his coming; and this was the doing of Melkor. For by after-knowledge
the wise declare that Melkor, ever watchful, was first aware of the awakening
of the Quendi, and sent shadows and evil spirits to spy upon them and waylay
them. So it came to pass, some years ere the coming of Oromл, that if any of
the Elves strayed far abroad, alone or few together, they would often vanish,
and never return; and the Quendi said that the Hunter had caught them, and they
were afraid. And indeed the most ancient songs of the Elves, of which echoes
are remembered still in the West, tell of the shadow-shapes that walked in the
hills above Cuiviйnen, or would pass suddenly over the stars; and of the dark
Rider upon his wild horse that pursued those that wandered to take them and
devour them. Now Melkor greatly hated and feared the riding of Oromл, and
either he sent indeed his dark servants as riders, or he set lying whispers
abroad, for the purpose that the Quendi should shun Oromл, if ever they should
meet. Thus it was that when Nahar neighed and
Oromл indeed came among them, some of the Quendi hid themselves, and some fled
and were lost. But those that had courage, and stayed, perceived swiftly that
the Great Rider was no shape out of darkness; for the light of Aman was in his
face, and all the noblest of the Elves were drawn towards it. But of those unhappy ones who were ensnared
by Melkor little is known of a certainty. For who of the living has descended
into the pits of Utumno, or has explored the darkness of the counsels of
Melkor? Yet this is held true by the wise of Eressлa, that all those of the
Quendi who came into the hands of Melkor, ere Utumno was broken, were put there
in prison, and by slow arts of cruelty were corrupted and enslaved; and thus
did Melkor breed the hideous race of the Orcs in envy and mockery of the Elves,
of whom they were afterwards the bitterest foes. For the Orcs had life and
multiplied after the manner of the Children of Ilъvatar; and naught that had
life of its own, nor the semblance of life, could ever Melkor make since his
rebellion in the Ainulindalл before the Beginning: so say the wise. And deep in
their dark hearts the Orcs loathed the Master whom they served in fear, the
maker only of their misery. This it may be was the vilest deed of Melkor, and
the most hateful to Ilъvatar. Oromл tarried a while among the Quendi, and
then swiftly he rode back over land and sea to Valinor and brought the tidings
to Valmar; and he spoke of the shadows that troubled Cuiviйnen. Then the Valar
rejoiced, and yet they were in doubt amid their joy; and they debated long what
counsel it were best to take for the guarding of the Quendi from the shadow of
Melkor. But Oromл returned at once to Middle-earth and abode with the Elves. Manwл sat long in thought upon Taniquetil,
and he sought the counsel of Ilъvatar. And coming then down to Valmar he
summoned the Valar to the Ring of Doom, and thither came even Ulmo from the
Outer Sea. Then Manwл said to the Valar: 'This is the
counsel of Ilъvatar in my heart: that we should take up again the mastery of
Arda, at whatsoever cost, and deliver the Quendi from the shadow of Melkor.'
Then Tulkas was glad; but Aulл was grieved, foreboding the hurts of the world
that must come of that strife. But the Valar made ready and came forth from
Aman in strength of war, resolving to assault the fortresses of Melkor and make
an end. Never did Melkor forget that this war was made for the sake of the
Elves, and that they were the cause of his downfall. Yet they had no part in
those deeds, and they know little of the riding of the might of the West
against the North in the beginning of their days. Melkor met the onset of the Valar in the
North-west of Middle-earth, and all that region was much broken. But the first
victory of the hosts of the West was swift, and the servants of Melkor fled
before them to Utumno. Then the Valar passed over Middle-earth, and they set a
guard over Cuiviйnen; and thereafter the Quendi knew nothing of the great
Battle of the Powers, save that the Earth shook and groaned beneath them, and
the waters were moved, and in the north there were lights as of mighty fires.
Long and grievous was the siege of Utumno, and many battles were fought before
its gates of which naught but the rumour is known to the Elves. In that time
the shape of Middle-earth was changed, and the Great Sea that sundered it from
Aman grew wide and deep; and it broke in upon the coasts and made a deep gulf
to the southward. Many lesser bays were made between the Great Gulf and
Helcaraxл far in the north, where Middle-earth and Aman came nigh together. Of
these the Bay of Balar was the chief; and into it the mighty river Sirion
flowed down from the new-raised highlands northwards: Dorthonion, and the
mountains about Hithlum. The lands of the far north were all made desolate in
those days; for there Utumno was delved exceeding deep, and its pits were
filled with fires and with great hosts of the servants of Melkor. But at the last the gates of Utumno were
broken and the halls unroofed, and Melkor took refuge in the uttermost pit.
Then Tulkas stood forth as champion of the Valar and wrestled with him, and
cast him upon his face; and he was bound with the chain Angainor that Aulл had
wrought, and led captive; and the world had peace for a long age. Nonetheless the Valar did not discover all
the mighty vaults and caverns hidden with deceit far under the fortresses of
Angband and Utumno. Many evil things still lingered there, and others were
dispersed and fled into the dark and roamed in the waste places of the world,
awaiting a more evil hour; and Sauron they did not find. But when the Battle was ended and from the
ruin of the North great clouds arose and hid the stars, the Valar drew Melkor
back to Valinor, bound hand and foot, and blindfold; and he was brought to the
Ring of Doom. There he lay upon his face before the feet of Manwл and sued for
pardon; but his prayer was denied, and he was cast into prison in the fastness
of Mandos, whence none can escape, neither Vala, nor Elf, nor mortal Man. Vast
and strong are those halls, and they were built in the west of the land of
Aman. There was Melkor doomed to abide for three ages long, before his cause
should be tried anew, or he should plead again for pardon. Then again the Valar were gathered in
council, and they were divided in debate. For some, and of those Ulmo was the
chief, held that the Quendi should be left free to walk as they would in
Middle-earth, and with their gifts of skill to order all the lands and heal
their hurts. But the most part feared for the Quendi in the dangerous world
amid the deceits of the starlit dusk; and they were filled moreover with the
love of the beauty of the Elves and desired their fellowship. At the last,
therefore, the Valar summoned the Quendi to Valinor, there to be gathered at
the knees of the Powers in the light of the Trees for ever; and Mandos broke
his silence, saying: 'So it is doomed.' From this summons came many woes that
afterwards befell. But the Elves were at first unwilling to
hearken to the summons, for they had as yet seen the Valar only in their wrath
as they went to war, save Oromл alone; and they were filled with dread.
Therefore Oromл was sent again to them, and he chose from among them
ambassadors who should go to Valinor and speak for their people; and these were
Ingwл, Finwл and Elwл, who afterwards were kings. And coming they were filled
with awe by the glory and majesty of the Valar, and desired greatly the light
and splendour of the Trees. Then Oromл brought them back to Cuiviйnen, and they
spoke before their people, and counselled them to heed the summons of the Valar
and remove into the West Then befell the first sundering of the
Elves. For the kindred of Ingwл, and the most part of the kindreds of Finwл and
Elwл, were swayed by the words of their lords, and were willing to depart and
follow Oromл; and these were known ever after as the Eldar, by the name that
Oromл gave to the Elves in the beginning, in their own tongue. But many refused
the summons, preferring the starlight and the wide spaces of Middle-earth to
the rumour of the Trees; and these are the Avari, the Unwilling, and they were
sundered in that time from the Eldar, and met never again until many ages were
past. The Eldar prepared now a great march from
their first homes in the east; and they were arrayed in three hosts. The
smallest host and the first to set forth was led by Ingwл, the most high lord
of all the Elvish race. He entered into Valinor and sits at the feet of the
Powers, and all Elves revere his name; but he came never back, nor looked again
upon Middle-earth. The Vanyar were his people; they are the Fair Elves, the
beloved of Manwл and Varda, and few among Men have spoken with them. Next came the Noldor, a name of wisdom, the
people of Finwл. They are the Deep Elves, the friends of Aulл; and they are
renowned in song, for they fought and laboured long and grievously in the
northern lands of old. The greatest host came last, and they are
named the Teleri, for they tarried on the road, and were not wholly of a mind
to pass from the dusk to the light of Valinor. In water they had great delight,
and those that came at last to the western shores were enamoured of the sea.
The Sea-elves therefore they became in the land of Aman, the Falmari, for they
made music beside the breaking waves. Two lords they had, for their numbers
were great: Elwл Singollo (which signifies Greymantle) and Olwл his brother. These were the three kindreds of the
Eldaliл, who passing at length into the uttermost West in the days of the Trees
are called the Calaquendi, Elves of the Light. But others of the Eldar there
were who set out indeed upon the westward march, but became lost upon the long
road, or turned aside, or lingered on the shores of Middle-earth; and these
were for the most part of the kindred of the Teleri, as is told hereafter. They
dwelt by the sea or wandered in the woods and mountains of the world, yet their
hearts were turned towards the West. Those Elves the Calaquendi call the
Ъmanyar, since they came never to the land of Aman and the Blessed Realm; but
the Ъmanyar and the Avari alike they call the Moriquendi, Elves of the
Darkness, for they never beheld the Light that was before the Sun and Moon. It is told that when the hosts of the
Eldaliл departed from Cuiviйnen Oromл rode at their head upon Nahar, his white
horse shod with gold; and passing northward about the Sea of Helcar they turned
towards the west. Before them great clouds hung still black in the North above
the ruins of war, and the stars in that region were hidden. Then not a few grew
afraid and repented, and turned back, and are forgotten. Long and slow was the march of the Eldar
into the west, for the leagues of Middle-earth were uncounted, and weary and
pathless. Nor did the Eldar desire to hasten, for they were filled with wonder
at all that they saw, and by many lands and rivers they wished to abide; and
though all were yet willing to wander, many feared rather their journey's end
than hoped for it Therefore whenever Oromл departed, having at times other
matters to heed, they halted and went forward no more, until he returned to
guide them. And it came to pass after many years of journeying in this manner
that the Eldar took their course through a forest, and they came to a great
river, wider than any they had yet seen; and beyond it were mountains whose
sharp horns seemed to pierce the realm of the stars. This river, it is said,
was even the river which was after called Anduin the Great, and was ever the
frontier of the west-lands of Middle-earth. But me mountains were the Hithaeglir,
the Towers of Mist upon the borders of Eriador; yet they were taller and more
terrible in those days, and were reared by Melkor to hinder the riding of
Oromл. Now the Teleri abode long on the east bank of that river and wished to
remain there, but the Vanyar and me Noldor passed over it, and Oromл led them
into the passes of the mountains. And when Oromл was gone forward the Teleri
looked upon the shadowy heights and were afraid. Then one arose in the host of Olwл, which
was ever the hindmost on the road; Lenwл he was called. He forsook the westward
march, and led away a numerous people, southwards down the great river, and
they passed out of the knowledge of their kin until long years were past. Those
were the Nandor; and they became a people apart, unlike their kin, save that
they loved water, and dwelt most beside falls and running streams. Greater
knowledge they had of living things, tree and herb, bird and beast, than all
other Elves. In after years Denethor, son of Lenwл, turned again west at last,
and led a part of that people over the mountains into Beleriand ere the rising
of the Moon. At length the Vanyar and the Noldor came
over Ered Luin, the Blue Mountains, between Eriador and the westernmost land of
Middle-earth, which the Elves after named Beleriand; and the foremost companies
passed over the Vale of Sirion and came down to the shores of the Great Sea
between Drengist and the Bay of Balar. But when they beheld it great fear came
upon them, and many withdrew into the woods and highlands of Beleriand. Then
Oromл departed, and returned to Valinor to seek the counsel of Manwл, and left
them. And the host of the Teleri passed over the
Misty Mountains, and crossed the wide lands of Eriador, being urged on by Elwл
Singollo, for he was eager to return to Valinor and the Light that he had
beheld; and he wished not to be sundered from the Noldor, for he had great
friendship with Finwл their lord. Thus after many years the Teleri also came at
last over Ered Luin into the eastern regions of Beleriand. There they halted,
and dwelt a while beyond the River Gelion. Chapter 4 Of Thingol and Melian Melian was a Maia,
of the race of the Valar. She dwelt in the gardens of Lуrien, and among all his
people there were none more beautiful than Melian, nor more wise, nor more
skilled in songs of enchantment. It is told that the Valar would leave their
works, and the birds of Valinor their mirth, that the bells of Valmar were
silent and the fountains ceased to flow, when at the mingling of the lights
Melian sang in Lуrien. Nightingales went always with her, and she taught them
their song; and she loved the deep shadows of the great trees. She was akin
before the World was made to Yavanna herself; and in that time when the Quendi
awoke beside the waters of Cuiviйnen she departed from Valinor and came to the
Hither Lands, and there she filled the silence of Middle-earth before the dawn
with her voice and the voices of her birds. Now when their journey was near its end, as
has been told, the people of the Teleri rested long in East Beleriand, beyond
the River Gelion; and at that time many of the Noldor still lay to the
westward, in those forests that were afterwards named Neldoreth and Region.
Elwл, lord of the Teleri, went often through the great woods to seek out Finwл
his friend in the dwellings of the Noldor; and it chanced on a time that he
came alone to the starlit wood of Nan Elmoth, and there suddenly he heard the
song of nightingales. Then an enchantment fell on him, and he stood still; and
afar off beyond the voices of the lуmelindi
he heard the voice of Melian, and it filled all his heart with wonder and
desire. He forgot then utterly all his people and all the purposes of his mind,
and following the birds under the shadow of the trees he passed deep into Nan
Elmoth and was lost. But he came at last to a glade open to the stars, and
there Melian stood; and out of the darkness he looked at her, and the light of
Aman was in her face. She spoke no word; but being filled with
love Elwл came to her and took her hand, and straightway a spell was laid on
him, so that they stood thus while long years were measured by the wheeling
stars above them; and the trees of Nan Elmoth grew tall and dark before they
spoke any word. Thus Elwл's folk who sought him found him
not, and Olwл took the kingship of the Teleri and departed, as is told
hereafter. Elwл Singollo came never again across the sea to Valinor so long as
he lived, and Melian returned not thither while their realm together lasted;
but of her there came among both Elves and Men a strain of the Ainur who were
with Ilъvatar before Eд. In after days he became a king renowned, and his
people were all the Eldar of Beleriand; the Sindar they were named, the
Grey-elves, the Elves of the Twilight and King Greymantle was he, Elu Thingol
in the tongue of that land. And Melian was his Queen, wiser than any child of
Middle-earth; and their hidden halls were Menegroth, the Thousand Caves, in Doriath.
Great power Melian lent to Thingol, who was himself great among the Eldar; for
he alone of all the Sindar had seen with his own eyes the Trees in the day of
their flowering, and king though he was of Amanyar, he was not accounted among
the Moriquendi, but with the Elves of the Light, mighty upon Middle-earth. And
of the love of Thingol and Melian there came into the world the fairest of all
the Children of Ilъvatar that was or shall ever be. Chapter 5 Of Eldamar and the Princes of the Eldaliл In time the hosts of
the Vanyar and the Noldor came to the last western shores of the Hither Lands.
In the north these shores, in the ancient days after the Battle of the Powers,
bent ever westward, until in the northernmost parts of Arda only a narrow sea
divided Aman, upon which Valinor was built, from the Hither Lands; but this
narrow sea was filled with grinding ice, because of the violence of the frosts
of Melkor. Therefore Oromл did not lead the hosts of the Eldaliл into the far
north, but brought them to the fair lands about the River Sirion, that
afterwards were named Beleriand; and from those shores whence first the Eldar
looked in fear and wonder on the Sea there stretched an ocean, wide and dark
and deep, between them and the Mountains of Aman. Now Ulmo, by the counsel of the Valar, came
to the shores of Middle-earth and spoke with the Eldar who waited there, gazing
on the dark waves; and because of his words and the music which he made for
them on his horns of shell their fear of the sea was turned rather to desire.
Therefore Ulmo uprooted an island which long had stood alone amid the sea, far
from either shore, since the tumults of the fall of Illuin; and with the aid of
his servants he moved it, as it were a mighty ship, and anchored it in the Bay
of Balar, into which Sirion poured his water. Then the Vanyar and the Noldor
embarked upon that isle, and were drawn over the sea, and came at last to the
long shores beneath the Mountains of Aman; and they entered Valinor and were
welcomed to its bliss. But the eastern horn of the island, which was
deep-grounded in the shoals off the mouths of Sirion, was broken asunder and
remained behind and that, it is said, was the Isle of Balar, to which
afterwards Ossл often came. But the Teleri remained still in
Middle-earth, for they dwelt in East Beleriand far from the sea, and they heard
not the summons of Ulmo until too late; and many searched still for Elwл their
lord, and without him they were unwilling to depart. But when they learned that
Ingwл and Finwл and their peoples were gone, then many of the Teleri pressed on
to the shores of Beleriand, and dwelt thereafter near the Mouths of Sirion, in
longing for their friends that had departed; and they took Olwл, Elwл’s
brother, to be their king. Long they remained by the coasts of the western sea,
and Ossл and Uinen came to them and befriended them; and Ossл instructed them,
sitting upon a rock near to the margin of the land, and of him they learned all
manner of sea-lore and sea-music. Thus it came to be that the Teleri, who were
from the beginning lovers of water, and the fairest singers of all the Elves,
were after enamoured of the seas, and their songs were filled with the sound of
waves upon the shore. When many years had passed, Ulmo hearkened
to the prayers of the Noldor and of Finwл their king. Who grieved at their long
sundering from the Teleri, and besought him to bring them to Aman, if they
would come. And most of them proved now willing indeed; but great was the grief
of Ossл when Ulmo returned to the coasts of Beleriand, to bear them away to
Valinor; for his care was for the seas of Middle-earth and the shores of the
Hither Lands, and he was ill-pleased that the voices of the Teleri should be
heard no more in his domain. Some he persuaded to remain; and those were the
Falathrim, the Elves of the Falas, who in after days had dwellings at the
havens of Brithombar and Eglarest, the first mariners in Middle-earth and the
first makers of ships. Cнrdan the Shipwright was their lord. The kinsfolk and friends of Elwл Singollo
also remained in the Hither Lands, seeking him yet, though they would fain have
departed to Valinor and the light of the Trees, if Ulmo and Olwл had been
willing to tarry longer. But Olwл would be gone; and at last the main host of
the Teleri embarked upon the isle, and Ulmo drew them far away. Then the
friends of Elwл were left behind; and they called themselves Eglath, the
Forsaken People. They dwelt in the woods and hills of Beleriand, rather than by
the sea, which filled them with sorrow; but the desire of Aman was ever in
their hearts. But when Elwл awoke from his long trance, he
came forth from Nan Elmoth with Melian, and they dwelt thereafter in the woods
in the midst of the land. Greatly though he had desired to see again the light
of the Trees, in the face of Melian he beheld the light of Aman as in an
unclouded mirror, and in that light he was content. His people gathered about
him in joy, and they were amazed; for fair and noble as he had been, now he
appeared as it were a lord of the Maiar, his hair as grey silver, tallest of
all the Children of Ilъvatar; and a high doom was before him. Now Ossл followed after the host of Olwл,
and when they were come to the Bay of Eldamar (which is Elvenhome) he called to
them; and they knew his voice, and begged Ulmo to stay their voyage. And Ulmo
granted their request, and at his bidding Ossл made fast the island and rooted
it to the foundations of the sea. Ulmo did this the more readily, for he
understood the hearts of the Teleri, and in the council of the Valar he had
spoken against the summons, thinking that it were better for the Quendi to remain
in Middle-earth. The Valar were little pleased to learn what he had done; and
Finwл grieved when the Teleri came not, and yet more when he learned that Elwл
was forsaken, and knew that he should not see him again, unless it were in the
halls of Mandos. But the island was not moved again, and stood there alone in
the Bay of Eldamar; and it was called Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle. There the
Teleri abode as they wished under the stars of heaven, and yet within right of
Aman and the deathless shore; and by that long sojourn apart in the Lonely Isle
was caused the sundering of their speech from that of the Vanyar and the
Noldor. To these the Valar had given a land and a
dwelling-place. Even among the radiant flowers of the Tree-lit gardens of
Valinor they longed still at times to see the stars; and therefore a gap was
made in the great walls of the Pelуri, and there in a deep valley that ran down
to the sea the Eldar raised a high green hill: Tъna it was called. From the
west the light of the Trees fell upon it, and its shadow lay ever eastward; and
to the east it looked towards the Bay of Elvenhome, and the Lonely Isle, and
the Shadowy Seas. Then through Calacirya, the Pass of Light, the radiance of
the Blessed Realm streamed forth, kindling the dark waves to silver and gold,
and it touched the Lonely Isle, and its western shore grew green and fair.
There bloomed the first flowers that ever were east of the Mountains of Aman. Upon the crown of Tъna the city of the Elves
was built, the white walls and terraces of Tirion; and the highest of the
towers of that city was the Tower of Ingwл, Mindon Eldaliйva, whose silver lamp
shone far out into the mists of the sea. Few are the ships of mortal Men that
have seen its slender beam. In Tirion upon Tъna the Vanyar and the Noldor dwelt
long in fellowship. And since of all things in Valinor they loved most the
White Tree, Yavanna made for them a tree like to a lesser image of Telperion,
save that it did not give light of its own being; Galathilion it was named in
the Sindarin tongue. This tree was planted in the courts beneath the Mindon and
there flourished, and its seedlings were many in Eldamar. Of these one was
afterwards planted in Tol Eressлa, and it prospered there, and was named
Celeborn; thence came in me fullness of time as is elsewhere told, Nimloth, the
White Tree of Nъmenor. Manwл and Varda loved most the Vanyar, the
Fair Elves; but the Noldor were beloved of Aulл, and he and his people came
often among them. Great became their knowledge and their skill; yet even
greater was their thirst for more knowledge, and in many things they soon
surpassed their teachers. They were changeful in speech, for they had great
love of words, and sought ever to find names more fit for all things that they
knew or imagined. And it came to pass that the masons of the house of Finwл, quarrying in the hills
after stone (for they delighted in the building of high towers), first
discovered the earth-gems, and brought them forth in countless myriads; and
they devised tools for the cutting and shaping of gems, and carved them in many
forms. They hoarded them not, but gave them freely, and by their labour
enriched all Valinor. The Noldor afterwards came back to
Middle-earth, and this tale tells mostly of their deeds; therefore the names
and kinship of their princes may here be told, in that form which these names
later bore in the tongue of the Elves of Beleriand. Finwл was King of the Noldor. The sons of
Finwл were Fлanor, and Fingolfin, and Finarfin; but the mother of Fлanor was
Mнriel Serindл, whereas the mother of Fingolfin and Finarfin was Indis of the
Vanyar. Fлanor was the mightiest in skill of word and of hand, more learned
than his brothers; his spirit burned as a flame. Fingolfin was the strongest,
the most steadfast, and the most valiant. Finarfin was the fairest, and the
most wise of heart; and afterwards he was a friend of the sons of Olwл, lord of
the Teleri, and had to wife Eдrwen, the swan-maiden of Alqualondл, Olwл's
daughter. The seven sons of Fлanor were Maedhros the
tall; Maglor the mighty singer, whose voice was heard far over land and sea;
Celegorm the fair, and Caranthir the dark; Curufin the crafty, who inherited
most his father's skill of hand; and the youngest Amrod and Amras, who were
twin brothers, alike in mood and face. In later days they were great hunters in
the woods of Middle-earth; and a hunter also was Celegorm, who in Valinor was a
friend of Oromл, and often followed the Vala's horn. The sons of Fingolfin were Fingon, who was
afterwards King of the Noldor in the north of the world, and Turgon, lord of
Gondolin; their sister was Aredhel the White. She was younger in the years of
the Eldar than her brothers; and when she was grown to full stature and beauty
she was tall and strong, and loved much to ride and hunt in the forests. There
she was often in the company of the sons of Fлanor, her kin; but to none was
her heart's love given. Ar-Feiniel she was called, the White Lady of the
Noldor, for she was pale though her hair was dark, and she was never arrayed
but in silver and white. The sons of Finarfin were Finrod the
faithful (who was afterwards named Felagund, Lord of Caves), Orodreth, Angrod,
and Aegnor; these tour were as close in friendship with the sons of Fingolfin
as though they were all brothers. A sister they had, Galadriel, most beautiful
of all the house of Finwл; her hair was lit with gold as though it had caught
in a mesh the radiance of Laurelin. Here must be told how the Teleri came at
last to the land of Aman. Through a long age they dwelt in Tol Eressлa; but
slowly their hearts were changed, and were drawn towards the light that flowed
out over the sea to the Lonely Isle. They were torn between the love of the
music of the waves upon their shores, and the desire to see again their kindred
and to look upon the splendour of Valinor; but in the end desire of the light
was the stronger. Therefore Ulmo, submitting to the will of the Valar, sent to
them Ossл, their friend, and he though grieving taught them the craft of
ship-building; and when their ships were built he brought them as his parting
gift many strong-winged swans. Then the swans drew the white ships of the
Teleri over the windless sea; and thus at last and latest they came to Aman and
the shores of Eldamar. There they dwelt, and if they wished they
could see the light of the Trees, and could tread the golden streets of Valmar
and the crystal stairs of Tirion upon Tъna, the green hill; but most of all
they sailed in their swift ships on the waters of the Bay of Elvenhome, or
walked in the waves upon the shore with their hair gleaming in the light beyond
the hill. Many jewels the Noldor gave them, opals and diamonds and pale
crystals, which they strewed upon the shores and scattered in the pools;
marvellous were the beaches of Elendл in those days. And many pearls they won
for themselves from the sea, and their halls were of pearl, and of pearl were
the mansions of Olwл at Alqualondл, the Haven of the Swans, lit with many
lamps. For that was their city, and the haven of their ships; and those were made
in the likeness of swans, with beaks of gold and eyes of gold and jet. The gate
of that harbour was an arch of living rock sea-carved; and it lay upon the
confines of Eldamar, north of the Calacirya, where the light of the stars was
bright and clear. As the ages passed the Vanyar grew to love
the land of the Valar and the full light of the Trees, and they forsook the
city of Tirion upon Tъna, and dwelt thereafter upon the mountain of Manwл, or
about the plains and woods of Valinor, and became sundered from the Noldor. But
the memory of Middle-earth under the stars remained in the hearts of the
Noldor, and they abode in the Calacirya, and in the hills and valleys within
sound of the western sea; and though many of them went often about the land of
the Valar, making far journeys in search of the secrets of land and water and
all living things, yet the peoples of Tъna and Alqualondл drew together in
those days. Finwл was king in Tirion and Olwл in Alqualondл; but Ingwл was ever
held the High King of all the Elves. He abode thereafter at the feet of Manwл
upon Taniquetil. Fлanor and his sons abode seldom in one
place for long, but travelled far and wide upon the confines of Valinor, going
even to the borders of the Dark and the cold shores of the Outer Sea, seeking
the unknown. Often they were guests in the halls of Aulл; but Celegorm went
rather to the house of Oromл, and there he got great knowledge of birds and
beasts, and all their tongues he knew. For all living things that are or have
been in the Kingdom of Arda, save only the fell and evil creatures of Melkor,
lived then in the land of Aman; and there also were many other creatures that
have not been seen upon Middle-earth, and perhaps never now shall be, since the
fashion of the world was changed. Chapter 6 Of Fлanor and the Unchaining of Melkor Now the Three
Kindreds of the Eldar were gathered at last in Valinor, and Melkor was chained.
This was the Noontide of the Blessed Realm, the fullness of its glory and its
bliss, long in tale of years, but in memory too brief. In those days the Eldar
became full-grown in stature of body and of mind, and the Noldor advanced ever
in skill and knowledge; and the long years were filled with their joyful
labours, in which many new things fair and wonderful were devised. Then it was
that the Noldor first bethought them of letters, and Rъmil of Tirion was the
name of the loremaster who first achieved fitting signs for the recording of
speech and song, some for graving upon metal or in stone, others for drawing
with brush or with pen. In that time was born in Eldamar, in the
house of the King in Tirion upon the crown of Tъna, the eldest of the sons of
Finwл, and the most beloved. Curufinwл was his name, but by his mother he was
called Fлanor, Spirit of Fire; and thus he is remembered in all the tales of
the Noldor. Mнriel was the name of his mother, who was
called Serindл, because of her surpassing skill in weaving and needlework; for
her hands were more skilled to fineness than any hands even among the Noldor.
The love of Finwл and Mнriel was great and glad, for it began in the Blessed
Realm in the Days of Bliss. But in the bearing of her son Mнriel was consumed
in spirit and body; and after his birth she yearned for release from the
labours of living. Ana when she had named mm, she said to Finwл: 'Never again
shall I bear child; for strength that would have nourished the life of many has
gone forth into Fлanor.' Then Finwл was grieved, for the Noldor were
in me youth of their days, and he desired to bring forth many children into the
Miss of Aman; and he said: 'Surely there is healing in Aman? Here all weariness
can find rest.' But when Mнriel languished still, Finwл sought the counsel of
Manwл, and Manwл delivered her to the care of Irmo in Lуrien. At their parting
(for a little while as he thought) Finwл was sad, for it seemed an unhappy
chance that the mother should depart and miss the beginning at least of the
childhood days of her son. ‘It is indeed unhappy,’ said Mнriel, 'and I
would weep, if I were not so weary. But hold me blameless in this, and in all
that may come after.’ She went then to the gardens of Lуrien and
lay down to sleep; but though she seemed to sleep, her spirit indeed departed
from her body, and passed in silence to the halls of Mandos. The maidens of Estл
tended the body of Mнriel, and it remained unwithered; but she did not return.
Then Finwл lived in sorrow; and he went often to the gardens of Lуrien, and
sitting beneath the silver willows beside the body of his wife he called her by
her names. But it was unavailing; and alone in all the Blessed Realm he was
deprived of joy. After a while he went to Lуrien no more. An his love he gave thereafter to his son;
and Fлanor grew swiftly, as if a secret fire were kindled within him. He was
tall, and fair of face, and masterful, his eyes piercingly bright and his hair
raven-dark; in the pursuit of all his purposes eager and steadfast. Few ever
changed his courses by counsel, none by force. He became of all the Noldor,
then or after, the most subtle in mind and the most skilled in hand. In his
youth, bettering the work of Rъmil, he devised those letters which bear his
name, and which the Eldar used ever after; and he it was who, first of the
Noldor, discovered how gems greater and brighter than those of the earth might
be made with skill. The first gems that Fлanor made were white and colourless,
but being set under starlight they would blaze with blue and silver fires
brighter than Helluin; and other crystals he made also, wherein things far away
could be seen small but clear, as with the eyes of the eagles of Manwл. Seldom
were the hands and mind of Fлanor at rest. While still in his early youth he wedded
Nerdanel, the daughter of a great smith named Mahtan, among those of the Noldor
most dear to Aulл; and of Mahtan he learned much of the making of things in
metal and in stone. Nerdanel also was firm of will, but more patient than
Fлanor, desiring to understand minds rather than to master them, and at first
she restrained him when the fire of his heart grew too hot; but his later deeds
grieved her, and they became estranged. Seven sons she bore to Fлanor; her mood
she bequeathed in part to some of them, but not to all. Now it came to pass that Finwл took as his
second wife Indis the Fair. She was a Vanya, close kin of Ingwл the High King,
golden-haired and tall, and in all ways unlike Mнriel. Finwл loved her greatly,
and was glad again. But the shadow of Mнriel did not depart from the house of
Finwл, nor from his heart; and of all whom he loved Fлanor had ever the chief
share of his thought. The wedding of his father was not pleasing
to Fлanor; and he had no great love for Indis, nor for Fingolfin and Finarfin,
her sons. He lived apart from them, exploring the land of Aman, or busying
himself with the knowledge and the crafts in which he delighted. In those
unhappy things which later came to pass, and in which Fлanor was the leader,
many saw the effect of this breach within the house of Finwл, judging that if
Finwл had endured his loss and been content with the fathering of his mighty
son, the courses of Fлanor would have been otherwise, and great evil might have
been prevented; for the sorrow and the strife in the house of Finwл is graven
in the memory of the Noldorin Elves. But the children of Indis were great and glorious,
and their children also; and if they had not lived the history of the Eldar
would have been diminished. Now even while Fлanor and the craftsmen of
the Noldor worked with delight, foreseeing no end to their labours, and while
the sons of Indis grew to their full stature, the Noontide of Valinor was
drawing to its close. For it came to pass that Melkor, as the Valar had
decreed, completed the term of his bondage, dwelling for three ages in the
duress of Mandos, alone. At length, as Manwл had promised, he was brought again
before the thrones of the Valar. Then he looked upon their glory and their
bliss, and envy was in his heart; he looked upon the Children of Ilъvatar that
sat at the feet of the Mighty, and hatred filled him; he looked upon the wealth
of bright gems, and he lusted for them; but he hid his thoughts, and postponed
his vengeance. Before the gates of Valmar Melkor abased
himself at the feet of Manwл and sued for pardon, vowing that if he might be
made only the least of the free people of Valinor he would aid the Valar in all
their works, and most of all in the healing of the many hurts that he had done
to the world. And Nienna aided his prayer; but Mandos was silent Then Manwл granted him pardon; but the Valar
would not yet suffer him to depart beyond their sight and vigilance, and he was
constrained to dwell within the gates of Valmar. But fair-seeming were all the
words and deeds of Melkor in that time, and both the Valar and the Eldar had
profit from his aid and counsel, if they sought it; and therefore in a while he
was given leave to go freely about the land, and it seemed to Manwл that the
evil of Melkor was cured. For Manwл was free from evil and could not comprehend
it, and he knew that in the beginning, in the thought of Ilъvatar, Melkor had
been even as he; and he saw not to the depths of Melkor’s heart, and did not
perceive that all love had departed from him for ever. But Ulmo was not
deceived, and Tulkas clenched his hands whenever he saw Melkor his foe go by;
for if Tulkas is slow to wrath he is slow also to forget. But they obeyed the
judgement of Manwл; for those who will defend authority against rebellion must
not themselves rebel. Now in his heart Melkor most hated the
Eldar, both because they were fair and joyful and because in them he saw the
reason for the arising of the Valar, and his own downfall. Therefore all the
more did he feign love for them and seek their friendship, and he offered them
the service of his lore and labour in any great deed that they would do. The
Vanyar indeed held him in suspicion, for they dwelt in the light of the Trees
and were content; and to the Teleri he gave small heed, thinking them of little
worth, tools too weak for his designs. But the Noldor took delight in the
hidden knowledge that he could reveal to them; and some hearkened to words that
it would have been better for them never to have heard. Melkor indeed declared
afterwards that Fлanor had learned much art from him in secret, and had been
instructed by him in the greatest of all his works; but he lied in his lust and
his envy, for none of the Eldaliл ever hated Melkor more than Fлanor son of
Finwл, who first named him Morgoth; and snared though he was in the webs of
Melkor's malice against the Valar he held no converse with him and took no
counsel from him. For Fлanor was driven by the fire of his own heart only,
working ever swiftly and alone; and he asked the aid and sought the counsel of
none that dwelt in Aman, great or small, save only and for a little while of
Nerdanel the wise, his wife. Chapter 7 Of the Silmarils and the Unrest of the
Noldor In that time were
made those things that afterwards were most renowned of all the works of the
Elves. For Fлanor, being come to his full might, was filled with a new thought,
or it may be that some shadow of foreknowledge came to him of the doom that drew
near; and he pondered how the light of the Trees, the glory of the Blessed
Realm, might be preserved imperishable. Then he began a long and secret labour,
and he summoned all his lore, and his power, and his subtle skill; and at the
end of all he made the Silmarils. As three great Jewels they were in form. But
not until the End, when Fлanor shall return who perished ere the Sun was made,
and sits now in the Halls of Awaiting and comes no more among his kin; not
until the Sun passes and the Moon falls, shall it be known of what substance
they were made. Like the crystal of diamonds it appeared, and yet was more
strong than adamant, so that no violence could mar it or break it within the
Kingdom of Arda. Yet that crystal was to the Silmarils but as is the body to
the Children of Ilъvatar: the house of its inner fire, that is within it and
yet in all parts of it, and is its life. And the inner fire of the Silmarils
Fлanor made of the blended light of the Trees of Valinor, which lives in them
yet, though the Trees have long withered and shine no more. Therefore even in
the darkness of the deepest treasury the Silmarils of their own radiance shone
like the stars of Varda; and yet, as were they indeed living things, they
rejoiced in light and received it and gave it
back in hues more marvellous than before. All who dwelt in Aman were filled with
wonder and delight at the work of Fлanor. And Varda hallowed the Silmarils, so
that thereafter no mortal flesh, nor hands unclean, nor anything of evil will
might touch them, but it was scorched and withered; and Mandos foretold that
the fates of Arda, earth, sea, and air, lay locked within them. The heart of
Fлanor was fast bound to these things that he himself had made. Then Melkor lusted for the Silmarils, and
the very memory of their radiance was a gnawing fire in his heart. From that
time forth, inflamed by this desire, he sought ever more eagerly how he should
destroy Fлanor and end the friendship of the Valar and the Elves; but he
dissembled his purposes with cunning, and nothing of his malice could yet be
seen in the semblance that he wore. Long was he at work, and slow at first and
barren was his labour. But he that sows lies in the end shall not lack of a harvest,
and soon he may rest from toil indeed while others reap and sow in his stead.
Ever Melkor found some ears that would heed him, and some tongues that would
enlarge what they had heard; and his lies passed from friend to friend, as
secrets of which the knowledge proves the teller wise. Bitterly did the Noldor
atone for the folly of their open ears in the days that followed after. When he saw that many leaned towards him,
Melkor would often walk among them, and amid his fair words others were woven,
so subtly that many who heard them believed in recollection that they arose
from their own thought. Visions he would conjure in their hearts of the mighty
realms that they could have ruled at their own will, in power and freedom in
the East; and then whispers went abroad that the Valar had brought the Eldar to
Aman because of their jealousy, fearing that the beauty of the Quendi and the
makers' power that Ilъvatar had bequeathed to them would grow too great for the
Valar to govern, as the Elves waxed and spread over the wide lands of the
world. In those days, moreover, though the Valar
knew indeed of the coming of Men that were to be, the Elves as yet knew naught
of it; for Manwл had not revealed it to them. Bat Melkor spoke to them in
secret of Mortal Men, seeing how the silence of the Valar might be twisted to
evil. Little he knew yet concerning Men, for engrossed with his own thought in
the Music he had paid small heed to the Third Theme of Ilъvatar; but now the
whisper went among the Elves that Manwл held them captive, so that Men might
come and supplant them in the kingdoms of Middle-earth, for the Valar saw that
they might more easily sway this short-lived and weaker race, defrauding the
Elves of the inheritance of Ilъvatar. Small truth was there in this, and little
have the Valar ever prevailed to sway the wills of Men; but many of the Noldor
believed, or half believed, the evil words. Thus ere the Valar were aware, the peace of
Valinor was poisoned. The Noldor began to murmur against them, and many became filled
with pride, forgetting how much of what they had and knew came to them in gift
from the Valar. Fiercest burned the new flame of desire for freedom and wider
realms in the eager heart of Fлanor; and Melkor laughed in his secrecy, for to
that mark his lies had been addressed, hating Fлanor above all, and lusting
ever for the Silmarils. But these he was not suffered to approach; for though
at great feasts Fлanor would wear them, blazing on his brow, at other times
they were guarded close, locked in the deep chambers of his hoard in Tirion.
For Fлanor began to love the Silmarils with a greedy love, and grudged the
sight of them to all save to his father and his seven sons; he seldom
remembered now that the light within them was not his own. High princes were Fлanor and Fingolfin, the
elder sons of Finwл, honoured by all in Aman; but now they grew proud and
jealous each of his rights and his possessions. Then Melkor set new lies abroad
in Eldamar, and whispers came to Fлanor that Fingolfin and his sons were
plotting to usurp the leadership of Finwл and of the elder line of Fлanor, and
to supplant them by the leave of the Valar; for the Valar were ill-pleased that
the Silmarils lay in Tirion and were not committed to their keeping. But to
Fingolfin and Finarfin it was said: 'Beware! Small love has the proud son of
Mнriel ever had for the children of Indis. Now he has become great, and he has
his father in his hand. It will not be long before he drives you forth from
Tъna!' And when Melkor saw that these lies were
smouldering, and that pride and anger were awake among the Noldor, he spoke to
them concerning weapons; and in that time the Noldor began the smithying of
swords and axes and spears. Shields also they made displaying the tokens of
many houses and kindreds that vied one with another; and these only they wore
abroad, and of other weapons they did not speak, for each believed that he
alone had received the warning. And Fлanor made a secret forge, of which not
even Melkor was aware; and there he tempered fell swords for himself and for
his sons, and made tall helms with plumes of red. Bitterly did Mahtan rue the
day when he taught to the husband of Nerdanel all the lore of metalwork that he
had learned of Aulл. Thus with lies and evil whisperings and
false counsel Melkor kindled the hearts of the Noldor to strife; and of their
quarrels came at length the end of the high days of Valinor and the evening of
its ancient glory. For Fлanor now began openly to speak words of rebellion
against the Valar, crying aloud that he would depart from Valinor back to the
world without, and would deliver the Noldor from thraldom, if they would follow
him. Then there was great unrest in Tirion, and
Finwл was troubled; and he summoned all his lords to council. But Fingolfin
hastened to his halls and stood before him, saying: 'King and father, wilt thou
not restrain the pride of our brother, Curufinwл, who is called the Spirit of
Fire, all too truly? By what right does he speak for all our people, as if he
were King? Thou it was who long ago spoke before the Quendi, bidding them
accept the summons of the Valar to Aman. Thou it was that led the Noldor upon
the long road through the perils of Middle-earth to the light of Eldamar. If
thou dost not now repent of it, two sons at least thou hast to honour thy
words.' But even as Fingolfin spoke, Fлanor strode
into the chamber, and he was fully armed: his high helm upon his head, and at
his side a mighty sword. 'So it is, even as I guessed,' he said. 'My
half-brother would be before me with my father, in this as in all other
matters.' Then turning upon Fingolfin he drew his sword, crying: 'Get thee gone, and take thy due place!' Fingolfin bowed before Finwл, and without
word or glance to Fлanor he went from the chamber. But Fлanor followed him, and
at the door of the king's house he stayed him; and the point of his bright
sword he set against Fingolfin's breast 'See, half-brother!' he said. 'This is
sharper than thy tongue. Try but once more to usurp my place and the love of my
father, and maybe it will rid the Noldor of one who seeks to be the master of
thralls.' These words were heard by many, for the
house of Finwл was in the great square beneath the Mindon; but again Fingolfin
made no answer, and passing through the throng in silence he went to seek
Finarfin his brother. Now the unrest of the Noldor was not indeed
hidden from the Valar, but its seed had been sown in the dark; and therefore,
since Fлanor first spoke openly against them, they judged that he was the mover
of discontent, being eminent in self-will and arrogance, though all the Noldor
had become proud. And Manwл was grieved, but he watched and said no word. The
Valar had brought the Eldar to their land freely, to dwell or to depart; and
though they might judge departure to be folly, they might not restrain them
from it. But now the deeds of Fлanor could not be passed over, and the Valar
were angered and dismayed; and he was summoned to appear before them at the
gates of Valmar, to answer for all his words and deeds. There also were
summoned all others who had any part in this matter, or any knowledge of it;
and Fлanor standing before Mandos in the Ring of Doom was commanded to answer
all that was asked of him. Then at last the root was laid bare, and the malice
of Melkor revealed; and straightway Tulkas left the council to lay hands upon
him and bring him again to judgement. But Fлanor was not held guiltless, for he
it was that had broken the peace of Valinor and drawn his sword upon his
kinsman; and Mandos said to him: 'Thou speakest of thraldom. If thraldom it be,
thou canst not escape it; for Manwл is King of Arda, and not of Aman only. And
this deed was unlawful, whether in Aman or not in Aman. Therefore this doom is
now made: for twelve years thou shall leave Tirion where this threat was
uttered. In that time take counsel with thyself, and remember who and what thou
art. But after that time this matter shall be set in peace and held redressed,
if others will release thee.' Then Fingolfin said: 'I will release my
brother.' But Fлanor spoke no word in answer, standing silent before the Valar.
Then he turned and left the council, and departed from Valmar. With him into banishment went his seven
sons, and northward in Valinor they made a strong place and treasury in the
hills; and there at Formenos a multitude of gems were laid in hoard, and
weapons also, and the Silmarils were shut in a chamber of iron. Thither also
came Finwл the King, because of the love that he bore to Fлanor; and Fingolfin
ruled the Noldor in Tirion. Thus the lies of Melkor were made true in seeming,
though Fлanor by his own deeds had brought this thing to pass; and the
bitterness that Melkor had sown endured, and lived still long afterwards
between the sons of Fingolfin and Fлanor. Now Melkor, knowing that his devices had
been revealed, hid himself and passed from place to place as a cloud in the
hills; and Tulkas sought for him in vain. Then it seemed to the people of
Valinor that the light of the Trees was dimmed, and the shadows of all standing
things grew longer and darker in that time. It is told that for a time Melkor was not
seen again in Valinor, nor was any rumour heard of him, until suddenly he came
to Formenos, and spoke with Fлanor before his doors. Friendship he feigned with
cunning argument, urging him to his former thought of flight from the trammels
of the Valar; and he said: 'Behold the truth of all that I have spoken, and how
thou art banished unjustly. But if the heart of Fлanor is yet free and bold as
were his words in Tirion, then I will aid him, and bring him far from this
narrow land. For am I not Vala also? Yea, and more than those who sit in pride
in Valimar; and I have ever been a friend to the Noldor, most skilled and most
valiant of the people of Arda.' Now Fлanor's heart was still bitter at his
humiliation before Mandos, and he looked at Melkor in silence, pondering if
indeed he might yet trust him so far as to aid him in his flight. And Melkor,
seeing that Fлanor wavered, and knowing that the Silmarils held his heart in
thrall, said at the last: 'Here is a strong place, and well guarded; but think
not that the Silmarils will lie safe in any treasury within the realm of the
Valar!' But his cunning overreached his aim; his
words touched too deep, and awoke a fire more fierce than he designed; and
Fлanor looked upon Melkor with eyes that burned through his fair semblance and
pierced the cloaks of his mind, perceiving there his fierce lust for the
Silmarils. Then hate overcame Fлanor's fear, and he cursed Melkor and bade him
be gone, saying: 'Get thee gone from my gate, thou jail-crow of Mandos!' And he
shut the doors of his house in the face of the mightiest of all the dwellers in
Eд. Then Melkor departed in shame, for he was
himself in peril, and he saw not his time yet for revenge; but his heart was
black with anger. And Finwл was filled with great fear, and in haste he sent
messengers to Manwл in Valmar. Now the Valar were sitting in council before
their gates, fearing the lengthening of the shadows, when the messengers came
from Formenos. At once Oromл and Tulkas sprang up, but even as they set out in
pursuit messengers came from Eldamar, telling that Melkor had fled through the
Calacirya, and from the hill of Tъna the Elves had seen him pass in wrath as a
thundercloud. And they said that thence he had turned northward, for the Teleri
in Alqualondл had seen his shadow going by their haven towards Araman. Thus Melkor departed from Valinor, and for a
while the Two Trees shone again unshadowed, and the land was filled with light.
But the Valar sought in vain for tidings of their enemy; and as a cloud far off
that looms ever higher, borne upon a slow cold wind, a doubt now marred the joy
of all the dwellers in Aman, dreading they knew not what evil that yet might
come. Chapter 8 Of the Darkening of Valinor When Manwл heard of
the ways that Melkor had taken, it seemed plain to him that he purposed to
escape to his old strongholds in the north of Middle-earth; and Oromл and
Tulkas went with all speed northward, seeking to overtake him if they might, but
they found no trace or rumour of him beyond the shores of the Teleri, in the
unpeopled wastes that drew near to the Ice. Thereafter the watch was redoubled
along the northern fences of Aman; but to no purpose, for ere ever the pursuit
set out Melkor had turned back, and in secrecy passed away far to the south.
For he was yet as one of the Valar, and could change his form, or walk unclad,
as could his brethren; though that power he was soon to lose for ever. Thus unseen he came at last to the dark
region of Avathar. That narrow land lay south of the Bay of Eldamar, beneath
the eastern feet of the Pelуri, and its long and mournful shores stretched away
into the south, lightless and unexplored. There, beneath the sheer walls of the
mountains and the cold dark sea, the shadows were deepest and thickest in the
world; and there in Avathar, secret and unknown, Ungoliant had made her abode.
The Eldar knew not whence she came; but some have said that in ages long before
she descended from the darkness that lies about Arda, when Melkor first looked
down in envy upon the Kingdom of Manwл, and that in the beginning she was one
of those that he corrupted to his service. But she had disowned her Master,
desiring to be mistress of her own lust, taking all things to herself to feed
her emptiness; and she fled to the south, escaping the assaults of the Valar
and the hunters of Oromл, for their vigilance had ever been to the north, and
the south was long unheeded. Thence she had crept towards the light of the
Blessed Realm; for she hungered for
light and hated it. In a ravine she lived, and took shape as a
spider of monstrous form, weaving her black webs in a cleft of the mountains.
There she sucked up all light that she could find, and spun it forth again in
dark nets of strangling gloom, until no light more could come to her abode; and
she was famished. Now Melkor came to Avathar and sought her
out; and he put on again the form that he had worn as the tyrant of Utumno: a
dark Lord, tall and terrible. In that form he remained ever after. There in the
black shadows, beyond the sight even of Manwл in his highest halls, Melkor with
Ungoliant plotted his revenge. But when Ungoliant understood the purpose of
Melkor, she was torn between lust and great fear; for she was loath to dare the
perils of Aman and the power of the dreadful Lords, and she would not stir from
her hiding. Therefore Melkor said to her: 'Do as I bid; and if thou hunger
still when all is done, then I will give thee whatsoever thy lust may demand.
Yea, with both hands.' Lightly he made this vow, as he ever did; and he laughed
in his heart. Thus did the great thief set his lure for the lesser. A cloak of darkness she wove about them when
Melkor and Ungoliant set forth; an Unlight, in which things seemed to be no
more, and which eyes could not pierce, for it was void. Then slowly she wrought
her webs: rope by rope from cleft to cleft, from jutting rock to pinnacle of
stone, ever climbing upwards, crawling and clinging, until at last she reached
the very summit of Hyarmentir, the highest mountain in that region of the
world, far south of great Taniquetil. There the Valar were not vigilant; for
west of the Pelуri was an empty land in twilight, and eastward the mountains
looked out, save for forgotten Avathar, only upon the dim waters of the
pathless sea. But now upon the mountain-top dark Ungoliant lay; and she made a
ladder of woven ropes and cast it down, and Melkor climbed upon it and came to
that high place, and stood beside her, looking down upon the Guarded Realm. Below
them lay the woods of Oromл, and westward shimmered the fields and pastures of
Yavanna, gold beneath the tall wheat of the gods. Bat Melkor looked north, and
saw afar the shining plain, and the silver domes of Valmar gleaming in the
mingling of the lights of Telperion and Laurelin. Then Melkor laughed aloud,
and leapt swiftly down the long western slopes; and Ungoliant was at his side,
and her darkness covered them. Now it was a time of festival, as Melkor
knew well. Though all tides and seasons were at the will of the Valar, and in
Valinor there was no winter of death, nonetheless they dwelt then in the
Kingdom of Arda, and that was but a small realm in the halls of Eд, whose life
is Time, which flows ever from the first note to the last chord of Eru. And
even as it was then the delight of the Valar (as is told in the Ainulindalл) to clothe themselves as in
a vesture in the forms of the Children of Ilъvatar, so also did they eat and
drink, and gather the fruits of Yavanna from the Earth, which under Eru they
had made. Therefore Yavanna set times for the
flowering and the ripening of all things mat grew in Valinor; and at each first
gathering of fruits Manwл made a high feast for the praising of Eru, when all
the peoples of Valinor poured forth their joy in music and song upon
Taniquetil. This now was the hour, and Manwл decreed a feast more glorious than
any that had been held since the coming of the Eldar to Aman. For though the
escape of Melkor portended toils and sorrows to come, and indeed none could tell
what further hurts would be done to Arda ere he could be subdued again, at this
time Manwл designed to heal the evil that had arisen among the Noldor; and all
were bidden to come to his halls upon Taniquetil, there to put aside the griefs
that lay between their princes, and forget utterly the lies of their Enemy.
There came the Vanyar, and there came the Noldor of Tirion, and the Maiar were
gathered together, and the Valar were arrayed in their beauty and majesty; and
they sang before Manwл and Varda in their lofty halls, or danced upon the green
slopes of the Mountain that looked west towards the Trees. In that day the
streets of Valmar were empty, and the stairs of Tirion were silent; and all the
land lay sleeping in peace. Only the Teleri beyond the mountains still sang
upon the shores of the sea; for they
recked little of seasons or times, and gave no thought to the cares of the
Rulers of Arda, or the shadow that had fallen on Valinor, for it had not
touched them, as yet. One thing only marred the design of Manwл.
Fлanor came indeed, for him alone Manwл had commanded to come; but Finwл came
not, nor any others of the Noldor of Formenos. For said Finwл: 'While the ban
lasts upon Fлanor my son, that he may not go to Tirion, I hold myself unkinged,
and I will not meet my people.' And Fлanor came not in raiment of festival, and
he wore no ornament, neither silver nor gold nor any gem; and he denied the
sight of the Silmarils to the Valar and the Eldar, and left them locked in
Formenos in their chamber of iron. Nevertheless he met Fingolfin before the
throne of Manwл, and was reconciled, in word; and Fingolfin set at naught the
unsheathing of the sword. For Fingolfin held forth his hand, saying: 'As I
promised, I do now. I release thee, and remember no grievance.' Then Fлanor took his hand in silence; but
Fingolfin said: 'Half-brother in blood, full brother in heart will I be. Thou
shalt lead and I will follow. May no new grief divide as.' 'I hear thee,' said Fлanor. 'So be it.' But
they did not know the meaning that their words would bear. It is told that even as Fлanor and Fingolfin
stood before Manwл there came the mingling of the lights, when both Trees were
shining, and the silent city of Valmar was filled with a radiance of silver and
gold. And in that very hour Melkor and Ungoliant came hastening over the fields
of Valinor, as the shadow of a black cloud upon the wind fleets over the sunlit
earth; and they came before the green mound Ezellohar. Then the Unlight of
Ungoliant rose up even to the roots of the Trees, and Melkor sprang upon the
mound; and with his black spear he smote each Tree to its core, wounded them
deep, and their sap poured forth as it were their blood, and was spilled upon
the ground. But Ungoliant sucked it up, and going then from Tree to Tree she
set her black beak to their wounds, till they were drained; and the poison of
Death that was in her went into their tissues and withered them, root, branch,
and leaf; and they died. And still she thirsted, and going to the Wells of
Varda she drank them dry; but Ungoliant belched forth black vapours as she
drank, and swelled to a shape so vast and hideous that Melkor was afraid. So the great darkness fell upon Valinor. Of
the deeds of that day much is told in the Aldudйniл,
that Elemmнrл of the Vanyar made and is known to all the Eldar. Yet no song or
tale could contain all the grief and terror that then befell. The Light failed;
but the Darkness that followed was more than loss of light. In that hour was
made a Darkness that seemed not lack but a thing with being of its own: for it
was indeed made by malice out of Light, and it had power to pierce the eye, and
to enter heart and mind, and strangle the very will. Varda looked down from Taniquetil, and
beheld the Shadow soaring up in sudden towers of gloom; Valmar had foundered in
a deep sea of night. Soon the Holy Mountain stood alone, a last island in a
world that was drowned. All song ceased. There was silence in Valinor, and no
sound could be heard, save only from afar there came on the wind through the
pass of the mountains the wailing of the Teleri like the cold cry of gulls. For
it blew chill from the East in that hour, and the vast shadows of the sea were
rolled against the walls of the shore. But
Manwл from his high seat looked out, and his eyes alone pierced through the
night, until they saw a Darkness beyond dark which they could not penetrate,
huge but far away, moving now northward with great speed; and he knew that
Melkor had come and gone. Then the pursuit was begun; and the earth
shook beneath the horses of the host of Oromл, and the fire that was stricken
from the hooves of Nahar was the first light that returned to Valinor. But so
soon as any came up with the Cloud of Ungoliant the riders of the Valar were
blinded and dismayed, and they were scattered, and went they knew not whither;
and the sound of the Valarуma faltered and failed. And Tulkas was as one caught
in a black net at night, and he stood powerless and beat the air in vain. But
when the Darkness had passed, it was too late: Melkor had gone whither he
would, and his vengeance was achieved. Chapter 9 Of the Flight of the Noldor After a time a great
concourse gathered about the Ring of Doom; and the Valar sat in shadow, for it
was night. But the stars of Varda now glimmered overhead, and the air was
clear; for the winds of Manwл has driven away the vapours of death
and rolled back the shadows of the sea. Then Yavanna arose and stood upon
Ezellohar, the Green Mound, but it was bare now and black; and she laid her
hands upon the Trees, but they were dead and dark, and each branch that she
touched broke and fell lifeless at her feet. Then many voices were lifted in
lamentation; and it seemed to those that mourned that they had drained to the
dregs the cup of woe that Melkor had filled for them. But it was not so. Yavanna spoke before the Valar, saying:
"The Light of the Trees has passed away, and lives now only in the
Silmarils of Fлanor. Foresighted was he! Even for those who are mightiest under
Ilъvatar there is some work that they may accomplish once, and once only. The
Light of the Trees I brought into being, and within Eд I can do so never again.
Yet had I but a little of that light I could recall life to the Trees, ere
their roots decay; and then our hurt should be healed, and the malice of Melkor
be confounded.' Then Manwл spoke and said: 'Hearest thou,
Fлanor son of Finwл, the words of Yavanna? Wilt thou grant what she would ask?' There was long silence, but Fлanor answered
no word. Then Tulkas cried: 'Speak, O Noldo, yea or nay! But who shall deny
Yavanna? And did not the light of the Silmarils come from her work in the
beginning?' But Aulл the Maker said: 'Be not hasty! We
ask a greater thing than thou knowest. Let him have peace yet awhile.' But Fлanor spoke then, and cried bitterly:
'For the less even as for the greater there is some deed that he may accomplish
but once only; and in that deed his heart shall rest. It may be that I can
unlock my jewels, but never again shall I make their like; and if I must break
them, I shall break my heart, and I shall be slain; first of all the Eldar in
Aman.' 'Not the first,' said Mandos, but they did
not understand his word; and again there was silence, while Fлanor brooded in
the dark. It seemed to him that he was beset in a ring of enemies, and the
words of Melkor returned to him, saying that the Silmarils were not safe, if
the Valar would possess them. 'And is he not Vala as are they,' said his
thought, 'and does he not understand their hearts? Yea, a thief shall reveal
thieves!' Then he cried aloud: 'This thing I will not do of free will. But if
the Valar will constrain me, then shall I know indeed that Melkor is of their
kindred.' Then Mandos said: 'Thou hast spoken.' And
Nienna arose and went up onto Ezellohar, and cast back her grey hood, and with
her tears washed away the defilements of Ungoliant; and she sang in mourning
for the bitterness of the world and the Marring of Arda. But even as Nienna mourned, there came
messengers from Formenos, and they were Noldor and bore new tidings of evil.
For they told how a blind Darkness came northward, and in the midst walked some
power for which there was no name, and the Darkness issued from it. But Melkor
also was there, and he came to the house of Fлanor, and there he slew Finwл
King of the Noldor before his doors, and spilled the first blood in the Blessed
Realm; for Finwл alone had not fled from the horror of the Dark. And they told
that Melkor had broken the stronghold of Formenos, and taken all the Jewels of
the Noldor that were hoarded in that place; and the Silmarils were gone. Then Fлanor rose, and lifting up his hand
before Manwл he cursed Melkor, naming him Morgoth, the Black Foe of the World;
and by that name only was he known to the Eldar ever after. And he cursed also
the summons of Manwл and the hour in which he came to Taniquetil, thinking in
the madness of his rage and grief that had he been at Formenos his strength
would have availed more than to be slain also, as Melkor had purposed. Then
Fлanor ran from the Ring of Doom, and fled into the night; for his father was
dearer to him than the Light of Valinor or the peerless works of his hands; and
who among sons, of Elves or of Men, have held their fathers of greater worth? Many there grieved for the anguish of
Fлanor, but his loss was not his alone; and Yavanna wept by the mound, in fear
that the Darkness should swallow the last rays of the Light of Valinor for
ever. For though the Valar did not yet understand fully what had befallen, they
perceived that Melkor had called upon some aid that came from beyond Arda. The
Silmarils had passed away, and all one it may seem whether Fлanor had said yea
or nay to Yavanna; yet had he said yea at the first, before the tidings came
from Formenos, it may be that his after deeds would have been other than they
were. But now the doom of the Noldor drew near. Meanwhile Morgoth escaping from the pursuit
of the Valar came to the wastes of Araman. This land lay northward between the
Mountains of the Pelуri and the Great Sea, as Avathar lay to the south; but
Araman was a wider land, and between the shores and the mountains were barren
plains, ever colder as the Ice drew nearer. Through this region Morgoth and
Ungoliant passed in haste, and so came through the great mists of Oiomъrл to
the Helcaraxл, where the strait between Araman and Middle-earth was filled with
grinding ice; and he crossed over, and came back at last to the north of the
Outer Lands. Together they went on, for Morgoth could not elude Ungoliant, and
her cloud was still about him, and all her eyes were upon him; and they came to
those lands that lay north of the Firth of Drengist. Now Morgoth was drawing
near to the ruins of Angband, where his great western stronghold had been; and
Ungoliant perceived his hope, and knew that here he would seek to escape from
her, and she stayed him, demanding that he fulfil his promise. 'Blackheart!' she said. 'I have done thy
bidding. But I hunger still.' 'What wouldst thou have more?' said Morgoth.
'Dost thou desire all the world for thy belly? I did not vow to give thee that.
I am its Lord.' 'Not so much,' said Ungoliant. 'But thou
hast a great treasure from Formenos; I will have all that. Yea, with both hands
thou shalt give it'. Then perforce Morgoth surrendered to her the
gems that he bore with him, one by one and grudgingly; and she devoured them,
and their beauty perished from the world. Huger and darker yet grew Ungoliant,
but her lust was unsated. 'With one hand thou givest,' she said; 'with the left
only. Open thy right hand.' In his right hand Morgoth held close the
Silmarils, and though they were locked in a crystal casket, they had begun to
bum him, and his hand was clenched in pain; but he would not open it 'Nay!' he
said. 'Thou hast had thy doe. For with my power that I put into thee thy work was
accomplished. I need thee no more.
These things thou shalt not have, nor see. I name them unto myself for ever. ' But Ungoliant had grown great, and he less
by the power that had gone out of him; and she rose against him, and her cloud
closed about him, and she enmeshed him in a web of clinging thongs to strangle
him. Then Morgoth sent forth a terrible cry, that echoed in the mountains.
Therefore that region was called Lammoth; for the echoes of his voice dwelt
there ever after, so that any who cried aloud in that land awoke them, and all
the waste between the hills and the sea was filled with a clamour as of voices
in anguish. The cry of Morgoth in that hour was the greatest and most dreadful
that was ever heard in the northern world; the mountains shook, and the earth
trembled, and rocks were riven asunder. Deep in forgotten places that cry was
heard. Far beneath the rained halls of Angband, in vaults to which the Valar in
the haste of their assault had not descended, Balrogs lurked still, awaiting
ever the return of their Lord; and now swiftly they arose, and passing over
Hithlum they came to Lammoth as a tempest of fire. With their whips of flame
they smote asunder the webs of Ungoliant, and she quailed, and turned to
flight, belching black vapours to cover her; and fleeing from the north she
went down into Beleriand, and dwelt beneath Ered Gorgoroth, in that dark valley
that was after called Nan Dungortheb, the Valley of Dreadful Death, because of
the horror that she bred there. For other foul creatures of spider form had
dwelt there since the days of the delving of Angband, and she mated with them,
and devoured them; and even after Ungoliant herself departed, and went whither
she would into the forgotten south of the world, her offspring abode there and
wove their hideous webs. Of the fate of Ungoliant no tale tells. Yet some have
said that she ended long ago, when in her uttermost famine she devoured herself
at last. And thus the fear of Yavanna that the
Silmarils would be swallowed up and fall into nothingness did not come to pass;
but they remained in the power of Morgoth. And he being freed gathered again
all his servants that he could find, and came to the ruins of Angband. There he
delved anew his vast vaults and dungeons, and above their gates he reared the
threefold peaks of Thangorodrim, and a great reek of dark smoke was ever
wreathed about them. There countless became the hosts of his beasts and his
demons, and the race of the Orcs, bred long before, grew and multiplied in the
bowels of the earth. Dark now fell the shadow on Beleriand, as is told
hereafter, but in Angband Morgoth forged for himself a great crown of iron, and
he called himself King of the World. In token of this he set the Silmarils in
his crown. His hands were burned black by the touch of those hallowed jewels,
and black they remained ever after; nor was he ever free from the pain of the
burning, and the anger of the pain. That crown he never took from his head,
though its weight became a deadly weariness. Never but once only did he depart
for a while secretly from his domain in the North; seldom indeed did he leave
the deep places of his fortress, but governed his armies from his northern
throne. And once only also did he himself wield weapon, while his realm lasted. For now, more than in the days of Utumno ere
his pride was humbled, his hatred devoured him, and in the domination of his
servants and the inspiring of them with lust of evil he spent his spirit.
Nonetheless his majesty as one of the Valar long remained, though turned to
terror, and before his face all save the mightiest sank into a dark pit of
fear. Now when it was known that Morgoth had
escaped from Valinor and pursuit was unavailing, the Valar remained long seated
in darkness in the Ring of Doom, and the Maiar and the Vanyar stood beside them
and wept; but the Noldor for the most part returned to Tirion and mourned for
the darkening of their fair city. Through the dim ravine of the Calacirya fogs
drifted in from the shadowy seas and mantled its towers, and the lamp of the
Mindon burned pale in the gloom. Then suddenly Fлanor appeared in the city
and called on all to come to the high court of the King upon the summit of
Tъna; but the doom of banishment that had been laid upon him was not yet
lifted, and he rebelled against the Valar. A great multitude gathered swiftly,
therefore, to hear what he would say; and the hill and an the stairs and
streets that climbed upon it were lit with the light of many torches that each
one bore in hand. Fлanor was a master of words, and his tongue had great power
over hearts when he would use it; and that night he made a speech before the
Noldor which they ever remembered. Fierce and few were his words, and filled
with anger and pride; and hearing them the Noldor were stirred to madness. His
wrath and his hate were given most to Morgoth, and yet well nigh all that he
said came from the very lies of Morgoth himself; but he was distraught with
grief for the slaying of his father, and with anguish for the rape of the
Silmarils. He claimed now the kingship of all the Noldor, since Finwл was dead,
and he scorned the decrees of the Valar. 'Why, O people of the Noldor,' he cried,
'why should we longer serve the jealous Valar, who cannot keep us nor even
their own realm secure from their Enemy? And though he be now their foe, are
not they and he of one kin? Vengeance calls me hence, but even were it
otherwise I would not dwell longer in the same land with the kin of my father's
slayer and of the thief of my treasure. Yet I am not the only valiant in this
valiant people. And have ye not all lost your King? And what else have ye not
lost, cooped here in a narrow land between the mountains and the sea? 'Here once was light, that the Valar
begrudged to Middle-earth, but now dark levels all. Shall we mourn here
deedless for ever, a shadow-folk, mist-haunting, dropping vain tears in the
thankless sea? Or shall we return to our home? In Cuiviйnen sweet ran the
waters under unclouded stars, and wide lands lay about, where a free people
might walk. There they lie still and await us who in our folly forsook them.
Come away! Let the cowards keep this city!' Long he spoke, and ever he urged the Noldor
to follow him and by their own prowess to win freedom and great realms in the
lands of the East, before it was too late; for he echoed the lies of Melkor,
that the Valar had cozened them and would hold them captive so that Men might
rule in Middle-earth. Many of the Eldar heard then for the first time of the
Aftercomers. 'Fair shall the end be,' he cried, though long and hard shall be
the road! Say farewell to bondage! But say farewell also to ease! Say farewell
to the weak! Say farewell to your treasures! More still shall we make. Journey
light: but bring with you your swords! For we will go further than Oromл, endure
longer than Tulkas: we will never turn back from pursuit. After Morgoth to the
ends of the Earth! War shall he have and hatred undying. But when we have
conquered and have regained the Silmarils, then we and we alone shall be lords
of the unsullied Light, and masters of the bliss and beauty of Arda. No other
race shall oust us!' Then Fлanor swore a terrible oath. His seven
sons leapt straightway to his side and took the selfsame vow together, and red
as blood shone their drawn swords in the glare of the torches. They swore an
oath which none shall break, and none should take, by the name even of
Ilъvatar, calling the Everlasting Dark upon them if they kept it not; and Manwл
they named in witness, and Varda, and the hallowed mountain of Taniquetil,
vowing to pursue with vengeance and hatred to the ends of the World Vala,
Demon, Elf or Man as yet unborn, or any creature, great or small, good or evil,
that time should bring forth unto the end of days, whoso should hold or take or
keep a Silmaril from their possession. Thus spoke Maedhros and Maglor and Celegorm,
Curufin and Caranthir, Amrod and Amras, princes of the Noldor; and many quailed
to hear the dread words. For so sworn, good or evil, an oath may not be broken,
and it shall pursue oathkeeper and oathbreaker to the world's end. Fingolfin
and Turgon his son therefore spoke against Fлanor, and fierce words awoke, so
that once again wrath came near to the edge of swords. But Finarfin spoke
softly, as was his wont, and sought to calm the Noldor, persuading them to
pause and ponder ere deeds were done that could not be undone; and Orodreth,
alone of his sons, spoke in like manner. Finrod was with Turgon, his friend;
but Galadriel, the only woman of the Noldor to stand that day tall and valiant
among the contending princes, was eager to be gone. No oaths she swore, but the
words of Fлanor concerning Middle-earth had kindled in her heart, for she
yearned to see the wide unguarded lands and to rule there a realm at her own
will. Of like mind with Galadriel was Fingon Fingolfin's son, being moved also
by Fлanor’s words, though he loved him little; and with Fingon stood as they
ever did Angrod and Aegnor, sons of Finarfin. But these held their peace and
spoke not against their fathers. At length after long debate Fлanor
prevailed, and the greater part of the Noldor there assembled he set aflame
with the desire of new things and strange countries. Therefore when Finarfin
spoke yet again for heed and delay, a great shout went up: 'Nay, let us be
gone!' And straightway Fлanor and his sons began to prepare for the marching
forth. Little foresight could there be for those
who dared to take so dark a road. Yet all was done in over-haste; for Fлanor
drove them on, fearing lest in the cooling of their hearts his words should
wane and other counsels yet prevail; and for all his proud words he did not
forget the power of the Valar. But from Valmar no message came, and Manwл was
silent. He would not yet either forbid or hinder Fлanor's purpose; for the
Valar were aggrieved that they were charged with evil intent to the Eldar, or
that any were held captive by them against their will. Now they watched and
waited, for they did not yet believe that Fлanor could hold the host of the
Noldor to his will. And indeed when Fлanor began the marshalling
of the Noldor for their setting-out, then at once dissension arose. For though
he had brought the assembly in a mind to depart, by no means all were of a mind
to take Fлanor as King. Greater love was given to Fingolfin and his sons, and
his household and the most part of the dwellers in Tirion refused to renounce
him, if he would go with them; and thus at the last as two divided hosts the
Noldor set forth upon their bitter road. Fлanor and his following were in the
van, but the greater host came behind under Fingolfin; and he marched against
his wisdom, because Fingon his son so urged him, and because he would not be
sundered from his people that were eager to go, nor leave them to the rash
counsels of Fлanor. Nor did he forget his words before the throne of Manwл.
With Fingolfin went Finarfin also and for like reasons; but most loath was he
to depart. And of all the Noldor in Valinor, who were grown now to a great
people, but one tithe refused to take the road: some for the love that they
bore to the Valar (and to Aulл not least), some for the love of Tirion and the
many things that they had made; none for fear of peril by the way. But even as the trumpet sang and Fлanor
issued from the gates of Tirion a messenger came at last from Manwл, saying:
'Against the folly of Fлanor shall be set my counsel only. Go not forth! For
the hour is evil, and your road leads to sorrow that ye do not foresee. No aid
will the Valar lend you in this quest; but neither will they hinder you; for
this ye shall know: as ye came hither freely, freely shall ye depart. But thou
Fлanor Finwл's son, by thine oath art exiled. The lies of Melkor thou shalt
unlearn in bitterness. Vala he is, thou saist Then thou hast sworn in vain, for
none of the Valar canst thou overcome now or ever within the halls of Eд, not
though Eru whom thou namest had made thee thrice greater than thou art.' But Fлanor laughed, and spoke not to the
herald, but to the Noldor, saying: 'So! Then will this valiant people send
forth the heir of their King alone into banishment with his sons only, and
return to their bondage? But if any will come with me, I say to them: Is sorrow
foreboded to you? But in Aman we have seen it. In Aman we have come through
bliss to woe. The other now we will try: through sorrow to find joy; or
freedom, at the least.' Then turning to the herald he cried: 'Say
this to Manwл Sъlimo, High King of Arda: if Fлanor cannot overthrow Morgoth, at
least he delays not to assail him, and sits not idle in grief. And it may be
that Eru has set in me a fire greater than thou knowest. Such hurt at the least
will I do to the Foe of the Valar that even the mighty in the Ring of Doom
shall wonder to hear it. Yea, in the end they shall follow me. Farewell!' In that hour the voice of Fлanor grew so
great and so potent that even the herald of the Valar bowed before him as one
full-answered, and departed; and the Noldor were over-ruled. Therefore they
continued their march; and the House of Fлanor hastened before them along the
coasts of Elendл: not once did they turn their eyes back to Tirion on the green
hill of Tъna. Slower and less eagerly came the host of Fingolfin after them. Of
those Fingon was the foremost; but at the rear went Finarfin and Finrod, and
many of the noblest and wisest of the Noldor; and often they looked behind them
to see their fair city, until the lamp of the Mindon Eldaliйva was lost in the
night. More than any others of the Exiles they carried thence memories of the
bliss they had forsaken, and some even of the things that they had made there
they took with them: a solace and a burden on the road. Now Fлanor led the Noldor northward, because
his first purpose was to follow Morgoth. Moreover Tъna beneath Taniquetil was
set nigh to the girdle of Arda, and there the Great Sea was immeasurably wide,
whereas ever northward the sundering seas grew narrower, as the wasteland of
Araman and the coasts of Middle-earth drew together. But as the mind of Fлanor
cooled and took counsel he perceived overlate that all these great companies
would never overcome the long leagues to the north, nor cross the seas at the
last, save with the aid of ships; yet it would need long time and toil to build
so great a fleet, even were there any among the Noldor skilled in that craft.
He resolved now therefore to persuade the Teleri, ever friends to the Noldor,
to join with them; and in his rebellion he thought that thus the bliss of
Valinor might be further diminished and his power for war upon Morgoth be
increased. He hastened then to Alqualondл, and spoke to the Teleri as he had
spoken before in Tirion. But the Teleri were unmoved by aught that he
could say. They were grieved indeed at the going of their kinsfolk and long
friends, but would rather dissuade them than aid them; and no ship would they
lend, nor help in the building, against the will of the Valar. As for
themselves, they desired now no other home but the strands of Eldamar, and no
other lord than Olwл, prince of Alqualondл. And he had never lent ear to
Morgoth, nor welcomed him to his land, and he trusted still that Ulmo and the
other great among the Valar would redress the hurts of Morgoth, and that the
night would pass yet to a new dawn. Then Fлanor grew wrathful, for he still
feared delay; and hotly he spoke to Olwл. 'You renounce your friendship, even in
the hour of our need,' he said. 'Yet you were glad indeed to receive our aid
when you came at last to these shores, fainthearted loiterers, and wellnigh
emptyhanded. In huts on the beaches would yon be dwelling still, had not the
Noldor carved out your haven and toiled upon your walls.' But Olwл answered: 'We renounce no
friendship. But it may be the part of a friend to rebuke a friend's folly. And
when the Noldor welcomed us and gave us aid, otherwise then you spoke: in the
land of Aman we were to dwell for ever, as brothers whose houses stand side by
side. But as for our white ships: those you gave us not. We learned not that
craft from the Noldor, but from the Lords of the Sea; and the white timbers we
wrought with our own hands, and the white sails were woven by our wives and our
daughters. Therefore we will neither give them nor sell them for any league or
friendship. For I say to you, Fлanor son of Finwл, these are to us as are the
gems of the Noldor: the work of our hearts, whose like we shall not make
again.' Thereupon Fлanor left him, and sat in dark
thought beyond the walls of Alqualondл, until his host was assembled. When he
judged that his strength was enough, he went to the Haven of the Swans and
began to man the ships that were anchored there and to take them away by force.
But the Teleri withstood him, and cast many of the Noldor into the sea. Then
swords were drawn, and a bitter fight was fought upon the ships, and about the
lamplit quays and piers of the Haven, and even upon the great arch of its gate.
Thrice the people of Fлanor were driven back, and many were slain upon either
side; but the vanguard of the Noldor were succoured by Fingon with the foremost
of the host of Fingolfin, who coming up found a battle joined and their own kin
falling, and rushed in before they knew rightly the cause of the quarrel; some
thought indeed that the Teleri had sought to waylay the march of the Noldor at
the bidding of the Valar. Thus at last the Teleri were overcome, and a
great part of their mariners that dwelt in Alqualondл were wickedly slain. For
the Noldor were become fierce and desperate, and the Teleri had less strength,
and were armed for the most part but with slender bows. Then the Noldor drew
away their white ships and manned their oars as best they might, and rowed them
north along the coast. And Olwл called upon
Ossл, but he came not, for it
was not permitted by the Valar that the fight of the Noldor should be hindered
by force. But Uinen wept for the mariners of the Teleri; and the sea rose in wrath
against the slayers, so that many of the ships were wrecked and those in them
drowned. Of the enslaving at Alqualondл more is told in that lament which is
named Noldolantл, the Fall of the
Noldor, that Maglor made ere he was lost. Nonetheless the greater part of the Noldor
escaped, and when the storm was past they held on their course, some by ship
and some by land; but the way was long and ever more evil as they went forward.
After they had marched for a great while in the unmeasured night, they came at
length to the northern confines of the Guarded Realm, upon the borders of the
empty waste of Araman which were mountainous and cold. There they beheld
suddenly a dark figure standing high upon a rock that looked down upon the
shore. Some say that it was Mandos himself, and no lesser herald of Manwл. And
they heard a loud voice, solemn and terrible, that bade them stand and give
ear. Then all halted and stood still, and from end to end of the hosts of the
Noldor the voice was heard speaking the curse and prophecy which is called the
Prophecy of the North, and the Doom of the Noldor. Much it foretold in dark
words, which the Noldor understood not until the woes indeed after befell them;
but all heard the curse that was uttered upon those that would not stay nor
seek the doom and pardon of the Valar. 'Tears unnumbered ye shall shed; and the
Valar will fence Valinor against you, and shut you out, so that not even the
echo of your lamentation shall pass over the mountains. On the House of Fлanor
the wrath of the Valar lieth from the West unto the uttermost East, and upon
all that will follow them it shall be laid also. Their Oath shall drive them,
and yet betray them, and ever snatch away the very treasures that they have
sworn to pursue. To evil end shall all things turn that they begin well; and by
treason of kin unto kin, and the fear of treason, shall this come to pass. The
Dispossessed shall they be for ever. 'Ye have spilled the blood of your kindred
unrighteously and have stained the land of Aman. For blood ye shall render
blood, and beyond Aman ye shall dwell in Death's shadow. For though Eru
appointed to you to die not in Eд, and no sickness may assail you, yet slain ye
may be, and slain ye shall be: by weapon and by torment and by grief; and your
houseless spirits shall come then to Mandos. There long shall ye abide and
yearn for your bodies, and find little pity though all whom ye have slain
should entreat for you. And those that endure in Middle-earth and come not to
Mandos shall grow weary of the world as with a great burden, and shall wane,
and become as shadows of regret before the younger race that cometh after. The
Valar have spoken.' Then many quailed; but Fлanor hardened his
heart and said: 'We have sworn, and not lightly. This oath we will keep. We are
threatened with many evils, and treason not least; but one thing is not said:
that we shall suffer from cowardice, from cravens or the fear of cravens.
Therefore I say that we will go on, and this doom I add: the deeds that we
shall do shall be the matter of song until the last days of Arda.' But in that hour Finarfin forsook the march,
and turned back, being filled with grief, and with bitterness against the House
of Fлanor, because of his kinship with Olwл of Alqualondл; and many of his
people went with him, retracing their steps in sorrow, until they beheld once
more the far beam of the Mindon upon Tъna still shining in the night, and so
came at last to Valinor. There they received the pardon of the Valar, and
Finarfin was set to rule the remnant of the Noldor in the Blessed Realm. But
his sons were not with him, for they would not forsake the sons of Fingolfin;
and all Fingolfin's folk went forward still, feeling the constraint of their
kinship and the will of Fлanor, and fearing to face the doom of the Valar,
since not all of them had been guiltless of the Kinslaying at Alqualondл.
Moreover Fingon and Turgon were bold and fiery of heart, and loath to abandon
any task to which they had put their hands until the bitter end, if bitter it
must be. So the main host held on, and swiftly the evil that was foretold began
its work. The Noldor came at last far into the north
of Arda; and they saw the first teeth of the ice that floated in the sea, and
knew that they were drawing nigh to the Helcaraxл. For between the land of Aman
that in the north curved eastward, and the east-shores of Endor (which is
Middle-earth) that bore westward, there was a narrow strait, through which the
chill waters of the Encircling Sea and the waves of Belegaer flowed together,
and there were vast fogs and mists of deathly cold, and the sea-streams were
filled with clashing hills of ice and the grinding of ice deep-sunken. Such was
the Helcaraxл, and there none yet had dared to tread save the Valar only and
Ungoliant Therefore Fлanor halted and the Noldor
debated what course they should now take. But they began to suffer anguish from
the cold, and the clinging mists through which no gleam of star could pierce;
and many repented of the road and began to murmur, especially those that followed
Fingolfin, cursing Fлanor, and naming him as the cause of all the woes of the
Eldar. But Fлanor, knowing all that was said, took counsel with his sons; and
two courses only they saw to escape from Araman and come into Endor: by the
straits or by ship. But the Helcaraxл they deemed impassable, whereas the ships
were too few. Many had been lost upon their long journey, and there remained
now not enough to bear across all the great host together; yet none were
willing to abide upon the western coast while others were ferried first:
already the fear of treachery was awake among the Noldor. Therefore it came
into the hearts of Fлanor and his sons to seize all the ships and depart
suddenly; for they had retained the mastery of the fleet since the battle of
the Haven, and it was manned only by those who had fought there and were bound
to Fлanor. And as though it came at his call, there sprang up a wind from the
north-west, and Fлanor slipped away secretly with all whom he deemed true to
him, and went aboard, and put out to sea, and left Fingolfin in Araman. And
since the sea was there narrow, steering east and somewhat south he passed over
without loss, and first of all the Noldor set foot once more upon the shores of
Middle-earth; and the landing of Fлanor was at the mouth of the firth which was
called Drengist and ran into Dor-lуmin. But when they were landed, Maedhros the
eldest of his sons, and on a time the friend of Fingon ere Morgoth's lies came
between, spoke to Fлanor, saying: 'Now what ships and rowers will you spare to
return, and whom shall they bear hither first? Fingon the valiant?' Then Fлanor laughed as one fey, and he
cried: 'None and none! What I have left behind I count now no loss; needless
baggage on the road it has proved. Let those that cursed my name, curse me
still, and whine their way back to the cages of the Valar! Let the ships burn!'
Then Maedhros alone stood aside, but Fлanor caused fire to be set to the white
ships of the Teleri. So in that place which was called Losgar at the outlet of
the Firth of Drengist ended the fairest vessels that ever sailed the sea, in a
great burning, bright and terrible. And Fingolfin and his people saw the light
afar off, red beneath the clouds; and they knew that they were betrayed. This
was the firstfruits of the Kinslaying and the Doom of the Noldor. Then Fingolfin seeing that Fлanor had left
him to perish in Araman or return in shame to Valinor was filled with
bitterness; but he desired now as never before to come by some way to
Middle-earth, and meet Fлanor again. And he and his host wandered long in
misery, but their valour and endurance grew with hardship; for they were a
mighty people, the elder children undying of Elu Ilъvatar, but new-come from
the Blessed Realm, and not yet weary with the weariness of Earth. The fire of
their hearts was young, and led by Fingolfin and his sons, and by Finrod and
Galadriel, they dared to pass into the bitterest North; and finding no other
way they endured at last the terror of the Helcaraxл and the cruel hills of
ice. Few of the deeds of the Noldor thereafter surpassed that desperate
crossing in hardihood or woe. There Elenwл the wife of Turgon was lost, and
many others perished also; and it was with a lessened host that Fingolfin set
foot at last upon the Outer Lands. Small love for Fлanor or his sons had those
that marched at last behind him, and blew their trumpets in Middle-earth at the
first rising of the Moon. Chapter 10 Of the Sindar Now as has been told the power of Elwл and
Melian increased in Middle-earth, and all the Elves of Beleriand, from the
mariners of Cнrdan to the wandering hunters of the Blue Mountains beyond the
River Gelion, owned Elwл as their lord; Elu Thingol he was called, King
Greymantle, in the tongue of his people. They are called the Sindar, the
Grey-elves of starlit Beleriand; and although they were Moriquendi, under the
lordship of Thingol and the teaching of Melian they became the fairest and the
most wise and skilful of all the Elves of Middle-earth. And at the end of the
first age of the Chaining of Melkor, when all the Earth had peace and the glory
of Valinor was at its noon, there came into the world Lъthien, the only child
of Thingol and Melian. Though Middle-earth lay for the most part in the Sleep
of Yavanna, in Beleriand under the power of Melian there was life and joy, and
the bright stars shone as silver fires; and there in the forest of Neldoreth
Lъthien was born, and the white flowers of niphredil
came forth to greet her as stars from the earth. It came to pass during the second age of the
captivity of Melkor that Dwarves came over the Blue Mountains of Ered Luin into
Beleriand. Themselves they named Khazвd, but the Sindar called them Naugrim,
the Stunted People, and Gonnhirrim, Masters of Stone. Far to the east were the
most ancient dwellings of the Naugrim, but they had delved for themselves great
halls and mansions, after the manner of their kind, in the eastern side of Ered
Luin; and those cities were named in their own tongue Gabilgathol and
Tumunzahar. To the north of the great height of Mount Dolmed was Gabilgathol,
which the Elves interpreted in their tongue Belegost, that is Mickleburg; and
southward was delved Tumunzahar, by the Elves named Nogrod, the Hollowbold.
Greatest of all the mansions of the Dwarves was Khazвd-dыm, the Dwarrowdelf,
Hadhodrond in the Elvish tongue, that was afterwards in the days of its
darkness called Moria; but it was far off in the Mountains of Mist beyond the
wide leagues of Eriador, and to the Eldar came but as a name and a rumour from
the words of the Dwarves of the Blue Mountains. From Nogrod and Belegost the Naugrim came
forth into Beleriand; and the Elves were filled with amazement, for they had
believed themselves to be the only living things in Middle-earth that spoke
with words or wrought with hands, and that all others were but birds and
beasts. But they could understand no word of the tongue of the Naugrim, which
to their ears was cumbrous and unlovely; and few ever of the Eldar have
achieved the mastery of it But the Dwarves were swift to learn, and indeed were
more willing to learn the Elventongue than to teach their own to those of alien
race. Few of the Eldar went ever to Nogrod and Belegost, save Eцl of Nan Elmoth
and Maeglin his son; but the Dwarves trafficked into Beleriand, and they made a
great road that passed under the shoulders of Mount Dolmed and followed the
course of the River Ascar, crossing Gelion at Sarn Athrad, the Ford of Stones,
where battle after befell. Ever cool was the friendship between the Naugrim and
the Eldar, though much profit they had one of the other; but at that time those
griefs that lay between them had not yet come to pass, and King Thingol
welcomed them. But the Naugrim gave their friendship more readily to the Noldor
in after days than to any others of Elves and Men, because of their love and
reverence for Aulл; and the gems of the Noldor they praised above all other
wealth. In the darkness of Arda already the Dwarves wrought great works, for
even from the first days of their Fathers they had marvellous skill with metals
and with stone; but in that ancient time iron and copper they loved to work,
rather than silver or gold. Now Melian had much foresight, after the
manner of the Maiar; and when the second age of the captivity of Melkor had
passed, she counselled Thingol that the Peace of Arda would not last for ever.
He took thought therefore how he should make for himself a kingly dwelling, and
a place that should be strong, if evil were to awake again in Middle-earth; and
he sought aid and counsel of the Dwarves of Belegost They gave it willingly,
for they were unwearied in those days and eager for new works; and though the
Dwarves ever demanded a price for all that they did, whether with delight or
with toil, at this time they held themselves paid. For Melian taught them much
that they were eager to learn, and Thingol rewarded them with many fair pearls.
These Cнrdan gave to him, for they were got in great number in the shallow
waters about the Isle of Balar; but the Naugrim had not before seen their like,
and they held them dear. One there
was as great as a dove's egg, and its sheen was as starlight on the foam of the
sea; Nimphelos it was named, and the chieftain of the Dwarves of Belegost
prized it above a mountain of wealth. Therefore the Naugrim laboured long and
gladly for Thingol, and devised for him mansions after the fashion of their
people, delved deep in the earth. Where the Esgalduin flowed down, and parted
Neldoreth from Region, there rose in the midst of the forest a rocky hill, and
the river ran at its feet. There they made the gates of the hall of Thingol,
and they built a bridge of stone over the river, by which alone the gates could
be entered. Beyond the gates wide passages ran down to high halls and chambers
far below that were hewn in the living stone, so many and so great that that
dwelling was named Menegroth, the Thousand Caves. But the Elves also had part in that labour,
and Elves and Dwarves together, each with their own skill, there wrought out
the visions of Melian, images of the wonder and beauty of Valinor beyond the
Sea. The pillars of Menegroth were hewn in the likeness of the beeches of
Oromл, stock, bough, and leaf, and they were lit with lanterns of gold. The
nightingales sang there as in the gardens of Lуrien; and there were fountains
of silver, and basins of marble, and floors of many-coloured stones. Carven
figures of beasts and birds there ran upon the walls, or climbed upon the
pillars, or peered among the branches entwined with many flowers. And as the
years passed Melian and her maidens filled the halls with woven hangings
wherein could be read the deeds of the Valar, and many things that had befallen
in Arda since its beginning, and shadows of things that were yet to be. That
was the fairest dwelling of any king that has ever been east of the Sea. And when the building of Menegroth was
achieved, and there was peace in the realm of Thingol and Melian, the Naugrim
yet came ever and anon over the mountains and went in traffic about the lands;
but they went seldom to the Falas, for they hated the sound of the sea and
feared to look upon it. To Beleriand there came no other rumour or tidings of
the world without. But as the third age of the captivity of
Melkor drew on, the Dwarves became troubled, and they spoke to King Thingol,
saying that the Valar had not rooted out utterly the evils of the North, and
now the remnant, having long multiplied in the dark, were coming forth once
more and roaming far and wide. 'There are fell beasts,' they said, 'in the land
east of the mountains, and your ancient kindred that dwell there are flying
from the plains to the hills.' And ere long the evil creatures came even to
Beleriand, over passes in the mountains, or up from the south through the dark
forests. Wolves there were, or creatures that walked in wolf-shapes, and other
fell beings of shadow; and among them were the Orcs, who afterwards wrought
ruin in Beleriand: but they were yet few and wary, and did but smell out the
ways of the land, awaiting the return of their lord. Whence they came, or what
they were, the Elves knew not then, thinking them perhaps to be Avari who had
become evil and savage in the wild; in which they guessed all too near, it is
said. Therefore Thingol took thought for arms,
which before his people had not needed, and these at first the Naugrim smithied
for him; for they were greatly skilled in such work, though none among them
surpassed the craftsmen of Nogrod, of whom Telchar the smith was greatest in
renown. A warlike race of old were all the Naugrim, and they would fight
fiercely against whomsoever aggrieved them: servants of Melkor, or Eldar, or
Avari, or wild beasts, or not seldom their own kin, Dwarves of other mansions
and lordships. Their smithcraft indeed the Sindar soon learned of them; yet in
the tempering of steel alone of all crafts the Dwarves were never outmatched
even by the Noldor, and in the making of mail of linked rings, which was first
contrived by the smiths of Belegost, their work had no rival. At this time therefore the Sindar were
well-armed, and they drove off an creatures of evil, and had peace again; but
Thingol's armouries were stored with axes and with spears and swords, and tall
helms, and long coats of bright mail; for the hauberks of the Dwarves were so
fashioned that they rusted not but shone ever as if they were new-burnished.
And that proved well for Thingol in the time that was to come. Now as has been told, one Lenwл of the host
of Olwл forsook the march of the Eldar at that time when the Teleri were halted
by the shores of the Great River upon the borders of the westlands of
Middle-earth. Little is known of the wanderings of the Nandor, whom he led away
down Anduin: some, it is said, dwelt age-long in the woods of the Vale of the
Great River, some came at last to its mouths and there dwelt by the Sea, and
yet others passing by Ered Nimrais, the White Mountains, came north again and
entered the wilderness of Eriador between Ered Luin and the far Mountains of
Mist. Now these were a woodland people and had no weapons of steel, and the
coming of the fell beasts of the North filled them with great fear, as the
Naugrim declared to King Thingol in Menegroth. Therefore Denethor, the son of
Lenwл, hearing rumour of the might of Thingol and his majesty, and of the peace
of his realm, gathered such host of his scattered people as he could, and led
them over the mountains into Beleriand. There they were welcomed by Thingol, as
kin long lost that return, and they dwelt in Ossiriand, the Land of Seven
Rivers. Of the long years of peace that followed
after the coming of Denethor there is little tale. In those days, it is said,
Daeron the Minstrel, chief loremaster of the kingdom of Thingol, devised his
Runes; and the Naugrim that came to Thingol learned them, and were well-pleased
with the device, esteeming Daeron's skill higher than did the Sindar, his own
people. By the Naugrim the Cirth were
taken east over the mountains and passed into the knowledge of many peoples;
but they were little used by the Sindar for the keeping of records, until the days
of the War, and much that was held in memory perished in the ruins of Doriath.
But of bliss and glad life there is little to be said, before it ends; as works
fair and wonderful, while still they endure for eyes to see, are their own
record, and only when they are in peril or broken for ever do they pass into
song. In Beleriand in those days the Elves walked,
and the rivers flowed, and the stars shone, and the night-flowers gave forth
their scents; and the beauty of Melian was as the noon, and the beauty of
Lъthien was as the dawn in spring. In Beleriand King Thingol upon his throne
was as the lords of the Maiar, whose power is at rest, whose joy is as an air
that they breathe in all their days, whose thought flows in a tide untroubled
from the heights to the deeps. In Beleriand still at times rode Oromл the
great, passing like a wind over the mountains, and the sound of his horn came
down the leagues of the starlight, and the Elves feared him for the splendour
of his countenance and the great noise of the onrush of Nahar; but when the
Valarуma echoed in the hills, they knew well that all evil things were fled far
away. But it came to pass at last that the end of
bliss was at hand, and the noontide of Valinor was drawing to its twilight. For
as has been told and as is known to all, being written in lore and sung in many
songs, Melkor slew the Trees of the Valar with the aid of Ungoliant, and
escaped, and came back to Middle-earth. Far to the north befell the strife of
Morgoth and Ungoliant; but the great cry of Morgoth echoed through Beleriand,
and all its people shrank for fear; for though they knew not what it foreboded,
they heard then the herald of death. Soon afterwards Ungoliant fled from the
north and came into the realm of King Thingol, and a terror of darkness was
about her; but by the power of Melian she was stayed, and entered not into
Neldoreth, but abode long time under the shadow of the precipices in which
Dorthonion fell southward. And they became known as Ered Gorgoroth, the
Mountains of Terror, and none dared go thither, or pass nigh them; there life
and light were strangled, and there all waters were poisoned. But Morgoth, as
has before been told, returned to Angband, and built it anew, and above its
doors he reared the reeking towers of Thangorodrim; and the gates of Morgoth
were but one hundred and fifty leagues distant from the bridge of Menegroth:
far and yet all too near. Now the Orcs that multiplied in the darkness
of the earth grew strong and fell, and their dark lord filled them with a lust
of rain and death; and they issued from Angband's gates under the clouds that
Morgoth sent forth, and passed silently into the highlands of the north. Thence
on a sudden a great army came into Beleriand and assailed King Thingol. Now in
his wide realm many Elves wandered free in the wild, or dwelt at peace in small
kindreds far sundered; and only about Menegroth in the midst of the land, and
along the Falas in the country of the mariners, were there numerous peoples.
But the Orcs came down upon either side of Menegroth, and from camps in the
east between Celon and Gelion, and west in the plains between Sirion and Narog,
they plundered far and wide; and Thingol was cut on from Cнrdan at Eglarest.
Therefore he called upon Denethor; and the Elves came in force from Region
beyond Aros and from Ossiriand, and fought the first battle in the Wars of
Beleriand. And the eastern host of the Orcs was taken between the armies of the
Eldar, north of the Andram and midway between Aros and Gelion, and there they were
utterly defeated, and those that fled north from the great slaughter were
waylaid by the axes of the Naugrim that issued from Mount Dolmed: few indeed
returned to Angband. But the victory of the Elves was dear-bought
For those of Ossiriand were light-armed, and no match for the Orcs, who were shod with iron and
iron-shielded and bore great spears with broad blades; and Denethor was cut off
and surrounded upon the hill of Amon Ereb. There he fell and all his nearest
kin about him, before the host of Thingol could come to his aid. Bitterly
though his fall was avenged, when Thingol came upon the rear of the Orcs and
slew them in heaps, his people lamented him ever after and took no king again.
After the battle some returned to Ossiriand, and their tidings filled the
remnant of their people with great fear, so that thereafter they came never
forth in open war, but kept themselves by wariness and secrecy; and they were
called the Laiquendi, the Green-elves, because of their raiment of the colour
of leaves. But many went north and entered the guarded realm of Thingol, and
were merged with his people. And when Thingol came again to Menegroth he
learned that the Orc-host in the west was victorious, and had driven Cнrdan to
the rim of the sea. Therefore he withdrew all his people that his summons could
reach within the fastness of Neldoreth and Region, and Melian put forth her
power and fenced all that dominion round about with an unseen wail of shadow
and bewilderment: the Girdle of Melian, that none thereafter could pass against
her will or the will of King Thingol, unless one should come with a power
greater than that of Melian the Maia. And this inner land, which was long named
Eglador, was after called Doriath, the guarded kingdom, Land of the Girdle.
Within it there was yet a watchful peace; but without there was peril and great
fear, and the servants of Morgoth roamed at will, save in the walled havens of
the Falas. But new tidings were at hand, which none in
Middle-earth had foreseen, neither Morgoth in his pits nor Melian in Menegroth;
for no news came out of Aman whether by messenger, or by spirit, or by vision
in dream, after the death of the Trees. In this same time Fлanor came over the
Sea in the white ships of the Teleri and landed in the Firth of Drengist, and
there burned the ships at Losgar. Chapter 11 Of the Sun and Moon and the Hiding of
Valinor It is told that
after the flight of Melkor the Valar sat long unmoved upon their thrones in the
Ring of Doom; but they were not idle, as Fлanor declared in the folly of his
heart. For the Valar may work many things with thought rather than with hands,
and without voices in silence they may hold council one with another. Thus they
held vigil in the night of Valinor, and their thought passed back beyond Eд and
forth to the End; yet neither power nor wisdom assuaged their grief, and the
knowing of evil in the hour of its being. And they mourned not more for the
death of the Trees than for the marring of Fлanor: of the works of Melkor one
of the most evil. For Fлanor was made the mightiest in all parts of body and
mind, in valour, in endurance, in beauty, in understanding, in skill, in
strength and in subtlety alike, of all the Children of Ilъvatar, and a bright
flame was in him. The works of wonder for the glory of Arda that he might
otherwise have wrought only Manwл might in some measure conceive. And it was
told by the Vanyar who held vigil with the Valar that when the messengers
declared to Manwл the answers of Fлanor to his heralds, Manwл wept and bowed
his head. But at that last word of Fлanor: that at the least the Noldor should
do deeds to live in song for ever, he raised his head, as one that hears a
voice far off, and he said: 'So shall it be! Dear-bought those songs shall be
accounted, and yet shall be well-bought. For the price could be no other. Thus
even as Eru spoke to us shall beauty not before conceived be brought into Eд,
and evil yet be good to have been.' But Mandos said: 'And yet remain evil. To me
shall Fлanor come soon.' But when at last the Valar learned that the
Noldor had indeed passed out of Aman and were come back into Middle-earth, they
arose and began to set forth in deeds those counsels which they had taken in
thought for the redress of the evils of Melkor. Then Manwл bade Yavanna and
Nienna to put forth all their powers of growth and healing; and they put forth
all their powers upon the Trees. But the tears of Nienna availed not to heal
their mortal wounds; and for a long while Yavanna sang alone in the shadows.
Yet even as hope failed and her song faltered, Telperion bore at last upon a
leafless bough one great flower of silver, and Laurelin a single trait of gold. These Yavanna took; and then the Trees died,
and their lifeless stems stand yet in Valinor, a memorial of vanished joy. But
the flower and the fruit Yavanna gave to Aulл, and Manwл hallowed them, and
Aulл and his people made vessels to hold them and preserve their radiance: as
is said in the Narsilion, the Song of
the Sun and Moon. These vessels the Valar gave to Varda, that they might become
lamps of heaven, outshining the ancient stars, being nearer to Arda; and she
gave them power to traverse the lower regions of Ilmen, and set them to voyage
upon appointed courses above the girdle of the Earth from the West unto the
East and to return. These things the Valar did, recalling in
their twilight the darkness of the lands of Arda; and they resolved now to
illumine Middle-earth and with light to hinder the deeds of Melkor. For they
remembered the Avari that remained by the waters of their awakening, and they
did not utterly forsake the Noldor in exile; and Manwл knew also that the hour
of the coming of Men was drawn nigh. And it is said indeed that, even as the
Valar made war upon Melkor for the sake of the Quendi, so now for that time
they forbore for the sake of the Hildor, the Aftercomers, the younger Children
of Ilъvatar. For so grievous had been the hurts of Middle-earth in the war upon
Utumno that the Valar feared lest even worse should now befall; whereas the
Hildor should be mortal, and weaker than the Quendi to withstand fear and
tumult. Moreover it was not revealed to Manwл where the beginning of Men should
be, north, south, or east. Therefore the Valar sent forth light, but made
strong the land of their dwelling. Isil the Sheen the Vanyar of old named the
Moon, flower of Telperion in Valinor; and Anar the Fire-golden, fruit of
Laurelin, they named the Sun. But the Noldor named them also Rбna, the Wayward,
and Vбsa, the Heart of Fire, that awakens and consumes; for the Sun was set as
a sign for the awakening of Men and the waning of the Elves, but the Moon
cherishes their memory. The maiden whom the Valar chose from among
the Maiar to guide the vessel of the Sun was named Arien, and he that steered
the island of the Moon was Tilion. In the days of the Trees Arien had tended
the golden flowers in the gardens of Vбna, and watered them with the bright
dews of Laurelin; but Tilion was a hunter of the company of Oromл, and he had a
silver bow. He was a lover of silver, and when he would rest he forsook the
woods of Oromл, and going into Lуrien he lay hi dream by the pools of Estл, in
Telperion's flickering beams; and he begged to be given the task of tending for
ever the last Flower of Silver. Arien the maiden was mightier than he, and she
was chosen because she had not feared the heats of Laurelin, and was unhurt by
them, being from the beginning a spirit of fire, whom Melkor had not deceived
nor drawn to his service. Too bright were the eyes of Arien for even the Eldar
to look on, and leaving Valinor she forsook the form and raiment which like the
Valar she had worn there, and she was as a naked flame, terrible in the
fullness of her splendour. Isil was first wrought and made ready, and
first rose into the realm of the stars, and was the elder of the new lights, as
was Telperion of the Trees. Then for a while the world had moonlight, and many
things stirred and woke that had waited long in the sleep of Yavanna. The
servants of Morgoth were filled with amazement, but the Elves of the Outer Lands
looked up in delight; and even as the Moon rose above the darkness in the west,
Fingolfin let blow his silver trumpets and began his march into Middle-earth,
and the shadows of his host went long and black before them. Tilion had traversed the heaven seven times,
and thus was m the furthest east, when the vessel of Arien was made ready. Then
Anar arose in glory, and the first dawn of the Sun was like a great fire upon
the towers of the Pelуri: the clouds of Middle-earth were kindled, and there
was heard the sound of many waterfalls. Then indeed Morgoth was dismayed, and
he descended into the uttermost depths of Angband, and withdrew his servants,
sending forth great reek and dark cloud to hide his land from the light of the
Day-star. Now Varda purposed that the two vessels
should journey in Ilmen and ever be aloft, but not together; each should pass
from Valinor into the east and return, the one issuing from the west as the
other turned from the east. Thus the first of the new days were reckoned after
the manner of the Trees, from the mingling of the lights when Arien and Tilion
passed in then- courses, above the middle of the Earth. But Tilion was wayward
and uncertain in speed, and held not to his appointed path; and he sought to
come near to Arien, being drawn by her splendour, though the flame of Anar
scorched him, and the island of the Moon was darkened. Because of the waywardness of Tilion,
therefore, and yet more because of the prayers of Lуrien and Estл, who said
that sleep and rest had been banished from the Earth, and the stars were
hidden, Varda changed her counsel, and allowed a time wherein the world should
still have shadow and half-light. Anar rested therefore a while in Valinor,
lying upon the cool bosom of the Outer Sea; and Evening, the time of the
descent and resting of the Sun, was the hour of greatest light and joy in Aman.
But soon the Sun was drawn down by the servants of Ulmo, and went then in haste
under the Earth, and so came unseen to the east and there mounted the heaven
again, lest night be over-long and evil walk under the Moon. But by Anar the
waters of the Outer Sea were made hot and glowed with coloured fire, and
Valinor had light for a while after the passing of Arien. Yet as she journeyed
under the Earth and drew towards the east the glow faded and Valinor was dim,
and the Valar mourned then most for the death of Laurelin. At dawn the shadows
of the Mountains of Defence lay heavy on the Blessed Realm. Varda commanded the Moon to journey in like
manner, and passing under Earth to arise in the east, but only after the Sun
had descended from heaven. But Tilion went with uncertain pace, as yet he goes,
and was still drawn towards Arien, as he shall ever be; so that often both may
be seen above the Earth together, or at times it will chance that he comes so
nigh that his shadow cuts off her brightness and there is a darkness amid the
day. Therefore by the coming and going of Anar
the Valar reckoned the days thereafter until the Change of the World. For
Tilion tamed seldom in Valinor, but more often would pass swiftly over the
western land, over Avathar, or Araman, or Valinor, and plunge in the chasm
beyond the Outer Sea, pursuing his way alone amid the grots and caverns at the
roots of Arda. There he would often wander long, and late would return. Still therefore, after the Long Night, the
light of Valinor was greater and fairer than upon Middle-earth; for the Sun
rested there, and the lights of heaven drew nearer to Earth in that region. But
neither the Sun nor the Moon can recall the light that was of old, that came
from the Trees before they were touched by the poison of Ungoliant That light
lives now in the Silmarils alone. But Morgoth hated the new lights, and was
for a while confounded by this unlooked-for stroke of the Valar. Then he
assailed Tilion, sending spirits of shadow against him, and there was strife in
Ilmen beneath the paths of the stars; but Tilion was victorious. And Arien
Morgoth feared with a great fear, but dared not come nigh her, having indeed no
longer the power; for as he grew in malice, and sent forth from himself the
evil that he conceived in lies and creatures of wickedness, his might passed
into them and was dispersed, and he himself became ever more bound to the
earth, unwilling to issue from his dark strongholds. With shadows he hid
himself and his servants from Arien, the glance of whose eyes they could not
long endure; and the lands near his dwelling were shrouded in fumes and great
clouds. But seeing the assault upon Tilion the Valar
were in doubt, fearing what the malice and cunning of Morgoth might yet
contrive against them. Being unwilling to make war upon him in Middle-earth,
they remembered nonetheless the ruin of Almaren; and they resolved that the
like should not befall Valinor. Therefore at that time they fortified their
land anew, and they raised up the mountain-walls of the Pelуri to sheer and
dreadful heights, east, north, and south. Their outer sides were dark and
smooth, without foothold or ledge, and they fell in great precipices with faces
hard as glass, and rose up to towers with crowns of white ice. A sleepless
watch was set upon them, and no pass led through them, save only at the
Calacirya: but that pass the Valar did not close, because of the Eldar that
were faithful, and in the city of Tirion upon the green hill Finarfin yet ruled
the remnant of the Noldor in the deep cleft of the mountains. For all those of
elven-race, even the Vanyar and Ingwл their lord, must breathe at times the
outer air and the wind that comes over the sea from the lands of their birth;
and the Valar would not sunder the Teleri wholly from their kin. But in the
Calacirya they set strong towers and many sentinels, and at its issue upon the
plains of Valmar a host was encamped, so that neither bird nor beast nor elf
nor man, nor any creature beside that dwelt in Middle-earth, could pass that
leaguer. And in that time also, which songs call Nurtalл Valinуreva, the Hiding of
Valinor, the Enchanted Isles were set, and ail the seas about them were filled
with shadows and bewilderment. And these isles were strung as a net in the
Shadowy Seas from the north to the south, before Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle, is reached by one sailing west.
Hardly might any vessel pass between them, for in the dangerous sounds the
waves sighed for ever upon dark rocks shrouded in mist. And in the twilight a
great weariness came upon mariners and a loathing of the sea; but all that ever
set foot upon the islands were there entrapped, and slept until the Change of
the World. Thus it was that as Mandos foretold to them in Araman the Blessed
Realm was shut against the Noldor; and of the many messengers that in after
days sailed into the West none came ever to Valinor - save one only: the
mightiest mariner of song. Chapter 12 Of Men The Valar sat now
behind their mountains at peace; and having given light to Middle-earth they
left it for long untended, and the lordship of Morgoth was uncontested save by
the valour of the Noldor. Most in mind Ulmo kept the exiles, who gathered news
of the Earth through all the waters. From this time forth were reckoned the Years
of the Sun. Swifter and briefer are they than the long Years of the Trees in
Valinor. In that time the air of Middle-earth became heavy with the breath of
growth and mortality, and the changing and ageing of all things was hastened
exceedingly; life teemed upon the soil and in the waters in the Second Spring
of Arda, and the Eldar increased, and beneath the new Sun Beleriand grew green
and fair. At the first rising of the Sun the Younger
Children of Ilъvatar awoke in the land of Hildуrien in the eastward regions of
Middle-earth; but the first Sun arose in the West, and the opening eyes of Men
were turned towards it, and their feet as they wandered over the Earth for the
most part strayed that way. The Atani they were named by the Eldar, the Second
People; but they called them also Hildor, the Followers, and many other names:
Apanуnar, the After-born, Engwar, the Sickly, and Fнrimar, the Mortals; and
they named them the Usurpers, the Strangers, and the Inscrutable, the
Self-cursed, the Heavy-handed, the Night-fearers, the Children of the Sun. Of
Men little is told in these tales, which concern the Eldest Days before the
waxing of mortals and the waning of the Elves, save of those fathers of men,
the Atanatбri, who in the first years of the Sun and Moon wandered into the
North of the world. To Hildуrien there came no Vala to guide Men, or to summon
them to dwell in Valinor; and Men have feared the Valar, rather than loved
them, and have not understood the purposes of the Powers, being at variance
with them, and at strife with the world. Ulmo nonetheless took thought for them
aiding the counsel and will of Manwл; and his messages came often to them by
stream and flood. But they have not skill in such matters, and still less had
they in those days before they had mingled with the Elves. Therefore they loved
the waters, and their hearts were stirred, but they understood not the
messages. Yet it is told that ere long they met Dark Elves in many places, and
were befriended by them; and Men became the companions and disciples in their
childhood of these ancient folk, wanderers of the Elven-race who never set out
upon the paths to Valinor, and knew of the Valar only as a rumour and a distant
name. Morgoth had then not long come back into
Middle-earth, and his power went not far abroad, and was moreover checked by
the sudden coming of great light. There was little peril in the lands and
hills; and there new things, devised long ages before in the thought of Yavanna
and sown as seed in the dark, came at last to their budding and their bloom.
West, North, and South the children of Men spread and wandered, and their joy
was the joy of the morning before the dew is dry, when every leaf is green. But the dawn is brief and the day full often
belies its promise; and now the time drew on to the great wars of the powers of
the North, when Noldor and Sindar and Men strove against the hosts of Morgoth
Bauglir, and went down in ruin. To this end the cunning lies of Morgoth that he
sowed of old, and sowed ever anew among his foes, and the curse that came of
the slaying at Alqualondл, and the oath of Fлanor, were ever at work. Only a
part is here told of the deeds of those days, and most is said of the Noldor,
and the Silmarils, and the mortals that became entangled in their fate. In
those days Elves and Men were of like stature and strength of body, but the
Elves had greater wisdom, and skill, and beauty; and those who had dwelt in
Valinor and looked upon the Powers as much surpassed the Dark Elves in these
things as they in turn surpassed the people of mortal race. Only to the realm
of Doriath, whose queen Melian was of the kindred of Valar, did the Sindar come
near to match the Calaquendi of the Blessed Realm. Immortal were the Elves, and their wisdom
waxed from age to age, and no sickness nor pestilence brought death to them.
Their bodies indeed were of the stuff of Earth, and could be destroyed; and in
those days they were more like to the bodies of Men, since they had not so long
been inhabited by the fire of their spirit, which consumes them from within in
the courses of time. But Men were more frail, more easily slain by weapon or
mischance, and less easily healed; subject to sickness and many ills; and they
grew old and died. What may befall their spirits after death the Elves know
not. Some say that they too go to the halls of Mandos; but their place of
waiting there is not that of the Elves, and Mandos under Ilъvatar alone save
Manwл knows whither they go after the time of recollection in those silent
halls beside the Outer Sea. None have ever come back from the mansions of the
dead, save only Beren son of Barahir, whose hand had touched a Silmaril; but he
never spoke afterward to mortal Men. The fate of Men after death, maybe, is not
in the hands of the Valar, nor was all foretold in the Music of the Ainur. In after days, when because of the triumph
of Morgoth Elves and Men became estranged, as be most wished, those of the
Elven-race that lived still in Middle-earth waned and faded, and Men usurped
the sunlight. Then the Quendi wandered in the lonely places of the great lands
and the isles, and took to the moonlight and the starlight, and to the woods
and caves, becoming as shadows and memories, save those who ever and anon set
sail into the West and vanished from Middle-earth. But in the dawn of years
Elves and Men were allies and held themselves akin, and there were some among
Men that learned the wisdom of the Eldar, and became great and valiant among
the captains of the Noldor. And in the glory and beauty of the Elves, and in
their fate, full share had the offspring of elf and mortal, Eдrendil, and
Elwing, and Elrond their child. Chapter 13 Of the Return of the Noldor It has been told
that Fлanor and his sons came first of the Exiles to Middle-earth, and landed
in the waste of Lammoth, the Great Echo, upon the outer shores of the Firth of
Drengist And even as the Noldor set foot upon the strand their cries were taken
up into the hills and multiplied, so that a clamour as of countless mighty
voices filled all the coasts of the North; and the noise of the burning of the
ships at Losgar went down the winds of the sea as a tumult of great wrath, and
far away all who heard that sound were filled with wonder. Now the flames of that burning were seen not
only by Fingolfin, whom Fлanor had deserted in Araman, but also by the Orcs and
the watchers of Morgoth. No tale has told what Morgoth thought in his heart at
the tidings that Fлanor, his bitterest foe, had brought a host out of the West.
It may be that he feared him little, for he had as yet no proof of the swords
of the Noldor; and soon it was seen that he purposed to drive them back into
the sea. Under the cold stars before the rising of
the Moon the host of Fлanor went up the long Firth of Drengist that pierced the
Echoing Hills of Ered Lуmin, and passed thus from the shores into the great
land of Hithlum; and they came at length to the long lake of Mithrim, and upon
its northern shore made their encampment in the region that bore the same name.
But the host of Morgoth, aroused by the tumult of Lam-moth and the light of the
burning at Losgar, came through the passes of Ered Wethrin, the Mountains of
Shadow, and assailed Fлanor on a sudden, before his camp was full-wrought or put
in defence; and there on the grey fields of Mithrim was fought the Second
Battle in the Wars of Beleriand. Dagor-nuin-Giliath it is named, the
Battle-under-Stars, for the Moon had not yet risen; and it is renowned in song.
The Noldor, outnumbered and taken at unawares, were yet swiftly victorious; for
the light of Aman was not yet dimmed in their eyes, and they were strong and
swift, and deadly in anger, and their swords were long and terrible. The Orcs
fled before them, and they were driven forth from Mithrim with great slaughter,
and hunted over the Mountains of Shadow into the great plain of Ard-galen, that
lay northward of Dorthonion. There the armies of Morgoth that had passed south
into the Vale of Sirion and beleaguered Cнrdan in the Havens of the Falas came
up to their aid, and were caught in their ruin. For Celegorm, Fлanor's son,
having news of them, waylaid them with a part of the Elven-host, and coming
down upon them out of the hills near Eithel Sirion drove them into the Fen of
Serech. Evil indeed were the tidings that came at last to Angband, and Morgoth
was dismayed. Ten days that battle lasted, and from it returned of all the
hosts that he had prepared for the conquest of Beleriand no more than a handful
of leaves. Yet cause he had for great joy, though it
was hidden from him for a while. For Fлanor, in his wrath against the Enemy,
would not halt, but pressed on behind the remnant of the Orcs, thinking so to
come at Morgoth himself: and he laughed aloud as he wielded his sword,
rejoicing that he had dared the wrath of the Valar and the evils of the road,
that he might see the hour of his vengeance. Nothing did he know of Angband or
the great strength of defence that Morgoth had so swiftly prepared: but even
had he known it would not have deterred him, for he was fey, consumed by the
flame of his own wrath. Thus it was that he drew far ahead of the van of his
host; and seeing this the servants of Morgoth turned to bay, and there issued
from Angband Balrogs to aid them. There upon the confines of Dor Daedeloth, the
land of Morgoth, Fлanor was surrounded, with few friends about him. Long he
fought on, and undismayed, though he was wrapped in fire and wounded with many
wounds; but at the last he was smitten to the ground by Gothmog, Lord of Balrogs,
whom Ecthelion after slew in Gondolin. There he would have perished, had not
his sons in that moment come up with force to his aid; and the Balrogs left
him, and departed to Angband. Then his sons raised up their father and
bore him back towards Mithrim. But as they drew near to Eithel Sirion and were
upon the upward path to the pass over the mountains, Fлanor bade them halt; for
his wounds were mortal, and he knew that his hour was come. And looking out
from the slopes of Ered Wethrin with his last sight he beheld far off the peaks
of Thangorodrim, mightiest of the towers of Middle-earth, and knew with the
foreknowledge of death that no power of the Noldor would ever overthrow them;
but he cursed the name of Morgoth thrice, and laid it upon his sons to hold to
their oath, and to avenge their father. Then he died; but he had neither burial
nor tomb, for so fiery was his spirit that as it sped his body fell to ash, and
was borne away like smoke; and his likeness has never again appeared in Arda,
neither has his spirit left the halls of Mandos. Thus ended the mightiest of
the Noldor, of whose deeds came both their greatest renown and their most
grievous woe. Now in Mithrim there dwelt Grey-elves, folk
of Beleriand that had wandered north over the mountains, and the Noldor met
them with gladness, as kinsfolk long sundered; but speech at first was not easy
between them, for in their long severance the tongues of the Calaquendi in
Valinor and of the Moriquendi in Beleriand had drawn far apart. From the Elves
of Mithrim the Noldor learned of the power of Elu Thingol, King in Doriath, and
the girdle of enchantment that fenced his realm; and tidings of these great
deeds in the north came south to Menegroth, and to the havens of Brithombar and
Eglarest. Then all the Elves of Beleriand were filled with wonder and with hope
at the coming of their mighty kindred, who thus returned unlocked-for from the
West in the very hour of their need, believing indeed at first that they came
as emissaries of the Valar to deliver them. But even in the hour of the death of Fлanor
an embassy came to his sons from Morgoth, acknowledging defeat, and offering
terms, even to the surrender of a Silmaril. Then Maedhros the tall, the eldest
son, persuaded his brothers to feign to treat with Morgoth, and to meet his
emissaries at the place appointed; but the Noldor had as little thought of
faith as had he. Wherefore each embassy came with greater force than was
agreed; but Morgoth sent the more, and there were Balrogs. Maedhros was
ambushed, and all his company were slain; but he himself was taken alive by the
command of Morgoth, and brought to Angband. Then the brothers of Maedhros drew back, and
fortified a great camp in Hithlum; but Morgoth held Maedhros as hostage, and
sent word that he would not release him unless the Noldor would forsake their
war, returning into the West, or else departing far from Beleriand into the
South of the world. But the sons of Fлanor knew that Morgoth would betray them,
and would not release Maedhros, whatsoever they might do; and they were
constrained also by their oath, and might not for any cause forsake the war
against their Enemy. Therefore Morgoth took Maedhros and hung him from the face
of a precipice upon Thangorodrim, and he was caught to the rock by the wrist of
his right hand in a band of steel. Now rumour came to the camp in Hithlum of
the march of Fingolfin and those that followed him, who had crossed the
Grinding Ice; and all the world lay then in wonder at the coming of the Moon.
But as the host of Fingolfin marched into Mithrim the Sun rose flaming in the
West; and Fingolfin unfurled his blue and silver banners, and blew his horns,
and flowers sprang beneath his marching feet, and the ages of the stars were
ended. At the uprising of the great light the servants of Morgoth fled into
Angband, and Fingolfin passed unopposed through the fastness of Dor Daedeloth
while his foes hid beneath the earth. Then the Elves smote upon the gates of
Angband, and the challenge of their trumpets shook the towers of Thangorodrim;
and Maedhros heard them amid his torment and cried aloud, but his voice was
lost in the echoes of the stone. But Fingolfin, being of other temper than
Fлanor, and wary of the wiles of Morgoth, withdrew from Dor Daedeloth and
turned back towards Mithrim, for he had heard tidings that there he should find
the sons of Fлanor, and he desired also to have the shield of the Mountains of
Shadow while his people rested and grew strong; for he had seen the strength of
Angband, and thought not that it would fall to the sound of trumpets only.
Therefore coming at length to Hithlum he made his first camp and dwelling by
the northern shores of Lake Mithrim. No love was there in the hearts of those
that followed Fingolfin for the House of Fлanor, for the agony of those that
endured the crossing of the Ice had been great, and Fingolfin held the sons the
accomplices of their father. Then there was peril of strife between the hosts;
but grievous as were their losses upon the road, the people of Fingolfin and of
Finrod son of Finarfin were still more numerous than the followers of Fлanor,
and these now withdrew before them, and removed their dwelling to the southern
shore; and the lake lay between them. Many of Fлanor's people indeed repented
of the burning at Losgar, and were filled with amazement at the valour that had
brought the friends whom they had abandoned over the Ice of the North; and they
would have welcomed them, but they dared not, for shame. Thus because of the curse that lay upon them
the Noldor achieved nothing, while Morgoth hesitated, and the dread of light
was new and strong upon the Orcs. But Morgoth arose from thought, and seeing
the division of his foes he laughed. In the pits of Angband he caused vast
smokes and vapours to be made, and they came forth from the reeking tops of the
Iron Mountains, and afar off they could be seen in Mithrim, staining the bright
airs in the first mornings of the world. A wind came out of the east, and bore
them over Hithlum, darkening the new Sun; and they fell, and coiled about the
fields and hollows, and lay upon the waters of Mithrim, drear and poisonous. Then Fingon the valiant, son of Fingolfin,
resolved to heal the feud that divided the Noldor, before their Enemy should be
ready for war; for the earth trembled in the Northlands with the thunder of the
forges of Morgoth underground. Long before, in the bliss of Valinor, before
Melkor was unchained, or lies came between them, Fingon had been close in
friendship with Maedhros; and though he knew not yet that Maedhros had not
forgotten him at the burning of the ships, the thought of their ancient
friendship stung his heart. Therefore he dared a deed which is Justly renowned
among the feats of the princes of the Noldor: alone, and without the counsel of
any, he set forth m search of Maedhros; and aided by the very darkness that
Morgoth had made he came unseen into the fastness of his foes. High upon the
shoulders of Thangorodrim he climbed, and looked in despair upon the desolation
of the land; but no passage or crevice could he find through which he might
come within Morgoth's stronghold. Then in defiance of the Orcs, who cowered
still in the dark vaults beneath the earth, he took his harp and sang a song of
Valinor that the Noldor made of old, before strife was born among the sons of
Finwл; and his voice rang in the mournful hollows that had never heard before
aught save cries of fear and woe. Thus Fingon found what he sought. For
suddenly above him far and faint his song was taken up, and a voice answering
called to him. Maedhros it was that sang amid his torment. But Fingon climbed
to the foot of the precipice where his kinsman hung, and then could go no
further; and he wept when he saw the cruel device of Morgoth. Maedhros
therefore, being in anguish without hope, begged Fingon to shoot him with his
bow; and Fingon strung an arrow, and bent his bow. And seeing no better hope he
cried to Manwл, saying: 'O King to whom all birds are dear, speed now this
feathered shaft, and recall some pity for the Noldor in their need!' His prayer was answered swiftly. For Manwл
to whom all birds are dear, and to whom they bring news upon Taniquetil from
Middle-earth, had sent forth the race of Eagles, commanding them to dwell in
the crags of the North, and to keep watch upon Morgoth; for Manwл still had
pity for the exiled Elves. And the Eagles brought news of much that passed in
those days to the sad ears of Manwл. Now, even as Fingon bent his bow, there
flew down from the high airs Thorondor, King of Eagles, mightiest of all birds
that have ever been, whose outstretched wings spanned thirty fathoms; and
staying Fingon's hand he took him up, and bore him to the face of the rock
where Maedhros hung. But Fingon could not release the hell-wrought bond upon
his wrist, nor sever it, nor draw it from the stone. Again therefore in his
pain Maedhros begged that he would slay him; but Fingon cut off his hand above
the wrist, and Thorondor bore them back to Mithrim. There Maedhros in time was healed; for the
fire of life was hot within him, and his strength was of the ancient world,
such as those possessed who were nurtured in Valinor. His body recovered from
his torment and became hale, but the shadow of his pain was in his heart; and
he lived to wield his sword with left hand more deadly than his right had been.
By this deed Fingon won great renown, and all the Noldor praised him; and the
hatred between the houses of Fingolfin and Fлanor was assuaged. For Maedhros
begged forgiveness for the desertion in Araman; and he waived his claim to
kingship over all the Noldor, saying to Fingolfin: 'If there lay no grievance
between us, lord, still the kingship would rightly come to you, the eldest here
of the house of Finwл, and not the least wise.' But to this his brothers did
not all in their hearts agree. Therefore even as Mandos foretold the House
of Fлanor were called the Dispossessed, because the over-lordship passed from
it, the elder, to the house of Fingolfin, both in Elendл and in Beleriand, and
because also of the loss of the Silmarils. But the Noldor being again united
set a watch upon the borders of Dor Daedeloth, and Angband was beleaguered from
west, and south, and east; and they sent forth messengers far and wide to
explore the countries of Beleriand, and to treat with the people that dwelt
there. Now King Thingol welcomed not with a full
heart the coming of so many princes in might out of the West, eager for new
realms; and he would not open his kingdom, nor remove its girdle of
enchantment, for wise with the wisdom of Melian he trusted not that the restraint
of Morgoth would endure. Alone of the princes of the Noldor those of Finarfin's
house were suffered to pass within the confines of Doriath; for they could
claim close kinship with King Thingol himself, since their mother was Eдrwen of
Alqualondл, Olwл's daughter. Angrod son of Finarfin was the first of the
Exiles to come to Menegroth, as messenger of his brother Finrod, and he spoke
long with the King, telling him of the deeds of the Noldor in the north, and of
their numbers, and of the ordering of their force; but being true, and
wisehearted, and thinking all griefs now forgiven, he spoke no word concerning
the kinslaying, nor of the manner of the exile of the Noldor and the oath of
Fлanor. King Thingol hearkened to the words of Angrod; and ere he went he said
to him: 'Thus shall you speak for me to those that sent you. In Hithlum the
Noldor have leave to dwell, and in the highlands of Dorthonion, and in the
lands east of Doriath that are empty and wild; but elsewhere there are many of
my people, and I would not have them restrained of their freedom, still less
ousted from their homes. Beware therefore how you princes of the West bear
yourselves; for I am the Lord of Beleriand, and all who seek to dwell there
shall hear my word. Into Doriath none shall come to abide but only such as I
call as guests, or who seek me in great need.' Now the lords of the Noldor held council in
Mithrim, and thither came Angrod out of Doriath, bearing the message of King
Thingol. Cold seemed its welcome to the Noldor, and the sons of Fлanor were
angered at the words; but Maedhros laughed, saying: 'A king is he that can hold
his own, or eke his title is vain. Thingol does but grant us lands where his
power does not run. Indeed Doriath alone would be his realm this day, but for
the coming of the Noldor. Therefore in Doriath let him reign, and be glad that
he has the sons of Finwл for his neighbours, not the Orcs of Morgoth that we
found. Elsewhere it shall go as seems good to us." But Caranthir, who loved not the sons of
Finarfin, and was the harshest of the brothers and the most quick to anger,
cried aloud: 'Yea more! Let not the sons of Finarfin run hither and thither
with their tales to this Dark Elf in his caves! Who made them our spokesmen to
deal with him? And though they be come indeed to Beleriand, let them not so
swiftly forget that their father is a lord of the Noldor, though their mother
be of other kin.' Then Angrod was wrathful and went forth from
the council. Maedhros indeed rebuked Caranthir; but the greater part of the
Noldor, of both followings, hearing his words were troubled in heart, fearing
the fell spirit of the sons of Fлanor that it seemed would ever be like to
burst forth in rash word or violence. But Maedhros restrained his brothers, and
they departed from the council, and soon afterwards they left Mithrim and went
eastward beyond Aros to the wide lands about the Hill of Himring. That region
was named thereafter the March of Maedhros; for northwards there was little
defence of hill or river against assault from Angband. There Maedhros and his
brothers kept watch, gathering all such people as would come to them, and they
had few dealings with their kinsfolk westward, save at need. It is said indeed
that Maedhros himself devised this plan, to lessen the chances of strife, and
because he was very willing that the chief peril of assault should fall upon
himself; and he remained for his part in friendship with the houses of
Fingolfin and Finarfin, and would come among them at times for common counsel.
Yet he also was bound by the oath, though it slept now for a time. Now the people of Caranthir dwelt furthest
east beyond the upper waters of Gelion, about Lake Helevorn under Mount Rerir
and to the southward; and they climbed the heights of Ered Luin and looked
eastward in wonder, for wild and wide it seemed to them were the lands of
Middle-earth. And thus it was that Caranthir's people came upon the Dwarves,
who after the onslaught of Morgoth and the coming of the Noldor had ceased
their traffic into Beleriand. But though either people loved skill and were
eager to learn, no great love was there between them; for the Dwarves were
secret and quick to resentment, and Caranthir was haughty and scarce concealed
his scorn for the unloveliness of the Naugrim, and his people followed their
lord. Nevertheless since both peoples feared and hated Morgoth they made
alliance, and had of it great profit; for the Naugrim learned many secrets of
craft in those days, so that the smiths and masons of Nogrod and Belegost
became renowned among their kin, and when the Dwarves began again to journey
into Beleriand all the traffic of the dwarf-mines passed first through the
hands of Caranthir, and thus great riches came to him. When twenty years of the Sun had passed,
Fingolfin King of the Noldor made a great feast; and it was held in the spring
near to the pools of Ivrin, whence the swift river Narog rose, for there the
lands were green and fair at the feet of the Mountains of Shadow that shielded
them from the north. The joy of that feast was long remembered in later days of
sorrow; and it was called Mereth Aderthad, the Feast of Reuniting. Thither came
many of the chieftains and people of Fingolfin and Finrod; and of the sons of
Fлanor Maedhros and Maglor, with warriors of the eastern March; and there came
also great numbers of the Grey-elves, wanderers of the woods of Beleriand and
folk of the Havens, with Cнrdan their lord. There came even Green-elves from
Ossiriand, the Land of Seven Rivers, far off under the walls of the Blue Mountains;
but out of Doriath there came but two messengers, Mablung and Daeron, bearing
greetings from the King. At Mereth Aderthad many counsels were taken
in good will, and oaths were sworn of league and friendship; and it is told
that at this feast the tongue of the Grey-elves was most spoken even by the
Noldor, for they learned swiftly the speech of Beleriand, whereas the Sindar
were slow to master the tongue of Valinor. The hearts of the Noldor were high
and full of hope, and to many among them it seemed that the words of Fлanor had
been Justified, bidding them seek freedom and fair kingdoms in Middle-earth;
and indeed there followed after long years of peace, while their swords fenced
Beleriand from the ruin of Morgoth, and his power was shut behind his gates. In
those days there was joy beneath the new Sun and Moon, and all the land was
glad; but still the Shadow brooded in the north. And when again thirty years had passed,
Turgon son of Fingolfin left Nevrast where he dwelt and sought out Finrod his
friend upon the island of Tol Sirion, and they journeyed southward along the
river, being weary for a while of the northern mountains; and as they journeyed
night came upon them beyond the Meres of Twilight beside the waters of Sirion,
and they slept upon his banks beneath the summer stars. But Ulmo coming up the
river laid a deep sleep upon them and heavy dreams; and the trouble of the
dreams remained after they awoke, but neither said aught to the other, for
their memory was not clear, and each believed that Ulmo had sent a message to
him alone. But unquiet was upon them ever after, and doubt of what should
befall, and they wandered often alone in untrodden lands, seeking far and wide
for places of hidden strength; for it seemed to each that he was bidden to
prepare for a day of evil, and to establish a retreat, lest Morgoth should
burst from Angband and overthrow the armies of the North. Now on a time Finrod and Galadriel his
sister were the guests of Thingol their kinsman in Doriath. Then Finrod was
filled with wonder at the strength and majesty of Menegroth, its treasuries and
armouries and its many-pillared halls of stone; and it came into his heart that
he would build wide halls behind ever-guarded gates in some deep and secret
place beneath the hills. Therefore he opened his heart to Thingol, telling him
of his dreams; and Thingol spoke to him of the deep gorge of the River Narog,
and the caves under the High Faroth in its steep western shore, and when he
departed he gave him guides to lead him to that place of which few yet knew.
Thus Finrod came to the Caverns of Narog, and began to establish there deep
halls and armouries after the fashion of the mansions of Menegroth; and that
stronghold was called Nargothrond. In that labour Finrod was aided by the
Dwarves of the Blue Mountains; and they were rewarded well, for Finrod had
brought more treasures out of Tirion than any other of the princes of the
Noldor. And in that time was made for him the Nauglamнr, the Necklace of the
Dwarves, most renowned of their works in the Elder Days. It was a carcanet of
gold, and set therein were gems uncounted from Valinor; but it had a power
within it so that it rested lightly on its wearer as a strand of flax, and
whatsoever neck it clasped it sat always with grace and loveliness. There in Nargothrond Finrod made his home
with many of his people, and he was named in the tongue of the Dwarves
Felagund, Hewer of Caves; and that name he bore thereafter until his end. But
Finrod Felagund was not the first to dwell m the caves beside the River Narog. Galadriel his sister went not with him to
Nargothrond, for in Doriath dwelt Celeborn, kinsman of Thingol, and there was
great love between them. Therefore she remained in the Hidden Kingdom, and
abode with Melian, and of her learned great lore and wisdom concerning
Middle-earth. But Turgon remembered the city set upon a
hill, Tirion the fair with its tower and tree, and he found not what he sought,
but returned to Nevrast, and sat in peace in Vinyamar by the shores of the sea.
And in the next year Ulmo himself appeared to him, and bade him go forth again
alone into the Vale of Sirion; and Turgon went forth, and by the guidance of
Ulmo he discovered the hidden vale of Tumladen in the Encircling Mountains, in
the midst of which there was a hill of stone. Of this he spoke to none as yet,
but returned once more to Nevrast, and there began in his secret counsels to
devise the plan of a city after the manner of Tirion upon Tъna, for which his
heart yearned in exile. Now Morgoth, believing the report of his
spies that the lords of the Noldor were wandering abroad with little thought of
war, made trial of the strength and watchfulness of his enemies. Once more,
with little warning, his might was stirred, and suddenly there were earthquakes
in the north, and fire came from fissures in the earth, and the Iron Mountains
vomited flame; and Orcs poured forth across the plain of Ard-galen. Thence they
thrust down the Pass of Sirion in the west, and in the east they burst through
the land of Maglor, in the gap between the hills of Maedhros and the outliers
of the Blue Mountains. But Fingolfin and Maedhros were not sleeping, and while
others sought out the scattered bands of Orcs that strayed in Beleriand did
great evil they came upon the main host from either side as it was assaulting
Dorthonion; and they defeated the servants of Morgoth, and pursuing them across
Ard-galen destroyed them utterly, to the least and last, within sight of
Angband's gates. That was the third great battle of the Wars of Beleriand, and it
was named Dagor Aglareb, the Glorious Battle. A victory it was, and yet a warning; and the
princes took heed of it, and thereafter drew closer their leaguer, and
strengthened and ordered their watch, setting the Siege of Angband. which
lasted wellnigh four hundred years of the Sun. For a long time after Dagor
Aglareb no servant of Morgoth would venture from his gates, for they feared the
lords of the Noldor; and Fingolfin boasted that save by treason among
themselves Morgoth could never again burst from the leaguer of the Eldar, nor
come upon them at unawares. Yet the Noldor could not capture Angband, nor could
they regain the Silmarils; and war never wholly ceased in all that time of the
Siege, for Morgoth devised new evils, and ever and anon he would make trial of
his enemies. Nor could the stronghold of Morgoth be ever wholly encircled: for
the Iron Mountains, from whose great curving wall the towers of Thangorodrim
were thrust forward, defended it upon either side, and were impassable to the
Noldor, because of their snow and ice. Thus in his rear and to the north
Morgoth had no foes, and by that way his spies at times went out, and came by
devious routes into Beleriand. And desiring above all to sow fear and disunion
among the Eldar, he commanded the Orcs to take alive any of them that they
could and bring them bound to Angband; and some he so daunted by the terror of
his eyes that they needed no chains more, but walked ever in fear of him, doing
his will wherever they might be. Thus Morgoth learned much of all that had
befallen since the rebellion of Fлanor, and he rejoiced, seeing therein the
seed of many dissensions among his foes. When nearly one hundred years had run since
the Dagor Aglareb, Morgoth endeavoured to take Fingolfin at unawares (for he
knew of the vigilance of Maedhros); and he sent forth an army into the white
north, and they turned west and again south and came down the coasts to the
Firth of Drengist, by the route that Fingolfin followed from the Grinding Ice.
Thus they would enter into the realm of Hithlum from the west; but they were
espied in time, and Fingon fell upon them among the hills at the head of the
Firth, and most of the Orcs were driven into the sea. This was not reckoned
among the great battles, for the Orcs were not in great number, and only a part
of the people of Hithlum fought there. But thereafter there was peace for many
years, and no open assault from Angband, for Morgoth perceived now that the
Orcs unaided were no match for the Noldor; and he sought in his heart for new
counsel. Again after a hundred years Glaurung, the
first of the Urulуki, the fire-drakes of the North, issued from Angband's gates
by night. He was yet young and scarce half-grown, for long and slow is the life
of the dragons, but the Elves fled before him to Ered Wethrin and Dorthonion in
dismay; and he defiled the fields of Ard-galen. Then Fingon prince of Hithlum
rode against him with archers on horseback, and hemmed him round with a ring of
swift riders; and Glaurung could not endure their darts, being not yet come to
his full armoury, and he fled back to Angband, and came not forth again for
many years. Fingon won great praise, and the Noldor rejoiced; for few foresaw
the full meaning and threat of this new thing. But Morgoth was ill-pleased that
Glaurung had disclosed himself over-soon; and after his defeat there was the
Long Peace of wellnigh two hundred years. In all that time there were but
affrays on the marches, and all Beleriand prospered and grew rich. Behind the
guard of their armies in the north the Noldor built their dwellings and their
towers, and many fair things they made in those days, and poems and histories
and books of lore. In many parts of the land the Noldor and the Sindar became
welded into one people, and spoke the same tongue; though this difference
remained between them, that the Noldor had the greater power of mind and body.
and were the mightier warriors and sages, and they built with stone, and loved
the hill-slopes and open lands. But the Sindar had the fairer voices and were
more skilled in music, save only Maglor son of Fлanor, and they loved the woods
and the riversides; and some of the Grey-elves still wandered far and wide
without settled abode, and they sang as they went. Chapter 14 Of Beleriand and Its Realms This is the fashion
of the lands into which the Noldor came, in the north of the western regions of
Middle-earth, in the ancient days; and here also is told of the manner in which
the chieftains of the Eldar held their lands and the leaguer upon Morgoth after
the Dagor Aglareb, the third battle in the Wars of Beleriand. In the north of the world Melkor had in the
ages past reared Ered Engrin, the Iron Mountains, as a fence to his citadel of
Utumno; and they stood upon the borders of the regions of everlasting cold, in
a great curve from east to west. Behind the walls of Ered Engrin in the west,
where they bent back northwards, Melkor built another fortress, as a defence
against assault that might come from Valinor; and when he came back to
Middle-earth, as has been told, he took up his abode in the endless dungeons of
Angband, the Hells of Iron, for in the War of the Powers the Valar, in their
haste to overthrow him in his great stronghold of Utumno, did not wholly
destroy Angband nor search out all its deep places. Beneath Ered Engrin he made
a great tunnel, which issued south of the mountains; and there he made a mighty
gate. But above this gate, and behind it even to the mountains, he piled the
thunderous towers of Thangorodrim, that were made of the ash and slag of his
subterranean furnaces, and the vast refuse of his tunnellings. They were black
and desolate and exceedingly lofty; and smoke issued from their tops, dark and
foul upon the northern sky. Before the gates of Angband filth and desolation
spread southward for many miles over the wide plain of Ard-galen; but after the
coming of the Sun rich grass arose there, and while Angband was besieged and
its gates shut there were green things even among the pits and broken rocks
before the doors of hell. To the west of Thangorodrim lay Hisilуmл,
the Land of Mist, for so it was named by the Noldor in their own tongue because
of the clouds that Morgoth sent thither during their first encampment; Hithlum
it became in the tongue of the Sindar that dwelt in those regions. It was a
fair land while the Siege of Angband lasted, although its air was cool and
winter there was cold. In the west it was bounded by Ered Lуmin, the Echoing
Mountains that marched near the sea; and in the east and south by the great
curve of Ered Wethrin, the Shadowy Mountains, that looked across Ard-galen and
the Vale of Sirion. Fingolfin and Fingon his son held Hithlum,
and the most part of Fingolfin's folk dwelt in Mithrim about the shores of the
great lake; to Fingon was assigned Dor-lуmin, that lay to the west of the
Mountains of Mithrim. But their chief fortress was at Eithel Sirion in the east
of Ered Wethrin, whence they kept watch upon Ard-galen; and their cavalry rode
upon that plain even to the shadow of Thangorodrim, for from few their horses
had increased swiftly, and the grass of Ard-galen was rich and green. Of those
horses many of the sires came from Valinor, and they were given to Fingolfin by
Maedhros in atonement of his losses, for they had been carried by ship to
Losgar. West of Dor-lуmin, beyond the Echoing
Mountains, which south of the Firth of Drengist marched inland, lay Nevrast,
that signifies the Hither Shore in the Sindarin tongue. That name was given at
first to all the coast-lands south of the Firth, but afterwards only to the
land whose shores lay between Drengist and Mount Taras. There for many years
was the realm of Turgon the wise, son of Fingolfin, bounded by the sea, and by
Ered Lуmin, and by the hills which continued the walls of Ered Wethrin
westward, from Ivrin to Mount Taras, which stood upon a promontory. By some
Nevrast was held to belong rather to Beleriand than to Hithlum, for it was a
milder land, watered by the wet winds from the sea and sheltered from the cold
north winds that blew over Hithlum. It was a hollow land, surrounded by
mountains and great coast-cliffs higher than the plains behind, and no river
flowed thence; and there was a great mere in the midst of Nevrast, with no
certain shores, being encircled by wide marshes. Linaewen was the name of that
mere, because of the multitude of birds that dwelt there, of such as love tall
reeds and shallow pools. At the coming of the Noldor many of the Grey-elves
lived in Nevrast near to the coasts, and especially about Mount Taras in the
south-west; for to that place Ulmo and Ossл had been wont to come in days of
old. All that people took Turgon for their lord, and the mingling of the Noldor
and the Sindar came to pass soonest there; and Turgon dwelt long in those halls
that he named Vinyamar, under Mount Taras beside the sea. South of Ard-galen the great highland named
Dorthonion stretched for sixty leagues from west to east; great pine forests it
bore, especially on its northern and western sides. By gentle slopes from the
'plain it rose to a bleak and lofty land, where lay many tarns at the feet of
bare tors whose heads were higher than the peaks of Ered Wethrin; but southward
where it looked towards Doriath it fell suddenly in dreadful precipices. From
the northern slopes of Dorthonion Angrod and Aegnor, sons of Finarfin, looked
out over the fields of Ard-galen, and were the vassals of their brother Finrod,
lord of Nargothrond; their people were few, for the land was barren, and the
great highlands behind were deemed to be a bulwark that Morgoth would not lightly
seek to cross. Between Dorthonion and the Shadowy Mountains
there was a narrow vale, whose sheer walls were clad with pines; but the vale
itself was green, for the River Sirion flowed through it, hastening towards
Beleriand. Finrod held the Pass of Sirion, and upon the isle of Tol Sirion in
the midst of the river he built a mighty watch-tower, Minas Tirith; but after
Nargothrond was made he committed that fortress mostly to the keeping of
Orodreth his brother. Now the great and fair country of Beleriand
lay on either side of the mighty river Sirion, renowned in song, which rose at
Eithel Sirion and skirted the edge of Ard-galen ere he plunged through the
pass, becoming ever fuller with the streams of the mountains. Thence he flowed
south for one hundred and thirty leagues, gathering the waters of many
tributaries, until with a mighty flood he reached his many mouths and sandy
delta in the Bay of Balar. And following Sirion from north to south there lay
upon the right hand m West Beleriand the Forest of Brethil between Sirion and
Teiglin, and then the realm of Nargothrond, between Teiglin and Narog. And the
River Narog rose in the falls of Ivrin in the southern face of Dor-lуmin, and
flowed some eighty leagues ere he joined Sirion in Nan-tathren, the Land of
Willows. South of Nan-tathren was a region of meads filled with many flowers,
where few folk dwelt; and beyond lay the marshes and isles of reed about the
mouths of Sirion, and the sands of his delta empty of all living things save
birds of the sea.
But the realm of Nargothrond extended also
west of Narog to the River Nenning, that reached the sea at Eglarest; and
Finrod became the overlord of all the Elves of Beleriand between Sirion and the
sea, save only in the Falas. There dwelt those of the Sindar who still loved
ships, and Cнrdan the shipbuilder was their lord; but between Cнrdan and Finrod
there was friendship and alliance, and with the aid of the Noldor the havens of
Brithombar and Eglarest were built anew. Behind their great walls they became
fair towns and harbours with quays and piers of stone. Upon the cape west of
Eglarest Finrod raised the tower of Barad Nimras to watch the western sea,
though needlessly, as it proved; for at no time ever did Morgoth essay to build
ships or to make war by sea. Water all his servants shunned, and to the sea
none would willingly go nigh, save in dire need. With the aid of the Elves of
the Havens some of the folk of Nargothrond built new ships, and they went forth
and explored the great Isle of Balar, thinking there to prepare a last refuge,
if evil came; but it was not their fate that they should ever dwell there. Thus the realm of Finrod was the greatest by
far, though he was the youngest of the great lords of the Noldor, Fingolfin,
Fingon, and Maedhros, and Finrod Felagund. But Fingolfin was held overlord of
all the Noldor, and Fingon after him, though their own realm was but the
northern land of Hithlum; yet their people were the most hardy and valiant,
most feared by the Orcs and most hated by Morgoth. Upon the left hand of Sirion lay East
Beleriand, at its widest a hundred leagues from Sirion to Gelion and the
borders of Ossiriand; and first, between Sirion and Mindeb, lay the empty land
of Dimbar under the peaks of the Crissaegrim, abode of eagles. Between Mindeb
and the upper waters of Esgalduin lay the no-land of Nan Dungortheb; and that
region was filled with fear, for upon its one side the power of Melian fenced
the north march of Doriath, but upon the other side the sheer precipices of
Ered Gorgoroth, Mountains of Terror, fell down from high Dorthonion. Thither,
as was earlier told, Ungoliant had fled from the whips of the Balrogs, and
there she dwelt a while, filling the ravines with her deadly gloom, and there
still, when she had passed away, her foul offspring lurked and wove their evil
nets; and the thin waters that spilled from Ered Gorgoroth were defiled, and
perilous to drink, for the hearts of those that tasted them were filled with
shadows of madness and despair. All living things else shunned that land, and
the Noldor would pass through Nan Dungortheb only at great need, by paths near
to the borders of Doriath and furthest from the haunted hills. That way was
made long before, in the time ere Morgoth returned to Middle-earth; and if one
fared upon it he came eastwards to Esgalduin, where still there stood in the
days of the Siege the stone bridge of Iant Taur. Thence he passed through Dor
Dнnen, the Silent Land, and crossing the Arossiach (which signifies the Fords
of Aros) came to the north marches of Beleriand, where dwelt the sons of
Fлanor. Southward lay the guarded woods of Doriath,
abode of Thingol the Hidden King, into whose realm none passed save by his
will. Its northern and lesser part, the Forest of Neldoreth, was bounded east
and south by the dark river Esgalduin, which bent westward in the midst of the
land; and between Aros and Esgalduin lay the denser and greater woods of
Region. Upon the southern bank of Esgalduin, where it turned westward towards
Sirion, were the Caves of Menegroth; and all Doriath lay east of Sirion save
for a narrow region of woodland between the meeting of Teiglin and Sirion and
the Meres of Twilight. By the people of Doriath this wood was called Nivrim,
the West March; great oak-trees grew there, and it also was encompassed within
the Girdle of Melian, that so some portion of Sirion which she loved in
reverence of Ulmo should be wholly under the power of Thingol. In the south-west of Doriath, where Aros
flowed into Sirion, lay great pools and marshes on either side of the river,
which halted there in his course and strayed in many channels. That region was
named Aelin-uial, the Twilight Meres, for they were wrapped in mists, and the
enchantment of Doriath lay over them. Now all the northern part of Beleriand
sloped southward to this point and then for a while was plain, and the flood of
Sirion was stayed. But south of Aelin-uial the land fell suddenly and steeply;
and all the lower fields of Sirion were divided from the upper fields by this
fall, which to one looking from the south northward appeared as an endless
chain of hills running from Eglarest beyond Narog in the west to Amon Ereb in
the east, within far sight of Gelion. Narog came through these hills in a deep
gorge, and flowed over rapids bat had no fall, and on its western bank the land
rose into the great wooded highlands of Tauren-Faroth. On the west side of this
gorge, where the short and foaming stream Ringwil tumbled headlong into Narog
from the High Faroth, Finrod established Nargothrond. But some twenty-five
leagues east of the gorge of Nargothrond Sirion fell from the north in a mighty
fall below the Meres, and then he plunged suddenly underground into great
tunnels that the weight of his falling waters delved; and he issued again three
leagues southward with great noise and smoke through rocky arches at the foot
of the hills which were called the Gates of Sirion. This dividing fall was named Andram, the
Long Wall, from Nargothrond to Ramdal, the Wall's End, in East Beleriand. But
in the east it became ever less sheer, for the vale of Gelion sloped steadily
southward, and Gelion had neither fall nor rapids throughout his course, but
was ever swifter than was Sirion. Between Ramdal and Gelion there stood a
single hill of great extent and gentle slopes, but seeming mightier than it
was, for it stood alone; and that hill was named Amon Ereb. Upon Amon Ereb died
Denethor, lord of the Nandor that dwelt in Ossiriand, who marched to the aid of
Thingol against Morgoth in those days when the Orcs first came down in force,
and broke the starlit peace of Beleriand; and upon that hill Maedhros dwelt
after the great defeat. But south of the Andram, between Sirion and Gelion, was
a wild land of tangled forest in which no folk went, save here and there a few
Dark Elves wandering; Taur-im-Duinath it was named, the Forest between the
Rivers. Gelion was a great river; and he rose in two
sources and had at first two branches; Little Gelion that came from the Hill of
Himring, and Greater Gelion that came from Mount Rerir. From the meeting of his
arms he flowed south for forty leagues before he found his tributaries; and
before he found the sea he was twice as long as Sirion, though less wide and
full, for more rain fell in Hithlum and Dorthonion, whence Sirion drew his
waters, than in the east. From Ered Luin flowed the six tributaries of Gelion:
Ascar (that was after named Rathlуriel), Thalos, Legolin, Brilthor, Duilwen,
and Adurant, swift and turbulent streams, falling steeply from the mountains;
and between Ascar in the north and Adurant in the south, and between Gelion and
Ered Luin, lay the far green country of Ossiriand, the Land of Seven Rivers.
Now at a point nearly midway in its course the stream of Adurant divided and
then joined again; and the island that its waters enclosed was named Tol Galen,
the Green Isle. There Beren and Lъthien dwelt after their return. In Ossiriand dwelt the Green-elves, in the
protection of their rivers; for after Sirion Ulmo loved Gelion above all the
waters of the western world. The woodcraft of the Elves of Ossiriand was such
that a stranger might pass through their land from end to end and see none of
them. They were clad in green in spring and summer, and the sound of their
singing could be heard even across the waters of Gelion; wherefore the Noldor
named that country Lindon, the land of music, and the mountains beyond they
named Ered Lindon, for they first saw them from Ossiriand. East of Dorthonion the marches of Beleriand
were most open to attack, and only hills of no great height guarded the vale of
Gelion from the north. In that region, upon the March of Maedhros and in the
lands behind, dwelt the sons of Fлanor with many people; and their riders
passed often over the vast northern plain, Lothlann the wide and empty, east of
Ard-galen, lest Morgoth should attempt any sortie towards Bast Beleriand. The
chief citadel of Maedhros was upon the Hill of Himring, the Ever-cold; and that
was wide-shouldered, bare of trees, and flat upon its summit, surrounded by
many lesser hills. Between Himring and Dorthonion there was a pass, exceeding
steep upon the west, and that was the Pass of Aglon, and was a gate unto
Doriath; and a bitter wind blew ever through it from the north. But Celegorm
and Curufin fortified Aglon and held it with great strength, and all the land
of Himlad southward between the River Aros that rose in Dorthonion and his
tributary Celon that came from Himring. Between the arms of Gelion was the ward of
Maglor, and here in one place the hills failed altogether: there it was that
the Orcs came into East Beleriand before the Third Battle. Therefore the Noldor
held strength of cavalry In the plains at that place; and the people of
Caranthir fortified the mountains to the east of Maglor's Gap. There Mount
Rerir, and about it many lesser heights, stood out from the main range of Ered
Lindon westward; and in the angle between Rerir and Ered Lindon there was a
lake, shadowed by mountains on all sides save the south. That was Lake
Helevorn, deep and dark, and beside it Caranthir had his abode; but all the
great land between Gelion and the mountains, and between Rerir and the River
Ascar, was called by the Noldor Thargelion, which signifies the Land beyond
Gelion, or Dor Caranthir, the Land of Caranthir; and it was here that the
Noldor first met the Dwarves. But Thargelion was before called by the
Grey-elves Talath Rhъnen, the East Vale. Thus the sons of Fлanor under Maedhros were
the lords of East Beleriand, but their people were in that time mostly in the
north of the land, and southward they rode only to hunt in the greenwoods. But
there Amrod and Amras had their abode, and they came seldom northward while the
Siege lasted; and there also other of the Elf-lords would ride at times, even
from afar, for the land was wild but very fair. Of these Fin-rod Felagund came
most often, for he had great love of wandering and he came even into Ossiriand,
and won the friendship of the Green-elves. But none of the Noldor went ever
over Ered Lindon, while their realm lasted; and little news and late came into
Beleriand of what passed in the regions of the East. Chapter 15 Of the Noldor in Beleriand It has been told how
by the guidance of Ulmo Turgon of Nevrast discovered the hidden vale of
Tumladen; and that (as was after known) lay east of the upper waters of Sirion,
in a ring of mountains tall and sheer, and no living thing came there save the
eagles of Thorondor. But there was a deep way under the mountains delved in the
darkness of the world by waters that flowed out to join the streams of Sirion;
and this way Turgon found, and so came to the green plain amid the mountains,
and saw the island-hill that stood there of hard smooth stone; for the vale had
been a great lake in ancient days. Then Turgon knew that he had found the place
of his desire, and he resolved to build there a fair city, a memorial of Tirion
upon Tъna; but he returned to Nevrast, and remained there in peace, though he
pondered ever in his thought how he should accomplish his design. Now after the Dagor Aglareb the unquiet that
Ulmo set in his heart returned to him, and he summoned many of the hardiest and
most skilled of his people, and led them secretly to the hidden vale, and there
they began the building of the city that Turgon had devised; and they set a
watch all about it, that none might come upon their work from without, and the
power of Ulmo that ran in Sirion protected them. But Turgon dwelt still for the
most part in Nevrast, until it came to pass that at last the city was
full-wrought, after two and fifty years of secret toil. It is said that Turgon
appointed its name to be Ondolindл in the speech of the Elves of Valinor, the
Rock of the Music of Water, for there were fountains upon the hill; but in the
Sindarin tongue the name was changed, and it became Gondolin, the Hidden Rock.
Then Turgon prepared to depart from Nevrast and leave his halls in Vinyamar
beside the sea; and there Ulmo came to him once again, and spoke with him. And
he said: 'Now thou shalt go at last to Gondolin, Turgon; and I will maintain my
power in the Vale of Sirion, and in all the waters therein, so that none shall
mark thy going, nor shall any find there the hidden entrance against thy will.
Longest of all the realms of the Eldaliл shall Gondolin stand against Melkor.
But love not too well the work of thy hands and the devices of thy heart; and
remember that the true hope of the Noldor lieth in the West and cometh from the
Sea.' And Ulmo warned Turgon that he also lay
under the Doom of Mandos, which Ulmo had no power to remove. 'Thus it may come
to pass,' he said, 'that the curse of the Noldor shall find thee too ere the
end, and treason awake within thy walls. Then they shall be in peril of fire.
But if this peril draweth nigh indeed, then even from Nevrast one shall come to
warn thee, and from him beyond ruin and fire hope shall be born for Elves and
Men. Leave therefore in this house arms and a sword, that in years to come he
may find them, and thus shalt thou know him, and not be deceived.' And Ulmo
declared to Turgon of what kind and stature should be the helm and mail and
sword that he left behind. Then Ulmo returned to the sea, and Turgon
sent forth all his people, even to a third part of the Noldor of Fingolfin's
following, and a yet greater host of the Sindar; and they passed away, company
by company, secretly, under the shadows of Ered Wethrin, and they came unseen
to Gondolin, and none knew whither they had gone. And last of all Turgon arose,
and went with his household silently through the hills, and passed the gates in
the mountains, and they were shut behind him. Through many long years none passed inward
thereafter, save Hъrin and Huor only; and the host of Turgon came never forth
again until the Year of Lamentation after three hundred and fifty years and
more. But behind the circle of the mountains the people of Turgon grew and
throve, and they put forth their skill in labour unceasing, so that Gondolin
upon Amon Gwareth became fair indeed and fit to compare even with Elven Tirion
beyond the sea. High and white were its walls, and smooth its stairs, and tall
and strong was the Tower of the King. There shining fountains played, and in
the courts of Turgon stood images of the Trees of old, which Turgon himself
wrought with elven-craft; and the Tree which he made of gold was named Glingal,
and the Tree whose flowers he made of silver was named Belthil. But fairer than
all the wonders of Gondolin was Idril, Turgon's daughter, she that was called
Celebrindal, the Silver-foot, whose hair was as the gold of Laurelin before the
coming of Melkor. Thus Turgon lived long in bliss; but Nevrast was desolate,
and remained empty of living folk until the ruin of Beleriand. Now while the city of Gondolin was building
in secret, Finrod Felagund wrought in the deep places of Nargothrond; but
Galadriel his sister dwelt, as has been told, in Thingol's realm in Doriath.
And at times Melian and Galadriel would speak together of Valinor and the bliss
of old; but beyond the dark hour of the death of the Trees Galadriel would not
go, but ever fell silent. And on a time Melian said: 'There is some woe that
lies upon you and your kin. That I can see in you, but all else is hidden from
me; for by no vision or thought can I perceive anything that passed or passes
in the West: a shadow lies over all the land of Aman, and reaches far out over
the sea. Why will you not tell me more?' 'For that woe is past,' said Galadriel; 'and
I would take what joy is here left, untroubled by memory. And maybe there is
woe enough yet to come, though still hope may seem bright.' Then Melian looked in her eyes, and said: 'I
believe not that the Noldor came forth as messengers of the Valar, as was said
at first: not though they came in the very hour of our need. For they speak
never of the Valar, nor have their high lords brought any message to Thingol,
whether from Manwл, or Ulmo, or even from Olwл the King's brother, and his own
folk that went over the sea. For what cause, Galadriel, were the high people of
the Noldor driven forth as exiles from Aman? Or what evil lies on the sons of
Fлanor that they are so haughty and so fell? Do I not strike near the truth?' "Near,' said Galadriel; 'save that we
were not driven forth, but came of our own will, and against that of the Valar.
And through great peril and in despite of the Valar for this purpose we came:
to take vengeance upon Morgoth, and regain what he stole.' Then Galadriel spoke to Melian of the
Silmarils, and of the slaying of King Finwл at Formenos: but still she said no
word of the Oath, nor of the Kinslaying, nor of the burning of the ships at
Losgar. But Melian said: 'Now much you tell me, and yet more I perceive. A
darkness you would cast over the long road from Tirion, but I see evil there,
which Thingol should learn for his guidance.' 'Maybe,' said Galadriel; 'but not of me.' And Melian spoke then no more of these
matters with Galadriel; but she told to King Thingol all that she had heard of
the Silmarils. 'This is a great matter,' she said, 'greater indeed than the
Noldor themselves understand; for the Light of Aman and the fate of Arda lie
locked now in these things, the work of Fлanor, who is gone. They shall not be
recovered, I foretell, by any power of the Eldar; and the world shall be broken
in battles that are to come, ere they are wrested from Morgoth. See now! Fлanor
they have slain, and many another, as I guess; but first of all the deaths they
have brought and yet shall bring was Finwл your friend. Morgoth slew him, ere
he fled from Aman.' Then Thingol was silent, being filled with
grief and foreboding; but at length he said: 'Now at last I understand the
coming of the Noldor out of the West, at which I wondered much before. Not to
our aid did they come (save by chance); for those that remain in Middle-earth
the Valar will leave to their own devices, until the uttermost need. For
vengeance and redress of their loss the Noldor came. Yet all the more sure
shall they be as allies against Morgoth, with whom it is not now to be thought
that they shall ever make treaty.' But Melian said: 'Truly for these causes
they came; but for others also. Beware of the sons of Fлanor! The shadow of the
wrath of the Valar lies upon them; and they have done evil, I perceive, both in
Aman and to their own kin. A grief but lulled to sleep lies between the princes
of the Noldor.' And Thingol answered: 'What is that to me?
Of Fлanor I have heard but report, which makes him great indeed. Of his sons I
hear little to my pleasure; yet they are likely to prove the deadliest foes of
our foe.' Their swords and their counsels shall have
two edges,' I said Melian; and afterwards they spoke no more of this matter. It was not long before whispered tales began
to pass among the Sindar concerning the deeds of the Noldor ere they came to
Beleriand. Certain it is whence they came, and the evil truth was enhanced and
poisoned by lies; but the Sindar were yet unwary and trustful of words, and (as
may well be thought) Morgoth chose them for this first assault of his malice,
for they knew him not. And Cнrdan, hearing these dark tales, was troubled; for
he was wise, and perceived swiftly that true or false they were put about at
this time through malice, though the malice he deemed was that of the princes
of the Noldor, because of the jealousy of their houses. Therefore he sent
messengers to Thingol to tell all that he had heard. It chanced that at that time the sons of
Finarfin were again the guests of Thingol, for they wished to see their sister
Galadriel. Then Thingol, being greatly moved, spoke in anger to Finrod, saying:
'Ill have you done to me, kinsman, to conceal so great matters from me. For now
I have learned of all the evil deeds of the Noldor.' But Finrod answered: 'What ill have I done
yon, lord? Or what evil deed have the Noldor done in all your realm to grieve
you? Neither against your kinship nor against any of your people have they
thought evil or done evil.' 'I marvel at you, son of Eдrwen,' said
Thingol, 'that you would come to the board of your kinsman thus red-handed from
the slaying of your mothers kin, and yet say naught in defence, nor yet seek
any pardon!' Then Finrod was greatly troubled, but he was
silent, for he could not defend himself, save by bringing charges against the
other princes of the Noldor; and that he was loath to do before Thingol. But in
Angrod's heart the memory of the words of Caranthir welled up again in
bitterness, and he cried: 'Lord, I know not what lies you have heard, nor
whence; but we came not red-handed. Guiltless we came forth, save maybe of
folly, to listen to the words of fell Fлanor, and become as if besotted with
wine, and as briefly. No evil did we do on our road, but suffered ourselves
great wrong; and forgave it. For this we are named tale-bearers to you and
treasonable to the Noldor: untruly as you know, for we have of our loyalty been
silent before you, and thus earned your anger. But now these charges are no
longer to be borne, and the truth yon shall know.' Then Angrod spoke bitterly against the sons
of Fлanor, telling of the blood at Alqualondл, and the Doom of Mandos, and the
burning of the ships at Losgar. And he cried: 'Wherefore should we that endured
the Grinding Ice bear the name of kinslayers and traitors?' 'Yet the shadow of Mandos lies on you also,'
said Melian. But Thingol was long silent ere he spoke. 'Go now!' he said. 'For
my heart is hot within me. Later you may return, if you will; for I will not
shut my doors for ever against you, my kindred, that were ensnared in an evil
that you did not aid. With Fingolfin and his people also I will keep
friendship, for they have bitterly atoned for such ill as they did. And in our hatred
of the Power that wrought all this woe our griefs shall be lost. But hear my
words! Never again in my ears shall be heard the tongue of those who slew my
kin in Alqualondл! Nor in all my realm shall it be openly spoken, while my
power endures. All the Sindar shall hear my command that they shall neither
speak with the tongue of the Noldor nor answer to it. And all such as use it
shall be held slayers of kin and betrayers of kin unrepentant.' Then the sons of Finarfin departed from
Menegroth with heavy hearts, perceiving how the words of Mandos would ever be
made true, and that none of the Noldor that followed after Fлanor could escape
from the shadow that lay upon his house. And it came to pass even as Thingol
had spoken; for the Sindar heard his word, and thereafter throughout Beleriand
they refused the tongue of the Noldor, and shunned those that spoke it aloud;
but the Exiles took the Sindarin tongue in all their daily uses, and the High
Speech of the West was spoken only by the lords of the Noldor among themselves.
Yet that speech lived ever as a language of lore, wherever any of that people
dwelt. It came to pass that Nargothrond was
full-wrought (and yet Turgon still dwelt in the halls of Vinyamar), and the
sons of Finarfin were gathered there to a feast; and Galadriel came from
Doriath and dwelt a while in Nargothrond. Now King Finrod Felagund had no wife,
and Galadriel asked him why this should be; but foresight came upon Felagund as
she spoke, and he said: 'An oath I too shall swear, and must be free to fulfil
it, and go into darkness. Nor shall anything of my realm endure that a son
should inherit.' But it is said that not until that hour had
such cold thoughts ruled him; for indeed she whom he had loved was Amariл of
the Vanyar, and she went not with him into exile. Chapter 16 Of Maeglin Aredhel Ar-Feiniel,
the White Lady of the Noldor, daughter of Fingolfin, dwelt in Nevrast with
Turgon her brother, and she went with him to the Hidden Kingdom. But she
wearied of the guarded city of Gondolin, desiring ever the longer the more to
ride again in the wide lands and to walk in the forests, as had been her wont
in Valinor: and when two hundred years had passed since Gondolin was
full-wrought, she spoke to Turgon and asked leave to depart. Turgon was loath
to grant this, and long denied her; but at the last he yielded, saying: 'Go
then, if you will though it is against my wisdom, and I forebode that ill will
come of it both to you and to me. But you shall go only to seek Fingon, our
brother; and those that I send with you shall return hither to Gondolin as
swiftly as they may.' But Aredhel said: 'I am your sister and not
your servant, and beyond your bounds I will go as seems good to me. And if you
begrudge me an escort, then I will go alone.' Then Turgon answered: 'I grudge you nothing
that I have. Yet I desire that none shall dwell beyond my walls who know the
way hither: and if I trust you, my sister, others I trust less to keep guard on
their tongues.' And Turgon appointed three lords of his
household to ride with Aredhel, and he bade them lead her to Fingon in Hithlum,
if they might prevail upon her. 'And be wary,' he said; 'for though Morgoth be
yet hemmed in the North there are many perils in Middle-earth of which the Lady
knows nothing.' Then Aredhel departed from Gondolin, and Turgon's heart was
heavy at her going. But when she came to the Ford of Brithiach
in the River Sirion she said to her companions: 'Turn now south and not north,
for I will not ride to Hithlum; my heart desires rather to find the sons of
Fлanor, my friends of old.' And since she could not be dissuaded they turned
south as she commanded, and sought admittance into Doriath. But the
march-wardens denied them; for Thingol would suffer none of the Noldor to pass
the Girdle, save his kinsfolk of the house of Finarfin, and least of all those
that were friends of the sons of Fлanor. Therefore the march-wardens said to
Aredhel: 'To the land of Celegorm for which you seek, Lady, you may by no means
pass through the realm of King Thingol; you must ride beyond the Girdle of
Melian, to the south or to the north. The speediest way is by the paths that
lead east from the Brithiach through Dimbar and along the north-march of this
kingdom, until you pass the Bridge of Esgalduin and the Fords of Aros, and come
to the lands that lie behind the Hill of Himring. There dwell, as we believe,
Celegorm and Curufin, and it may be that you will find them; but the road is
perilous.' Then Aredhel turned back and sought the
dangerous road between the haunted valleys of Ered Gorgoroth and the north
fences of Doriath; and as they drew near to the evil region of Nan Dungortheb
the riders became enmeshed in shadows, and Aredhel strayed from her companions
and was lost. They sought long for her in vain, fearing that she had been
ensnared, or had drunk from the poisoned streams of that land; but the fell
creatures of Ungoliant that dwelt in the ravines were aroused and pursued them,
and they hardly escaped with their lives. When at last they returned and their
tale was told there was great sorrow in Gondolin; and Turgon sat long alone,
enduring grief and anger in silence. But Aredhel, having sought in vain for her
companions, rode on, for she was fearless and hardy of heart, as were all the
children of Finwл; and she held on her way, and crossing Esgalduin and Aros
came to the land of Himlad between Aros and Celon where Celegorm and Curufin
dwelt in those days, before the breaking of the Siege of Angband. At that time
they were from home, riding with Caranthir east in Thargelion; but the people
of Celegorm welcomed her and bade her stay among them with honour until their
lord's return. There for a while she was content, and had great Joy in
wandering free in the woodlands; but as the year lengthened and Celegorm did not
return, she became restless again, and took to riding alone ever further
abroad, seeking for new paths and untrodden glades. Thus it chanced in the
waning of the year that Aredhel came to the south of Himlad, and passed over
Celon; and before she was aware she was enmeshed in Nan Elmoth. In that wood in ages past Melian walked in
the twilight of Middle-earth when the trees were young, and enchantment lay
upon it still. But now the trees of Nan Elmoth were the tallest and darkest in
all Beleriand, and there the sun never came; and there Eцl dwelt, who was named
the Dark Elf. Of old he was of the kin of Thingol, but he was restless and ill
at ease in Doriath, and when the Girdle of Melian was set about the Forest of
Region where he dwelt he fled thence to Nan Elmoth. There he lived in deep
shadow, loving the night and the twilight under the stars. He shunned the
Noldor, holding them to blame for the return of Morgoth, to trouble the quiet
of Beleriand; but for the Dwarves he had more liking than any other of the
Elvenfolk of old. From him the Dwarves learned much of what passed in the lands
of the Eldar. Now the traffic of the Dwarves down from the
Blue Mountains followed two roads across East Beleriand, and the northern way,
going towards the Fords of Aros, passed nigh to Nan Elmoth; and there Eцl would
meet the Naugrim and hold converse with them. And as their friendship grew he
would at times go and dwell as guest in the deep mansions of Nogrod or Belegost
There he learned much of metalwork, and came to great skill therein; and he
devised a metal as hard as the steel of the Dwarves, but so malleable that he
could make it thin and supple; and yet it remained resistant to all blades and
darts. He named it galvorn, for it
was black and shining like jet, and he was clad in it whenever he went abroad.
But Eцl, though stooped by his smithwork, was no Dwarf, but a tall Elf of a
high kin of the Teleri, noble though grim of face; and his eyes could see deep
into shadows and dark places. And it came to pass that he saw Aredhel
Ar-Feiniel as she strayed among the tall trees near the borders of Nan Elmoth,
a gleam of white in the dim land. Very fair she seemed to him, and he desired
her; and he set his enchantments about her so that she could not find the ways
out, but drew ever nearer to his dwelling in the depths of the wood. There were
his smithy, and his dim halls, and such servants as he had, silent and secret
as their master. And when Aredhel, weary with wandering, came at last to his
doors, he revealed himself; and he welcomed her, and led her into his house.
And there she remained; for Eцl took her to wife, and it was long ere any of
her kin heard of her again. It is not said that Aredhel was wholly
unwilling, nor that her life in Nan Elmoth was hateful to her for many years.
For though at Eцl's command she must shun the sunlight, they wandered far
together under the stars or by the light of the sickle moon; or she might fare
alone as she would, save that Eцl forbade her to seek the sons of Fлanor, or
any others of the Noldor. And Aredhel bore to Eцl a son in the shadows of Nan
Elmoth, and in her heart she gave him a name in the forbidden tongue of the
Noldor, Lуmion, that signifies Child of the Twilight; but his father gave him
no name until he was twelve years old. Then he called him Maeglin, which is
Sharp Glance, for he perceived that the eyes of his son were more piercing than
his own, and his thought could read the secrets of hearts beyond the mist of
words. As Maeglin grew to full stature he resembled
in face and form rather his kindred of the Noldor, but in mood and mind he was
the son of his father. His words were few save in matters that touched him
near, and then his voice had a power to move those that heard him and to
overthrow those that withstood him. He was tall and black-haired; his eyes were
dark, yet bright and keen as the eyes of the Noldor, and his skin was white.
Often he went with Eцl to the cities of the Dwarves in the east of Ered Lindon,
and there he learned eagerly what they would teach, and above all the craft of
finding the ores of metals in the mountains. Yet it is said that Maeglin loved his mother
better, and if Eцl were abroad he would sit long beside her and listen to all
that she could tell him of her kin and their deeds in Eldamar, and of the might
and valour of the princes of the House of Fingolfin. All these things he laid
to heart, but most of all that which he heard of Turgon, and that he had no
heir; for Elenwл his wife perished in the crossing of the Helcaraxл, and his
daughter Idril Celebrindal was his only child. In the telling of these tales there was
awakened in Aredhel a desire to see her own kin again, and she marvelled that
she had grown weary of the light of Gondolin, and the fountains in the sun, and
the green sward of Tumladen under the windy skies of spring; moreover she was
often alone in the shadows when both her son and her husband were away. Of
these tales also grew the first quarrels of Maeglin and Eцl. For by no means
would his mother reveal to Maeglin where Turgon dwelt, nor by what means one
might come thither, and he bided his time, trusting yet to wheedle the secret
from her, or perhaps to read her unguarded mind; but ere that could be done he
desired to look on the Noldor and speak with the sons of Fлanor, his kin, that
dwelt not far away. But when he declared his purpose to Eцl, his father was
wrathful. 'You are of the house of Eцl, Maeglin, my son,' he said, 'and not of
the Golodhrim. All this land is the land of the Teleri, and I will not deal nor
have my son deal with the slayers of our kin, the invaders and usurpers of our
homes. In this you shall obey me, or I will set you in bonds.' And Maeglin did
not answer, but was cold and silent, and went abroad no more with Eцl; and Eцl
mistrusted him. It came to pass that at the midsummer the
Dwarves, as was their custom, bade Eцl to a feast in Nogrod; and he rode away.
Now Maeglin and his mother were free for a while to go where they wished, and
they rode often to the eaves of the wood, seeking the sunlight; and desire grew
hot in Maeglin's heart to leave Nan Elmoth for ever. Therefore he said to
Aredhel: 'Lady, let us depart while there is time? What hope is there in this
wood for you or for me? Here we are held in bondage, and no profit shall I find
here; for I have learned all that my father has to teach, or that the Naugrim
will reveal to me. Shall we not seek for Gondolin? You shall be my guide, and I
will be your guard!' Then Aredhel was glad, and looked with pride
upon her son; and telling the servants of Eцl that they went to seek the sons
of Fлanor they departed and rode away to the north eaves of Nan Elmoth. There
they crossed the slender stream of Celon into the land of Himlad and rode on to
the Fords of Aros, and so westward along the fences of Doriath. Now Eцl returned out of the east sooner than
Maeglin had foreseen, and found his wife and his son but two days gone; and so
great was his anger that he followed after them even by the light of day. As he
entered the Himlad he mastered his wrath and went warily, remembering his
danger, for Celegorm and Curufin were mighty lords who loved Eцl not at all,
and Curufin moreover was of perilous mood; but the scouts of Aglon had marked
the riding of Maeglin and Aredhel to the Fords of Aros, and Curufin perceiving
that strange deeds were afoot came south from the Pass and encamped near the
Fords. And before Eцl had ridden far across the Himlad he was waylaid by the
riders of Curufin, and taken to their lord. Then Curufin said to Eцl: 'What errand have
you, Dark Elf, in my lands? An urgent matter, perhaps, that keeps one so
sun-shy abroad by day.' And Eцl knowing his peril restrained the
bitter words that arose in his mind. 'I have learned. Lord Curufin,' he said.
'that my son and my wife, the White Lady of Gondolin, have ridden to visit you
while I was from home; and it seemed to me fitting that I should join them on
this errand.' Then Curufin laughed at Eцl, and he said:
'They might have found their welcome here less warm than they hoped, had you
accompanied them; but it is no matter, for that was not their errand. It is not
two days since they passed over the Arossiach, and thence rode swiftly
westward. It seems that you would deceive me; unless indeed you yourself have
been deceived.' And Eцl answered: 'Then, lord, perhaps you
will give me leave to go, and discover the truth of this matter.' 'You have my leave, but not my love,' said
Curufin. 'The sooner you depart from my land the better will it please me.' Then Eцl mounted his horse, saying: 'It is
good, Lord Curufin, to find a kinsman thus kindly at need. I will remember it
when I return.' Then Curufin looked darkly upon Eцl. 'Do not flaunt the title
of your wife before me,' he said. 'For those who steal the daughters of the
Noldor and wed them without gift or leave do not gain kinship with their kin. I
have given you leave to go. Take it, and be gone. By the laws of the Eldar I
may not slay you at this time. And this counsel I add: return now to your
dwelling in the darkness of Nan El-moth; for my heart warns me that if you now
pursue those who love you no more, never will you return thither.' Then Eцl rode off in haste, and he was
filled with hatred of all the Noldor; for he perceived now that Maeglin and
Aredhel were fleeing to Gondolin. And driven by anger and the shame of his
humiliation he crossed the Fords of Aros and rode hard upon the way that they
had gone before; but though they knew not that he followed them, and he had the
swiftest steed, he came never in sight of them until they reached the
Brithiach, and abandoned their horses. Then by ill fate they were betrayed; for
the horses neighed loudly, and Eцl's steed heard them, and sped towards them;
and Eцl saw from afar the white raiment of Aredhel, and marked which way she
went, seeking the secret path into the mountains. Now Aredhel and Maeglin came to the Outer
Gate of Gondolin and the Dark Guard under the mountains; and there she was
received with Joy, and passing through the Seven Gates she came with Maeglin to
Turgon upon Amon Gwareth. Then the King listened with wonder to all that
Aredhel had to tell; and he looked with liking upon Maeglin his sister-son,
seeing in him one worthy to be accounted among the princes of the Noldor. 'I rejoice indeed that Ar-Feiniel has
returned to Gondolin,' he said, 'and now more fair again shall my city seem
than in the days when I deemed her lost. And Maeglin shall have the highest
honour in my realm.' Then Maeglin bowed low and took Turgon for
lord and king, to do all his will; but thereafter he stood silent and watchful,
for the bliss and splendour of Gondolin surpassed all that he had imagined from
the tales of his mother, and he was amazed by the strength of the city and the
hosts of its people, and the many things strange and beautiful that he beheld.
Yet to none were his eyes more often drawn than to Idril the King's daughter,
who sat beside him; for she was golden as the Vanyar, her mother's kindred, and
she seemed to him as the sun from which all the King's hall drew its light But Eцl, following after Aredhel, found the
Dry River and the secret path, and so creeping in by stealth he came to the Guard, and was taken and
questioned. And when the Guard heard that he claimed Aredhel as wife they were
amazed, and sent a swift messenger to the City; and he came to the King's hall. 'Lord,' he cried, 'the Guard have taken
captive one that came by stealth to the Dark Gate. Eцl he names himself, and he
is a tall Elf, dark and grim, of the kindred of the Sindar; yet he claims the
Lady Aredhel as his wife, and demands to be brought before you. His wrath is
great and he is hard to restrain; but we have not slain him as your law
commands.' Then Aredhel said: 'Alas! Eцl has followed
us, even as I feared. But with great stealth was it done; for we saw and heard
no pursuit as we entered upon the Hidden Way.' Then she said to the messenger:
'He speaks but the truth. He is E6L and I am his wife, and he is the father of
my son. Slay him not, but lead him hither to the King's judgement, if the King
so wills.' And so it was done; and Eцl was brought to
Turgon's hall and stood before his high seat, proud and sullen. Though he was
amazed no less than his son at all that he saw, his heart was filled the more
with anger and with hate of the Noldor. But Turgon treated him with honour, and
rose up and would take his hand; and he said: "Welcome, kinsman, for so I
hold you. Here you shall dwell at your pleasure, save only that you must here
abide and depart not from my kingdom; for it is my law that none who finds the
way hither shall depart.' But Eцl withdrew his hand. 'I acknowledge
not your law,' he said. 'No right have you or any of your kin in this land to
seize realms or to set bounds, either here or there. This is the land of the
Teleri, to which you bring war and all unquiet, dealing ever proudly and
unjustly. I care nothing for your secrets and I came not to spy upon you, but
to claim my own: my wife and my son. Yet if in Aredhel your sister you have
some claim, then let her remain; let the bird go back to the cage, where soon
she will sicken again, as she sickened before. But not so Maeglin. My son you
shall not withhold from me. Come, Maeglin son of Eцl! Your father commands you.
Leave the house of his enemies and the slayers of his kin, or be accursed!' But
Maeglin answered nothing. Then Turgon sat in his high seat holding his
staff of doom, and in a stem voice spoke: 'I will not debate with you. Dark
Elf. By the swords of the Noldor alone are your sunless woods defended. Your
freedom to wander there wild you owe to my kin; and but for them long since you
would have laboured in thraldom in the pits of Angband. And here I am King; and
whether you will it or will it not, my doom is law. This choice only is given
to you: to abide here, or to die here; and so also for your son.' Then Eцl looked into the eyes of King
Turgon, and he was not daunted, but stood long without word or movement while a
still silence fell upon the hall; and Aredhel was afraid, knowing that he was
perilous. Suddenly, swift as serpent, he seized a javelin that he held hid
beneath his cloak and cast it at Maeglin, crying: 'The second choice I take and for my son
also! You shall not hold what is mine!' But Aredhel sprang before the dart, and it
smote her in the shoulder; and Eцl was overborne by many and set in bonds, and
led away, while others tended Aredhel. But Maeglin looking upon his father was
silent. It was appointed that Eцl should be brought
on the next day to the King's judgement; and Aredhel and Idril moved Turgon to
mercy. But in the evening Aredhel sickened, though the wound had seemed little,
and she fell into the darkness, and in the night she died; for the point of the
Javelin was poisoned, though none knew it until too late. Therefore when Eцl was brought before Turgon
he found no mercy; and they led him forth to the Caragdыr, a precipice of black
rock upon the north side of the hill of Gondolin, there to cast him down from
the sheer walls of the city. And Maeglin stood by and said nothing; but at the
last Eцl cried out: 'So you forsake your father and his kin, ill-gotten son!
Here shall you fail of all your hopes, and here may you yet die the same death
as I.' Then they cast Eцl over the Caragdыr, and so
he ended, and to all in Gondolin it seemed just; but Idril was troubled, and
from that day she mistrusted her kinsman. But Maeglin prospered and grew great
among the Gondolindrim, praised by all, and high in the favour of Turgon; for
if he would learn eagerly and swiftly all that he might, he had much also to
teach. And he gathered about him all such as had the most bent to smithcraft
and mining; and he sought in the Echoriath (which are the Encircling
Mountains), and found rich lodes of ore of divers metals. Most he prized the
hard iron of the mine of Anghabar in the north of the Echoriath, and thence he
got a wealth of forged metal and of steel, so that the arms of the Gondolindrim
were made ever stronger and more keen; and that stood them in good stead in the
days to come. Wise in counsel was Maeglin and wary, and yet hardy and valiant
at need. And that was seen in after days: for when in the dread year of the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad Turgon opened his leaguer and marched forth to the help of
Fingon in the north, Maeglin would not remain in Gondolin as regent of the
King, but went to the war and fought beside Turgon, and proved fell and
fearless in battle. Thus all seemed well with the fortunes of
Maeglin, who had risen to be mighty among the princes of the Noldor, and
greatest save one in the most renowned of their realms. Yet he did not reveal
his heart: and though not all things went as he would he endured it in silence,
hiding his mind so that few could read it, unless it were Idril Celebrindal.
For from his first days in Gondolin he had borne a grief, ever worsening, that
robbed him of all joy: he loved the beauty of Idril and desired her, without
hope. The Eldar wedded not with km so near, nor ever before had any desired to
do so. And however that might be, Idril loved Maeglin not at all; and knowing
his thought of her she loved him the less. For it seemed to her a thing strange
and crooked in him, as indeed the Eldar ever since have deemed it: an evil
fruit of the Kinslaying, whereby the shadow of the curse of Mandos fell upon
the last hope of the Noldor. But as the years passed still Maeglin watched
Idril, and waited, and his love turned to darkness in his heart. And he sought
the more to have his will in other matters, shirking no toil or burden, if he
might thereby have power. Thus it was in Gondolin; and amid all the
bliss of that realm, while its glory lasted, a dark seed of evil was sown. Chapter 17 Of the Coming of Men into the West When three hundred
years and more were gone since the Noldor came to Beleriand, in the days of the
Long Peace, Finrod Felagund lord of Nargothrond journeyed east of Sirion and
went hunting with Maglor and Maedhros, sons of Fлanor. But he wearied of the
chase and passed cm alone towards the mountains of Ered Lindon that he saw
shining afar; and taking the Dwarf-road he crossed Gelion at the ford of Sarn
Athrad, and taming south over the upper streams of Ascar, he came into the
north of Ossiriand. In a valley among the foothills of the
mountains, below the springs of Thalos, he saw lights in the evening, and far
off he heard the sound of song. At this he wondered much, for the Green-elves
of that land lit no fires, nor did they sing by night At first he feared that a
raid of Orcs had passed the leaguer of the North, but as he drew near he
perceived that it was not so; for the singers used a tongue that he had not
heard before, neither that of Dwarves nor of Orcs. Then Felagund, standing
silent hi the night-shadow of the trees, looked down into the camp, and there
he beheld a strange people. Now these were a part of the kindred and
following of Bлor the Old, as he was afterwards called, a chieftain among Men.
After many lives of wandering out of the East he had led them at last over the
Blue Mountains, the first of the race of Men to enter Beleriand; and they sang
because they were glad, and believed that they had escaped from all perils and
had come at last to a land without fear. Long Felagund watched them, and love for
them stirred in his heart; but he remained hidden in the trees until they had
all fallen asleep. Then he went among the sleeping people, and sat beside their
dying fire where none kept watch; and he took up a rude harp which Bлor had
laid aside, and he played music upon it such as the ears of Men had not heard;
for they had as yet no teachers in the art, save only the Dark Elves in the
wild lands. Now men awoke and listened to Felagund as he
harped and sang, and each thought that he was in some fair dream, until he saw
that his fellows were awake also beside him; but they did not speak or stir
while Felagund still played, because of the beauty of the music and the wonder
of the song. Wisdom was in the words of the Elven-king, and the hearts grew
wiser that hearkened to him; for the things of which he sang, of the making of
Arda, and the bliss of Aman beyond the shadows of the Sea, came as clear
visions before their eyes, and his Elvish speech was interpreted in each mind
according to its measure. Thus it was that Men called King Felagund,
whom they first met of all the Eldar, Nуm, that is Wisdom, in the language of
that people, and after him they named his folk Nуmin, the Wise. Indeed they
believed at first that Felagund was one of the Valar, of whom they had heard
rumour that they dwelt far in the West; and this was (some say) the cause of
their journeying. But Felagund dwelt among them and taught them true knowledge,
and they loved him, and took him for their lord, and were ever after loyal to
the house of Finarfin. Now the Eldar were beyond all other peoples
skilled in tongues; and Felagund discovered also that he could read in the
minds of Men such thoughts as they wished to reveal in speech, so that their
words were easily interpreted. It is said also that these Men had long had
dealings with the Dark Elves east of the mountains, and from them had learned
much of their speech; and since all the languages of the Quendi were of one origin,
the language of Bлor and his folk resembled the Elven-tongue in many words and
devices. It was not long therefore before Felagund could hold converse with
Bлor; and while he dwelt with him they spoke much together. But when he
questioned him concerning the arising of Men and their journeys, Bлor would say
little; and indeed he knew little, for the fathers of his people had told few
tales of their past and a silence had fallen upon their memory. 'A darkness
lies behind us,' Bлor said; 'and we have turned our backs upon it, and we do
not desire to return thither even in thought. Westwards our hearts have been
turned, and we believe that there we shall find Light.' But it was said afterwards among the Eldar
that when Men awoke in Hildуrien at the rising of the Sun the spies of Morgoth
were watchful, and tidings were soon brought to him; and this seemed to him so
great a matter that secretly under shadow he himself departed from Angband, and
went forth into Middle-earth, leaving to Sauron the command of the War. Of his
dealings with Men the Eldar indeed knew nothing, at that time, and learnt but
little afterwards; but that a darkness lay upon the hearts of Men (as the
shadow of the Kinslaying and the Doom of Mandos lay upon the Noldor) they
perceived clearly even in the people of the Elf-friends whom they first knew.
To corrupt or destroy whatsoever arose new and fair was ever the chief desire
of Morgoth; and doubtless he had this purpose also in his errand: by fear and
lies to make Men the foes of the Eldar, and bring them up out of the east
against Beleriand. But this design was slow to ripen, and was never wholly
achieved; for Men (it is said) were at first very few in number, whereas
Morgoth grew afraid of the growing power and union of the Eldar and came back
to Angband, leaving behind at that time but few servants, and those of less
might and cunning. Now Felagund learned from Bлor that there
were many other Men of like mind who were also journeying westward. 'Others of
my own kin have crossed the Mountains,' he said, 'and they are wandering not
far away; and the Haladin, a people from whom we are sundered in speech, are
still in the valleys on the eastern slopes, awaiting tidings before they
venture further. There are yet other Men, whose tongue is more like to ours,
with whom we have had dealings at times. They were before us on the westward
march, but we passed them; for they are a numerous people, and yet keep
together and move slowly, being all ruled by one chieftain whom they call
Marach.' Now the Green-elves of Ossiriand were
troubled by the coming of Men, and when they heard that a lord of the Eldar
from over the Sea was among them they sent messengers to Felagund. 'Lord,' they
said, 'if you have power over these newcomers, bid them return by the ways that
they came, or else to go forward. For we desire no strangers in this land to
break the peace m which we live. And these folk are hewers of trees and hunters
of beasts; therefore we are their unfriends, and if they will not depart we
shall afflict them in all ways that we can.' Then by the advice of Felagund Bлor gathered
all the wandering families and kindreds of his people, and they removed over
Gelion, and took up their abode in the lands of Amrod and Amras, upon the east
banks of the Celon south of Nan Elmoth, near to the borders of Doriath; and the
name of that land thereafter was Estolad, the Encampment. But when after a year
had passed Felagund wished to return to his own country, Bлor begged leave to
come with him; and he remained in the service of the King of Nargothrond while
his life lasted. In this way he got his name, Bлor, whereas his name before had
been Balan; for Bлor signified 'Vassal' in the tongue of his people. The rule
of his folk he committed to Baran his elder son; and he did not return again to
Estolad. Soon after the departure of Felagund the
other Men of whom Bлor had spoken came also into Beleriand. First came the
Haladin; but meeting the unfriendship of the Green-elves they turned north and
dwelt in Thargelion, in the country of Caranthir son of Fлanor; there for a
time they had peace, and the people of Caranthir paid little heed to them. In
the next year Marach led his people over the mountains; they were a tall and
warlike folk, marching in ordered companies, and the Elves of Ossiriand hid
themselves and did not waylay them. But Marach, hearing that the people of Bлor
were dwelling in a green and fertile land, came down the Dwarf-road, and
settled in the country south ; and east
of the dwellings of Baran son of Bлor; and there was great friendship between
those peoples. Felagund himself often returned to visit
Men; and many other Elves out of the west-lands, both Noldor and Sindar,
Journeyed to Estolad, being eager to see the Edain, whose coming had long been
foretold. Now Atani, the Second People, was the name given to Men in Valinor in
the lore that told of their coming; but in the speech of Beleriand that name
became Edain, and it was there used only of the three kindreds of the
Elf-friends. Fingolfin, as King of all the Noldor, sent
messengers of welcome to them; and then many young and eager men of the Edain
went away and took service with the . kings and lords of the Eldar. Among them
was Malach son of Marach, and he dwelt in Hithlum for fourteen years; and he
learned the Elven-tongue and was given the name of Aradan. The Edain did not long dwell content in
Estolad, for many still desired to go westward; but they did not know the way.
Before them lay the fences of Doriath, and southward lay Sirion and its
impassable fens. Therefore J the kings of the three houses of the Noldor,
seeing hope t of strength in the sons of Men, sent word that any of the Edain
that wished might remove and come to dwell among their people. In this way the
migration of the Edain began: at first little by little, but later in families
and kindreds, they arose and left Estolad, until after some fifty years many
thousands had entered the lands of the Kings. Most of these took the long road
northwards, until the ways became well known to them. The people of Bлor came
to Dorthonion and dwelt in lands ruled by the house of Finarfin. The people of
Aradan (for Marach his father remained in Estolad until his death) for the most
part went on westward; and some came to Hithlum, but Magor son of Aradan and many
of the people passed down Sirion into Beleriand and dwelt a while in the vales
of the southern slopes of Ered Wethrin. It is said that in all these matters none
save Finrod Felagund took counsel with King Thingol, and he was ill pleased,
both for that reason, and because he was troubled by dreams concerning the
coming of Men, ere ever the first tidings of them were heard. Therefore he
commanded that Men should take no lands to dwell in save in the north, and that
the princes whom they served should be answerable for all that they did; and he
said: 'Into Doriath shall no Man come while my realm lasts, not even those of
the house of Bлor who serve Finrod the beloved.' Melian said nothing to him at
that time, but afterwards she said to Galadriel: 'Now the world runs on swiftly
to great tidings. And one of Men, even of Bлor's house, shall indeed come, and
the Girdle of Melian shall not restrain him, for doom greater than my power
shall send him; and the songs that shall spring from that coming shall endure when
all Middle-earth is changed.' But many Men remained in Estolad, and there
was still a mingled people living there long years after, until in the ruin of
Beleriand they were overwhelmed or fled back into the East. For beside the old
who deemed that their wandering days were over there were not a few who desired
to go their own ways, and they feared the Eldar and the light of their eyes;
and then dissensions awoke among the Edain, in which the shadow of Morgoth may
be discerned, for certain it is that he knew of the coming of Men into
Beleriand and of their growing friendship with the Elves. The leaders of discontent were Bereg of the
house of Bлor, and Amlach, one of the grandsons of Marach; and they said
openly: 'We took long roads, desiring to escape the perils of Middle-earth and
the dark things that dwell there; for we heard that there was Light in the
West. But now we learn that the Light is beyond the Sea. Thither we cannot come
where the Gods dwell in bliss. Save one; for the Lord of the Dark is here before
us, and the Eldar, wise but fell, who make endless war upon him. In the North
he dwells, they say; and there is the pain and death from which we fled. We
will not go that way.' Then a council and assembly of Men was
called, and great numbers came together. And the Elf-friends answered Bereg,
saying: 'Truly from the Dark King come all the evils from which we fled; but he
seeks dominion over all Middle-earth, and whither now shall we turn and he will
not pursue us? Unless he be vanquished here, or at least held in leaguer. Only
by the valour of the Eldar is he restrained, and maybe it was for this purpose,
to aid them at need, that we were brought into this land.' To this Bereg answered: 'Let the Eldar look
to it! Our lives are short enough.' But there arose one who seemed to all to be
Amlach son of Imlach, speaking fell words that shook the hearts of all who
heard him: 'All this is but Elvish lore, tales to beguile newcomers that are
unwary. The Sea has no shore. There is no Light in the West. You have followed
a fool-fire of the Elves to the end of the world! Which of you has seen the
least of the Gods? Who has beheld the Dark King in the North? Those who seek
the dominion of Middle-earth are the Eldar. Greedy for wealth they have delved
in the earth for its secrets and have stirred to wrath the things that dwell
beneath it, as they have ever done and ever shall. Let the Orcs have the realm
that is theirs, and we will have ours. There is room in the world, if the Eldar
will let us be!' Then those that listened sat for a while
astounded, and a shadow of fear fell on their hearts; and they resolved to
depart far from the lands of the Eldar. But afterwards Amlach returned among
them, and denied that he had been present at their debate or had spoken such
words as they reported; and there was doubt and bewilderment among Men. Then
the Elf-friends said: 'You will now believe this at least: there is indeed a
Dark Lord, and his spies and emissaries are among us; for he fears us, and the
strength that we may give to his foes.' But some still answered: 'He hates us,
rather, and ever the more the longer we dwell here, meddling in his quarrel
with the Kings of the Eldar, to no gain of ours.' Many therefore of those that
yet remained in Estolad made ready to depart; and Bereg led a thousand of the
people of Bлor away southwards, and they passed out of the songs of those days.
But Amlach repented, saying: 'I have now a quarrel of my own with this Master
of Lies, which will last to my life's end'; and he went away north and entered
the service of Maedhros. But those of his people who were of like mind with
Bereg chose a new leader, and they went back over the mountains into Eriador,
and are forgotten. During this time the Haladin remained in
Thargelion and were content. But Morgoth, seeing that by lies and deceits he
could not yet wholly estrange Elves and Men, was filled with wrath, and
endeavoured to do Men what hurt he could. Therefore he sent out an Orc-raid,
and passing east it escaped the leaguer, and came in stealth back over Ered
Lindon by the passes of the Dwarf-road, and fell upon the Haladin in the
southern woods of the land of Caranthir. Now the Haladin did not live under the rule
of lords or many together, but each homestead was set apart and governed its
own affairs, and they were slow to unite. But there was among them a man named
Haldad, who was masterful and fearless; and he gathered all the brave men that
he could find, and retreated to the angle of land between Ascar and Gelion, and
in the utmost comer he built a stockade across from water to water; and behind
it they led all the women and children that they could save. There they were
besieged, until their food was gone. Haldad had twin children: Haleth his
daughter, and Haldar his son; and both were valiant in the defence, for Haleth
was a woman of great heart and strength. But at last Haldad was slain in a
sortie against the Orcs; and Haldar, who rushed out to save his father's body
from their butchery, was hewn down beside him. Then Haleth held the people together,
though they were without hope; and some cast themselves in the rivers and were
drowned. But seven days later, as the Orcs made their last assault and had
already broken through the stockade, there came suddenly a music of trumpets,
and Caranthir with his host came down from the north and drove the Orcs into
the rivers. Then Caranthir looked kindly upon Men and
did Haleth great honour; and he offered her recompense for her father and
brother. And seeing, over late, what valour there was in the Edain, he said to
her: 'If you will remove and dwell further north, there you shall have the
friendship and protection of the Eldar, and free lands of your own.' But Haleth was proud, and unwilling to be
guided or ruled, and most of the Haladin were of like mood. t Therefore she
thanked Caranthir, but answered: 'My mind is now set, lord, to leave the shadow
of the mountains, and go west, whither others of our kin have gone.' When
therefore the Haladin had gathered all whom they could find alive of their folk
who had fled wild into the woods before the Orcs, and had gleaned what remained
of their goods in their burned homesteads, they took Haleth for their chief;
and she led them at last to Estolad, and there dwelt for a time. But they
remained a people apart, and were ever after known to Elves and Men as the
People of Haleth. Haleth remained their chief while her days lasted, but she
did not wed, and the headship afterwards passed to Haldan son of Haldar her
brother. Soon however Haleth desired to move westward again; and though most of
her people were against this counsel, she led them forth once more; and they
went without help or guidance of the Eldar, and passing over Celon and Aros
they journeyed in the perilous land between the Mountains of Terror and the Girdle
of Melian. That land was even then not yet so evil as it after became, but it
was no road for mortal Men to take without aid, and Haleth only brought her
people through it with hardship and loss, constraining them to go forward by
the strength of her will. At last they crossed over the Brithiach, and many
bitterly repented of their journey; but there was now no returning. Therefore
in new lands they went back to their old life as best they could; and they
dwelt in free homesteads in the woods of Talath Dirnen beyond Teiglin, and some
wandered far into the realm of Nargothrond. But there were many who loved the
Lady Haleth and wished to go whither she would, and dwell under her rule; and
these she led into the Forest of Brethil, between Teiglin and Sirion. Thither
in the evil days that followed many of her scattered folk returned. Now Brethil was claimed as part of his realm
by King Thingol, though it was not within the Girdle of Melian, and he would
have denied it to Haleth; but Felagund, who had the friendship of Thingol,
hearing of all that had befallen the People of Haleth, obtained this grace for
her: that she should dwell free in Brethil, upon the condition only that her
people should guard the Crossings of Teiglin against all enemies of the Eldar,
and allow no Orcs to enter their woods. To this Haleth answered: 'Where are
Haldad my father, and Haldar my brother? If the King of Doriath fears a
friendship between Haleth and those who have devoured her kin, then the
thoughts of the Eldar are strange to Men.' And Haleth dwelt in Brethil until
she died; and her people raised a green mound over her in the heights of the
forest, Tыr Haretha, the Ladybarrow, Haudh-en-Arwen in the Sindarin tongue. In this way it came to pass that the Edain
dwelt in the lands of the Eldar, some here, some there, some wandering, some
settled in kindreds or small peoples; and the most part of them soon learned
the Grey-elven tongue, both as a common speech among themselves and because
many were eager to learn the lore of the Elves. But after a time the Elf-kings,
seeing that it was not good for Elves and Men to dwell mingled together without
order, and that Men needed lords of their own kind, set regions apart where Men
could live their own lives, and appointed chieftains to hold these lands
freely. They were the allies of the Eldar in war, but marched under their own
leaders. Yet many of the Edain had delight in the friendship of the Elves, and
dwelt among them for so long as they had leave; and the young men often took
service for a time in the hosts of the kings. Now Hador Lуrindol, son of Hathol, son of
Magor, son of Malach Aradan, entered the household of Fingolfin in his youth,
and was loved by the King. Fingolfin therefore gave to him the lordship of
Dor-lуmin, and into that land he gathered most of the people of his kin, and
became the mightiest of the chieftains of the Edain. In his house only the
Elven-tongue was spoken; but their own speech was not forgotten, and from it
came the common tongue of Nъmenor. But in Dorthonion the lordship of the people
of Bлor and the country of Ladros was given to Boromir, son of Boron, who was
the grandson of Bлor the Old. The sons of Hador were Galdor and Gundor;
and the sons of Galdor were Hъrin and Huor; and the son of Hъrin was Tъrin the Bane
of Glaurung; and the son of Huor was Tuor, father of Eдrendil the Blessed. The
son of Boromir was Bregor, whose sons were Bregolas and Barahir; and the sons
of Bregolas were Baragund and Belegund. The daughter of Baragund was Morwen,
the mother of Tъrin, and the daughter of Belegund was Rнan, the mother of Tuor.
But the son of Barahir was Beren One-hand, who won the love of Lъthien
Thingol's daughter, and returned from the Dead; from them came Elwing the wife
of Eдrendil, and all the Kings of Nъmenor after. All these were caught in the net of the Doom
of the Noldor; and they did great deeds which the Eldar remember still among
the histories of the Kings of old. And in those days the strength of Men was
added to the power of the Noldor, and their hope was high; and Morgoth was
straitly enclosed, for the people of Hador, being hardy to endure cold and long
wandering, feared sot at times to go far into the north and there keep watch
upon the movements of the Enemy. The Men of the Three Houses throve and multiplied,
but greatest among them was the house of Hador Goldenhead, peer of Elven-lords.
His people were of great strength and stature, ready in mind, bold and
steadfast, quick to anger and to laughter, mighty among the Children of
Ilъvatar in the youth of Mankind. Yellow-haired they were for the most part,
and blue-eyed; but not so was Tъrin, whose mother was Morwen of the house of
Bлor. The Men of that house were dark or brown of hair, with grey eyes; and of
all Men they were most like to the Noldor and most loved by them; for they were
eager of mind, cunning-handed, swift in understanding, long in memory, and they
were moved sooner to pity than to laughter. Like to them were the woodland folk
of Haleth, but they were of lesser stature, and less eager for lore. They used
few words, and did not love great concourse of men; and many among them
delighted in solitude, wandering free in the greenwoods while the wonder of the
lands of the Eldar was new upon them. But in the realms of the West their time
was brief and their days unhappy. The years of the Edain were lengthened,
according to the reckoning of Men, after their coming to Beleriand; but at last
Bлor the Old died when he had lived three and ninety years, for four and forty
of which he had served King Felagund. And when he lay dead, of no wound or
grief, but stricken by age, the Eldar saw for the first time the swift waning
of the life of Men, and the death of weariness which they knew not in
themselves; and they grieved greatly for the loss of their friends. But Bлor at
the last had relinquished his life willingly and passed in peace; and the Eldar
wondered much at the strange fate of Men, for in all their lore there was no
account of it, and its end was hidden from them. Nonetheless the Edain of old learned swiftly
of the Eldar all such art and knowledge as they could receive, and their sons
increased in wisdom and skill, until they far surpassed all others of Mankind,
who dwelt still east of the mountains and had not seen the Eldar, nor looked
upon the faces that had beheld the Light of Valinor. Chapter 18 Of the Ruin of Beleriand and the Fall of
Fingolfin Now Fingolfin, King
of the North, and High King of the Noldor, seeing that his people were become
numerous and strong, and that the Men allied to them were many and valiant,
pondered once more an assault upon Angband; for he knew that they lived in
danger while the circle of the siege was incomplete, and Morgoth was free to
labour in his deep mines, devising what evils none could foretell ere he should
reveal them. This counsel was wise according to the measure of his knowledge;
for the Noldor did not yet comprehend the fullness of the power of Morgoth, nor
understand that their unaided war upon him was without final hope, whether they
hasted or delayed. But because the land was fair and their kingdoms wide, most
of the Noldor were content with things as they were, trusting them to last, and
slow to begin an assault in which many must surely perish were it in victory or
in defeat Therefore they were little disposed to hearken to Fingolfin, and the
sons of Fлanor at that time least of all. Among the chieftains of the Noldor
Angrod and Aegnor alone were of like mind with the King; for they dwelt in
regions whence Thangorodrim could be descried, and the threat of Morgoth was
present to their thought. Thus the designs of Fingolfin came to naught, and the
land had peace yet for a while. But when the sixth generation of Men after
Bлor and Marach were not yet come to full manhood, it being then four hundred
years and five and fifty since the coming of Fingolfin, the evil befell that he
had long dreaded, and yet more dire and sudden than his darkest fear. For
Morgoth had long prepared his force in secret, while ever the malice of his
heart grew greater, and his hatred of the Noldor more bitter; and he desired
not only to end his foes but to destroy also and defile the lands that they had
taken and made fair. And it is said that his hate overcame his counsel, so that
if he had but endured to wait longer, until his designs were full, then the
Noldor would have perished utterly. But on his part he esteemed too lightly the
valour of the Elves, and of Men he took yet no account. There came a time of winter, when night was
dark and without moon; and the wide plain of Ard-galen stretched dim beneath
the cold stars, from the hill-forts of the Noldor to the feet of Thangorodrim.
The watch-fires burned low, and the guards were few; on the plain few were
waking in the camps of the horsemen of Hithlum. Then suddenly Morgoth sent forth
great rivers of flame that ran down swifter than Balrogs from Thangorodrim, and
poured over all the plain; and the Mountains of Iron belched forth fires of
many poisonous hues, and the fume of them stank upon the air, and was deadly.
Thus Ard-galen perished, and fire devoured its grasses; and it became a burned
and desolate waste, full of a choking dust, barren and lifeless. Thereafter its
name was changed, and it was called Anfauglith, the Gasping Dust Many charred
bones had there their roofless grave; for many of the Noldor perished in that
burning, who were caught by the running flame and could not fly to the hills.
The heights of Dorthonion and Ered Wethrin held back the fiery torrents, but
their woods upon the slopes that looked towards Angband were all kindled, and
the smoke wrought confusion among the defenders. Thus began the fourth of the
great battles, Dagor Bragollach, the Battle of Sudden Flame. In the front of that fire came Glaurung the
golden, father of dragons, in his full might; and in his train were Balrogs, and behind them came the black
armies of the Orcs in multitudes such as the Noldor had never before seen or
imagined. And they assaulted the fortresses of the Noldor, and broke the
leaguer about Angband, and slew wherever they found them the Noldor and their
allies. Grey-elves and Men. Many of the stoutest of the foes of Morgoth were
destroyed in the first days of that war, bewildered and dispersed and unable to
muster their strength. War ceased not wholly ever again in Beleriand; but the
Battle of Sudden Flame is held to have ended with the coming of spring, when
the onslaught of Morgoth grew less. Thus ended the Siege of Angband; and the
foes of Morgoth were scattered and sundered one from another. The most part of
the Grey-elves fled south and forsook the northern war; many were received into
Doriath, and the kingdom and strength of Thingol grew greater in that time, for
the power of Melian the queen was woven about his borders and evil could not
yet enter that hidden realm. Others took refuge in the fortresses by the sea,
and in Nargothrond; and some fled the land and hid themselves in Ossiriand, or
passing the mountains wandered homeless in the wild. And rumour of the war and
the breaking of the siege reached the ears of Men in the east of Middle-earth. The sons of Finarfin bore most heavily the
brunt of the assault, and Angrod and Aegnor were slain; beside them fell
Bregolas lord of the house of Bлor, and a great part of the warriors of that
people. But Barahir the brother of Bregolas was in the fighting farther
westward, near to the Pass of Sirion. There King Finrod Felagund, hastening
from the south, was cut off from his people and surrounded with small company
in the Pen of Serech; and he would have been slain or taken, but Barahir came
up with the bravest of his men and rescued him, and made a wall of spears about
him; and they cut their way out of the battle with great loss. Thus Felagund
escaped, and returned to his deep fortress of Nargothrond; but he swore an oath
of abiding friendship and aid in every need to Barahir and all his kin, and in
token of his vow he gave to Barahir his ring. Barahir was now by right lord of
the house of Bлor, and he returned to Dorthonion; but most of his people fled
from their homes and took refuge in the fastness of Hithlum. So great was the onslaught of Morgoth that
Fingolfin and Fingon could not come to the aid of the sons of Finarfin; and the
hosts of Hithlum were driven back with great loss to the fortresses of Ered
Wethrin, and these they hardly defended against the Orcs. Before the walls of
Eithel Sirion fell Hador the Golden-haired, defending the rearguard of his lord
Fingolfin, being then sixty and six years of age, and with him fell Gundor his
younger son, pierced with many arrows; and they were mourned by the Elves. Then
Galdor the Tall took the lordship of his father. And because of the strength
and height of the Shadowy Mountains, which withstood the torrent of fire, and
by the valour of the Elves and the Men of the North, which neither Orc nor
Balrog could yet overcome, Hithlum remained unconquered, a threat upon the
flank of Morgoth's attack; but Fingolfin was sundered from his kinsmen by a sea
of foes. For the war had gone ill with the sons of
Fлanor, and well nigh all the east marches were taken by assault The Pass of
Aglon was forced, though with great cost to the hosts of Morgoth; and Celegorm
and Curufin being defeated fled south and west by the marches of Doriath, and
coming at last to Nargothrond sought harbour with Finrod Felagund. Thus it came
to pass that their people swelled the strength of Nargothrond; but it would
have been better, as was after seen, if they had remained in the east among
their own kin. Maedhros did deeds of surpassing valour, and the Orcs fled
before his face; for since his torment upon Thangorodrim his spirit burned like
a white fire within, and he was as one that returns from the dead. Thus the
great fortress upon the Hill of Himring could not be taken, and many of the
most valiant that remained, both of the people of Dorthonion and of the east
marches, rallied there to Maedhros; and for a while he closed once more the
Pass of Aglon, so that the Orcs could not enter Beleriand by that road. But
they overwhelmed the riders of the people of Fлanor upon Lothlann, for Glaurung
came thither, and passed through Maglor's Gap, and destroyed all the land
between the arms of Gelion. And the Orcs took the fortress upon the west slopes
of Mount Rerir, and ravaged all Thargelion, the land of Caranthir; and they
defiled Lake Helevorn. Thence they passed over Gelion with fire and terror and
came far into East Beleriand. Maglor joined Maedhros upon Himring; but
Caranthir fled and joined the remnant of his people to the scattered folk of
the hunters, Amrod and Amras, and they retreated and passed Ramdal in the
south. Upon Amon Ereb they maintained a watch and some strength of war, and
they had aid of the Green-elves; and the Orcs came not into Ossiriand, nor to
Taur-im-Duinath and the wilds of the south. Now news came to Hithlum that Dorthonion was
lost and the sons of Finarfin overthrown, and that the sons of Fлanor were
driven from their lands. Then Fingolfin beheld (as it seemed to him) the utter
ruin of the Noldor, and the defeat beyond redress of all their houses; and
filled with wrath and despair he mounted upon Rochallor his great horse and
rode forth alone, and none might restrain him. He passed over Dor-nu-Fauglith
like a wind amid the dust, and all that beheld his onset fled in amaze,
thinking that Oromл himself was come: for a great madness of rage was upon him,
so that his eyes shone like the eyes of the Valar. Thus he came alone to
Angband's gates, and he sounded his horn, and smote once more upon the brazen
doors, and challenged Morgoth to come forth to single combat. And Morgoth came. That was the last time in those wars that he
passed the doors of his stronghold, and it is said that he took not the
challenge willingly; for though his might was greatest of all things in this
world, alone of the Valar he knew fear. But he could not now deny the challenge
before the face of his captains; for the rocks rang with the shrill music of
Fingolfin's horn, and his voice came keen and clear down into the depths of
Angband; and Fingolfin named Morgoth craven, and lord of slaves. Therefore
Morgoth came, climbing slowly from his subterranean throne, and the rumour of
his feet was like thunder underground. And he issued forth clad in black
armour; and he stood before the King like a tower, iron-crowned, and his vast
shield, sable on-blazoned, cast a shadow over him like a stormcloud. But
Fingolfin gleamed beneath it as a star; for his mail was overlaid with silver,
and his blue shield was set with crystals; and he drew his sword Ringil, that
glittered like ice. Then Morgoth hurled aloft Grond, the Hammer
of the Underworld, and swung it down like a bolt of thunder. But Fingolfin
sprang aside, and Grond rent a mighty pit in the earth, whence smoke and fire
darted. Many times Morgoth essayed to smite him, and each time Fingolfin leaped
away, as a 'lightning shoots from under a dark cloud; and he wounded Morgoth
with seven wounds, and seven times Morgoth gave a cry of anguish, whereat the
hosts of Angband fell upon their faces in dismay, and the cries echoed in the
Northlands. But at the last the King grew weary, and
Morgoth bore down his shield upon hint Thrice he was crushed to his knees, and
thrice arose again and bore up his broken shield and stricken helm. But the
earth was all rent and pitted about him, and he stumbled and fell backward before
the feet of Morgoth; and Morgoth set his left foot upon his neck, and the
weight of it was like a fallen hill. Yet with his last and desperate stroke
Fingolfin hewed the foot with Ringil, and the blood gashed forth black and
smoking and filled the pits of Grond. Thus died Fingolfin, High King of the
Noldor, most proud and valiant of the Elven-kings of old. The Orcs made no
boast of that duel at the gate; neither do the Elves sing of it, for their
sorrow is too deep. Yet the tale of it is remembered still, for Thorondor King
of Eagles brought the tidings to Gondolin, and to Hithlum afar off. And Morgoth
took the body of the Elven-king and broke it, and would cast it to his wolves;
but Thorondor came hasting from his eyrie among the peaks of the Crissaegrim,
and he stooped upon Morgoth and marred his face. The rushing of the wings of
Thorondor was like the noise of the winds of Manwл, and he seized the body in
his mighty talons, and soaring suddenly above the darts of the Orcs he bore the
King away. And he laid him upon a mountain-top that looked from the north upon
the hidden valley of Gondolin; and Turgon coming built a high cairn over his
father. No Orc dared ever after to pass over the mount of Fingolfin or draw
nigh his tomb, until the doom of Gondolin was come and treachery was born among
his kin. Morgoth went ever halt of one foot after that day, and the pain of his
wounds could not be healed; and in his face was the scar that Thorondor made. Great was the lamentation in Hithlum when
the fall of Fingolfin became known, and Fingon in sorrow took the lordship of
the house of Fingolfin and the kingdom of the Noldor; but his young son
Ereinion (who was after named Gil-galad) he sent to the Havens. Now Morgoth's power overshadowed the
Northlands; but Barahir would not flee from Dorthonion, and remained contesting
the land foot by foot with his enemies. Then Morgoth pursued his people to the
death, until few remained; and all the forest of the northward slopes of that
land was turned little by little into a region of such dread and dark
enchantment that even the Orcs would not enter it unless need drove them, and
it was called Deldъwath, and Taur-nu-Fuin, The Forest under Nightshade. The
trees that grew there after the burning were black and grim, and their roots
were tangled, groping in the dark like claws; and those who strayed among them
became lost and blind, and were strangled or pursued to madness by phantoms of
terror. At last so desperate was the case of Barahir that Emeldir the
Manhearted his wife (whose mind was rather to fight beside her son and her
husband than to flee) gathered together all the women and children that were
left, and gave arms to those that would bear them; and she led them into the
mountains that lay behind, and so by perilous paths, until they came at last
with loss and misery to Brethil. Some were there received among the Haladin,
but some passed on over the mountains to Dor-lуmin and the people of Galdor,
Hador's son; and among those were Rнan, daughter of Belegund, and Morwen, who
was named Eledhwen, that is Elf-sheen, daughter of Baragund. But none ever saw
again the men that they had left. For these were slain one by one, until at
last only twelve men remained to Barahir: Beren his son, and Baragund and
Belegund his nephews, the sons of Bregolas, and nine faithful servants of his
house whose names were long remembered in the songs of the Noldor: Radhruin and
Dairuin they were, Dagnir and Ragnor, Gildor and Gorlim the unhappy, Arthad and
Urthel, and Hathaldir the young. Outlaws without hope they became, a desperate
band that could not escape and would not yield, for their dwellings were
destroyed, and their wives and children captured, slain, or fled. From Hithlum
there came neither news nor help, and Barahir and his men were hunted like wild
beasts; and they retreated to the barren highland above the forest, and
wandered among the tarns and rocky moors of that region, furthest from the
spies and spells of Morgoth. Their bed was the heather and their roof the
cloudy sky. For nigh on two years after the Dagor
Bragollach the Noldor still defended the western pass about the sources of
Sirion, for the power of Ulmo was in that water, and Minas Tirith withstood the
Orcs. But at length, after the fall of Fingolfin, Sauron, greatest and most
terrible of the servants of Morgoth, who in the Sindarin tongue was named
Gorthaur, came against Orodreth, the warden of the tower upon Tol Sirion.
Sauron was become now a sorcerer of dreadful power, master of shadows and of
phantoms, foul in wisdom, cruel in strength, misshaping what he touched,
twisting what he ruled, lord of werewolves; his dominion was torment. He took
Minas Tirith by assault, for a dark cloud of fear fell upon those that defended
it; and Orodreth was driven out, and fled to Nargothrond. Then Sauron made it
into a watchtower for Morgoth, a stronghold of evil, and a menace; and the fair
isle of Tol Sirion became accursed, and it was called Tol-in-Gaurhoth, the Isle
of Werewolves. No living creature could pass through that vale that Sauron did
not espy from the tower where he sat. And Morgoth held now the western pass,
and his terror filled the fields and woods of Beleriand. Beyond Hithlum he
pursued his foes relentlessly, and he searched out their hiding-places and took
their strongholds one by one. The Orcs growing ever bolder wandered at will far
and wide, coming down Sirion in the west and Colon in the east, and they
encompassed Doriath; and they harried the lands so that beast and bird fled
before them, and silence and desolation spread steadily from the North. Many of
the Noldor and the Sindar they took captive and led to Angband, and made them
thralls, forcing them to use their skill and their knowledge in the service of
Morgoth. And Morgoth sent out his spies, and they were clad in false forms and
deceit was in their speech; they made lying promises of reward, and with
conning words sought to arouse fear and jealousy among the peoples, accusing
their kings and chieftains of greed, and of treachery one to another. And
because of the curse of the Kinslaying at Alqualondл these lies were often
believed; and indeed as the time darkened they had a measure of truth, for the
hearts and minds of the Elves of Beleriand became clouded with despair and
fear. But ever the Noldor feared most the treachery of those of their own kin,
who had been thralls in Angband; for Morgoth used some of these for his evil
purposes, and feigning to give them liberty sent them abroad, but their wills
were chained to his, and they strayed only to come back to him again. Therefore
if any of his captives escaped in truth, and returned to their own people, they
had little welcome, and wandered alone outlawed and desperate. To Men Morgoth feigned pity, if any would
hearken to his messages, saying that their woes came only of their servitude to
the rebel Noldor, but at the hands of the rightful Lord of Middle-earth they
would get honour and a just reward of valour, if they would leave rebellion.
But few men of the Three Houses of the Edain would give ear to him, not even
were they brought to the torment of Angband. Therefore Morgoth pursued them
with hatred; and he sent his messengers over the mountains. It is told that at this time the Swarthy Men
came first into Beleriand. Some were already secretly under the dominion of
Morgoth, and came at his call; but not all, for the rumour of Beleriand, of its
lands and waters, of its wars and riches, went now far and wide, and the
wandering feet of Men were ever set westward in those days. These Men were
short and broad, long and strong in the arm; their skins were swart or sallow,
and their hair was dark as were their eyes. Their houses were many, and some
had greater liking for the Dwarves of the mountains than for the Elves. But
Maedhros, knowing the weakness of the Noldor and the Edain, whereas the pits of
Angband seemed to hold store inexhaustible and ever-renewed, made alliance with
these new-come Men, and gave his friendship to the greatest of their
chieftains, Bуr and Ulfang. And Morgoth was well content; for this was as he
had designed. The sons of Bуr were Borlad, Borlach, and Borthand; and they
followed Maedhros and Maglor, and cheated the hope of Morgoth, and were
faithful. The sons of Ulfang the Black were Ulfast, and Ulwarth, and Uldor the
accursed; and they followed Caranthir and swore allegiance to him, and proved
faithless. There was small love between the Edain and
the Easterlings, and they met seldom; for the newcomers abode long in East
Beleriand, but Hador's folk were shut in Hithlum, and Beer's house was well-nigh
destroyed. The People of Haleth were at first untouched by the northern war,
for they dwelt to the southward in the Forest of Brethil; but now there was
battle between them and the invading Orcs, for they were stout-hearted men and
would not lightly forsake the woods that they loved. And amid the tale of
defeats of that time the deeds of the Haladin are remembered with honour: for
after the taking of Minas Tirith the Orcs came through the western pass, and
maybe would have ravaged even to the mouths of Sirion; but Halmir lord of the
Haladin sent swift word to Thingol, for he had friendship with the Elves that
guarded the borders of Doriath. Then Beleg Strongbow, chief of the
march-wardens of Thingol, brought great strength of the Sindar armed with axes
into Brethil; and issuing from the deeps of the forest Halmir and Beleg took an
Ore-legion at unawares and destroyed it. Thereafter the black tide out of the
North was stemmed in that region, and the Orcs dared not cross the Teiglin for
many years after. The People of Haleth dwelt yet in watchful peace in the
Forest of Brethil, and behind their guard the Kingdom of Nargothrond had
respite, and mustered its strength. At this time Hъrin and Huor, the sons of
Galdor of Dor-lуmin, were dwelling with the Haladin, for they were akin. In the
days before the Dagor Bragollach those two houses of the Edam were joined at a
great feast, when Galdor and Glуredhel the children of Hador Goldenhead were
wedded to Hareth and Haldir the children of Halmir lord of the Haladin. Thus it
was that the sons of Galdor were fostered in Brethil by Haldir their uncle,
according to the custom of Men in that time; and they went both to that battle
with the Orcs, even Huor, for he would not be restrained, though he was but
thirteen years old. But being with a company that was cut off from the rest
they were pursued to the Ford of Brithiach, and there they would have been
taken or slain but for the power of Ulmo, that was still strong in Sirion. A
mist arose from the river and hid them from their enemies, and they escaped
over the Brithiach into Dimbar, and wandered among the hills beneath the sheer
walls of the Crissaegrim, until they were bewildered in the deceits of that
land and knew not the way to go on or to return. There Thorondor espied them,
and he sent two of his eagles to their aid; and the eagles bore them up and
brought them beyond the Encircling Mountains to the secret vale of Tumladen and
the hidden city of Gondolin, which no Man yet had seen. There Turgon the King received them well,
when he learned of their kin; for messages and dreams had come to him up Sirion
from the sea, from Ulmo, Lord of Waters, warning him of woe to come and
counselling him to deal kindly with the sons of the house of Hador, from whom
help should come to him at need. Hъrin and Huor dwelt as guests in the King's
house for well nigh a year; and it is said that in this time Hъrin learned much
lore of the Elves, and understood also something of the counsels and purposes
of the King. For Turgon took great liking for the sons of Galdor, and spoke
much with them; and he wished indeed to keep them in Gondolin out of love, and
not only for his law that no stranger, be he Elf or Man, who found the way to
the secret kingdom and looked upon the city should ever depart again, until the
King should open the leaguer, and the hidden people should come forth. But Hъrin and Huor desired to return to
their own people and share in the wars and griefs that now beset them. And
Hъrin said to Turgon: "Lord, we are but mortal Men, and unlike the Eldar.
They may endure for long years awaiting battle with their enemies in some far
distant day; but for us the time is short, and our hope and strength soon
wither. Moreover we did not find the road to Gondolin, and indeed we do not
know surely where this city stands; for we were brought in fear and wonder by
the high ways of the air, and in mercy our eyes were veiled.' Then Turgon
granted his prayer, and he said: 'By the way that you came you have leave to
depart, if Thorondor is willing. I grieve at this parting; yet in a little
while, as the Eldar account it, we may meet again.' But Maeglin, the King's sister-son, who was
mighty in Gondolin, grieved not at all at their going, though he begrudged them
the favour of the King, for he had no love for any of the kindred of Men; and
he said to Hъrin: 'The King's grace is greater than you know, and the law is
become less stem than aforetime; or else no choice would be given you but to
abide here to your life's end.' Then Hъrin answered him: The King's grace is
great indeed; but if our word is not enough, then we will swear oaths to you.'
And the brothers swore never to reveal the counsels of Turgon, and to keep
secret an that they had seen in his realm. Then they took their leave, and the
eagles coming bore them away by night, and set them down in Dor-lуmin before
the dawn. Their kinsfolk rejoiced to see them, for messengers from Brethil had
reported that they were lost; but they would not declare even to their father
where they had been, save that they were rescued in the wilderness by the
eagles that brought them home. But Galdor said: Did you then dwell a year in
the wild? Or did the eagles house you in their eyries? But you found food and
fine raiment, and return as young princes, not as waifs of the wood.' And Hъrin
answered: 'Be content that we have returned; for only under an oath of silence
was this permitted.' Then Galdor questioned them no more, but he and many
others guessed at the truth; and in time the strange fortune of Hъrin and Huor
reached the ears of the servants of Morgoth. Now when Turgon learned of the breaking of
the leaguer of Angband he would not suffer any of his own people to issue forth
to war; for he deemed that Gondolin was strong, and the time not yet ripe for
its revealing. But he believed also that the ending of the Siege was the
beginning of the downfall of the Noldor, unless aid should come; and he sent
companies of the Gondolindrim in secret to the mouths of Sirion and the Isle of
Balar. There they built ships, and set sail into the uttermost West upon
Turgon's errand, seeking for Valinor, to ask for pardon and aid of the Valar;
and they besought the birds of the sea to guide them. But the seas were wild
and wide, and shadow and enchantment lay upon them; and Valinor was hidden.
Therefore none of the messengers of Turgon came into the West, and many were
lost and few returned; but the doom of Gondolin drew nearer. Rumour came to Morgoth of these things, and
he was unquiet amid his victories; and he desired greatly to learn tidings of
Felagund and Turgon. For they had vanished out of knowledge, and yet were not
dead; and he feared what they might yet accomplish against him. Of Nargothrond
he knew indeed the name, but neither its place nor its strength; and of
Gondolin he knew nothing, and the thought of Turgon troubled him the more.
Therefore he sent forth ever more spies into Beleriand; but he recalled the
main hosts of the Orcs to Angband, for he perceived that he could not yet make
a final and victorious battle until he had gathered new strength, and that he
had not measured rightly the valour of the Noldor nor the might in arms of the
Men that fought beside them. Great though his victory had been in the
Bragollach and in the years after, and grievous the harm that he had done to
his enemies, his own loss had been no less; and though he held Dorthonion and
the Pass of Sirion, the Eldar recovering from their first dismay began now to
regain what they had lost. Thus Beleriand in the south had a semblance of peace
again for a few brief years; but the forges of Angband were full of labour. When seven years had passed since the Fourth
Battle, Morgoth renewed his assault, and he sent a great force against Hithlum.
The attack on the passes of the Shadowy Mountains was bitter, and in the siege
of Eithel Sirion Galdor the tall. Lord of Dor-lуmin, was slain by an arrow.
That fortress he held on behalf of Fingon the High King; and in that same place
his father Hador Lуrindol died but a little time before. Hъrin his son was then
newly come to manhood, but he was great in strength both of mind and body; and
he drove the Orcs with heavy slaughter from Ered Wethrin, and pursued them far
across the sands of Anfauglith. But King Fingon was hard put to it to hold
back the army of Angband that came down from the north; and battle was Joined
upon the very plains of Hithlum. There Fingon was outnumbered; but the ships of
Cнrdan sailed in great strength up the Firth of Drengist, and in the hour of
need the Elves of the Falas came upon the host of Morgoth from the west. Then
the Orcs broke and fled, and the Eldar had the victory, and their horsed
archers pursued them even into the Iron Mountains. Thereafter Hъrin son of Galdor ruled the
house of Hador in Dor-lуmin, and served Fingon. Hъrin was of less stature than
his fathers, or his son after him; but he was tireless and enduring in body,
lithe and swift after the manner of his mothers kin, Hareth of the Haladin. His
wife was Morwen Eledhwen, daughter of Baragund of the house of Bлor, she who
fled from Dorthonion with Rнan daughter of Belegund and Emeldir the mother of
Beren. In that time also the outlaws of Dorthonion
were destroyed, as is told hereafter; and Beren son of Barahir alone escaping
came hardly into Doriath. Chapter 19 Of Beren and Lъthien Among the tales of
sorrow and of ruin that come down to us from the darkness of those days there
are yet some in which amid weeping there is joy and under the shadow of death
light that endures. And of these histories most fair still in the ears of the Elves
is the tale of Beren and Lъthien. Of their lives was made the Lay of Leithian,
Release from Bondage, which is the longest save one of the songs concerning the
world of old; but here is told in fewer words and without song. It has been told that Barahir would not for
sake Dorthonion, and there Morgoth pursued him to his death, until at last
there remained to him only twelve companions. Now the forest of Dorthonion rose
southward into mountainous moors; and in the east of those highlands there lay
a lake, Tarn Aeluin, with wild heaths about it, and all that land was pathless
and untamed, for even in the days of the Long Peace none had dwelt there. But
the waters of Tarn Aeluin were held in reverence, for they were clear and blue
by day and by night were a mirror for the stars; and it was said that Melian
herself had hollowed that water in the days of old. Thither Barahir and his
outlaws withdrew, and there made their lair, and Morgoth could not discover it.
But the rumour of the deeds of Barahir and his companions went far and wide;
and Morgoth commanded Sauron to find them and destroy them. Now among the companions of Barahir was
Gorlim son of Angrim. His wife was named Eilinel, and their love was great, ere
evil befell. But Gorlim returning from the war upon the marches found his house
plundered and forsaken, and his wife gone; whether slain or taken he knew not.
Then he fled to Barahir, and of companions his he was the most fierce and
desperate; but doubt gnawed his heart, thinking that perhaps Eilinel was not
dead. At times he would depart alone and secretly, and visit his house that
stood amid the fields and woods he had once possessed; and this became known to
the servants of Morgoth. On a time of autumn he came in the dusk of
evening, and drawing near he saw as he thought a light at the window; and
coming warily he looked within. There he saw Eilinel, and her face was worn
with grief and hunger, and it seemed to him that he heard her voice lamenting
that he had forsaken her. But even as he cried aloud the light was blown out in
the wind; wolves howled, and on his shoulders he felt suddenly the heavy hands
of Sauron's hunters. Thus Gorlim was ensnared; and taking him to their camp
they tormented, seeking to learn the hidings of Barahir and all his ways. But
nothing would Gorlim tell. Then they promised him that he should be released
and restored to Eilinel, if he would yield; and being at last worn with pain,
and yearning for his wife, he faltered. Then straightaway they brought him into
the dreadful presence of Sauron; and Sauron said: 'I hear now that thou wouldst
barter with me. What is thy price?' And Gorlim answered that he should find
Eilinel again, and with her be set free; for he thought Eilinel also had been
made captive. Than Sauron smiled, saying: 'That is a small
price for so great a treachery. So shall it surely be. Say on!' Now Gorlim would have drawn back, but
daunted by the eyes of Sauron he told at last all that he would know. Then
Sauron laughed; and he mocked Gorlim, and revealed to him that he had only seen
a phantom devised by wizardry to entrap him; for Eilinel was dead. 'Nonetheless
I will grant thy prayer,' said Sauron; 'and thou shalt go to Eilinel, and be
set free of my service.' Then he put him cruelly to death. In this way the hiding of Barahir was
revealed, and Morgoth drew his net about it; and the Orcs coming in the still
hours before dawn surprised the men of Dorthonion and slew them all, save one.
For Beren son of Barahir had been sent by his father on a perilous errand to spy
upon the ways of the Enemy, and he was far afield when the lair was taken. But
as he slept benighted in the forest he dreamed that carrion-birds sat thick as
leaves upon bare trees beside a mere, and blood dripped from their beaks. Then Beren was aware in his dream of a form
that came to him across the water, and it was a wraith of Gorlim; and it spoke
to him declaring his treachery and death, and bade him make haste to warn his
father. Then Beren awoke, and sped through the night, and came back to the lair
of the outlaws on the second morning. But as he drew near the carrion-birds
rose from the ground and sat in the alder-trees beside Tarn Aeluin, and croaked
in mockery. There Beren buried his fathers bones, and
raised a cairn of boulders above him, and swore upon it an oath of vengeance.
First there for he pursued the Orcs that had slain his father and his kinsmen,
and he found their camp by night at Rivil's Well above the Fen of Serech, and
because of his wood craft he came near to their fire unseen. There their
captain made boast of his deeds, and he held up the hand of Barahir that he had
cut off as a token for Sauron that their mission was fulfilled; and the ring of
Felagund was on that hand. Then Beren sprang from behind rock, and slew
captain, and taking the hand and the ring he escaped, being defended by fate
for the Orcs were dismayed, and their arrows wild. Thereafter for four years more Beren
wandered still upon Dorthonion, a solitary outlaw; but he became the friend of
birds and beasts, and they aided him, and did not betray him, and from that
time forth he ate no flesh nor slew any living thing that was not in the
service of Morgoth. He did not fear death, but only captivity, and being bold
and desperate he escaped both death and bonds; and the deeds of lonely daring
that he achieved were noised abroad throughout Beleriand, and the tail of them
came even into Doriath. At length Morgoth set a price upon his head no less
than the price upon the head of Fingon, High King of the Noldor; but the Orcs fled
rather at the rumour of his approach than sought him out. Therefore and army
was sent against him under the command of Sauron; and Sauron brought
werewolves, fell beasts inhabited by dreadful spirits that he had imprisoned in
their bodies. All that land was now become filled with
evil, and all clean things were departing from it; and Beren was pressed so
hard that at last he was forced to flee from Dorthonion. In time of winter and
snow he forsook the land and grave of his father, and climbing into the high
land of Doriath. There it was put into his heart that he would go down into the
Hidden Kingdom, where no mortal foot had trodden. Terrible was his southward
journey. Sheer were the precipices of Ered Gorgoroth, and beneath their feet
were shadows that were laid before the rising of the Moon. Beyond lay the
wilderness of Dungortheb, where the sorcery of Sauron and the power of Melian
came together, and horror and madness walked. There spiders of the fell race of
Ungoliant abode, spinning their unseen webs in which all living things were
snared; and monsters wandered there that were born in the long dark before the
Sun, hunting silently with many eyes. No food for Elves or Men was there in
that haunted land, but death only. That journey is not accounted least among
the great deeds of Beren, but he spoke of it to no one after, lest the horror
return into his mind; and none know how he found a way, and so came by paths
that no Man nor Elf else ever dared to tread to the borders of Doriath. And he
passed through the mazes that Melian wove about the kingdom of Thingol, even as
she had foretold; for a great doom lay upon him. It is told in the Lay of Leithian that Beren
came stumbling into Doriath grey and bowed as with many years of woe, so great
had been the torment of the road. But wandering in the summer in the woods of
Neldoreth he came upon Lъthien, daughter of Thingol and Melian, at a time of
evening under moonrise, as she danced upon the unfading grass in the glades
beside Esgalduin. Then all memory of his pain departed from him, and he fell
into an enchantment; for Lъthien was the most beautiful of all the Children of
Ilъvatar. Blue was her raiment as the unclouded heaven, but her eyes were grey
as the starlit evening; her mantle was sewn with golden flowers, but her hair
was dark as the shadows of twilight. As the light upon the leaves of trees, as
the voice of clear waters, as the stars above the mists of the world, such was
her glory and her loveliness; and in her face was a shining light. But she vanished from his sight; and he
became dumb, as one that is bound under a spell, and he strayed long in the
woods, wild and wary as a beast, seeking for her. In his heart he called her
Tinъviel, that signifies Nightingale, daughter of twilight, in the Grey-elven
tongue, for he knew no other name for her. And he saw her afar as leaves in the
winds of autumn, and in winter as a star upon a hill, but a chain was upon his
limbs.
There came a time near dawn on the eve of spring, and Lъthien danced
upon a green hill; and suddenly she began to sing. Keen, heart-piercing was her
song as the song of the lark that rises from the gates of night and pours its
voice among the dying stars, seeing the sun behind the walls of the world; and
the song of Lъthien released the behind the walls of the world; and the song of
Lъthien released the bonds of winter, and the frozen waters spoke, and flowers
sprang from the cold earth where her feet had passed.
Then the spell of silence fell from Beren, and he called to her, crying Tinъviel;
and the woods echoed the name. Then she halted in wonder, and fled no more, and
Beren came to her. But as she looked on him, doom fell upon her, and she loved
him; yet she slipped from his arms and vanished from his sight even as the day
was breaking. Then Beren lay upon the ground in a swoon, as one slain at once
by bliss and grief; and he fell into a sleep as it were into an abyss of
shadow, and waking he was cold as stone, and his heart barren and forsaken. And
wandering in mind he groped as one that is stricken with sudden blindness, and
seeks with hands to grasp the vanished light. Thus he began the payment of
anguish for the fate that was laid on him; and in his fate Lъthien was caught,
and being immortal she shared in his mortality, and being free received his
chain; and her anguish was greater than any other of the Eldaliл has known. Beyond his hope she returned to him where he
sat in darkness, and long ago in the Hidden Kingdom she laid her hand in his.
Thereafter often she came to him, and they went in secret through the woods
together from spring to summer; and no others of the Children of Ilъvatar have
had joy so great, though the time was brief. But Daeron the minstrel also loved Lъthien,
and he espied her meetings with Beren, and betrayed them to Thingol. Then the
King was filled with anger, for Lъthien he loved above all things, setting her
above all the princes of the Elves; whereas mortal Men he did not even take
into his service. Therefore he spoke in grief and amazement to Lъthien; but she
would reveal nothing, until he swore an oath to her that he would neither slay
Beren nor imprison him. But he sent his servants to lay hands on him and lead
him to Menegroth as a malefactor; and Lъthien forestalling them led Beren
herself before the throne of Thingol, as if he were an honoured guest. Then Thingol looked upon Beren in scorn and
anger; but Melian was silent. 'Who are you', said the King, 'that come hither
as a thief, and unbidden dare to approach my throne?' But Beren being filled with dread, for the
splendour of Menegroth and the majesty of Thingol were very great, answered
nothing. Therefore Lъthien spoke, and said: 'He is Beren son of Barahir, lord
of Men, mighty foe of Morgoth, the tale of whose deeds is become a song even
among the Elves.' 'Let Beren speak!' said Thingol. 'What would
you here, unhappy mortal, and for what cause have you left your own land to
enter this, which is forbidden to such as you? Can you show reason why my power
should not be laid on you in heavy punishment for you insolence and folly?' Then Beren looking up beheld the eyes of
Lъthien, and his glance went also to the face of Melian and it seemed to him
that words were put into his mouth. Fear left him, and the pride of the eldest
house of Men returned to him; and he said: 'My fate, O King, led me hither,
through perils such as few even of the Elves would dare. And here I have found
what I sought not indeed, but finding I would possess for ever. For it is above
all gold and silver, and beyond all jewels. Neither rock, nor steel, nor the
fires of Morgoth, nor all the powers of the Elf-kingdoms, shall keep from me
the treasure that I desire. For Lъthien your daughter is the fairest of all the
Children of the World.' Then silence fell upon the hall, for those
that stood there were astounded and afraid, and they thought that Beren would
be slain. But Thingol spoke slowly, saying: 'Death you have earned with these
words; and death you should find suddenly, had I not sworn an oath in haste; of
which I repent, baseborn mortal, who in the realm of Morgoth has learnt to
creep in secret as his spies and thralls.' Then Beren answered: 'Death you can give me
earned or unearned; but the names I will not take from you of baseborn, nor
spy, nor thrall. By the ring of Felagund, that he gave to Barahir my father on
the battle field of the North, my house has not earned such names from any Elf,
be he king or no.' His words were proud, and all eyes looked
upon the ring; for he held it now aloft, and the green jewels gleamed there that
the Noldor had devised in Valinor. For this ring was like to twin serpents,
whose eyes were emeralds, and their heads met beneath a crown of golden
flowers, that the one upheld and the other devoured; that was the badge of
Finarfin and his house; Then Melian leaned to Thingol's side, and in whispered
counsel bade him forgo his wrath. 'For not by you,' she said, 'shall Beren be
slain; and far and free does his fate led him in the end, yet it is wound with
yours. Take heed!' But Thingol looked in silence upon Lъthien;
and he thought in his heart: 'Unhappy Men, children of little lords and brief
kings, shall such as these lay hands on you, and yet live?' Then breaking the
silence he said: 'I see the ring, son of Barahir, and I perceive that you are
proud, and deem yourself mighty. But a father's deeds, even had his service
been rendered to me, avail not to win the daughter of Thingol and Melian. See
now! I too desire a treasure that is withheld. For rock and steel and the fires
of Morgoth keep the jewel that I would possess against all the powers of the
Elf-kingdoms. Yet I hear you say that bonds such as these do not daunt you. Go
your way therefore! Bring to me in your hand a Silmaril from Morgoth's crown;
and then, if she will, Lъthien may set her hand in yours. Then you shall have
my jewel; and though the fate of Arda lie within the Silmarils, yet you shall
hold me generous.' Thus he wrought the doom of Doriath, and was
ensnared within the curse of Mandos. And those that heard these words perceived
that Thingol would save his oath, and yet send Beren to his death; for they
know that not all the power of the Noldor, before the Siege was broken, had
availed even to see from afar the shining Silmarils of Fлanor. For they were
set in the Iron Crown, and treasured in Angband above all wealth; and Balrogs
were about them, and countless swords, and strong bars, and unassailable walls,
and the dark majesty of Morgoth. But Beren laughed. 'For little price,' he
said, 'do Elven-kings sell their daughters: for gems, and things made by craft.
But if this be your will, Thingol, I will perform it. And when we meet again my
hand shall hold a Silmaril from the Iron Crown; for you have not looked the
last upon Beren son of Barahir.' Then he looked in the eyes of Melian, who spoke
not; and he bade farewell to Lъthien Tinъviel, and bowing before Thingol and
Melian he put aside the guards about him, and departed from Menegroth alone. Then at last Melian spoke, and she said to
Thingol: 'O King, you have devised cunning counsel. But if my eyes have not
lost their sight, it is ill for you, whether Beren fail in his errand, or
achieve it. For you have doom either your daughter, or yourself. And now is
Doriath drawn within the fate of a mightier realm.' But Thingol answered: 'I
sell not to Elves or Men those whom I love and cherish above all treasure. And
if there were hope or fear that Beren should come ever back alive to Menegroth,
he should not have looked again upon the light of heaven, though I had sworn
it.' But Lъthien was silent, and from that hour
she sang not again in Doriath. A brooding silence fell upon the woods, and the
shadows lengthened in the kingdom of Thingol. It is told in the Lay of Leithian that Beren
passed through Doriath unhindered, and came at length to the region of the
Twilight Meres, and the Fens of Sirion; and leaving Thingol's land he climbed
the hills above the Falls of Sirion, where the river plunged underground with
great noise. Thence he looked westward, and through the mist and rains that lay
upon those hills he saw Talath Dirnen, the Guarded Plain, stretching between
Sirion and Narog; and beyond he descried afar the highlands of Taur-en-Faroth
that rose above Nargothrond. And being destitute, without hope or counsel, he
turned his feet thither. Upon all that plain the Elves of Nargothrond
kept unceasing watch; and every hill upon its borders was crowned with hidden
towers, and through all its woods and fields archers ranged secretly and with
great craft. Their arrows were sure and deadly, and nothing crept there against
their will. Therefore, ere Beren had come far upon his road, they were aware of
him, and his death was nigh. But knowing his danger he held ever aloft the ring
of Felagund; and though he saw no living thing, because of the stealth of the
hunters, he felt that he was watched, and cried often aloud: 'I am Beren son of
Barahir, friend of Felagund. Take me to the King!' Therefore the hunters slew
him not, but assembling they waylaid him, and commanded him to halt. But seeing
the ring they bowed before him, though he was in evil plight, wild and wayworn;
and they led hi northward and westward, going by night lest their paths should
be revealed. For at that time there was no ford or bridge over the torrent of
Narog before the gates of Nargothrond; but further to the north, where Ginglith
joined Narog, the flood was less, and crossing there and turning again
southward the Elves led Beren under the light of the moon to the dark gates of
their hidden halls. Thus Beren came before King Finrod Felagund;
and Felagund knew him, needing no ring to remind him of the kin of Bлor and of
Barahir. Behind closed doors they sat, and Beren told of the death of Barahir,
and of all that had befallen hi in Doriath; and he wept, recalling Lъthien and
their joy together. But Felagund heard his tale in wonder and disquiet; and he
knew that the oath he had sworn was come upon him for his death, as long before
he had foretold to Galadriel. He spoke then to Beren in heaviness of heart. 'It
is plain that Thingol desires your death; but it seems that this doom goes
beyond his purpose, and that the Oath of Fлanor is again at work. For the
Silmarils are cursed with an oath of hatred, and he that even names them in
desire moves a great power from slumber; and the sons of Fлanor would lay all
the Elf-kingdoms in ruin rather than suffer any other than themselves to win or
possess a Silmaril, for the Oath drives them. And now Celegorm and Curufin are
dwelling in my halls; and though I, Finarfin's son, am King, they have won a
strong power in the realm, and lead many of their own people. They have shown
friendship to me in every need, but I fear that they will show neither love nor
mercy to you, if your quest be told. Yet my own oath holds; and thus we are all
ensnared.' Then King Felagund spoke before his people,
recalling the deeds of Barahir, and his vow and he declared that it was laid
upon him to aid the son of Barahir in his need, and he sought the help of his
chieftains. Then Celegorm arose amid the throng, and drawing his sword he
cried: 'Be he friend or foe, whether demon of Morgoth, of Elf, or child of Men,
or any other living thing in Arda, neither law, nor love, nor league of hell,
nor might of the Valar, nor any power of wizardry, shall defend him from the
pursuing hate of Fлanor's sons, if he take or find a Silmaril and keep it. For
the Silmarils we alone claim, until the world ends.' Many other words he spoke, as potent as were
long before in Tirion the words of his father that first inflamed the Noldor to
rebellion. And after Celegorm Curufin spoke, more softly but with no less
power, conjuring in the minds of the Elves a vision of war and the ruin of
Nargothrond. So great a fear did he set in their hearts that never after until
the time of Tъrin would any Elf of that realm go into open battle; but with
stealth and ambush, with wizardry and venomed dart, they pursued all strangers,
forgetting the bonds of kinship. Thus they fell from the valour and freedom of
the Elves of old, and their land was darkened. And now they murmured that Finarfin's son
was not as a Vala to command them, and they turned their faces from him. But
the curse of Mandos came upon the brothers, and dark thoughts arose in their
hearts, thinking to send forth Felagund alone to his death, and to usurp, it might
be, the throne of Nargothrond; for they were of the eldest line of the princes
of the Noldor. And Felagund seeing that he was forsaken
took from his head the silver crown of Nargothrond and cast it at his feet,
saying: 'Your oaths of faith to me you may break, but I must hold my bond. Yet
if there be any on whom the shadow of out curse has not yet fallen, I should
find at least a few to follow me, and should not go hence as a beggar that is
thrust from the gates.' There were ten that stood by him; and the chief of
them, who was named Edrahil, stooping lifted the crown and asked that it be
given to a steward until Felagund's return. 'for you remain my king, and
theirs,' he said, 'whatever betide.' Then Felagund gave the crown of Nargothrond
to Orodreth his brother to govern in his stead; and Celegorm and Curufin said
nothing, but they smiled and went from the halls. On an evening of autumn Felagund and Beren
set out from Nargothrond with their ten companions; and they journeyed beside
Narog to his source in the Falls of Ivrin. Beneath the Shadowy Mountains they
came upon a company of Orcs, and slew them all in their camp by night; and they
took their gear and their weapons. By the arts of Felagund their own forms and
faces were changed into the likeness of Orcs; and thus disguised they came far
upon their northward road, and ventured into the western pass, between Ered
Wethrin and the highlands of Taur-nu-Fuin. But Sauron in his tower was ware of
them, and doubt took him; for they went in haste, and stayed not to report
their deeds, as was commanded to all the servants of Morgoth that passed that
way. Therefore he sent to waylay them, and bring them before him. Thus befell the contest of Sauron and
Felagund which is renowned. For Felagund strove with Sauron in songs of power,
ad the power of the King was very great; but Sauron had the mastery, as is told
in the Lay of Leithian: He
chanted a song of wizardry, Of
piercing, opening, of treachery, Revealing,
uncovering, betraying. Then
sudden Felagund there swaying, Sang
in a song of staying, Resisting,
battling against power, Of
secrets kept, strength like a tower, And
trust unbroken, freedom, escape; Of
changing and shifting shape, Of
snares eluded, broken traps, The
prison opening, the chain that snaps. Backwards
and forwards swayed their song. Reeling
foundering, as ever more strong The
chanting swelled, Felagund fought, And
all the magic and might he brought Of
Elvenesse into his words. Softly
in the gloom they heard the birds Singing
afar in Nargothrond, The
sighting of the Sea beyond, Beyond
the western world, on sand, On
sand of pearls on Elvenland. Then in the doom gathered; darkness growing In
Valinor, the red blood flowing Beside
the Sea, where the Noldor slew The
Foamriders, and stealing drew Their
white ships with their white sails From
lamplit havens. The wind wails, The
wolf howls. The ravens flee. The
ice mutters in the mouths of the Sea. The
captives sad in Angband mourn. Thunder
rumbles, the fires burn- And
Finrod fell before the throne. Then Sauron stripped from the their
disguise, and they stood before him naked and afraid. But though their kinds
were revealed, Sauron could not discover their names or their purposes. He cast them therefore into a deep pit, dark
and silent, and threatened to slay them cruel, unless one would betray the
truth to him. From time to time they saw two eyes kindled in the dark, and a
werewolf devoured one of the companions; but none betrayed their lord. *** In the time when Sauron cast Beren into the
pit a weight of horror came upon Lъthien's heart; and going to Melian for
counsel she learned that Beren lay in the dungeons of Tol-in-Gaurhoth without
hope of rescue. Then Lъthien, perceiving that no help would come from any other
on earth, resolved to fly from Doriath and come herself to him; but she sought
the aid of Daeron, and he betrayed her purpose because he would not deprive
Lъthien of the lights of heaven, lest she fail and fade, and yet would restrain
her, he caused a house to be built from which she should not escape. Not far
from the gates of Menegroth stood the greatest of all the trees in the Forest
of Neldoreth; and that was a beech-forest and the northern half of the kingdom.
This mighty beech was named Hнrilorn, and it had three trunks, equal in girth,
smooth in rind, and exceeding tall; no branches grew from them for a great
height above the ground. Far aloft between the shafts of Hнrilorn a wooden
house was built, and there Lъthien was made to dwell; and ladders were taken
away and guarded, save only when the servants of Thingol wrought her such
things as she needed. It is told in the Lay of Leithian how she
escaped from the house in Hнrilorn; for she put forth her arts of enchantment,
and caused her hair to grow to great length, and of it she wove a dark robe
that wrapped her beauty like a shadow, and it was laden with a spell of sleep.
Of the strands that remained she twined a rope, and she let it down from her
window; and as the end swayed above the guards that sat beneath the house they
fell into a deep slumber. Then Lъthien climbed from her prison, and shrouded in
her shadowy cloak she escaped from all eyes, and vanished out of Doriath. It chanced that Celegorm and Curufin went on
a hunt through the Guarded Plain; and this they did because Sauron, being filled
with suspicion, sent forth many wolves into the Elf-lands. Therefore they took
their hounds and rode forth; and they thought that ere they returned they might
also hear tidings concerning King Felagund. Now the chief of the wolf hounds
that followed Celegorm was named Huan. He was not born in Middle-earth, but
came from the Blessed Realm; for Oromл had given him to Celegorm long ago in
Valinor, and there he had followed the horn of his master, before evil came.
Huan followed Celegorm into exile, and was faithful; and thus he too came under
the doom of woe set upon the Noldor, and it was decreed that he should meet
death, but not until he encountered the mightiest wolf that would ever walk the
world. Huan it was that found Lъthien flying like a
shadow surprised by the daylight under the trees, when Celegorm and Curufin
rested a while near to the western eaves of Doriath; for nothing could escape
the sight and scent of Huan, nor could any enchantment stay him, and he slept
not, neither by night nor day. He brought her to Celegorm, and Lъthien,
learning that he was a prince of the Noldor and a foe of Morgoth, was glad; and
she declared herself, casting aside her cloak. So great was her sudden beauty
revealed beneath the sun that Celegorm became enamoured of her; but he spoke
her fair, and promised that she would find help in her need, if she returned
with him now to Nargothrond. By no sign did he reveal that he knew already of
Beren and the quest, of which she told, nor that it was a matter which touched him
near. Thus they broke off the hunt and returned to
Nargothrond, and Lъthien was betrayed; for they held her fast, and took away
her cloak, and she was not permitted to pass the gates or to speak with any
save the brothers, Celegorm and Curufin. For now, believing that Beren and
Felagund were prisoners beyond hope of aid, they purposed to let the King
perish, and to keep Lъthien , and force Thingol to give her the mightiest of
princes of the Noldor. And they did not purpose to seek the Silmarils by craft
or war, or to suffer any others to do so, until they had all the might of the
Elf-kingdoms under their hands. Orodreth had no power to withstand them, for
they swayed the hearts of the people of Nargothrond; and Celegorm sent
messengers to Thingol urging his suit. But Huan the hound was true of heart, and
the love of Lъthien had fallen upon him in the first hour of their meeting; and
he grieved at her captivity. Therefore he came often to her chamber; and at
night he lay before her door, for he felt that evil had come to Nargothrond.
Lъthien spoke often to Huan in her loneliness, telling of Beren, who was the
friend of all birds and beasts that did not serve Morgoth; ad Huan understood
all that was said. For he comprehended the speech of all things with voice; but
it was permitted to him thrice only ere his death to speak with words. Now Huan devised a plan for the aid of
Lъthien; and coming at a time of night he brought her cloak, and for the first
time he spoke, giving her counsel. Then he led her by secret ways out of
Nargothrond, and they fled north together; and he humbled his pride and
suffered her to ride upon him in the fashion of a steed, even as the Orcs did
at times upon great wolves. Thus they made great speed, for Huan was swift and
tireless. In the pits of Sauron Beren and Felagund
lay, and all their companions were now dead; but Sauron purposed to keep
Felagund to the last, for he perceived that he was a Noldo of great might and
wisdom, and he deemed that in him lay the secret of their errand. But when the
wolf came for Beren, Felagund put forth all his power, and burst his bonds; and
he wrestled with the werewolf, and slew it with his hands and teeth; yet he
himself was wounded to the death. Then he spoke to Beren, saying: 'I go now to
my long rest in the timeless halls beyond the seas and the Mountains of Aman.
It will be long ere I am seen among the Noldor again; and it may be that we
shall not meet a second time in death or life, for the fates of our kindreds
are apart. Farewell!' He died then in the dark, in Tol-in-Gaurhoth, whose great
tower he himself had built. Thus King Finrod Felagund, fairest and most beloved
of the house of Finwл, redeemed his oath; but Beren mourned beside him in
despair. In that hour Lъthien came, and standing upon
the bridge that led to Sauron's isle she sang a song that no walls of stone
could hinder. Beren heard, and he thought that he dreamed; for the stars shone
above him, and in the trees nightingales were singing. And in answer he sang a
song of challenge that he had made in praise of the Seven Stars, the Sickle of
the Valar that Varda hung above the North as a sign for the fall of Morgoth.
Then all strength left him and he fell down into darkness. But Lъthien heard his answering voice, and
she sang then a song of greater power. The wolves howled, and the isle
trembled. Sauron stood in the high tower, wrapped in his black thought ;but he
smiled hearing her voice, for he knew that it was the daughter of Melian. The
fame of the beauty of Lъthien and the wonder of her song had long gone forth
from Doriath; and he thought to make her captive and hand her over to the power
of Morgoth, for his reward would be great. Therefore he sent a wolf to the
bridge. But Huan slew it silently. Still Sauron sent others one by one; and one
by one Huan took them by the throat and slew them. Then Sauron sent Draugluin,
a dread beast, old in evil lord and sire of the werewolves of Angband. His
might was great; and the battle of Huan and Draugluin was long and fierce. Yet
at length Draugluin escaped, and fleeing back into the tower he died before
Sauron's feet; and as he died he told his master: 'Huan is there!' Now Sauron
knew well, as did all in that land, the fate that was decreed for the hound of
Valinor, and it came into his thought that he himself would accomplish it.
Therefore he took upon himself the form of a werewolf, and made himself the
mightiest that had yet walked the world; and he came forth to win the passage
of the bridge. So great was the horror of his approach that
Huan leaped aside. Then Sauron sprang upon Lъthien; and she swooned before the
menace of the fell spirit in his eyes and the foul vapour of his breath. But
even as he came, falling she cast a fold of her dark cloak before his eyes; and
he stumbled, for a fleeting drowsiness came upon him. Then Huan sprang. There
befell the battle of Huan and Wolf-Sauron, and howls and baying echoed in the
hills, and the watchers on the walls of Ered Wethrin across the valley heard it
afar and were dismayed. But no wizardry nor spell, neither fang nor
venom, nor devil's art nor beast-strength , could overthrow Huan without
forsaking his body utterly. Ere his foul spirit left its dark house, Lъthien
came to him, ghost be sent quaking back to Morgoth; and she said: 'There
everlastingly thy naked self shall endure the torment of his scorn, pierced by
his eyes, unless thou yield to me the mastery of thy tower.' Then Sauron yielded himself, and Lъthien
took the mastery of the isle and all that was there; and Huan released him. And
immediately he took the form of a vampire, great as a dark cloud across the
moon, and he fled, dripping blood from his throat upon the trees, and came to
Tar-nu-Fuin, and dwelt there, filling it with horror. Then Lъthien stood upon the bridge, and
declare her power: and the spell was loosed that bound stone to stone, and the
gates were thrown down, and the walls opened, and the pits laid bare; and many
thralls and captives came forth in wonder and dismay, shielding their eyes
against the pale moon light, for they had lain long in the darkness of Sauron.
But Beren came not. Therefore Huan and Lъthien sought him in the isle; and
Lъthien found him mourning by Felagund. So deep was his anguish that he lay
still, and did not hear her feet. Then thinking him already dead she put her
arms about him and fell into a dark forgetfulness. But Beren coming back to the
light out of the pits of despair lifted her up, and they looked again upon one
another; and the day rising over the dark hills shone upon them. They buried the body of Felagund upon the
hill-top of his own isle, and it was clean again; and the green grave of Finrod
Finarfin's son, fairest of all the princes of the Elves, remained inviolate,
until the land was changed and broken, and foundered under destroying seas. But
Finrod walks with Finarfin his father beneath the trees in Eldamar. Now Beren and Lъthien Tinъviel went free
again and together walked through the woods renewing for a time their joy; and
though winter came it hurt them not, for flowers lingered where Lъthien went,
and the birds sang beneath the snow clad hills. But Huan being faithful went
back to Celegorm his master; yet their love was less than before. There was tumult in Nargothrond. For thither
now returned many Elves that had been prisoners in the isle of Sauron; and a
clamour arose that no words of Celegorm could still. They lamented bitterly the
fall of Felagund their king, saying that a maiden had dared that which the sons
of Fлanor had not dared to do; but many perceived that it was treachery rather
than fear that had guided Celegorm and Curufin. There fore the hearts of the
people of Nargothrond were released from their dominion, and turned again to
the house of Finarfin; and they obeyed Orodreth. But he would not suffer them
to slay the brothers, as some desired, for the spilling of kindred blood by kin
would bind the cures of Mandos more closely upon them all. Yet neither bread
nor rest would he grant to Celegorm and Curufin within his realm, and he swore
that there should be little love between Nargothrond and the sons of Fлanor
there after. 'Let it be so!' said Celegorm, and there was
a light of menace in his eyes; but Curufin smiled. Ten they took horse and rode
away like fire, to find if they might their kindred in the east. But none would
go with them, not even those that were of their own people; for all perceived
that the curse lay heavily upon the brothers, and that evil followed them. In
that time Celebrimbor the son of Curufin repudiated the deeds of his father,
and remained in Nargothrond; yet Huan followed still the horse of Celegorm his
master. Northward they rode, for they intended in
their haste to pass through Dimbar, and along the north marches or Doriath,
seeking the swiftest road to Him ring, where Maedhros their brother dwelt; and
still they might hope with speed to traverse it, since it lay close to
Doriath's borders, shunning Nan Dungortheb and the distant menace of the
Mountains of Terror. Now it is told that Beren and Lъthien came
in their wandering into the Forests of Brethil, and drew near at last to the
borders of Doriath. Then Beren took thought of his vow; and against his heart
he resolved, when Lъthien was come again within the safety of her own land, to
set forth once more. But she was not willing to be parted form him again,
saying: 'You must choose, Beren, between these two: to relinquish the quest and
your oath and seek a life of wandering upon the face of the earth; or to hold
to your word and challenge the power of darkness upon its throne. But on either
road I shall go with you, and our doom shall be alike.' Even as they spoke together of these things,
walking without heed of aught else, Celegorm and Curufin rode up, hastening
through the forest; and the brothers espied them and knew them for afar. Then
Celegorm turned his horse, and spurred it upon Beren, purposing to ride him
down; but Curufin swerving stooped and lifted Lъthien to his saddle, for he was
a strong and cunning horseman. Then Beren sprang from before Celegorm full upon
the speeding horse of Curufin that had passed hi; and the Leap of Beren is
renowned among that had passed him; and the Leap of Beren is renowned among Men
and Elves. He took Curufin by the throat from behind, and hurled him backward,
and they fell to the ground together. The horse reared and fell, but Lъthien
was flung aside, and lay upon the grass. Then Beren throttled Curufin; but death was
near him, for Celegorm rode upon him with a spear. in that hour Huan forsook
the service or Celegorm, and sprang up[on him, so that his horse swerved aside,
and would not approach Beren because of the terror of the great hound. Celegorm
cursed both hound and horse, but Huan was unmoved. Then Lъthien rising forbade
the slaying of Curufin; but Beren despoiled him of his gear and weapons, and
took his knife, sheathless by his side; iron it would cleave as if it were
green wood. Then Beren lifting Curufin flung him from him, and bade him walk
now back to his noble kinsfolk, who might teach him to turn his valour to
worthier use. 'Your horse,' he said, 'I keep for the service of Lъthien, and it
may be accounted happy to be free of such a master.' Then Curufin cursed Beren under cloud and
sky. 'Go hence,' he said, 'unto a swift and bitter death.' Celegorm took him
beside him on his horse, and the brothers made then as if to ride away; and
Beren turned away and took no heed of their words. But Curufin, being filled
with shame and malice, took the bow of Celegorm and shot back as they went; and
the arrow was aimed at Lъthien. Huan leaping caught it in his mouth; but
Curufin shot again, and Beren sprang before Lъthien, and the dart smote him in
the breast. It is told that Huan pursued the sons of
Fлanor, and they fled in fear; and returning he brought to Lъthien a herb out
of the forest. With that leaf he staunched Beren's wound, and by her arts and
by her love she healed him; and thus at last they returned to Doriath. There
Beren, being torn between his oath and his love, and knowing Lъthien to be now
safe, arose one morning before the sun, and committed her to the care of Huan;
then in great anguish he departed while she yet slept upon the grass.
He rode northward again with all speed to the Pass of Sirion, and coming
to the skirts of Taur-nu-Fuin he looked out across the waste of Anfauglith and
saw afar the peaks of Thangorodrim. There he dismissed the horse of Curufin,
and bade it leave now dread and servitude and run free upon the green grass in
the lands of Sirion. Then being now alone and upon the threshold of the final
peril he made the Song of Parting, in praise of Lъthien and the lights of
heaven; for he believed that he must now say farewell to both love and light.
Of that song these words were part: Farewell
sweet earth and northern sky, for
ever blest, since here did lie and
here with lissom limbs did run beneath
the Moon, beneath the Sun, Lъthien
Tinъviel more
fair than mortal tongue can tell. Though
all to ruin fell the world and
were dissolved and backward hurled unmade
into the old abyss, yet
were its making good, for this- the
dusk, the dawn, the earth, the sea- that
Lъthien for a time should be. And he sang aloud, caring not what ear
should overhear him, for he was desperate and looked for no escape. But Lъthien heard his song, and she sang in
answer, as she came through the woods unlooked for. For Huan, consenting once
more to be her steed, had borne her swiftly hard upon Beren's trail. Long he
had pondered in his heart what counsel he could devise for the lightning of the
peril of these two whom he loved. He turned aside therefore at Sauron's isle,
as they ran northward again, and he took thence the ghastly wolf-hame of
Draugluin, and the bat-fell of? ThurIngwлthil. She was the messenger of Sauron,
and was wont to fly in vampire's form to Angband; and her greatfingered wings
were barbed at each joint's end with and iron claw. Clad in these dreadful
garments Huan and Lъthien ran through Taur-nu-Fuin, and all things fled before
them. Beren seeing their approach was dismayed;
and he wondered, for he had heard the voice of Tinъviel, and he thought it now
a phantom for his ensnaring. But they halted and cast aside their disguise, and
Lъthien ran towards him. Thus Beren and Lъthien met again between the desert
and the wood. For a while he was silent and was glad; but after a space he
strove once more to dissuade Lъthien from her journey. 'Thrice now I curse my oath to Thingol,' he
said, 'and I would that he had slain me in Menegroth, rather than I should
bring you under the shadow of Morgoth.' Then for the second time Huan spoke with
words; and he counselled Beren, saying: 'From the shadow of death you can no
longer save Lъthien, for by her love she is now subject to it. You can turn
from your fate and lead her into exile, seeking peace in vain while your life
lasts. But if you will not deny your doom, then either Lъthien, being forsaken,
must assuredly die alone, or she must with you challenge the fate that lies
before you--hopeless, yet not certain. Further counsel I cannot give, nor may I
go further on your road. But my heart forebodes that what you find at the Gate
I shall myself see. All else is dark to me; yet it may be that our three paths
lead back to Doriath, and we may meet before the end.' Then Beren perceived that Lъthien could not
be divided from the doom that lay upon them both, and he sought no longer to
dissuade her. By the counsel of Huan and the arts of Lъthien he was arrayed now
in the hame of Draugluin, and she in the winged fell of ThurIngwлthil. Beren
became in all things like a werewolf to look upon, save that in his eyes there
shone a spirit grim indeed but clean; and horror was in his glance as he saw
upon his flank a bat-like creature clinging with creased wings. Then howling
under the moon he leaped down the hill, and the bat wheeled and flittered above
him. They passed through all perils, until they
came with the dust of their long and weary road upon them to the drear dale
that lay before the Gate of Angband. Black chasms opened beside the road,
whence forms as of writhing serpents issued. On either hand the cliffs stood as
embattled walls, and upon them sat carrion fowl crying with fell voices. Before
them was the impregnable Gate, an arch wide and dark at the foot of the
mountain; above it reared a thousand feet of precipice. There dismay took them, for at the gate was
a guard of whom no tidings had yet gone forth. Rumour of he knew not what
designs abroad among the princes of the Elves had come to Morgoth, and ever
down the aisles of the forest was heard the baying of Huan, the great hound of
war, whom long ago the Valar unleashed. Then Morgoth recalled the doom of Huan,
and he chose one from among the whelps of the race of Draugluin; and he fed him
with his own hand upon living flesh, and put his power upon him. Swiftly the
wolf grew, until he could creep into no den, but lay huge and hungry before the
feet of Morgoth. There the fire and anguish of hell entered into him, and he
became filled with a devouring spirit, tormented, terrible, and strong.
Carcharoth, the Red Maw, he is named in the tales of those days, and Anfauglir,
the Jaws of Thirst. And Morgoth set him to lie unsleeping before the doors of
Angband, lest Huan come. Now Carcharoth espied them from afar, and he
was filled with doubt; for news had long been brought to Angband that Draugluin
was dead. Therefore when they approached he denied them entry, and bade them
stand; and he drew near with menace, scenting something strange in the air
about them. But suddenly some power, descended from of old from divine race,
possessed Lъthien, and casting back her foul raiment she stood forth, small
before the might of Carcharoth, but radiant and terrible. Lifting up her hand
she commanded him to sleep, saying: 'O woe-begotten spirit, fall now into dark
oblivion, and forget for a while the dreadful doom of life.' And Carcharoth was
felled, as though lightning had smitten him. Then Beren and Lъthien went through the
Gate, and down the labyrinthine stairs; and together wrought the greatest deed
that has been dared by Elves or Men. For they came to the seat of Morgoth in
his nethermost hall that was upheld by horror, lit by fire, and filled with
weapons of death and torment. There Beren slunk in wolf's form beneath his
throne; but Lъthien was stripped of her disguise by the will of Morgoth, and he
bent his gaze upon her. She was not daunted by his eyes; and she named her own
name, and offered her service to sing before him, after the manner of a
minstrel. Then Morgoth looking upon her beauty conceived in his thought an evil
lust, and a design more dark than any that had yet come into his heart since he
fled from Valinor. Thus he was beguiled by his own malice, for he watched her,
leaving her free for awhile, and taking secret pleasure in his thought. Then
suddenly she eluded his sight, and out of the shadows began a song of such
surpassing loveliness, and of such blinding power, that he listened perforce;
and a blindness came upon him, as his eyes roamed to and fro, seeking her. All his court were cast down in slumber, and
all the fires faded and were quenched; but the Silmarils in the crown on
Morgoth's head blazed forth suddenly with a radiance of white flame; and the
burden of that crown and of the jewels bowed down his head, as though the world
were set upon it, laden with a weight of care, of fear, and of desire, that
even the will of Morgoth could not support. Then Lъthien catching up her winged
robe sprang into the air, and her voice came dropping down like rain into
pools, profound and dark. She cast her cloak before his eyes, and set upon him
a dream, dark as the outer Void where once he walked alone. Suddenly he fell, as a hill sliding in
avalanche, and hurled like thunder from his throne lay prone upon the floors of
hell. The iron crown rolled echoing from his head. All things were still. As a dead beast Beren lay upon the ground;
but Lъthien touching him with her hand aroused him, and he cast aside the
wolf-hame. Then he drew forth the knife Angrist; and from the iron claws that
held it he cut a Silmaril. As he closed it in his hand, the radiance
welled through his living flesh, and his hand became as a shining lamp; but the
jewel suffered his touch and hurt him not. It came then into Beren's mind that
he would go beyond his vow, and bear out of Angband all three of the Jewels of
Fлanor; but such was not the doom of the Silmarils. The knife Angrist snapped,
and a shard of the blade flying smote the cheek of Morgoth. He groaned and
stirred, and all the host of Angband moved in sleep. Then terror fell upon Beren and Lъthien, and
they fled, heedless and without disguise, desiring only to see the light once
more. They were neither hindered nor pursued, but the Gate was held against
their going out; for Carcharoth had arisen from sleep, and stood now in wrath
upon the threshold of Angband. Before they were aware of him, he saw them, and sprang
upon them as they ran. Lъthien was spent, and she had not time nor
strength to quell the wolf. But Beren strode forth before her, and in his right
hand he held aloft the Silmaril. Carcharoth halted, and for a moment was
afraid. 'Get you gone, and fly!' cried Beren; 'for here is afire that shall
consume you, and all evil things.' And he thrust the Silmaril before the eyes
of the wolf. But Carcharoth looked upon that holy jewel
and was not daunted, and the devouring spirit within him awoke to sudden fire;
and gaping he took suddenly the hand within his jaws, and he bit it off at the
wrist. Then swiftly all his inwards were filled with a flame of anguish, and
the Silmaril seared his accursed flesh. Howling he led before them, and the
walls of the valley of the Gate echoes with the clamour of his torment. So
terrible did he become in his madness that all the creatures of Morgoth that
abode in that valley, or were upon any of the roads that led thither, fled far
away' for he slew all living things that stood in his path, and burst from the
North with ruin upon the world. Of all the terrors that came ever into
Beleriand ere Angband's fall the madness of Carcharoth was the most dreadful;
for the power of the Silmaril was hidden within him. Now Beren lay in a swoon within the perilous
Gate, and death drew nigh him for there was venom on the fangs of the wolf.
Lъthien with her lips drew out the venom, and she put forth her failing power
to staunch the hideous wound. But behind her in the depths of Angband the rumour
grew of great wrath aroused. The host of Morgoth were awakened. Thus the quest of the Silmaril was like to
have ended in ruin and despair; but in that hour above the wall of the valley
three mighty birds appeared, flying northward with wings swifter than the wind.
Among all birds and beasts the wandering and need of Beren had been noised, and
Huan himself had bidden all things watch, that they might bring him aid. High
above the realm of Morgoth Thorondor and his vassals soared, and seeing now the
madness of the Wolf and Beren's fall they came swiftly down, even as the powers
of Angband were released from the toils of sleep. Then they lifted up Lъthien and Beren from
the earth, and bore them aloft into the clouds. Below them suddenly thunder
rolled, lightnings leaped upward, and the mountains quaked. Fire and smoke
belched forth from Thangorodrim, and flaming bolts were hurled far abroad,
falling ruinous upon the lands; and the Noldor in Hithlum trembled. But
Thorondor took his way far above the earth, seeking the high roads of heaven,
where the sun daylong shines unveiled and the moon walks amid the cloudless
stars. Thus they passed swiftly over Dor-nu-Fauglith, and over Taur-nu-Fuin,
and came above the hidden valley of Tumladen. No cloud nor mist lay there, and
looking down Lъthien saw far below, as a white light starting from a green
jewel, the radiance of Gondolin the fair where Turgon dwelt. But she wept, for
she thought that Beren would surely die, he spoke no word, nor opened his eyes,
and knew thereafter nothing of his flight. And at the last the eagles set them
down upon the borders of Doriath; and they were come to that same dell whence
Beren had stolen in despair and left Lъthien asleep. There the eagles laid her at Beren's side
and returned to the peaks of Crissaegrim and their high eyries; but Huan came
to her, and together they tended Beren, even as before when she healed him of
the wound that Curufin gave to him. But this wound was fell and poisonous. Long
Beren lay, and his spirit wandered upon the dark borders of death, knowing
every an anguish that pursued him from dream to dream. Then suddenly, when her
hope was almost spent, he woke again, and looked up, seeing leaves against the
sky; and he heard beneath the leaves singing soft and slow beside him Lъthien
Tinъviel. And it was spring again. Thereafter Beren was named Erchamion, which
is the One-handed; and suffering was graven in his face. But at last he was
drawn back to life by the love of Lъthien, and he arose, and together they
walked in the woods once more. And they did not hasten from that place, for it
seemed fair to them. Lъthien indeed was willing to wander in the wild without
returning, forgetting house and people and all the glory of the Elf-kingdoms,
and for a time Beren was content; but he could not for long forget his oath to
return to Menegroth, nor would he withhold Lъthien from Thingol for ever. For
he held by the law of Men, deeming it perilous to set at naught the will of the
father, save at the last need; and is seemed also to him unfit that one so
royal and fair as Lъthien should live always in the woods, as the rude hunters
among Men, without home or honour or the fair things which are the delight of
the queens of the Eldaliл. Therefore after a while he persuaded her, and their
footsteps forsook the houseless lands; and he passed into Doriath, leading
Lъthien home. So their doom willed it. Upon Doriath evil days had fallen. Grief and
silence had come upon all its people when Lъthien was lost. Long they had
sought for her in vain. And it is told that in that time Daeron the minstrel of
Thingol strayed from the land, and was seen no more. He it was that made music
for the dance and song of Lъthien, before Beren came to Doriath; and he had
loved her, and set all his thought of her in his music. He became the greatest
of all the minstrels of the Elves east of the Sea, named even before Maglor son
of Fлanor. But seeking for Lъthien in despair he wandered upon strange paths,
and passing over the mountains he came into the East of Middle-earth, where for
many ages he made lament beside dark waters for Lъthien, daughter of Thingol,
most beautiful of all living things. In that time Thingol turned to Melian; but
now she withheld her counsel from him, saying that the doom that he had devised
must work to its appointed end, and that he must wait now upon time. But
Thingol learned that Lъthien had journeyed far from Doriath, for messages came
secretly from Celegorm, as has been told, saying that Felagund was dead, and
Beren was dead, but Lъthien was in Nargothrond, and that Celegorm would wed
her. Then Thingol was wrathful, and he sent forth spies, thinking to make war
upon Nargothrond; and thus he learned that Lъthien was again fled, and that
Celegorm and Curufin were driven from Nargothrond. Then his counsel was in
doubt, for he had not the strength to assail the seven sons of Fлanor; but he
sent messengers to Himring to summon their aid in seeking for Lъthien, since
Celegorm had not sent her to the house of her father, nor had he kept her safely. But in the north of his realm his messengers
met with a peril sudden and unlooked for: the onslaught of Carcharoth, the Wolf
of Angband. In his madness he had run ravening from the north, and passing at
length over Taur‑nu-Fuin upon its eastern side he came down from the
sources of Esgalduin like a destroying fire. Nothing hindered him, and the
might of Melian upon the borders of the land stayed him not; for fate drove
him, and the power of the Silmaril that he bore to his torment. Thus he burst
into the inviolate woods of Doriath, and all fled away in fear. Alone of the
messengers Mablung, chief captain of the King, escaped, and he brought the
dread tidings to Thingol. Even in that dark hour Beren and Lъthien
returned, hastening from the west, and the news of their coming went before
them like a sound of music borne by the wind into dark houses where men sit
sorrowful. They came at last to the gates of Menegroth, and a great host
followed them. Then Beren led Lъthien before the throne of Thingol her father;
and he looked in wonder upon Beren, whom he had thought dead; but he loved him
not, because of the woes that he had brought upon Doriath. But Beren knelt
before him, and said: 'I return according to my word. I am come now to claim my
own.' And Thingol answered: 'What of your quest,
and of your vow?' But Beren said: 'It is fulfilled. Even now a
Silmaril is in my hand.' Then Thingol said: 'Show it to me!' And Beren put forth his left hand, slowly
opening its fingers; but it was empty. Then he held up his right arm; and from
that hour he named himself Camlost, the Empty-handed. Then Thingol's mood was softened; and Beren
sat before his throne upon the left, and Lъthien upon the right, and they told
all the tale of the Quest, while all there listened and were filled with
amazement. And it seemed to Thingol that this Man was unlike all other mortal
Men, and among the great in Arda, and the love of Lъthien a thing new and
strange; and he perceived that their doom might not be withstood by any power
of the world. Therefore at the last he yielded his will, and Beren took the
hand of Lъthien before the throne of her father. But now a shadow fell upon the joy of
Doriath at the return of Lъthien the fair; for learning of the cause of the
madness of Carcharoth the people grew the more afraid, perceiving that his
danger was fraught with dreadful power because of the holy jewel, and hardly
might be overthrown. And Beren, hearing of the onslaught of the Wolf,
understood that the Quest was not yet fulfilled. Therefore, since daily Carcharoth drew
nearer to Menegroth, they prepared the Hunting of the Wolf; of all pursuits of
beasts whereof tales tell the most perilous. To that chase went Huan the Hound
of Valinor, and Mablung of the Heavy Hand, and Beleg Strongbow, and Beren
Erchamion, and Thingol King of Doriath. They rode forth in the morning and
passed over the River Esgalduin; but Lъthien remained behind at the gates of
Menegroth. A dark shadow fell upon her and it seemed to her that the sun had
sickened and turned black. The hunters turned east and north, and
following the course of the river they came at last upon Carcharoth the Wolf in
a dark valley, down the northern side whereof Esgalduin fell in a torrent over
steep falls. At the foot of the falls Carcharoth drank to ease his consuming
thirst, and he howled, and thus they were aware of him, But he, espying their
approach, rushed not suddenly to attack them. It may be that the devil's
cunning of his heart awoke, being for a moment eased of his pain by the sweet
waters of Esgalduin; and even as they rode towards him he slunk aside into a
deep brake, and there lay hid. But they set a guard about all that place, and
waited, and the shadows grew long in the forest. Beren stood beside Thingol, and suddenly
they were aware that Huan had left their side. Then a great baying awoke in the
thicket; for Huan becoming impatient and desiring to look upon this wolf had
gone in alone to dislodge him. But Carcharoth avoided him, and bursting form
the thorns leaped suddenly upon Thingol. Swiftly Beren strode before him with a
spear, but Carcharoth swept it aside and felled him, biting at his breast. In
that moment Huan leaped from the thicket upon the back of the Wolf, and they
fell together fighting bitterly; and no battle of wolf and hound has been like
to it, for in the baying of Huan was heard the voice of the horns of Oromл and
the wrath of the Valar, but in the howls of Carcharoth was the hate of Morgoth
and malice crueller than teeth of steel; and the rocks were rent by their clamour
and fell from on high and choked the falls of Esgalduin. There they fought to
the death; but Thingol gave no heed, for he knelt by Beren, seeing that he was
sorely hurt. Huan in that hour slew Carcharoth; but there
in the woven woods of Doriath his own doom long spoken was fulfilled, and he
was wounded mortally, and the venom of Morgoth entered into him. Then he came,
and falling beside Beren spoke for the third time with words; and he bade Beren
farewell before he died. Beren spoke not, but laid his hand upon the head of
the hound, and so they parted. Mablung and Beleg came hastening to the
King's aid, but when they looked upon what was done they cast aside their
spears and wept. Then Mablung took a knife and ripped up the belly of the Wolf;
and within he was well nigh all consumed as with a fire, but the hand of Beren
that held the jewel was yet incorrupt. But when Mablung reached forth to touch
it, the hand was no more, and the Silmaril lay there unveiled, and the light of
it filled the shadows of the forest all about hem. Then quickly and in fear
Mablung took it and set it in Beren's living hand; and Beren was aroused by the
touch of the Silmaril, and held it aloft, and bade Thingol receive it. 'Now is
the Quest achieved,' he said, 'and my doom full-wrought'; and he spoke no more. They bore back Beren Camlost son of Barahir
upon a bier of branches with Huan the wolfhound at his side; and night fell ere
they returned to Menegroth. At the feet of Hнrilorn the great beech Lъthien met
them walking slow, and some bore torches beside the bier. There she set her
arms about Beren, and kissed him bidding him await her beyond the Western Sea;
and he looked upon her eyes ere the spirit left him. But the starlight was
quenched and darkness had fallen even upon Lъthien Tinъviel. Thus ended the
Quest of the Silmaril; but the Lay of Leithian, Release form Bondage does not
end. For the spirit of Beren at her bidding
tarried in the halls of Mandos, unwilling to leave the world, until Lъthien
came to say her last farewell upon the dim shores of the Outer Sea, whence Men
that die set out never to return. But the spirit of Lъthien fell down into
darkness, and at the last it fled, and her body lay like a flower that is
suddenly cut off and lies for a while unwithered on the grass. Then a winter, as it were the hoar age of
mortal Men, fell upon Thingol. But Lъthien came to the halls of Mandos, where
are the appointed places of the Eldaliл, beyond the mansions of the West upon
the confines of the world. There those that wait sit in the shadow of their
thought. But her beauty was more than their beauty, and her sorrow deeper than
their sorrows; and she knelt before Mandos and sang to him. The song of Lъthien before Mandos was the
song most fair that ever in words was woven, and the song most sorrowful that
ever the world shall ever hear. Unchanged, imperishable, it is sung still in
Valinor beyond the hearing of the world, and the listening the Valar grieved.
For Lъthien wove two themes of words, of the sorrow of the Eldar and the grief
of Men, of the Two Kindreds that were made by Ilъvatar to dwell in Arda, the
Kingdom of Earth amid the innumerable stars. And as she knelt before him her
tears fell upon his feet like rain upon stones; and Mandos was moved to pity,
who never before was so moved, nor has been since. Therefore he summoned Beren, and even as
Lъthien had spoken in the hour of his death they met again beyond the Western
Sea. But Mandos had no power to withhold the spirits of Men that were dead
within the confines of the world, after their time of waiting; nor could he
change the fates of the Children of Ilъvatar. He went therefore to Manwл, Lord
of the Valar, who governed the world under the hand of Ilъvatar; and Manwл
sought counsel in his inmost thought, where the will of Ilъvatar was revealed. These were the choices that he gave to
Lъthien. Because of her labours and her sorrow, she should be released from
Mandos, and go to Valimar, there to dwell until the world's end among the
Valar, forgetting all griefs that her life had known. Thither Beren could not
come. For it was not permitted to the Valar to withhold Death from him, which
is the gift of Ilъvatar to Men. But the other choice was this: that she might
return to Middle-earth, and take with her Beren, there to dwell again, but
without certitude of life or joy. Then she would become mortal, land subject to
a second death, even as he; and ere long she would leave the world for ever,
and her beauty become only a memory in song. This doom she chose, forsaking the Blessed
Realm, and putting aside all claim to kinship with those that dwell there; that
thus whatever grief might lie in wait, the fates of Beren and Lъthien might be
joined, and their paths lead together beyond the confines of the world. So it
was that alone of the Eldaliл she has died indeed, and left the world long ago.
Yet in her choice the Two Kindreds have been joined; and she is the forerunner
of many in whom the Eldar see yet, thought all the world is changed, the
likeness of Lъthien the beloved, whom they have lost. Chapter 20 Of the Fifth Battle: Nirnaeth Arnoediad It is said that
Beren and Lъthien returned to the northern lands of Middle-earth, and dwelt
together for a time as living man and woman; and they took up again their
mortal form in Doriath. Those that saw them were both glad and fearful; and
Lъthien went to Menegroth and healed the winter of Thingol with the touch of
her hand. But Melian looked in her eyes and read the doom that was written
there, and turned away; for she knew that a parting beyond the end of the world
had come between them, and no grief of loss has been heavier than the grief of
Melian the Maia in that hour. Then Beren and Lъthien went forth alone, fearing
neither thirst nor hunger; and they passed beyond the River Gelion into Ossiriand,
and dwelt there in Tol Galen the green isle, in the midst of Adurant, until all
tidings of them ceased. The Eldar afterwards called that country Dor
Firn-i-Guinar, the Land of the Dead that Live; and there was born Dior Aranel
the beautiful, who was after known as Dior Eluchнl, which is Thingol's Heir. No
mortal man spoke ever again with Beren son of Barahir; and none saw Beren or
Lъthien leave the world, or marked where at last their bodies lay. In those days Maedhros son of Fлanor lifted
up his heart, perceiving that Morgoth was not unassailable; for the deeds of
Beren and Lъthien were sung in many songs throughout Beleriand. Yet Morgoth
would destroy them all, one by one, if they could not again unite, and make new
league and common council; and he began those counsels for the raising of the
fortunes of the Eldar that are called the Union of Maedhros. Yet the oath of Fлanor and the evil deeds
that it had wrought did injury to the design of Maedhros, and he had less aid
than should have been. Orodreth would not march forth at the word of any son of
Fлanor, because of the deeds of Celegorm and Curufin; and the Elves of
Nargothrond trusted still to defend their hidden stronghold by secrecy and
stealth. Thence came only a small company, following Gwindor son of Guilin, a
very valiant prince; and against the will of Orodreth he went to the northern
war, because he grieved for the loss of Gelmir his brother in the Dagor
Bragollach. They took the badge of the house of Fingolfin, and marched beneath
the banners of Fingon; and they came never back, save one. From Doriath came little help. For Maedhros
and his brothers, being constrained by their oath, had before sent to Thingol
and reminded him with haughty words of their claim, summoning him to yield the
Silmaril, or become their enemy. Melian counselled him to surrender it; but the
words of the sons of Fлanor were proud and threatening, and Thingol was filled
with anger, thinking of the anguish of Lъthien and the blood of Beren whereby
the jewel had been won, despite the malice of Celegorm and Curufin. And every
day that he looked upon the Silmaril the more he desired to keep it for ever;
for such was its power. Therefore he sent back the messengers with scornful
words. Maedhros made no answer, for he had now begun to devise the league and
union of the Elves; but Celegorm and Curufin vowed openly to slay Thingol and
destroy his people, if they came victorious from war, and the jewel were not
surrendered of free will. Then Thingol fortified the marches of his realm, and
went not to war, nor any out of Doriath save Mablung and Beleg, who were
unwilling to have no part in these great deeds. To them Thingol gave leave to
go, so long as they served not the sons of Fлanor; and they joined themselves
to the host of Fingon. But Maedhros had the help of the Naugrim,
both in armed force and in great store of weapons; and the smithies of Nogrod
and Belegost were busy in those days. And he gathered together again all his
brothers and all the people who would follow them; and the Men of Bуr and
Ulfang were marshalled and trained for war, and they summoned yet more of their
kinsfolk out of the East. Moreover in the west Fingon, ever the friend of
Maedhros, took counsel with Himring, and in Hithlum the Noldor and the Men of the
house of Hador prepared for war. In the forest of Brethil Halmir, lord of the
People of Haleth, gathered his men, and they whetted their axes; but Halmir
died ere the war came, and Haldir his son ruled that people. And to Gondolin
also the tidings came, to Turgon, the hidden king. But Maedhros made trial of his strength too
soon, ere his plans were full-wrought; and though the Orcs were driven out of
all the northward regions of Beleriand, and even Dorthonion was freed for a
while, Morgoth was warned of the uprising of the Eldar and the Elf-friends, and
took counsel against them. Many spies and workers of treason he sent forth
among them, as he was the better able now to do, for the faithless Men of his
secret allegiance were yet deep in the secrets of the sons of Fлanor. At length Maedhros, having gathered all the
strength that he could of Elves and Men and Dwarves, resolved to assault
Angband from east and west; and he purposed to march with banners displayed in
open force over Anfauglith. But when he had drawn forth, as he hoped, the
armies of Morgoth in answer, then Fingon should issue forth from the passes of
Hithlum; and thus they thought to take the might of Morgoth as between anvil
and hammer, and break it to pieces. And the signal for this was to be the
firing of a great beacon in Dorthonion. On the appointed day, on the morning of
Midsummer, the trumpets of the Eldar greeted the rising of the sun; and in the
east was raised the standard of the sons of Fлanor, and in the west the
standard of Fingon, High King of the Noldor. Then Fingon looked out from the
walls of Eithel Sirion, and his host was arrayed in the valleys and the woods
upon the east of Ered Wethrin, well hid from the eyes of the Enemy; but he knew
that it was very great. For there all the Noldor of Hithlum were assembled,
together with Elves of the Falas and Gwindor's company from Nargothrond, and he
had great strength of Men: upon the right were the host of Dor-lуmin and all
the valour of Hъrin and Huor his brother, and to them had come Haldir of
Brethil with many men of the woods. Then Fingon looked towards Thangorodrim, and
there was a dark cloud about it, and a black smoke went up; and he knew that
the wrath of Morgoth was aroused, and that their challenge was accepted. A
shadow of doubt fell upon Fingon's heart; and he looked eastwards, seeking if
he might see with elven-sight the dust of Anfauglith rising beneath the hosts
of Maedhros. He knew not that Maedhros was hindered in his setting-forth by the
guile of Uldor the accursed, who deceived him with false warnings of assault
from Angband. But now a cry went up, passing up the wind
from the south from vale to vale, and Elves and Men lifted their voices in
wonder and joy. For unsummoned and unlocked for Turgon had opened the leaguer
of Gondolin, and was come with an army ten thousand strong, with bright mail
and long swords and spears like a forest. Then when Fingon heard afar the great
trumpet of Turgon his brother, the shadow passed and his heart was uplifted,
and he shouted aloud: 'Utъlie'n aurл!
Aiya Eldaliл ar Atanatбri, utъlie'n aurл! The day has come! Behold, people
of the Eldar and Fathers of Men, the day has come!' And all those who heard his
great voice echo in the hills answered crying: 'Auta i lуmл! The night is passing!' Now Morgoth, who knew much of what was done
and designed by his enemies, chose his hour, and trusting in his treacherous
servants to hold back Maedhros and prevent the union of his foes he sent a
force seeming great (and yet but part of all that he had made ready) towards
Hithlum; and they were clad all in dun raiment and showed no naked steel, and
thus were already far over the sands of Anfauglith before their approach was
seen. Then the hearts of the Noldor grew hot, and
their captains wished to assail their foes upon the plain; but Hъrin spoke
against it, and bade them beware of the guile of Morgoth, whose strength was
always greater than it seemed, and his purpose other than he revealed. And
though the signal of the approach of Maedhros came not, and the host grew
impatient, Hъrin urged them still to await it, and to let the Orcs break
themselves in assault upon the hills. But the Captain of Morgoth in the west had
been commanded to draw out Fingon swiftly from his hills by whatever means he
could. He marched on therefore until the front of his battle was drawn up
before the stream of Sirion, from the walls of the fortress of Eithel Sirion to
the inflowing of Rivil at the Fen of Serech; and the outposts of Fingon could
see the eyes of their enemies. But there was no answer to his challenge, and
the taunts of the Orcs faltered as they looked upon the silent walls and the
hidden threat of the hills. Then the Captain of Morgoth sent out riders with
tokens of parley, and they rode up before the outworks of the Barad Eithel.
With them they brought Gelmir son of Guilin, that lord of Nargothrond whom they
had captured in the Bragollach; and they had blinded him. Then the heralds of
Angband showed him forth, crying: 'We have many more such at home, but you must
make haste if you would find them; for we shall deal with them all when we
return even so.' And they hewed off Gelmir's hands and feet, and his head last,
within sight of the Elves, and left him. By ill chance, at that place in the outworks
stood Gwindor of Nargothrond, the brother of Gelmir. Now his wrath was kindled
to madness, and he leapt forth on horseback, and many riders with him; and they
pursued the heralds and slew them, and drove on deep into the main host. And
seeing this all the host of the Noldor was set on fire, and Fingon put on his
white helm and sounded his trumpets, and all the host of Hithlum leapt forth
from the hills in sudden onslaught. The light of the drawing of the swords of
the Noldor was like a fire in a field of reeds; and so fell and swift was their
onset that almost the designs of Morgoth went astray. Before the army that he
sent westward could be strengthened it was swept away, and the banners of
Fingon passed over Anfauglith and were raised before the walls of Angband. Ever
in the forefront of that battle went Gwindor and the Elves of Nargothrond, and
even now they could not be restrained; and they burst through the Gate and slew
the guards upon the very stairs of Angband, and Morgoth trembled upon his deep
throne, hearing them beat upon his doors. But they were trapped there, and all
were slain save Gwindor only, whom they took alive; for Fingon could not come
to their aid. By many secret doors in Thangorodrim Morgoth had let issue forth
his main host that he held in waiting, and Fingon was beaten back with great
loss from the walls. Then in the plain of Anfauglith, on the
fourth day of the war, there began Nirnaeth Arnoediad, Unnumbered Tears, for no
song or tale can contain all its grief. The host of Fingon retreated over the
sands, and Haldir lord of the Haladin was slain in the rearguard; with him fell
most of the Men of Brethil, and came never back to their woods. But on the
fifth day as night fell, and they were still far from Ered Wethrin, the Orcs
surrounded the host of Hithlum, and they fought until day, pressed ever closer.
In the morning came hope, when the horns of Turgon were heard as he marched up
with the main host of Gondolin; for they had been stationed southward guarding
the Pass of Sirion, and Turgon restrained most of his people from the rash
onslaught. Now he hastened to the aid of his brother; and the Gondolindrim were
strong and clad in mail, and their ranks shone like a river of steel in the
sun. Now the phalanx of the guard of the King
broke through the ranks of the Orcs, and Turgon hewed his way to the side of
his brother; and it is told that the meeting of Turgon with Hъrin, who stood
beside Fingon, was glad in the midst of battle. Then hope was renewed in the
hearts of the Elves; and in that very time, at the third hour of morning, the
trumpets of Maedhros were heard at last coming up from the east, and the
banners of the sons of Fлanor assailed the enemy in the rear. Some have said
that even then the Eldar might have won the day, had all their hosts proved
faithful; for the Orcs wavered, and their onslaught was stayed, and already
some were turning to flight. But even as the vanguard of Maedhros came upon the
Orcs, Morgoth loosed his last strength, and Angband was emptied. There came
wolves, and wolfriders, and there came Balrogs, and dragons, and Glaurung
father of dragons. The strength and terror of the Great Worm were now great
indeed, and Elves and Men withered before him; and he came between the hosts of
Maedhros and Fingon and swept them apart. Yet neither by wolf, nor by Balrog, nor by
Dragon, would Morgoth have achieved his end, but for the treachery of Men. In
this hour the plots of Ulfang were revealed. Many of the Easterlings turned and
fled, their hearts being filled with lies and fear; but the sons of Ulfang went
over suddenly to Morgoth and drove in upon the rear of the sons of Fлanor, and
in the confusion that they wrought they came near to the standard of Maedhros.
They reaped not the reward that Morgoth promised them, for Maglor slew Uldor
the accursed, the leader in treason, and the sons of Bуr slew Ulfast and
Ulwarth ere they themselves were slain. But new strength of evil Men came up
that Uldor had summoned and kept hidden in the eastern hills, and the host of
Maedhros was assailed now on three sides, and it broke, and was scattered, and
fled this way and that. Yet fate saved the sons of Fлanor, and though all were
wounded none were slain, for they drew together, and gathering a remnant of the
Noldor and the Naugrim about them they hewed a way out of the battle and
escaped far away towards Mount Dolmed in the east. Last of all the eastern force to stand firm
were the Dwarves of Belegost, and thus they won renown. For the Naugrim
withstood fire more hardily than either Elves or Men, and it was their custom
moreover to wear great masks in battle hideous to look upon; and those stood
them in good stead against the dragons. And but for them Glaurung and his brood
would have withered all that was left of the Noldor. But the Naugrim made a
circle about him when he assailed them, and even his mighty armour was not full
proof against the blows of their great axes; and when in his rage Glaurung
turned and struck down Azaghвl, Lord of Belegost, and crawled over him, with
his last stroke Azaghвl drove a knife into his belly, and so wounded him that
he fled the field, and the beasts of Angband in dismay followed after him. Then
the Dwarves raised up the body of Azaghвl and bore it away; and with slow steps
they walked behind singing a dirge in deep voices, as it were a funeral pomp in
their country, and gave no heed more to their foes; and none dared to stay
them. But now in the western battle Fingon and
Turgon were assailed by a tide of foes thrice greater than all the force that
was left to them. Gothmog, Lord of Balrogs, high-captain of Angband, was come;
and he drove a dark wedge between the Elvenhosts, surrounding King Fingon, and
thrusting Turgon and Hъrin aside towards the Fen of Serech. Then he turned upon
Fingon. That was a grim meeting. At last Fingon stood alone with his guard dead
about him; and he fought with Gothmog, until another Balrog came behind and
cast a thong of fire about him. Then Gothmog hewed him with his black axe, and
a white flame sprang up from the helm of Fingon as it was cloven. Thus fell the
High King of the Noldor; and they beat him into the dust with their maces, and
his banner, blue and silver, they trod into the mire of his blood. The field was lost; but still Hъrin and Huor
and the remnant of the house of Hador stood firm with Turgon of Gondolin, and
the hosts of Morgoth could not yet win the Pass of Sirion. Then Hъrin spoke to
Turgon, saying: 'Go now, lord, while time is! For in you lives the last hope of
the Eldar, and while Gondolin stands Morgoth shall still know fear in his heart.' But Turgon answered: 'Not long now can
Gondolin be hidden; and being discovered it must fall.' Then Huor spoke and said: 'Yet if it stands
but a little while, then out of your house shall come the hope of Elves and
Men. This I say to you, lord, with the eyes of death: though we part here for
ever, and I shall not look on your white walls again, from you and from me a
new star shall arise. Farewell!' And Maeglin, Turgon's sister-son, who stood
by, heard these words, and did not forget them; but he said nothing. Then Turgon took the counsel of Hъrin and
Huor, and summoning all that remained of the host of Gondolin and such of
Fingon's people as could be gathered he retreated towards the Pass of Sirion;
and his captains Ecthelion and Glorfindel guarded the flanks to right and left,
so that none of the enemy should pass them by. But the Men of Dor-lуmin held
the rearguard, as Hъrin and Huor desired; for they did not wish in their hearts
to leave the Northlands, and if they could not win back to their homes, there
they would stand to the end. Thus was the treachery of Uldor redressed; and of
all the deeds of war that the fathers of Men wrought in behalf of the Eldar,
the last stand of the Men of Dor-lуmin is most renowned. So it was that Turgon fought his way
southward, until coming behind the guard of Hъrin and Huor he passed down
Sirion and escaped; and he vanished into the mountains and was hidden from the
eyes of Morgoth. But the brothers drew the remnant of the Men of the house of
Hador about them, and foot by foot they withdrew, until they came behind the
Fen of Serech, and had the stream of Rivil before them. There they stood and
gave way no more. Then all the hosts of Angband swarmed
against them, and they bridged the stream with their dead, and encircled the
remnant of Hithlum as a gathering tide about a rock. There as the sun westered
on the sixth day, and the shadow of Ered Wethrin grew dark, Huor fell pierced
with a venomed arrow in his eye, and all the valiant Men of Hador were slain
about him in a heap; and the Orcs hewed their heads and piled them as a mound
of gold in the sunset. Last of all Hъrin stood alone. Then he cast
aside his shield, and wielded an axe two-handed; and it is sung that the axe
smoked in the black blood of the troll-guard of Gothmog until it withered, and
each time that he slew Hъrin cried: 'Aurл
entuluva! Day shall come again!' Seventy times he uttered that cry; but
they took him at last alive, by the command of Morgoth, for the Orcs grappled
him with their hands, which clung to him still though he hewed off their arms;
and ever their numbers were renewed, until at last he fell buried beneath them.
Then Gothmog bound him and dragged him to Angband with mockery. Thus ended Nirnaeth Arnoediad, as the sun
went down beyond the sea. Night fell in Hithlum, and there came a great storm
of wind out of the West. Great was the triumph of Morgoth, and his
design was accomplished in a manner after his own heart; for Men took the lives
of Men, and betrayed the Eldar, and fear and hatred were aroused among those
that should have been united against him. From that day the hearts of the Elves
were estranged from Men, save only those of the Three Houses of the Edain. The realm of Fingon was no more; and the
sons of Fлanor wandered as leaves before the wind. Their arms were scattered,
and their league broken; and they took to a wild and woodland life beneath the
feet of Ered Lindon, mingling with the Green-elves of Ossiriand, bereft of
their power and glory of old. In Brethil some few of the Haladin yet dwelt in
the protection of their woods, and Handir son of Haldir was their lord; but to
Hithlum came back never one of Fingon's host, nor any of the Men of Hador's
house, nor any tidings of the battle and the fate of their lords. But Morgoth
sent thither the Easterlings that had served him, denying them the rich lands
of Beleriand which they coveted; and he shut them in Hithlum and forbade them
to leave it. Such was the reward he gave them for their treachery to Maedhros:
to plunder and harass the old and the women and the children of Hador's people.
The remnant of the Eldar of Hithlum were taken to the mines of the north and
laboured there as thralls, save some that eluded him and escaped into the wilds
and the mountains.' The Orcs and the wolves went freely through
all the North, and came ever further southward into Beleriand, even as far as
Nantathren, the Land of Willows, and the borders of Ossiriand, and none were
safe in field or wild. Doriath indeed remained, and the halls of Nargothrond
were hidden; but Morgoth gave small heed to them, either because he knew little
of them, or because their hour was not yet come in the deep purposes of his
malice. Many now fled to the Havens and took refuge behind Cнrdan's walls, and
the mariners passed up and down the coast and harried the enemy with swift
landings. But in the next year, ere the winter was come, Morgoth sent great
strength over Hithlum and Nevrast, and they came down the rivers Brithon and
Nenning and ravaged all the Falas, and besieged the walls of Brithombar and
Eglarest. Smiths and miners and makers of fire they brought with them, and they
set up great engines; and valiantly though they were resisted they broke the
walls at last. Then the Havens were laid in ruin, and the tower of Barad Nimras
cast down; and the most part of Cнrdan's people were slain or enslaved. But
some went aboard ship and escaped by sea; and among them was Ereinion
Gil-galad, the son of Fingon, whom his father had sent to the Havens after the
Dagor Bragollach. This remnant sailed with Cнrdan south to the Isle of Balar,
and they made a refuge for all that could come thither; for they kept a
foothold also at the Mouths of Sirion, and there many light and swift ships lay
hid in the creeks and waters where the reeds were dense as a forest. And when Turgon heard of this he sent again
his messengers to Sirion's mouths, and besought the aid of Cнrdan the
Shipwright. At the bidding of Turgon Cнrdan built seven swift ships, and they
sailed out into the West; but no tidings of them came ever back to Balar, save
of one, and the last. The mariners of that ship toiled long in the sea, and
returning at last in despair they foundered in a great storm within sight of
the coasts of Middle-earth; but one of them was saved by Ulmo from the wrath of
Ossл, and the waves bore him up, and cast him ashore in Nevrast. His name was
Voronwл; and he was one of those that Turgon sent forth as messengers from
Gondolin. Now the thought of Morgoth dwelt ever upon
Turgon; for Turgon had escaped him, of ail his foes that one whom he most
desired to take or to destroy. And that thought troubled him, and marred his
victory, for Turgon of the mighty house of Fingolfin was now by right King of
all the Noldor; and Morgoth feared and hated the house of Fingolfin, because
they had the friendship of Ulmo his foe, and because of the wounds that
Fingolfin gave him with his sword. And most of all his kin Morgoth feared
Turgon; for of old in Valinor his eye had lighted upon him, and whenever he
drew near a shadow had fallen on his spirit, foreboding that in some time that
yet lay hidden, from Turgon ruin should come to him. Therefore Hъrin was brought before Morgoth,
for Morgoth knew that he had the friendship of the King of Gondolin; but Hъrin
defied him, and mocked him. Then Morgoth cursed Hъrin and Morwen and their
offspring, and set a doom upon them of darkness and sorrow; and taking Hъrin
from prison he set him in a chair of stone upon a high place of Thangorodrim.
There he was bound by the power of Morgoth, and Morgoth standing beside him
cursed him again; and he said: 'Sit now there; and look out upon the lands
where evil and despair shall come upon those whom thou lovest. Thou hast dared
to mock me, and to question the power of Melkor, Master of the fates of Arda.
Therefore with my eyes thou shalt see, and with my ears thou shalt hear; and
never shalt thou move from this place until all is fulfilled unto its bitter
end.' And even so it came to pass; but it is not
said that Hъrin asked ever of Morgoth either mercy or death, for himself or for
any of his kin. By the command of Morgoth the Orcs with
great labour gathered all the bodies of those who had fallen in the great
battle, and all their harness and weapons, and piled them in a great mound in
the midst of Anfauglith; and it was like a hill that could be seen from afar.
Haudh-en-Ndengin the Elves named it, the Hill of Slain, and Haudh-en-Nirnaeth,
the Hill of Tears. But grass came there and grew again long and green upon that
hill, alone in all the desert that Morgoth made; and no creature of Morgoth
trod thereafter upon the earth beneath which the swords of the Eldar and the
Edain crumbled into rust. Chapter 21 Of Tъrin Turambar Rнan, daughter of
Belegund, was the wife of Huor, son of Galdor; and she was wedded to him two
months before he went with Hъrin his brother to the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. When no
tidings came of her lord she fled into the wild; but she was aided by the Grey-elves
of Mithrim, and when her son Tuor was born they fostered him. Then Rнan
departed from Hithlum, and going to the Haudh-en-Ndengin she laid herself down
upon it and died. Morwen, daughter of Baragund, was the wife
of Hъrin, Lord of Dor-lуmin; and their son was Tъrin, who was born in the year
that Beren Erchamion came upon Lъthien in the Forest of Neldoreth. A daughter
they had also who was called Lalaith, which is Laughter, and she was beloved by
Tъrin her brother; but when she was three years old there came a pestilence to
Hithlum, borne on an evil wind out of Angband, and she died. Now after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad Morwen
abode still in Dor-lуmin, for Tъrin was but eight years old, and she was again
with child. Those days were evil; for the Easterlings that came into Hithlum
despised the remnant of the people of Hador, and they oppressed them, and took
their lands and their goods, and enslaved their children. But so great was the
beauty and majesty of the Lady of Dor-lуmin that the Easterlings were afraid,
and dared not to lay hands upon her or her household; and they whispered among
themselves, saying that she was perilous, and a witch skilled in magic and in
league with the Elves. Yet she was now poor and without aid, save that she was
succoured secretly by a kinswoman of Hъrin named Aerin, whom Brodda, an
Easterling, had taken as his wife; and Morwen feared greatly that Tъrin would
be taken from her and enslaved. Therefore it came into her heart to send him
away in secret, and to beg King Thingol to harbour him, for Beren son of
Barahir was her father's kinsman, and he had been moreover a friend of Hъrin,
ere evil befell. Therefore in the autumn of the Year of Lamentation Morwen sent
Tъrin forth over the mountains with two aged servants, bidding them find entry,
if they could, into the kingdom of Doriath. Thus was the fate of Tъrin woven,
which is fulltold in that lay that is called Narn i Hоn Hъrin, the Tale of the
Children of Hъrin, and is the longest of all the lays that speak of those days.
Here that tale is told in brief, for it is woven with the fate of the Silmarils
and of the Elves; and it is called the Tale of Grief, for it is sorrowful, and
in it are revealed most evil works of Morgoth Bauglir. In the first beginning of the year Morwen
gave birth to her child, the daughter of Hъrin; and she named her Nienor, which
is Mourning. But Tъrin and his companions passing through great perils came at
last to the borders of Doriath; and there they were found by Beleg Strongbow,
chief of the marchwardens of King Thingol, who led them to Menegroth. Then
Thingol received Tъrin, and took him even to his own fostering, in honour of
Hъrin the Steadfast; for Thingol's mood was changed towards the houses of the
Elf-friends. Thereafter messengers went north to Hithlum, bidding Morwen leave
Dor-lуmin and return with them to Doriath; but still she would not leave the
house in which she had dwelt with Hъrin. And when the Elves departed she sent
with them the Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin, greatest of the heirlooms of the house
of Hador. Tъrin grew fair and strong in Doriath, but
he was marked with sorrow. For nine years he dwelt in Thingol's halls, and
during that time his grief grew less; for messengers went at times to Hithlum,
and returning they brought better tidings of Morwen and Nienor. But there came a day when the messengers did
not return out of die north, and Thingol would send no more. Then Tъrin was
filled with fear for his mother and his sister, and in grimness of heart he
went before the King and asked for mail and sword; and he put on the
Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin and went out to battle on the marches of Doriath, and
became the companion in arms of Beleg Cъthalion. And when three years had passed, Tъrin
returned again to Menegroth; but he came from the wild, and was unkempt, and
his gear and garments were way-worn. Now one there was in Doriath, of the
people of the Nandor, high in the counsels of the King; Saeros was his name. He
had long begrudged to Tъrin the honour he received as Thingol's fosterson; and
seated opposite to him at the board he taunted him, saying: 'If the Men of Hithlum are so wild and fell,
of what sort are the women of that land? Do they run like deer clad only in
their hair?' Then Tъrin in great anger took up a drinking-vessel, and cast it
at Saeros; and he was grievously hurt. On the next day Saeros waylaid Tъrin as he
set out from Menegroth to return to the marches; but Tъrin overcame him, and
set him to run naked as a hunted beast through the woods. Then Saeros fleeing
in terror before him fell into the chasm of a stream, and his body was broken
on a great rock in the water. But others coming saw what was done, and Mablung
was among them; and he bade Tъrin return with him to Menegroth and abide the
judgement of the King, seeking his pardon. But Tъrin, deeming himself now an
outlaw and fearing to be held captive, refused Mablung's bidding, and turned
swiftly away; and passing through the Girdle of Melian he came into the woods
west of Sirion. There he joined himself to a band of such houseless and
desperate men as could be found in those evil days lurking in the wild; and
their hands were turned against all who came in their path Elves and Men and
Orcs. But when all that had befallen was told and
searched out before Thingol, the King pardoned Tъrin, holding him wronged. In
that time Beleg Strongbow returned from the north marches and came to
Menegroth, seeking him; and Thingol spoke to Beleg, saying: 'I grieve,
Cъthalion; for I took Hъrin's son as my son, and so he shall remain, unless
Hъrin himself should return out of the shadows to claim his own. I would not
have any say that Tъrin was driven forth unjustly into the wild, and gladly
would I welcome him back; for I loved him well.' And Beleg answered: 'I will seek Tъrin until
I find him, and I will bring him back to Menegroth, if I can; for I love him
also.' Then Beleg departed from Menegroth, and far
across Beleriand he sought in vain for tidings of Tъrin through many perils. But Tъrin abode long among the outlaws, and
became their captain; and he named himself Neithan, the Wronged. Very warily
they dwelt in the wooded lands south of Teiglin; but when a year had passed
since Tъrin fled from Doriath, Beleg came upon their lair by night. It chanced
that at that time Tъrin was gone from the camp; and the outlaws seized Beleg
and bound him, and treated him cruelly, for they feared him as a spy of the
King of Doriath. But Tъrin returning and seeing what was done, was stricken
with remorse for all their evil and lawless deeds; and he released Beleg, and
they renewed their friendship, and Tъrin foreswore thenceforward war or plunder
against all save the servants of Angband. Then Beleg told Tъrin of King Thingol's
pardon; and he sought to persuade him by all means that he might to return with
him to Doriath, saying that there was great need of his strength and valour on
the north marches of the realm. 'Of late the Orcs have found a way down out of
Taur-nu-Fuin,' he said; 'they have made a road through the Pass of Anach.' 'I do not remember it,' said Tъrin. 'Never did we go so far from the borders,'
said Beleg. 'But you have seen the peaks of the Crissaegrim far off, and to the
east the dark walls of the Gorgoroth. Anach lies between, above the high
springs of Mindeb, a hard and dangerous road; yet many come by it now, and
Dimbar which used to be in peace is falling under the Black Hand, and the Men of
Brethil are troubled. We are needed there.' But in the pride of his heart Tъrin refused
the pardon of the King, and the words of Beleg were of no avail to change his
mood. And he for his part urged Beleg to remain with him in the lands west of
Sirion; but that Beleg would not do, and he said: 'Hard you are, Tъrin, and
stubborn. Now the turn is mine. If you wish indeed to have the Strongbow beside
you, look for me in Dimbar; for thither I shall return.' On the next day Beleg set out, and Tъrin
went with him a bowshot from the camp; but he said nothing. 'Is it farewell,
then, son of Hъrin?' said Beleg. Then Tъrin looked out westward, and he saw far
off the great height of Amon Rыdh; and unwitting of what lay before him he
answered: 'You have said, seek me in Dimbar. But I say, seek for me on Amon
Rыdh! Else, this is our last farewell.' Then they parted, in friendship, yet in
sadness. Now Beleg returned to the Thousand Caves,
and coming before Thingol and Melian he told them of all that had befallen,
save only of his evil handling by Tъrin's companions. Then Thingol sighed, and
he said: 'What more would Tъrin have me do?' 'Give me leave, lord,' said Beleg, 'and I
will guard him and guide him as I may; then no man shall say that elven-words
are lightly spoken. Nor would I wish to see so great a good run to nothing in
the wild.' Then Thingol gave Beleg leave to do as he
would; and he said: 'Beleg Cъthalion! For many deeds you have earned my thanks;
but not the least is the finding of my fosterson. At this parting ask for any
gift, and I will not deny it to you.' 'I ask then for a sword of worth,' said
Beleg; 'for the Orcs come now too thick and close for a bow only, and such
blade as I have is no match for their armour.' 'Choose from all that I have,' said Thingol,
'save only Aranrъth, my own.' Then Beleg chose Anglachel; and that was a
sword of great worth, and it was so named because it was made of iron that fell
from heaven as a blazing star; it would cleave all earth-delved iron. One other
sword only in Middle-earth was like to it. That sword does not enter into this
tale, though it was made of the same ore by the same smith; and that smith was
Eцl the Dark Elf, who took Aredhel Turgon's sister to wife. He gave Anglachel
to Thingol as fee, which he begrudged, for leave to dwell in Nan Elmoth; but
its mate Anguirel he kept, until it was stolen from him by Maeglin, his son. But as Thingol turned the hilt of Anglachel
towards Beleg, Melian looked at the blade; and she said: 'There is malice in
this sword. The dark heart of the smith still dwells in it. It will not love
the hand it serves; neither will it abide with you long.' 'Nonetheless I will wield it while I may,'
said Beleg. 'Another gift I will give to you,
Cъthalion,' said Melian, 'that shall be your help in the wild, and the help
also of those whom you choose.' And she gave him store of lembas, the waybread of the Elves, wrapped in leaves of silver, and
the threads that bound it were sealed at the knots with the seal of the Queen,
a wafer of white wax shaped as a single flower of Telperion; for according to
the customs of the Eldaliл the keeping and giving of lembas belonged to the Queen alone. In nothing did Melian show
greater favour to Tъrin than in this gift; for the Eldar had never before
allowed Men to use this waybread, and seldom did so again. Then Beleg departed with these gifts from
Menegroth and went back to the north marches, where he had his lodges, and many
friends. Then in Dimbar the Orcs were driven back, and Anglachel rejoiced to be
unsheathed; but when the winter came, and war was stilled, suddenly his
companions missed Beleg, and he returned to them no more. Now when Beleg parted from the outlaws and
returned into Doriath, Tъrin led them away westward out of Sirion's vale; for
they grew weary of their life without rest, ever watchful and in fear of
pursuit, and they sought for a safer lair. And it chanced at a time of evening
that they came upon three Dwarves, who fled before them; but one that lagged
behind was seized and thrown down, and a man of the company took his bow and
let fly an arrow at the others as they vanished in the dusk. Now the dwarf that
they had taken was named Mоm; and he pleaded for his life before Tъrin, and
offered as ransom to lead them to his hidden halls which none might find
without his aid. Then Tъrin pitied Mоm, and spared him; and he said: 'Where is
your house?' Then Mоm answered: 'High above the lands
lies the house of Mоm, upon the great hill; Amon Rыdh is that hill called now,
since the Elves changed all the names.' Then Tъrin was silent, and he looked long
upon the dwarf; and at last he said: 'You shall bring us to that place.' On the next day they set out thither,
following Mоm to Amon Rыdh. Now that hill stood upon the edge of the moorlands
that rose between the vales of Sirion and Narog, and high above the stony heath
it reared its crown; but its steep grey head was bare, save for the red seregon that mantled the stone. And as
the men of Tъrin's band drew near, the sun westering broke through the clouds,
and fell upon the crown; and the seregon
was all in flower. Then one among them said: 'There is blood on the hill-top.' But Mоm led them by secret paths up the
steep slopes of Amon Rыdh; and at the mouth of his cave he bowed to Tъrin,
saying: 'Enter into Bar-en-Danwedh, the House of Ransom; for so it shall be
called.' And now there came another dwarf bearing
light to greet him, and they spoke together, and passed swiftly down into the
darkness of the cave; but Tъrin followed after, and came at length to a chamber
far within, lit by dim lamps hanging upon chains. There he found Mоm kneeling
at a stone couch beside the wall, and he tore his beard, and wailed, crying one
name unceasingly; and on the couch there lay a third. But Tъrin entering stood
beside Mоm, and offered him aid. Then Mоm looked up at him, and said: 'You can
give no aid. For this is Khоm, my son; and he is dead, pierced by an arrow. He
died at sunset. Ibun my son has told me.' Then pity rose in Tъrin's heart, and he said
to Mоm: 'Alas! I would recall that shaft, if I could. Now Bar-en-Danwedh this
house shall be called in truth; and if ever I come to any wealth, I will pay
you a ransom of gold for your son, in token of sorrow, though it gladden your
heart no more.' Then Mоm rose, and looked long at Tъrin. 'I
hear you,' he said. 'You speak like a dwarf-lord of old; and at that I marvel.
Now my heart is cooled, though it is not glad; and hi this house you may dwell,
if you will; for I will pay my ransom.' So began the abiding of Tъrin in the hidden
house of Mоm upon Amon Rыdh; and he walked on the greensward before the mouth
of the cave, and looked out east, and west, and north. Northward he looked, and
descried the Forest of Brethil climbing green about Amon Obel in its midst, and
thither his eyes were drawn ever and again, he knew not why; for his heart was
set rather to the north-west, where league upon league away on the skirts of
the sky it seemed to him that he could glimpse the Mountains of Shadow, the
walls of his home. But at evening Tъrin looked west into the sunset, as the sun
rode down red into the hazes above the distant coasts, and the Vale of Narog
lay deep in the shadows between. In the time that followed Tъrin spoke much
with Mоm, and sitting with him alone he listened to his lore and the tale of
his life. For Mоm came of Dwarves that were banished in ancient days from the
great Dwarf-cities of the east, and long before the return of Morgoth they
wandered westward into Beleriand; but they became diminished in stature and in
smith-craft, and they took to lives of stealth, walking with bowed shoulders
and furtive steps. Before the Dwarves of Nogrod and Belegost came west over the
mountains the Elves of Beleriand knew not what these others were, and they
hunted them, and slew them; but afterwards they let them alone, and they were
called Noegyth Nibin, the Petty-Dwarves, in the Sindarin tongue. They loved
none but themselves, and if they feared and hated the Orcs, they hated the
Eldar no less, and the Exiles most of all; for the Noldor, they said, had
stolen their lands and their homes. Long ere King Finrod Felagund came over the
Sea, the caves of Nargothrond were discovered by them, and by them its delving
was begun; and beneath the crown of Amon Rыdh, the Bald Hill, the slow hands of
the Petty-Dwarves had bored and deepened the caves through the long years that
they dwelt there, untroubled by the Grey-elves of the woods. But now at last
they had dwindled and died out of Middle-earth, all save Mоm and his two sons;
and Mоm was old even in the reckoning of Dwarves, old and forgotten. And in his
halls the smithies were idle, and the axes rusted, and their name was
remembered only in ancient tales of Doriath and Nargothrond. But when the year drew on to midwinter, snow
came down from the north heavier than they had known it in the river-vales, and
Amon Rыdh was covered deep; and they said that the winters worsened in
Beleriand as the power of Angband grew. Then only the hardiest dared stir
abroad; and some fell sick, and all were pinched with hunger. But in the dim
dusk of a winter's day there appeared suddenly among them a man, as it seemed,
of great bulk and girth, cloaked and hooded in white; and he walked up to the
fire without a word. And when men sprang up in fear, he laughed, and threw back
his hood, and beneath his wide cloak he bore a great pack; and in the light of
the fire Tъrin looked again on the face of Beleg Cъthalion. Thus Beleg returned once more to Tъrin, and
their meeting was glad; and with him he brought out of Dimbar the Dragon-helm
of Dor-lуmin, thinking that it might lift Tъrin's thought again above his life
in the wilderness as the leader of a petty company. But still Tъrin would not
return to Doriath; and Beleg yielding to his love against his wisdom remained
with him, and did not depart, and in that time he laboured much for the good of
Tъrin's company. Those that were hurt or sick he tended, and gave to them the lembas of Melian; and they were quickly
healed, for though the Grey-elves were less in skill and knowledge than the
Exiles from Valinor, in the ways of the life of Middle-earth they had a wisdom
beyond the reach of Men. And because Beleg was strong and enduring, farsighted
in mind as in eye, he came to be held in honour among the outlaws; but the
hatred of Mоm for the Elf that had come into Bar-en-Danwedh grew ever greater,
and he sat with Ibun his son in the deepest shadows of his house, speaking to
none. But Tъrin paid now little heed to the Dwarf; and when winter passed, and
spring came, they had sterner work to do. Who knows now the counsels of Morgoth? Who
can measure the reach of his thought, who had been Melkor, mighty among the
Ainur of the Great Song, and sat now, a dark lord upon a dark throne in the
North, weighing in his malice all the tidings that came to him, and perceiving
more of the deeds and purposes of his enemies than even the wisest of them
feared, save only Melian the Queen? To her often the thought of Morgoth reached
out, and there was foiled. And now again the might of Angband was
moved; and as the long fingers of a groping hand the forerunners of his armies
probed the ways into Beleriand. Through Anach they came, and Dimbar was taken,
and all the north marches of Doriath. Down the ancient road they came that led
through the long defile of Sirion, past the isle where Minas Tirith of Finrod
had stood, and so through the land between Malduin and Sirion, and on through
the eaves of Brethil to the Crossings of Teiglin. Thence the road went on into
the Guarded Plain; but the Orcs did not go far upon it, as yet, for there dwelt
now in the wild a terror that was hidden, and upon the red hill were watchful
eyes of which they had not been warned. For Tъrin put on again the Helm of
Hador; and far and wide in Beleriand the whisper went, under wood and over
stream and through the passes of the hills, saying that the Helm and Bow that
had fallen in Dimbar had arisen again beyond hope. Then many who went
leaderless, dispossessed but undaunted, took heart again, and came to seek the
Two Captains. Dor-Cъarthol, the Land of Bow and Helm, was in that time named
all the region between Teiglin and the west march of Doriath; and Tъrin named
himself anew, Gorthol, the Dread Helm, and his heart was high again. In
Menegroth, and in the deep halls of Nargothrond, and even in the hidden realm
of Gondolin, the fame of the deeds of the Two Captains was heard; and in
Angband also they were known. Then Morgoth laughed, for now by the Dragon-helm
was Hъrin's son revealed to him again; and ere long Amon Rыdh was ringed with
spies. In the waning of the year Mоm the Dwarf and
Ibun his son went out from Bar-en-Danwedh to gather roots in the wild for their
winter store; and they were taken captive by Orcs. Then for a second time Mоm
promised to guide his enemies by the secret paths to his home on Amon Rыdh; but
yet he sought to delay the fulfilment of his promise, and demanded that Gorthol
should not be slain. Then the Ore-captain laughed, and he said to Mоm:
'Assuredly Tъrin son of Hъrin shall not be slain.' Thus was Bar-en-Danwedh betrayed, for the
Orcs came upon it by night at unawares, guided by Mоm. There many of Tъrin's
company were slain as they slept; but some fleeing by an inner stair came out
upon the hill-top, and there they fought until they fell, and their blood
flowed out upon the seregon that mantled the stone. But a net was cast over
Tъrin as he fought, and he was enmeshed in it, and overcome, and led away. And at length when all was silent again Mоm
crept out of the shadows of his house; and as the sun rose over the mists of
Sirion he stood beside the dead men on the hill-top. But he perceived that not
all those that lay there were dead; for by one his gaze was returned, and he
looked in the eyes of Beleg the Elf. Then with hatred long-stored Mоm stepped
up to Beleg, and drew forth the sword Anglachel that lay beneath the body of
one that had fallen beside him; but Beleg stumbling up seized back the sword
and thrust it at the Dwarf, and Mоm in terror fled wailing from the hill-top.
And Beleg cried after him: 'The vengeance of the house of Hador will find you
yet!' Now Beleg was sorely wounded, but he was
mighty among the Elves of Middle-earth, and he was moreover a master of
healing. Therefore he did not die, and slowly his strength returned; and he
sought in vain among the dead for Tъrin, to bury him. But he found him not; and
then he knew that Hъrin's son was yet alive, and taken to Angband. With little hope Beleg departed from Amon
Rыdh and set out northward, towards the Crossings of Teiglin, following in the
track of the Orcs; and he crossed over the Brithiach and journeyed through
Dimbar towards the Pass of Anach. And now he was not far behind them, for he
went without sleeping, whereas they had tarried on their road, hunting in the
lands and fearing no pursuit as they came northward; and not even in the
dreadful woods of Taur-nu-Fuin did he swerve from the trail, for the skill of
Beleg was greater than any that have been in Middle-earth. But as he passed by
night through that evil land he came upon one lying asleep at the foot of a great
dead tree; and Beleg staying his steps beside the sleeper saw that it was an
Elf. Then he spoke to him, and gave him lembas, and asked him what fate had
brought him to that terrible place; and he named himself Gwindor, son of
Guilin. Grieving Beleg looked upon him; for Gwindor
was now but a bent and fearful shadow of his former shape and mood, when in the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad that lord of Nargothrond rode with rash courage to the very
doors of Angband, and there was taken. For few of the Noldor whom Morgoth
captured were put to death, because of their skill in forging and in mining for
metals and gems; and Gwindor was not slain, but put to labour in the mines of
the North. By secret tunnels known only to themselves the mining Elves might
sometimes escape; and thus it came to pass that Beleg found him, spent and
bewildered in the mazes of Taur-nu-Fuin.' And Gwindor told him that as he lay and
lurked among the trees he saw a great company of Orcs passing northwards, and
wolves went with them; and among them was a Man, whose hands were chained, and
they drove him onward with whips. 'Very tall he was', said Gwindor, 'as tall as
are the Men from the misty hills of Hithlum.' Then Beleg told him of his own
errand in Taur-nu-Fuin; and Gwindor sought to dissuade him from his quest,
saying that he would but join Tъrin in the anguish that awaited him. But Beleg
would not abandon Tъrin, and despairing himself he aroused hope again in
Gwindor's heart; and together they went on, following the Orcs until they came
out of the forest on the high slopes that ran down to the barren dunes of
Anfauglith. There within sight of the peaks of Thangorodrim the Orcs made their
encampment in a bare dell as the light of day was failing, and setting
wolf-sentinels all about they fell to carousing. A great storm rode up out of
the west, and lightning glittered on the Shadowy Mountains far away, as Beleg
and Gwindor crept towards the dell. When all in the camp were sleeping Beleg
took his bow, and in the darkness shot the wolf-sentinels, one by one and
silently. Then in great peril they entered in, and they found Tъrin fettered
hand and foot and tied to a withered tree; and all about him knives that had
been cast at him were embedded in the trunk, and he was senseless in a sleep of
great weariness. But Beleg and Gwindor cut the bonds that held him, and lifting
him they carried him out of the dell; yet they could bear him no further than
to a thicket of thorn-trees a little way above. There they laid him down; and
now the storm drew very near. Beleg drew his sword Anglachel, and with it he
cut the fetters that bound Tъrin; but fate was that day more strong, for the
blade slipped as he cut the shackles, and Tъrin's foot was pricked. Then he was
aroused into a sudden wakefulness of rage and fear, and seeing one bending over
him with naked blade he leapt up with a great cry, believing that Orcs were
come again to torment him; and grappling with him in the darkness he seized
Anglachel, and slew Beleg Cъthalion thinking him a foe. But as he stood, finding himself free, and
ready to sell his life dearly against imagined foes, there came a great flash
of lightning above them; and in its light he looked down on Beleg's face. Then
Tъrin stood stone-still and silent, staring on that dreadful death, knowing what
he had done; and so terrible was his face, lit by the lightning that flickered
all about them, that Gwindor cowered down upon the ground and dared not raise
his eyes.' But now in the dell beneath the Orcs were
aroused, and all the camp was in a tumult; for they feared the thunder that
came out of the west, believing that it was sent against them by the great
Enemies beyond the Sea. Then a wind arose, and great rains fell, and torrents
swept down from the heights of Taur-nu-Fuin; and though Gwindor cried out to
Tъrin, warning him of their utmost peril, he made no answer, but sat unmoving
and unweeping in the tempest beside the body of Beleg Cъthalion. When morning came the storm was passed away
eastward over Lothlann, and the sun of autumn rose hot and bright; but
believing that Tъrin would have fled far away from that place and all trace of
his flight be washed away, the Orcs departed in haste without longer search,
and far off Gwindor saw them marching away over the steaming sands of
Anfauglith. Thus it came to pass that they returned to Morgoth empty-handed,
and left behind them the son of Hъrin, who sat crazed and unwitting on the
slopes of Taur-nu-Fuin, bearing a burden heavier than their bonds. Then Gwindor roused Tъrin to aid him in the
burial of Beleg, and he rose as one that walked in sleep; and together they
laid Beleg in a shallow grave, and placed beside him Belthronding his great
bow, that was made of black yew-wood. But the dread sword Anglachel Gwindor
took, saying that it were better that it should take vengeance on the servants
of Morgoth than lie useless in the earth; and he took also the lembas of Melian
to strengthen them in the wild. Thus ended Beleg Strongbow, truest of
friends, greatest in skill of all that harboured in the woods of Beleriand in
the Elder Days, at the hand of him whom he most loved; and that grief was
graven on the face of Tъrin and never faded. But courage and strength were
renewed in the Elf of Nargothrond, and departing from Taur-nu-Fuin he led Tъrin
far away. Never once as they wandered together on long and grievous paths did
Tъrin speak, and he walked as one without wish or purpose, while the year waned
and winter drew on over the northern lands. But Gwindor was ever beside him to
guard him and guide him; and thus they passed westward over Sirion and came at
length to Eithel Ivrin, the springs whence Narog rose beneath the Mountains of
Shadow. There Gwindor spoke to Tъrin, saying: 'Awake, Tъrin son of Hъrin
Thalion! On Ivrin's lake is endless laughter. She is fed from crystal fountains
unfailing, and guarded from defilement by Ulmo, Lord of Waters, who wrought her
beauty in ancient days.' Then Tъrin knelt and drank from that water; and
suddenly he cast himself down, and his tears were unloosed at last, and he was
healed of his madness. There he made a song for Beleg, and he named
it Laer Cъ Beleg, the Song of the
Great Bow, singing it aloud heedless of peril. And Gwindor gave the sword
Anglachel into his hands, and Tъrin knew that it was heavy and strong and had
great power; but its blade was black and dull and its edges blunt. Then Gwindor
said: 'This is a strange blade, and unlike any that I have seen in
Middle-earth. It mourns for Beleg even as you do. But be comforted; for I
return to Nargothrond of the house of Finarfin, and you shall come with me, and
be healed and renewed.' 'Who are you?' said Tъrin. 'A wandering Elf, a thrall escaped, whom
Beleg met and comforted,' said Gwindor. 'Yet once I was Gwindor son of Guilin,
a lord of Nargothrond, until I went to the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, and was enslaved
in Angband.' 'Then have you seen Hъrin son of Galdor, the
warrior of Dor-lуmin?' said Tъrin. 'I have not seen him,' said Gwindor. 'But
rumour of him runs through Angband that he still defies Morgoth; and Morgoth
has laid a curse upon turn and all his kin.' 'That I do believe,' said Tъrin. And now they arose, and departing from
Eithel Ivrin they journeyed southward along the banks of Narog, until they were
taken by scouts of the Elves and brought as prisoners to the hidden stronghold.
Thus did Tъrin come to Nargothrond. At first his own people did not know
Gwindor, who went out young and strong, and returned now seeming as one of the
aged among mortal Men, because of his torments and his labours; but Finduilas
daughter of Orodreth the King knew him and welcomed him, for she had loved him
before the Nirnaeth, and so greatly did Gwindor love her beauty that he named
her Faelivrin, which is the gleam of the sun on the pools of Ivrin. For
Gwindor's sake Tъrin was admitted with him into Nargothrond, and he dwelt there
in honour. But when Gwindor would tell his name, Tъrin checked him, saying: 'I
am Agarwaen the son of Ъmarth (which is the Bloodstained, son of Ill-fate), a
hunter in the woods'; and the Elves of Nargothrond questioned him no more. In the time that followed Tъrin grew high in
favour with Orodreth, and well-nigh all hearts were turned to him in
Nargothrond. For he was young, and only now reached his full manhood; and he
was in truth the son of Morwen Eledhwen to look upon: dark-haired and
pale-skinned, with grey eyes, and his face more beautiful than any other among
mortal Men, in the Elder Days. His speech and bearing were that of the ancient
kingdom of Doriath, and even among the Elves he might be taken for one from the
great houses of the Noldor; therefore many called him Adanedhel, the Elf-Man.
The sword Anglachel was forged anew for him by cunning smiths of Nargothrond,
and though ever black its edges shone with pale fire; and he named it Gurthang,
Iron of Death. So great was his prowess and skill in warfare on the confines of
the Guarded Plain that he himself became known as Mormegil, the Black Sword;
and the Elves said: 'The Mormegil cannot be slain, save by mischance, or an
evil arrow from afar.' Therefore they gave him dwarf-mail, to guard him; and in
a grim mood he found also in the armouries a dwarf-mask all gilded, and he put
it on before battle, and his enemies fled before his face. Then the heart of Finduilas was turned from
Gwindor and against her will her love was given to Tъrin; but Tъrin did not
perceive what had befallen. And being torn in heart Finduilas became sorrowful;
and she grew wan and silent. But Gwindor sat in dark thought; and on a time he
spoke to Finduilas, saying: 'Daughter of the house of Finarfin, let no grief
lie between us; for though Morgoth has laid my life in ruin, you still I love.
Go whither love leads you; yet beware! It is not fitting that the Elder
Children of Ilъvatar should wed with the Younger; nor is it wise, for they are
brief, and soon pass, to leave us in widowhood while the world lasts. Neither
will fate suffer it, unless it be once or twice only, for some high cause of
doom that we do not perceive. But this Man is not Beren. A doom indeed lies on
him, as seeing eyes may well read in him, but a dark doom. Enter not into it!
And if you will, your love shall betray you to bitterness and death. For
hearken to me! Though he be indeed agarwaen
son of ъmarth, his right name is
Tъrin son of Hъrin, whom Morgoth holds in Angband, and whose kin he has cursed.
Doubt not the power of Morgoth Bauglir! Is it not written in me?' Then Finduilas sat long in thought; but at
the last she said only: 'Tъrin son of Hъrin loves me not; nor will.' Now when Tъrin learnt from Finduilas of what
had passed, he was wrathful, and he said to Gwindor: 'In love I hold you for
rescue and safe-keeping. But now you have done ill to me, friend, to betray my
right name, and call my doom upon me, from which I would lie hid.' But Gwindor answered: 'The doom lies in yourself,
not in your name.' When it became known to Orodreth that the
Mormegil was in truth the son of Hъrin Thalion he gave him great honour, and
Tъrin became mighty among the people of Nargothrond. But he had no liking for
their manner of warfare, of ambush and stealth and secret arrow, and he yearned
for brave strokes and battle in the open; and his counsels weighed with the
King ever the longer the more. In those days the Elves of Nargothrond forsook
their secrecy and went openly to battle, and great store of weapons were made;
and by the counsel of Tъrin the Noldor built a mighty bridge over the Narog
from the Doors of Felagund, for the swifter passage of their arms. Then the
servants of Angband were driven out of all the land between Narog and Sirion eastward,
and westward to the Nenning and the desolate Falas; and though Gwindor spoke
ever against Tъrin in the council of the King, holding it an ill policy, he
fell into dishonour and none heeded him, for his strength was small and he was
no longer forward in arms. Thus Nargothrond was revealed to the wrath and
hatred of Morgoth; but still at Tъrin's prayer his true name was not spoken,
and though the fame of his deeds came into Doriath and to the ears of Thingol,
rumour spoke only of the Black Sword of Nargothrond. *** In that time of respite and hope, when
because of the deeds of the Mormegil the power of Morgoth was stemmed west of
Sirion, Morwen fled at last from Dor-lуmin with Nienor her daughter, and
adventured the long journey to Thingol's halls. There new grief awaited her,
for she found Tъrin gone, and to Doriath there had come no tidings since the
Dragon-helm had vanished from the lands west of Sirion; but Morwen remained in
Doriath with Nienor as guests of Thingol and Melian, and were treated with
honour. Now it came to pass, when four hundred and
ninety-five years had passed since the rising of the Moon, in the spring of the
year, there came to Nargothrond two Elves, named Gelmir and Arminas; they were
of Angrod's people, but since the Dagor Bragollach they dwelt in the south with
Cнrdan the Shipwright. From their far journeys they brought tidings of a great
mustering of Orcs and evil creatures under the eaves of Ered Wethrin and in the
Pass of Sirion; and they told also that Ulmo had come to Cнrdan, giving warning
that great peril drew nigh to Nargothrond. 'Hear the words of the Lord of Waters!' said
they to the King. 'Thus he spoke to Cнrdan the Shipwright: 'The Evil of the
North has defiled the springs of Sirion, and my power withdraws from the fingers
of the flowing waters. But a worse thing is yet to come forth. Say therefore to
the Lord of Nargothrond: Shut the doors of the fortress and go not abroad. Cast
the stones of your pride into the loud river, that the creeping evil may not
find the gate."' Orodreth was troubled by the dark words of
the messengers, but Tъrin would by no means hearken to these counsels, and
least of all would he suffer the great bridge to be cast down; for he was
become proud and stern, and would order all things as he wished. Soon afterwards Handir Lord of Brethil was
slain, for the Orcs invaded his land, and Handir gave them battle; but the Men
of Brethil were worsted, and driven back into their woods. And in the autumn of
the year, biding his hour, Morgoth loosed upon the people of Narog the great
host that he had long prepared; and Glaurung the Ъrulуki passed over
Anfauglith, and came thence into the north vales of Sirion and there did great
evil. Under the shadows of Ered Wethrin he defiled the Eithel Ivrin, and thence
he passed into the realm of Nargothrond, and burned the Talath Dirnen, the
Guarded Plain, between Narog and Teiglin. Then the warriors of Nargothrond went forth,
and tall and terrible on that day looked Tъrin, and the heart of the host was
upheld, as he rode on the right hand of Orodreth. But greater far was the host
of Morgoth than any scouts had told, and none but Tъrin defended by his
dwarf-mask could withstand the approach of Glaurung; and the Elves were driven
back and pressed by the Orcs into the field of Tumhalad, between Ginglith and
Narog, and there they were penned. On that day all the pride and host of
Nargothrond withered away; and Orodreth was slain in the forefront of the
battle, and Gwindor son of Guilin was wounded to the death. But Tъrin came to
his aid, and all fled before him; and he bore Gwindor out of the rout, and
escaping into a wood there laid him on the grass. Then Gwindor said to Tъrin: 'Let bearing pay
for bearing! But ill-fated was mine, and vain is thine; for my body is marred beyond
healing, and I must leave Middle-earth. And though I love thee, son of Hъrin,
yet I rue the day that I took thee from the Orcs. But for thy prowess and thy
pride, still I should have love and life, and Nargothrond should yet stand a
while.' Now if thou love me, leave me! Haste thee to Nargothrond, and save
Finduilas. And this last I say to thee: she alone stands between thee and thy
doom. If thou fail her, it shall not fail to find thee. Farewell!' Then Tъrin sped back to Nargothrond,
mustering such of the rout as he met with on the way; and the leaves fell from
the trees in a great wind as they went, for the autumn was passing to a dire
winter. But the host of the Orcs and Glaurung the Dragon were there before him,
and they came suddenly, ere those that were left on guard were aware of what
had befallen on the field of Tumhalad. In that day the bridge over Narog proved
an evil; for it was great and mightily made and could not swiftly be destroyed,
and the enemy came readily over the deep river, and Glaurung came in full fire
against the Doors of Felagund, and overthrew them, and passed within. And even as Tъrin came up the dreadful sack
of Nargothrond was well nigh achieved. The Orcs had slain or driven off all
that remained in arms, and were even then ransacking the great halls and
chambers, plundering and destroying; but those of the women and maidens that
were not burned or slain they had herded on the terraces before the doors, as
slaves to be taken into Morgoth's thraldom. Upon this ruin and woe Tъrin came,
and none could withstand him; or would not, though he struck down all before
him, and passed over the bridge, and hewed his way towards the captives. And now he stood alone, for the few that
followed him had fled. But in that moment Glaurung issued from the gaping
doors, and lay behind, between Tъrin and the bridge. Then suddenly he spoke, by
the evil spirit that was in him, saying: 'Hail, son of Hъrin. Well met!' Then Tъrin sprang about, and strode against
him, and the edges of Gurthang shone as with flame; but Glaurung withheld his
blast, and opened wide his serpent-eyes and gazed upon Tъrin. Without fear
Tъrin looked into them as he raised up the sword; and straightway he fell under
the binding spell of the lidless eyes of the dragon, and was halted moveless.
Then for a long time he stood as one graven of stone; and they two were alone,
silent before the doors of Nargothrond. But Glaurung spoke again, taunting
Tъrin, and he said: 'Evil have been all thy ways, son of Hъrin. Thankless
fosterling, outlaw, slayer of thy friend, thief of love, usurper of
Nargothrond, captain foolhardy, and deserter of thy kin. As thralls thy mother
and thy sister live in Dor-lуmin, in misery and want. Thou art arrayed as a
prince, but they go in rags; and for thee they yearn, but thou carest not for
that. Glad may thy father be to learn that he hath such a son; as learn he
shall.' And Tъrin being under the spell of Glaurung hearkened to his words, and
he saw himself as in a mirror misshapen by malice, and loathed that which he
saw. And while he was yet held by the eyes of the
dragon in torment of mind, and could not stir, the Orcs drove away the herded
captives, and they passed nigh to Tъrin and crossed over the bridge. Among them
was Finduilas, and she cried out to Tъrin as she went; but not until her cries
and the wailing of the captives was lost upon the northward road did Claiming
release Tъrin, and he might not stop his ears against that voice that haunted
him after. Then suddenly Glaurung withdrew his glance,
and waited; and Tъrin stirred slowly, as one waking from a hideous dream. Then
coming to himself he sprang upon the dragon with a cry. But Glaurung laughed,
saying: 'If thou wilt be slain, I will slay thee gladly. But small help will
that be to Morwen and Nienor. No heed didst thou give to the cries of the
Elf-woman. Wilt thou deny also the bond of thy blood?' But Tъrin drawing back his sword stabbed at
the dragon's eyes; and Glaurung coiling back swiftly towered above him, and
said: 'Nay! At least thou art valiant; beyond all whom I have met And they lie
who say that we of our part do not honour the valour of foes. See now! I offer
thee freedom. Go to thy kin, if thou canst. Get thee gone! And if Elf or Man be
left to make tale of these days, then surely in scorn they will name thee, if
thou spurnest this gift.' Then Tъrin, being yet bemused by the eyes of
the dragon, as were he treating with a foe that could know pity, believed the
words of Glaurung and fuming away he sped over the bridge. But as he went
Glaurung spoke behind him, saying in a fell voice: 'Haste thee now, son of
Hъrin, to Dor-lуmin! Or perhaps the Orcs shall come before thee, once again.
And if thou tarry for Finduilas, then never shalt thou see Morwen again, and
never at all shalt thou see Nienor thy sister; and they will curse thee.' But Tъrin passed away on the northward road,
and Claiming laughed once more, for he had accomplished the errand of his
Master. Then he turned to his own pleasure, and sent forth his blast, and
burned all about him. But all the Orcs that were busy in the sack he routed
forth, and drove them away, and denied them their plunder even to the last
thing of worth. The bridge then he broke down and cast into the foam of Narog;
and being thus secure he gathered all the hoard and riches of Felagund and
heaped them, and lay upon them in the innermost hall, and rested a while. And Tъrin hastened along the ways to the
north, through the lands now desolate between Narog and Teiglin, and the Fell
Winter came down to meet him; for in that year snow fell ere autumn was passed,
and spring came late and cold. Ever it seemed to him as he went that he heard
the cries of Finduilas, calling his name by wood and hill, and great was his
anguish; but his heart being hot with the lies of Glaurung, and seeing ever in
his mind the Orcs burning the house of Hъrin or putting Morwen and Nienor to
torment, he held on his way, and turned never aside. At last worn by haste and the long road (for
forty leagues and more had he journeyed without rest) he came with the first
ice of winter to the pools of Ivrin, where before he had been healed. But they
were now but a frozen mire, and he could drink there no more.' Thus he came hardly by the passes of
Dor-lуmin, through bitter snows from the north, and found again the land of his
childhood. Bare and bleak it was; and Morwen was gone. Her house stood empty,
broken and cold; and no living thing dwelt nigh. Therefore Tъrin departed, and
came to the house of Brodda the Easterling, he that had to wife Aerin, Hъrin's
kinswoman; and there he learned of an old servant that Morwen was long gone,
for she had fled with Nienor out of Dor-Lуmin, none but Aerin knew where. Then Tъrin strode to Brodda's table, and
seizing him he drew his sword, and demanded that he be told whither Morwen had
gone; and Aerin declared to him that she went to Doriath to seek her son. 'For
the lands were freed then from evil,' she said, 'by the Black Sword of the
south, who now has fallen, they say.' Then Tъrin's eyes were opened, and the
last threads of Glaurung's spell were loosed; and for anguish, and wrath at the
lies that had deluded him, and hatred of the oppressors of Morwen, a black rage
seized him, and he slew Brodda in his hall, and other Easterlings that were his
guests. Thereafter he fled out into the winter, a hunted man; but he was aided
by some that remained of Hador's people and knew the ways of the wild, and with
them he escaped through the falling snow and came to an outlaws' refuge in the
southern mountains of Dor-lуmin. Thence Tъrin passed again from the land of his
childhood, and returned to Sirion's vale. His heart was bitter, for to
Dor-lуmin he had brought only greater woe upon the remnant of his people, and
they were glad of his going; and this comfort alone he had: that by the prowess
of the Black Sword the ways to Doriath had been laid open to Morwen. And he
said in his thought: 'Then those deeds wrought not evil to all. And where else
might I have better bestowed my kin, even had I come sooner? For if the Girdle
of Melian be broken, then last hope is ended. Nay, it is better indeed as
things be; for a shadow I cast wheresoever I come. Let Melian keep them! And I
will leave them in peace unshadowed for a while.' Now Tъrin coming down from Ered Wethrin
sought for Finduilas in vain, roaming the woods beneath the mountains, wild and
wary as a beast; and he waylaid all the roads that went north to the Pass of
Sirion. But he was too late; for all the trails had grown old, or were washed
away by the winter. Yet thus it was that passing southwards down Teiglin Tъrin
came upon some of the Men of Brethil that were surrounded by Orcs; and he
delivered them, for the Orcs fled from Gurthang. He named himself Wildman of
the Woods, and they besought him to come and dwell with them; but he said that
he had an errand yet unachieved, to seek Finduilas, Orodreth's daughter of
Nargothrond. Then Dorlas, the leader of those woodmen, told the grievous
tidings of her death. For the Men of Brethil had waylaid at the Crossings of
Teiglin the Ore-host that led the captives of Nargothrond, hoping to rescue
them; but the Orcs had at once cruelly slain their prisoners, and Finduilas
they pinned to a tree with a spear. So she died, saying at the last: 'Tell the
Mormegil that Finduilas is here.' Therefore they had laid her in a mound near
that place, and named it Haudh-en-Elleth, the Mound of the Elf-maid. Tъrin bade them lead him thither, and there
he fell down into a darkness of grief that was near death. Then Dorlas by his
black sword, the fame whereof had come even inter the deeps of Brethil, and by
his quest of the King's daughter, knew that this Wildman was indeed the
Mormegil of Nargothrond, whom rumour said was the son of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin.
Therefore the woodmen lifted him up, and bore him away to their homes. Now
those were set in a stockade upon a high place in the forest, Ephel Brandir
upon Amon Obel; for the People of Haleth were now dwindled by war, and Brandir
son of Handir who ruled them was a man of gentle mood, and lame also from
childhood, and he trusted rather in secrecy than in deeds of war to save them
from the power of the North. Therefore he feared the tidings that Dorlas
brought, and when he beheld the face of Tъrin as he lay on the bier a cloud of
foreboding lay on his heart Nonetheless being moved by his woe he took him into
his own house and tended him, for he had skill in healing. And with the
beginning of spring Tъrin cast off his darkness, and grew hale again; and he
arose, and he thought that he would remain in Brethil hidden, and put his
shadow behind him, forsaking the past. He took therefore a new name, Turambar,
which in the High-elven speech signified Master of Doom; and he besought the
woodmen to forget that he was a stranger among them or ever bore any other
name. Nonetheless he would not wholly leave deeds of war; for he could not
endure that the Orcs should come to the Crossings of Teiglin or draw nigh to
Haudh-en-Elleth, and he made that a place of dread for them, so that they
shunned it. But he laid his black sword by, and wielded rather the bow and the
spear. Now new tidings came to Doriath concerning
Nargothrond, for some that had escaped from the defeat and the sack, and had
survived the Fell Winter in the wild, came at last to Thingol seeking refuge;
and the march-wardens brought them to the King. And some said that all the
enemy had withdrawn northwards, and others that Glaurung abode still in the
halls of Felagund; and some said that the Mormegil was slain, and others that
he was cast under a spell by the dragon and dwelt there yet, as one changed to
stone. But all declared that it was known to many in Nargothrond ere the end
that the Mormegil was none other than Tъrin son of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin. Then Morwen was distraught, and refusing the
counsel of Melian she rode forth alone into the wild to seek her son, or some
true tidings of him. Thingol therefore sent Mablung after her, with many hardy
march-wards, to find her and guard her, and to learn what news they might; but
Nienor was bidden to remain behind. Yet the fearlessness of her house was hers;
and in an evil hour, in hope that Morwen would return when she saw that her
daughter would go with her into peril, Nienor disguised herself as one of
Thingol's people, and went with that ill-fated riding. They came upon Morwen by the banks of
Sirion, and Mablung besought her to return to Menegroth; but she was fey, and
would not be persuaded. Then also the coming of Nienor was revealed, and
despite Morwen's command she would not go back; and Mablung perforce brought
them to the hidden ferries at the Meres of Twilight, and they passed over
Sirion. And after three days' journeying they came to Amon Ethir, the Hill of
Spies, that long ago Felagund had caused to be raised with great labour, a
league before the doors of Nargothrond. There Mablung set a guard of riders
about Morwen and her daughter, and forbade them to go further. But he, seeing
from the hill no sign of any enemy, went down with his scouts to the Narog, as
stealthily as they could go. But Glaurung was aware of all that they did,
and he came forth in heat of wrath, and lay into the river; and a vast vapour
and foul reek went up, in which Mablung and his company were blinded and lost
Then Glaurung passed east over Narog. Seeing the onset of the dragon the guards
upon Amon Ethir sought to lead Morwen and Nienor away, and fly with them with
all speed back eastwards; but the wind bore the blank mists upon them, and
their horses were maddened by the dragon-stench, and were ungovernable, and ran
this way and that, so that some were dashed against trees and were slain, and
others were borne far away. Thus the ladies were lost, and of Morwen indeed no
sure tidings came ever to Doriath after. But Nienor, being thrown by her steed,
yet unhurt, made her way back to Amon Ethir, there to await Mablung, and came
thus above the reek into the sunlight; and looking westward she stared straight
into the eyes of Glaurung, whose head lay upon the hill-top. Her will strove with him for a while, but he
put forth his power, and having learned who she was he constrained her to gaze
into his eyes, and he laid a spell of utter darkness and forgetfulness upon
her, so that she could remember nothing that had ever befallen her, nor her own
name, nor the name of any other thing; and for many days she could neither
hear, nor see, nor stir by her own will. Then Glaurung left her standing alone
upon Amon Ethir, and went back to Nargothrond. Now Mablung, who greatly daring had explored
the halls of Felagund when Glaurung left them, fled from them at the approach of
the dragon, and returned to Amon Ethir. The sun sank and night fell as he
climbed the hill, and he found none there save Nienor, standing alone under the
stars as an image of stone. No word she spoke or heard, but would follow, if he
took up her hand. Therefore in great grief he led her away, though it seemed to
him vain; for they were both like to perish, succourless in the wild. But they were found by three of Mablung's
companions, and slowly they journeyed northward and eastward towards the fences
of the land of Doriath beyond Sirion, and the guarded bridge nigh to the
inflowing of Esgalduin. Slowly the strength of Nienor returned as they drew
nearer to Doriath; but still she could not speak or hear, and walked blindly as
she was led. But even as they drew near the fences at last she closed her
staring eyes, and would sleep; and they laid her down, and rested also,
unheedfully, for they were utterly outworn. There they were assailed by an
Orc-band, such as now roamed often as nigh the fences of Doriath as they dared.
But Nienor in that hour recovered hearing and sight, and being awakened by the
cries of the Orcs she sprang up in terror, and fled ere they could come to her. Then the Orcs gave chase, and the Elves
after; and they overtook the Orcs and slew them ere they could harm her, but
Nienor escaped them. For she fled as in a madness of fear, swifter than a deer,
and tore off all her clothing as she ran, until she was naked; and she passed
out of their sight, running northward, and though they sought her long they
found her not, nor any trace of her. And at last Mablung in despair returned to
Menegroth and told the tidings. Then Thingol and Melian were filled with grief;
but Mablung went forth, and sought long in vain for tidings of Morwen and
Nienor. But Nienor ran on into the woods until she
was spent, and then fell, and slept, and awoke; and it was a sunlit morning,
and she rejoiced in light as it were a new thing, and all things else that she
saw seemed new and strange, for she had no names for them. Nothing did she
remember save a darkness that lay behind her, and a shadow of fear; therefore
she went warily as a hunted beast, and became famished, for she had no food and
knew not how to seek it But coming at last to the Crossings of Teiglin she passed
over, seeking the shelter of the great trees of Brethil, for she was afraid,
and it seemed to her that the darkness was overtaking her again from which she
had fled. But it was a great storm of thunder that
came up from the south, and in terror she cast herself down upon the mound of
Haudh-en-Elleth, stopping her ears from the thunder; but the rain smote her and
drenched her, and she lay like a wild beast that is dying. There Turambar found
her, as he came to the Crossings of Teiglin, having heard rumour of Orcs that
roamed near; and seeing in a flare of lightning the body as it seemed of a
slain maiden lying upon the mound of Finduilas he was stricken to the heart.
But the woodmen lifted her up, and Turambar cast his cloak about her, and they
took her to a lodge nearby, and warmed her, and gave her food. And as soon as
she looked upon Turambar she was comforted, for it seemed to her that she had
found at last something that she had sought in her darkness; and she would not
be parted from him. But when he asked her concerning her name and her kin and
her misadventure, then she became troubled as a child that perceives that
something is demanded but cannot understand what it may be; and she wept.
Therefore Turambar said: 'Do not be troubled. The tale shall wait. But I will
give you a name, and I will call you Nнniel, Tear-maiden.' And at that name she
shook her head, but said: Nнniel. That was the first word she spoke after her
darkness, and it remained her name among the woodmen ever after. On the next day they bore her towards Ephel
Brandir; but when they came to Dimrost, the Rainy Stair, where the tumbling
stream of Celebros fell towards Teiglin, a great shuddering came upon her,
wherefore afterwards that place was called Nen Girith, the Shuddering Water.
Ere she came to the home of the woodmen upon Amon Obel she was sick of a fever;
and long she lay thus, tended by the women of Brethil, and they taught her
language as to an infant. But ere the autumn came by the skill of Brandir she
was healed of her sickness, and she could speak; but nothing did she remember
of the time before she was found by Turambar on the mound of Haudh-en-Elleth.
And Brandir loved her; but all her heart was given to Turambar. In that time the woodmen were not troubled
by the Orcs, and Turambar went not to war, and there was peace in Brethil. His
heart turned to Nнniel, and he asked her m marriage; but for that time she
delayed in spite of her love. For Brandir foreboded he knew not what, and
sought to restrain her, rather for her sake than his own or rivalry with
Turambar; and he revealed to her that Turambar was Tъrin son of Hъrin, and
though she knew not the name a shadow fell upon her mind. But when three years were passed since the
sack of Nargothrond Turambar asked Nнniel again, and vowed that now he would
wed her, or else go back to war in the wild. And Nнniel took him with joy, and
they were wedded at the midsummer, and the woodmen of Brethil made a great
feast. But ere the end of the year Glaurung sent Orcs of his dominion against
Brethil; and Turambar sat at home deedless, for he had promised to Nнniel that
he would go to battle only if their homes were assailed. But the woodmen were
worsted, and Dorlas upbraided him that he would not aid the people that he had
taken for his own. Then Turambar arose and brought forth again his black sword,
and he gathered a great company of the Men of Brethil, and they defeated the
Orcs utterly. But Glaurung heard tidings that the Black Sword was in Brethil,
and he pondered what he heard, devising new evil. In the spring of the year after Nнniel
conceived, and she became wan and sad; and at the same time there came to Ephel
Brandir the first rumours that Glaurung had issued from Nargothrond. Then
Turambar sent out scouts far afield, for now he ordered things as he would, and
few gave heed to Brandir. As it drew near to summer Glaurung came to the
borders of Brethil, and lay near the west shores of Teiglin; and then there was
great fear among the woodfolk, for it was now plain that the Great Worm would
assail them and ravage their land, and not pass by, returning to Angband, as
they had hoped. They sought therefore the counsel of Turambar; and he
counselled them that it was vain to go against Glaurung with all their force,
for only by cunning and good fortune could they defeat him. He offered
therefore himself to seek the dragon on the borders of the land, and bade the
rest of the people to remain at Ephel Brandir, but to prepare for flight. For
if Glaurung had the victory, he would come first to the woodmen's homes to
destroy them, and they could not hope to withstand him; but if they then
scattered far and wide, then many might escape, for Glaurung would not take up
his dwelling in Brethil, and would return soon to Nargothrond. Then Turambar asked for companions willing
to aid him in his peril; and Dorlas stood forth, but no others. Therefore
Dorlas upbraided the people, and spoke scorn of Brandir, who could not play the
part of the heir of the house of Haleth; and Brandir was shamed before his
people, and was bitter at heart. But Hunthor, kinsman of Brandir, asked his
leave to go in his stead. Then Turambar said farewell to Nнniel, and she was
filled with fear and foreboding, and their parting was sorrowful; but Turambar
set out with his two companions and went to Nen Girith. Then Nнniel being unable to endure her fear,
and unwilling to wait in the Ephel tidings of Turambar's fortune, set forth
after him, and a great company went with her. At this Brandir was filled all
the more with dread, and he sought to dissuade her and the people that would go
with her from this rashness, but they heeded him not. Therefore he renounced
his lordship, and all love for the people that had scorned him, and having
naught left but his love for Nнniel he girt himself with a sword and went after
her; but being lame he fell far behind. Now Turambar came to Nen Girith at sundown,
and there he learned that Glaurung lay on the brink of the high shores of
Teiglin, and was like to move when night fell. Then he called those tidings
good; for the dragon lay at Cabed-en-Aras, where the river ran in a deep and
narrow gorge that a hunted deer might overleap, and Turambar thought that he
would seek no further, but would attempt to pass over the gorge. Therefore he
purposed to creep down at dusk, and descend into the ravine under night, and
cross over the wild water; and then to climb up the further cliff, and so come
to the dragon beneath his guard. This counsel he took, but the heart of
Dorlas failed when they came to the races of Teiglin in the dark, and he dared
not attempt the perilous crossing, but drew back and lurked in the woods,
burdened with shame. Turambar and Hunthor, nonetheless, crossed over in safety,
for the loud roaring of the water drowned all other sounds, and Glaurung slept.
But ere the middle-night the dragon roused, and with a great noise and blast
cast his forward part across the chasm, and began to draw his bulk after.
Turambar and Hunthor were well-nigh overcome by the heat and the stench, as
they sought in haste for a way up to come at Glaurung; and Hunthor was slain by
a great stone that was dislodged from on high by the passage of the dragon, and
smote him on the head and cast him into the river. So he ended, of the house of
Haleth not the least valiant Then Turambar summoned all his will and
courage and climbed the cliff alone, and came beneath the dragon. Then he drew
Gurthang, and with all the might of his arm, and of his hate, he thrust it into
the soft belly of the Worm, even up to the hilts. But when Glaurung felt his
death-pang, he screamed, and in his dreadful throe he heaved up his bulk and
hurled himself across the chasm, and there lay lashing and coiling in his
agony. And he set all in a blaze about him, and beat all to ruin, until at last
his fires died, and he lay still. Now Gurthang had been wrested from
Turambar's hand in the throe of Glaurung, and it clave to the belly of the
dragon. Turambar therefore crossed the water once more, desiring to recover his
sword and to look upon his foe; and he found him stretched at his length, and
rolled upon one side, and the hilts of Gurthang stood in his belly. Then
Turambar seized the hilts and set his foot upon the belly, and cried in mockery
of the dragon and his words at Nargothrond: 'Hail, Worm of Morgoth! Well met
again! Die now and the darkness have thee! Thus is Tъrin son of Hъrin avenged.' Then he wrenched out the sword, but a spout
of black blood followed it, and fell on his hand, and the venom burned it. And
thereupon Glaurung opened his eyes and looked upon Turambar with such malice
that it smote him as a blow; and by that stroke and the anguish of the venom he
fell into a dark swoon, and lay as one dead, and his sword was beneath him. The screams of Glaurung rang in the woods,
and came to the people that waited at Nen Girith; and when those that looked
forth heard them, and saw afar the ruin and burning that the dragon made, they
deemed that he had triumphed and was destroying those that assailed him. And
Nнniel sat and shuddered beside the falling water, and at the voice of Glaurung
her darkness crept upon her again, so that she could not stir from that place
of her own will. Even so Brandir found her, for he came to
Nen Girith at last, limping wearily; and when he heard that the dragon had
crossed the river and had beaten down his foes, his heart yearned towards
Nнniel in pity. Yet he thought also: 'Turambar is dead, but Nнniel lives. Now
it may be that she will come with me, and I will lead her away, and so we shall
escape from the dragon together.' After a while therefore he stood by Nнniel,
and he said: 'Come! It is time to go. If you will, I will lead you.' And he
took her hand, and she arose silently, and followed him; and in the darkness
none saw them go. But as they went down the path to the
Crossings the moon rose, and cast a grey light on the land, and Nнniel said:
'Is this the way?' And Brandir answered that he knew no way, save to flee as
they might from Glaurung, and escape into the wild. But Nнniel said: 'The Black
Sword was my beloved and my husband. To seek him only do I go. What else could
you think?' And she sped on before him. Thus she came towards the Crossings of
Teiglin and beheld Haudh-en-Elleth in the white moonlight, and great dread came
on her. Then with a cry she turned away, casting off her cloak, and fled
southward along the river, and her white raiment shone in the moon. Thus Brandir saw her from the hill-side, and
turned to cross her path, but he was still behind her when she came to the ruin
of Glaurung nigh the brink of Cabed-en-Aras. There she saw the dragon lying,
but she heeded him not, for a man lay beside him; and she ran to Turambar, and
called his name in vain. Then finding that his hand was burned she washed it
with tears and bound it about with a strip of her raiment, and she kissed him
and cried on him again to awake. Thereat Glaurung stirred for the last time ere
he died, and he spoke with his last breath, saying: 'Hail, Nienor, daughter of
Hъrin. We meet again ere the end. I give thee joy that thou hast found thy
brother at last. And now thou shalt know him: a stabber in the dark,
treacherous to foes, faithless to friends, and a curse unto his kin, Tъrin son
of Hъrin! But the worst of all his deeds thou shalt feel in thyself.' Then Glaurung died, and the veil of his
malice was taken from her, and she remembered all the days of her life. Looking
down upon Tъrin she cried: 'Farewell, O twice beloved! A Tъrin Turambar turun ambartanen: master of doom by doom mastered!
O happy to be dead!' Then Brandir who had heard all, standing stricken upon the
edge of ruin, hastened towards her; but she ran from him distraught with horror
and anguish, and coming to the brink of Cabed-en-Aras she cast herself over,
and was lost in the wild water. Then Brandir came and looked down, and
turned away in horror; and though he no longer desired life, he could not seek
death in that roaring water. And thereafter no man looked again upon
Cabed-en-Aras, nor would any beast or bird come there, nor any tree grow; and
it was named Cabed Naeramarth, the Leap of Dreadful Doom. But Brandir made his way back to Nen Girith,
to bring tidings to the people; and he met Dorlas in the woods, and slew him:
the first blood that ever he had spilled, and the last. And he came to Nen
Girith, and men cried to him: 'Have you seen her? For Nнniel is gone.' And he answered: 'Nнniel is gone for ever.
The Dragon is dead, and Turambar is dead; and those tidings are good.' The
people murmured at these words, saying that he was crazed; but Brandir said:
'Hear me to the end! Nнniel the beloved is also dead. She cast herself into
Teiglin, desiring life no more; for she learned that she was none other than
Nienor daughter of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin, ere her forgetfulness came upon her, and
that Turambar was her brother, Tъrin son of Hъrin. ' But even as he ceased, and the people wept,
Tъrin himself came before them. For when the dragon died, his swoon left him,
and he fell into a deep sleep of weariness. But the cold of the night troubled
him, and the hilts of Gurthang drove into his side, and he awoke. Then he saw
that one had tended his hand, and he wondered much that he was left nonetheless
to lie upon the cold ground; and he called, and hearing no answer he went in
search of aid, for he was weary and sick. But when the people saw him they drew back
in fear, thinking that it was his unquiet spirit; and he said: 'Nay, be glad;
for the Dragon is dead, and I live. But wherefore have you scorned my counsel,
and come into peril? And where is Nнniel? For her I would see. And surely you
did not bring her from her home?' Then Brandir told him that it was so, and
Nнniel was dead. But the wife of Dorlas cried out: 'Nay, lord, he is crazed.
For he came here saying that you were dead, and he called it good tidings. But
you live.' Then Turambar was wrathful, and believed
that all Brandir said or did was done in malice towards himself and Nнniel,
begrudging their love; and he spoke evilly to Brandir, calling him Club-foot.
Then Brandir reported all that he had heard, and named Nнniel Nienor daughter
of Hъrin, and he cried out upon Turambar with the last words of Glaurung, that
he was a curse unto his kin and to all that harboured him. Then Turambar fell into a fury, for in those
words he heard the feet of his doom overtaking him; and he charged Brandir with
leading Nнniel to her death, and publishing with delight the lies of Glaurung,
if indeed be devised them not himself. Then he cursed Brandir, and slew him;
and he fled from the people into the woods. But after a while his madness left
him, and he came to Haudh-en-Elleth, and there sat, and pondered all his deeds.
And he cried upon Finduilas to bring him counsel; for he knew not whether he
would do now more ill to go to Doriath to seek his kin, or to forsake them for
ever and seek death in battle. And even as he sat there Mablung with a
company of Grey-elves came over the Crossings of Teiglin, and he knew Tъrin,
and hailed him, and was glad indeed to find him yet living; for he had learned
of the coming forth of Glaurung and that his path led to Brethil, and also he
had heard report that the Black Sword of Nargothrond now dwelt there. Therefore
he came to give warning to Tъrin, and help if need be; but Tъrin said: 'You
come too late. The Dragon is dead.' Then they marvelled, and gave him great
praise; but he cared nothing for it, and said: 'This only I ask: give me news
of my kin, for in Dor-lуmin I learned that they had gone to the Hidden
Kingdom.' Then Mablung was dismayed, but needs must
tell to Tъrin how Morwen was lost, and Nienor cast into a spell of dumb
forgetfulness, and how she escaped them upon the borders of Doriath and fled
northwards. Then at last Tъrin knew that doom had overtaken him, and that he
had slain Brandir unjustly; so that the words of Glaurung were fulfilled in
him. And he laughed as one fey, crying: 'This is a bitter jest indeed!' But he
bade Mablung go, and return to Doriath, with curses upon it. 'And a curse too
upon your errand!' he cried. 'This only was wanting. Now comes the night.' Then he fled from them like the wind, and
they were amazed, wondering what madness had seized him; and they followed
after him. But Tъrin far out-ran them; and he came to Cabed-en-Aras, and heard
the roaring of the water, and saw that all the leaves fell sere from the trees,
as though winter had come. There he drew forth his sword, that now alone
remained to him of all his possessions, and he said: 'Hail Gurthang! No lord or
loyalty dost thou know, save the hand that wieldeth thee. From no blood wilt
thou shrink. Wilt thou therefore take Tъrin Turambar, wilt thou slay me
swiftly?' And from the blade rang a cold voice in
answer: 'Yea, I will drink thy blood gladly, that so I may forget the blood of
Beleg my master, and the blood of Brandir slain unjustly. I will slay thee
swiftly.' Then Tъrin set the hilts upon the ground,
and cast himself upon the point of Gurthang, and the black blade took his life.
But Mablung and the Elves came and looked on the shape of Glaurung lying dead,
and upon the body of Tъrin, and they grieved; and when Men of Brethil came thither,
and they learned the reasons of Tъrin's madness and death, they were aghast;
and Mablung said bitterly: 'I also have been meshed in the doom of the Children
of Hъrin, and thus with my tidings have slain one that I loved.' Then they lifted up Tъrin, and found that
Gurthang had broken asunder. But Elves and Men gathered there great store of
wood, and they made a mighty burning, and the Dragon was consumed to ashes.
Tъrin they laid in a high mound where he had fallen, and the shards of Gurthang
were laid beside him. And when all was done, the Elves sang a lament for the
Children of Hъrin, and a great grey stone was set upon the mound, and thereon
was carven in runes of Doriath: TЪRIN
TURAMBAR DAGNIR GLAURUNGA and beneath they wrote also: NIENOR
N1NIEL But she was not there, nor was it ever known
whither the cold waters of Teiglin had taken her. Chapter 22 Of the Ruin of Doriath So ended the tale of
Tъrin Turambar; but Morgoth did not sleep nor rest from evil, and his dealings
with the house of Hador were not yet ended. Against them his malice was
unsated, though Hъrin was under his eye, and Morwen wandered distraught in the
wild. Unhappy was the lot of Hъrin; for all that
Morgoth knew of the working of his malice Hъrin knew also, but lies were
mingled with the truth, and aught that was good was hidden or distorted. In all
ways Morgoth sought most to cast an evil light on those things that Thingol and
Melian had done, for he hated them, and feared them. When therefore he judged
the time to be ripe, he released Hъrin from his bondage, bidding him go whither
he would; and he feigned that in this he was moved by pity as for an enemy
utterly defeated. But he lied, for his purpose was that Hъrin should still
further his hatred for Elves and Men, ere he died. Then little though he trusted the words of
Morgoth, knowing indeed that he was without pity, Hъrin took his freedom, and
went forth in grief, embittered by the words of the Dark Lord; and a year was
now gone since the death of Tъrin his son. For twenty-eight years he had been
captive in Angband, and he was grown grim to look upon. His hair and beard were
white and long, but he walked unbowed, bearing a great black staff; and he was
girt with a sword. Thus he passed into Hithlum, and tidings came to the chieftains
of the Easterlings that there was a great riding of captains and black soldiers
of Angband over the sands of Anfauglith, and with them came an old man, as one
that was held in high honour. Therefore they did not lay hands on Hъrin, but
let him walk at will in those lands; in which they were wise, for the remnant
of his own people shunned him, because of his coming from Angband as one in
league and honour with Morgoth. Thus his freedom did but increase the
bitterness of Hъrin's heart; and he departed from the land of Hithlum and went
up into the mountains. Thence he descried far off. amid the clouds the peaks of
the Crissaegrim, and he remembered Turgon; and he desired to come again to the
hidden realm of Gondolin. He went down therefore from Ered Wethrin, and he knew
not that the creatures of Morgoth watched all his steps; and crossing over the
Brithiach he passed into Dimbar, and came to the dark feet of the Echoriath.
All the land was cold and desolate, and he looked about him with little hope,
standing at the foot of a great fall of stones beneath a sheer rock-wall; and
he knew not that this was all that was now left to see of the old Way of
Escape: the Dry River was blocked, and the arched gate was buried. Then Hъrin
looked up to the grey sky, thinking that he might once more descry the eagles,
as he had done long ago in his youth; but he saw only the shadows blown from
the east, and clouds swirling about the inaccessible peaks, and he heard only
the wind hissing over the stones. But the watch of the great eagles was now
redoubled, and they marked Hъrin well, far below, forlorn in the fading light;
and straightway Thorondor himself, since the tidings seemed great, brought word
to Turgon. But Turgon said: 'Does Morgoth sleep? You were mistaken.' 'Not so,' said Thorondor. 'If the Eagles of
Manwл were wont to err thus, then long ago, lord, your hiding would have been
in vain.' 'Then your words bode ill,' said Turgon;
'for they can bear but one meaning. Even Hъrin Thalion has surrendered to the
will of Morgoth. My heart is shut.' But when Thorondor was gone, Turgon sat long
in thought, and he was troubled, remembering the deeds of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin;
and he opened his heart, and sent to the eagles to seek for Hъrin, and to bring
him if they might to Gondolin. But it was too late, and they never saw him
again in light or in shadow. For Hъrin stood in despair before the silent
cliffs of the Echoriath, and the westering sun, piercing the clouds, stained
his white hair with red. Then he cried aloud in the wilderness, heedless of any
ears, and he cursed the pitiless land; and standing at last upon a high rock he
looked towards Gondolin and called in a great voice: 'Turgon, Turgon, remember
the Fen of Serech! O Turgon, will you not hear in your hidden halls?' But there
was no sound save the wind in the dry grasses. 'Even so they hissed in Serech
at the sunset,' he said; and as he spoke the sun went behind the Mountains of
Shadow, and a darkness fell about him, and the wind ceased, and there was
silence in the waste. Yet there were ears that heard the words
that Hъrin spoke, and report of all came soon to the Dark Throne in the north;
and Morgoth smiled, for he knew now clearly in what region Turgon dwelt, though
because of the eagles no spy of his could yet come within sight of the land
behind the Encircling Mountains. This was the first evil that the freedom of
Hъrin achieved. As darkness fell Hъrin stumbled from the
rock, and fell into a heavy sleep of grief. But in his sleep he heard the voice
of Morwen lamenting, and often she spoke his name; and it seemed to him that
her voice came out of Brethil. Therefore when he awoke with the coming of day
he arose, and went back to the Brithiach; and passing along the eaves of
Brethil he came at a time of night to the Crossings of Teiglin. The
night-sentinels saw him, but they were filled with dread, for they thought that
they saw a ghost out of some ancient battle-mound that walked with darkness
about it; and therefore Hъrin was not stayed, and he came at last to the place
of the burning of Glaurung, and saw the tall stone standing near the brink of
Cabed Naeramarth. But Hъrin did not look at the stone, for he
knew what was written there; and his eyes had seen that he was not alone.
Sitting in the shadow of the stone there was a woman, bent over her knees; and
as Hъrin stood there silent she cast back her tattered hood and lifted her
face. Grey she was and old, but suddenly her eyes looked into his, and he knew
her; for though they were wild and full of fear, that light still gleamed in
them that long ago had earned for her the name Eledhwen, proudest and most
beautiful of mortal women in the days of old. 'You come at last,' she said. 'I have waited
too long.' 'It was a dark road. I have come as I
could,' he answered. 'But you are too late,' said Morwen. 'They
are lost.' 'I know it,' he said. 'But you are not.' But Morwen said: 'Almost. I am spent I shall
go with the sun. Now little time is left: if you know, tell me! How did she
find him?' But Hъrin did not answer, and they sat beside
the stone, and did not speak again; and when the sun went down Morwen sighed
and clasped his hand, and was still; and Hъrin knew that she had died. He
looked down at her in the twilight and it seemed to him that the lines of grief
and cruel hardship were smoothed away. 'She was not conquered,' he said; and he
closed her eyes, and sat unmoving beside her as the night drew down. The waters
of Cabed Naeramarth roared on, but he heard no sound, and he saw nothing, and
felt nothing, for his heart was stone within him. But there came a chill wind
that drove sharp rain into his face; and he was roused, and anger rose in him
like smoke, mastering reason, so that all his desire was to seek vengeance for
his wrongs and for the wrongs of his kin, accusing in his anguish all those who
ever had dealings with them. Then he rose up, and he made a grave for Morwen
above Cabed Naeramarth on the west side of the stone; and upon it he cut these
words: Here lies also Morwen Eledhwen. It is told that a seer and harp-player of
Brethil named Glirhuin made a song, saying that the Stone of the Hapless should
not be defiled by Morgoth nor ever thrown down, not though the sea should drown
all the land; as after indeed befell, and still Tol Morwen stands alone in the
water beyond the new coasts that were made in the days of the wrath of the
Valar. But Hъrin does not lie there, for his doom drove him on, and the Shadow
still followed him. Now Hъrin crossed over Teiglin and passed
southwards down the ancient road that led to Nargothrond; and he saw far off to
the eastward the lonely height of Amon Rыdh, and knew what had befallen there.
At length he came to the banks of Narog, and ventured the passage of the wild
river upon the fallen stones of the bridge, as Mablung of Doriath had ventured
it before him; and he stood before the broken Doors of Felagund, leaning upon
his staff. Here it must be told that after the
departure of Glaurung Mоm the Petty-Dwarf had found his way to Nargothrond, and
crept within the ruined halls; and he took possession of them, and sat there
fingering the gold and the gems, letting them run ever through his hands, for
none came nigh to despoil him, from dread of the spirit of Glaurung and his
very memory. But now one had come, and stood upon the threshold; and Mоm came
forth, and demanded to know his purpose. But Hъrin said: 'Who are you, that
would hinder me from entering the house of Finrod Felagund?' Then the Dwarf answered: 'I am Mоm; and
before the proud ones came from over the Sea, Dwarves delved the halls of
Nulukkizdоn. I have but returned to take what is mine; for I am the last of my
people.' 'Then you shall enjoy your inheritance no
longer,' said Hъrin; 'for I am Hъrin son of Galdor, returned out of Angband,
and my son was Tъrin Turambar, whom you have not forgotten; and he it was that
slew Glaurung the Dragon, who wasted these halls where now you sit; and not
unknown is it to me by whom the Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin was betrayed.' Then Mоm in great fear besought Hъrin to
take what he would, but to spare his life; but Hъrin gave no heed to his
prayer, and slew him there before the doors of Nargothrond. Then he entered in,
and stayed a while in that dreadful place, where the treasures of Valinor lay
strewn upon the floors in darkness and decay; but it is told that when Hъrin
came forth from the wreck of Nargothrond and stood again beneath the sky he
bore with him out of all that great hoard but one thing only. Now Hъrin journeyed eastward, and he came to
the Meres of Twilight above the Falls of Sirion; and there he was taken by the
Elves that guarded the western marches of Doriath, and brought before King
Thingol in the Thousand Caves. Then Thingol was filled with wonder and grief
when he looked on him, and knew that grim and aged man for Hъrin Thalion, the
captive of Morgoth; but he greeted him fairly and showed him honour. Hъrin made
no answer to the King, but drew forth from beneath his cloak that one thing
which he had taken with him out of Nargothrond; and that was no lesser treasure
than the Nauglamнr, the Necklace of the Dwarves, that was made for Finrod
Felagund long years before by the craftsmen of Nogrod and Belegost, most famed
of all their works in the Elder Days, and prized by Finrod while he lived above
all the treasures of Nargothrond. And Hъrin cast it at the feet of Thingol with
wild and bitter words. 'Receive thou thy fee,' he cried, 'for thy
fair keeping of my children and my wife! For this is the Nauglamнr, whose name
is known to many among Elves and Men; and I bring it to thee out of the darkness
of Nargothrond, where Finrod thy kinsman left it behind him when he set forth
with Beren son of Barahir to fulfil the errand of Thingol of Doriath!' Then Thingol looked upon the great treasure,
and knew it for the Nauglamнr, and well did he understand Hъrin's intent; but
being filled with pity he restrained his wrath, and endured Hъrin's scorn. And
at the last Melian spoke, and said: 'Hъrin Thalion, Morgoth hath bewitched
thee; for he that seeth through Morgoth's eyes, willing or unwilling, seeth all
things crooked. Long was Tъrin thy son fostered in the halls of Menegroth, and
shown love and honour as the son of the King; and it was not by the King's will
nor by mine that he came never back to Doriath. And afterwards thy wife and thy
daughter were harboured here with honour and goodwill; and we sought by all
means that we might to dissuade Morwen from the road to Nargothrond. With the
voice of Morgoth thou dost now upbraid thy friends.' And hearing the words of Melian Hъrin stood
moveless, and he gazed long into the eyes of the Queen; and there in Menegroth,
defended still by the Girdle of Melian from the darkness of the Enemy, he read
the truth of all that was done, and tasted at last the fullness of woe that was
measured for him by Morgoth Bauglir. And he spoke no more of what was past, but
stooping lifted up the Nauglamнr from where it lay before Thingol's chair, and
he gave it to him, saying: 'Receive now, lord, the Necklace of the Dwarves, as
a gift from one who has nothing, and as a memorial of Hъrin of Dor-lуmin. For
now my fate is fulfilled, and the purpose of Morgoth achieved; but I am his
thrall no longer.' Then he turned away, and passed out from the
Thousand Caves, and all that saw him fell back before his face; and none sought
to withstand his going, nor did any know whither he went. But it is said that
Hъrin would not live thereafter, being bereft of all purpose and desire, and
cast himself at last into the western sea; and so ended the mightiest of the
warriors of mortal Men. But when Hъrin was gone from Menegroth,
Thingol sat long in silence, gazing upon the great treasure that lay upon his
knees; and it came into his mind that it should be remade, and in it should be
set the Silmaril. For as the years passed Thingol's thought turned unceasingly
to the jewel of Fлanor, and became bound to it, and he liked not to let it rest
even behind the doors of his inmost treasury; and he was minded now to bear it
with him always, waking and sleeping. In those days the Dwarves still came on
their journeys into Beleriand from their mansions m Ered Lindon, and passing
over Gelion at Sam Athrad, the Ford of Stones, they travelled the ancient road
to Doriath; for their skill in the working of metal and stone was very great,
and there was much need of their craft in the halls of Menegroth. But they came
now no longer in small parties as aforetime, but in great companies well armed
for their protection in the perilous lands between Aros and Gelion; and they
dwelt in Menegroth at such times in chambers and smithies set apart for them.
At that very time great craftsmen of Nogrod were lately come into Doriath; and
the King therefore summoning them declared his desire, that if their skill were
great enough they should remake the Nauglamнr, and in it set the Silmaril. Then
the Dwarves looked upon the work of their fathers, and they beheld with wonder
the shining jewel of Fлanor; and they were filled with a great lust to possess
them, and carry them off to their far homes in the mountains. But they
dissembled their mind, and consented to the task. Long was their labour; and Thingol went down
alone to their deep smithies, and sat ever among them as they worked. In time
his desire was achieved, and the greatest of the works of Elves and Dwarves
were brought together and made one; and its beauty was very great, for now the
countless jewels of the Nauglamнr did reflect and cast abroad in marvellous
hues the light of the Silmaril amidmost. Then Thingol, being alone among them,
made to take it up and clasp it about his neck; but the Dwarves m that moment
withheld it from him, and demanded that he yield it up to them, saying: 'By
what right does the Elvenking lay claim to the Nauglamнr, that was made by our
fathers for Finrod Felagund who is dead? It has come to him but by the hand of
Hъrin the Man of Dor-lуmin, who took it as a thief out of the darkness of
Nargothrond.' But Thingol perceived their hearts, and saw well that desiring
the Silmaril they sought but a pretext and fair cloak for their true intent;
and in his wrath and pride he gave no heed to his peril, but spoke to them in
scorn, saying: 'How do ye of uncouth race dare to demand aught of me, Elu
Thingol, Lord of Beleriand, whose life began by the waters of Cuiviйnen years
uncounted ere the fathers of the stunted people awoke?' And standing tall and
proud among them he bade them with shameful words be gone unrequited out of
Doriath. Then the lust of the Dwarves was kindled to
rage by the words of the King; and they rose up about him, and laid hands on
him, and slew him as he stood. So died in the deep places of Menegroth Elwл
Singollo, King of Doriath, who alone of all the Children of Ilъvatar was joined
with one of the Ainur; and he who, alone of the Forsaken Elves, had seen the
light of the Trees of Valinor, with his last sight gazed upon the Silmaril. Then the Dwarves taking the Nauglamнr passed
out of Menegroth and fled eastwards through Region. But tidings went swiftly
through the forest, and few of that company came over Aros, for they were
pursued to the death as they sought the eastward road; and the Nauglamнr was
retaken, and brought back in bitter grief to Melian the Queen. Yet two there
were of the slayers of Thingol who escaped from the pursuit on the eastern
marches, and returned at last to their city far off in the Blue Mountains; and
there in Nogrod they told somewhat of all that had befallen, saying that the
Dwarves were slain in Doriath by command of the Elvenking, who thus would cheat
them of their reward. Then great was the wrath and lamentation of
the Dwarves of Nogrod for the death of their kin and their great craftsmen, and
they tore their beards, and wailed; and long they sat taking thought for
vengeance. It is told that they asked aid from Belegost, but it was denied
them, and the Dwarves of Belegost sought to dissuade them from their purpose;
but their counsel was unavailing, and ere long a great host came forth from
Nogrod, and crossing over Gelion marched westward through Beleriand. *** Upon Doriath a heavy change had fallen.
Melian sat long in silence beside Thingol the King, and her thought passed back
into the starlit years and to their first meeting among the nightingales of Nan
Elmoth in ages past; and she knew that her parting from Thingol was the
forerunner of a greater parting, and that the doom of Doriath was drawing nigh.
For Melian was of the divine race of the Valar, and she was a Maia of great
power and wisdom; but for love of Elwл Singollo she took upon herself the form
of the Elder Children of Ilъvatar, and in that union she became bound by the
chain and trammels of the flesh of Arda. In that form she bore to him Lъthien
Tinъviel; and in that form she gained a power over the substance of Arda, and
by the Girdle of Melian was Doriath defended through long ages from the evils
without. But now Thingol lay dead, and his spirit had passed to the halls of
Mandos; and with his death a change came also upon Melian. Thus it came to pass
that her power was withdrawn in that time from the forests of Neldoreth and
Region, and Esgalduin the enchanted river spoke with a different voice, and
Doriath lay open to its enemies. Thereafter Melian spoke to none save to
Mablung only, bidding him take heed to the Silmaril, and to send word speedily
to Beren and Lъthien in Ossiriand; and she vanished out of Middle-earth, and
passed to the land of the Valar beyond the western sea, to muse upon her
sorrows in the gardens of Lуrien, whence she came, and this tale speaks of her
no more. Thus it was that the host of the Naugrim
crossing over Aros passed unhindered into the woods of Doriath; and none
withstood them, for they were many and fierce, and the captains of the
Grey-elves were cast into doubt and despair, and went hither and thither
purposeless. But the Dwarves held on their way, and passed over the great bridge,
and entered into Menegroth; and there befell a thing most grievous among the
sorrowful deeds of the Elder Days. For there was battle in the Thousand Caves,
and many Elves and Dwarves were slain; and it has not been forgotten. But the
Dwarves were victorious, and the halls of Thingol were ransacked and plundered.
There fell Mablung of the Heavy Hand before the doors of the treasury wherein
lay the Nauglamнr; and the Silmaril was taken. At that time Beren and Lъthien yet dwelt in
Tol Galen, the Green Isle, in the River Adurant, southernmost of the streams
that falling from Ered Lindon flowed down to join with Gelion; and their son
Dior Eluchнl had to wife Nimloth, kinswoman of Celeborn, prince of Doriath, who
was wedded to the Lady Galadriel. The sons of Dior and Nimloth were Elurйd and
Elurнn; and a daughter also was born to them, and she was named Elwing, which
is Star-spray, for she was born on a night of stars, whose light glittered in
the spray of the waterfall of Lanthir Lamath beside her father's house. Now word went swiftly among the Elves of
Ossiriand that a great host of Dwarves bearing gear of war had come down out of
the mountains and passed over Gelion at the Ford of Stones. These tidings came
soon to Beren and Lъthien; and in that time also a messenger came to them out
of Doriath telling of what had befallen there. Then Beren arose and left Tol
Galen, and summoning to him Dior his son they went north to the River Ascar;
and with them went many of the Green-elves of Ossiriand. Thus it came to .pass that when the Dwarves
of Nogrod, returning from Menegroth with diminished host, came again to Sarn
Athrad, they were assailed by unseen enemies; for as they climbed up Gelion's
banks burdened with the spoils of Doriath, suddenly all the woods were filled with
the sound of elven-horns, and shafts sped upon them from every side. There very
many of the Dwarves were slain in the first onset; but some escaping from the
ambush held together, and fled eastwards towards the mountains. And as they
climbed the long slopes beneath Mount Dolmed there came forth the Shepherds of
the Trees, and they drove the Dwarves into the shadowy woods of Ered Lindon:
whence, it is said, came never one to climb the high passes that led to their
homes. In that battle by Sarn Athrad Beren fought
his last fight, and himself slew the Lord of Nogrod, and wrested from him the
Necklace of the Dwarves; but he dying laid his curse upon all the treasure.
Then Beren gazed in wonder on the selfsame jewel of Fлanor that he had cut from
Morgoth's iron crown, now shining set amid gold and gems by the cunning of the
Dwarves; and he washed it clean of blood in the waters of the river. And when
all was finished the treasure of Doriath was drowned in the River Ascar, and
from that time the river was named anew, Rathlуriel, the Goldenbed; but Beren
took the Nauglamнr and returned to Tol Galen. Little did it ease the grief of
Lъthien to learn that the Lord of Nogrod was slain and many Dwarves beside; but
it is said and sung that Lъthien wearing that necklace and that immortal jewel
was the vision of greatest beauty and glory that has ever been outside the
realm of Valinor; and for a little while the Land of the Dead that Live became
like a vision of the land of the Valar, and no place has been since so fair, so
fruitful, or so filled with light. Now Dior Thingol's heir bade farewell to
Beren and Lъthien, and departing from Lanthir Lamath with Nimloth his wife he
came to Menegroth, and abode there; and with them went their young sons Elurйd
and Elurнn, and Elwing their daughter. Then the Sindar received them with joy,
and they arose from the darkness of their grief for fallen kin and King and for
the departure of Melian; and Dior Eluchнl set himself to raise anew the glory
of the kingdom of Doriath. There came a night of autumn, and when it
grew late, one came and smote upon the doors of Menegroth, demanding admittance
to the King. He was a lord of the Green-elves hastening from Ossiriand, and the
door-wards brought him to where Dior sat alone in his chamber; and there in
silence he gave to the King a coffer, and took his leave. But in that coffer
lay the Necklace of the Dwarves, wherein was set the Silmaril; and Dior looking
upon it knew it for a sign that Beren Erchamion and Lъthien Tinъviel had died
indeed, and gone where go the race of Men to a fate beyond the world. Long did Dior gaze upon the Silmaril, which
his father and mother had brought beyond hope out of the terror of Morgoth; and
his grief was great that death had come upon them so soon. But the wise have
said that the Silmaril hastened their end; for the flame of the beauty of
Lъthien as she wore it was too bright for mortal lands. Then Dior arose, and about his neck he
clasped the Nauglamнr; and now he appeared as the fairest of all the children
of the world, of threefold race: of the Edain, and of the Eldar, and of the
Maiar of the Blessed Realm. But now the rumour ran among the scattered
Elves of Beleriand that Dior Thingol's heir wore the Nauglamнr, and they said:
'A Silmaril of Fлanor burns again in the woods of Doriath'; and the oath of the
sons of Fлanor was waked again from sleep. For while Lъthien wore the Necklace
of the Dwarves no Elf would dare to assail her; but now hearing of the renewal
of Doriath and of Dior's pride the seven gathered again from wandering, and
they sent to him to claim their own. But Dior returned no answer to the sons of
Fлanor; and Celegorm stirred up his brothers to prepare an assault upon
Doriath. They came at unawares in the middle of winter, and fought with Dior in
the Thousand Caves; and so befell the second slaying of Elf by Elf. There fell
Celegorm by Dior's hand, and there fell Curufin, and dark Caranthir; but Dior
was slain also, and Nimloth his wife, and the cruel servants of Celegorm seized
his young sons and left them to starve in the forest. Of this Maedhros indeed
repented, and sought for them long in the woods of Doriath; but his search was
unavailing, and of the fate of Elurйd and Elurнn no tale tells. Thus Doriath was destroyed, and never rose
again. But the sons of Fлanor gained not what they
sought; for a remnant of the people fled before them, and with them was Elwing
Dior's daughter, and they escaped, and bearing with them the Silmaril they came
in time to the mouths of the River Sirion by the sea. Chapter 23 Of Tuor and the Fall of Gondolin It has been told
that Huor the brother of Hъrin was slain in the Battle of Unnumbered Tears; and
in the winter of that year Rнan his wife bore a child in the wilds of Mithrim,
and he was named Tuor, and was taken to foster by Annael of the Grey-elves, who
yet lived in those hills. Now when Tuor was sixteen years old the Elves were
minded to leave the caves of Androth where they dwelt, and to make their way
secretly to the Havens of Sirion in the distant south; but they were assailed
by Orcs and Easterlings before they made good their escape, and Tuor was taken
captive and enslaved by Lorgan, chief of the Easterlings of Hithlum. For three
years he endured that thraldom, but at the end of that time he escaped; and returning
to the caves of Androth he dwelt there alone, and did such great hurt to the
Easterlings that Lorgan set a price upon his head. But when Tuor had lived thus in solitude as
an outlaw for four years, Ulmo set it in his heart to depart from the land of
his fathers, for he had chosen Tuor as the instrument of his designs; and
leaving once more the caves of Androth he went westwards across Dor-lуmin, and
found Annon-in-Gelydh, the Gate of the Noldor, which the people of Turgon built
when they dwelt in Nevrast long years before. Thence a dark tunnel led beneath
the mountains, and issued into Cirith Ninniach, the Rainbow Cleft, through
which a turbulent water ran towards the western sea. Thus it was that Tuor's
flight from Hithlum was marked by neither Man nor Orc, and no knowledge of it
came to the ears of Morgoth. And Tuor came into Nevrast, and looking upon
Belegaer the Great Sea he was enamoured of it, and the sound of it and the
longing for it were ever in his heart and ear, and an unquiet was on him that
took him at last into the depths of the realms of Ulmo. Then he dwelt in
Nevrast alone, and the summer of that year passed, and the doom of Nargothrond
drew near; but when the autumn came he saw seven great swans flying south, and
he knew them for a sign that he had tarried overlong, and he followed their
flight along the shores of the sea. Thus he came at length to the deserted
halls of Vinyamar beneath Mount Taras, and he entered in, and found there the
shield and hauberk, and the sword and helm, that Turgon had left there by the
command of Ulmo long before; and he arrayed himself in those arms, and went
down to the shore. But there came a great storm out of the west, and out of
that storm Ulmo the Lord of Waters arose in majesty and spoke to Tuor as he stood
beside the sea. And Ulmo bade him depart from that place and seek out the
hidden kingdom of Gondolin; and he gave Tuor a great cloak, to mantle him in
shadow from the eyes of his enemies. But in the morning when the storm was
passed, Tuor came upon an Elf standing beside the walls of Vinyamar; and he was
Voronwл, son of Aranwл, of Gondolin, who sailed in the last ship that Turgon
sent into the West. But when that ship returning at last out of the deep ocean
foundered in the great storm within sight of the coasts of Middle-earth, Ulmo
took him up, alone of all its mariners, and cast him onto the land near
Vinyamar; and learning of the command laid upon Tuor by the Lord of Waters
Voronwл was filled with wonder, and did not refuse him his guidance to the
hidden door of Gondolin. Therefore they set out together from that place, and
as the Fell Winter of that year came down upon them out of the north they went
warily eastward under the eaves of the Mountains of Shadow/ At length they came in their journeying to
the Pools of Ivrin, and looked with grief on the defilement wrought there by
the passage of Glaurung the Dragon; but even as they gazed upon it they saw one
going northward in haste, and he was a tall Man, clad in black, and bearing a
black sword. But they knew not who he was, nor anything of what had befallen in
the south; and he passed them by, and they said no word. And at the last by the power that Ulmo set
upon them they came to the hidden door of Gondolin, and passing down the tunnel
they reached the inner gate, and were taken by the guard as prisoners. Then
they were led up the mighty ravine of Orfalch Echor, barred by seven gates, and
brought before Ecthelion of the Fountain, the warden of the great gate at the
end of the climbing road; and there Tuor cast aside his cloak, and from the
arms that he bore from Vinyamar it was seen that he was in truth one sent by
Ulmo. Then Tuor looked down upon the fair vale of Tumladen, set as a green
jewel amid the encircling hills; and he saw far off upon the rocky height of
Amon Gwareth Gondolin the great, city of seven names, whose fame and glory is
mightiest in song of all dwellings of the Elves in the Hither Lands. At the
bidding of Ecthelion trumpets were blown on the towers of the great gate, and
they echoed in the hills; and far off but clear there came a sound of answering
trumpets blown upon the white walls of the city, flushed with the rose of dawn
upon the plain. Thus it was that the son of Huor rode across
Tumladen, and came to the gate of Gondolin; and passing up the wide stairways
of the city he was brought at last to the Tower of the King, and looked upon
the images of the Trees of Valinor. Then Tuor stood before Turgon son of
Fingolfin, High King of the Noldor, and upon the King's right hand there stood
Maeglin his sister-son, but upon his left hand sat Idril Celebrindal his
daughter; and all that heard the voice of Tuor marvelled, doubting that this
were in truth a Man of mortal race, for his words were the words of the Lord of
Waters that came to him in that hour. And he gave warning to Turgon that the
Curse of Mandos now hastened to its fulfilment, when all the works of the
Noldor should perish; and he bade him depart, and abandon the fair and mighty
city that he had built, and go down Sirion to the sea. Then Turgon pondered long the counsel of
Ulmo, and there came into his mind the words that were spoken to him in
Vinyamar: 'Love not too well the work of thy hands and the devices of thy
heart; and remember that the true hope of the Noldor lieth in the West, and
cometh from the Sea.' But Turgon was become proud, and Gondolin as beautiful as
a memory of Elven Tirion, and he trusted still in its secret and impregnable
strength, though even a Vala should gainsay it; and after the Nirnaeth
Arnoediad the people of that city desired never again to mingle in the woes of
Elves and Men without, nor to return through dread and danger into the West.
Shut behind their pathless and enchanted hills they suffered none to enter,
though he fled from Morgoth hate-pursued; and tidings of the lands beyond came
to them faint and far, and they heeded them little. The spies of Angband sought
for them in vain; and their dwelling was as a rumour, and a secret that none
could find. Maeglin spoke ever against Tuor in the councils of the King, and
his words seemed the more weighty in that they went with Turgon's heart; and at
the last he rejected the bidding of Ulmo and refused his counsel. But in the
warning of the Vala he heard again the words that were spoken before the departing
Noldor on the coast of Araman long ago; and the fear of treason was wakened in
Turgon's heart. Therefore in that time the very entrance to the hidden door in
the Encircling Mountains was caused to be blocked up; and thereafter none went
ever forth from Gondolin on any errand of peace or war, while that city stood.
Tidings were brought by Thorondor Lord of Eagles of the fall of Nargothrond,
and after of the slaying of Thingol and of Dior his heir, and of the ruin of
Doriath; but Turgon shut his ear to word of the woes without, and vowed to
march never at the side of any son of Fлanor; and his people he forbade ever to
pass the leaguer of the hills. And Tuor remained in Gondolin, for its bliss
and its beauty and the wisdom of its people held mm enthralled; and he became
mighty in stature and in mind, and learned deeply of the lore of the exiled
Elves. Then the heart of Idril was turned to him, and his to her; and Maeglin's
secret hatred grew ever greater, for he desired above all things to possess
her, the only heir of the King of Gondolin. But so high did Tuor stand in the
favour of the King that when he had dwelt there for seven years Turgon did not
refuse him even the hand of his daughter; for though he would not heed the
bidding of Ulmo, he perceived that the fate of the Noldor was wound with the
one whom Ulmo had sent; and he did not forget the words that Huor spoke to him
before the host of Gondolin departed from the Battle of Unnumbered Tears. Then there was made a great and joyful
feast, for Tuor had won the hearts of all that people, save only of Maeglin and
his secret following; and thus there came to pass the second union of Elves and
Men. In the spring of the year after was born in
Gondolin Eдrendil Halfelven, the son of Tuor and Idril Celebrindal; and that
was five hundred years and three since the coming of the Noldor to
Middle-earth. Of surpassing beauty was Eдrendil, for a light was in his face as
the light of heaven, and he had the beauty and the wisdom of the Eldar and the
strength and hardihood of the Men of old; and the Sea spoke ever in his ear and
heart, even as with Tuor his father. Then the days of Gondolin were yet full of
joy and peace; and none knew that the region wherein the Hidden Kingdom lay had
been at last revealed to Morgoth by the cries of Hъrin, when standing in the
wilderness beyond the Encircling Mountains and finding no entrance he called on
Turgon in despair. Thereafter the thought of Morgoth was bent unceasing on the
mountainous land between Anach and the upper waters of Sirion, whither his
servants had never passed; yet still no spy or creature out of Angband could
come there because of the vigilance of the eagles, and Morgoth was thwarted in
the fulfilment of his designs. But Idril Celebrindal was wise and far-seeing, and
her heart misgave her, and foreboding crept upon her spirit as a cloud.
Therefore in that time she let prepare a secret way, that should lead down from
the city and passing out beneath the surface of the plain issue far beyond the
walls, northward of Amon Gwareth; and she contrived it that the work was known
but to few, and no whisper of it came to Maeglin's ears. Now on a time, when Eдrendil was yet young,
Maeglin was lost. For he, as has been told, loved mining and quarrying after
metals above all other craft; and he was master and leader of the Elves who
worked in the mountains distant from the city, seeking after metals for their
smithying of things both of peace and war. But often Maeglin went with few of
his folk beyond the leaguer of the hills, and the King knew not that his
bidding was defied; and thus it came to pass, as fate willed, that Maeglin was
taken prisoner by Orcs, and brought to Angband, Maeglin was no weakling or
craven, but the torment wherewith he was threatened cowed his spirit, and he
purchased his life and freedom by revealing to Morgoth the very place of
Gondolin and the ways whereby it might be found and assailed. Great indeed was
the Joy of Morgoth, and to Maeglin he promised the lordship of Gondolin as his
vassal, and the possession of Idril Celebrindal, when the city should be taken;
and indeed desire for Idril and hatred for Tuor led Maeglin the easier to his
treachery, most infamous in all the histories of the Elder Days. But Morgoth
sent him back to Gondolin, lest any should suspect the betrayal, and so that
Maeglin should aid the assault from within, when the hour came; and he abode in
the halls of the King with smiling face and evil in his heart, while the
darkness gathered ever deeper upon Idril. At last, in the year when Eдrendil was seven
years old, Morgoth was ready, and he loosed upon Gondolin his Balrogs, and his
Orcs, and his wolves; and with them came dragons of the brood of Glaurung, and
they were become now many and terrible. The host of Morgoth came over the
northern hills where the height was greatest and the watch least vigilant, and
it came at night upon a time of festival, when all the people of Gondolin were
upon the walls to await the rising sun, and sing their songs at its uplifting;
for the morrow was the great feast that they named the Gates of Summer. But the
red light mounted the hills in the north and not in the east; and there was no
stay in the advance of the foe until they were beneath the very walls of
Gondolin, and the city was beleaguered without hope. Of the deeds of desperate
valour there done, by the chieftains of the noble houses and their warriors,
and not least by Tuor, much is told in The Fall of Gondolin: of the battle of
Ecthelion of the Fountain with Gothmog Lord of Balrogs in the very square of
the King, where each slew the other, and of the defence of the tower of Turgon
by the people of his household, until the tower was overthrown; and mighty was
its fall and the fall of Turgon in its ruin. Tuor sought to rescue Idril from the sack of
the city, but Maeglin had laid hands on her, and on Eдrendil; and Tuor fought
with Maeglin on the walls, and cast him far out, and his body as it fell smote
the rocky slopes of Amon Gwareth thrice ere it pitched into the flames below.
Then Tuor and Idril led such remnants of the people of Gondolin as they could
gather in the confusion of the burning down the secret way which Idril had
prepared; and of that passage the captains of Angband knew nothing, and thought
not that any fugitives would take a path towards the north and the highest
parts of the mountains and the nighest to Angband. The fume of the burning, and
the steam of the fair fountains of Gondolin withering in the flame of the
dragons of the north, fell upon the vale of Tumladen in mournful mists; and
thus was the escape of Tuor and his company aided, for there was still a long
and open road to follow from the tunnel's mouth to the foothills of the
mountains. Nonetheless they came thither, and beyond hope they climbed, in woe
and misery, for the high places were cold and terrible, and they had among them
many that were wounded, and women and children. There was a dreadful pass, Cirith Thoronath
it was named, the Eagles' Cleft, where beneath the shadow of the highest peaks
a narrow path wound its way; on the right hand it was walled by a precipice,
and on the left a dreadful fall leapt into emptiness. Along that narrow way
their march was strung, when they were ambushed by Orcs, for Morgoth had set
watchers all about the encircling hills; and a Balrog was with them. Then
dreadful was their plight, and hardly would they have been saved by the valour
of yellow-haired Glorfindel, chief of the House of the Golden Flower of
Gondolin, had not Thorondor come timely to their aid. Many are the songs that have been sung of
the duel of Glorfindel with the Balrog upon a pinnacle of rock in that high
place; and both fell to ruin in the abyss. But the eagles coming stooped upon
the Orcs, and drove them shrieking back; and all were slain or cast into the
deeps, so that rumour of the escape from Gondolin came not until long after to
Morgoth's ears. Then Thorondor bore up Glorfindel's body out of the abyss, and
they buried him in a mound of stones beside the pass; and a green turf came
there, and yellow flowers bloomed upon it amid the barrenness of stone, until
the world was changed. Thus led by Tuor son of Huor the remnant of
Gondolin passed over the mountains, and came down into the Vale of Sirion; and
fleeing southward by weary and dangerous marches they came at length to
Nan-tathren, the Land of Willows, for the power of Ulmo yet ran in the great
river, and it was about them. There they rested a while, and were healed of
their hurts and weariness; but their sorrow could not be healed. And they made
a feast in memory of Gondolin and of the Elves that had perished there, the
maidens, and the wives, and the warriors of the King; and for Glorfindel the
beloved many were the songs they sang, under the willows of Nan-tathren in the
waning of the year. There Tuor made a song for Eдrendil his son, concerning the
coming of Ulmo the Lord of Waters to the shores of Nevrast aforetime; and the
sea-longing woke in his heart, and in his son's also. Therefore Idril and Tuor
departed from Nan-tathren, and went southwards down the river to the sea; and
they dwelt there by the mouths of Sirion, and joined their people to the
company of Elwing Dior's daughter, that had fled thither but a little while
before. And when the tidings came to Balar of the fall of Gondolin and the
death of Turgon, Ereinion Gil-galad son of Fingon was named High King of the
Noldor in Middle-earth. But Morgoth thought that his triumph was
fulfilled, recking little of the sons of Fлanor, and of their oath, which had
harmed him never and turned always to his mightiest aid; and in his black
thought he laughed, regretting not the one Silmaril that he had lost, for by it
as he deemed the last shred of the people of the Eldar should vanish from
Middle-earth and trouble it no more. If he knew of the dwelling by the waters
of Sirion, he gave no sign, biding his time, and waiting upon the working of
oath and lie. Yet by Sirion and the sea there grew up an Elven-folk, the
gleanings of Doriath and Gondolin; and from Balar the mariners of Cнrdan came
among them, and they took to the waves and the building of ships, dwelling ever
nigh to the coasts of Arvernien, under the shadow of Ulmo's hand. And it is said that in that time Ulmo came
to Valinor out of the deep waters, and spoke there to the Valar of the need of
the Elves; and he called on them to forgive them, and rescue them from the
overmastering might of Morgoth, and win back the Silmarils, wherein alone now
bloomed the light of the Days of Bliss when the Two Trees still shone in
Valinor. But Manwл moved not; and of the counsels of his heart what tale shall
tell? The wise have said that the hour was not yet
come, and that only one speaking in person for the cause of both Elves and Men,
pleading for pardon on their misdeeds and pity on their woes, might move the
counsels of the Powers; and the oath of Fлanor perhaps even Manwл could not
loose, until it found its end, and the sons of Fлanor relinquished the
.Silmarils, upon which they had laid their ruthless claim. For the light which
lit the Silmarils the Valar themselves had made. In those days Tuor felt old age creep upon
him, and ever a longing for the deeps of the Sea grew stronger in his heart.
Therefore he built a great ship, and he named it Eдrrбmл, which is Sea-Wing;
and with Idril Celebrindal he set sail into the sunset and the West, and came
no more into any tale or song. But in after days it was sung that Tuor alone of
mortal Men was numbered among the elder race, and was joined with the Noldor,
whom he loved; and his fate is sundered from the fate of Men. Chapter 24 Of the Voyage of Eдrendil and the War of Wrath Bright Eдrendil was
then lord of the people that dwelt nigh to Sirion's mouths; and he took to wife
Elwing the fair, and she bore to him Elrond and Elros, who are called the
Half-elven. Yet Eдrendil could not rest, and his voyages about the shores of
the Hither Lands eased not his unquiet. Two purposes grew in his heart, blended
as one in longing for the wide Sea: he sought to sail thereon, seeking after
Tuor and Idril who returned not; and he thought to find perhaps the last shore,
and bring ere he died the message of Elves and Men to the Valar in the West,
that should move their hearts to pity for the sorrows of Middle-earth. Now Eдrendil became fast in friendship with
Cнrdan the Shipwright, who dwelt on the Isle of Balar with those of his people
who escaped from the sack of the Havens of Brithombar and Eglarest. With the
aid of Cнrdan Eдrendil built Vingilot, the Foam-flower, fairest of the ships of
song; golden were its oars and white its timbers, hewn in the birchwoods of
Nimbrethil, and its sails were as the argent moon. In the Lay of Eдrendil is
many a thing sung of his adventures in the deep and in lands untrodden, and in
many seas and in many isles; but Elwing was not with him, and she sat in sorrow
by the mouths of Sirion. Eдrendil found not Tuor nor Idril, nor came
he ever on that journey to the shores of Valinor, defeated by shadows and
enchantment, driven by repelling winds, until in longing for Elwing he turned
homeward towards the coast of Beleriand. And his heart bade him haste, for a
sudden fear had fallen on him out of dreams; and the winds that before he had
striven with might not now bear him back as swift as his desire. Now when first the tidings came to Maedhros
that Elwing yet lived, and dwelt in possession of the Silmaril by the mouths of
Sirion, he repenting of the deeds in Doriath withheld his hand. But in time the
knowledge of their oath unfulfilled returned to torment him and his brothers,
and gathering from their wandering hunting-paths they sent messages to the
Havens of friendship and yet of stern demand. Then Elwing and the people of
Sirion would not yield the jewel which Beren had won and Lъthien had worn, and
for which Dior the fair was slain; and least of all while Eдrendil their lord
was on the sea, for it seemed to them that in the Silmaril lay the healing and
the blessing that had come upon their houses and their ships. And so there came
to pass the last and cruellest of the slayings of Elf by Elf; and that was the
third of the great wrongs achieved by the accursed oath. For the sons of Fлanor that yet lived came
down suddenly upon the exiles of Gondolin and the remnant of Doriath, and
destroyed them. In that battle some of their people stood aside, and some few
rebelled and were slain upon the other part aiding Elwing against their own
lords (for such was the sorrow and confusion in the hearts of the Eldar in
those days); but Maedhros and Maglor won the day, though they alone remained
thereafter of the sons of Fлanor, for both Amrod and Amras were slain. Too late
the ships of Cнrdan and Gil-galad the High King came hasting to the aid of the
Elves of Sirion; and Elwing was gone, and her sons. Then such few of that
people as did not perish in the assault joined themselves to Gil-galad, and
went with him to Balar; and they told that Elros and Elrond were taken captive,
but Elwing with the Silmaril upon her breast had cast herself into the sea. Thus Maedhros and Maglor gained not the
jewel; but it was not lost. For Ulmo bore up Elwing out of the waves, and he
gave her the likeness of a great white bird, and upon her breast there shone as
a star the Silmaril, as she flew over the water to seek Eдrendil her beloved.
On a time of night Eдrendil at the helm of his ship saw her come towards him,
as a white cloud exceeding swift beneath the moon, as a star over the sea
moving in strange course, a pale flame on wings of storm. And it is sung that
she fell from the air upon the timbers of Vingilot, in a swoon, nigh unto death
for the urgency of her speed, and Eдrendil took her to his bosom; but in the
morning with marvelling eyes he beheld his wife in her own form beside him with
her hair upon his face, and she slept. Great was the sorrow of Eдrendil and Elwing
for the ruin of the havens of Sirion, and the captivity of their sons, and they
feared that they would be slain; but it was not so. For Maglor took pity upon
Elros and Elrond, and he cherished them, and love grew after between them, as
little might be thought; but Maglor's heart was sick and weary with the burden
of the dreadful oath. Yet Eдrendil saw now no hope left in the
lands of Middle-earth, and he turned again in despair and came not home, but
sought back once more to Valinor with Elwing at his side. He stood now most
often at the prow of Vingilot, and the Silmaril was bound upon his brow; and
ever its light grew greater as they drew into the West. And the wise have said
that it was by reason of the power of that holy jewel that they came in time to
waters that no vessels save those of the Teleri had known; and they came to the
Enchanted Isles and escaped their enchantment; and they came into the Shadowy
Seas and passed their shadows, and they looked upon Tol Eressлa the Lonely
Isle, but tarried not; and at the last they cast anchor in the Bay of Eldamar,
and the Teleri saw the coming of that ship out of the East and they were
amazed, gazing from afar upon the light of the Silmaril, and it was very great.
Then Eдrendil, first of living Men, landed on the immortal shores; and he spoke
there to Elwing and to those that were with him, and they were three mariners
who had sailed all the seas besides him: Falathar, Erellont, and Aerandir were
their names. And Eдrendil said to them: 'Here none but myself shall set foot,
lest you fall under the wrath of the Valar. But that peril I will take on
myself alone, for the sake of the Two Kindreds.' But Elwing answered: 'Then would our paths
be sundered for ever; but all thy perils I will take on myself also.' And she
leaped into the white foam and ran towards him; but Eдrendil was sorrowful, for
he feared the anger of the Lords of the West upon any of Middle-earth that
should dare to pass the leaguer of Aman. And there they bade farewell to the
companions of their voyage, and were taken from them for ever. Then Eдrendil said to Elwing: 'Await me
here; for one only may bring the message that it is my fate to bear.' And he
went up alone into the land, and came into the Calacirya, and it seemed to him
empty and silent; for even as Morgoth and Ungoliant came in ages past, so now
Eдrendil had come at a time of festival, and wellnigh all the Elvenfolk were
gone to Valimar, or were gathered in the halls of Manwл upon Taniquetil, and
few were left to keep watch upon the walls of Tirion. But some there were who saw him from afar,
and the great light that he bore; and they went in haste to Valimar. But
Eдrendil climbed the green hill of Tъna and found it bare; and he entered into
the streets of Tirion, and they were empty; and his heart was heavy, for he
feared that some evil had come even to the Blessed Realm. He walked in the
deserted ways of Tirion, and the dust upon his raiment and his shoes was a dust
of diamonds, and he shone and glistened as he climbed the long white stairs.
And he called aloud in many tongues, both of Elves and Men, but there were none
to answer him. Therefore he turned back at last towards the sea; but even as he
took the shoreward road one stood upon the hill and called to him in a great
voice, crying: 'Hail Eдrendil, of mariners most renowned,
the looked for that cometh at unawares, the longed for that cometh beyond hope!
Hail Eдrendil, bearer of light before the Sun and Moon! Splendour of the
Children of Earth, star in the darkness, jewel in the sunset, radiant in the
morning!' That voice was the voice of Eцnwл, herald of
Manwл, and he came from Valimar, and summoned Eдrendil to come before the
Powers of Arda. And Eдrendil went into Valinor and to the halls of Valimar, and
never again set foot upon the lands of Men. Then the Valar took counsel together,
and they summoned Ulmo from the deeps of the sea; and Eдrendil stood before
their faces, and delivered the errand of the Two Kindreds. Pardon he asked for
the Noldor and pity for their great sorrows, and mercy upon Men and Elves and
succour in their need. And his prayer was granted. It is told among the Elves that after
Eдrendil had departed, seeking Elwing his wife, Mandos spoke concerning his
fate; and he said: 'Shall mortal Man step living upon the undying lands, and
yet live?' But Ulmo said: 'For this he was born into the world. And say unto
me: whether is he Eдrendil Tuor's son of the line of Hador, or the son of
Idril, Turgon's daughter, of the Elven-house of Finwл?' And Mandos answered:
'Equally the Noldor, who went wilfully into exile, may not return hither.' But when all was spoken, Manwл gave
judgement, and he said: 'In this matter the power of doom is given to me. The
peril that he ventured for love of the Two Kindreds shall not fall upon
Eдrendil, nor shall it fall upon Elwing his wife, who entered into peril for
love of him; but they shall not walk again ever among Elves or Men in the Outer
Lands. And this is my decree concerning them: to Eдrendil and to Elwing, and to
their sons, shall be given leave each to choose freely to which kindred their
fates shall be joined, and under which kindred they shall be judged.' Now when Eдrendil was long time gone Elwing
became lonely and afraid; and wandering by the margin of the sea she came near
to Alqualondл, where lay the Telerin fleets. There the Teleri befriended her,
and they listened to her tales of Doriath and Gondolin and the griefs of
Beleriand, and they were filled with pity and wonder; and there Eдrendil
returning found her, at the Haven of the Swans. But ere long they were summoned
to Valimar; and there the decree of the Elder King was declared to them. Then Eдrendil said to Elwing: 'Choose thou,
for now I am weary of the world.' And Elwing chose to be judged among the
Firstborn Children of Ilъvatar, because of Lъthien; and for her sake Eдrendil chose
alike, though his heart was rather with the kindred of Men and the people of
his father. Then at the bidding of the Valar Eцnwл went to the shore of Aman,
where the companions of Eдrendil still remained, awaiting tidings; and he took
a boat, and the three mariners were set therein, and the Valar drove them away
into the East with a great wind. But they took Vingilot, and hallowed it, and
bore it away through Valinor to the uttermost rim of the world; and there it
passed through the Door of Night and was lifted up even into the oceans of
heaven. Now fair and marvellous was that vessel
made, and it was filled with a wavering flame, pure and bright; and Eдrendil
the Mariner sat at the helm, glistening with dust of elven-gems, and the
Silmaril was bound upon his brow. Far he journeyed in that ship, even into the
starless voids; but most often was he seen at morning or at evening, glimmering
in sunrise or sunset, as he came back to Valinor from voyages beyond the
confines of the world. On those journeys Elwing did not go, for she
might not endure the cold and the pathless voids, and she loved rather the
earth and the sweet winds that blow on sea and hill. Therefore there was built
for her a white tower northward upon the borders of the Sundering Seas; and thither
at times all the sea-birds of the earth repaired. And it is said that Elwing
learned the tongues of birds, who herself had once worn their shape; and they
taught her the craft of flight, and her wings were of white and silver-grey.
And at times, when Eдrendil returning drew near again to Arda, she would fly to
meet him, even as she had flown long ago, when she was rescued from the sea.
Then the far-sighted among the Elves that dwelt in the Lonely Isle would see
her like a white bird, shining, rose-stained in the sunset, as she soared in
joy to greet the coming of Vingilot to haven. Now when first Vingilot was set to sail in
the seas of heaven, it rose unlocked for, glittering and bright; and the people
of Middle-earth beheld it from afar and wondered, and they took it for a sign,
and called it Gil-Estel, the Star of High Hope. And when this new star was seen
at evening, Maedhros spoke to Maglor his brother, and he said: 'Surely that is
a Silmaril that shines now in the West?' And Maglor answered: 'If it be truly the
Silmaril which we saw cast into the sea that rises again by the power of the
Valar, then let us be glad; for its glory is seen now by many, and is yet
secure from all evil.' Then the Elves looked up, and despaired no longer; but
Morgoth was filled with doubt. Yet it is said that Morgoth looked not for
the assault that came upon him from the West; for so great was his pride become
that he deemed that none would ever again come with open war against him.
Moreover he thought that he had for ever estranged the Noldor from the Lords of
the West, and that content in their blissful realm the Valar would heed no more
his kingdom in the world without; for to him that is pitiless the deeds of pity
are ever strange and beyond reckoning. But the host of the Valar prepared for
battle; and beneath their white banners marched the Vanyar, the people of
Ingwл, and those also of the Noldor who never departed from Valinor, whose
leader was Finarfin the son of Finwл. Few of the Teleri were willing to go
forth to war, for they remembered the slaying at the Swan-haven, and the rape
of their ships; but they hearkened to Elwing, who was the daughter of Dior
Eluchнl and come of their own kindred, and they sent mariners enough to sail
the ships that bore the host of Valinor east over the sea. Yet they stayed
aboard their vessels, and none of them set foot upon the Hither Lands. Of the march of the host of the Valar to the
north of Middle-earth little is said in any tale; for among them went none of
those Elves who had dwelt and suffered in the Hither Lands, and who made the
histories of those days that still are known; and tidings of these things they
only learned long afterwards from their kinsfolk in Aman. But at the last the
might of Valinor came up out of the West, and the challenge of the trumpets of
Eцnwл filled the sky; and Beleriand was ablaze with the glory of their arms,
for the host of the Valar were arrayed in forms young and fair and terrible,
and the mountains rang beneath their feet. The meeting of the hosts of the West and of
the North is named the Great Battle, and the War of Wrath. There was marshalled
the whole power of the Throne of Morgoth, and it had become great beyond count,
so that Anfauglith could not contain it; and all the North was aflame with war. But it availed him not. The Balrogs were
destroyed, save some few that fled and hid themselves in caverns inaccessible
at the roots of the earth; and the uncounted legions of the Ores perished like
straw in a great fire, or were swept like shrivelled leaves before a burning
wind. Few remained to trouble the world for long years after. And such few as
were left of the three houses of the Elf-friends, Fathers of Men, fought upon
the part of the Valar; and they were avenged in those days for Baragund and Barahir,
Galdor and Gundor, Huor and Hъrin, and many others of their lords. But a great
part of the sons of Men, whether of the people of Uldor or others new-come out
of the east, marched with the Enemy; and the Elves do not forget it. Then, seeing that his hosts were overthrown
and his power dispersed, Morgoth quailed, and he dared not to come forth
himself. But he loosed upon his foes the last desperate assault that he had
prepared, and out of the pits of Angband there issued the winged dragons, that
had not before been seen; and so sudden and ruinous was the onset of that
dreadful fleet that the host of the Valar was driven back, for the coming of
the dragons was with great thunder, and lightning, and a tempest of fire. But Eдrendil came, shining with white flame,
and about Vingilot were gathered all the great birds of heaven and Thorondor
was their captain, and there was battle in the air all the day and through a
dark night of doubt. Before the rising of the sun Eдrendil slew Ancalagon the
Black, the mightiest of the dragon-host, and cast him from the sky; and he fell
upon the towers of Thangorodrim, and they were broken in his ruin. Then the sun
rose, and the host of the Valar prevailed, and well-nigh all the dragons were
destroyed; and all the pits of Morgoth were broken and unroofed, and the might
of the Valar descended into the deeps of the earth. There Morgoth stood at last
at bay, and yet unvaliant. He fled into the deepest of his mines, and sued for
peace and pardon; but his feet were hewn from under him, and he was hurled upon
his face. Then he was bound with the chain Angainor which he had worn
aforetime, and his iron crown they beat into a collar for his neck, and his
head was bowed upon his knees. And the two Silmarils which remained to Morgoth
were taken from his crown, and they shone unsullied beneath the sky; and Eцnwл
took them, and guarded them. Thus an end was made of the power of Angband
in the North, and' the evil realm was brought to naught; and out of the deep
prisons a multitude of slaves came forth beyond all hope into the light of day,
and they looked upon a world that was changed. For so great was the fury of
those adversaries that the northern regions of the western world were rent
asunder, and the sea roared in through many chasms, and there was confusion and
great noise; and rivers perished or found new paths, and the valleys were
upheaved and the hills trod down; and Sirion was no more. Then Eцnwл as herald of the Elder King
summoned the Elves of Beleriand to depart from Middle-earth. But Maedhros and
Maglor would not hearken, and they prepared, though now with weariness and
loathing, to attempt in despair the fulfilment of their oath; for they would
have given battle for the Silmarils, were they withheld, even against the
victorious host of Valinor, even though they stood alone against all the world.
And they sent a message therefore to Eцnwл, bidding him yield up now those
jewels which of old Fлanor their father made and Morgoth stole from him. But Eцnwл answered that the right to the
work of their father, which the sons of Fлanor formerly possessed, had now
perished, because of their many and merciless deeds, being blinded by their
oath, and most of all because of their slaying of Dior and the assault upon the
Havens. The light of the Silmarils should go now into the West, whence it came
in the beginning; and to Valinor must Maedhros and Maglor return, and there
abide the judgement of the Valar, by whose decree alone would Eцnwл yield the
jewels from his charge. Then Maglor desired indeed to submit, for his heart was
sorrowful, and he said: The oath says not that we may not bide our time, and it
may be that in Valinor all shall be forgiven and forgot, and we shall come into
our own in peace. But Maedhros answered that if they returned
to Aman but the favour of the Valar were withheld from them, then their oath
would still remain, but its fulfilment be beyond all hope; and he said: 'Who
can tell to what dreadful doom we shall come, if we disobey the Powers in their
own land, or purpose ever to bring war again into their holy realm?' Yet Maglor still held back, saying: 'If
Manwл and Varda themselves deny the fulfilment of an oath to which we named
them in witness, is it not made void?' And Maedhros answered: 'But how shall our
voices reach to Ilъvatar beyond the Circles of the World? And by Ilъvatar we
swore in our madness, and called the Everlasting Darkness upon us, if we kept
not our word. Who shall release us?' 'If none can release us,' said Maglor, 'then
indeed the Everlasting Darkness shall be our lot, whether we keep our oath or
break it; but less evil shall we do in the breaking.' Yet he yielded at last to the will of
Maedhros, and they took counsel together how they should lay hands on the
Silmarils. And they disguised themselves, and came in the night to the camp of
Eцnwл, and crept into the place where the Silmarils were guarded; and they slew
the guards, and laid hands on the jewels. Then all the camp was raised against
them, and they prepared to die, defending themselves until the last. But Eцnwл
would not permit the slaying of the sons of Fлanor; and departing unfought they
fled far away. Each of them took to himself a Silmaril, for they said: 'Since
one is lost to us, and but two remain, and we two alone of our brothers, so is it
plain that fate would have us share the heirlooms of our father.' But the jewel burned the hand of Maedhros in
pain unbearable; and he perceived that it was as Eцnwл had said, and that his
right thereto had become void, and that the oath was vain. And being in anguish
and despair he cast himself into a gaping chasm filled with fire, and so ended;
and the Silmaril that he bore was taken into the bosom of the Earth, And it is told of Maglor that he could not
endure the pain with which the Silmaril tormented him; and he cast it at last
into the Sea, and thereafter he wandered ever upon the shores, singing in pain
and regret beside the waves. For Maglor was mighty among the singers of old,
named only after Daeron of Doriath; but he came never back among the people of
the Elves. And thus it came to pass that the Silmarils found their long homes:
one in the airs of heaven, and one in the fires of the heart of the world, and
one in the deep waters. In those days there was a great building of
ships upon the shores of the Western Sea; and thence in many a fleet the Eldar
set sail into the West, and came never back to the lands of weeping and of war.
And the Vanyar returned beneath their white banners, and were borne in triumph
to Valinor; but their joy in victory was diminished, for they returned without
the Silmarils from Morgoth's crown, and they knew that those jewels could not
be found or brought together again unless the world be broken and remade. And when they came into the West the Elves
of Beleriand dwelt upon Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle, that looks both west and
east; whence they might come even to Valinor. They were admitted again to the
love of Manwл and the pardon of the Valar; and the Teleri forgave their ancient
grief, and the curse was laid to rest. Yet not all the Eldaliл were willing to
forsake the Hither Lands where they had long suffered and long dwelt; and some
lingered many an age in Middle-earth. Among those were Cнrdan the Shipwright,
and Celeborn of Doriath, with Galadriel his wife, who alone remained of those
who led the Noldor to exile in Beleriand. In Middle-earth dwelt also Gil-galad
the High King, and with him was Elrond Half-elven, who chose, as was granted to
him, to be numbered among the Eldar; but Elros his brother chose to abide with
Men. And from these brethren alone has come among Men the blood of the
Firstborn and a strain of the spirits divine that were before Arda; for they
were the sons of Elwing, Dior's daughter, Lъthien's son, child of Thingol and
Melian; and Eдrendil their father was the son of Idril Celebrindal, Turgon's
daughter of Gondolin. But Morgoth himself the Valar thrust through
the Door of Night beyond the Walls of the World, into the Timeless Void; and a
guard is set for ever on those walls, and Eдrendil keeps watch upon the
ramparts of the sky. Yet the lies that Melkor, the mighty and accursed, Morgoth
Bauglir, the Power of Terror and of Hate, sowed in the hearts of Elves and Men
are a seed that does not die and cannot be destroyed; and ever and anon it
sprouts anew, and will bear dark fruit even unto the latest days. Here
ends the SILMARILLION. If it has passed from the high and the beautiful to
darkness and ruin, that was of old the fate of Arda Marred; and if any change
shall come and the Marring be amended, Manwл and Varda may know; but they have
not revealed it, and it is not declared in the dooms of Mandos. AKALLABКTH The Downfall of
Nъmenor It is said by the
Eldar that Men came into the world in the time of the Shadow of Morgoth, and
they fell swiftly under his dominion; for he sent his emissaries among them,
and they listened to his evil and cunning words, and they worshipped the
Darkness and yet feared it. But there were some that turned from evil and left
the lands of their kindred, and wandered ever westward; for they had heard a
rumour that in the West there was a light which the Shadow could not dim. The
servants of Morgoth pursued them with hatred, and their ways were long and
hard; yet they came at last to the lands that look upon the Sea, and they entered
Beleriand in the days of the War of the Jewels. The Edain these were named in
the Sindarin tongue; and they became friends and allies of the Eldar, and did
deeds of great valour in the war against Morgoth. Of them was sprung, upon the side of his
fathers, Bright Eдrendil; and in the Lay
of Eдrendil it is told how at the last, when the victory of Morgoth was
almost complete, he built his ship Vingilot, that Men called Rothinzil, and
voyaged upon the unsailed seas, seeking ever for Valinor; for he desired to
speak before the Powers on behalf of the Two Kindreds, that the Valar might
have pity on them and send them help in their uttermost need. Therefore by
Elves and Men he is called Eдrendil the Blessed, for he achieved his quest
after long labours and many perils, and from Valinor there came the host of the
Lords of the West. But Eдrendil came never back to the lands that he had loved. In the Great Battle when at last Morgoth was
overthrown and Thangorodrim was broken, the Edain alone of the kindreds of Men
fought for the Valar, whereas many others fought for Morgoth. And after the
victory of the Lords of the West those of the evil Men who were not destroyed
fled back into the east, where many of their race were still wandering in the
unharvested lands, wild and lawless, refusing alike the summons of the Valar
and of Morgoth. And the evil Men came among them, and cast over them a shadow
of fear, and they took them for kings. Then the Valar forsook for a time the
Men of Middle-earth who had refused their summons and had taken the friends of
Morgoth to be their masters; and Men dwelt in darkness and were troubled by
many evil things that Morgoth had devised in the days of his dominion: demons,
and dragons, and misshapen beasts, and the unclean Orcs that are mockeries of
the Children of Ilъvatar. And the lot of Men was unhappy. But Manwл put forth Morgoth and shut him
beyond the World in the Void that is without; and he cannot himself return
again into the World, present and visible, while the Lords of the West are
still enthroned. Yet the seeds that he had planted still grew and sprouted,
bearing evil fruit, if any would tend them. For his will remained and guided
his servants, moving them ever to thwart the will of the Valar and to destroy
those that obeyed them. This the Lords of the West knew full well. When
therefore Morgoth had been thrust forth, they held council concerning the ages
that should come after. The Eldar they summoned to return into the West, and
those that hearkened to the summons dwelt in the Isle of Eressлa; and there is
in that land a haven that is named Avallуnл, for it is of all cities the
nearest to Valinor, and the tower of Avallуnл is the first sight that the
mariner beholds when at last he draws nigh to the Undying Lands over the leagues
of the Sea. To the Fathers of Men of the three faithful houses rich reward also
was given. Eцnwл came among them and taught them; and they were given wisdom
and power and life more enduring than any others of mortal race have possessed.
A land was made for the Edain to dwell in, neither part of Middle-earth nor of
Valinor, for it was sundered from either by a wide sea; yet it was nearer to
Valinor. It was raised by Ossл out of the depths of the Great Water, and it was
established by Aulл and enriched by Yavanna; and the Eldar brought thither
flowers and fountains out of Tol Eressлa. That land the Valar called Andor, the
Land of Gift; and the Star of Eдrendil shone bright in the West as a token that
all was made ready, and as a guide over the sea; and Men marvelled to see that
silver flame in the paths of the Sun. Then the Edain set sail upon the deep
waters, following the Star; and the Valar laid a peace upon the sea for many
days, and sent sunlight and a sailing wind, so that the waters glittered before
the eyes of the Edain like rippling glass, and the foam flew like snow before
the stems of their ships. But so bright was Rothinzil that even at morning Men
could see it glimmering in the West, and in the cloudless night it shone alone,
for no other star could stand beside it. And setting their course towards it
the Edain came at last over leagues of sea and saw afar the land that was
prepared for them, Andor, the Land of Gift, shimmering in a golden haze. Then
they went up out of the sea and found a country fair and fruitful, and they
were glad. And they called that land Elenna, which is Starwards; but also
Anadыnл, which is Westernesse, Nъmenуrл in the High Eldarin tongue. This was the beginning of that people that
in the Grey-elven speech are called the Dъnedain: the Nъmenуreans, Kings among
Men. But they did not thus escape from the doom of death that Ilъvatar had set
upon all Mankind, and they were mortal still, though their years were long, and
they knew no sickness, ere the shadow fell upon them. Therefore they grew wise
and glorious, and in all things more like to the Firstborn than any other of
the kindreds of Men; and they were tall, taller than the tallest of the sons of
Middle-earth; and the light of their eyes was like the bright stars. But their
numbers increased only slowly in the land, for though daughters and sons were
born to them, fairer than their fathers, yet their children were few. Of old the chief city and haven of Nъmenor
was in the midst of its western coasts, and it was called Andъniл because it
faced the sunset. But in the midst of the land was a mountain tall and steep,
and it was named the Meneltarma, the Pillar of Heaven, and upon it was a high
place that was hallowed to Eru Ilъvatar, and it was open and unroofed, and no
other temple or fane was there in the land of the Nъmenуreans. At the feet of
the mountain were built the tombs of the Kings, and hard by upon a hill was
Armenelos, fairest of cities, and there stood the tower and the citadel that
was raised by Elros son of Eдrendil, whom the Valar appointed to be the first
King of the Dъnedain. Now Elros and Elrond his brother were
descended from the Three Houses of the Edain, but in part also both from the
Eldar and the Maiar; for Idril of Gondolin and Lъthien daughter of Melian were
their fore-mothers. The Valar indeed may not withdraw the gift of death, which
comes to Men from Ilъvatar, but in the matter of the Half-elven Ilъvatar gave
to them the judgement; and they judged that to the sons of Eдrendil should be
given choice of their own destiny. And Elrond chose to remain with the
Firstborn, and to him the life of the Firstborn was granted. But to Elros, who
chose to be a king of Men, still a great span of years was allotted, many times
that of the Men of Middle-earth; and all his line, the kings and lords of the
royal house, had long life even according to the measure of the Nъmenуreans.
But Elros lived five hundred years, and ruled the Nъmenуreans four hundred
years and ten. Thus the years passed, and while
Middle-earth went backward and light and wisdom faded, the Dъnedain dwelt under
the protection of the Valar and in the friendship of the Eldar, and they
increased in stature both of mind and body. For though this people used still
their own speech, their kings and lords knew and spoke also the Elven tongue,
which they had learned in the days of their alliance, and thus they held
converse still with the Eldar, whether of Eressлa or of the west-lands of
Middle-earth. And the loremasters among them learned also the High Eldarin tongue
of the Blessed Realm, in which much story and song was preserved from the
beginning of the world; and they made letters and scrolls and books, and wrote
in them many things of wisdom and wonder in the high tide of their realm, of
which all is now forgot. So it came to pass that, beside their own names, all
the lords of the Nъmenуreans had also Eldarin names; and the like with the
cities and fair places that they founded in Nъmenor and on the shores of the
Hither Lands. For the Dъnedain became mighty in crafts, so
that if they had had the mind they could easily have surpassed the evil kings
of Middle-earth in the making of war and the forging of weapons; but they were
become men of peace. Above all arts they nourished shipbuilding and sea-craft,
and they became mariners whose like shall never be again since the world was
diminished; and voyaging upon the wide seas was the chief feat and adventure of
their hardy men in the gallant days of their youth. But the Lords of Valinor forbade them to
sail so far westward that the coasts of Nъmenor could no longer be seen; and
for long the Dъnedain were content, though they did not fully understand the
purpose of this ban. But the design of Manwл was that the Nъmenуreans should
not be tempted to seek for the Blessed Realm, nor desire to overpass the limits
set to their bliss, becoming enamoured of the immortality of the Valar and the
Eldar and the lands where all things endure. For in those days Valinor still remained in
the world visible, and there Ilъvatar permitted the Valar to maintain upon
Earth an abiding place, a memorial of that which might have been if Morgoth had
not cast his shadow on the world. This the Nъmenуreans knew full well; and at
times, when all the air was clear and the sun was in the east, they would look
out and descry far off in the west a city white-shining on a distant shore, and
a great harbour and a tower. For in those days the Nъmenуreans were
far-sighted; yet even so it was only the keenest eyes among them that could see
this vision, from the Meneltarma, maybe, or from some tall ship that lay off
their western coast as far as it was lawful for them to go. For they did not
dare to break the Ban of the Lords of the West. But the wise among them knew
that this distant land was not indeed the Blessed Realm of Valinor, but was
Avallуnл, the haven of the Eldar upon Eressлa, easternmost of the Undying
Lands. And thence at times the Firstborn still would come sailing to Nъmenor in
oarless boats, as white birds flying from the sunset. And they brought to Nъmenor
many gifts: birds of song, and fragrant flowers, and herbs of great virtue. And
a seedling they brought of Celeborn, the White Tree that grew in the midst of
Eressлa; and that was in its turn a seedling of Galathilion the Tree of Tъna,
the image of Telperion that Yavanna gave to the Eldar in the Blessed Realm. And
the tree grew and blossomed in the courts of the King in Armenelos; Nimloth it
was named, and flowered in the evening, and the shadows of night it filled with
its fragrance. Thus it was that because of the Ban of the
Valar the voyages of the Dъnedain in those days went ever eastward and not
westward, from the darkness of the North to the heats of the South, and beyond
the South to the Nether Darkness; and they came even into the inner seas, and
sailed about Middle-earth and glimpsed from their high prows the Gates of
Morning in the East. And the Dъnedain came at times to the shores of the Great
Lands, and they took pity on the forsaken world of Middle-earth; and the Lords
of Nъmenor set foot again upon the western shores in the Dark Years of Men, and
none yet dared to withstand them. For most of the Men of that age that sat
under the Shadow were now grown weak and fearful. And coming among them the
Nъmenуreans taught them many things. Corn and wine they brought, and they
instructed Men in the sowing of seed and the grinding of grain, in the hewing
of wood and the shaping of stone, and in the ordering of their life, such as it
might be in the lands of swift death and little bliss. Then the Men of Middle-earth were comforted,
and here and there upon the western shores the houseless woods drew back, and
Men shook off the yoke of the offspring of Morgoth, and unlearned their terror
of the dark. And they revered the memory of the tall Sea-kings, and when they
had departed they called them gods, hoping for their return; for at that time
the Nъmenуreans dwelt never long in Middle-earth, nor made there as yet any
habitation of their own. Eastward they must sail, but ever west their hearts
returned. Now this yearning grew ever greater with the
years; and the Nъmenуreans began to hunger for the undying city that they saw
from afar, and the desire of everlasting life, to escape from death and the
ending of delight, grew strong upon them; and ever as their power and glory
grew greater their unquiet increased. For though the Valar had rewarded the
Dъnedain with long life, they could not take from them the weariness of the
world that comes at last, and they died, even their kings of the seed of
Eдrendil; and the span of their lives was brief in the eyes of the Eldar. Thus
it was that a shadow fell upon them: in which maybe the will of Morgoth was at
work that still moved in the world. And the Nъmenуreans began to murmur, at
first in their hearts, and then in open words, against the doom of Men, and
most of all against the Ban which forbade them to sail into the West. And they said among themselves: 'Why do the
Lords of the West sit there in peace unending, while we must die and go we know
not whither, leaving our home and all that we have made? And the Eldar die not,
even those that rebelled against the Lords. And since we have mastered all
seas, and no water is so wild or so wide that our ships cannot overcome it, why
should we not go to Avallуnл and greet there our friends?' And some there were who said: 'Why should we
not go even to Aman, and taste there, were it but for a day, the bliss of the
Powers? Have we not become mighty among the people of Arda?' The Eldar reported these words to the Valar,
and Manwл was grieved, seeing a cloud gather on the noontide of Nъmenor. And he
sent messengers to the Dъnedain, who spoke earnestly to the King, and to all
who would listen, concerning the fate and fashion of the world. 'The Doom of the World,' they said, 'One
alone can change who made it. And were you so to voyage that escaping all
deceits and snares you came indeed to Aman, the Blessed Realm, little would it
profit you. For it is not the land of Manwл that makes its people deathless,
but the Deathless that dwell therein have hallowed the land; and there you
would but wither and grow weary the sooner, as moths in a light too strong and
steadfast.' But the King said: 'And does not Eдrendil,
my forefather, live? Or is he not in the land of Aman?' To which they answered: 'You know that he
has a fate apart, and was adjudged to the Firstborn who die not; yet this also
is his doom that he can never return again to mortal lands. Whereas you and
your people are not of the Firstborn, but are mortal Men as Ilъvatar made you.
Yet it seems that you desire now to have the good of both kindreds, to sail to
Valinor when you will, and to return when you please to your homes. That cannot
be. Nor can the Valar take away the gifts of Ilъvatar. The Eldar, you say, are
unpunished, and even those who rebelled do not die. Yet that is to them neither
reward nor punishment, but the fulfilment of their being. They cannot escape,
and are bound to this world, never to leave it so long as it lasts, for its
life is theirs. And you are punished for the rebellion of Men, you say, in
which you had small part, and so it is that you die. But that was not at first
appointed for a punishment. Thus you escape, and leave the world, and are not
bound to it, in hope or in weariness. Which of us therefore should envy the
others?" And the Nъmenуreans answered: 'Why should we
not envy the Valar, or even the least of the Deathless? For of us is required a
blind trust, and a hope without assurance, knowing not what lies before us in a
little while. And yet we also love the Earth and would not lose it.' Then the Messengers said: 'Indeed the mind
of Ilъvatar concerning you is not known to the Valar, and he has not revealed
all things that are to come. But this we hold to be true, that your home is not
here, neither in the Land of Aman nor anywhere within the Circles of the World.
And the Doom of Men, that they should depart, was at first a gift of Ilъvatar.
It became a grief to them only because coming under the shadow of Morgoth it
seemed to them that they were surrounded by a great darkness, of which they
were afraid; and some grew wilful and proud and would not yield, until life was
reft from them. We who bear the ever-mounting burden of the years do not
clearly understand this; but if that grief has returned to trouble you, as you
say, then we fear that the Shadow arises once more and grows again in your
hearts. Therefore, though you be the Dъnedain, fairest of Men, who escaped from
the Shadow of old and fought valiantly against it, we say to you: Beware! The
will of Eru may not be gainsaid; and the Valar bid you earnestly not to
withhold the trust to which you are called, lest soon it become again a bond by
which you are constrained. Hope rather that in the end even the least of your
desires shall have fruit. The love of Arda was set in your hearts by Ilъvatar,
and he does not plant to no purpose. Nonetheless, many ages of Men unborn may
pass ere that purpose is made known; and to you it will be revealed and not to
the Valar.' These things took place in the days of
Tar-Ciryatan the Shipbuilder, and of Tar-Atanamir his son; and they were proud
men, eager for wealth, and they laid the men of Middle-earth under tribute,
taking now rather than giving. It was to Tar-Atanamir that the Messengers came;
and he was the thirteenth King, and in his day the Realm of Nъmenor had endured
for more than two thousand years, and was come to the zenith of its bliss, if
not yet of its power. But Atanamir was ill pleased with the counsel of the
Messengers and gave little heed to it, and the greater part of his people
followed him; for they wished still to escape death in their own day, not
waiting upon hope. And Atanamir lived to a great age, clinging to his life
beyond the end of all joy; and he was the first of the Nъmenуreans to do this,
refusing to depart until he was witless and unmanned, and denying to his son
the kingship at the height of his days. For the Lords of Nъmenor had been wont
to wed late in their long lives and to depart and leave the mastery to their
sons when these were come to full stature of body and mind. Then Tar-Ancalimon, son of Atanamir, became
King, and he was of like mind; and in his day the people of Nъmenor became
divided. On the one hand was the greater party, and they were called the King's
Men, and they grew proud and were estranged from the Eldar and the Valar. And
on the other hand was the lesser party, and they were called the Elendili, the
Elf-friends; for though they remained loyal indeed to the King and the House of
Elros, they wished to keep the friendship of the Eldar, and they hearkened to
the counsel of the Lords of the West. Nonetheless even they, who named
themselves the Faithful, did not wholly escape from the affliction of their
people, and they were troubled by the thought of death. Thus the bliss of Westernesse became
diminished; but still its might and splendour increased. For the kings and
their people had not yet abandoned wisdom, and if they loved the Valar no
longer at least they still feared them. They did not dare openly to break the
Ban or to sail beyond the limits that had been appointed. Eastwards still they
steered their tall ships. But the fear of death grew ever darker upon them, and
they delayed it by all means that they could; and they began to build great
houses for their dead, while their wise men laboured unceasingly to discover if
they might the secret of recalling life, or at the least of the prolonging of
Men's days. Yet they achieved only the art of preserving incorrupt the dead
flesh of Men, and they filled all the land with silent tombs in which the
thought of death was enshrined in the darkness. But those that lived turned the
more eagerly to pleasure and revelry, desiring ever more goods and more riches;
and after the days of Tar-Ancalimon the offering of the first fruits to Eru was
neglected, and men went seldom any more to the Hallow upon the heights of
Meneltarma in the midst of the land. Thus it came to pass in that time that the
Nъmenуreans first made great settlements upon the west shores of the ancient
lands; for their own land seemed to them shrunken, and they had no rest or
content therein, and they desired now wealth and dominion in Middle-earth,
since the West was denied. Great harbours and strong towers they made, and
there many of them took up their abode; but they appeared now rather as lords
and masters and gatherers of tribute than as helpers and teachers. And the
great ships of the Nъmenуreans were borne east on the winds and returned ever
laden, and the power and majesty of their kings were increased; and they drank
and they feasted and they clad themselves in silver and gold. In all this the Elf-friends had small part
They alone came now ever to the north and the land of Gil-galad, keeping their
friendship with the Elves and lending them aid against Sauron; and their haven
was Pelargir above the mouths of Anduin the Great. But the King's Men sailed
far away to the south; and the lordships and strongholds that they made have
left many rumours in the legends of Men. In this Age, as is elsewhere told, Sauron
arose again in Middle-earth, and grew, and turned back to the evil in which he
was nurtured by Morgoth, becoming mighty in his service. Already in the days of
Tar-Minastir, the eleventh King of Nъmenor, he had fortified the land of Mordor
and had built there the Tower of Barad-dыr, and thereafter he strove ever for
the dominion of Middle-earth, to become a king over all kings and as a god unto
Men. And Sauron hated the Nъmenуreans, because of the deeds of their fathers
and their ancient alliance with the Elves and allegiance to the Valar; nor did
he forget the aid that Tar-Minastir had rendered to Gil-galad of old, in that
time when the One Ring was forged and there was war between Sauron and the
Elves in Eriador. Now he learned that the kings of Nъmenor had increased hi
power and splendour, and he hated them the more; and he feared them, lest they
should invade his lands and wrest from him the dominion of the East. But for a
long time he did not dare to challenge the Lords of the Sea, and he withdrew
from the coasts. Yet Sauron was ever guileful, and it is said
that among those whom he ensnared with the Nine Rings three were great lords of
Nъmenуrean race. And when the Ъlairi arose that were the Ring-wraiths, his
servants, and the strength of his terror and mastery over Men had grown
exceedingly great, he began to assail the strong places of the Nъmenуreans upon
the shores of the sea. In those days the Shadow grew deeper upon
Nъmenor; and the lives of the Kings of the House of Elros waned because of
their rebellion, but they hardened their hearts the more against the Valar. And
the nineteenth king took the sceptre of his fathers, and he ascended the throne
in the name of Adunakhфr, Lord of the West, forsaking the Elven-tongues and
forbidding their use in his hearing. Yet hi the Scroll of Kings the name
Herunъmen was inscribed in the High-elven speech, because of ancient custom,
which the kings feared to break utterly, lest evil befall Now this title seemed
to the Faithful over-proud, being the title of the Valar; and their hearts were
sorely tried between their loyalty to the House of Elros and their reverence of
the appointed Powers. But worse was yet to come. For Ar-Gimilzфr the
twenty-second king was the greatest enemy of the Faithful. In his day the White
Tree was untended and began to decline; and he forbade utterly the use of the
Elven-tongues, and punished those that welcomed the ships of Eressлa, that
still came secretly to the west-shores of the land. Now the Elendili dwelt mostly in the western
regions of Nъmenor; but Ar-Gimilzфr commanded all that he could discover to be
of this party to remove from the west and dwell in the east of the land; and
there they were watched. And the chief dwelling of the Faithful in the later
days was thus nigh to the harbour of Romenna; thence many set sail to
Middle-earth, seeking the northern coasts where they might speak still with the
Eldar in the kingdom of Gil-galad. This was known to the kings, but they
hindered it not, so long as the Elendili departed from their land and did not
return; for they desired to end all friendship between then: people and the
Eldar of Eressлa, whom they named the Spies of the Valar, hoping to keep their
deeds and their counsels hidden from the Lords of the West. But all that they
did was known to Manwл, and the Valar were wroth with the Kings of Nъmenor, and
gave them counsel and protection no more; and the ships of Eressлa came never
again out of the sunset, and the havens of Andъniл were forlorn. Highest in honour after the house of the
kings were the Lords of Andъniл; for they were of the line of Elros, being
descended from Silmarien, daughter of Tar-Elendil the fourth king of Nъmenor.
And these lords were loyal to the kings, and revered them; and the Lord of
Andъniл was ever among the chief councillors of the Sceptre. Yet also from the
beginning they bore especial love to the Eldar and reverence for the Valar; and
as the Shadow grew they aided the Faithful as they could. But for long they did
not declare themselves openly, and sought rather to amend the hearts of the
lords of the Sceptre with wiser counsels. There was a lady Inzilbкth, renowned for her
beauty, and her mother was Lindуriл, sister of Eдrendur, the Lord of Andъniл in
the days of Ar-Sakalthфr father of Ar-Gimilzфr. Gimilzфr took her to wife,
though this was little to her liking, for she was in heart one of the Faithful,
being taught by her mother; but the kings and their sons were grown proud and
not to be gainsaid in their wishes. No love was there between Ar-Gimilzфr and
his queen, or between their sons. Inziladыn, the elder, was like his mother in
mind as in body; but Gimilkhвd, the younger, went with his father, unless he
were yet prouder and more wilful. To him Ar-Gimilzфr would have yielded the
sceptre rather than to the elder son, if the laws had allowed. But when Inziladыn acceded to the sceptre,
he took again a title in the Elven-tongue as of old, calling himself
Tar-Palantir, for he was far-sighted both in eye and in mind, and even those
that hated him feared his words as those of a true-seer. He gave peace for a
while to the Faithful; and he went once more at due seasons to the Hallow of
Eru upon the Meneltarma, which Ar-Gimilzфr had forsaken. The White Tree he
tended again with honour; and he prophesied, saying that when the Tree
perished, then also would the line of the Kings come to its end. But his
repentance was too late to appease the anger of the Valar with the insolence of
his fathers, of which the greater part of his people did not repent. And
Gimilkhвd was strong and ungentle, and he took the leadership of those that had
been called the King's Men and opposed the will of his brother as openly as he
dared, and yet more in secret. Thus the days of Tar-Palantir became darkened
with grief; and he would spend much of his time in the west, and there ascended
often the ancient tower of King Minastir upon the hill of Oromлt nigh to
Andъniл, whence he gazed westward in yearning, hoping to see, maybe, some sail
upon the sea. But no ship came ever again from the West to Nъmenor, and Avallуnл
was veiled in cloud. Now Gimilkhвd died two years before his two
hundredth year (which was accounted an early death for one of Elros' line even
in its waning), but this brought no peace to the King. For Pharazфn son of
Gimilkhвd had become a man yet more restless and eager for wealth and power
than his father. He had fared often abroad, as a leader in the wars that the
Nъmenуreans made then in the coastlands of Middle-earth, seeking to extend
their dominion over Men; and thus he had won great renown as a captain both by
land and by sea. Therefore when he came back to Nъmenor, hearing of his
father's death, the hearts of the people were turned to him; for he brought
with him great wealth, and was for the time free in his giving. And it came to pass that Tar-Palantir grew
weary of grief and died. He had no son, but a daughter only, whom he named
Mнriel in the Elven-tongue; and to her now by right and the laws of the
Nъmenуreans came the sceptre. But Pharazфn took her to wife against her will,
doing evil in this and evil also in that the laws of Nъmenor did not permit the
marriage, even in the royal house, of those more nearly akin than cousins m the
second degree. And when they were wedded, he seized the sceptre into his own
hand, taking the title of Ar-Pharazфn (Tar-Calion in the Elven-tongue); and the
name of his queen he changed to Ar-Zimraphel. The mightiest and proudest was Ar-Pharazфn
the Golden of all those that had wielded the Sceptre of the Sea-Kings since the
foundation of Nъmenor; and three and twenty Kings and Queens had ruled the
Nъmenуreans before, and slept now in their deep tombs under the mount of
Meneltarma, lying upon beds of gold. And sitting upon his carven throne in the
city of Armenelos in the glory of his power, he brooded darkly, thinking of
war. For he had learned in Middle-earth of the strength of the realm of Sauron,
and of his hatred of Westernesse. And now there came to him the masters of
ships and captains returning out of the East, and they reported that Sauron was
putting forth his might, since Ar-Pharazфn had gone back from Middle-earth, and
he was pressing down upon the cities by the coasts; and he had taken now the
title of King of Men, and declared his purpose to drive the Nъmenуreans into
the sea, and destroy even Nъmenor, if that might be. Great was the anger of Ar-Pharazфn at these
tidings, and as he pondered long in secret, his heart was filled with the
desire of power unbounded and the sole dominion of his will. And he determined
without counsel of the Valar, or the aid of any wisdom but his own, that the
title of King of Men he would himself claim, and would compel Sauron to become
his vassal and his servant; for in his pride he deemed that no king should ever
arise so mighty as to vie with the Heir of Eдrendil. Therefore he began in that
time to smithy great hoard of weapons, and many ships of war he built and
stored them with his arms; and when all was made ready he himself set sail with
his host into the East. And men saw his sails coming up out of the
sunset, dyed as with scarlet and gleaming with red and gold, and fear fell upon
the dwellers by the coasts, and they fled far away. But the fleet came at last
to that place that was called Umbar, where was the mighty haven of the
Nъmenуreans that no hand had wrought. Empty and silent were all the lands about
when the King of the Sea marched upon Middle-earth. For seven days he journeyed
with banner and trumpet, and he came to a hill, and he went up, and he set
there his pavilion and his throne; and he sat him down in the midst of the
land, and the tents of his host were ranged all about him, blue, golden, and
white, as a field of tall flowers. Then he sent forth heralds, and he commanded
Sauron to come before him and swear to him fealty. And Sauron came. Even from his mighty tower
of Barad-dыr he came, and made no offer of battle. For he perceived that the
power and majesty of the Kings of the Sea surpassed all rumour of them, so that
he could not trust even the greatest of his servants to withstand them; and he
saw not his time yet to work his will with the Dъnedain. And he was crafty,
well skilled to gain what he would by subtlety when force might not avail.
Therefore he humbled himself before Ar-Pharazфn and smoothed his tongue; and
men wondered, for all that he said seemed fair and wise. But Ar-Pharazфn was not yet deceived, and it
came into his mind that, for the better keeping of Sauron and of his oaths of
fealty, he should be brought to Nъmenor, there to dwell as a hostage for
himself and all his servants in Middle-earth. To this Sauron assented as one
constrained, yet in his secret thought he received it gladly, for it chimed
indeed with his desire. And Sauron passed over the sea and looked upon the land
of Nъmenor, and on the city of Armenelos in the days of its glory, and he was
astounded; but his heart within was filled the more with envy and hate. Yet such was the cunning of his mind and
mouth, and the strength of his hidden will, that ere three years had passed he
had become closest to the secret counsels of the King; for flattery sweet as
honey was ever on his tongue, and knowledge he had of many things yet
unrevealed to Men. And seeing the favour that he had of their lord all the
councillors began to fawn upon him, save one alone, Amandil lord of Andъniл.
Then slowly a change came over the land, and the hearts of the Elf-friends were
sorely troubled, and many fell away out of fear; and although those that
remained still called themselves the Faithful, their enemies named them rebels.
For now, having the ears of men, Sauron with many arguments gainsaid all that
the Valar had taught; and he bade men think that in the world, in the east and
even hi the west, there lay yet many seas and many lands for their winning,
wherein was wealth uncounted. And still, if they should at the last come to the
end of those lands and seas, beyond all lay the Ancient Darkness. 'And out of
it the world was made. For Darkness alone is worshipful, and the Lord thereof
may yet make other worlds to be gifts to those that serve him, so that the
increase of their power shall find no end.' And Ar-Pharazфn said: 'Who is the Lord of
the Darkness?' Then behind locked doors Sauron spoke to the
King, and he lied, saying: 'It is he whose name is not now spoken; for the
Valar have deceived you concerning him, putting forward the name of Eru, a
phantom devised in the folly of their hearts, seeking to enchain Men in
servitude to themselves. For they are the oracle of this Eru, which speaks only
what they will. But he that is their master shall yet prevail, and he will
deliver you from this phantom; and his name is Melkor, Lord of All, Giver of
Freedom, and he shall make you stronger than they.' Then Ar-Pharazфn the King turned back to the
worship of the Dark, and of Melkor the Lord thereof, at first in secret, but
ere long openly and in the face of his people; and they for the most part
followed him. Yet there dwelt still a remnant of the Faithful, as has been
told, at Romenna and in the country near, and other few there were here and
there in the land. The chief among them, to whom they looked for leading and
courage in evil days, was Amandil, councillor of the King, and his son Elendil,
whose sons were Isildur and Anбrion, then young men by the reckoning of
Nъmenor. Amandil and Elendil were great ship-captains; and they were of the
line of Elros Tar-Minyatur, though not of the ruling house to whom belonged the
crown and the throne in the city of Armenelos. In the days of their youth
together Amandil had been dear to Pharazфn, and though he was of the Elf-friends
he remained in his council until the coming of Sauron. Now he was dismissed,
for Sauron hated him above all others in Nъmenor. But he was so noble, and had
been so mighty a captain of the sea, that he was still held in honour by many
of the people, and neither the King nor Sauron dared to lay hands on him as
yet. Therefore Amandil withdrew to Romenna, and
all that he trusted still to be faithful he summoned to come thither in secret;
for he feared that evil would now grow apace, and all the Elf-friends were in
peril. And so it soon came to pass. For the Meneltarma was utterly deserted in
those days; and though not even Sauron dared to defile the high place, yet the
King would let no man, upon pain of death, ascend to it, not even those of the
Faithful who kept Ilъvatar in their hearts. And Sauron urged the King to cut
down the White Tree, Nimloth the Fair, that grew in his courts, for it was a
memorial of the Eldar and of the light of Valinor. At the first the King would not assent to
this, since be believed that the fortunes of his house were bound up with the
Tree, as was forespoken by Tar-Palantir. Thus in his folly he who now hated the
Eldar and the Valar vainly clung to the shadow of the old allegiance of
Nъmenor. But when Amandil heard rumour of the evil purpose of Sauron he was
grieved to the heart, knowing that in the end Sauron would surely have his
will. Then he spoke to Elendil and the sons of Elendil, recalling the tale of
the Trees of Valinor; and Isildur said no word, but went out by night and did a
deed for which he was afterwards renowned. For he passed alone in disguise to
Armenelos and to the courts of the King, which were now forbidden to the
Faithful; and he came to the place of the Tree, which was forbidden to all by
the orders of Sauron, and the Tree was watched day and night by guards in his
service. At that time Nimloth was dark and bore no bloom, for it was late in
the autumn, and its winter was nigh; and Isildur passed through the guards and
took from the Tree a fruit that hung upon it, and turned to go. But the guard
was aroused, and he was assailed, and fought his way out, receiving many
wounds; and he escaped, and because he was disguised it was not discovered who
had laid hands on the Tree. But Isildur came at last hardly back to Rуmenna and
delivered the fruit to the hands of Amandil, ere his strength failed him. Then
the fruit was planted in secret, and it was blessed by Amandil; and a shoot
arose from it and sprouted in the spring. But when its first leaf opened then
Isildur, who had lain long and come near to death, arose and was troubled no
more by his wounds. None too soon was this done; for after the
assault the King yielded to Sauron and felled the White Tree, and turned then
wholly away from the allegiance of his fathers. But Sauron caused to be built
upon the hill in the midst of the city of the Nъmenуreans, Armenelos the
Golden, a mighty temple; and it was in the form of a circle at the base, and
there the walls were fifty feet in thickness, and the width of the base was
five hundred feet across the centre, and the walls rose from the ground five
hundred feet, and they were crowned with a mighty dome. And that dome was
roofed all with silver, and rose glittering in the sun, so that the light of it
could be seen afar off; but soon the light was darkened, and the silver became
black. For there was an altar of fire in the midst of the temple, and in the
topmost of the dome there was a louver, whence there issued a great smoke. And
the first fire upon the altar Sauron kindled with the hewn wood of Nimloth, and
it crackled and was consumed; but men marvelled at the reek that went up from
it, so that the land lay under a cloud for seven days, until slowly it passed
into the west. Thereafter the fire and smoke went up
without ceasing; for the power of Sauron daily increased, and in that temple,
with spilling of blood and torment and great wickedness, men made sacrifice to
Melkor that he should release them from Death. And most often from among the
Faithful they chose their victims; yet never openly on the charge that they
would not worship Melkor, the Giver of Freedom, rather was cause sought against
them that they hated the King and were his rebels, or that they plotted against
their kin, devising lies and poisons. These charges were for the most part
false; yet those were bitter days, and hate brings forth hate. But for all this Death did not depart from
the land, rather it came sooner and more often, and in many dreadful guises.
For whereas aforetime men had grown slowly old, and had laid them down in the
end to sleep, when they were weary at last of the world, now madness and
sickness assailed them; and yet they were afraid to die and go out into the
dark, the realm of the lord that they had taken; and they cursed themselves in
their agony. And men took weapons in those days and slew one another for little
cause; for they were become quick to anger, and Sauron, or those whom he had
bound to himself, went about the land setting man against man, so that the
people murmured against the King and the lords, or against any that had aught
that they had not; and the men of power took cruel revenge. Nonetheless for long it seemed to the
Nъmenуreans that they prospered, and if they were not increased in happiness,
yet they grew more strong, and their rich men ever richer. For with the aid and
counsel of Sauron they multiplied then: possessions, and they devised engines,
and they built ever greater ships. And they sailed now with power and armoury
to Middle-earth, and they came no longer as bringers of gifts, nor even as
rulers, but as fierce men of war. And they hunted the men of Middle-earth and
took their goods and enslaved them, and many they slew cruelly upon their
altars. For they built in their fortresses temples and great tombs in those
days; and men feared them, and the memory of the kindly kings of the ancient
days faded from the world and was darkened by many a tale of dread. Thus Ar-Pharazфn, King of the Land of the
Star, grew to the mightiest tyrant that had yet been in the world since the
reign of Morgoth, though in truth Sauron ruled all from behind the throne. But
the years passed, and the King felt the shadow of death approach, as his days
lengthened; and he was filled with fear and wrath. Now came the hour that
Sauron had prepared and long had awaited. And Sauron spoke to the King, saying
that his strength was now so great that he might think to have his will in all
things, and be subject to no command or ban. And he said: 'The Valar have possessed
themselves of the land where there is no death; and they lie to you concerning
it, hiding it as best they may, because of their avarice, and their fear lest
the Kings of Men should wrest from them the deathless realm and rule the world
in their stead. And though, doubtless, the gift of life unending is not for
all, but only for such as are worthy, being men of might and pride and great
lineage, yet against all Justice is it done that this gift, which is his due,
should be withheld from the King of Bangs, Ar-Pharazфn, mightiest of the sons
of Earth, to whom Manwл alone can be compared, if even he. But great kings do
not brook denials, and take what is their due.' Then Ar-Pharazфn, being besotted, and
walking under the shadow of death, for his span was drawing towards its end,
hearkened to Sauron; and he began to ponder in his heart how he might make war
upon the Valar. He was long preparing this design, and he spoke not openly of
it, yet it could not be hidden from all. And Amandil, becoming aware of the
purposes of the King, was dismayed and filled with a great dread, for he knew
that Men could not vanquish the Valar in war, and that ruin must come upon the
world, if this war were not stayed. Therefore he called his son, Elendil, and
he said to him: 'The days are dark, and there is no hope for
Men, for the Faithful are few. Therefore I am minded to try that counsel which
our forefather Eдrendil took of old, to sail into the West, be there ban or no,
and to speak to the Valar, even to Manwл himself, if may be, and beseech his
aid ere all is lost.' 'Would you then betray the King?' said
Elendil. 'For you know well the charge that they make against us, that we are
traitors and spies, and that until this day it has been false.' 'If I thought that Manwл needed such a
messenger,' said Amandil, I would betray the King. For there is but one loyalty
from which no man can be absolved in heart for any cause. But it is for mercy
upon Men and their deliverance from Sauron the Deceiver that I would plead,
since some at least have remained faithful. And as for the Ban, I will suffer
in myself the penalty, lest all my people should become guilty.' 'But what think you, my father, is like to
befall those of your house whom you leave behind, when your deed becomes
known?' 'It must not become known,' said Amandil. 'I
will prepare my going in secret, and I will set sail into the east, whither
daily the ships depart from our havens; and thereafter, as wind and chance may
allow, I will go about, through south or north, back into the west, and seek
what I may find. But for you and your folk, my son, I counsel that you should
prepare yourselves other ships, and put aboard all such things as your hearts
cannot bear to part with; and when the ships are ready, you should lie in the
haven of Romenna, and give out among men that you purpose, when you see your
time, to follow me into the east. Amandil is no longer so dear to our kinsman
upon the throne that he will grieve over much, if we seek to depart, for a
season or for good. But let it not be seen that you intend to take many men, or
he will be troubled, because of the war that he now plots, for which he will
need all the force that he may gather. Seek out the Faithful that are known
still to be true, and let them join you in secret, if they are willing to go
with you, and share in your design.' 'And what shall that design be?' said
Elendil. 'To meddle not in the war, and to watch,'
answered Amandil. 'Until I return I can say no more. But it is most like that
you shall fly from the Land of the Star with no star to guide you; for that
land is defiled. Then you shall lose all that you have loved, foretasting death
in life, seeking a land of exile elsewhere. But east or west the Valar alone
can say.' Then Amandil said farewell to all his
household, as one that is about to die. 'For,' said he, 'it may well prove that
you will see me never again; and that I shall show you no such sign as Eдrendil
showed long ago. But hold you ever in readiness, for the end of the world that
we have known is now at hand.' It is said that Amandil set sail in a small
ship at night, and steered first eastward, and then went about and passed into
the west. And he took with him three servants, dear to his heart, and never
again were they heard of by word or sign in this world, nor is there any tale
or guess of their fate. Men could not a second time be saved by any such
embassy, and for the treason of Nъmenor there was no easy absolving. But Elendil did all that his father had
bidden, and his ships lay off the east coast of the land; and the Faithful put aboard
their wives and their children, and their heirlooms, and great store of goods.
Many things there were of beauty and power, such as the Nъmenуreans had
contrived in the days of their wisdom, vessels and jewels, and scrolls of lore
written in scarlet and black. And Seven Stones they had, the gift of the Eldar;
but in the ship of Isildur was guarded the young tree, the scion of Nimloth the
Fair. Thus Elendil held himself in readiness, and did not meddle in the evil
deeds of those days; and ever he looked for a sign that did not come. Then he
journeyed in secret to the western shores and gazed out over the sea, for
sorrow and yearning were upon him, and he greatly loved his father. But naught
could he descry save the fleets of Ar-Pharazфn gathering in the havens of the
west. Now aforetime in the isle of Nъmenor the
weather was ever apt to the needs and liking of Men: rain in due season and
ever in measure; and sunshine, now warmer, now cooler, and winds from the sea.
And when the wind was in the west, it seemed to many that it was filled with a
fragrance, fleeting but sweet, heart-stirring, as of flowers that bloom for
ever in undying meads and have no names on mortal shores. But all this was now
changed; for the sky itself was darkened, and there were storms of rain and
hail in those days, and violent winds; and ever and anon a great ship of the
Nъmenуreans would founder and return not to haven, though such a grief had not
till then befallen them since the rising of the Star. And out of the west there
would come at times a great cloud in the evening, shaped as it were an eagle,
with pinions spread to the north and the south; and slowly it would loom up,
blotting out the sunset, and then uttermost night would fall upon Nъmenor. And
some of the eagles bore lightning beneath their wings, and thunder echoed
between sea and cloud. Then men grew afraid. 'Behold the Eagles of
the Lords of the West!' they cried. 'The Eagles of Manwл are come upon
Nъmenor!' And they fell upon their faces. Then some few would repent for a season, but
others hardened their hearts, and they shook their fists at heaven, saying:
'The Lords of the West have plotted against us. They strike first. The next
blow shall be ours!' These words the King himself spoke, but they were devised
by Sauron. Now the lightnings increased and slew men
upon the hills, and in the fields, and in the streets of the city; and a fiery
bolt smote the dome of the Temple and shore it asunder, and it was wreathed in
flame. But the Temple itself was unshaken, and Sauron stood there upon the
pinnacle and defied the lightning and was unharmed; and in that hour men called
him a god and did all that he would. When therefore the last portent came they
heeded it little. For the land shook under them, and a groaning as of thunder
underground was mingled with the roaring of the sea, and smoke issued from the
peak of the Meneltarma. But all the more did Ar-Pharazфn press on with his
armament. In that time the fleets of the Nъmenуreans
darkened the sea upon the west of the land, and they were like an archipelago
of a thousand isles; their masts were as a forest upon the mountains, and their
sails like a brooding cloud; and their banners were golden and black. And all
things waited upon the word of Ar-Pharazфn; and Sauron withdrew into the inmost
circle of the Temple, and men brought him victims to be burned. Then the Eagles of the Lords of the West
came up out of the dayfall, and they were arrayed as for battle, advancing in a
line the end of which diminished beyond sight; and as they came their wings
spread ever wider, grasping the sky. But the West burned red behind them, and
they glowed beneath, as though they were lit with a flame of great anger, so
that all Nъmenor was illumined as with a smouldering fire; and men looked upon
the faces of their fellows, and it seemed to them that they were red with
wrath. Then Ar-Pharazфn hardened his heart, and he
went aboard his mighty ship, Alcarondas, Castle of the Sea. Many-oared it was
and many-masted, golden and sable; and upon it the throne of Ar-Pharazфn was
set. Then he did on his panoply and his crown, and let raise his standard, and
he gave the signal for the raising of the anchors; and in that hour the
trumpets of Nъmenor outrang the thunder. Thus the fleets of the Nъmenуreans moved
against the menace of the West; and there was little wind, but they had many
oars and many strong slaves to row beneath the lash. The sun went down, and
there came a great silence. Darkness fell upon the land, and the sea was still,
while the world waited for what should betide. Slowly the fleets passed out of
the sight of the watchers in the havens, and their lights faded, and night took
them; and in the morning they were gone. For a wind arose in the east and it
wafted them away; and they broke the Ban of the Valar, and sailed into
forbidden seas, going up with war against the Deathless, to wrest from them
everlasting life within the Circles of the World. But the fleets of Ar-Pharazфn came up out of
the deeps of the sea and encompassed Avallуnл and all the isle of Eressлa, and
the Eldar mourned, for the light of the setting sun was cut off by the cloud of
the Nъmenуreans. And at last Ar-Pharazфn came even to Aman, the Blessed Realm,
and the coasts of Valinor; and still all was silent, and doom hung by a thread.
For Ar-Pharazфn wavered at the end, and almost he turned back. His heart
misgave him when he looked upon the soundless shores and saw Taniquetil
shining, whiter than snow, colder than death, silent, immutable, terrible as
the shadow of the light of Ilъvatar. But pride was now his master, and at last
he left his ship and strode upon the shore, claiming the land for his own, if
none should do battle for it. And a host of the Nъmenуreans encamped in might
about Tъna, whence all the Eldar had fled. Then Manwл upon the Mountain called upon
Ilъvatar, and for that time the Valar laid down their government of Arda. But
Ilъvatar showed forth his power, and he changed the fashion of the world; and a
great chasm opened in the sea between Nъmenor and the Deathless Lands, and the
waters flowed down into it, and the noise and smoke of the cataracts went up to
heaven, and the world was shaken. And all the fleets of the Nъmenуreans were
drawn down into the abyss, and they were drowned and swallowed up for ever. But
Ar-Pharazфn the King and the mortal warriors that had set foot upon the land of
Aman were buried under falling hills: there it is said that they lie imprisoned
in the Caves of the Forgotten, until the Last Battle and the Day of Doom. But the land of Aman and Eressлa of the
Eldar were taken away and removed beyond the reach of Men for ever. And Andor,
the Land of Gift, Nъmenor of the Kings, Elenna of the Star of Eдrendil, was
utterly destroyed. For it was nigh to the east of the great rift, and its
foundations were overturned, and it fell and went down into darkness, and is no
more. And there is not now upon Earth any place abiding where the memory of a
time without evil is preserved. For Ilъvatar cast back the Great Seas west of
Middle-earth, and the Empty Lands east of it, and new lands and new seas were
made; and the world was diminished, for Valinor and Eressлa were taken from it
into the realm of hidden things. In an hour unlocked for by Men this doom
befell, on the nine and thirtieth day since the passing of the fleets. Then
suddenly fire burst from the Meneltarma, and there came a mighty wind and a
tumult of the earth, and the sky reeled, and the hills slid, and Nъmenor went
down into the sea, with all its children and its wives and its maidens and its
ladies proud; and all its gardens and its balls and its towers, its tombs and
its riches, and its jewels and its webs and its things painted and carven, and
its lore: they vanished for ever. And last of all the mounting wave, green and
cold and plumed with foam, climbing over the land, took to its bosom Tar-Mнriel
the Queen, fairer than silver or ivory or pearls. Too late she strove to ascend
the steep ways of the Meneltarma to the holy place; for the waters overtook
her, and her cry was lost in the roaring of the wind. But whether or no it were that Amandil came
indeed to Valinor and Manwл hearkened to his prayer, by grace of the Valar
Elendil and his sons and their people were spared from the ruin of that day.
For Elendil had remained in Romenna, refusing the summons of the King when he
set forth to war; and avoiding the soldiers of Sauron that came to seize him
and drag him to the fires of the Temple, he went aboard his ship and stood off
from the shore, waiting on the time. There he was protected by the land from
the great draught of the sea that drew all towards the abyss, and afterwards he
was sheltered from the first fury of the storm. But when the devouring wave
rolled over the land and Nъmenor toppled to its fall, then he would have been
overwhelmed and would have deemed it the lesser grief to perish, for no wrench
of death could be more bitter than the loss and agony of that day; but the
great wind took him, wilder than any wind that Men had known, roaring from the
west, and it swept his ships far away; and it rent their sails and snapped
their masts, hunting the unhappy men like straws upon the water. Nine ships there were: four for Elendil, and
for Isildur three, and for Anбrion two; and they fled before the black gale out
of the twilight of doom into the darkness of the world. And the deeps rose
beneath them in towering anger, and waves like unto mountains moving with great
caps of writhen snow bore them up amid the wreckage of the clouds, and after
many days cast them away upon the shores of Middle-earth. And all the coasts
and seaward regions of the western world suffered great change and ruin in that
time; for the seas invaded the lands, and shores foundered, and ancient isles
were drowned, and new isles were uplifted; and hills crumbled and rivers were
turned into strange courses. Elendil and his sons after founded kingdoms
in Middle-earth; and though their lore and craft was but an echo of that which
had been ere Sauron came to Nъmenor, yet very great it seemed to the wild men
of the world. And much is said in other lore of the deeds of the heirs of
Elendil in the age that came after, and of their strife with Sauron that not
yet was ended. For Sauron himself was filled with great
fear at the wrath of the Valar, and the doom that Eru laid upon sea and land.
It was greater far than aught he had looked for, hoping only for the death of
the Nъmenуreans and the defeat of their proud king. And Sauron, sitting in his
black seat in the midst of the Temple, had laughed when he heard the trumpets
of Ar-Pharazфn sounding for battle; and again he had laughed when he heard the
thunder of the storm; and a third time, even as he laughed at his own thought,
thinking what he would do now in the world, being rid of the Edain for ever, he
was taken in the midst of his mirth, and his seat and his temple fell into the
abyss. But Sauron was not of mortal flesh, and though he was robbed now of that
shape in which he had wrought so great an evil, so that he could never again
appear fair to the eyes of Men, yet his spirit arose out of the deep and passed
as a shadow and a black wind over the sea, and came back to Middle-earth and to
Mordor that was his home. There he took up again his great Ring in Barad-dыr,
and dwelt there, dark and silent, until he wrought himself a new guise, an
image of malice and hatred made visible; and the Eye of Sauron the Terrible few
could endure. But these things come not into the tale of
the Drowning of Nъmenor, of which now all is told. And even the name of that
land perished, and Men spoke thereafter not of Elenna, nor of Andor the Gift
that was taken away, nor of Nъmenуrл on the confines of the world; but the
exiles on the shores of the sea, if they turned towards the West in the desire
of their hearts, spoke of Mar-nu-Falmar that was whelmed in the waves,
Akallabкth the Downfallen, Atalantл in the Eldarin tongue. * * * Among the Exiles many believed that the
summit of the Meneltarma, the Pillar of Heaven, was not drowned for ever, but
rose again above the waves, a lonely island lost in the great waters; for it
had been a hallowed place, and even in the days of Sauron none had defiled it
And some there were of the seed of Eдrendil that afterwards sought for it,
because it was said among loremasters that the far-sighted men of old could see
from the Meneltarma a glimmer of the Deathless Land. For even after the ruin
the hearts of the Dъnedain were still set westwards; and though they knew
indeed that the world was changed, they said: 'Avallуnл is vanished from the
Earth and the Land of Aman is taken away, and in the world of this present
darkness they cannot be found. Yet once they were, and therefore they still
are, in true being and in the whole shape of the world as at first it was
devised.' For the Dъnedain held that even mortal Men,
if so blessed, might look upon other times than those of their bodies' life;
and they longed ever to escape from the shadows of their exile and to see in
some fashion fee light that dies not; for the sorrow of the thought of death
had pursued them over the deeps of the sea. Thus it was that great mariners
among them would still search the empty seas, hoping to come upon the Isle of
Meneltarma, and there to see a vision of things that were. But they found it
not. And those that sailed far came only to the new lands, and found them like
to the old lands, and subject to death. And those that sailed furthest set but
a girdle about the Earth and returned weary at last to the place of their
beginning; and they said: 'All roads are now bent.' Thus in after days, what by the voyages of
ships, what by lore and star-craft, the kings of Men knew that the world was
indeed made round, and yet the Eldar were permitted still to depart and to come
to the Ancient West and to Avallуnл, if they would. Therefore the loremasters
of Men said that a Straight Road must still be, for those that were permitted
to find it. And they taught that, while the new world fell away, the old road
and the path of the memory of the West still went on, as it were a mighty
bridge invisible that passed through the air of breath and of flight (which
were bent now as the world was bent), and traversed Ilmen which flesh unaided
cannot endure, until it came to Tol Eressлa, the Lonely Isle, and maybe even
beyond, to Valinor, where the Valar still dwell and watch the unfolding of the
story of the world. And tales and rumours arose along the shores of the sea
concerning mariners and men forlorn upon the water who, by some fate or grace
or favour of the Valar, had entered in upon the Straight Way and seen the face
of the world sink below them, and so had come to the lamplit quays of Avallуnл,
or verily to the last beaches on the margin of Aman, and there had looked upon
the White Mountain, dreadful and beautiful, before they died. OF THE RINGS OF POWER AND THE THIRD AGE in which these
tales come to their end Of old there was
Sauron the Maia, whom the Sindar in Beleriand named Gorthaur. In the beginning
of Arda Melkor seduced him to his allegiance, and he became the greatest and
most trusted of the servants of the Enemy, and the most perilous, for he could
assume many forms, and for long if he willed he could still appear noble and
beautiful, so as to deceive all but the most wary. When Thangorodrim was broken and Morgoth
overthrown, Sauron put on his fair hue again and did obeisance to Eцnwл the
herald of Manwл, and abjured all his evil deeds. And some hold that this was
not at first falsely done, but that Sauron in truth repented, if only out of
fear, being dismayed by the fall of Morgoth and the great wrath of the Lords of
the West. But it was not within the power of Eцnwл to pardon those of his own
order, and he commanded Sauron to return to Aman and there receive the
judgement of Manwл. Then Sauron was ashamed, and he was unwilling to return in
humiliation and to receive from the Valar a sentence, it might be, of long
servitude in proof of his good faith; for under Morgoth his power had been
great. Therefore when Eцnwл departed he hid himself in Middle-earth; and he
fell back into evil, for the bonds that Morgoth bad laid upon him were very
strong. * * * In the Great Battle and the tumults of the
fall of Thangorodrim there were mighty convulsions in the earth, and Beleriand
was broken and laid waste; and northward and westward many lands sank beneath
the waters of the Great Sea. In the east, in Ossiriand, the walls of Ered Luin
were broken, and a great gap was made in them towards the south, and a gulf of
the sea flowed in. Into that gulf the River Lhыn fell by a new course, and it
was called therefore the Gulf of Lhыn. That country had of old been named
Lindon by the Noldor, and this name it bore thereafter; and many of the Eldar
still dwelt there, lingering, unwilling yet to forsake Beleriand where they had
fought and laboured long. Gil-galad son of Fingon was their king, and with him
was Elrond Half-elven, son of Eдrendil the Mariner and brother of Elros first
king of Nъmenor. Upon the shores of the Gulf of Lhыn the
Elves built their havens, and named them Mithlond; and there they held many
ships, for the harbourage was good. From the Grey Havens the Eldar ever and
anon set sail, fleeing from the darkness of the days of Earth; for by the mercy
of the Valar the Firstborn could still follow the Straight Road and return, if
they would, to their kindred in Eressлa and Valinor beyond the encircling seas. Others of the Eldar there were who crossed
the mountains of Ered Luin in that age and passed into the inner lands. Many of
these were Teleri, survivors of Doriath and Ossiriand; and they established
realms among the Silvan Elves in woods and mountains far from the sea, for
which nonetheless they ever yearned in their hearts. Only in Eregion, which Men
called Hollin, did Elves of Noldorin race establish a lasting realm beyond the
Ered Luin. Eregion was nigh to the great mansions of the Dwarves that were
named Khazad-dыm, but by the Elves Hadhodrond, and afterwards Moria. From
Ost-in-Edhil, the city of the Elves, the highroad ran to the west gate of
Khazad-dыm, for a friendship arose between Dwarves and Elves, such as has never
elsewhere been, to the enrichment of both those peoples. In Eregion the
craftsmen of the Gwaith-i-Mнrdain, the People of the Jewel-smiths, surpassed in
cunning all that have ever wrought, save only Fлanor himself; and indeed
greatest in skill among them was Celebrimbor, son of Curufin, who was estranged
from his father and remained in Nargothrond when Celegorm and Curufin were
driven forth, as is told in the Quenta Silmarillion. Elsewhere in Middle-earth there was peace
for many years; yet the lands were for the most part savage and desolate, save
only where the people of Beleriand came. Many Elves dwelt there indeed, as they
had dwelt through the countless years, wandering free in the wide lands far
from the Sea; but they were Avari, to whom the deeds of Beleriand were but a
rumour and Valinor only a distant name. And in the south and in the further
east Men multiplied; and most of them turned to evil, for Sauron was at work. Seeing the desolation of the world, Sauron
said in his heart that the Valar, having overthrown Morgoth, had again
forgotten Middle-earth; and his pride grew apace. He looked with hatred on the
Eldar, and he feared the Men of Nъmenor who came back at whiles in their ships
to the shores of Middle-earth; but for long he dissembled his mind and concealed
the dark designs that he shaped in his heart. Men he found the easiest to sway of all the
peoples of the Earth; but long he sought to persuade the Elves to his service,
for he knew that the Firstborn had the greater power; and he went far and wide among
them, and his hue was still that of one both fair and wise. Only to Lindon he
did not come, for Gil-galad and Elrond doubted him and his fair-seeming, and
though they knew not who in truth he was they would not admit him to that land.
But elsewhere the Elves received him gladly, and few among them hearkened to
the messengers from Lindon bidding them beware; for Sauron took to himself the
name of Annatar, the Lord of Gifts, and they had at first much profit from his
friendship. And he said to them: "Alas, for the weakness of the great! For
a mighty king is Gil-galad, and wise in all lore is Master Elrond, and yet they
will not aid me in my labours. Can it be that they do not desire to see other
lands become as blissful as their own? But wherefore should Middle-earth remain
for ever desolate and dark, whereas the Elves could make it as fair as Eressлa,
nay even as Valinor? And since you have not returned thither, as you might, I
perceive that you love this Middle-earth, as do I. Is it not then our task to
labour together for its enrichment, and for the raising of all the
Elven-kindreds that wander here untaught to the height of that power and
knowledge which those have who are beyond the Sea?' It was in Eregion that the counsels of
Sauron were most gladly received, for in that land the Noldor desired ever to
increase the skill and subtlety of their works. Moreover they were not at peace
in their hearts, since they had refused to return into the West, and they
desired both to stay in Middle-earth, which indeed they loved, and yet to enjoy
the bliss of those that had departed. Therefore they hearkened to Sauron, and
they learned of him many things, for his knowledge was great. In those days the
smiths of Ost-in-Edhil surpassed all that they had contrived before; and they
took thought, and they made Rings of Power. But Sauron guided their labours,
and he was aware of all that they did; for his desire was to set a bond upon
the Elves and to bring them under his vigilance. Now the Elves made many rings; but secretly
Sauron made One Ring to rule all the others, and their power was bound up with
it, to be subject wholly to it and to last only so long as it too should last.
And much of the strength and will of Sauron passed into that One Ring; for the
power of the Elven-rings was very great, and that which should govern them must
be a thing of surpassing potency; and Sauron forged it in the Mountain of Fire
in the Land of Shadow. And while he wore the One Ring he could perceive all the
things that were done by means of the lesser rings, and he could see and govern
the very thoughts of those that wore them. But the Elves were not so lightly to be
caught. As soon as Sauron set the One Ring upon his finger they were aware of
him; and they knew him, and perceived that he would be master of them, and of
an that they wrought. Then in anger and fear they took off their rings. But he,
finding that he was betrayed and that the Elves were not deceived, was filled
with wrath; and he came against them with open war, demanding that all the
rings should be delivered to him, since the Elven-smiths could not have
attained to their making without his lore and counsel. But the Elves fled from
him; and three of their rings they saved, and bore them away, and hid them. Now these were the Three that had last been
made, and they possessed the greatest powers. Narya, Nenya, and Vilya, they
were named, the Rings of Fire, and of Water, and of Air, set with ruby and
adamant and sapphire; and of all the Elven-rings Sauron most desired to possess
them, for those who had them in their keeping could ward off the decays of time
and postpone the weariness of the world. But Sauron could not discover them,
for they were given into the hands of the Wise, who concealed them and never
again used them openly while Sauron kept the Ruling Ring. Therefore the Three
remained unsullied, for they were forged by Celebrimbor alone, and the hand of
Sauron had never touched them; yet they also were subject to the One. From that time war never ceased between
Sauron and the Elves; and Eregion was laid waste, and Celebrimbor slain, and
the doors of Moria were shut. In that time the stronghold and refuge of
Imladris, that Men called Rivendell, was founded by Elrond Half-elven; and long
it endured. But Sauron gathered into his hands all the remaining Rings of
Power; and he dealt them out to the other peoples of Middle-earth, hoping thus
to bring under his sway all those that desired secret power beyond the measure
of their kind. Seven Rings he gave to the Dwarves; but to Men he gave nine, for
Men proved in this matter as in others the readiest to his will. And all those
rings that he governed he perverted, the more easily since he had a part in
their making, and they were accursed, and they betrayed in the end all those
that used them. The Dwarves indeed proved tough and hard to tame; they ill
endure the domination of others, and the thoughts of their hearts are hard to
fathom, nor can they be turned to shadows. They used their rings only for the
getting of wealth; but wrath and an over-mastering greed of gold were kindled
in their hearts, of which evil enough after came to the profit of Sauron. It is
said that the foundation of each of the Seven Hoards of the Dwarf-kings of old
was a golden ring; but all those hoards long ago were plundered and the Dragons
devoured them, and of the Seven Rings some were consumed in fire and some
Sauron recovered. Men proved easier to ensnare. Those who used
the Nine Rings became mighty in their day, kings, sorcerers, and warriors of
old. They obtained glory and great wealth, yet it turned to their undoing. They
had, as it seemed, unending life, yet life became unendurable to them. They
could walk, if they would, unseen by all eyes in this world beneath the sun,
and they could see things in worlds invisible to mortal men; but too often they
beheld only the phantoms and delusions of Sauron. And one by one, sooner or
later, according to their native strength and to the good or evil of their
wills in the beginning, they fell under the thraldom of the ring that they bore
and under the domination of the One, which was Sauron's. And they became for
ever invisible save to him that wore the Ruling Ring, and they entered into the
realm of shadows. The Nazgыl were they, the Ringwraiths, the Enemy's most
terrible servants; darkness went with them, and they cried with the voices of
death. Now Sauron's lust and pride increased, until
he knew no bounds, and he determined to make himself master of all things in
Middle-earth, and to destroy the Elves, and to compass, if he might, the
downfall of Nъmenor. He brooked no freedom nor any rivalry, and he named
himself Lord of the Earth. A mask he still could wear so that if he wished he
might deceive the eyes of Men, seeming to them wise and fair. But he ruled
rather by force and fear, if they might avail; and those who perceived his
shadow spreading over the world called him the Dark Lord and named him the
Enemy; and he gathered again under his government all the evil things of the
days of Morgoth that remained on earth or beneath it, and the Orcs were at his
command and multiplied like flies. Thus the Black Years began, which the Elves
call the Days of Flight. In that time many of the Elves of Middle-earth fled to
Lindon and thence over the seas never to return; and many were destroyed by
Sauron and his servants. But in Lindon Gil-galad still maintained his power,
and Sauron dared not as yet to pass the Mountains of Ered Luin nor to assail
the Havens; and Gil-galad was aided by the Nъmenуreans. Elsewhere Sauron
reigned, and those who would be free took refuge in the fastnesses of wood and
mountain, and ever fear pursued them. In the east and south well nigh all Men
were under his dominion, and they grew strong in those days and built many
towns and walls of stone, and they were numerous and fierce in war and aimed
with iron. To them Sauron was both king and god; and they feared him
exceedingly, for he surrounded his abode with fire. Yet there came at length a stay in the
onslaught of Sauron upon the westlands. For, as is told in tile Akallabкth, he was challenged by the
might of Nъmenor. So great was the power and splendour of the Nъmenуreans in
the noontide of their realm that the servants of Sauron would not withstand
them, and hoping to accomplish by cunning what he could not achieve by force,
he left Middle-earth for a while and went to Nъmenor as a hostage of Tar-Calion
the King. And there he abode, until at the last by his craft he had corrupted
the hearts of most of that people, and set them at war with the Valar, and so compassed
their ruin, as he had long desired. But that ruin was more terrible than Sauron
had foreseen, for he had forgotten the might of the Lords of the West in their
anger. The world was broken, and the land was swallowed up, and the seas rose
over it, and Sauron himself went down into the abyss. But his spirit arose and
fled back on a dark wind to Middle-earth, seeking a home. There he found that
the power of Gil-galad had grown great in the years of his absence, and it was
spread now over wide regions of the north and west, and had passed beyond the
Misty Mountains and the Great River even to the borders of Greenwood the Great,
and was drawing nigh to the strong places where once he had dwelt secure. Then
Sauron withdrew to his fortress in the Black Land and meditated war. In that time those of the Nъmenуreans who
were saved from destruction fled eastward, as is told in the Akallabкth. The chief of these were
Elendil the Tall and his sons, Isildur and Anбrion. Kinsmen of the King they
were, descendants of Elros, but they had been unwilling to listen to Sauron,
and had refused to make war on the Lords of the West. Manning their ships with
all who remained faithful they forsook the land of Nъmenor ere ruin came upon
it. They were mighty men and their ships were strong and tall, but the tempests
overtook them, and they were borne aloft on hills of water even to the clouds,
and they descended upon Middle-earth like birds of the storm. Elendil was cast up by the waves in the land
of Lindon, and he was befriended by Gil-galad. Thence he passed up the River
Lhыn, and beyond Ered Luin he established his realm, and his people dwelt in
many places in Eriador about the courses of the Lhыn and the Baranduin; but his
chief city was at Annъminas beside the water of Lake Nenuial. At Fornost upon
the North Downs also the Nъmenуreans dwelt, and in Cardolan, and in the hills
of Rhudaur; and towers they raised upon Emyn Beraid and upon Amon Sыl; and
there remain many barrows and ruined works in those places, but the towers of Emyn
Beraid still look towards the sea. Isildur and Anбrion were borne away
southwards, and at the last they brought their ships up the Great River Anduin,
that flows out of Rhovanion into the western sea in the Bay of Belfalas; and
they established a realm in those lands that were after called Gondor, whereas
the Northern Kingdom was named Arnor. Long before in the days of their power
the mariners of Nъmenor had established a haven and strong places about the
mouths of Anduin, in despite of Sauron in the Black Land that lay nigh upon the
east. In the later days to this haven came only the Faithful of Nъmenor, and
many therefore of the folk of the coastlands in that region were in whole or in
part akin to the Elf-friends and the people of Elendil, and they welcomed his
sons. The chief city of this southern realm was Osgiliath, through the midst of
which the Great River flowed; and the Nъmenуreans built there a great bridge,
upon which there were towers and houses of stone wonderful to behold, and tall
ships came up out of the sea to the quays of the city. Other strong places they
built also upon either hand: Minas Ithil, the Tower of the Rising Moon,
eastward upon a shoulder of the Mountains of Shadow as a threat to Mordor; and
to the westward Minas Anor, the Tower of the Setting Sun, at the feet of Mount
Mindolluin, as a shield against the wild men of the dales. In Minas Ithil was
the house of Isildur, and in Minas Anor the house of Anбrion, but they shared
the realm between them and their thrones were set side by side in the Great
Hall of Osgiliath. These were the chief dwellings of the Nъmenуreans in Gondor,
but other works marvellous and strong they built in the land in the days of
their power, at the Argonath, and at Aglarond, and at Erech; and in the circle
of Angrenost, which Men called Isengard, they made the Pinnacle of Orthanc of
unbreakable stone. Many treasures and great heirlooms of virtue
and wonder the Exiles had brought from Nъmenor; and of these the most renowned
were the Seven Stones and the White Tree. The White Tree was grown from the
fruit of Nimloth the Fair that stood in the courts of the Bang at Armenelos in
Nъmenor, ere Sauron burned it; and Nimloth was in its turn descended from the
Tree of Tirion, that was an image of the Eldest of Trees, White Telperion which
Yavanna caused to grow in the land of the Valar. The Tree, memorial of the
Eldar and of the light of Valinor, was planted in Minas Ithil before the house
of Isildur, since he it was that had saved the fruit from destruction; but the Stones
were divided. Three Elendil took, and his sons each two.
Those of Elendil were set in towers upon Emyn Beraid, and upon Amon Sыl, and in
the city of Annъminas. But those of his sons were at Minas Ithil and Minas
Anor, and at Orthanc and in Osgiliath. Now these Stones had this virtue that
those who looked therein might perceive in them things far off, whether in
place or in time. For the most part they revealed only things near to another
kindred Stone, for the Stones each called to each; but those who possessed
great strength of will and of mind might learn to direct their gaze whither
they would. Thus the Nъmenуreans were aware of many things that their enemies
wished to conceal, and little escaped their vigilance in the days of their
might. It is said that the towers of Emyn Beraid
were not built indeed by the Exiles of Nъmenor, but were raised by Gil-galad
for Elendil, his friend; and the Seeing Stone of Emyn Beraid was set in
Elostirion, the tallest of the towers. Thither Elendil would repair, and thence
he would gaze out over the sundering seas, when the yearning of exile was upon
him; and it is believed that thus he would at whiles see far away even the
Tower of Avallуnл upon Eressлa, where the Masterstone abode, and yet abides.
These stones were gifts of the Eldar to Amandil, father of Elendil, for the
comfort of the Faithful of Nъmenor in their dark days, when the Elves might
come no longer to that land under the shadow of Sauron. They were called the
Palantнri, those that watch from afar; but all those that were brought to
Middle-earth long ago were lost. Thus the Exiles of Nъmenor established their
realms in Arnor and in Gondor; but ere many years had passed it became manifest
that their enemy, Sauron, had also returned. He came in secret, as has been
told, to his ancient kingdom of Mordor beyond the Ephel Dъath, the Mountains of
Shadow, and that country marched with Gondor upon the east. There above the
valley of Gorgoroth was built his fortress vast and strong, Barad-dыr, the Dark
Tower; and there was a fiery mountain in that land that the Elves named
Orodruin. Indeed for that reason Sauron had set there his dwelling long before,
for he used the fire that welled there from the heart of the earth in his
sorceries and in his forging; and in the midst of the Land of Mordor he had
fashioned the Ruling Ring. There now he brooded in the dark, until he had
wrought for himself a new shape; and it was terrible, for his fair semblance
had departed for ever when he was cast into the abyss at the drowning of
Nъmenor. He took up again the great Ring and clothed himself in power; and the
malice of the Eye of Sauron few even of the great among Elves and Men could
endure. Now Sauron prepared war against the Eldar
and the Men of Westernesse, and the fires of the Mountain were wakened again.
Wherefore seeing the smoke of Orodruin from afar, and perceiving that Sauron
had returned, the Nъmenуreans named that mountain anew Amon Amarth, which is
Mount Doom. And Sauron gathered to him great strength of his servants out of
the east and the south; and among them were not a few of the high race of
Nъmenor. For in the days of the sojourn of Sauron in that land the hearts of
well nigh all its people had been turned towards darkness. Therefore many of
those who sailed east in that time and made fortresses and dwellings upon the
coasts were already bent to his will, and they served him still gladly in
Middle-earth. But because of the power of Gil-galad these renegades, lords both
mighty and evil, for the most part took up their abodes in the southlands far
away; yet two there were, Herumor and Fuinur, who rose to power among the
Haradrim, a great and cruel people that dwelt in the wide lands south of Mordor
beyond the mouths of Anduin. When therefore Sauron saw his time he came
with great force against the new realm of Gondor, and he took Minas Ithil, and
he destroyed the White Tree of Isildur that grew there. But Isildur escaped,
and taking with him a seedling of the Tree he went with his wife and his sons
by ship down the River, and they sailed from the mouths of Anduin seeking
Elendil. Meanwhile Anбrion held Osgiliath against the Enemy, and for that time
drove him back to the mountains; but Sauron gathered his strength again, and
Anбrion knew that unless help should come his kingdom would not long stand. Now Elendil and Gil-galad took counsel
together, for they perceived that Sauron would grow too strong and would
overcome all his enemies one by one, if they did not unite against him.
Therefore they made that League which is called the Last Alliance, and they
marched east into Middle-earth gathering a great host of Elves and Men; and
they halted for a while at Imladris. It is said that the host that was there
assembled was fairer and more splendid in arms than any that has since been
seen in Middle-earth, and none greater has been mustered since the host of the
Valar went against Thangorodrim. From Imladris they crossed the Misty
Mountains by many passes and marched down the River Anduin, and so came at last
upon the host of Sauron on Dagorlad, the Battle Plain, which lies before the
gate of the Black Land. All living things were divided in that day, and some of
every kind, even of beasts and birds, were found in either host, save the Elves
only. They alone were undivided and followed Gil-galad. Of the Dwarves few
fought upon either side; but the kindred of Durin of Moria fought against
Sauron. The host of Gil-galad and Elendil had the
victory, for the might of the Elves was still great in those days, and the
Nъmenуreans were strong and tall, and terrible in their wrath. Against Aeglos
the spear of Gil-galad none could stand; and the sword of Elendil filled Orcs
and Men with fear, for it shone with the light of the sun and of the moon, and
it was named Narsil. Then Gil-galad and Elendil passed into
Mordor and encompassed the stronghold of Sauron; and they laid siege to it for
seven years, and suffered grievous loss by fire and by the darts and bolts of
the Enemy, and Sauron sent many sorties against them. There in the valley of
Gorgoroth Anбrion son of Elendil was slain, and many others. But at the last
the siege was so strait that Sauron himself came forth; and he wrestled with
Gil-galad and Elendil, and they both were slain, and the sword of Elendil broke
under him as he fell. But Sauron also was thrown down, and with the hilt-shard
of Narsil Isildur cut the Ruling Ring from the hand of Sauron and took it for
his own. Then Sauron was for that time vanquished, and he forsook his body, and
his spirit fled far away and hid in waste places; and he took no visible shape
again for many long years. Thus began the Third Age of the World, after
the Eldest Days and the Black Years; and there was still hope in that time and
the memory of mirth, and for long the White Tree of the Eldar flowered in the
courts of the Kings of Men, for the seedling which he had saved Isildur planted
in the citadel of Anor in memory of his brother, ere he departed from Gondor.
The servants of Sauron were routed and dispersed, yet they were not wholly
destroyed; and though many Men turned now from evil and became subject to the
heirs of Elendil, yet many more remembered Sauron in their hearts and hated the
kingdoms of the West. The Dark Tower was levelled to the ground, yet its
foundations remained, and it was not forgotten. The Nъmenуreans indeed set a
guard upon the land of Mordor, but none dared dwell there because of the terror
of the memory of Sauron, and because of the Mountain of Fire that stood nigh to
Barad-dыr; and the valley of Gorgoroth was filled with ash. Many of the Elves
and many of the Nъmenуreans and of Men who were their allies had perished in
the Battle and the Siege; and Elendil the Tall and Gil-galad the High King were
no more. Never again was such a host assembled, nor was there any such league
of Elves and Men; for after Elendil’s day the two kindreds became estranged. The Ruling Ring passed out of the knowledge
even of the Wise in that age; yet it was not unmade. For Isildur would not
surrender it to Elrond and Cнrdan who stood by. They counselled him to cast it
into the fire of Orodruin nigh at hand, in which it had been forged, so that it
should perish, and the power of Sauron be for ever diminished, and he should
remain only as a shadow of malice in the wilderness. But Isildur refused this
counsel, saying: ‘This I will have as were-gild for my father's death, and my
brothers. Was it not I that dealt the Enemy his death-blow?' And the Ring that
he held seemed to him exceedingly fair to look on; and he would not suffer it
to be destroyed. Taking it therefore he returned at first to Minas Anor, and
there planted the White Tree in memory of his brother Anбrion. But soon he
departed, and after he had given counsel to Meneldil, his brother's son, and
had committed to him the realm of the south, he bore away the Ring, to be an
heirloom of his house, and marched north from Gondor by the way that Elendil
had come; and he forsook the South Kingdom, for he purposed to take up his
father's realm in Eriador, far from the shadow of the Black Land. But Isildur was overwhelmed by a host of
Orcs that lay in wait in the Misty Mountains; and they descended upon him at
unawares in his camp between the Greenwood and the Great River, nigh to Loeg
Ningloron, the Gladden Fields, for he was heedless and set no guard, deeming
that all his foes were overthrown. There well nigh all his people were slain,
and among them were his three elder sons, Elendur, Aratan, and Ciryon; but his
wife and his youngest son, Valandil, he had left in Imladris when he went to
the war. Isildur himself escaped by means of the Ring, for when he wore it he
was invisible to all eyes; but the Orcs hunted him by scent and slot, until he
came to the River and plunged in. There the Ring betrayed him and avenged its
maker, for it slipped from his finger as he swam, and it was lost in the water.
Then the Orcs saw him as he laboured in the stream, and they shot him with many
arrows, and that was his end. Only three of his people came ever back over the
mountains after long wandering; and of these one was Ohtar his esquire, to
whose keeping he had given the shards of the sword of Elendil. Thus Narsil came in due time to the hand of
Valandil, Isildur's heir, in Imladris; but the blade was broken and its light
was extinguished, and it was not forged anew. And Master Elrond foretold that
this would not be done until the Ruling Ring should be found again and Sauron
should return; but the hope of Elves and Men was that these things might never
come to pass. Valandil took up his abode in Annъminas, but
his folk were diminished, and of the Nъmenуreans and of the Men of Eriador
there remained now too few to people the land or to maintain all the places
that Elendil had built; in Dagorlad, and in Mordor, and upon the Gladden Fields
many had fallen. And it came to pass after the days of Eдrendur, the seventh
king that followed Valandil, that the Men of Westernesse, the Dъnedain of the
North, became divided into petty realms and lordships, and their foes devoured
them one by one. Ever they dwindled with the years, until their glory passed,
leaving only green mounds in the grass. At length naught was left of them but a
strange people wandering secretly in the wild, and other men knew not their
homes nor the purpose of their journeys, and save in Imladris, in the house of
Elrond, their ancestry was forgotten. Yet the shards of the sword were
cherished during many lives of Men by the heirs of Isildur; and their line,
from father to son, remained unbroken. In the south the realm of Gondor endured,
and for a time its splendour grew, until it recalled the wealth and majesty of
Nъmenor ere it fell High towers the people of Gondor built, and strong places,
and havens of many ships; and the Winged Crown of the Kings of Men was held in
awe by people of many lands and tongues. For many a year the White Tree grew
before the King's house in Minas Anor, the seed of that tree which Isildur
brought out of the deeps of the sea from Nъmenor; and the seed before that came
from Avallуnл, and before that from Valinor in the Day before days when the world
was young. Yet at the last, in the wearing of the swift
years of Middle-earth, Gondor waned, and the line of Meneldil son of Anбrion
failed. For the blood of the Nъmenуreans became much mingled with that of other
men, and their power and wisdom was diminished, and their life-span was
shortened, and the watch upon Mordor slumbered. And in the days of Telemnar,
the third and twentieth of the line of Meneldil, a plague came upon dark winds
out of the east, and it smote the King and his children, and many of the people
of Gondor perished. Then the forts on the borders of Mordor were deserted, and
Minas Ithil was emptied of its people; and evil entered again into the Black
Land secretly, and the ashes of Gorgoroth were stirred as by a cold wind, for
dark shapes gathered there. It is said that these were indeed the Ъlairi, whom
Sauron called the Nazgыl, the Nine Ringwraiths that had long remained hidden,
but returned now to prepare the ways of their Master, for he had begun to grow
again. And in the days of Eдrnil they made their
first stroke, and they came by night out of Mordor over the passes of the
Mountains of Shadow, and took Minas Ithil for their abode; and they made it a
place of such dread that none dared to look upon it. Thereafter it was called
Minas Morgul, the Tower of Sorcery; and Minas Morgul was ever at war with Minas
Anor in the west. Then Osgiliath, which in the waning of the people had long
been deserted, became a place of ruins and a city of ghosts. But Minas Anor
endured, and it was named anew Minas Tirith, the Tower of Guard; for there the
kings caused to be built in the citadel a white tower, very tall and fair, and
its eye was upon many lands. Proud still and strong was that city, and in it
the White Tree still flowered for a while before the house of the Kings; and
there the remnant of the Nъmenуreans still defended the passage of the River
against the terrors of Minas Morgul and against all the enemies of the West,
Orcs and monsters and evil Men; and thus the lands behind them, west of Anduin,
were protected from war and destruction. Still Minas Tirith endured after the days of
Eдrnur, son of Eдrnil, and the last King of Gondor. He it was that rode alone
to the gates of Minas Morgul to meet the challenge of the Morgul-lord; and he
met him in single combat, but he was betrayed by the Nazgыl and taken alive
into the city of torment, and no living man saw him ever again. Now Eдrnur left
no heir, but when the line of the Kings failed the Stewards of the house of
Mardil the Faithful ruled the city and its ever-shrinking realm; and the
Rohirrim, the Horsemen of the North, came and dwelt in the green land of Rohan,
which before was named Calenardhon and was a part of the kingdom of Condor; and
the Rohirrim aided the Lords of the City in their wars. And northward, beyond
the Falls of Rauros and the Gates of Argonath, there were as yet other
defences, powers more ancient of which Men knew little, against whom the things
of evil did not dare to move, until in the ripening of time their dark lord, Sauron,
should come forth again. And until that time was come, never again after the
days of Eдrnil did the Nazgыl dare to cross the River or to come forth from
their city in shape visible to Men. In all the days of the Third Age, after the
fall of Gil-galad, Master Elrond abode in Imladris, and he gathered there many
Elves, and other folk of wisdom and power from among all the kindreds of
Middle-earth, and he preserved through many lives of Men the memory of all that
had been fair; and the house of Elrond was a refuge for the weary and the
oppressed, and a treasury of good counsel and wise lore. In that house were
harboured the Heirs of Isildur, in childhood and old age, because of the
kinship of their blood with Elrond himself, and because he knew in his wisdom
that one should come of their line to whom a great part was appointed in the
last deeds of that Age. And until that time came the shards of Elendil’s sword
were given into the keeping of Elrond, when the days of the Dъnedain darkened
and they became a wandering people. In Eriador Imladris was the chief dwelling
of the High Elves; but at the Grey Havens of Lindon there abode also a remnant
of the people of Gil-galad the Elvenking. At times they would wander into the
lands of Eriador, but for the most part they dwelt near the shores of the sea,
building and tending the elven-ships wherein those of the Firstborn who grew
weary of the world set sail into the uttermost West Cнrdan the Shipwright was
lord of the Havens and mighty among the Wise. Of the Three Rings that the Elves had
preserved unsullied no open word was ever spoken among the Wise, and few even
of the Eldar knew where they were bestowed. Yet after the fall of Sauron their
power was ever at work, and where they abode there mirth also dwelt and all things
were unstained by the griefs of time. Therefore ere the Third Age was ended the
Elves perceived that the Ring of Sapphire was with Elrond, in the fair valley
of Rivendell, upon whose house the stars of heaven most brightly shone; whereas
the Ring of Adamant was in the Land of Lуrien where dwelt the Lady Galadriel. A
queen she was of the woodland Elves, the wife of Celeborn of Doriath, yet she
herself was of the Noldor and remembered the Day before days in Valinor, and
she was the mightiest and fairest of all the Elves that remained in
Middle-earth. But the Red Ring remained hidden until the end, and none save
Elrond and Galadriel and Cнrdan knew to whom it had been committed. Thus it was that in two domains the bliss
and beauty of the Elves remained still undiminished while that Age endured: in
Imladris; and in Lothlуrien, the hidden land between Celebrant and Anduin,
where the trees bore flowers of gold and no Orc or evil thing dared ever come.
Yet many voices were heard among the Elves foreboding that, if Sauron should
come again, then either he would find the Ruling Ring that was lost, or at the
best his enemies would discover it and destroy it; but in either chance the
powers of the Three must then fail and all things maintained by them must fade,
and so the Elves should pass into the twilight and the Dominion of Men begin. And so indeed it has since befallen: the One
and the Seven and the Nine are destroyed; and the Three have passed away, and
with them the Third Age is ended, and the Tales of the Eldar in Middle-earth
draw to then-close. Those were the Fading Years, and in them the last flowering
of the Elves east of the Sea came to its winter. In that time the Noldor walked
still in the Hither Lands, mightiest and fairest of the children of the world,
and their tongues were still heard by mortal ears. Many things of beauty and
wonder remained on earth in that time, and many things also of evil and dread:
Orcs there were and trolls and dragons and fell beasts, and strange creatures
old and wise in the woods whose names are forgotten; Dwarves still laboured in
the hills and wrought with patient craft works of metal and stone that none now
can rival. But the Dominion of Men was preparing and all things were changing,
until at last the Dark Lord arose in Mirkwood again. Now of old the name of that forest was
Greenwood the Great, and its wide halls and aisles were the haunt of many
beasts and of birds of bright song; and there was the realm of King Thranduil
under the oak and the beech. But after many years, when well nigh a third of
that age of the world had passed, a darkness crept slowly through the wood from
the southward, and fear walked there in shadowy glades; fell beasts came
hunting, and cruel and evil creatures laid there their snares. Then the name of the forest was changed and
Mirkwood it was called, for the nightshade lay deep there, and few dared to
pass through, save only in the north where Thranduil’s people still held the
evil at bay. Whence it came few could tell, and it was long ere even the Wise
could discover it. It was the Shadow of Sauron and the sign of his return. For
coming out of the wastes of the East he took up his abode in the south of the
forest, and slowly he grew and took shape there again; in a dark hill he made
his dwelling and wrought there his sorcery, and all folk feared the Sorcerer of
Dol Guldur, and yet they knew not at first how great was their peril. Even as the first shadows were felt in
Mirkwood there appeared in the west of Middle-earth the Istari, whom Men called
the Wizards. None knew at that time whence they were, save Cнrdan of the
Havens, and only to Elrond and to Galadriel did he reveal that they came over
the Sea. But afterwards it was said among the Elves that they were messengers
sent by the Lords of the West to contest the power of Sauron, if he should
arise again, and to move Elves and Men and all living things of good will to
valiant deeds. In the likeness of Men they appeared, old but vigorous, and they
changed little with the years, and aged but slowly, though great cares lay on
them; great wisdom they had, and many powers of mind and hand. Long they
journeyed far and wide among Elves and Men, and held converse also with beasts
and with birds; and the peoples of Middle-earth gave to them many names, for their
true names they did not reveal. Chief among them were those whom the Elves
called Mithrandir and Curunнr, but Men in the North named Gandalf and Saruman.
Of these Curunнr was the eldest and came first, and after him came Mithrandir
and Radagast, and others of the Istari who went into the east of Middle-earth,
and do not come into these tales. Radagast was the friend of all beasts and
birds; but Curunнr went most among Men, and he was subtle in speech and skilled
in all the devices of smith-craft. Mithrandir was closest in counsel with
Elrond and the Elves. He wandered far in the North and West and made never in
any land any lasting abode; but Curunнr journeyed into the East, and when he
returned he dwelt at Orthanc in the Ring of Isengard, which the Nъmenуreans
made in the days of their power. Ever most vigilant was Mithrandir, and he it
was that most doubted the darkness in Mirkwood, for though many deemed that it
was wrought by the Ringwraiths, he feared that it was indeed the first shadow
of Sauron returning; and he went to Dol Guldur, and the Sorcerer fled from him,
and there was a watchful peace for a long while. But at length the Shadow
returned and its power increased; and in that time was first made the Council
of the Wise that is called the White Council, and therein were Elrond and
Galadriel and Cнrdan, and other lords of the Eldar, and with them were
Mithrandir and Curunнr. And Curunнr (that was Saruman the White) was chosen to
be their chief, for he had most studied the devices of Sauron of old. Galadriel
indeed had wished that Mithrandir should be the Lead of the Council, and
Saruman begrudged them that, for his pride and desire of mastery was grown
great; but Mithrandir refused the office, since he would have no ties and no
allegiance, save to those who sent him, and he would abide in no place nor be
subject to any summons. But Saruman now began to study the lore of the Rings of
Power, their making and their history. Now the Shadow grew ever greater, and the
hearts of Elrond and Mithrandir darkened. Therefore on a time Mithrandir at
great peril went again to Dol Guldur and the pits of the Sorcerer, and he
discovered the truth of his fears, and escaped. And returning to Elrond he
said: ‘True, alas, is our guess. This is not one
of the Ъlairi, as many have long supposed. It is Sauron himself who has taken
shape again and now grows apace; and he is gathering again all the Rings to his
hand; and he seeks ever for news of the One, and of the Heirs of Isildur, if
they live still on earth.’ And Elrond answered: ‘In the hour that
Isildur took the Ring and would not surrender it, this doom was wrought, that
Sauron should return.’ ‘Yet the One was lost,' said Mithrandir,
‘and while it still lies hid, we can master the Enemy, if we gather our
strength and tarry not too long.' Then the White Council was summoned; and
Mithrandir urged them to swift deeds, but Curunнr spoke against him, and
counselled them to wait yet and to watch. ‘For I believe not,’ said he, ‘that the One
will ever be found again in Middle-earth. Into Anduin it fell, and long ago, I
deem, it was rolled to the Sea. There it shall lie until the end, when all this
world is broken and the deeps are removed.' Therefore naught was done at that time,
though Elrond's heart misgave him, and he said to Mithrandir: 'Nonetheless I forbode that the One will yet
be found, and then war will arise again, and in that war this Age will be
ended. Indeed in a second darkness it will end, unless some strange chance
deliver us that my eyes cannot see.’ 'Many are the strange chances of fee world,’
said Mithrandir, 'and help oft shall come from the hands of the weak when the
Wise falter.' Thus the Wise were troubled, but none as yet
perceived that Curunнr had turned to dark thoughts and was already a traitor in
heart: for he desired that he and no other should find the Great Ring, so that
he might wield it himself and order all the world to his will Too long he had
studied the ways of. Sauron in hope to defeat him, and now he envied him as a
rival rather than hated his works. And he deemed that the Ring, which was
Sauron's, would seek for its master as he became manifest once more; but if he
were driven out again, then it would lie hid. Therefore he was willing to play
with peril and let Sauron be for a time, hoping by his craft to forestall both
his friends and the Enemy, when the Ring should appear. He set a watch upon the Gladden Fields; but
soon he discovered that the servants of Dol Guldur were searching all the ways
of the River in that region. Then he perceived that Sauron also had learned of
the manner of Isildur's end, and he grew afraid and withdrew to Isengard and
fortified it; and ever he probed deeper into the lore of the Rings of Power and
the art of their forging. But he spoke of none of this to the Council, hoping
still that he might be the first to hear news of the Ring. He gathered a great
host of spies, and many of these were birds; for Radagast lent him his aid,
divining naught of his treachery, and deeming that this was but part of the
watch upon the Enemy. But ever the shadow in Mirkwood grew deeper,
and to Dol Guldur evil things repaired out of all the dark places of the world;
and they were united again under one will, and their malice was directed
against the Elves and the survivors of Nъmenor. Therefore at last the Council
was again summoned and the lore of the Rings was much debated; but Mithrandir
spoke to the Council, saying: ‘It is not needed that the Ring should be
found, for while it abides on earth and is not unmade, still the power that it
holds will live, and Sauron will grow and have hope. The might of the Elves and
the Elf-friends is less now than of old. Soon he will be too strong for you,
even without the Great Ring; for he rules the Nine, and of the Seven he has
recovered three. We must strike.' To this Curunнr now assented, desiring that
Sauron should be thrust from Dol Guldur, which was nigh to the River, and
should have leisure to search there no longer. Therefore, for the last time, he
aided the Council, and they put forth their strength; and they assailed Dol
Guldur, and drove Sauron from his hold, and Mirkwood for a brief while was made
wholesome again. But their stroke was too late. For the Dark
Lord had foreseen it, and he had long prepared all his movements; and the
Ъlairi, his Nine Servants, had gone before him to make ready for his coming.
Therefore his flight was but a feint, and he soon returned, and ere the Wise
could prevent him he re-entered his kingdom in Mordor and reared once again the
dark towers of Barad-dыr. And in that year the White Council met for the last
time, and Curunнr withdrew to Isengard, and took counsel with none save
himself. Orcs were mustering, and far to the east and
the south the wild peoples were arming. Then in the midst of gathering fear and
the rumour of war the foreboding of Elrond was proved true, and the One Ring
was indeed found again, by a chance more strange than even Mithrandir had
foreseen; and it was hidden from Curunнr and from Sauron. For it had been taken
from Anduin long ere they sought for it, being found by one of the small
fisher-folk that dwelt by the River, ere the Kings failed in Condor; and by its
finder it was brought beyond search into dark hiding under the roots of the
mountains. There it dwelt, until even in the year of the assault upon Dol
Guldur it was found again, by a wayfarer, fleeing into the depths of the earth
from the pursuit of the Orcs, and passed into a far distant country, even to
the land of the Periannath, the Little People, the Halflings, who dwelt in the
west of Eriador. And ere that day they had been held of small account by Elves
and by Men, and neither Sauron nor any of the Wise save Mithrandir had in all
their counsels given thought to them. Now by fortune and his vigilance Mithrandir
first learned of the Ring, ere Sauron had news of it; yet he was dismayed and
in doubt. For too great was the evil power of this thing for any of the Wise to
wield, unless like Curunнr he wished himself to become a tyrant and a dark lord
in his turn; but neither could it be concealed from Sauron for ever, nor could
it be unmade by the craft of the Elves. Therefore with the help of the Dъnedain
of the North Mithrandir set a watch upon the land of the Periannath and bided
his time. But Sauron had many ears, and soon he heard rumour of the One Ring,
which above all things he desired, and he sent forth the Nazgыl to take it.
Then war was kindled, and in battle with Sauron the Third Age ended even as it
had begun. But those who saw the things that were done
in that time, deeds of valour and wonder, have elsewhere told the tale of the
War of the Ring, and how it ended both in victory unlocked for and in sorrow
long foreseen. Here let it be said that in those days the Heir of Isildur arose
in the North, and he took the shards of the sword of Elendil, and in Imladris
they were reforged; and he went then to war, a great captain of Men. He was
Aragorn son of Arathorn, the nine and thirtieth heir in the right line from
Isildur, and yet more like to Elendil than any before him. Battle there was in
Rohan, and Curunнr the traitor was thrown down and Isengard broken; and before
the City of Gondor a great field was fought, and the Lord of Morgul, Captain of
Sauron, there passed into darkness; and the Heir of Isildur led the host of the
West to the Black Gates of Mordor. In that last battle were Mithrandir, and the
sons of Elrond, and the King of Rohan, and lords of Gondor, and the Heir of
Isildur with the Dъnedain of the North. There at the last they looked upon
death and defeat, and all their valour was in vain; for Sauron was too strong.
Yet in that hour was put to the proof that which Mithrandir had spoken, and
help came from the hands of the weak when the Wise faltered. For, as many songs
have since sung, it was the Periannath, the Little People, dwellers in
hillsides and meadows, that brought them deliverance. For Frodo the Halfling, it is said, at the
bidding of Mithrandir took on himself the burden, and alone with his servant he
passed through peril and darkness and came at last in Sauron's despite even to
Mount Doom; and there into the Fire where it was wrought he cast the Great Ring
of Power, and so at last it was unmade and its evil consumed. Then Sauron failed, and he was utterly
vanquished and passed away like a shadow of malice; and the towers of Barad-dыr
crumbled in ruin, and at the rumour of their fall many lands trembled. Thus
peace came again, and a new Spring opened on earth; and the Heir of Isildur was
crowned King of Gondor and Arnor, and the might of the Dъnedain was lifted up
and their glory renewed. In the courts of Minas Anor the White Tree flowered
again, for a seedling was found by Mithrandir in the snows of Mindolluin that
rose tall and white above the City of Gondor; and while it still grew there the
Elder Days were not wholly forgotten in the hearts of the Kings. Now all these things were achieved for the
most part by the counsel and vigilance of Mithrandir, and in the last few days
he was revealed as a lord of great reverence, and clad in white he rode into
battle; but not until the time came for him to depart was it known that he had
long guarded the Red Ring of Fire. At the first that Ring had been entrusted to
Cнrdan, Lord of the Havens; but he had surrendered it to Mithrandir, for he
knew whence he came and whither at last he would return. ‘Take now this Ring,’ he said; 'for thy
labours and thy cares will be heavy, but in all it will support thee and defend
thee from weariness. For this is the Ring of Fire, and herewith, maybe, thou
shalt rekindle hearts to the valour of old in a world that grows chill. But as
for me, my heart is with the Sea, and I will dwell by the grey shores, guarding
the Havens until the last ship sails. Then I shall await thee.’ White was that ship and long was it
a-building, and long it awaited the end of which Cнrdan had spoken. But when
all these things were done, and the Heir of Isildur had taken up the lordship
of Men, and the dominion of the West had passed to him, then it was made plain
that the power of the Three Rings also was ended, and to the Firstborn the
world grew old and grey. In that time the last of the Noldor set sail from the
Havens and left Middle-earth for ever. And latest of all the Keepers of the
Three Rings rode to the Sea, and Master Elrond took there the ship that Cнrdan
had made ready. In the twilight of autumn it sailed out of Mithlond, until the
seas of the Bent World fell away beneath it, and the winds of the round sky
troubled it no more, and borne upon the high airs above the mists of the world
it passed into the Ancient West, and an end was come for the Eldar of story and
of song. NOTE ON PRONUNCIATION The following
note is intended simply to clarify a few main features in the pronunciation of
names in the Elvish languages, and is by no means exhaustive. For full
information on the subject see The Lord
of the Rings Appendix E. CONSONANTS
C always
has the value of k, never of s; thus Celeborn is 'Keleborn'
not 'Seleborn'. In a few cases, as Tulkas, Kementбri a k has been used in the spelling in this book. CH always
has the value of ch in Scotch loch or German buch, never that of ch in
English church. Examples are Carcharoth. Erchamion. DH is
always used to represent the sound of a voiced ('soft') th in English, that is the th
in then, not the th in thin. Examples are Maedhros, Aredhel, Haudh-en-Arwen. G always
has the sound of English g in get; thus Region, Eregion are not pronounced like English region, and the first syllable of Ginglith is as in English begin not as in gin. Consonants written twice are pronounced long; thus Yavanna has the long n heard in English unnamed, penknife, not the short n in unaimed, penny. VOWELS
AI has the sound of
English eye; thus the second syllable
of Edain is like English dine,
not Dane. AU has
the value of English ow in town; thus the first syllable of Aulл is like English owl, and the first syllable of Sauron is like English sour, not sore. EI as
in Teiglin has the sound of English grey. IE should
not be pronounced as in English piece, but
with both the vowels i and e sounded, and run together; thus Ni-enna, not 'Neena'. UI as
in Uinen has the sound of English ruin. AE as
in Aegnor, Nirnaeth, and OE as in Noegyth, Loeg, are combinations of the
individual vowels, a–e, o–e, but ae may be pronounced in the same way as ai, and oe as in English toy EA and EO are not run together, but constitute two syllables; these
combinations are written ea and eo (or, when they begin names, Eд and Eo: Eдrendil, Eцnwл). U in
names like Hъrin, Tъrin, Tъna should
be pronounced oo; thus 'Toorin' not 'Tyoorin'. ER, IR, UR before a consonant (as in Nerdanel, Cнrdan, Gurthang) or at the end of a word (as in Ainur) should not be pronounced as in
English fern, fir, fur, but as in
English air, eer, oor. E at
the end of words is always pronounced as a distinct vowel, and in this position
is written e. It is likewise always
pronounced in the middle of words like Celeborn,
Menegroth. A circumflex accent in stressed monosyllables in Sindarin denotes the
particularly long vowel heard in such words (thus Hоn Hъrin); but in Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean) and Khuzdul (Dwarvish)
names the circumflex is simply used to denote long vowels. INDEX
OF NAMES Since the number of names in the book is very
large, this index provides, in addition to page-references, a short statement
concerning each person and place. These statements are not epitomes of all that
is said in the text, and for most of the central figures in the narrative are
kept extremely brief; but such an index is inevitably bulky, and I have reduced
its size in various ways. The chief of these concerns the fact
that very often the English translation of an Elvish name is also used as the
name independently; thus for example the dwelling of King Thingol is called
both Menegroth and 'The Thousand
Caves' (and also both together). In most such cases I have combined the Elvish
name and its translated meaning under one entry, with the result that the
page-references are not restricted to the name that appears as the heading
(e.g., those under Echoriath include
those to 'Encircling Mountains'). The English renderings are given separate
headings, but only with a simple direction to the main entry, and only if they
occur independently. Words in inverted commas are translations; many of these
occur in the text (as Tol Eressлa
'the Lonely Isle'), but I have added a great many others. Information about
some names that are not translated is contained in the Appendix. With the many titles and formal
expressions in English whose Elvish originals are not given, such as 'the Elder
King' and 'the Two Kindreds', I have been selective, but the great majority are
registered. The references are in intention complete (and sometimes include
pages where the subject of the entry occurs but is not actually mentioned by
name) except in a very few cases where the name occurs very frequently indeed,
as Beleriand, Valar. Here the word passim is used, but selected references
are given to important passages; and in the entries for some of the Noldorin
princes the many occurrences of the name that relate only to their sons or
their houses have been eliminated. References to The Lord of the Rings are by title of the volume, book, and
chapter. Adanedhel 'Elf-Man', name given to Tъrin in
Nargothrond. 258 Adunakhфr 'Lord of the West', name taken by the
nineteenth King of Nъmenor, the first to do so in the Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean)
tongue; his name in Quenya was Herunъmen. 330 Adurant The sixth and most southerly of the
tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand. The name means 'double stream', referring
to its divided course about the island of Tol Galen. 147, 229, 290 Aeglos 'Snow-point', the spear of Gil-galad.
364 Aegnor The fourth son of Finarfin,
who with his brother Angrod held the northern slopes of Dorthonion; slain in
the Dagor Bragollach. The name means 'Fell Fire', 64,94, 141, 180-82 Aelin-uial 'Meres of Twilight', where Aros
flowed into Sirion. 133,145, 203, 267, 285 Aerandir 'Sea-wanderer', one of the three
mariners who accompanied Eдrendil on his voyages. 307 Aerin A kinswoman of Hъrin in
Dor-lуmin; taken as wife by Brodda the Easterling; aided Morwen after the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 243, 264 Aftercomers The Younger Children of Ilъvatar,
Men; translation of Hildor, 92-3, 114 Agarwaen 'Blood-stained', name given to
himself by Tъrin when he came to Nargothrond. 257 Aglarond 'The Glittering Cavern' of Helm's
Deep in Ered Nimrais (see The Two Towers III
8). 361 Aglon 'The Narrow Pass', between Dorthonion
and the heights to the west of Himring. 147, 161, 183-4 Ainulindalл 'The Music of the Ainur', also called The (Great) Music, The (Great) Song.
3-9, 18, 21, 37-8, 43-4, 50, 74, 121, 251. Also the name of the account of
Creation said to have been composed by Rъmil of Tirion in the Elder Days. 82 Ainur 'The Holy Ones' (singular Ainu)', the first beings created by
Ilъvatar, the 'order' of the Valar and Maiar, made before Eд. 3-9, 18, 21, 41,
44, 58, 121, 251, 288 Akallabкth 'The Downfallen', Adыnaic
(Nъmenуrean) word equivalent in meaning to Quenya Atalantл. 347 Also the title of the account of the Downfall of
Nъmenor. 359,360 Alcarinquл 'The Glorious', name of a star. 48 Alcarondas The great ship of Ar-Pharazфn in
which he sailed to Aman. 343 Aldaron 'Lord of Trees', a Quenya name
of the Vala Oromл; cf. Tauron. 22 Aldudйniл 'Lament for the Two Trees', made by
a Vanyarin Elf named Elemmнrл. 84 Almaren The first abode of the Valar in Arda, before
the second onslaught of Melkor: an isle in a great lake in the midst of
Middle-earth. 30-1, 117 Alqualondл 'Haven of the Swans', the chief city
and haven of the Teleri on the shores of Aman. 63-5, 79, 97, 100, 120, 130,
154, 188, 309, 311 Aman 'Blessed, free from evil',
the name of the land in the West, beyond the Great Sea, in which the Valar
dwelt after they had left the Isle of Almaren. Often referred to as the Blessed Realm. Passim; see
especially 32, 66, 326 Amandil 'Lover of Aman'; the last lord of Andъniл in
Nъmenor, descendant of Elros and father of Elendil; set out on a voyage to
Valinor and did not return. 335-7, 340-1, 346, 362 Amariл Vanyarin Elf, beloved of
Finrod Felagund, who remained in Valinor. 155 Amlach Son of Imlach son of Marach; a
leader of dissension among the Men of Estolad who, repenting, took service with
Maedhros. 173-4 Amon Amarth 'Mount Doom', the name given to Orodruin
when its fires awoke again after Sauron's return from Nъmenor. 363, 377 Amon Ereb 'The Lonely Hill' (also simply Ereb), between Ramdal and the river
Gelion in East Beleriand. 110, 146, 184 Amon Ethir 'The Hill of Spies', raised by Finrod
Felagund to the east of the doors of Nargothrond. 267-8 Amon Gwareth The hill upon which Gondolin was built, in
the midst of the plain of Tumladen. 151, 163, 296, 299 Amon Obel A hill in the midst of the Forest of
Brethil, on which was built Ephel Brandir. 249, 266, 270 Amon Rыdh 'The Bald Hill', a lonely height in
the lands south of Brethil; abode of Mоm, and lair of Tъrin's outlaw band.
246-52, 284 Amon Sыl 'Hill of the Wind', in the Kingdom
of Arnor ('Weathertop' in The Lord of the
Rings). 362 Amon Uilos Sindarin name of Oiolossл. 32 Amras Twin-brother of Amrod,
youngest of the sons of Fлanor; slain with Amrod in the attack on Eдrendil's
people at the Mouths of Sirion. 63, 93, 148, 170, 184, 305 Amrod See Amras. Anach Pass leading down from
Taur-nu-Fuin (Dorthonion) at the western end of Ered Gorgoroth. 245-6, 251-2,
299 Anadыnл 'Westernesse': name of Nъmenor
in the Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean) tongue (see
Nъmenor). 322 Anar Quenya name of the Sun.
114-6 Anбrion Younger son of Elendil, who
with his father and his brother Isildur escaped from the Drowning of Nъmenor
and founded in Middle-earth the Nъmenуrean realms in exile; lord of Minas Anor;
slain in the siege of Barad-dыr. 336, 346, 360-8 Anarrнma Name of a constellation. 48 Ancalagon Greatest of the winged dragons of
Morgoth, destroyed by Eдrendil. 312 Andor 'The Land of Gift':
Nъmenor. 321, 345, 347 Andram 'The Long Wall', name of the
dividing fall running across Beleriand. 109, 146 Androth Caves in the bills of Mithrim
where Tuor was fostered by the Grey-elves. 294 Anduin 'The Long River', east of the
Misty Mountains; referred to also as the
Great River and the River. 55,107,
329, 360-1, 364, 366, 369, 374-5 Andъniл City and haven on the west coast of Nъmenor.
322, 331-2, 335. For the Lords of Andъniл see 331 Anfauglir A name of the wolf Carcharoth,
translated in the text as 'Jaws of Thirst'. 218 Anfauglith Name of the plain of Ard-galen
after its desolation by Morgoth in the Battle of Sudden Flame; translated in
the text as 'the Gasping Dust'. Cf. Dor-nu-Fauglith.
181, 194, 215, 232-4, 241, 254-5, 261, 280, 311 Angainor The chain wrought by Aulл with
which Melkor was twice bound. 52, 312 Angband 'Iron Prison, Hell of Iron', the
great dungeon-fortress of Morgoth in the Northwest of Middle-earth. Passim; see especially 47, 90, 109, 139,
217. The Siege of Angband 36, 139-40,
144, 148, 158, 182, 192, 202 Anghabar 'Iron-delvings', a mine in the
Encircling Mountains about the plain of Gondolin. 166 Anglachel The sword made from meteoric iron
that Thingol received from Eцl and which he gave to Beleg; after its reforging
for Tъrin named Gurthang. 247, 253-57 Angrenost 'Iron Fortress', Nъmenуrean
fortress on the west borders of Gondor, afterwards inhabited by the wizard
Curunнr (Saruman); see Isengard. 361 Angrim Father of Gorlim the Unhappy.
195 Angrist 'Iron-cleaver', the knife
made by Telchar of Nogrod, taken from Curufin by Beren and used by him to cut
the Silmaril from Morgoth's crown. 215, 219 Angrod The third son of Finarfin, who
with his brother Aegnor held the northern slopes of Dorthonion; slain in the
Dagor Bragollach. 64, 94, 130-1, 141, 154, 180-2, 260 Anguirel Eцl's sword,
made of the same metal as Anglachel. 247 Annael Grey-elf of Mithrim,
fosterfather of Tuor. 294 Annatar 'Lord of Gifts', name given to
himself by Sauron in the Second Age, in that time when he appeared in a fair
form among the Eldar who remained in Middle-earth. 355 Annon-in-Gelydh 'Gate of the Noldor', entrance to a
subterranean watercourse in the western hills of Dor-lуmin, leading to Cirith
Ninniach. 294 Annъminas 'Tower of the West' (i.e. of
Westernesse, Nъmenor); city of the Kings of Arnor beside Lake Nenuial. 360,
362, 367 Anor See Minas Anor. Apanуnar 'The Afterborn', an Elvish name
for Men. 119 Aradan Sindarin name of Malach, son
of Marach. 172, 177 Aragorn The thirty-ninth Heir of Isildur in the direct
line; King of the reunited realms of Arnor and Gondor after the War of the
Ring; wedded Arwen, daughter of Elrond. 377. Called the Heir of Isildur 377 Araman Barren wasteland on the coast
of Aman, between the Pelуri and the Sea, extending northward to the Helcaraxл.
79, 88, 97,101, 116-7,123, 129, 297 Aranel Name of Dior Thingol's Heir.
229 Aranrъth 'King's Ire', the name of
Thingol's sword. Aranrъth survived the ruin of Doriath and was possessed by the
Kings of Nъmenor. 247 Aranwл Elf of Gondolin, father of
Voronwл. 295 Aratan Second son of Isildur, slain
with him at the Gladden Fields. 366 Aratar 'The Exalted', the eight
Valar of greatest power. 23 Arathorn Father of Aragorn. 377 Arda 'The Realm', name of the
Earth as the Kingdom of Manwл. Passim;
see especially 8, 12 Ard-galen The great grassy plain north of
Dorthonion, called after its desolation Anfauglith
and Dor-nu-Fauglith. The name means
'the Green Region'; cf. Calenardhon
(Rohan). 124, 135-6, 144, 181 Aredhel 'Noble Elf', the sister of
Turgon of Gondolin, who was ensnared by Eцl in Nan Elmoth and bore to him
Maeglin; called also Ar-Feiniel, the
White Lady of the Noldor, the White Lady of Gondolin. 64, 156-65, 247 Ar-Feiniel See Aredhel. Ar-Gimilzфr Twenty-second King of Nъmenor,
persecutor of the Elendili. 331-2 Argonath 'King-stones', the Pillars of the
Kings, great carvings of Isildur and Anбrion on the Anduin at the entrance to
the northern bounds of Gondor (see The
Fellowship of the Ring II 9). 361, 369 Arien A Maia, chosen by the
Valar to guide the vessel of the Sun. 114-7 Armenelos City of the Kings in Nъmenor. 322,
324, 333-7, 361 Arminas See Gelmir
(2). Arnor 'Land of the King', the
northern realm of the Nъmenуreans in Middle-earth, established by Elendil after
his escape from the Drowning of Nъmenor. 361-2, 377 Aros The southern river of
Doriath. 109, 131, 145, 147-8, 157, 158, 176, 287-9 Arossiach The Fords of Aros, near the
north-eastern edge of Doriath. 145, 158, 162 Ar-Pharazфn 'The Golden', twenty-fourth and last
King of Nъmenor; named in Quenya Tar-Calion;
captor of Sauron, by whom he was seduced; commander of the great fleet that
went against Aman. 333-47 Ar-Sakalthфr Father of Ar-Gimilzфr. 331 Arthad One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Arvernien The coastlands of Middle-earth
west of Sirion's mouths. Cf. Bilbo's song at Rivendell: 'Eдrendil was a mariner
that tarried in Arvernien…' (The
Fellowship of the Ring II 1). 302 Ar-Zimraphel See Mнriel (2). Ascar The most northerly of the
tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand (afterwards called Rathlуriel). The name means 'rushing, impetuous'. 104, 146-8, 167,
174, 291 Astaldo 'The Valiant', name of the
Vala Tulkas. 22 Atalantл 'The Downfallen'. Quenya word
equivalent in meaning to Akallabкth,
347 Atanamir See Tar-Atanamir. Atanatбri 'Fathers of Men'; see Atani. 120, 232 Atani 'The Second People', Men
(singular Atan). For the origin of
the name see 171; since in Beleriand for a long time the only Men known to the
Noldor and Sindar were those of the Three Houses of the Elf-friends, this name
(in the Sindarin form Adan, plural Edain) became specially associated with
them, so that it was seldom applied to other Men who came later to Beleriand,
or who were reported to be dwelling beyond the Mountains. But in the speech of
Ilъvatar (41) the meaning is 'Men (in general)'. 38, 119, 171; Edain, 171-2, 176-9, 189-90, 238, 241,
292, 319-21, 347 Aulл A Vala, one of the
Aratar, the smith and master of crafts, spouse of Yavanna; see especially 20,
23, and for his making of the Dwarves 40 ff., 8-9, 18, 20, 23-4, 26, 30, 35,
37, 40-5, 51, 54, 62, 65, 69, 75, 87, 95, 104, 113, 321 Avallуnл Haven and city of the Eldar on
Tol Eressлa, so named, according to the Akallabкth,
'for it is of all cities the nearest to Valinor'. 320, 325, 332, 344, 348-9,
362, 368 Avari 'The Unwilling, the
Refusers', the name given to all those Elves who refused to join the westward
march from Cuiviйnen. See Eldar and Dark Elves. 53, 107, 113,355 Avathar 'The Shadows', the forsaken
land on the coast of Aman south of the Bay of Eldamar, between the Pelуri and
the Sea, where Melkor met Ungoliant 80-1, 88,116 Azaghвl Lord of the Dwarves of
Belegost; wounded Glaurung in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, and was killed by him.
236 Balan The name of Bлor the Old
before he took service with Finrod. 170 Balar The great bay to the south
of Beleriand into which the river Sirion flowed. 52, 56, 59, 60, 142. Also the
isle in the bay, said to have been the eastern horn of Tol Eressлa that broke
away, where Cнrdan and Gil-galad dwelt after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 59, 105,
144, 192, 239, 302, 304-5 Balrog 'Demon of Might', Sindarin
form (Quenya Valarauko) of the name
of the demons of fire that served Morgoth. 26, 46, 90, 125, 144, 182, 202, 235,
300-1 Barad-dыr 'The Dark Tower' of Sauron in
Mordor. 329, 334, 347, 363, 365, 375, 377 Barad Eithel 'Tower of the Well', the fortress of
the Noldor at Eithel Sirion. 233 Barad Nimras 'White Horn Tower', raised by Finrod
Felagund on the cape west of Eglarest, 142, 239 Baragund Father of Morwen the wife of
Hъrin; nephew of Barahir and one of his twelve companions on Dorthonion. 177,
187, 194, 242, 311 Barahir Father of Beren; rescued
Finrod Felagund in the Dagor Bragollach, and received from him his ring; slain
on Dorthonion. For the later history of the ring of Barahir, which became an
heirloom of the House of Isildur, see The
Lord of the Rings Appendix A (I, iii). 121, 177, 182-3, 186-7, 194-7,
201-5, 226, 229, 243. 285, 311 Baran Elder son of Bлor the Old.
170-1 Baranduin 'The Brown River' in Eriador,
flowing into the Sea south of the Blue Mountains; the Brandywine of the Shire
in The Lord of the Rings. 360 Bar-en-Danwedh 'House of Ransom', the name that Mоm the Dwarf
gave to his dwelling on Amon Rыdh when he yielded it to Tъrin. 248, 252 Battles of Beleriand The first battle: 96.
The second battle (the Battle-under-Stars): see Dagor-nuin-Giliath. The third battle (the Glorious Battle): see Dagor Aglareb. The fourth battle (the
Battle of Sudden Flame): see Dagor
Bragollach. The fifth battle (Unnumbered Tears): see Nirnaeth Arnoediad. The Great Battle: 311-2 Bauglir A name of Morgoth: 'the
Constrainer'. 120, 243, 259, 286, 315 Beleg A great archer and chief
of the marchwardens of Doriath; called Cъthalion
'Strongbow'; friend and companion of Tъrin, by whom he was slain. 190, 225-6,
230, 243-8, 251-7, 278 Belegaer 'The Great Sea' of the West,
between Middle-earth and Aman. Named Belegaer
32, 100, 295; but very frequently called the
(Great) Sea, also the Western Sea
and the Great Water. Belegost 'Great Fortress', one of the two
cities of the Dwarves in the Blue Mountains; translation into Sindarin of
Dwarvish Gabilgathol. See Mickleburg. 104, 107, 132, 158, 231,
236, 250, 285, 288 Belegund Father of Rнan the wife of Huor;
nephew of Barahir and one of his twelve companions on Dorthonion. 177, 187,
194, 242 Beleriand The name was said to have
signified 'the country of Balar', and to have been given at first to the lands
about the mouths of Sirion that faced the Isle of Balar. Later the name spread
to include all the ancient coast of the Northwest of Middle-earth south of the
Firth of Drengist, and all the inner lands south of Hithlum and eastwards to
the feet of the Blue Mountains, divided by the river Sirion into East and West
Beleriand. Beleriand was broken in the turmoils at the end of the First Age,
and invaded by the sea, so that only Ossiriand (Lindon) remained. Passim; see especially 142-8, 313, 354-5 Belfalas Region on the southern coast of
Gondor looking on to the great bay of the same name; Bay of Belfalas 361 Belthil 'Divine radiance', the image
of Telperion made by Turgon in Gondolin. 151 Belthronding The bow of Beleg Cъthalion, which was
buried with him. 256 Bлor Called the Old; leader of
the first Men to enter Beleriand; vassal of Finrod Felagund; progenitor of the
House of Bлor (called also the Eldest
House of Men and the First House of
the Edain); see Balan. 167-72,
177-80, 204. House of, People of, Bлor
172-4, 177, 183, 189-90, 194 Bereg Grandson of Baran son of
Bлor the Old (this is not stated in the text); a leader of dissension among the
Men of Estolad; went back over the mountains into Eriador. 173-4 Beren Son of Barahir; cut a
Silmaril from Morgoth's crown to be the bride-price of Lъthien Thingol's
daughter, and was slain by Carcharoth the wolf of Angband; but returning from
the dead, alone of mortal Men, lived afterwards with Lъthien on Tol Galen in
Ossiriand, and fought with the Dwarves at Sarn Athrad. Great-grandfather of
Elrond and Elros and ancestor of the Nъmenуrean Kings. Called also Camlost, Erchamion, and One-hand. 121, 147, 177, 187, 194-206,
208-30, 242, 258, 285, 290-1, 305 Black Land See Mordor. Black Sword See Mormegil. Black Years See 359, 365 Blessed Realm See Aman. Blue Mountains See Ered
Luin and Ered Lindon. Bor A chieftain of the Easterlings,
follower with his three sons of Maedhros and Maglor. 189, 231. Sons of Bor 235 Borlach One of the three sons of Bor;
slain with his brothers in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189 Borlad One of the three sons of Bor;
see Borlach. Boromir Great-grandson of Bлor the Old,
grandfather of Barahir father of Beren; first lord of Ladros. 177 Boron Father of Boromir. 177 Borthand One of the three sons of Bor; see
Borlach. Bragollach See Dagor Bragollach. Brandir Called the Lame; ruler of the
People of Haleth after the death of Handir his father; enamoured of Nienor;
slain by Tъrin. 266, 271-7 Bregolas Father of Baragund and Belegund;
slain in the Dagor Bragollach. 177,182, 187 Bregor Father of Barahir and
Bregolas. 177 Brethil The forest between the rivers
Teiglin and Sirion, dwelling-place of the Haladin (the People of Haleth). 142,
176, 187, 190-2, 214, 231, 234, 238, 246, 249, 251, 260, 266, 269-72, 277-8,
282-3 Bridge of Esgalduin See Iant Iaur. Brilthor 'Glittering Torrent', the
fourth of the tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand. 147 Brithiach The ford over Sirion north of the
Forest of Brethil. 157, 163, 176, 190, 253, 281, 282 Brithombar The northern of the Havens of the
Falas on the coast of Beleriand. 60, 125, 142, 239, 304 Brithon The river that flowed into the
Great Sea at Brithombar. 239 Brodda An Easterling in Hithlum after
the Nirnaeth Arnoediad who took as wife Aerin, kinswoman of Hъrin; slain by
Tъrin. 243, 264 Cabed-en-Aras Deep gorge in the river Teiglin, where
Tъrin slew Glaurung, and where Nienor leapt to her death; see Cabed Naeramarth. 272, 275, 278 Cabed Naeramarth 'Leap of Dreadful
Doom', name given to Cabed-en-Aras
after Nienor leapt from its cliffs. 276, 282 Calacirya 'Cleft of Light', the pass made in
the mountains of the Pelуri, in which was raised the green hill of Tъna. 62,
65, 79, 101, 117-8, 307 Calaquendi 'Elves of the Light', those Elves who
lived or had lived in Aman (the High Elves). See Moriquendi and Dark Elves,
54, 58, 121, 125 Calenardhon 'The Green Province', name of Rohan when
it was the northern part of Gondor; cf. Ard-galen.
369 Camlost 'Empty-handed', name taken by
Beren after his return to King Thingol without the Silmaril. 221, 226 Caragdыr The precipice on the north side of
Amon Gwareth (the hill of Gondolin) from which Eцl was cast to his death. 165 Caranthir The fourth son of Fлanor, called
the Dark; 'the harshest of the brothers and the most quick to anger'; ruled in
Thargelion; slain in the assault on Doriath. 63, 93, 131-2, 148, 154, 158, 171,
184, 189, 292 Carcharoth The great wolf of Angband that bit
off the hand of Beren bearing the Silmaril; slain by Huan in Doriath. The name
is translated in the text as 'the Red Maw'. Called also Anfauglir. 218-20, 223-6 Cardolan Region in the south of Eriador, a
part of the Kingdom of Arnor. 360 Carnil Name of a (red) star. 48 Celeborn (1) 'Tree of Silver', name of the Tree of
Tol Eressлa, a scion of Galathilion. 62,
324 Celeborn (2) Elf of Doriath, kinsman of Thingol;
wedded Galadriel and with her remained in Middle-earth after the end of the
First Age. 134-5, 290, 315, 370 Celebrant 'Silver Lode', river running from
Mirrormere through Lothlуrien to join the Anduin. 370 Celebrimbor 'Hand of Silver', son of Curufin, who
remained in Nargothrond when his father was expelled. In the Second Age
greatest of the smiths of Eregion; maker of the Three Rings of the Elves; slain
by Sauron. 214, 355, 357 Celebrindal 'Silverfoof'; see Idril. Celebros 'Silver Foam' or 'Silver Rain',
a stream in Brethil falling down to Teiglin near the Crossings. 270 Celegorm The third son of Fлanor, called
the Fair; until the Dagor Bragollach lord of the region of Himlad with Curufin
his brother; dwelt in Nargothrond and imprisoned Lъthien; master of Huan the
wolfhound; slain by Dior in Menegroth. 63, 65-6, 93, 124, 147, 157-8, 161, 183,
204-6, 208-9, 213-5, 223, 230, 292, 355 Celon River flowing southwest
from the Hill of Himring, a tributary of Aros. The name means 'stream flowing
down from heights'. 109, 148, 158, 161, 170, 176, 188 Children of Ilъvatar Also Children of Eru: translations of Hini Ilъvataro, Eruhini; the Firstborn
and the Followers, Elves and Men. Also The
Children, Children of the Earth, Children of the World. Passim; see
especially 7-8, 37-8 Cнrdan 'The Shipwright'; Telerin
Elf, lord of the Falas (coasts of West Beleriand); at the destruction of the
Havens after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad escaped with Gil-galad to the Isle of
Balar; during the Second and Third Ages keeper of the Grey Havens in the Gulf
of Lhыn; at the coming of Mithrandir entrusted to him Narya, the Ring of Fire.
60, 103-4, 110, 124, 133, 142, 153, 194, 239-40, 260, 302, 304-5, 315, 366,
370-3, 378 Cirith Ninniach 'Rainbow Cleft', by which Tuor came to the
Western Sea; see Annon-in-Gelydh. 294 Cirith Thoronath 'Eagles' Cleft', a high pass in
the mountains north of Gondolin, where Glorfindel fought with a Balrog and fell
into the abyss. 301 Cirth The Runes, first devised
by Daeron of Doriath. 108 Ciryon Third son of Isildur, slain
with him at the Gladden Fields. 366 Corollaнrл 'The Green Mound' of the Two Trees
in Valinor; also called Ezellohar. 33 Crissaegrim The mountain-peaks south of Gondolin,
where were the eyries of Thorondor. 144, 186, 191, 221, 246, 281 Crossings of Teiglin In the southwest of the
Forest of Brethil, where the old road southward from the Pass of Sirion crossed
the Teiglin. 176, 252, 267, 269, 275, 277, 282 Cuiviйnen 'Water of Awakening', the lake in
Middle-earth where the first Elves awoke, and where they were found by Oromл.
48, 50-4, 57, 92, 114, 288 Culъrien A name of Laurelin. 33 Curufin The fifth son of Fлanor,
called the Crafty; father of Celebrimbor. For the origin of his name see Fлanor; and for his history see Celegorm. 63, 93, 147, 157, 161-2, 183,
204-5, 208-9, 213-5, 222-3, 230,292, 355 Curufinwл See Fлanor. 67, 75 Curunнr 'The one of cunning devices'.
Elvish name of Saruman, one of the Istari (Wizards). 372-7 Cъthalion 'Strongbow'; see Beleg. Daeron Minstrel and chief loremaster
of King Thingol; deviser of the Cirth (Runes); enamoured of Lъthien and twice
betrayed her. 108, 133, 200, 208, 222, 314 Dagnir One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Dagnir Glaurunga 'Glaurung's Bane',
Tъrin. 177, 278 Dagor Aglareb 'The Glorious Battle', third of the great
battles in the Wars of Beleriand. 135-6, 139, 149 Dagor Bragollach 'The Battle of
Sudden Flame' (also simply the Bragollach),
fourth of the great battles in the Wars of Beleriand. 181, 187, 190, 193, 230,
233, 239, 260 Dagorlad 'Battle Plain', the place of the
great battle north of Mordor between Sauron and the Last Alliance of Elves and
Men at the end of the Second Age. 364, 367 Dagor-nuin-Giliath 'The
Battle-under-Stars', the second battle in the Wars of Beleriand, fought in
Mithrim after the coming of Fлanor to Middle-earth. 124 Dairuin One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Dark Elves In the language of Aman all Elves
that did not cross the Great Sea were Dark Elves (Moriquendi), and the term
is sometimes used thus, 121, 131; when Caranthir called Thingol a Dark Elf it
was intended opprobriously, and was especially so, since Thingol had been to
Aman 'and was not accounted among the Moriquendi' (56). But in the period of
the Exile of the Noldor it was often used of the Elves of Middle-earth other
than the Noldor and the Sindar, and is then virtually equivalent to Avari (120,
146, 168). Different again is the title Dark Elf of the Sindarin Elf Eцl, 158,
162, 247; but at 164 Turgon no doubt meant that Eцl was of the Moriquendi. Dark Lord, The The term is used of Morgoth, 280, and of
Sauron, 359, 371, 375 Day of Flight See 359 Deathless Lands See Undying
Lands. Deldъwath One of the later names of Dorthonion
(Taur-nu-Fuin), meaning 'Horror of Night-shadow'. 186 Denethor Son of Lenwл; leader of the
Nandorin Elves that came at last over the Blue Mountains and dwelt in
Ossiriand; slain on Amon Ereb in the First Battle of Beleriand. 56, 108-9,146 Dimbar The land between the rivers
Sirion and Mindeb. 144, 157, 191, 214, 246-7, 251-3, 281 Dimrost The falls of Celebros in the
Forest of Brethil; translated in the text as 'the Rainy Stair'. Afterwards
called Nen Girith. 270 Dior Called Aranel, and also Eluchнl 'Thingol's Heir'; son of Beren and Lъthien and father of
Elwing, Elrond's mother; came to Doriath from Ossiriand after the death of
Thingol, and received the Silmaril after the death of Beren and Lъthien; slain
in Menegroth by the sons of Fлanor. 229, 290-3, 297, 302, 305, 310, 314 Dispossessed, The The House of
Fлanor. 99, 130 Del Guldur 'Hill of Sorcery', fastness of the
Necromancer (Sauron) in southern Mirkwood in the Third Age. 372-5 Dolmed 'Wet Head' a great mountain in
the Ered Luin, near the Dwarf-cities of Nogrod and Belegost 104, 110, 236, 290 Dor Caranthir 'Land of Caranthir'; see Thargelion. 148, 174, 184 Dor-Cъarthol 'Land of Bow and Helm', name of the
country defended by Beleg and Tъrin from their lair on Amon Rыdh. 252 Dor Daedeloth 'Land of the Shadow of Horror', the land of
Morgoth in the north. 124, 127, 130 Dor Dнnen 'The Silent Land', where nothing
dwelt, between the upper waters of Esgalduin and Aros. 145 Dor Firn-i-Guinar 'Land of the Dead
that Live', name of that region in Ossiriand where Beren and Lъthien dwelt
after their return. 229, 291 Doriath 'Land of the Pence' (Dor Iath), referring to the Girdle of Melian, earlier called Eglador; the
kingdom of Thingol and Melian in the forests of Neldoreth and Region, ruled
from Menegroth on the river Esgalduin. Also called the Hidden Kingdom. Passim; see especially 111, 144-5 Dorlas A Man of the Haladin in Brethil; went
with Tъrin and Hunthor to the attack on Glaurung, but withdrew in fear; slain
by Brandir the Lame. 266, 271-2, 276. The wife of Dorlas, not named, 276. Dor-lуmin Region in the south of Hithlum, the
territory of Fingon, given as a fief to the House of Hador; the home of Hъrin
and Morwen. 101, 140-2, 177, 187, 191-3, 232, 237, 242-4, 251, 257, 260, 263-7,
276-7, 282, 284, 286, 294. The Lady of
Dor-lуmin: Morwen. 242 Dor-nu-Fauglith 'Land under Choking Ash'; see Anfauglith. 184, 221 Dorthonion 'Land of Pines', the great forested
highlands on the northern borders of Beleriand, afterwards called Taur-nu-Fuin.
Cf. Tree-beard's song in The Two Towers III
4: 'To the pine-trees upon the highland of Dorthonion I climbed in the Winter…'
52, 109, 124, 130, 135-7, 141-4, 146-8, 172, 177, 181-4, 186, 194-7, 231 Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin Heirloom of the
House of Hador, worn by Tъrin; also called the
Helm of Hador. 114, 251, 260, 284 Dragons 235, 300, 312, 320, 358, 371 Draugluin The great werewolf slain by Huan at
Tol-in-Gaurhoth, and in whose form Beren entered Angband. 211, 216-18 Drengist The long firth that pierced Ered
Lуmin, the west-fence of Hithlum. 56, 89, 101, 111, 115, 136, 140, 194 Dry River The river that once flowed out
under the Encircling Mountains from the primeval lake where was afterwards
Tumladen, the plain of Gondolin. 163, 281 Duilwen The fifth of the tributaries of Gelion in
Ossiriand. 147 Dъnedain 'The Edain of the West'; see Nъmenуreans. Dungartheb See Nan Dungortheb. Durin Lord of the Dwarves of
Khazad-dыm (Moria), 42, 364 Dwarf-road Road leading down into Beleriand from
the cities of Nogrod and Belegost, and crossing Gelion at the ford of Sarn
Athrad. 167, 171, 174 Dwarrowdelf 'Delving of the Dwarves': translation of
Khazad-dыm (Hadhodrond). 104 Dwarves 40-2, 103-7, 132-4, 148, 158-61,
167, 189, 231, 236, 250, 258, 287-91, 354, 357-8, 364, 371. Referring to the Petty-Dwarves: 248-53, 261, 284. Seven Fathers of the Dwarves: 40-2, 104.
For the Necklace of the Dwarves see Nauglamнr. For the Seven Rings of the Dwarves see Rings
of Power. See also Naugrim. Eд The World, the
material Universe; Eд, meaning in
Elvish 'It is' or 'Let it be', was the word of Ilъvatar when the World began
its existence. 10, 17-8, 23, 30, 34, 40, 48-9, 58, 78, 82, 86, 95, 99, 112 Eagles 44-5, 129, 144, 149, 221,
281, 299, 343 Eдrendil Called 'Halfelven', 'the
Blessed', 'the Bright', and 'the Mariner'; son of Tuor and Idril Turgon's
daughter; escaped from the sack of Gondolin and wedded Elwing daughter of Dior
at the Mouths of Sirion; sailed with her to Aman and pleaded for help against
Morgoth; set to sail the skies in his ship Vingilot bearing the Silmaril that
Beren and Lъthien brought out of Angband. The name means 'Lover of the Sea'.
122, 177, 298-300, 302, 304-9, 312, 315, 319-22, 325, 334, 341, 345, 348, 354. Lay of Eдrendil 304, 319 Eдrendur (1) A lord of Andъniл in Nъmenor. 331 Eдrendur (2) Tenth King of Arnor. 367 Eдrnil Thirty-second King of
Gondor. 369 Eдrnur Son of Eдrnil; last King of
Gondor, in whom the line of Anбrion came to its end. 369 Eдrrбmл 'Sea-wing', the name of Tuor's
ship. 303 Eдrwen Daughter of Olwл of
Alqualondл, Thingol's brother; wedded Finarfin of the Noldor. From Eдrwen
Finrod, Orodreth, Angrod, Aegnor and Galadriel had Telerin blood and were
therefore allowed entry into Doriath. 63, 130, 154 Easterlings Also called Swarthy Men; entered Beleriand from the East in the time after the
Dagor Bragollach, and fought on both sides in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad; given
Hithlum as a dwelling-place by Morgoth, where they oppressed the remnant of the
People of Hador. 189, 235, 239, 242, 264, 265, 280, 294 Echoing Mountains See Ered Lуmin. Echoriath 'The Encircling Mountains' about
the plain of Gondolin. 135, 166, 191, 281, 297-8 Echtelion Elf-lord of Gondolin, who in the
sack of the city slew and was slain by Gothmog Lord of Balrogs. 125, 237, 296,
300 Edain See Atani. Edrahil Chief of the Elves of
Nargothrond who accompanied Finrod and Beren on their quest, and died in the
dungeons of Tol-in-Gaurhoth. 206 Eglador The former name of Doriath,
before it was encompassed by the Girdle of Melian; probably connected with the
name Eglath. 111 Eglarest The southern of the Havens of the Falas on the
coast of Beleriand. 60, 109, 125, 142, 145, 239, 304 Eglath 'The Forsaken People', name
given to themselves by the Telerin Elves who remained in Beleriand seeking for
Elwл (Thingol) when the main host of the Teleri departed to Aman. 60, 288 Eilinel The wife of Gorlim the
Unhappy. 165-6 Eithel Ivrin 'Ivrin's Well', the source of the
river Narog beneath Ered Wethrin. 256, 261 Eithel Sirion 'Sirion's Well', in the eastern face of
Ered Wethrin, where was the great fortress of Fingolfin and Fingon (see Barad Eithel). 124, 140-1, 183, 193,
232-3 Ekkaia Elvish name of the Outer Sea,
encircling Arda; referred to also as the
Outer Ocean and the Encircling Sea.
32,40, 51, 65, 115-6, 121, 227 Elbereth The usual name of Varda in
Sindarin, 'Star-Queen'; cf. Elentбri.
19, 36 Eldaliл 'The Elven-folk', used as
equivalent to Eldar. 12, 54, 59,
71,150, 200, 222, 227-8, 232, 247, 315 Eldamar 'Elvenhome', the region of Aman in
which the Elves dwelt; also the great Bay of the same name. 61, 65, 67, 75-6,
79-80, 97, 160, 213, 306 Eldar According to Elvish legend
the name Eldar 'People of the Stars'
was given to all the Elves by the Vala Oromл (49). It came however to be used
to refer only to the Elves of the Three Kindreds (Vanyar, Noldor, and Teleri)
who set out on the great westward march from Cuiviйnen (whether or not they
remained in Middle-earth), and to exclude the Avari. The Elves of Aman, and all
Elves who ever dwelt in Aman, were called the High Elves (Tareldar) and Elves of the Light (Calaquendi); see Dark Elves, Ъmanyar. Passim; see entry Elves. Eldarin Of the Eldar; used in
reference to the language(s) of the Eldar. The occurrences of the term in fact
refer to Quenya, also called High Eldarin
and High-elven; see Quenya. Elder Days The First Age; also called the Eldest Days. 24, 33, 119, 134, 256,
258, 285, 289, 299, 365, 377-8 Elder King Manwл. 309, 312 Eledhwen See Morwen. Elemmнrл (1) Name of a star. 48 Elemmнrл (2) Vanyarin Elf, maker of the Aldudйniл, the Lament for the Two Trees.
84 Elendл A name of Eldamar. 65, 96,
130 Elendil Called the Tall; son of
Amandil, last lord of Andъniл in Nъmenor, descended from Eдrendil and Elwing
but not of the direct line of the Kings; escaped with his sons Isildur and
Anбrion from the Drowning of Nъmenor and founded the Nъmenуrean realms in
Middle-earth; slain with Gil-galad in the overthrow of Sauron at the end of the
Second Age. The name may be interpreted either as 'Elf-friend' (cf. Elendili) or as 'Star-lover'. 337,
340-2, 360-7, 370, 377. Heirs of Elendil
365 Elendili 'Elf-friends', name given to
those Nъmenуreans who were not estranged from the Eldar in the days of
Tar-Ancalimon and later kings; also called the
Faithful. 328-32, 335-7, 340-1, 361-2 Elendur Eldest son of Isildur, slain
with him at the Gladden Fields. 366 Elenna A (Quenya) name of Nъmenor,
'Starwards', from the guidance of the Edain by Eдrendil on their voyage to
Nъmenor at the beginning of the Second Age. 321, 345, 347 Elentбri 'Star-Queen', a name of Varda
as maker of the Stars. She is called thus in Galadriel's lament in Lуrien, The Fellowship of the Ring II 8. Cf. Elbereth, Tintallл. 48 Elenwл Wife of Turgon; perished in
the crossing of the Helcaraxл. 102, 160 Elerrнna 'Crowned with Stars', a name of Taniquetil. 32 Elf-friends The Men of the Three Houses of Bлor,
Haleth, and Hador, the Edain. 169, 172-4, 231, 243, 311. In the Akallabкth and in Of the Rings of Power used of those Nъmenуreans who were not
estranged from the Eldar; see Elendili.
At 375 the reference is no doubt to the Men of Gondor and the Dъnedain of the
North. Elostirion Tallest of the towers upon Emyn
Beraid, in which the palantir was
placed. 362 Elrond Son of Eдrendil and Elwing,
who at the end of the First Age chose to belong to the Firstborn, and remained
in Middle-earth until the end of the Third Age; master of Imladris (Rivendell)
and keeper of Vilya, the Ring of Air, which he had received from Gil-galad.
Called Master Elrond and Elrond Half-elven. The name means
'Star-dome'. 122, 306, 315, 322, 354-6, 366-75, 37S, Sons of Elrond 377 Elros Son of Eдrendil and
Elwing, who at the end of the First Age chose to be numbered among Men, and
became the first King of Nъmenor (called Tar-Minyatur),
living to a very great age. The name means 'Star-foam'. 305, 315, 322, 328-32,
336, 354, 360 Elu Sindarin form of Elwл.
58,103, 125, 288 Eluchнl 'Heir of Elu (Thingol)', name
of Dior, son of Beren and Lъthien. See Dior. Elurйd Elder son of Dior; perished
in the attack on Doriath by the sons of Fлanor. The name means the same as Eluchнl. 290, 292 Elurнn Younger son of Dior;
perished with his brother Elurйd. The name means 'Remembrance of Elu
(Thingol)'. 290,292 Elvenhome See Eldamar. Elves See especially 37-9,
48-51, 53, 99, 121, 326-7; and see also Children
of Ilъvatar, Eldar; Dark Elves. Elves of the Light: see Calaquendi. Elwл Surnamed Singollo 'Greymantle'; leader with his brother Olwл of the hosts of
the Teleri on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, until he was lost in Nan
Elmoth; afterwards Lord of the Sindar, ruling in Doriath with Melian; received
the Silmaril from Beren; slain in Menegroth by the Dwarves. Called (Elu)
Thingol in Sindarin. See Dark Elves,
Thingol. 53-8, 60-1, 103, 289 Elwing Daughter of Dior, who
escaping from Doriath with the Silmaril wedded Eдrendil at the Mouths of Sirion
and went with him to Valinor; mother of Elrond and Elros. The name means
'Star-spray'; see Lanlhir Lamath. 122,
178, 291-3, 302, 304-10, 315 Emeldir Called the Man-hearted; wife
of Barahir and mother of Beren; led the women and children of the House of Bлor
from Dorthonion after the Dagor Bragollach. (She was herself also a descendant
of Bлor the Old, and her father's name was Beren; this is not stated in the
text.) 187, 194 Emyn Beraid The Tower Hills' in the west of
Eriador; see Elostirion. 360-2 Enchanted Isles The islands set by the Valar in the Great Sea
eastwards of Tol Eressлa at the time of the Hiding of Valinor. 118, 306 Encircling Mountains See Echoriath. Encircling Sea See Ekkaia. Endor 'Middle Land',
Middle-earth. 101 Engwar 'The Sickly', one of the
Elvish names for Men, 119 Eцl Called the Dark Elf;
the great smith who dwelt in Nan Elmoth, and took Aredhel Turgon's sister to
wife; friend of the Dwarves; maker of the sword Anglachel (Gurthang); father of
Maeglin; put to death in Gondolin. 104,158-65, 247 Eцnwл One of the mightiest of the
Maiar; called the Herald of Manwл; leader of the host of the Valar in the
attack on Morgoth at the end of the First Age. 24, 309-14, 321, 353 Ephel Brandir 'The encircling fence of Brandir',
dwellings of the Men of Brethil upon Amon Obel; also called the Ephel. 266, 270-2 Ephel Dъath 'Fence of Shadow', the mountain-range
between Gondor and Mordor; also called the
Mountains of Shadow. 361-2, 368 Erchamion 'One-handed', the name of Beren
after his escape from Angband. 222, 225, 242, 292 Erech A hill in the west of
Gondor, where was the Stone of Isildur (see The
Return of the King V 2). 361 Ered Engrin 'The Iron Mountains' in the far north.
128, 135-6, 139, 181, 193 Ered Gorgoroth 'The Mountains of Terror', northward of Nan
Dungortheb; also called the Gorgoroth.
90, 109, 144, 157, 176, 198, 214, 246 Ered Lindon 'The Mountains of Linden', another name
for Ered Luin, the Blue Mountains.
147-8, 160, 167, 174, 238, 287, 290 Ered Lуmin 'The Echoing Mountains', forming the
west-fence of Hithlum. 123, 140 Ered Luin 'The Blue Mountains', also called Ered Lindon. After the destruction at
the end of the First Age Ered Luin formed the north-western coastal range of
Middle-earth. 56, 103, 107, 132-5, 147, 159, 167, 288, 354, 359 Ered Nimrais The White Mountains (nimrais 'white horns'), the great range
from east to west south of the Misty Mountains. 107 Ered Wethrin 'The Mountains of Shadow', 'The Shadowy
Mountains', the great curving range bordering Dor-nu-Fauglith (Ard-galen) on the
west and forming the barrier between Hithlum and West Beleriand. 123-5, 127,
133, 137, 140-1, 150, 171, 182-3, 193, 206, 212, 232, 234, 238, 249, 254, 256,
261, 278, 281, 295 Eregion 'Land of Holly' (called by Men Hollin); Noldorin realm in the Second
Age at the western feet of the Misty Mountains, where the Elven Rings were
made. 355-7 Ereinion 'Scion of Kings', the son of
Fingon, known always by his surname Gil-galad.
186, 239, 302 Erellont One of the three mariners who
accompanied Eдrendil on his voyages. 307 Eressлa See Tol Eressлa. Eriador The land between the Misty
Mountains and the Blue, in which lay the Kingdom of Arnor (and also the Shire
of the Hobbits). 55, 56, 104, 174, 330, 360, 366-7, 370, 376 Eru 'The One', 'He that is
Alone': Ilъvatar. 3, 4, 17-9, 23, 41-4, 82, 95, 99, 102, 112-3, 322, 327-8,
332, 335, 347; also in Children of Eru. Esgalduin The river of Doriath, dividing the
forests of Neldoreth and Region, and flowing into Sirion. The name means 'River
under Veil'. 105, 144, 157, 199, 225, 269, 289 Estл One of the Valier, the
spouse of Irmo (Lуrien); her name means 'Rest'. 18, 21,24, 68, 114 Estolad The land south of Nan Elmoth
where the Men of the followings of Bлor and Marach dwelt after they crossed the
Blue Mountains into Beleriand; translated in the text as 'the Encampment'.
171-5 Ezellohar The Green Mound of the Two Trees
of Valinor; also called Corollairл.
33,44, 84, 86 Faelivrin Name given to Finduilas by
Gwindor. 257 Faithful, The See Elendili. Falas The western coasts of Beleriand,
south of Nevrast. 60, 106, 111, 124, 142, 194, 232, 239, 259 Falathar One of the three mariners who
accompanied Eдrendil on his voyages. 307 Falathrim The Telerin Elves of the Falas,
whose lord was Cнrdan. 60 Falmari The Sea-elves; name of the
Teleri who departed from Middle-earth and went into the West. 54 Fлanor Eldest son of Finwл (the only
child of Finwл and Mнriel), half-brother of Fingolfin and Finarfin; greatest of
the Noldor, and leader in their rebellion; deviser of the Fлanorian script;
maker of the Silmarils; slain in Mithrim in the Dagor-nuin-Giliath. His name
was Curufinwл (curu 'skill'), and he gave this name to his fifth son, Curufin; but
he was himself known always by his mother's name for him, Fлanбro 'Spirit of Fire', which was given the Sindarin form Fлanor Chapters V-IX and XIII passim; see especially 63, 67-9, 71,
112. Elsewhere his name occurs chiefly in the
sons of Fлanor. Fлanturi 'Masters of Spirits', the Valar
Nбmo (Mandos) and Irmo (Lуrien). 21 Felagund The name by which King Finrod was
known after the establishment of Nargothrond; it was Dwarvish in origin (felak-gundu 'cave-hewer', but translated
in the text as 'Lord of Caves', 61). For references see Finrod. Finarfin The third son of Finwл, the younger of Fлanor's
half-brothers; remained in Aman after the Exile of the Noldor and ruled the
remnant of his people in Tirion. Alone among the Noldorin princes he and his
descendants had golden hair, derived from his mother Indis, who was a Vanyarin
Elf (see Vanyar). 63, 69, 75. 93-6,
100, 117, 202, 213, 310. Many other occurrences of the name of Finarfin relate
to his sons or his people. Finduilas Daughter of Orodreth, loved by
Gwindor; captured in the sack of Nargothrond, and killed by Orcs at the
Crossings of Teiglin. 257-9, 261-6,277 Fingolfin The second son of Finwл, the
elder of Fлanor's half-brothers; High King of the Noldor in Beleriand, dwelling
in Hithlum; slain by Morgoth in single combat, 63, 69, 74-7, 83, 93-5,v100-2,
115, 123, 126-8, 129, 133, 135-6, 140, 144, 154, 171, 177, 180-1, 183-7, 240.
Many other occurrences of the name of Fingolfin relate to his sons or his
people. Fingon The eldest son of Fingolfin,
called the Valiant; rescued Maedhros from Thangorodrim; High King of the Noldor
after the death of his father; slain by Gothmog in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 64,
94-6, 98, 101, 128-9, 137, 140, 144, 156, 166, 183, 186, 194, 198, 231-9, 302,
354 Finrod The eldest son of Finarfin,
called 'the Faithful' and 'the Friend of Men'. Founder and King of Nargothrond,
whence his name Felagund; encountered
in. Ossiriand the first Men to cross the Blue Mountains; rescued by Barahir in
the Dagor Bragollach; redeemed his oath to Barahir by accompanying Beren on his
quest; slain in defence of Beren in the dungeons of Tol-in-Gaurhoth. The
following references include those to Felagund
used alone: 64, 93, 96, 102, 127, 130, 133-4, 142-6, 148, 151, 154-5, 167-72,
176, 178, 182-3, 193, 197, 201-13, 223, 250, 259, 261, 264, 267-8, 284-5, 287 Finwл Leader of the Noldor on the
westward journey from Cuiviйnen; King of the Noldor in Aman; father of Fлanor,
Fingolfin, and Finarfin, slain by Morgoth at Formenos. 53-6, 60-71, 75-8, 83,
87, 92, 152; other references are to his sons or his house. Fнrimar 'Mortals', one of the Elvish
names for Men. 119 Firstborn, The The Elder Children of Ilъvatar, the Elves.
7, 9, 13, 34, 37-8, 41-2, 44, 48, 309, 315, 321, 325, 355, 370, 378 Followers, The The Younger Children of Ilъvatar, Men;
translation of Hildor. 7 Ford of Stones See Sarn
Athrad. Fords of Aros See Arossiach. Formenos 'Northern Fortress', the
stronghold of Fлanor and his sons in the north of Valinor, built after the
banishment of Fлanor from Tirion. 79, 83, 88, 152 Fornost 'Northern Fortress'.
Nъmenуrean city on the North Downs in Eriador. 361 Forsaken Elves See Eglath. Frodo The Ringbearer. 377 Fuinur A renegade Nъmenуrean who
became mighty among the Haradrim at the end of the Second Age, 363 Gabilgathol See Belegost. 104 Galadriel Daughter of Finarfin and sister of
Finrod Felagund; one of the leaders of the Noldorin rebellion against the
Valar; wedded Celeborn of Doriath and with him remained in Middle-earth after
the end of the First Age; keeper of Nenya, the Ring of Water, m Lothlуrien. 64,
93-4, 102, 134-5, 151-3, 155, 172, 204, 290, 315, 370-3 Galathilion 'The White Tree of Tirion, the image
of Telperion made by Yavanna for the Vanyar and the Noldor' 62, 324, 361 Galdor Called the Tall; son of Hador
Lуrindol and lord of Dor-lуmin after him; father of Hъrin and Huor; slain at
Eithel Sirion. 177, 183, 187, 190-3, 242, 257, 284, 311 galvorn The metal devised by Eцl. 159 Gandalf The name among Men of
Mithrandir, (the of the Istari (Wizards); see Olуrin. 372 Gates of Summer A great festival of Gondolin, on the eve of
which the city was assaulted 'by the forces of Morgoth. 300 Gelion The great river of East
Beleriand, rising in Himring and Mount Rerir and fed by the rivers of Ossiriand
flowing down from the Blue Mountains. 56-7, 103-4, 109, 132, 144-8, 167, 170,
174, 184, 229, 287-90 Gelmir (I) Elf of Nargothrond, brother of
Gwindor, captured in the Dagor Bragollach and afterwards put to death in front
of Eithel Sirion, as a provocation to its defenders, before the Nirnaeth
Arnoediad. 230, 233 Gelmir (2) Elf of the people of Angrod, who
with Arminas came to Nargothrond to warn Orodreth of its peril. 260 Gildor One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Gil-Estel 'Star of Hope', Sindarin name
for Eдrendil bearing the Silmaril in his ship Vingilot. 310 Gil-galad 'Star of Radiance', the name by
which Ereinion son of Fingon was afterwards known. After the death of Turgon he
became the last High King of the Noldor in Middle-earth, and remained in Lindon
after the end of the First Age; leader with Elendil of the Last Alliance of Men
and Elves and slain with him in combat with Sauron. 186, 239, 302, 305, 315,
330-1, 335, 359-60, 362-5, 369-70 Gimilkhвd Younger son of Ar-Gimilzфr and
Inzilbкth and father of Ar-Pharazфn, the last King of Nъmenor. 332 Gimilzфr See Ar-Gimilzфr. Ginglith River in West Beleriand flowing into the Narog
above Nargothrond. 204, 261 Gladden Fields Partial translation of Loeg Ningloron; the great stretches of reeds and iris (gladden) in
and about the Anduin, where Isildur was slain and the One Ring lost 367, 374 Glaurung The first of the Dragons of
Morgoth, called the Father of Dragons;
in the Dagor Bragollach, the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, and the Sack of Nargothrond;
cast his spell upon Tъrin and upon Nienor; slain by Tъrin at Cabed-en-Aras.
Called also the Great Worm and the Worm of Morgoth. 137, 177, 181-2,
184, 235-6, 261-5, 268, 271-9, 283-4, 296, 300 Glingal 'Hanging Flame', the image of
Laurelin made by Turgon in Gondolin. 151 Glirhuin A minstrel of Brethil. 283-4 Glуredhel Daughter of Hador Lуrindol of
Dor-lуmin and sister of Galdor; wedded Haldir of Brethil. 190 Glorfindel Elf of Gondolin, who fell to his
death in Cirith Thoronath in combat with a Balrog after the escape from the
sack of the city. The name means 'Golden-haired'. 237, 301-2 Golodhrim The Noldor. Golodh was the Sindarin form of Quenya Noldo, and -rim a
collective plural ending; cf. Annon-in-Gelydh,
the Gate of the Noldor. 160 Gondolin 'The Hidden Rock' (see Ondolindл), secret city of King Turgon
surrounded by the Encircling Mountains (Echoriath). 64, 125, 150-1, 157, 186,
191-3, 221, 231-2, 234, 237, 240, 252, 281-2, 295-302, 305, 315, 322 Gondolindrim The people of Gondolin. 166, 192, 234 Gondor 'Land of Stone', name of the
southern Nъmenуrean kingdom in Middle-earth, established by Isildur and Anбrion.
361-9, 376-7. City of Gondor: Minas
Tirith. 377 Gonnhirrim 'Masters of Stone', a Sindarin name
for the Dwarves. 103 Gorgoroth (1) See Ered
Gorgoroth. Gorgoroth (2) A plateau in Mordor, between the
converging Mountains of Shadow and Mountains of Ash. 363, 365, 368 Gorlim Called the Unhappy; one of
the twelve companions of Barahir on Dorthonion, who was ensnared by a phantom
of his wife Eilinel and revealed to Sauron the hiding-place of Barahir. 187,
195-7 Gorthaur The name of Sauron in Sindarin.
26,187, 353 Gorthol 'Dread Helm', the name that
Tъrin took as one of the Two Captains in the land of Dor-Cъarthol. 252 Gothmog Lord of Balrogs, high-captain of
Angband, slayer of Fлanor, Fingon, and Ecthelion. (The same name was borne in
the Third Age by the Lieutenant of Minas Morgul, The Return of the King V 6.) 125, 236, 238, 300 Greater Gelion One of the two tributary branches of
the river Gelion in the north, rising in Mount Rerir. 146 Great Lands Middle-earth. 324 Great River See Anduin. Green-elves Translation of Laiquendi; the Nandorin Elves of Ossiriand. For their origin see
107, and for the name 110, 133, 147-8, 167,170, 184, 238, 291 Greenwood the Great The great forest east of
the Misty Mountains, afterwards named Mirkwood. 360, 366, 371-2, 375 Grey-elven tongue See Sindarin. Grey-elves See Sindar. Grey Havens See (The)
Havens, Mithlond. Greymantle See Singollo, Thingol. Grinding Ice See Helcaraxл. Grond The great mace of Morgoth,
with which he fought Fingolfin; called the Hammer of the Underworld. The
battering-ram used against the Gate of Minas Tirith was named after it (The Return of the King V 4). 185 Guarded Plain See Talath
Dirnen. Guarded Realm See Valinor.
82, 98 Guilin Father of Gelmir and
Gwindor, Elves of Nargothrond. 230, 233, 253, 256, 261 Gundor Younger son of Hador Lуrindol,
lord of Dor-lуmin; slain with his father at Eithel Sirion in the Dagor
Bragollach. 177, 183, 311 Gurthang 'Iron of Death', name of Beleg's
sword Anglachel after it was reforged for Tъrin in Nargothrond, and from which
he was named Mormegil. 258, 262,
265-6, 273, 276-8 Gwaith-i-Mнrdain 'People of the Jewel-smiths', name of the fellowship of craftsmen in
Eregion, greatest of whom was Celebrimbor son of Curufin. 354-5 Gwindor Elf of Nargothrond, brother of
Gelmir; enslaved in Angband, but escaped and aided Beleg in the rescue of
Tъrin; brought Tъrin to Nargothrond; loved Finduilas Orodreth's daughter; slain
in the Battle or Tumhalad. 230, 232-4, 254-61 Hadhodrond The Sindarin name of Khazad-dыm
(Moria). 104,354 Hador Called Lуrindol 'Goldenhead', also Hador
the Golden-haired; lord of Dor-lуmin, vassal of Fingolfin; father of Galdor
father of Hъrin; slain at Eithel Sirion in the Dagor Bragollach. The House of
Hador was called the Third House of the
Edain. 177-8, 183, 187, 190, 193. House
of, People of, Hador 177, 189-90, 194, 231, 237-9, 243, 253, 265, 280, 308.
Helm of Hador: see Dragon-helm of Dor-lуmin. Haladin The second people of Men to
enter Beleriand; afterwards called the
People of Haleth, dwelling in the Forest of Brethil, also the Men of Brethil. 171, 174-5, 187,
190, 194, 234,238 Haldad Leader of the Haladin in their
defence against the attack on them by Orcs in Thargelion, and slain there;
father of the Lady Haleth. 174-6 Haldan Son of Haldar; leader of the
Haladin after the death of the Lady Haleth. 175 Haldar Son of Haldad of the Haladin,
and brother of the Lady Haleth; slain with his father in the Orc-raid on
Thargelion. 175-6 Haldir Son of Halmir of Brethil;
wedded Gidredhel, daughter of Hador of Dor-lуmin; slain in the Nirnaeth
Arnoediad. 190, 231-2, 234, 238 Haleth Called the Lady Haleth;
leader of the Haladin (who were named from her the People of Haleth) from
Thargelion to the lands west of Sirion. 175-6. House of, People of, Haleth 175-8, 190, 231, 266, 272-3 Half-elven Translation of Sindarin Peredhel, plural Peredhil, applied to Elrond and Elros, 304, 315, 322, 354, 357; and
to Eдrendil, 298 Halflings Translation of Periannath (Hobbits). 377 Halls of Awaiting The Halls of Mandos. 72 Halmir Lord of the Haladin, son of
Haldan; with Beleg of Doriath defeated the Orcs that came south from the Pass
of Sirion after the Dagor Bragollach. 190, 231 Handir Son of Haldir and Glуredhel,
father of Brandir the Lame; lord of the Haladin after Haldir's death; slain in
Brethil in battle with Orcs. 238, 260, 266 Haradrim The Men of Harad ('the South'),
the lands south of Mordor. 363 Hareth Daughter of Helmir of
Brethil; wedded Galdor of Dor-lуmin; mother of Hъrin and Huor. 190, 194 Hathaldir Called the Young; one of the
twelve companions of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Hathol Father of Hador Lуrindol. 177 Haudh-en-Arwen 'The Ladybarrow', the burial-mound of Haleth in
the Forest of Brethil. 176 Haudh-en-Elleth The mound in which Finduilas was buried, near
the Crossings of Teiglin. 267, 270-1, 275, 277 Haudh-en-Ndengin 'The Mound of Slain'
in the desert of Anfauglith, where were piled the bodies of the Elves and Men
that died in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 241-2 Haudh-en-Nirnaeth 'The Mound of Tears',
another name of Haudh-en-Ndengin. 241 Havens, The Brithombar and Eglarest on the coast
of Beleriand: 124, 133, 144, 186, 239. The Havens of Sirion at the end of the
First Age: 294, 305, 313. The Grey Havens (Mithlond)
in the Gulf of Lhыn: 359, 370-1, 378. Alqualondл, the Haven of the Swans or
Swanhaven, is also called simply The
Haven: 97, 101 Helcar The Inland Sea in the
northeast of Middle-earth, where once stood the mountain of the lamp of Illuin;
the mere of Cuiviйnen where the first Elves awoke is described as a bay in this
sea. 48, 54 Helcaraxл The strait between Araman and
Middle-earth; also referred to as the
Grinding Ice. 51-2, 60, 88, 100-1, 126, 136, 154, 160 Helevorn 'Black Glass', a lake in the
north of Thargelion, below Mount Rerir, where Caranthir dwelt. 132, 148, 184 Helluin The star Sirius. 48, 69 Herumor A renegade Nъmenуrean who became
mighty among the Haradrim at the end of the Second Age. 363 Herunъmen 'Lord of the West', Quenya name of
Ar-Adunakhфr. 330 Hidden Kingdom Name given both to Doriath, 135, 198, 200,277,
and to Gondolin, 156,298 High-elven See Quenya. High Elves See Eldar. 370 High Faroth See Taur-en-Faroth. Hildor 'The Followers', 'The
Aftercomers', Elvish name for Men, as the Younger Children of Ilъvatar. 114,
119 Hildуrien The land in the east of
Middle-earth where the first Men (Hildor)
awoke. 120, 169 Himlad 'Cool Plain', the region
where Celegorm and Curufin dwelt south of the Pass of Aglon. 147, 158, 161 Himring The great hill west of Maglor's Gap on which
was the stronghold of Maedhros; translated in the text as 'Ever-cold'.
131,147-8,157, 183-4, 214, 223, 231 Hнrilorn The great beech-tree in Doriath with three
trunks, in which Lъthien was imprisoned. The name means 'Tree of the Lady'.
208, 226 Hнsilуmл 'Land of Mist', Quenya name of
Hithlum. 140 Hithaeglir 'Line of Misty Peaks': the Misty
Mountains, or Mountains of Mist. (The form Hithaeglin
on the map to The Lord of the Rings
is an error.) 55, 104, 107, 360, 364, 366 Hither Lands Middle-earth (also called the Outer Lands). 57, 59-61, 296, 304,
311, 315, 323, 371 Hithlum 'Land of Mist' (see 140), the
region bounded on the east and south by Ered Wethrin and on the west by Ered
Lуmin; see Hнsilуmл. 52, 90, 123,
126-8, 130, 137, 140-1, 144, 146, 157, 171, 181-9, 193, 221, 231-4, 238-9,
242-4,254, 280, 281, 294-5 Hollin See Eregion. 354 Hollowbold Translation of Nogrod: 'hollow dwelling' (early English bold, noun related to the verb build).
104 Huan The great wolfhound of
Valinor that Oromл gave to Celegorm; friend and helper of Beren and Lъthien;
slew and slain by Carcharoth. The name means 'great dog, hound'. 209-18, 222,
225-6 Hunthor A Man of the Haladin in Brethil who accompanied
Tъrin in his attack on Glaurung at Cabed-en-Aras and was killed there by a
falling stone. 273 Huor Son of Galdor of
Dor-lуmin, husband of Rнan and father of Tuor; went to Gondolin with Hъrin his
brother; slain in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 150, 177, 190, 232, 236, 237, 242,
294, 296, 298, 301, 311 Hъrin Called Thalion 'the Steadfast', 'the Strong'; son of Galdor of Dor-lуmin,
husband of Morwen and father of Tъrin and Nienor; lord of Dor-lуmin, vassal of
Fingon. Went with Huor his brother to Gondolin; captured by Morgoth in the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad and set upon Thangorodrim for many years; after his release
slew Mоm in Nargothrond and brought the Nauglamнr to King Thingol. 150, 177,
191-4, 232-46, 252, 255-9, 261-7, 271, 274-6, 278-87, 294, 298, 311 Hyarmentir The highest mountain in the regions
south of Valinor. 81 Iant Iaur 'The Old Bridge' over the
Esgalduin on the northern borders of Doriath; also called the Bridge of Esgalduin, 144-5, 157 Ibun One of the sons of Mоm
the Petty-dwarf. 249, 251-2 Idril Called Celebrindal 'Silverfoot'; the daughter
(and only child) of Turgon and Elenwл; wife of Tuor, mother of Eдrendil, with
whom she escaped from Gondolin to the Mouths of Sirion; departed thence with
Tuor into the West 151, 160, 163, 165-6, 296-300, 303-4, 308, 315,322 Illuin One of the Lamps of the
Valar made by Aulл. Illuin stood in the northern part of Middle-earth, and
after the overthrow of the mountain by Melkor the Inland Sea of Helcar was
formed there. 30-1, 48, 59 Ilmarл A Maia, the handmaid of
Varda, 24 Ilmen The region above the air
where the stars are. 116-9, 349 Ilъvatar 'Father of All, Eru. 3-11,
17-8, 23, 25, 34-42, 46-50, 58, 70, 73, 74, 86, 93, 102, 121, 227, 313, 322-3,
326-7, 336, 344-5 Imlach Father of Amlach. 173 Imladris 'Rivendell' (literally, 'Deep Dale of the
Cleft'), Elrond's dwelling in a valley of the Misty Mountains. 282, 364,
367-70, 377 Indis Vanyarin Elf, close kin
of Ingwл; second wife of Finwл, mother of Fingolfin and Finarfin. 63, 69-70, 75 Ingwл Leader of the Vanyar, the
first of the three hosts of the Eldar on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen.
In Aman he dwelt upon Taniquetil, and was held High King of all the Elves.
53-4, 60, 62, 65, 69, 117, 310 Inziladыn Elder son of Ar-Gimilzфr and
Inzilbкth; afterwards named Tar-Palantir.
332 Inzilbкth Queen of
Ar-Gimilzфr; of the house of the lords of Andъniл. 331 Irmo The Vala usually named
Lуrien, the place of his dwelling. Irmo
means 'Desirer' or 'Master of Desire'. 21, 24, 68 Iron Mountains See Ered
Engrin. Isengard Translation (to represent the
language of Rohan) of the Elvish name Angrenost.
361, 373-7 Isil Quenya name of the
Moon. 114-5 Isildur Elder son of Elendil, who
with his father and his brother Anбrion escaped from the Drowning of Nъmenor
and founded m Middle-earth the Nъmenуrean realms in exile; lord of Minas Ithil;
cut the Ruling Ring from Sauron's hand; slain by Orcs in the Anduin when the
Ring slipped from his finger. 337, 342, 346, 360-8, 374. Heirs of Isildur 369, 373. Heir
of Isildur=Aragorn 377 Istari The Wizards. See Curunнr, Saruman; Mithrandir, Gandalf,
Olуrin; Radagast. 372 Ivrin The lake and falls
beneath Ered Wethrin where the river Narog rose. 140, 257. Pools of Ivrin 132, 257, 264, 296. Falls of Ivrin 142, 206. See Eithel
Ivrin. kelvar An Elvish word retained in
the speeches of Yavanna and Manwл in Chapter II: 'animals, living things that
move'. 43-4 Kementбri 'Queen of the Earth', a title of
Yavanna. 21, 33-5, 44 Khazвd The name of the Dwarves in
their own language (Khuzdul). 103 Khazad-dыm The great mansions of the Dwarves of
Durin's race in the Misty Mountains (Hadhodrond,
Moria). See Khazвd; dыm is probably a plural or collective, meaning
'excavations, halls, mansions'. 42, 104, 354 Khоm Son of Mоm the
Petty-dwarf, slam by one of Tъrin's outlaw band. 249 King's Men Nъmenуreans hostile to the Eldar and
the Elendili. 328-9, 332 Kinslaying, The The slaying of the Teleri by the Noldor at
Alqualondл. 98, 100-1, 120, 130, 152, 154, 166, 169, 188 Ladros The lands to the northeast of
Dorthonion that were granted by the Noldorin Kings to the Men of the House of
Bлor. 177 Laer Cъ Beleg 'The Song of the Great Bow', made by Tъrin
at Eithel Ivrin in memory of Beleg Cъthalion. 256 Laiquendi 'The Green-elves' of Ossiriand. 110 Lalaith 'Laughter', daughter of Hъrin
and Morwen who died in childhood. 242 Lammoth 'The Great Echo', region north of
the Firth of Drengist, named from the echoes of Morgoth's cry in his struggle
with Ungoliant. 89-90, 123 Land of Shadow See Mordor. Land of the Dead that Live See
Dor Firn-i-Guinar. Land of the Star Nъmenor. 339, 341 Lanthir Lamath 'Waterfall of Echoing Voices', where Dior
had his house in Ossiriand, and after which his daughter Elwing ('Star-spray')
was named. 289 Last Alliance The league made at the end of the Second
Age between Elendil and Gil-galad to defeat Sauron. 364 Laurelin 'Song of Gold',
the younger of the Two Trees of Valinor. 34, 64, 82, 114-6, 151 Lay of Leithian The long poem concerning the lives of Beren
and Lъthien from which the prose account in The
Silmarillion was derived. Leithian
is translated 'Release from Bondage'. 195, 198, 203, 206-8, 226 Legolin The third of the tributaries
of Gelion in Ossiriand. 147 lembas Sindarin name of the waybread
of the Eldar (from earlier lennmbass
'journey-bread'; in Quenya coimas
'life-bread'). 247, 251, 256 Lenwл The leader of the Elves from
the host of the Teleri who refused to cross the Misty Mountains on the
west-ward journey from Cuiviйnen (the Nandor); father of Denethor. 56, 108 Lhыn River in Eriador flowing
into the sea in the Gulf of Lhыn.354, 360 Linaewen 'Lake of birds', the great mere in
Nevrast. 141 Lindon A name of Ossiriand in the First Age;
see 147. After the tumults at the end of the First Age the name Lindon was
retained for the lands west of the Blue Mountains that still remained above the
Sea: 354, 355, 359, 370 Lindуriл Mother of Inzilbкth. 331 Little Gelion One of the two tributary branches of
the river Gelion in the north, rising in the Hill of Himring. 146 Loeg Ningloron 'Pools of the golden water-flowers'; see Gladden Fields. lуmelindi Quenya word meaning
'dusk-singers', nightingales. 57 Lуmion 'Son of Twilight', the Quenya
name that Aredhel gave to Maeglin. 159 Lonely Isle See Tol Eressлa. Lord of Waters See Ulmo. Lords of the West See Valar. Lorellin The lake in Lуrien in Valinor
where the Vala Estл sleeps by day. 21 Lorgan Chief of the Easterling Men
in Hithlum after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad, by whom Tuor was enslaved. 294 Lуrien (1) The name of the gardens and
dwelling-place of the Vala Irmo, who was himself usually called Lуrien. 18, 21,
24, 57, 68, 106, 114, 289 Lуrien (2) The land ruled by Celeborn and
Galadriel between the rivers Celebrant and Anduin. Probably the original name
of this land was altered to the form of the Quenya name Lуrien of the gardens
of the Vala Irmo in Valinor. In Lothlуrien the Sindarin word loth 'flower' is prefixed. 370 Lуrindol 'Goldenhead';
see Hador. Losgar The place of the burning of
the ships of the Teleri by Fлanor, at the mouth of the Firth of Drengist, 101,
111, 123, 127, 140, 152, 154 Lothlann 'The wide and empty', the great
plain north of the March of Maedhros. 147, 184, 255 Lothlуrien 'Lуrien of the Blossom'; see Lуrien (2). 370 Luinil Name of a star (one shining
with a blue light). 48 Lumbar Name of a star. 48 Lъthien The daughter of King Thingol
and Melian the Maia, who after the fulfilment of the Quest of the Silmaril and
the death of Beren chose to become mortal and to share his fate. See Tinъviel. 103, 108, 147, 177, 195,
199-203, 208-30, 242, 290-2, 305, 309, 315, 322 Mablung Elf of Doriath, chief captain of
Thingol, friend of Tъrin; called 'of the Heavy Hand' (which is the meaning of
the name Mablung); slain in Menegroth
by the Dwarves. 133, 224-6, 230, 244, 267-9, 277-8, 284, 289-90 Maedhros The eldest son of Fлanor, called
the Tall; rescued by Fingon from Thangorodrim; held the Hill of Himring and the
lands about; formed the Union of Maedhros that ended in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad;
bore one of the Silmarils with him to his death at the end of the First Age.
63, 93, 126-32, 135-6, 140, 144-8, 167, 171, 184, 189, 214, 229-35, 239, 292,
305, 310, 313-4 Maeglin 'Sharp Glance', son of Eцl and Aredhel Turgon's
sister, born in Nan Elmoth; became mighty in Gondolin, and betrayed it to
Morgoth; slain in the sack of the city by Tuor. See Lуmion. 104, 159-66, 192, 237, 247, 297-9 Maglor The second son of Fлanor, a
great singer and minstrel; held the lands called Maglor's Gap; at the end of
the First Age seized with Maedhros the two Silmarils that remained in
Middle-earth, and cast the one that he took into the Sea. 63, 93, 98, 133, 135,
138, 148, 167, 184, 222, 236, 305-6, 310, 313-4 Maglor's Gap The region between the northern arms of
Gelion where there were no hills of defence against the North. 135,148,184 Magor Son of Malach Aradan; leader
of the Men of the following of Marach who entered West Beleriand. 172, 177 Mahal The name given to Aulл by
the Dwarves. 42 Mбhanaxar The Ring of Doom outside the gates of
Valmar, in which were set the thrones of the Valar where they sat in council.
33, 50, 52, 77, 86-8, 91, 95, 112 Mahtan A great smith of the Noldor,
father of Nerdanel the wife of Fлanor. 69, 75 Maiar Ainur of lesser degree than
the Valar (singular Maia). 11, 23-6,
30, 57, 61, 83, 91, 105, 108, 111, 114, 229, 289, 292, 322, 353 Malach Son of Marach; given the
Elvish name Aradan. 171, 177 Malduin A tributary of the Teiglin; the
name probably means 'Yellow River'. 251 Malinalda 'Tree of Gold', a name of Laurelin.
33 Mandos The place of the dwelling in
Aman of the Vala properly called Nбmo, the Judge, though this name was seldom
used, and he himself was usually referred to as Mandos. Named as Vala: 18,
21-3,47, 52, 70, 73, 77-8, 87, 98, 113, 118, 121, 129-30, 154, 227, 308, 316.
Named as the place of his dwelling (including Halls of Mandos; also Halls
of Awaiting, Houses of the Dead):
22, 38, 42, 52, 61, 68-9, 73, 99, 121, 125, 227, 289. With reference to the
Doom of the Noldor and the Curse of Mandos: 150, 154-5, 166, 169, 201, 205,
213, 297 Manwл The chief of the Valar,
called also Sъlimo, the Elder King, the
Ruler of Arda. Passim; see especially 11, 18-9, 35, 70, 129 Marach Leader of the third host of
Men to enter Beleriand, ancestor of Hador Lуrindol. 171-2, 180 March of Maedhros The open lands to the
north of the headwaters of the river Gelion, held by Maedhros and his brothers
against attack on East Beleriand; also called the eastern March. 131-2, 147 Mardil Called the Faithful; the
first Ruling Steward of Gondor. 369 Mar-nu-Falmar 'The Land under the Waves', name of
Nъmenor after the Downfall. 347 Melian A Maia, who left Valinor and
came to Middle-earth; afterwards the Queen of King Thingol in Doriath, about
which she set a girdle of enchantment, the Girdle of Melian; mother of Lъthien,
and foremother of Elrond and Elros. 24-5, 57-8, 61, 103-6, 109, 110-1, 121,
130, 135, 144-5, 151-4, 158, 172, 176, 182, Chapter XIX passim, 229-30, Chapters XXI, XXII passim, 315, 322 Melkor The Quenya name for the great
rebellious Vala, the beginning of evil, in his origin the mightiest of the
Ainur; afterwards named Morgoth, Bauglir,
the Dark Lord, the Enemy, etc. The meaning of Melkor was 'He who arises in Might'; the Sindarin form was Belegur, but it was never used, save in
a deliberately altered form Belegurth
'Great Death'. Passim (after the rape
of the Silmarils usually called Morgoth);
see especially 4-5, 8, 25, 50, 51, 70-1, 90-2, 117, 251, 320 Men See especially 37-8,
74,119-21,167-70, 178, 319-20, 326-7; and see also Atani, Children of Ilъvatar, Easterlings. Menegroth 'The Thousand Caves', the hidden
halls of Thingol and Melian on the river Esgalduin m Doriath; see especially
58, 106-8, 111-2, 125, 130, 134, 145, 155, 200, 203, 208, 217, 222-6, 229,
243-7, 252, 267, 269, 286-91 Meneldil Son of Anбrion, King of Gondor.
368 Menelmacar 'Swordsman of the Sky', the
constellation Orion. 48 Meneltarma 'Pillar of Heaven', the mountain in
the midst of Nъmenor, upon whose summit was the Hallow of Eru Ilъvatar. 322-4,
329, 332-3, 336, 343, 345, 348 Meres of Twilight See Aelin-uial. Mereth Aderthad The 'Feast of Reuniting' held by Fingolfin near
the Pools of Ivrin. 132-3 Mickleburg Translation of Belegost: 'great fortress'. 104 Middle-earth The lands to the east of the Great Sea;
also called the Hither Lands, the Outer
Lands, the Great Lands, and Endor.
Passim. Mоm The Petty-dwarf, in
whose house (Bar-en-Danwedh) on Amon Rыdh Tъrin dwelt with the
outlaw band, and by whom their lair was betrayed to the Orcs; slain by Hъrin in
Nargothrond. 248-53, 284 Minas Anor 'Tower of the Sun' (also simply Anor), afterwards called Minas Tirith;
the city of Anбrion, at the feet of Mount Mindolluin. 361-2, 365-8, 377 Minas Ithil 'Tower of the Moon' afterwards
called Minas Morgul; the city of Isildur, built on a shoulder of the Ephel
Dъath. 361-2, 368 Minas Morgul 'Tower of Sorcery' (also simply Morgul), name of Minas Ithil after its
capture by the Ringwraiths. 368-9, 377 Minastir See Tar-Minastir. Minas Tirith (1) 'Tower of Watch', built by
Finrod Felagund on Tol Sirion; see Tol-in-Gaurhoth.
142, 187-9, 251 Minas Tirith (2) Later name of Minas Anor. 297.
Called the City of Gondor. 377 Mindeb A tributary of Sirion, between
Dimbar and the Forest of Neldoreth. 144, 246 Mindolluin 'Towering Blue-head', the great
mountain behind Minas Anor. 361, 377 Mindon Eldalieva 'Lofty
Tower of the Eldaliл', the tower of Ingwл in the city of Tirion; also simply the Mindon. 62,76,91,96,100 Mнriel (1) The first wife of Finwл, mother of
Fлanor; died after Fлanor's birth. Called Serindл 'the Broideress', 63, 67-8,
75 Mнriel (2) Daughter of Tar-Palantir, forced
into marriage by Ar-Pharazфn, and as his queen named Ar-Zimraphel; also called Tar-Mнriel.
345-6 Mirkwood See Greenwood the Great. Misty Mountains See Hithaeglir. Mithlond The Grey Havens', harbours of the
Elves on the Gulf of Lhыn; also referred to as the Havens. 354, 359, 371, 378 Mithrandir 'The Grey Pilgrim', Elvish name of
Gandalf (Olуrin), one of the Istari (Wizards). 373-7 Mithrim The name of the great lake in
the east of Hithlum, and also of the region about it and of the mountains to
the west, separating Mithrim from Dor-lуmin. The name was originally that of
the Sindarin Elves who dwelt there. 124-8, 131, 242, 294 Mordor The Black Land', also called the Land of Shadow; Sauron's realm east
of the mountains of the Ephel Dъath. 330, 347, 357, 360-8, 376 Morgoth The Black
Enemy', name of Melkor, first given to him by Fлanor after the rape of the
Silmarils. 26, 71, 88 and thereafter passim.
See Melkor. Morgul See Minas Morgul Moria 'The
Black Chasm', later name for Khazad-dыm (Hadhodrond). 104, 354, 357, 364 Moriquendi 'Elves of the Darkness'; see Dark Elves. 54, 58, 103, 125 Mormegil 'The Black Sword', name given to
Tъrin as captain of the host of Nargothrond; see Gurthang. 258-9, 265-7, 271, 275, 278 Morwen Daughter of Baragund (nephew of
Barahir, the father of Beren); wife of Hъrin and mother of Tъrin and Nienor;
called Eledhwen (translated in the
text as 'Elfsheen') and the Lady of
Dor-lуmin. 178, 187, 194, 241-3, 258-60, 264-5, 267-9, 277, 280, 283, 285 Mountain of Fire See Orodruin. Mountains: of Aman, of
Defence, see Pelуri; of the East, see Orocarni; of Iron, see Ered Engrin; of Mist, see Hithaeglir; of Mithrim, see Mithrim; of Shadow, see Ered Wethrin and Ephel Dъath; of Terror, see Ered
Gorgoroth. Mount Doom See Amon
Amarth. Music of the Ainur See Ainulindalл. Nahar The horse of the Vala Oromл,
said by the Eldar to be so named on account of his voice. 22, 37, 49-50, 54,
85, 108 Nбmo A Vala, one of the Aratar;
usually named Mandos, the place of
his dwelling. Nбmo means 'Ordainer,
Judge'. 21 Nandor Said to mean 'Those who turn
back': the Nandor were those Elves from the host of the Teleri who refused to
cross the Misty Mountains on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, but of whom a
part, led by Denethor, came long afterwards over the Blue Mountains and dwelt
in Ossiriand (the Green-elves). 55, 107, 146, 244 Nan Dungortheb Also Dungortheb;
translated in the text as 'Valley of Dreadful Death'. The valley between the
precipices of Ered Gorgoroth and the Girdle of Melian. 90, 144, 157, 198, 214 Nan Elmoth The forest east of the river Celon
where Elwл (Thingol) was enchanted by Melian and lost; afterwards the
dwelling-place of Eцl. 58, 61, 104, 158-62, 170, 247,289 Nan-tathren 'Willow-vale', translated as 'the Land
of Willows', where the river Narog flowed into Sirion. In Treebeard's song in The Two Towers III 4 Quenya forms of the
name are used: in the willow-meads of
Tasarinan; Nan-tasarion. 142, 239, 301-2 Nargothrond 'The great underground fortress on the
river Narog', founded by Finrod Felagund and destroyed by Glaurung; also the
realm of Nargothrond extending east and west of the Narog. 134-5, 142-6, 151,
155, 167, 170, 176, 182-3, 188-9, 193, 203-7, 210, 214, 223, 230, 232-4, 239,
Chapter XXI passim, 284-5, 287, 295,
297, 354 Narn i Hоn Hъrin 'The Tale of the Children of
Hъrin', the long lay from which Chapter XXI was derived; ascribed to the poet
Dirhavel, a Man who lived at the Havens of Sirion in the days of Eдrendil and
perished in the attack of the sons of Fлanor. Narn signifies a tale made in verse, but to be spoken and not sung,
243 Narog The chief river of West
Beleriand, rising at Ivrin under Ered Wethrin and flowing into Sirion in
Nan-tathren. 109, 133-4, 142, 145, 203-6, 268, 284 Narsil The sword of Elendil, made
by Telchar of Nogrod, that was broken when Elendil died in combat with Sauron;
from the shards it was reforged for Aragorn and named Anduril. 364-5 Narsilion The Song of the Sun and Moon. 113 Narya One of the Three Rings of
the Elves, the Ring of Fire or the Red Ring; borne by Cнrdan and
afterwards by Mithrandir. 357, 370, 378 Nauglamнr 'The Necklace of the Dwarves', made
for Finrod Felagund by the Dwarves, brought by Hъrin out of Nargothrond to
Thingol, and the cause of his death. 134, 285-7, 291 Naugrim 'The Stunted People', Sindarin
name for the Dwarves. 103-5, 107-9, 132, 159, 161, 231, 236, 289 Nazgыl See Ring-wraiths. Necklace of the Dwarves See Nauglamнr. Neithan Name given to himself by Tъrin
among the outlaws, translated as 'The Wronged' (literally 'one who is
deprived'). 245 Neldoreth The great beech-forest forming the
northern part of Doriath; called Taur-na-Neldor
in Treebeard's song in The Two Towers
HI 4. 57, 103, 105, 109, 145, 199, 208, 242, 289 Nйnar Name of a star. 48 Nen Girith 'Shuddering Water', name given to
Dimrost, the falls of Celebros in the Forest of Brethil. 270-4, 276 Nenning River in West Beleriand,
reaching the sea at the Haven of Eglarest. 142, 239, 259 Nenuial 'Lake of Twilight', in Eriador,
where the river Baranduin rose, and beside which the city of Annъminas was
built. 361 Nenya One of the Three Rings of
the Elves, the Ring of Water, borne by Galadriel; also called the Ring of Adamant, 357, 370 Nerdanel Called the Wise; daughter of
Mahtan the smith, wife of Fлanor. 69, 71, 75 Nessa One of the Valier, the
sister of Oromл and spouse of Tulkas. 18, 22, 31 Nevrast The region west of Dor-lуmin,
beyond Ered Lуmin, where Turgon dwelt before his departure to Gondolin. The
name, meaning 'Hither Shore', was originally that of all the northwestern coast
of Middle-earth (the opposite being Haerast
'the Far Shore', the coast of Aman). 133-5, 141, 149-50, 156, 239, 240, 295,
302 Nienna One of the Valier, numbered
among the Aratar; Lady of pity and mourning, the sister of Mandos and Lуrien;
see especially 21-2. 18, 21-2, 25, 33, 70, 87, 113 Nienor 'Mourning', the daughter of
Hъrin and Morwen and sister of Tъrin; spell-bound by Glaurung at Nargothrond
and in ignorance of her past wedded Tъrin in Brethil in her name Nнniel; cast
herself into the Teiglin. 243, 260, 263-4, 267-79 Nimbrethil Birch-woods in Arvernien in the
south of Beleriand. Cf. Bilbo's song at Rivendell: 'He built a boat of timber
felled in Nimbrethil to journey in …' (The
Fellowship of the Ring II 1). 304 Nimloth (1) The White Tree of Nъmenor, of which a
fruit taken by Isildur before it was felled grew into the White Tree of Minas
Ithil. Nimloth 'White Blossom' is the
Sindarin form of Quenya Ninquelуtл,
one of the names of Telperion. 62, 324, 331-2, 336-8, 342, 361-2 Nimloth (2) Elf of Doriath who wedded Dior
Thingol's Heir; mother of Elwing; slain in Menegroth in the attack by the sons
of Fлanor. 290-1 Nimphelos The great pearl given by Thingol to
the lord of the Dwarves of Belegost. 105 Nнniel 'Tear-maiden', the name
that Tъrin, ignorant of their relationship, gave to his sister; see Nienor. Ninquelуtл 'White Blossom', a name of
Telperion; see Nimloth (1). 33 niphredil A white flower that bloomed in
Doriath in starlight when Lъthien was born. It grew also on Cerin Amroth in
Lothlуrien (The Fellowship of the Ring
II 6, 8). 103 Nirnaeth Arnoediad 'Tears Unnumbered' (also
simply the Nirnaeth), the name given to the ruinous fifth
battle in the Wars of Beleriand. 166, 234-8, 242, 254, 257, 294, 297-8 Nivrim That part of Doriath that
lay on the west bank of Sirion. 145 Noegyth Nibin 'Petty-dwarves' (see also under Dwarves). 250, 284 Nogrod One of the two cities of the
Dwarves in the Blue Mountains; translation into Sindarin of Dwarvish Tumunzahar. See Hollowbold. 104, 107, 132, 158, 161, 215, 231, 250, 285-8, 291 Noldolantл 'The Fall of the Noldor', a lament
made by Maglor son of Fлanor. 98 Noldor The Deep Elves, the second
host of the Eldar on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, led by Finwл. The
name (Quenya Noldo, Sindarin Golodh) meant 'the Wise' (but wise in
the sense of possessing knowledge, not in the sense of possessing sagacity,
sound judgement). For the language of the Noldor see Quenya, Passim; see especially 35, 54, 63-8, 137, 356 Nуm, Nуmin 'Wisdom' and 'the Wise', the names
that the Men of Bлor's following gave to Finrod and his people in their own
tongue. 168 North Downs In Eriador, where was built the
Nъmenуrean city of Fornost 360 Nulukkizdоn Dwarvish name of Nargothrond. 284 Nъmenor (In full Quenya form Nъmenуrл, 321-2, 347.) 'Westernesse',
'Westland', the great island prepared by the Valar as a dwelling-place for the
Edain after the ending of the First Age. Called also Anadыnл, Andor, Elenna, the Land of the Star, and after its
downfall Akallabкth, Atalantл, and Mar-nu-Falmar. 62, 177, 321-37, 341-7,
354, 358-63, 368, 375 Nъmenуreans The Men of Nъmenor, called also Dъnedain. 24, 321-35, 337-9, 342-7, 355,
359-65,367-70,372,376-7 Nurtalл Valinуreva 'The Hiding of Valinor'. 118 Ohtar 'Warrior', esquire of
Isildur, who brought the shards of Elendil's sword to Imladris. 367 Oiolossл 'Ever-snow-white', the most
common name among the Eldar for Taniquetil, rendered into Sindarin as Amon Uilos; but according to the Valaquenta it was the uttermost tower of
Taniquetil.. 19, 32 Oiomъrл A region of mists near to the
Helcaraxл. 88 Olуrin A Maia, one of the Istari (Wizards);
see Mithrandir, Gandalf, and cf. The Two
Towers IV 5: 'Olуrin I was in my youth in the West that is forgotten'. 25-6 olvar An Elvish word retained in
the speeches of Yavanna and Manwл in Chapter II, meaning 'growing things with
roots in the earth', 43-4 Olwл Leader together with his
brother Elwл (Thingol) of the hosts of the Teleri on the westward journey from
Cuiviйnen; lord of the Teleri of Alqualondл in Aman. 54-8, 60-1, 63-5, 97-100,
107, 130, 152 Ondolindл 'Stone Song', the original Quenya
name of Gondolin. 149 Orcs Creatures of Morgoth. Passim; for their origin see 50, 106 Orfalch Echor The great ravine through the Encircling
Mountains by which Gondolin was approached. 296 Ormal One of the Lamps of the
Valar made by Aulл, Ormal stood in the south of Middle-earth. 29-30 Orocarni The Mountains of the East of
Middle-earth (the name means "the Red Mountains'). 49 Orodreth The second son of Finarfin;
warden of the tower of Minas Tirith on Tol Sirion; King of Nargothrond after
the death of Finrod his brother; father of Finduilas; slain in the Battle of
Tumhalad. 64, 93, 142, 187-8, 206, 209, 213, 230, 257-61, 266 Orodruin 'Mountain of Blazing Fire' in
Mordor, in which Sauron forged the Ruling Ring; called also Amon Amarth 'Mount Doom'. 357, 363-6 Oromл A Vala, one of the Aratar; the great
hunter, leader of the Elves from Cuiviйnen, spouse of Vana. The name means
'Horn-blowing' or 'Sound of Horns', cf. Valarуma;
in The Lord of the Rings it appears
in the Sindarin form Araw. See
especially 22-3. 18, 22-3, 31. 37, 47, 49-51, 53-5, 59, 63, 65, 79-82, 85, 93,
106, 108, 114, 184, 209, 225 Oromлt A hill pear the haven of Andъniл in
the west of Nъmenor, on which was built the tower of Tar-Minastir. 332 Orthanc 'Forked Height', the Nъmenуrean
tower in the Circle of Isengard. 361-2, 372 Osgiliath 'Fortress of the Stars', the
chief city of ancient Gondor, on either side of the river Anduin. 361-4, 368 Ossл A Maia, vassal of Ulmo, with whom he
entered the waters of Arda; lover and instructor of the Teleri. 24, 36, 60-1,
64, 98, 141, 240, 321 Ossiriand 'Land of Seven Rivers' (these
being Gelion and its tributaries flowing down from the Blue Mountains), the
land of the Green-elves. Cf. Treebeard's song in The Two Towers III 4: 'I wandered in Summer in the elm-woods of
Ossiriand. Ah! the light and the music in the Summer by the Seven Rivers of
Ossir!' See Lindon. 108, 110, 133,
144-8, 167, 170-1, 182, 184, 229, 239, 289-91, 354 Ost-in-Edhil 'Fortress of the Eldar', the city of
the Elves in Eregion. 354-6 Outer Lands Middle-earth (also called the Hither Lands). 35, 36, 47, 88, 102,
115, 308 Outer Sea See Ekkaia. Palantнri 'Those that watch from afar', the
seven Seeing Stones brought by Elendil and his sons from Nъmenor; made by
Fлanor in Aman (see 69, and The Two
Towers III 11). 342, 362 Pelargir 'Garth of Royal Ships,' the Nъmenуrean haven
above the delta of Anduin. 329 Pelуri 'The fencing or defensive
heights', called also the Mountains of
Aman and the Mountains of Defence, raised
by the Valar after the destruction of their dwelling on Almaren; ranging in a
crescent from north to south, close to the eastern shores of Aman. 32, 34, 46,
59, 62, 80-1, 88, 115-7, 210 People of Haleth See Haladin and Haleth. Periannath The Halflings (Hobbits). 316 Petty-dwarves Translation of Noegyth Nibin. See also under Dwarves. Pharazфn See Ar-Pharazфn. Prophecy of the North The Doom of the Noldor,
uttered by Mandos on the coast of Araman. 98 Quendi Original Elvish name for
Elves (of every kind, including the Avari), meaning 'Those that speak with
voices'. 37-8, 48-53, 57, 61, 73, 76, 114, 121-2, 169 Quenta Silmarillion 'The History of the
Silmarils.' 355 Quenya The ancient tongue, common to
all Elves, in the form that it took in Valinor; brought to Middle-earth by the
Noldorin exiles, but abandoned by them as a daily speech, especially after the
edict of King Thingol against its use; see especially 133, 155. Not named as
such in this book, but referred to as Eldarin,
21, 323, 347; High Eldarin, 322-3; High-elven, 266, 330; the tongue of Valinor, 133; the speech of the Elves of Valinor, 149;
the tongue of the Noldor, 155, 159; the High Speech of the West, 155 Radagast One of the Istari (Wizards). 372,
375 Radhruin One of the twelve companions of
Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Ragnor One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Ramdal 'Wall's End' (see Andram), where the dividing fall across
Beleriand ceased' 146,184 Rбna 'The Wanderer', a name of
the Moon among the Noldor. 114 Rathlуriel 'Golden-bed', later name for the
river Ascar, after the treasure of Doriath was sunk in it 147, 291 Rauros 'Roaring Spray', the great
falls in the river Anduin. 369 Red Ring, The See Narya. Region The dense forest forming the
southern part of Doriath. 57, 105, 110, 145, 158, 288-9 Rerir Mountain to the north of
Lake Helevorn, where rose the greater of the two tributary branches of Gelion.
132,146-8,184 Rhovanion 'Wilderland', the wide region east
of the Misty Mountains. 360-1 Rhudaur Region in the north-east of
Eriador. 360 Rнan Daughter of Belegund
(nephew of Barahir, the father of Beren); wife of Huor and mother of Tuor;
after Huor's death died of grief on the Haudh-en-Ndengin. 177, 187, 194, 242,
294 Ringil The sword of Fingolfin. 185 Ring of Doom See Mбhanaxar. Rings of Power 356-7, 373-5; The One Ring, Great Ring, or Ruling
Ring: 330, 347, 356-8, 363, 365-6, 370-1, 374-7; Three Rings of the Elves: 357, 370-1, 378 (see also Narya, the Ring of Fire, Nenya, the Ring of Adamant, and Vilya, the Ring of Sapphire). Seven Rings of the Dwarves 357-8, 371,
375. Nine Rings of Men 330, 357-8,
371, 375 Ringwil The stream that flowed into
the river Narog at Nargothrond. 146 Ring-wraiths The slaves of the Nine Rings of Men and
chief servants of Sauron; also called Nazgыl
and Ъlairi. 330, 361, 368, 372, 376 Rivendell Translation of Imladris. Rivil Stream falling northwards
from Dorthonion and flowing into Sirion in the Fen of Serech. 233, 237. Rivil's Well 197 Rochallor The horse of Fingolfin. 184 Rohan 'The Horse-country', later
name in Condor for the great grassy plain formerly called Calenardhon. 369, 377 Rohirrim 'The Horse-lords' of Rohan. 369 Romenna 'Haven on the east coast of
Nъmenor. 331, 336-7, 341, 346 Rothinzil Adыnaic (Nъmenуrean) name of
Eдrendil's ship Vingilot, with the same meaning, 'Foam-flower'. 319-21 Rъmil A Noldorin sage of Tirion,
the first deviser of written characters (cf. The Lord of the Rings Appendix E II); to him is attributed the Ainulindalл. 67-8 Saeros Nandorin Elf, one of the
chief counsellors of Thingol in Doriath; insulted Tъrin in Menegroth, and by
him pursued to his death. 244 Salmar A Maia who entered Arda with Ulmo;
maker of Ulmo's great horns, the Ulumъri.
36 Sarn Athrad 'Ford of Stones', where the Dwarf-road
from Nogrod and Belegost crossed the river Gelion. 104, 167, 287, 291 Saruman 'Man of Skill', the name among
Men of Curunнr (which it translates),
one of the Istari (Wizards). 372‑3 Sauron 'The Abhorred' (in Sindarin
called Gorthaur); greatest of the servants of Melkor, in his origin a Maia of Aulл.
26, 47, 52, 169, 187-8, 195-8, 206-8, 210-3, 216, 330, 333-40, 343, 346-8,
353-77 Secondborn, The The Younger Children of Ilъvatar, Men. 44 Seeing Stones See Palantнri. Serech The great fen north of the
Pass of Sirion, where the river Rivil flowed in from Dorthonion. 124, 182, 197,
233, 236, 282 seregon 'Blood of Stone', a plant with
deep red flowers that grew on Amon Rыdh. 248, 252 Serindл 'The Broideress'; see Mнriel (I). Seven Fathers of the Dwarves See
Dwarves. Seven Stones See Palantнri. Shadowy Mountains See Ered Wethrin. Shepherds of the Trees Ents. 45, 290 Sickle of the Valor See Valacirca. Silmarien Daughter of Tar-Elendil, the
fourth King of Nъmenor; mother of the first lord of Andъniл and ancestress of
Elendil and his sons Isildur and Anбrion. 331 Silmarils The three jewels made by Fлanor
before the destruction of the Two Trees of Valinor, and filled with their
light; see especially 72-3. 35, 72-5, 78, 83, 86-93, 116. 121-2, 126, 130, 136,
152, 202-5, 209, 219-21, 224-6, 230, 243, 286-93, 302-3, 305-6, 310, 313-4 Silpion A name of Telperion. 33 Silvan Elves Also called Woodland Elves. They appear to have been in origin those Nandorin
Elves who never passed west of the Misty Mountains, but remained in the Vale of
Anduin and in Greenwood the Great; see Nandor
354, 370 Sindar The Grey-elves. The name was
applied to all the Elves of Telerin origin whom the returning Noldor found in
Beleriand, save for the Green-elves of Ossiriand. The Noldor may have devised
this name because the first Elves of this origin whom they met with were in the
north, under the grey skies and mists about Lake Mithrim (see Mithrim); or perhaps because the
Grey-elves were not of the Light (of Valinor) nor yet of the Dark (Avari), but
were Elves of the Twilight (58). But
it was held to refer to Elwл's name Thingol
(Quenya Sindacollo, Singollo
'Grey-cloak'), since he was acknowledged high king of all the land and its
peoples. The Sindar called themselves Edhil,
plural Edhel. 22, 32, 58, 103, 108,
120, 125, 133, 137-42, 148, 150, 153-5, 164, 171, 182,188-90, 242, 277, 289,
291, 294, 353 Sindarin The Elvish tongue of Beleriand,
derived from the common Elvish speech but greatly changed through long ages
from Quenya of Valinor; acquired by the Noldorin exiles in Beleriand (see 133,
155). Called also the Grey-elven tongue,
the tongue of the Elves of Beleriand, etc. 36, 62-3, 133, 140, 149, 155,
177, 187, 199, 250, 319, 322 Singollo 'Grey-cloak', 'Grey-mantle'; see Sindar, Thingol, Sirion 'The Great River' flowing
from north to south and dividing West from East Beleriand. Passim; see especially 52, 141-2, 145. Falls of Sirion 203, 285. Fens
of Sirion 203. Gates of Sirion
146. Havens of Sirion 294, 304-5,
313. Mouths of Sirion 60, 142, 190,
192, 239, 293, 302, 304. Pass of Sirion
135, 141, 182, 193, 215, 234, 237, 260, 265. Vale of Sirion 56, 124, 135, 140, 149, 248, 265, 301 Sons of Fлanor See Maedhros,
Maglor, Celegorm, Caranthir, Curufin, Amrod, Amras, Often referred to as a
group, especially after the death of their father: 69, 74-5, 77, 93, 126-7,
131-3, 144, 147-8, 152-4, 157, 159-61, 180, 183-4, 204, 213-4, 223, 230-1, 235,
238-9, 292-3, 302,305,313-4 Soronъmл Name of a constellation. 48 Stone of the Hapless Memorial stone of Tъrin
and Nienor by Cabed Naeramarth in the river Teiglin. 283-4 Straight Road, Straight Way The path over the Sea
into the Ancient or True West, on which the ships of the Elves might still sail
after the Downfall of Nъmenor and the Changing of the World. 348-9 Strongbow Translation of Cъthalion, name of Beleg. Sъlimo Name of Manwл, rendered in
the Valaquenta as 'Lord of the Breath
of Arda' (literally 'the Breather'). 18, 35, 95 Swanhaven See Alqualondл. Swarthy Men See Easterlings. 189 Talath Dirnen The Guarded Plain, north of Nargothrond.
176, 203, 208, 252, 258, 261 Talath Rhunen 'The East Vale', earlier name of
Thargelion. 148 Taniquetil 'High White Peak', highest of the
mountains of the Pelуri and the highest mountain of Arda, upon whose summit are
Ilmarin, the mansions of Manwл and Varda; also called the White Mountain, the Holy Mountain, and the Mountain of Manwл. See Oiolossл,
19, 32, 35, 47, 51, 65, 81-4, 88, 93, 96, 129, 307, 344, 348 Tar-Ancalimon Fourteenth King of Nъmenor, in whose time
the Nъmenуreans became divided into opposed parties. 328 Taras Mountain on a promontory
of Nevrast; beneath it was Vinyamar, the dwelling of Turgon before he went to
Gondolin. 140, 295 Tar-Atanamir Thirteenth King of Nъmenor, to whom the
Messengers of the Valar came. 327-8 Tar-Calion Quenya name of Ar-Pharazфn. 333, 359 Tar-Ciryatan Twelfth King of Nъmenor 'the
Shipbuilder'. 327 Tar-Elendil Fourth King of Nъmenor, father of
Silmarien, from whom Elendil was descended. 331 Tar-Minastir Eleventh King of Nъmenor, who aided
Gil-galad against Sauron. 329-30, 332 Tar-Minyatur Name of Elros Half-elven as first King
of Nъmenor. 336 Tar-Mнriel See Mнriel (2). Tarn Aeluin The lake on Dorthonion where Barahir
and his companions made their lair, and where they were slain. 195-6 Tar-Palantir Twenty-third King of Nъmenor, who
repented of the ways of the Kings, and took his name in Quenya: 'He who looks
afar'. See Inziladыn. 332, 337 Taur-en-Faroth The wooded highlands to the west of the
river Narog above Nargothrond; also called the
High Faroth. 134, 145, 203 Taur-im-Duinath 'The Forest between Rivers', name of the wild
country south of the Andram between Sirion and Gelion. 147, 184 Taur-nu-Fuin Later name of Dorthonion: 'the Forest
under Night'. Cf. Deldъwath. 186,
206, 212, 215-6, 221, 223, 245, 253-6 Tauron 'The Forester' (translated in
the Valaquenta 'Lord of Forests'), a
name of Oromл among the Sindar. Cf. Aldaron.
22 Teiglin A tributary of Sirion, rising
in Ered Wethrin and bounding the Forest of Brethil on the south; see also Crossings of Teiglin. 142, 145, 176,
190, 245, 251, 261, 265, 271, 273,279, 284 Telchar The most renowned of the
smiths of Nogrod, the maker of Angrist and (according to Aragorn in The Two Towers III 6) of Narsil. 107,
215 Telemnar Twenty-sixth King of Gondor. 368 Teleri The third and greatest of
the three hosts of the Eldar on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, led by
Elwл (Thingol) and Olwл. Their own name for themselves was Lindar the Singers; the name Teleri
the Last-comers, the Hindmost, was given to them by those before them on the
march. Many of the Teleri did not leave Middle-earth; the Sindar and the Nandor
were Telerin Elves in origin. 36, 54-7, 60-4, 71, 79-80, 83, 96-8, 101, 107,
111,117, 159‑60, 164, 306-9, 310, 315, 354 Telperion The elder of the Two Trees of
Valinor. 34, 47, 62, 82, 114-5, 247, 324, 361-2. Called the White Tree 62 Telumendil Name of a constellation. 48 Thalion 'Steadfast, Strong'; see Hъrin. Thalos The second of the
tributaries of Gelion in Ossiriand. 147, 167 Thangorodrim 'Mountains of Tyranny', reared by Morgoth
above Angband; broken down in the Great Battle at the end of the First Age. 90,
109, 125-8, 136,139-40, 180-3, 215, 221, 232, 234, 240, 254, 312, 320, 353-4,
364 Thargelion 'The Land beyond Gelion', between
Mount Rerir and the river Ascar, where Caranthir dwelt; called also Dor Caranthir and Talath Rhunen. 148, 158, 171, 174, 184 Thingol 'Grey-cloak', 'Grey-mantle'
(in Quenya Sindacollo, Singollo), the
name by which Elwл, leader with his brother Olwл of the host of the Teleri from
Cuiviйnen and afterwards King of Doriath, was known in Beleriand; also called the Hidden King. See Elwл. 58, 103-10, 125, 130-1, 134, 145,
151-5, 157, 172, 176-7, 182, 190, 199-204, 208-9, 217, 222-7, 229-30, 243-7,
260, 267,269,280, 285-92, 297, 315 Thorondor 'King of Eagles'. Cf. The Return of the King VI 4: 'Old
Thorondor, who built his eyries in the inaccessible peaks of the Encircling
Mountains when Middle-earth was young'. See Crissaegrim.
129, 149, 186, 191, 221, 281, 297, 301, 312 Thousand Caves See Menegroth. Thranduil Sindarin Elf, King of the Silvan
Elves in the north of Greenwood the Great (Mirkwood); father of Legolas, who
was of the Fellowship of the Ring. 371 ThurIngwлthil 'Woman of Secret Shadow', the messenger of
Sauron from Tol-in-Gaurhoth who took the form of a great bat, and in whose
shape Lъthien entered Angband. 216 Tilion A Maia, steersman of the
Moon. 114-7 Tintallл 'The Kindler', a name of Varda
as maker of the Stars. She is called thus in Galadriel's lament in Lуrien, The Fellowship of the Ring II 8. Cf. Elbereth, Elentбri. 48 Tinъviel The name that Beren gave to
Lъthien: a poetic word for the nightingale, 'Daughter of Twilight'. See Lъthien. Tirion 'Great Watch-tower', the
city of the Elves on the hill of Tъna in Aman. 62, 65-7, 74-5, 77-8, 83, 91,
94-6, 117, 134-5, 149-52, 205, 297, 307, 361 Tol Eressлa 'The Lonely Isle' (also simply Eressлa), on which the Vanyar and the
Noldor and afterwards the Teleri were drawn across the ocean by Ulmo, and which
was at last rooted in the Bay of Eldamar near to the coasts of Aman. On Eressлa
the Teleri long remained before they went to Alqualondл; and there dwelt many
of the Noldor and the Sindar after the ending of the First Age. 50, 60-2, 64,
118, 306, 310, 315, 321, 324, 331, 345, 349, 355, 362 Tol Galen 'The Green Isle' in the river
Adurant in Ossiriand, where Beren and Lъthien dwelt after their return. 147,
229, 290 Tol-in-Gaurhoth 'Isle of Werewolves', name of Tol Sirion after
its capture by Sauron. 188, 208, 210 Tol Morwen Island in the sea after the drowning
of Beleriand on which stood the memorial stone of Tъrin, Nienor, and Morwen.
284 Tol Sirion Island in the river in the Pass of
Sirion on which Finrod built the tower of Minas Tirith; after its capture by
Sauron named Tol-in-Gaurhoth. 133, 142, 188 Tulkas A Vala, the 'greatest in
strength and deeds of prowess', who came last to Arda; also called Astaldo. 18, 22, 29-31, 47, 51, 52,
70-1, 77-80, 85-7 Tumhalad Valley in the land between the
rivers Ginglith and Narog, where the host of Nargothrond was defeated. 261 Tumladen 'The Wide Valley', the hidden vale
in the Encircling Mountains in the midst of which stood the city of Gondolin. (Tumladen was afterwards the name of a
valley in Gondor: The Return of the King
V 1). 135, 149, 160, 191, 221, 296, 301 Tumunzahar See Nogrod. 104 Tъna The green hill in the
Calacirya on which Tirion, the city of the Elves, was built. 62, 65-7, 75, 79,
91, 96, 100,117, 135, 149, 307, 324, 344 Tuor Son of Huor and Rнan,
fostered by the Grey-elves of Mithrim; entered Gondolin bearing the message of
Ulmo; wedded Idril Turgon's daughter, and with her and their son Eдrendil
escaped from the destruction of the City; in his ship Eдrrбmл set sail into the
West. 177, 242, 294-304, 308 Turambar 'Master of Doom', the last name
taken by Tъrin, during his days in the Forest of Brethil. 266, 270-80, 284 Turgon Called the Wise; the second
son of Fingolfin; dwelt at Vinyamar in Nevrast before he departed in secret to
Gondolin, which he ruled until his death in the sack of the city; father of
Idril the mother of Eдrendil 64, 93, 100-2, 133, 135, 140-1, 149-51,155-7, 160,
163-5, 186, 191-3, 221, 231-2, 234-7, 240, 247, 281-2, 294-300, 302, 308, 315 Tыr Haretha The burial-mound of the Lady Haleth in
the Forest of Brethil (see Haudh-en-Arwen).
176 Tъrin Son of Hъrin and Morwen;
chief subject of the lay named Narn i Hоn Hъrin from which Chapter XXI was
derived. For his other names see Neithan,
Gorthol, Agarwaen, Mormegil, Wildman of the Woods, Turambar. 177, 178, 205,
242-66, 271, 274-80, 284 Twilight Meres See Aelin-uial. Two Kindreds Elves and Men. 307-8, 319, 366 Two Trees of Valinor 33-4, 45-6, 53-4, 58,
61-2, 65, 71-2, 78, 83-4, 86, 109, 111-6, 119, 151, 288, 296, 302, 336-7 Uinen A Maia, the Lady of the
Seas, spouse of Ossл. 24, 36, 60, 98 Ъlairi See Ring-wraiths. Uldor Called the Accursed; son of
Ulfang the Black; slain by Maglor in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 232, 235-7,
311 Ulfang Called the Black; a
chieftain of the Easterlings, who with his three sons followed Caranthir, and
proved faithless in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 231, 235 Ulfast Son of Ulfang the Black,
slain by the sons of Bor in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 235 Ulmo A Vala, one of the Aratar,
called Lord of Waters and King of the
Sea, The name was interpreted by the Eldar to mean 'The Pourer' or 'The
Rainer'. See especially 19-20, 36. 8-10, 18-24, 36, 44, 51, 52, 59-61, 64, 70,
97, 116, 120, 133-5, 141, 146, 149-52, 187, 190, 240, 256, 260, 294-8, 301-2,
305-6, 308 Ulumъri The great horns of Ulmo made by the Maia Salmar.
19, 36, 59 Ulwarth Son of Ulfang the Black, slain
by the sons of Bor in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 189, 235 Ъmanyar Name given to those Elves who
went on the westward Journey from Cuiviйnen but did not reach Aman: 'Those not
of Aman', beside Amanyar 'Those of
Aman'. 54, 58 Ъmarth 'Ill-fate', a fictitious name
for his father given out by Tъrin in Nargothrond. 257 Umbar Great natural haven and
fortress of the Nъmenуreans south of the Bay of Belfalas. 334 Undying Lands Aman and Eressлa; also called the Deathless Lands. 308, 320, 324, 345,
348 Ungoliant The great spider, destroyer with
Melkor of the Trees of Valinor. Shelob in The
Lord of the Rings was 'the last child of Ungoliant to trouble the unhappy
world' (The Two Towers IV 9). 79-80,
84, 85, 88-90, 100, 109, 116, 144, 157,198,307 Union of Maedhros The league formed by
Maedhros to defeat Morgoth that ended in the Nirnaeth Arnoediad 230 Urthel One of the twelve companions
of Barahir on Dorthonion. 187 Urulуki Quenya word meaning
'fire-serpent', dragon. 137, 294-304, 308 Utumno The first great stronghold of
Melkor, in the north of Middle-earth, destroyed by the Valar. 31, 37, 46, 51-2,
81, 91, 114, 139 Vairл 'The Weaver', one of the
Valier, the spouse of Nбmo Mandos. 18, 21 Valacirca 'The Sickle of the Valar', name of
the constellation of the Great Bear. 48, 211 Valandil Youngest son of Isildur; third
King of Arnor. 367 Valaquenta 'Account of the Valar', a short work
treated as a separate entity from The
Silmarillion proper. Valar 'Those with Power', 'The
Powers' (singular Vala); name given
to those great Ainur who entered into Eд at the beginning of Time, and assumed
the function of guarding and governing Arda. Called also the Great Ones, the Rulers of Arda, the Lords of the West, the Lords of
Valinor. Passim; see especially 10-12, 37, 81-2, and see also Ainur, Aratar. Valaraukar 'Demons of Might' (singular Valarauko), Quenya form corresponding to
Sindarin Balrog. 26 Valarуma The horn of the Vala Oromл. 22,
37, 85, 108-9 Valier 'The Queens of the Valar'
(singular Valie); a term used only in
the Valaquenta. 18, 20, 23 Valimar See Valmar. Valinor The land of the Valar in Aman,
beyond the mountains of the Pelуri; also called the Guarded Realm. Passim; see especially 32-3, 117 Valmar The city of the Valar in
Valinor; the name also occurs in the form Valimar.
In Galadriel's lament in Lуrien (The
Fellowship of the Ring II 8) Valimar is made equivalent to Valinor. 21-3,
33, 51, 57, 64, 70, 76-9, 82-4, 94, 117, 227-8, 307-8 Vбna One of the Valier, the
sister of Yavanna and spouse of Oromл; called the Ever-young. 18, 23, 114 Vanyar The first host of the Eldar
on the westward journey from Cuiviйnen, led by Ingwл. The name (singular Vanya) means 'the Fair', referring to
the golden hair of the Vanyar; see Finarfin.
35, 55, 59, 62-5, 69, 71, 83-4, 91, 112-4, 117, 155, 163, 310,315 Varda 'The Exalted', 'The Lofty';
also called the Lady of the Stars.
Greatest of the Valier, the spouse of Manwл, dwelling with him on Taniquetil.
Other names of Varda, as maker of the Stars, were Elbereth, Elentбri, Tintallл. See especially 18-9, 18-9, 23-4, 29,
32, 34-6, 47-8, 54, 62, 73, 83-4, 86, 93, 113-6, 211, 313-6 Vбsa 'The Consumer', a name of
the Sun among the Noldor. 114 Vilya One of the Three Rings of
the Elves, the Ring of Air, borne by Gil-galad and afterwards by Elrond; also
called The Ring of Sapphire. 357, 370 Vingilot (In full Quenya form Vingilуtл). 'Foam-flower', the name of Eдrendil's ship; see Rothinzil. 305, 310, 312, 319 Vinyamar The house of Turgon in Nevrast under
Mount Taras. The meaning is probably 'New Dwelling'. 135, 141, 150, 155, 295-7 Voronwл 'The Steadfast', Elf of
Gondolin, the only mariner to survive from the seven ships sent into the West
after the Nirnaeth Arnoediad; met with Tuor at Vinyamar and guided him to
Gondolin. 240, 295 Westernesse See Anadыnл, Nъmenor. White Council The Council of the Wise in the Third Age
formed to oppose Sauron. 373-5 White Mountain See Taniquetil. White Tree See Telperion, Galathilion, Nimhth (1). The White Trees of Minas Ithil
and Minas Anor: 337, 342, 361, 364-8, 378 Wildman of the Woods Name adopted by Tъrin when
he first came among the Men of Brethil. 265 Wilwarin Name of a constellation. The
word meant 'butterfly' in Quenya, and the constellation was perhaps Cassiopeia.
48 Wizards See Istari. 372 Woodland Elves See Silvan
Elves. Yavanna 'Giver of fruits'; one of the
Valier, numbered among the Aratar; the spouse of Aulл; called also Kementбri See especially 20-1. 18, 20-3,
29-30, 33-5, 43-7, 57, 62, 82, 86-8, 90, 103, 113-4, 120, 321, 324, 362 Year of Lamentation The year of the
Nirnaeth Arnoediad. 151, 243 APPENDIX Elements in Quenya and Sindarin NamesThese notes have been compiled for those who take an interest in the
Eldarin languages, and The Lord of the
Rings is extensively drawn upon for illustration. They are necessarily very
compressed, giving an air of certainty and finality that is not altogether
justified; and they are very selective, this depending both on considerations
of length and the limitations of the editor's knowledge. The headings are not
arranged systematically by roots or in Quenya or Sindarin forms, but somewhat
arbitrarily, the aim being to make the component elements of names as readily
identifiable as possible. adan (plural
Edain) in Adanedhel, Aradan, Dъnedain. For its meaning and history see Atani in the Index. aelin 'lake, pool' in Aelin-uial; cf. lin (2). aglar 'glory, brilliance' in Dagor Aglareb, Aglarond. The form m
Quenya, alkar, has transposition of
the consonants: to Sindarin aglareb
corresponds Alkarinquл. The root is kal- 'shine', q.v. aina 'holy' in Ainur, Ainulindalл. alda 'tree' (Quenya) in Aldaron, Aldudйniл, Malinalda, corresponding to Sindarin galadh (seen in Caras Galadon and the Galadrim
of Lothlуrien). alqua 'swan' (Sindarin alph) in Alqualondл; from a root alak-
'rushing' occurring also in Ancalagon. amarth 'doom' in Amon Amarth, Cabed Naeramarth, Ъmarth,
and in the Sindarin form of Tъrin's name 'Master of Doom', Turamarth. The Quenya form of the word appears in Turambar. amon 'hill', a Sindarin word
occurring as the first element of many names; plural emyn in Emyn Beraid. 445 anca 'jaws' in Ancalagon (for the second element in
this name see alqua). an(d) 'long' in Andram, Anduin; also in Anfalas ('Lang-strand') in Gondor, Cair Andros ('ship of long-foam') an
island in Anduin, and Angerthas 'long
rune-rows'. andъnл 'sunset, west' in Andъniл, to which corresponds in
Sindarin annun, cf. Annъminas, and Henneth Annun 'window of the sunset' in Ithilien. The ancient root of
these words, ndu, meaning 'down, from
on high', appears also in Quenya numen
'the way of the sunset, west' and in Sindarin dun 'west', cf. Dъnedain,
Adыnaic adun in Adunakhфr, Anadыnл was a loan from Eldarin speech. anga 'iron', Sindarin ang, in Angainor, Angband, Anghabar, Anglachel, Angrist, Angrod, Anguirel,
Gurthang; angren 'of iron' in Angrenost,
plural engrin in Ered Engrin. anna 'gift' in Annatar, Melian, Yavanna; the same stem
m Andor 'Land of Gift'. annon 'great door or gate', plural
ennyn, in Annon-in-Gelydh; cf. Morannon
the 'Black Gate' of Mordor and Sirannon
the 'Gate-stream' of Moria. ar- 'beside, outside'
(whence Quenya ar 'and', Sindarin a), probably in Araman 'outside Aman'; cf. also (Nirnaeth) Arnoediad
'(Tears) without reckoning'. ar(a)- 'high, noble, royal'
appears in a great many names, as Aradan,
Aredhel, Argonath, Arnor, etc.; extended stem arat- appearing in Aratar,
and in arato 'champion, eminent man',
e.g. Angrod from Angarбto and Finrod from Findarбto; also aran 'king' in Aranrъth.
Ereinion 'scion of kings' (name of Gil-galad) has the plural of aran; cf. Fornost Erain 'Norbury of the Kings' in Arnor. The prefix Ar- of the Adыnaic names of the Kings of
Nъmenor was derived from this. arien (the Maia of the Sun) is
derived from a root as- seen also in
Quenya бrл 'sunlight'. atar 'father' in Atanatбri (see Atani in Index), Ilъvatar. band 'prison, duress' m Angband; from original mbando, of which the Quenya form appears
in Mandos (Sindarin Angband=Quenya Angamando). bar 'dwelling' in Bar-en-Danwedh. The ancient word mbar (Quenya mar, Sindarin bar) meant
the 'home' both of persons and of peoples, and thus appears in many
place-names, as Brithombar, Dimbar
(the first element of which means 'sad, gloomy'), Eldamar, Val(i)mar, Vinyamar, Mar-nu-Falmar. Mardil, name of the
first of the Ruling Stewards of Gondor, means 'devoted to the house' (i.e. of
the Kings). barad 'tower' in Barad-dыr, Barad Either Barad Nimras; the
plural in Emyn Beraid. beleg 'mighty' in Beleg, Belegaer, Belegost, Laer Cъ Beleg. brago 'sudden' in Dagor Bragollach. brethil probably means 'silver
birch'; cf. Nimbrethil the birchwoods
in Arvernien, and Fimbrethil, one of
the Entwives. brith 'gravel' m Brithiach, Brithombar, Brithon. (For many names
beginning with C see entries under K) calen (galen) the usual Sindarin word for 'green', in Ard-galen, Tol Galen, Calenardhon; also
in Parth Galen ('Green Sward') beside
Anduin and Pinnath Gelin ('Green
Ridges') in Gondor. See kal-. cam (from kamba) 'hand', but specifically of the
hand held cupped in the attitude of receiving or holding, in Camlost, Erchamion. carak- This root is seen in Quenya carca 'fang', of which the Sindarin form
carch occurs in Carcharoth, and also in Carchost
('Fang Fort', one of the Towers of the Teeth at the entrance to Mordor). Cf. Caragdыr, Carach Angren ('Iron Jaws',
the rampart and dike guarding the entrance to Udun in Mordor), and Helcaraxл. caran 'red', Quenya carnл, in Caranthir, Carnil, Orocarni; also in Caradhras, from caran-rass,
the 'Red-horn' in the Misty Mountains, and Carnimirie
'red-jewelled', the rowan-tree m Treebeard's song. The translation of Carcharoth in the text as 'Red Maw' must
depend on association with this word; see carak-. celeb 'silver' (Quenya telep, telpл, as in Telperion) in Celeborn,
Celebrant, Celebros. Celebrimbor means 'silver-fist', from the adjective celebrin 'silver' (meaning not 'made of
silver' but 'like silver, in hue or worth') and paur (Quenya quare)
'fist' often used to mean 'hand'; the Quenya form of the name was Telperinquar. Celebrindal has celebrin and tal, dal 'foot'. coron 'mound' in Corollairл (also called Coron Oiolairл, which latter word
appears to mean 'Ever-summer', cf. Oiolossл);
cf. Cerin Amroth, the great mound in
Lothlуrien. cъ 'bow' in Cъthalion, Dor Cъarthol, Laer Cъ Beleg. cuiviл 'awakening' in Cuiviйnen (Sindarin Nen Echui). Other
derivatives of the same root are Dor Firn‑i‑Guinar;
coire, the first beginning of Spring, Sindarin echuir. The Lord of the Rings Appendix D; and coimas 'life-bread', Quenya name of lembas. cul- 'golden-red' in Culъrien. curu 'skill' in Curuftn(we), Curunнr. dae 'shadow' in Dor Daedeloth, and perhaps m Daeron. dagor 'battle'; the root is ndak-, cf. Haudh-en-Ndengin. Another derivative is Dagnir (Dagnir Glaurunga
'Glaurung's Bane'). del 'horror* in Deldъwath; deloth 'abhorrence' in Dor Daedeloth. dоn 'silent' in Dor Dнnen; cf. Rath Dнnen, the Silent Street in Minas Tirith, and Amon Dоn, one of the beacon-hills of
Gondor. dol 'head' in Lуrindol; often applied to hills and
mountains, as in Dol Guldur, Dolmed,
Mindolluin (also Nardol, one of
the beacon-hills of Gondor, and Fanuidhol,
one of the Mountains of Moria). dфr 'land' (i.e. dry land
as opposed to sea) was derived from ndor;
it occurs in many Sindarin names, as Doriath,
Dorthonion, Eriador, Gondor, Mordor, etc. In Quenya the stem was blended
and confused with a quite distinct word nуrл
meaning 'people'; in origin Valinуrл
was strictly 'the people of the Valar', but Valandor
'the land of the Valar', and similarly Nъmen(n)уrл
'people of the West', but Nъmendor
'land of the West'. Quenya Endor 'Middle-earth'
was from ened 'middle' and ndor; this in Sindarin became Ennor (cf. ennorath 'middle lands' in the chant A Elbereth Gilthoniel). draug 'wolf' in Draugluin. dъ 'night, dimness' in Deldъwath, Ephel Dъath. Derived from
earlier dцmл, whence Quenya lуmл; thus Sindarin dъlin 'nightingale' corresponds to lуmelindл. duin '(long) river' in Anduin, Baranduin, Esgalduin, Malduin,
Taur-im-Duinath. dыr 'dark' in Barad-dыr, Caragdыr, Dol Guldur; also in
Durthang (a castle in Mordor). лar 'sea' (Quenya) in Eдrendil, Eдrrбmл, and many other names.
The Sindarin word gaer (in Belegaer) is apparently derived from the
same original stem. echor in Echoriath 'Encircling Mountains' and Orfalch Echor; cf. Rammas
Echor 'the great wall of the outer circle' about the Pelennor Fields at
Minas Tirith. edhel 'elf (Sindarin) in Adanedhel, Aredhel, Glуredhel, Ost-in-Edhil;
also in Peredhil 'Half-elven'. eithel 'well' m Eithel Ivrin, Eithel Sirion, Barad Eithel; also
in Mitheithel, the river Hoarwell in
Eriador (named from its source). See kel-. кl, elen 'star'. According to Elvish
legend, ele was a primitive
exclamation 'behold!' made by the Elves when they first saw the stars. From
this origin derived the ancient words кl
and elen, meaning 'star', and the
adjectives elda and elena, meaning 'of the stars'. These
elements appear in a great many names. For the later use of the name Eldar see the Index. The Sindarin
equivalent of Elda was Edhel (plural Edhil), q.v.; 'but the
strictly corresponding form was Eledh,
which occurs in Eledhwen. er 'one, alone', in Amon Ereb (cf, Erebor, the Lonely Mountain), Erchamion,
Eressлa, Eru. ereg 'thorn, holly' in Eregion, Region. esgal 'screen, hiding' in Esgalduin. falas 'shore, line of surf'
(Quenya falassл) in Falas, Belfalas; also Anfalas in
Gondor. Cf. Falathar, Falathrim. Another
derivative from the root was Quenya falma
'(crested) wave', whence Falmari,
Mar-nu-Falmar. faroth is derived from a root
meaning 'hunt, pursue'; in the Lay of Leithian the Taur-en-Faroth above Nargothrond are called 'the Hills of the
Hunters'. faug- 'gape' in Anfauglir, Anfauglith, Dor-nu-Fauglith. fea 'spirit' in Fлanor, Fлanturi. fin- 'hair' in Finduilas, Fingon, Finrod, Glorftndel. formen 'north' (Quenya) in Formenos; Sindarin forn (also for, forod) in Fornost. fuin 'gloom, darkness' (Quenya huine) in Fuinur, Taur-nu-Fuin. gaer 'sea' in Belegaer (and in Gaerys, Sindarin name of Ossл). Said to derive from the stem gaya 'awe, dread', and to have been the
name made for the vast and terrifying Great Sea when the Eldar first came to
its shores. gaur 'werewolf (from a root ngwaw- 'howl') m Tol-in-Gaurhoth. gil 'star' in Dagor-nuin-Giliath, Osgiliath (giliath 'host of stars'); Gil-Estel, Gil-galad. girith 'shuddering' in Nen Girith; cf. also Girithron, name of the last month of the
year in Sindarin (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix D). glin 'gleam' (particularly
applied to the eyes) in Maeglin. golodh is the Sindarin form of
Quenya Noldo; see gul Plural Golodhrim, and Gelydh (in
Annon-in-Gelydh). gond 'stone' in Gondolin, Gondor, Gonnhirrim, Argonath,
seregon. The name of the hidden city of King Turgon was devised by him in
Quenya as Ondolindл (Quenya ondo= Sindarin gond, and lindл 'singing,
song'); but it was known always in legend in the Sindarin form Gondolin, which was probably interpreted
as gond-dolen 'Hidden Rock'. gor 'horror, dread' in Gorthaur, Gorthol; goroth of the same
meaning, with reduplicated gor, in Gorgoroth, Ered Gorgoroth. groth (grod) 'delving, underground dwelling' m Menegroth, Nogrod (probably also in Nimrodel, 'lady of the white cave'). Nogrod was originally Novrod 'hollow delving' (hence the
translation Hollowbold), but was altered under the influence of
naug 'dwarf'. gul 'sorcery'
in Dol Guldur, Minas Morgul. This
word was derived from the same ancient stem ngol-
that appears in Noldor; cf. Quenya nуlл 'long study, lore, knowledge'. But
the Sindarin word was darkened in sense by its frequent use in the compound morgul 'black arts'. gurth 'death' in Gurthang (see also Melkor in the Index). gwaith 'people' in Gwaith-i-Mнrdain; cf. Enedwaith 'Middle-folk', name of the
land between the Greyflood and the Isen. gwalh, wath 'shadow' in Deldъwath, Ephel Dъath; also in Gwathlo,
the river Greyflood in Eriador. Related forms in Ered Wethrin, ThurIngwлthil. (This Sindarin word referred to dim
light, not to the shadows of objects cast by light: these were called morchaint 'dark shapes'.) hadhod in Hadhodrond (translation of Khazad-dыm)
was a rendering of Khazвd into
Sindarin sounds. haudh 'mound' in Haudh-en-Arwen, Haudh-en-Elleth, etc. heru 'lord' in Herumor, Herunъmen; Sindarin hir in Gonnhirrim, Rohirrim, Barahir; hнril
'lady' in Hнrilorn. him 'cool' in Himlad (and Himring?). hоn 'children' in Eruhini 'Children of Eru'; Narn
i Hоn Hъrin. hith 'mist' in Hithaeglir, Hithlum (also in Nen Hithoel, a lake in Anduin). Hithlum is Sindarin in form, adapted
from the Quenya name Hнsilуmл given
by the Noldorin exiles (Quenya hнsiл
'mist', cf. Hнsimл, the name of the
eleventh month of the year. The Lord of
the Rings Appendix D). hoth 'host, horde' (nearly
always in a bad sense) in Tol-in-Gaurhoth;
also in Loss(h)oth, the Snowmen of
Forochel (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix A [I, iii]) and Glamhoth
'din-horde', a name for Orcs. hyarmen 'south' (Quenya) in Hyarmentir; Sindarin har-, harn, harad. ia 'void, abyss' m Moria. iant 'bridge' in Iant Iaur. iвth 'fence' in Doriath. iaur 'old' in Iant Iaur; cf. the Elvish name of
Bombadil, Iarwain. ilm- This stem appears in Ilmen, Ilmarл, and also in Ilmarin ('mansion of the high airs', the
dwelling of Manwл and Varda upon Oiolossл). ilъvл 'the whole, the all' in Ilъvatar. kal' (gal-) This root, meaning 'shine', appears
in Calacirya, Calaquendi, Tar-Calion;
galvorn, Gil-galad, Galadriel. The last two names have no connexion with
Sindarin galadh tree', although in
the case of Galadriel such a connexion was often made, and the name altered to Galadhriel. In the High-elven speech her
name was Al(a)tбriel, derived from alata 'radiance' (Sindarin galad) and riel 'garlanded maiden'
(from a root rig- 'twine, wreathe'):
the whole meaning 'maiden crowned with a radiant garland', referring to her
hair. calen (galen) 'green' is
etymologically 'bright', and derives from this root; see also aglar. kбno 'commander': this Quenya
word is the origin of the second element m Fingon
and Turgon. kel- 'go away', of water
'flow away, flow down', in Celon; from
et-kele 'issue of water, spring' was
derived, with transposition of the consonants, Quenya ehtele, Sindarin eithel. kemen 'earth' in Kementбri; a Quenya word referring to
the earth as a flat floor beneath menel,
the heavens. kheliek- 'ice' in Helcar, Helcaraxл (Quenya helka
'icy, ice-cold'). But in Helevorn the
first element is Sindarin heledh
'glass', taken from Khuzdul kheled
(cf. Kheled-zaram 'Mirrormere'); Helevorn means 'black glass' (cf. galvorn). khil- 'follow' in Hildor, Hildуrien, Eluchнl. kir- 'cut, cleave' in Calacirya, Cirth, Angerthas, Cirith (Ninniach, Thoronath). From the sense 'pass swiftly through' was derived Quenya cнrya 'sharp-prowed ship' (cf. English cutter), and this meaning appears also
in Cнrdan, Tar-Ciryatan, and no doubt
in the name of Isildur's son Cнryon. lad 'plain, valley' in Dagorlad, Himlad; imlad a narrow valley
with steep sides, in Imladris (cf.
also Imlad Morgul in the Ephel
Dъath). laure 'gold' (but of light and
colour, not of the metal) in Laurelin;
the Sindarin forms in Glуredhel,
Glorfindel, Loeg Ningloron, Lуrindol, Rathlуriel. lhach 'leaping flame' m Dagor Bragollach, and probably in Anglachel (the sword made by Eцl of
meteoric iron). lin (1) 'pool, mere' in Linaewen (which contains aew [Quenya aiwe] 'small bird'), Teiglin;
cf. aelin. lin- (2) This root, meaning 'sing,
make a musical sound', occurs in Ainulindalл,
Laurelin, Lindar, Lindon, Ered Lindon, lуmelindi. lith 'ash' in Anfauglith, Dor-nu-Fauglith; also in Ered Lithui, the Ashen Mountains,
forming the northern border of Mordor, and Lithlad
'Plain of Ashes* at the feet of Ered Lithui. lok- 'bend,
loop' in Urulуki (Quenya [h]lуkл
'snake, serpent', Sindarin Ihыg). lуm 'echo' in Dor-lуmin, Ered Lуmin; related are Lammoth, Lanthir Lamath. lуmл 'dusk' m Lуmion, lуmelindi; see dъ. londл 'land-locked haven' in Alqualondл; the Sindarin form lond (lonn) in Mithlond. los 'snow' in Oiolossл (Quenya oio 'ever' and losse
'snow, snow-white'); Sindarin loss in
Amon Uilos and Aeglos. loth 'flower' in Lothlуrien, Nimloth; Quenya lуtл in Ninquelуtл, Vingilуtл. luin 'blue' in Ered Luin, Helluin, Luinil, Mindolluin. maeg 'sharp, piercing' (Quenya maika) in Maeglin. mal- 'gold' in Malduin, Malinalda; also m mallorn, and in the Field of Cormallen, which means 'golden circle'
and was named from the culumalda
trees that grew there (see cul-). man- 'good, blessed, unmarred'
in Aman, Manwл; derivatives of Aman in Amandil, Araman, Ъmanyar. mel- 'love' in Melian (from Melyanna 'dear gift'); this stem is seen also in the Sindarin word mellon 'friend' m the inscription on the
West-gate of Moria. men 'way' in Nъmen, Hyarmen, Rуmen, Formen. menel 'the heavens' m Meneldil, Menelmacar, Meneltarma. mereth 'feast' in Mereth Aderthad; also in Merethrond, the Hall of Feasts in Minas
Tirith. minas 'tower' in Annъminas, Minas Anor, Minas Tirith, etc.
The same stem. occurs in other words referring to isolated, prominent, things,
e.g. Mindolluin, Mindon; probably
related is Quenya minya 'first' (cf. Tar-Minyatur, the name of Elros as first
King of Nъmenor). mоr 'jewel' (Quenya mоrл) m Elemmнrл, Gwaith-i-Mнrdain, Mнriel, Nauglamнr, Tar-Atanamir. mith 'grey' in Mithlond, Mithrandir, Mithrim; also hi Mitheithel, the river Hoarwell in
Eriador. mor 'dark' in Mordor, Morgoth, Moria, Moriquendi,
Mormegil, Morwen, etc. moth 'dusk' in Nan Elmoth. nan(d) 'valley' m Nan Dungortheb, Nan Elmoth, Nan Tathren. nбr 'fire' in Narsil, Narya; present also in the
original forms of Aegnor (Aikanбro
'Sharp Flame' or 'Fell Fire') and Fлanor
(Feanaro 'Spirit of Fire'). The Sindarin form was naur, as in Sammath Naur,
the Chambers of Fire in Orodruin. Derived from the same ancient root (a)nar was the name of the Sun, Quenya Anar (also in Anбrion), Sindarin Anor
(cf. Minas Anor, Anorien). naug 'dwarf' in Naugrim; see also Nogrod in entry groth. Related
is another Sindarin word for 'dwarf', nogoth,
plural noegyth (Noegyth Nibin 'Petty-dwarves') and nogothrim. -(n)dil is a very frequent ending of
personal names, Amandil, Eдrendil
(shortened Eдrnil), Elendil, Mardil, etc.; it implies
'devotion', 'disinterested love' (see Mardil
in entry bar). -{n)dur in names such as Eдrendur (shortened Eдrnur) is similar in meaning to -(n)dil. neldor 'beech' in Neldoreth; but it seems that this was
properly the name of Hнrilorn, the great beech-tree with three trunks (nelde 'three' and orn). nen 'water', used of lakes,
pools, and lesser rivers, in Nen Girith,
Nenning, Nenuial, Nenya; Cuiviйnen, Uinen; also in many names in The Lord of the Rings, as Nen Hithoel, Bruinen, Emyn Arnen, Nъrnen.
Nоn 'wet' in Loeg Ningloron; also
in Nindalf. nim 'white' (from earlier nimf, nimp) in Nimbrethil, Nimloth, Nimphelos, niphredil (niphred 'pallor'), Barad
Nimras, Ered Nimrais. The Quenya form was ninque; thus Ninquelуtл=Nimloth.
Cf. also Taniquetil. orn 'tree' in Celeborn, Hнrilorn; cf. Fangorn 'Treebeard' and mallorn, plural mellyrn, the trees of Lothlуrien. orod 'mountain' in Orodruin, Thangorodrim; Orocarni, Oromлt.
Plural ered in Ered Engrin, Ered Linden, etc. os(t) 'fortress' in Angrenost, Belegost, Formenos, Fornost,
Mandos, Nargothrond (from Narog-ost-rond), Os(t)giliaih, Ost-in-Edhil. palan (Quenya) 'far and wide' in Palantнri, Tar-Palantir. pel- 'go round, encircle' in
Pelargir, Pelуri, and in the Pelennor, the 'fenced land' of Minas
Tirith; also in Ephel Brandir, Ephel
Dъath (ephel from et-pel 'outer
fence'). quen- (quet-) 'say, speak' in Quendi (Calaquendi,
Laiquendi, Moriquendi), Quenya,
Valaquenta, Quenta Silmarillion. The Sindarin forms have p (or b) for qu; e.g. pedo 'speak' in the inscription on the
West-gate of Moria, corresponding to the Quenya stem quet; and Gandalf's words before the gate, lasto beth lammen 'listen to the words of my tongue', where beth 'word' corresponds to Quenya quetta. ram 'wall' (Quenya ramba) in Andram, Ramdal; also in Rammas Echor, the wall about the
Pelennor Fields at Minas Tirith. ran- 'wander, stray' in Rбna, the Moon, and in Mithrandir, Aerandir; also in the river Gilraen in Gondor. rant 'course' in the
river-names Adurant (with adu 'double') and Celebrant ('Silverlode'). ras 'horn' in Barad Nimras, also in Caradhras
('Redhorn') and Methedras ('Last
Peak') in the Misty Mountains; plural rais
in Ered Nimrais. rauko 'demon' in Valaraukar; Sindarin raug, rog in Balrog. ril 'brilliance' in Idril, Silmaril; also in Anduril
(the sword of Aragorn) and in mithril
(Moria-silver). Idril's name in Quenya form was Itarillл (or Itarildл), from a stem ita- 'sparkle'. rim 'great
number, host' (Quenya rimbe) was
commonly used to form collective plurals, as Golodhrim, Mithrim (see the Index), Naugrim, Thangorodrim, etc. ring 'cold, chill' in Ringil, Ringwil, Himring; also in the
river Ringlу in Gondor, and in Ringarл, Quenya name of the last month
of the year (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix D). ris 'cleave' appears to
have blended with the stem kris- of
similar meaning (a derivative of the root kir-
'cleave, cut', q.v.); hence Angrist
(also Orcrist 'Orc-cleaver', the
sword of Thorin Oakenshield), Crissaegrim,
Imladris. roch 'horse' (Quenya rokko) in Rochallor, Rohan (from Rochand
'land of horses'), Rohirrim; also in Roheryn 'horse of the lady' (cf. heru),
Aragorn's horse, which was so called because given to him by Arwen (The Return of the King V 2). rom- A stem used of the sound of trumpets
and horns which appears in Oromл and Valarуma; cf. Bema, the name of this Vala in the language of Rohan as translated
into Anglo-Saxon in The Lord of the Rings
Appendix A (II): Anglo-Saxon bлme
'trumpet'. romen 'uprising, sunrise, east'
(Quenya) in Romenna. The Sindarin
words for 'east', rhыn (in Talath Rhunen) and amrыn, were of the same origin. rond meant a vaulted or arched
roof, or a large hall or chamber so roofed; so Nargothrond (see ost), Hadhodrond, Aglarond. It could be
applied to the heavens, hence the name Elrond
'star-dome'. ros 'foam, spindrift,
spray' in Celebros, Elros, Rauros; also
in Cair Andros, an island in the
river Anduin. ruin 'red flame' (Quenya runya) in Orodruin. ruth 'anger' in Aranrъth. sarn '(small) stone' in Sarn Athrad (Sarn Ford on the Brandywine is a half-translation of this); also in
Sarn Gebir ('stone-spikes': ceber, plural cebir 'stakes'), rapids in the river Anduin. A derivative is Serni, a river m Gondor. sereg 'blood' (Quenya serke) in seregon. sil- (and variant thil-) 'shine (with white or silver light)' in Belthil, Galathilion, Silpion, and in Quenya Isil, Sindarin Ithil, the
Moon (whence Isildur, Narsil; Minas
Ithil, Ithilien). The Quenya word
Silmarilli is said to derive from the
name silima that Fлanor gave to the
substance from which they were made. sоr 'river', from root sir- 'flow', in Ossiriand (the first element is from the stem of the numeral
'seven', Quenya otso, Sindarin odo),
Sirion; also in Sirannon (the
'Gate-stream' of Moria) and Sirith
('a flowing', as tirith 'watching'
from tir), a river in Gondor. With change of s to h in the middle of
words it is present in Minhiriath
'between the rivers', the region between the Brandywine and the Greyflood; in Nanduhirion 'vale of dim streams', the
Dimrill Dale (see nan[d] and dъ), and in Ethir Anduin,
the outflow or delta of Anduin (from et-sir). sыl 'wind' in Amon Sыl, Sъlimo; cf. sъlimл, Quenya name of the third month
of the year (The Lord of the Rings Appendix
D). tal (dal) 'foot' in Celebrindal, and with the meaning 'end' in Ramdal. talath 'flat lands, plain' in Talath Dirnen, Talath Rhunen. tar- 'high' (Quenya tara 'lofty'), prefix of the Quenya
names of the Nъmenуrean Kings; also in Annatar.
Feminine tari 'she that is high,
Queen' in Elentбri, Kementбri. Cf. tarma 'pillar' in Meneltarma. tathar 'willow'; adjective tathren m Nan-tathren; Quenya tasare
in Tasarinan, Nan-tasarion (see Nan-tathren in the Index). taur 'wood, forest' (Quenya taure) in Tauron, Taur-im-Duinath, Taur-nu-Fuin. tel- 'finish, end, be last'
in Teleri. thalion 'strong, dauntless' m Cъthalion, Thalion. thong 'oppression' in Thangorodrim, also in Durthang (a castle in Mordor). Quenya sanga meant 'press, throng', whence Sangahyando 'Throng-cleaver', name of a
man in Gondor (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix A [I, iv]). thar- 'athwart, across' in Sarn Athrad, Thargelion; also in Tharbad (from thara-pata 'crossway*) where the ancient road from Arnor and Gondor
crossed the Grey-flood. thaur 'abominable, abhorrent' in
Sauron (from Thauron), Gorthaur. thin(d) 'grey' in Thingol; Quenya sinda in Sindar, Singollo (Sindacollo: collo 'cloak'). thфl 'helm' in Dor Cъarthol, Gorthol. thon 'pine-tree' in Dorthonion. thoron 'eagle' in Thorondor (Quenya Sorontar), Cirith Thoronath.
The Quenya form is perhaps present in the constellation-name Soronъmл. til 'point, horn' in Taniquetil, Tilion ('the Horned'); also
in Celebdil 'Silvertine', one of the
Mountains of Moria. tin- 'sparkle' (Quenya tinta 'cause to sparkle', tinwe 'spark') in Tintallл; also in tindуmл
'starry twilight' (The Lord of the Rings
Appendix D), whence tindуmerel 'daughter
of the twilight', a poetic name for the nightingale (Sindarin Tinъviel). It appears also in Sindarin ithildin
'starmoon', the substance of which the devices on the West-gate of Moria were
made. tir 'watch, watch over'
in Minas Tirith, palantнri, Tar-Palantir,
Tirion. tol 'isle' (rising with
sheer sides from the sea or from a river) in Tol Eressлa, Tol Galen, etc. turn 'valley' in Tumhalad, Tumladen; Quenya tumbo (cf. Treebeard's tumbalemorna 'lack deep valley'. The Two Towers III 4). Cf. Utumno, Sindarin Udыn (Gandalf in Mordor named the Balrog 'Flame of Udыn'), a name
afterwards used of the deep dale in Moria between the Morannon and the
Isenmouths. tur 'power, mastery' in Turambar, Turgon, Tъrin, Fлanturi,
Tar-'Minyatur. uial 'twilight' in Aelin-uial, Nenuial. ur- 'heat, be hot' in Urulуki; cf. Urimл and Urui, Quenya
and Sindarin names of the eighth month of the year (The Lord of the Rings Appendix D). Related is the Quenya word aure 'sunlight, day' (cf. Fingon's cry
'before the Nirnaeth Arnoediad), Sindarin aur,
which in the form Or- is prefixed to
the names of the days of the week. val- 'power' in Valar, Valacirca, Valaquenta, Valaraukar,
Val(i)mar, Valinor. The original stem was bal-, preserved in Sindarin Balan,
plural Belain, the Valar, and in Balrog. wen 'maiden' is a frequent
ending, as in Eдrwen, Morwen. wing 'foam, spray' in Elwing, Vingilot (and only in these two
names). yave 'fruit' (Quenya) in Yavanna; cf. Yavannie, Quenya name of the ninth month of the year, and yavie 'autumn' (The Lord of the Rings Appendix D). |
|
|